"Ringo,.John.-.Mike.Harmon.3.-.Choosers.of.the.Slain.(arc)" - читать интересную книгу автора (Ringo John)
Ringo, John - Choosers Of The Slain - ARC
Choosers of the
Slain-ARC
Advance Reader
Copy Unproofed
Lust, Vengeance and Non-stop Action
Mike Harmon’s commando-quality retainers
agree: their leader, code-named Ghost, is a peculiar one. An ex-
Navy-SEAL, there is no stronghold he cannot penetrate, no
target he can’t take out. But Ghost is also a man
struggling to keep the animal inside at bay and his twisted
sexual desires satisfied with a rock-hard integrity and incredible
force of will.
Now Harmon and his militia have been hired to rescue the
daughter of a powerful political mover in America, kidnapped into the Eastern Europe sex trade.
Welcome to the Balkan Route: a notorious pathway for
human trafficking carved with blood and brutality and passing
through Serbia and Montenegro, Croatia, Albania, Macedonia,
Bosnia-Herzegovina, and Kosovo to the heart of darkness
itself: sexual snuff houses where powerful politicians pay to
rape and murder young women for kicks. Turns out some of
those politicians hail from Washington
, D.C.
But now the Route is about to be re-Routed, and the
balance of power is about to shift dramatically – to the
smoking muzzle of one very angry ex-SEAL’s
M-4.
Sometimes it takes a bad man to destroy an even more
terrible evil. And the baddest of them all is Ghost.
They’ll be sorry they made his girls cry.
John Ringo, veteran of the U.S. Army’s 82nd
Airborne and fivetimes New York Times best-seller
with over a million books in print, delivers another blockbuster
military technothriller with the latest entry in his “
Ghost” saga.
Cover Art by Kurt
Miller
|
Hardcover
This is a work of fiction. All the characters and events
portrayed in this book are fictional, and any resemblance to real
people or incidents is purely coincidental.
First printing, July 2006
Distributed by Simon & Schuster 1230 Avenue
of the Americas
New York, NY
10020
Printed in the United
States of America
|
ISBN-13: 978-1-4165-2070-2 ISBN-10:
1-4165-2070-8
Copyright 2006 by John Ringo
All rights reserved, including the right to reproduce this
book or portions thereof in any form.
A Baen Books Original Baen publishing Enterprises
P.O. Box 1403
Riverdale, NY
10471
http://www.baen.com
Electronic version by WebWrights
http://www.webscription.net
|
DEDICATION:
As always: For Captain Tamara Long, USAF
Born: May 12, 1979
Died: 23 March 2003,
Afghanistan
You fly with the angels now.
|
Choosers of the
Slain-ARC
Chapter One
"Colonel Ushakoff," Mike "Jenkins" said as the unwounded
Chechen prisoners were being unloaded at a Georgian military
prison.
Mike Harmon had been a college student at the
University of
Georgia when he'd witnessed the
kidnapping of a co-ed. Most college students would have picked
up their cell phones, or run to someone that had one, and called
911. But before he was a college student he'd been a SEAL and a
SEAL instructor. So he just jumped on the van and road it to it's
destination.
That move, and a series of similar decisions, had led him to
an underground bunker near Aleppo where
terrorists backed by Syria
had brought American girls to be used as
hostages. And their plans didn't just include holding them, but
torturing them for the cameras to force American units to leave
the Middle East.
Mike had lost one before he realized what the plan was, but
he'd fought his way through to the rest and held the position until
relieved, along the way wiping out a chemical weapons factory,
the Syrian president and Osama Bin Laden.
This had earned him the grateful thanks of a nation, quite a
bit of money and a price on his head from every Islamic terrorism
group on earth. Mike Harmon, Team Name "Ghost", had quietly
disappeared, maybe alive, maybe dead, and Mike Jenkins had
reappeared in his place.
After being the wrong place at the wrong time too many
times, Mike had settled down in the
Republic of Georgia, using part of his reward money to buy a
pleasant little farm with a group of tenant farmers already in
place. However, the security situation in the area being what it
was, he'd taken the opportunity to train the retainers as a local
"militia."
The retainers, called the Keldara, had taken to it like so
many ducks to water. A little digging turned up the fact that the
Keldara were anything but simple farmers. They were, in fact, the
last remnant of the Varangian Guard, the Viking guards of the
Emperors of Byzantium. The group had apparently descended
from a small force of mixed Norse and Scotts-Irish that had
drifted down through the Meditteranean until encountering the
Byzantine Empire.
They farmed quite well but at heart, like the Kurds and the
Ghurkas, they were warriors first and foremost. A couple of
million dollars in equipment and a similar amount in payroll for
trainers and training had turned them into a formidable, if small,
fighting force. They had taken on a Chechen "battalion" at nearly
three to one odds and the prisoners and dead in the Georgian
military trucks were the result.
Mike suspected it wouldn't be the last such battle for the
group called "The Tigers of the Mountains."
"Mr. Jenkins," the Russian attache replied, nodding. "Quite a
battle for a little militia."
"Untrained militia," Mike pointed out. "They were only in
their third week of training. The teams fought them straight off
of their first days of range training."
"How many did you kill?" Ushakoff asked.
"One hundred and three KIA," Mike replied. "Including
some who got froggy when we were in the capture phase. Forty-
two WIA, including some the doctors don't think will survive.
And twenty-one prisoners, unwounded."
"And Breslav?" the Russian asked.
"He, unfortunately, did not survive the encounter," Mike
said, slipping a picture out of his jacket pocket and handing it
over. Breslav had, apparently, been directly in the area of effect
of a claymore since his torso and right arm were missing.
However, his head was still attached and the expression of
surprise was clear on his face. As was the expression of
satisfaction on the face of the Keldara that was holding his head
up by its hair. "I would have liked to capture him for intel
purposes, but you can't always get what you want."
"We are glad enough that he's dead," Ushakoff replied,
smiling at the pic. "Can I keep this?"
"Certainly," Mike said. "It's a photo quality printout,
anyway. We only use digital cameras."
"Three weeks of training, you said?" Ushakoff asked. "I
think that my bosses will be impressed. Very impressed."
"And, of course, the intel we forwarded you," Mike pointed
out. "That stopped his team from entering
Chechnya
. Can I take it we might be able to avoid a
border war?"
"There is still the matter of the Paniski Gorge," Ushakoff
pointed out. "That is where their main bases are."
"I don't think the Keldara will be up to taking that on any
time soon," Mike replied. "But we'll start interdicting their
movements as soon as our training is complete. The Gorge will
be a matter between you and the government of Georgia
."
"I'll pass all of this on," Ushakoff said, pocketing the
picture. "And I give you the thanks of Russia
, for what it's worth."
"Oh, I'm sure it will have some use in the future," Mike said,
smiling faintly. "You scratch my back, I scratch yours. Take care,
colonel."
* * *
"Back into training again," Nielson said in a satisfied tone.
"Nothing like a little live fire exercise to get the blood pumping
and the troops motivated, but now they're going to think they
know it all."
Colonel Robert Nielson was the senior officer of the group
Mike had hired to train the Keldara. The colonel's field
credentials were impeccable but he was, at heart, a trainer. He
loved taking soft clay and molding it into soldiers. As such he'd
been a very good choice to lead the training, although some of
the trainers, notably the SEAL and Marine Recon members, had
questioned having a regular Army guy in charge. That was until
they started to see the results.
Mike had been flown back to the serai, courtesy of the
Georgian government which was being remarkably friendly at the
moment. He'd consistently tried to downplay the Keldara, but
having a fraction of their force wipe out a Chechen "battalion"
was, he was told, being discussed at the highest levels. It had also
made the international news, although the story for press
consumption was a special Georgian commando group. Which,
in a way, they were.
"Get that out of their system with a good, solid After Action
Review," Mike said. "I'll be on the grill, too."
"Everyone was involved," Nielson pointed out. "Who
conducts it?"
Mike started to answer when his sat-phone started to ring.
"Jenkins," he said.
"Pierson, go scramble."
"Scrambled, how's it going, colonel?" Mike replied when the
system was in place.
"I thought it was going to be a year before you were fully in
the groove?" Pierson said. "What's with making network news?"
Colonel Robert Pierson had been Mike's "control" ever
since his first mission in Syria
. The colonel just happened to be the guy
picked to talk on the phone with some madman who had traced
the kidnapped co-eds half way across the world. Since then he'd
received similar calls from Mike and made a few in the other
direction. He never ordered Mike, who was after all a free agent,
he just suggested or in a few cases pleaded. He was less a
"control" than an information conduit. And in a way a friend.
"We did?" Mike asked, frowning.
"Slow news day," Pierson pointed out. "And the Chechens
are still a bug-a-boo after Breslan. Apparently the guy you
wacked had a small piece of setting that up. At least, according to
CNN."
"Nice of them to tell us," Mike said, rolling his eyes at
Nielson.
"Seriously, what did you do, use all the trainers?" Pierson
asked.
"No, it was mostly Keldara," Mike replied. "Their first FTX.
Right off of their first two days on the range. The mortar girls
had had more range time, but not much."
"Jesus Christ," Pierson said, wonderingly. "How far are you
into training?"
"Three, four weeks," Mike said. "Depending upon whether
you consider that training. Colonel Nielson doesn't."
"I didn't say that," Nielson said with a sniff. "Just that it's
interfered a bit."
"Well, the boss man said 'Good job' followed by 'next time,
try to avoid the papers.'"
"Tell him I said thanks," Mike replied. "Anything else?"
"Just that," Pierson said. "I'll add my own 'good job.' Take
care."
"Will do," Mike replied. "See ya."
"We were talking about an after action review," he
continued, looking at Nielson.
"I was thinking it might make sense to ask DC," Nielson
replied, gesturing at the phone with his chin.
"Thought about it," Mike said. "Too many fingers in the pie.
You'll work up the AAR. Include me in
the review as well as yourself. Get Adams and a couple of the
instructors to do a forensic of the shoot site. I want a count of
every round expended and a probable of who shot who. Work
them all down and show them exactly what they did wrong. And I
did wrong. Start with my forgetting to bring the mortars; I'm not
used to having to think about integral heavies. And we had a
major problem at one point with commo control. I want that hit
heavy, along with the fact that it slowed down the pursuit, and I
want Vanner to get started on what we can do about team freqs
and sub-freqs. When Oleg told them to move by odd and evens,
the security guys wanted to get out and pursue. That has to be
covered, too."
"Will do," Nielson said, sighing. "Can I have Kat to assist?"
"Go for it," Mike replied. "Hot wash tomorrow, full AAR with all teams by the end of the week."
"Got it," Nielson said. "I'll get started."
* * *
"Vanner," Mike said, sticking his head in the radio room.
Vanner was pointing to something on one of the computer
screens with his head nearly touching that of the Keldara female
working the computer. Mike wasn't sure who she was, but he
was pretty sure she was a Makanee.
"Kildar?" the intel NCO said, spinning around.
The term "Kildar" was what Mike was called by the Keldara
but it had caught on with others. It was a unique name for the
local warlord, translating as something like "baron." What it
meant, simply, was leader of the Keldara and that was enough for
those who had come to know them.
Patrick Vanner was a former Marine, but Mike tried not to
hold it against him. The guy was plentiful hardcore, but he was,
nonetheless, the designated team geek. He'd been an intercept
specialist in the Marines then worked for the NSA for a while.
After getting out he picked up a degree in computer science
which was almost superfluous to his actual knowledge, which
when it came to electronics and electronic intel was enormous.
Short, stocky and crew-cut, he was proof positive that you could
take the boy out of the Marines but not the Marines out of the
boy.
"Got a couple of questions," Mike said, gesturing for him to
follow him out of the room. Mike led the way to the war room
and grabbed a seat.
"You look like you're getting pretty friendly with some of
the Keldara girls," Mike said, raising an eyebrow.
"Is that why you wanted to see me?" Vanner asked,
frowning.
"No, but I figure I should ask about it," Mike replied.
"Galina and I are just friends," Vanner said, shaking his
head. "She's really good at picking out freqs. I'm being very
proper in all my dealings with her. Speaking of which, I know
these girls are being paid for this, but is there some way we can
get them rank? They're doing the job of commo and intel techs,
which in the military would make them privates or specialists."
"I'll think about it," Mike said. "But watch yourself. I don't
want some Keldara Father on my case over a pregnant daughter.
Or even one that could be pregnant, if you get my drift."
"Got it," Vanner said.
"On the real reason I wanted to talk to you," Mike
continued. "We had a real breakdown in commo on the op. Not a
breakdown, exactly, but..."
"The team net got filled with chatter," Vanner said, nodding.
"That's partially a matter of training so they don't just jump on
the radio."
"I'd like more," Mike said. "Sub freqs for the sub-teams, a
general freq for the whole team, then on up. Something where the
commander doesn't have to think about it to pass stuff down,
though, and can listen in on the chatter. Also, I want to start
working on a battle net. Something where call-for-fire, at least by
those with the right equipment, is point and click. Probably with
a voice back-up and confirm, but I want to be able to point to a
spot on a map and say: 'Send fire there.' I'd also like to be able to
sketch out movements for the teams."
"I can get all that," Vanner said. "Some of it's off-the-shelf
and unclass but some of it's classified US and European systems,
mostly US."
"I think we can swing that," Mike said. "You find the system
and I'll get permission for us to get it. Keep an eye on whether it
can be integrated into US battlefield systems. If we end up in a
situation where we can call for fire from God, I'd like to be able
to do it. Look around at some of the firms that do C2 and offer
free field trials," he added, grinning. "Try to get a deal; it's not
going to be cheap gear."
"Will do," Vanner said. "Anything else?"
"If you and Galina get to be more than friends, tell me first,"
Mike said, seriously. "I'll see what I can do with the Keldara.
Unless it's a lot more than friendship, in which case you'll be
going home with a mother-in-law."
"Wasn't planning on it," Vanner said, frowning. "But it's a
thought. She sure as hell is gorgeous."
"And she can cook," Mike said, nodding. "But she'd have to
adapt to an entire new culture. A very, very different one. Think
about it carefully."
"I will," Vanner said.
"Now we're done," Mike replied, grinning. "Take care."
* * *
"What we're going to do here, is go over the action you just
engaged in just like any other test," Nielson said to the gathered
Keldara. The hot-wash on the action was being conducted team
by team, taking the whole day to go over known faults. They'd
started with Team Oleg as the one that had been involved in the
most combat. They were using one of the basement rooms in the
serai for the review and it was packed with the Keldara sitting on
folding chair and looking nervous. "We will do one of these after
every action, so get used to them.
"The first thing to say, and I'll say it again and again, is that
you did very well," Nielson continued, looking around at the
group. "Especially since you are in the middle of training. But
there's no such thing as perfect. This is a method to get closer and
closer, though, if you pay attention. Right now, Chief Adams and
Sergeants Fletcher, Graff and McKenzie are walking over the
skirmish area and working up the full review. What we're doing
today is called the hot-wash. We'll be going over individual and
unit actions as they are known and determining what we can do
better the next time. I'll start with ammunition expenditure."
He pulled up a list with a graph on the computer screen on
the wall and pointed to a couple of high points.
"There were over sixty rounds of 7.62 expended per casualty
that was found to have been shot," Nielson said, pointing at the
two graphs. "Not a total of sixty rounds, but sixty rounds per
casualty. The low round count was Oleg, which, given that he
shouldn't have been firing at all, was pretty good at only fifteen
rounds. Oleg, why did you fire?"
"I...wasn't doing anything else, Colonel," the team leader
said, uncomfortably.
"You were supposed to be paying attention to everyone
else's actions," Nielson said, shaking his head. "Chief Adams is,
trust me, much more accurate than you are in a fight like that.
But he expended no rounds because he knew he wasn't there to
fight. He was there to observe and control. You are given a
weapon for one purpose only; self defense or something that you
have to shoot at because you can't get one of the shooters to do it
in time. That is it. Period. I can't imagine a reason for you to have
expended even one round in this engagement. Did any of the
enemy get close to your bunker?"
"No, sir," Oleg admitted, dropping his head.
"Keep your head next time," Nielson said. "You're there to
control the flow of the battle. If you have to, lead from the front
if you're directly attacked; if you have to engage due to time
constraints, you can engage. Otherwise, keep your finger off the
trigger! Beso!"
"Sir!" the Keldara said, sitting bolt upright. He'd been bent
over talking to the Keldara next to him.
"Three hundred and eighty-six rounds?" Nielson said, clearly
amazed. "How in the hell did you expend three hundred and
eight-six rounds?"
* * *
The day after the hot wash they took all six teams out and
walked the ground, looking over what they could have done
better. Mike determined that Nielson was just better at picking
out details on stuff like this than he was. Everything from the
timing on when he'd pulled in Vil to when he'd sent Killjoy and
Vanim down the hill was reviewed and critiqued.
The third day was a final review held in the main dining
room of the serai. Mike had had more tables and chairs brought
in and there was just room for all the militia and the trainers.
They'd even brought in the females from the mortar section who
were sitting at a separate table with their trainers. The girls were
looking smug as cats at being included in "guy talk."
"Kildar," Nielson said. "Could you stand up?"
"Here it comes," Mike noted to Adams , standing up at the head of the table.
"The recon movement to the observation point was good,"
Nielson said. "No major flaws there except a lack of putting your
point out far enough during the movement. No trash found at
your bivouac of the first night although there was debris at the
main OP on the hilltop. I won't get into your choice of targets for
the sniper operations; that is idiosyncratic and depends upon
human factors I won't argue. However, your timing on
withdrawal was quite bad. You very nearly got flanked by the
pursuit party, you're aware of that?"
"Yes, I am," Mike said, nodding. "I took a few more shots
than I should have."
"Arguably, you should not have been shooting," Nielson
pointed out. "You should have been spotting and controlling and
let Lasko shoot."
"I wasn't sure that would work," Mike said. "The ranges
were longer than he'd trained on. I wanted to make sure the sniper
fire was good enough to really sting them. But I did pull out too
late."
"Your movement, given the closeness of the pursuit, was
about par," Nielson said, pointing to the map. "Why did you
choose to be the bait and send Praz and Lasko directly up the
mountain?"
"I was in better shape to run," Mike said, shrugging. "Praz
and Lasko weren't up to my level of condition. As it turned out,
they probably could have made it just as well, but it was a tough
hump. In the situation, I took the danger point."
"On reaching the ambush point you took one of the security
bunkers for your position," Nielson said. "Why? You couldn't
maintain view of the battle from there."
"I was following Chief Adams' direction," Mike said. "I
assume that the pursuit party was close enough that
Adams just wanted me to get to ground and that was
the nearest bunker."
"In the planning stage you failed to consider the mortars for
support," Nielson said, checking off an item on the list.
"Agreed," Mike said. "I'd thought of them solely in terms of
fixed position use. I'm glad you remembered them," he added to
chuckles through the room.
"Which brings us to the most critical danger point in this
action: command and control," Nielson said. "The true
commander of the mission was the Kildar. But he was forward
deployed and in action for the majority of the mission. I was
managing the battle, but I wasn't in command. The Kildar should
have either relinquished command of the battle or moved to a
position that he could manage all the pieces. It worked, because
the Kildar and I could work together very well. But one or the
other of us should have been designated for command and that
person should have been in a position to control the flow of the
battle."
"I'll comment on that," Mike said, stepping to the front. "I
intend to always command from near the front if at all possible.
My intention is to make that possible through better technology.
But, yes, in this instance I was without effective maps and didn't
really know where the pieces were. Colonel Nielson ran this
battle and did so quite well."
"Damned straight," Chief Adams said, loudly, starting the
applause.
Mike waited for the applause of the grinning Keldara to die
and then waved at the group.
"You've completed your first action and your first after
action review," Mike said, grinning. "And I'm sure you'd rather be
back in combat than having it nit-picked." He waited again for
the chuckles to die down then nodded. "Again, you did well. And
if we keep this up, each time you'll do better. But, for tonight,
you have met the enemy and survived. There is a custom among
the military that from time they have a dinner for only their unit,
called a dining-in. There are various customs, which we'll work
on as time passes. But for tonight, you are the guests of the
Kildar. Tomorrow, of course, you're back in training. So . . .
watch the beer."
"Kildar," one of the men said, glancing over at the two
tables of women. "What about the women? Are they to be
serving?"
"Not if you want fire support next time, Viktor Shaynav!"
one of the women yelled back. Which elicited a room full of
belly laughs at Viktor's expense.
"No," Mike said, as the doors opened and his various "girls"
came in bearing trays. "Tonight you will be served by the women
of the Kildar in thanks for being loyal retainers and some of the
finest soldiers it has been my pleasure to serve with."
* * *
"Christ, I can't believe you got it finished so fast," Mike said,
standing on the top of the dam. The outer slope and top had even
been seeded and covered in straw to prevent erosion while the
inner slope was covered in clay. The weir hadn't been closed, yet,
so the stream at the base still flowed freely. But all that took was
turning wheel. It was barely four weeks after the battle and the
whole thing was in place.
"I've even got most of the houses wired with some fumble
fingered help from the Keldara," Meller said, proudly. "The big
difference was getting the additional equipment."
"What about the channel to bring the other stream over?"
Mike said. It was clear the streams hadn't been joined up, yet.
"I used the spare Keldara to put a temporary dam in up
there," Meller said. "Then I blasted the channel. It created an
embayment so the hydrostatic force wouldn't be so bad. We'll
partially fill this with the current stream then open that up,
slowly, to add that stream in. That dam will probably wash away
in the spring, but by then you won't need it. You want to do the
honors?" the engineer concluded, waving at the wheel that
controlled the weir. The controls were propped out over the
water on a pier and had an automatic lifting device for when the
water rose too high.
"No," Mike said, shaking his head. "You built it. You close
it."
"Okay," Meller said, happily. He stepped out onto the pier
and calmly spun the wheel, dropping the metal plate into its slot
and stopping the water from the stream which immediately
started to back up. "We'll open up the other one in a few days
when this gets about six feet deep."
"How long to fill it?" Mike asked.
"About two weeks," Meller said. "At which point you and
the Keldara will have your power. And we can start running
water lines to the houses as soon as we get material."
"Start on that next," Mike said, nodding. "We'll have to
figure out something for treatment; this stuff isn't drinkable as
is."
"Chlorine's cheap," Meller said, shrugging. "I'll look into it."
Chapter Two
"It's nice to mostly have the house back," Mike said, walking
into the dining room. Nielson was drinking tea and looking over
some paper while Adams was finishing
off a plate of ham and eggs.
"Fewer fights over the girls," Adams said.
The Keldara were well into their patrolling phase of training
and that required fewer instructors. With "basic" over, most of
the trainers had left. A few were still around for patrolling and
advanced training and some, like Adams, Nielson and Vanner,
looked to be permanent additions. But the house was definitely
less full than it had been. Especially with most of the trainers out
running the Keldara around the mountains.
"The girls" were local hookers that Mike had hired for the
aid and comfort of poor trainers far from the joys of home. The
owner of the local brothel had given Mike a good deal on long
term rental eventually giving up the business entirely.
Four of the five girls were completely standard
Third World working girls. Three of them were from
the local area farms, girls with no better prospect than being
working girls for the rest of their lives, while the other two were
Russians. One of those, Katya, was somewhat different.
Poisonously mean when she could get away with it, the girl had
never adjusted to being "owned" in the way that was common in
the area.
Mike, who had nicknamed her "Cottontail", was slowly
shifting her out of being a working girl and into pursuits more
suited for her high level intelligence and utter sociopathy. He
wasn't sure what he was going to do with her long term, the
option of putting her in an unmarked grave was still out there,
but he saw lots of potential in the girl if he could just trust her
even a bit.
That, however, would not be a smart thing to do.
"Speaking of the girls," Mike said. "I'm going to move
Cottontail fully into intel. I wish we had a good Humint trainer
around, I think Katya would probably be a good agent."
"If you could trust anything she gave you," Nielson pointed
out, looking up from his papers. "Could you?"
"Depends on what was in it for her," Mike said, shrugging.
"She really hates Chechens, probably more than she hates the rest
of the world. If we use her to develop Humint in the Chechen
region it might work."
"She'll need to learn Arabic," Adams said, wiping his plate with a biscuit.
"Berlitz has a course available," Mike said. "Of course, that
means letting her out of the house. Hell, I'll give her a handful of
cash and tell her she can go if she wants. Win/win proposition."
"What about 'your' girls?" Nielson asked.
In addition to the hookers, Mike had more or less inherited a
harem. Sexual slavery was rife in the region and most of it was
controlled by the Chechens who used it, along with drugs, as
funding for their ongoing war with the Russians. Most of the
girls were bought from orphanages or their parents since the
farmers in the region could get nearly a year's income for
otherwise "useless" women. But the Chechens weren't above
snatching a girl off the street.
One such group had snatched one of the Keldara girls from
the local town where she had gone to market. When they took off
in their van they passed right by Mike's caravanserai.
He had taken five shots from a Barrett .50 caliber to stop the
van, fortunately missing the girls all in the back. Then he and the
reaction team of trainers had taken down the two Chechens in the
van.
This left Mike with nine girls ranging in age from twelve to
seventeen on his hands. Inquiries had indicated that they were no
deposit, no return; the various farms that had sold them had no
interest in getting them back. After discussing the situation with
his local advisers, Mike had accepted that the best course of
action was to take them in as concubines. He'd considered
various alternatives, but none of them would really work. He'd
drawn the line at breaking in the really young ones, but the rest
now were his bed warmers.
However, he'd immediately seen the problem with having a
house full of teenaged girls to manage. So he'd gone to Uzbekistan
, where harems were traditional, and hired
a professional harem manager. Anastasia had turned out to have
far more skills than just harem management. Not only was she
great in the sack, she spoke multiple languages and was at home
in almost any social environment.
Mike had also hired a female tutor for the girls. His long
term plan was to get them trained to a level that they could get
into college and get a "real" life. But in the meantime, he couldn't
exactly bitch about having five very good looking teenage screw-
bunnies at his beck and call.
"None of them are the right mindset to set on something like
this," Mike replied. "But Anastasia is fluent in Arabic. Maybe I'll
have her teach Cottontail."
"Be careful what she teaches her," Adams said, without looking up. "You might get a very nasty
surprise."
"Are you talking about Anastasia teaching Katya or the other
way around?" Nielson asked, grinning.
"Yes."
* * *
"Genadi," Mike said, as he pulled up in his Expedition next
to the farm manager. "I haven't spoken to you in weeks. How
goes the farm?"
When Mike had bought the Keldara farm, which essentially
meant the entire multi-thousand acre valley, he had been less than
satisfied with the overseer that came with it. In short, Otar was a
blow-hard and a bully that didn't know his ass from a hole in the
ground. The local police chief had turned up Genadi, who was
not only school trained in agronomy but a member of the
Keldara. He and Genadi had had a run-in and the former manager
had forced him off the farm, to the level of having him thrown
out of the Keldara.
Mike was impressed by the young man. He knew the
problems of farming in the valley with its very short season, but
he was also more than willing to bring in modern techniques and
equipment to improve conditions. He was also willing to face
down the Keldara elders over his changes. The Keldara were
open to many new ideas and ways of doing things while being
dead stubborn on others and many of the elders thought that
Genadi was going to starve them all with his new seeds, planting
methods, fertilizers and "herbicides." After all, anything that
killed the weeds would certainly kill the crops. This year was
going to be a test of how well he knew his stuff. Mike was
betting that things would go well.
"I could use some hands," Genadi admitted. "When are the
younger men going to be free for work again?"
"Not for a few weeks," Mike said, frowning. "What do you
need?"
"Small things, but numerous," the farm manager answered.
"Some trenching that I can't get a backhoe into, some fixing on
the barns that requires strong backs. The old men are doing well,
as are the women, but there is only so much they can do."
"We've got a break in the training schedule coming up the
end of the week," Mike said, frowning. "I'll see about gettting
that break extended from a few days to maybe two weeks. I want
them to have a break before we go to patrol phase two. That's
going to be a ball buster."
"I'll put it off until then," Genadi said, nodding. "And make
sure they have a break towards the end."
"Great," Mike said, grinning. "How's the crop?"
"Even Father Mahona admits that the grains are coming in
well," Genadi replied, smiling broadly. "And the peas are nearly
ready to harvest. We'll do that with the combine so I won't need
the young men. Before it would have taken everyone stripping
the plants, but the combine has an attachment that does it for us.
Then replant in beets for the fall crop."
"Whatever," Mike said, admitting that he knew nothing
about farming.
"It goes well," Genadi said, smiling back. "Very well."
"Good," Mike replied. "That's all I needed to hear anyway."
"The farm goes well," the farm manager said, frowning
slightly, "but there is another problem."
"What now?" Mike asked, sighing.
"Father Makanee and Father Kulcyanov would like to meet
with you, privately," Genadi said. "It is a very private reason, for
the Kildar only. Not involving the militia."
"Today?" Mike asked, puzzled.
"Soon," Genadi said, shrugging. "Not right away. Any time
this week or next week would do."
"Going to hint about what?" Mike asked, smiling.
"I think they need to discuss it with you," Genadi said,
shrugging. "It is for them to say."
"Day after tomorrow do?" Mike asked. "Afternoon?"
"That is fine," Genadi replied.
* * *
Mike entered the caravanserai and looked around the foyer.
Two of the harem, Tinata and Azhela, were sitting in the foyer
area playing a game involving small colored pebbles. Tinata was
a sixteen-year-old with flamboyantly large breasts and flaming
red hair that was quite natural. Mike knew for sure and certain
that the curtains matched the rug. Azhela was smaller with fine,
light brown hair and a smaller chest that, nonetheless, was quite
noticeable on her smaller frame.
In a move that made sense to him at the time, he'd had
Anastasia obtain uniforms for the girls. They were essentially
"school-girl" uniforms, white shirt, blue and green plaid skirts
and low-quarter shoes, which had advantages and disadvantages.
It cut down on the petty bickering about who got to wear what on
what day, and who was prettiest which was a major point of
contention among the girls. However, as with many males, the
"school-girl" look was a major turn-on. It didn't help that they
were, essentially, real school girls. As usual when the girls
popped to their feet, skirts swirling, their shirts straining their
buttons, smiling, bright-eyed and bushy-tailed and obviously
quite willing to satisfy his every desire, whatever important
problem had been on his mind went right out the window. The
braces that many of them now sported didn't help matters.
Mike dragged his eyes away from Tinata's remarkably fine
breasts and shook his head.
"I think I need to dress you girls in chadours," he said,
smiling to show it was a joke. "But could one of you ask
Anastasia to meet me in my office whenever it's convenient for
her?"
"Yes, Kildar," Tinata said, curtseying slightly and bowing
her head in a gesture of meekness that Mike knew was an act. The
girl was an absolute minx in bed. "I'll go summon her directly."
"Don't bother her if she's doing anything important," Mike
said, heading for his office.
"Shall I come back with her, Kildar?" Tinata asked, looking
at him out of the corner of one eye.
"No," Mike said, definitely. "But don't go far. I haven't got
anything scheduled this afternoon."
* * *
"You asked to see me, Kildar?" Anastasia said as she entered
his office.
The harem manager had been a member of an Uzbek sheik's
harem since she was twelve. She was tall and refined with long,
lovely, blonde hair and blue eyes with a slight epicanthic fold.
Fine boned with the face of an angel, she could have made money
as a supermodel. Instead she had been immured in a harem for
fourteen years with rare opportunities to get out; the flight to
Georgia
had actually been her first flight on an
airplane.
She was trained, and naturally skilled, at managing groups of
girls. However, she had few other skills. Since she was getting a
bit long in the tooth for the tastes of the sheik, all of twenty-six,
she was looking at being either given away as a bride to some
retainer or being sent off with a chunk of money to find a new
life. The "new life" would probably be a madame in a
whorehouse, given that she didn't know anything else.
The job offer from Mike had been like a gift from heaven.
Not only did Mike need a manager, he was far less controlling
than the sheik and more than willing to include her in his travels.
Then there was the fact that Anastasia was a serious masochistic
submissive. The sheik had never had a strong enough hand with
the whip in her opinion and was otherwise rather uninteresting in
bed, generally going for "wham, bam, thank you ma'am" but not
even staying awake for the "thank you" part. Mike was a serious
dom and more than willing to satisfy that side of her sexual
personality. Then there was the fact that he considered it a duty
and a pleasure to make a woman have a good time in the sack.
For Anastasia the last months had been heaven. Her only
complaint was that Mike still hadn't set up the bondage dungeon
in the old cellars he'd promised her.
"I want you to start working more with Katya," Mike said,
waving her to a chair. "I know she's working with Vanner, but I
want you to start training her in Arabic."
"I already have been," Anastasia said, smiling. "And German
and French. She already speaks Russian and more English than
she's willing to admit. I started teaching her other languages to
keep her busy. When she's learning, she isn't so much of a
problem. And she is very smart. Smarter than I am, I have to
admit. She soaks up information and has a remarkable memory."
"Especially for slights," Mike said, sighing. "But that's good.
I want you to concentrate on Arabic and Chechen dialects of
Russian and Arabic for the time being. Get her able to understand
it, clearly, no matter how garbled."
"I understand," Anastasia said, nodding. "Are you sure you
can trust her?"
"No," Mike admitted. "But leave that for me to worry about.
I'll set it up as a win/win proposition. She can do the mission, or
she can run. She won't have enough information to do us serious
harm."
"She has been working with Vanner," Anastasia pointed out.
"She knows about your intercept capability."
"So do the Chechens," Mike pointed out, sourly. "The
Russians leaked it to them."
"But she knows details," Anastasia argued.
"We can change codes after she leaves," Mike said. "And that
won't be soon. I'll pull her out of Vanner's section and set her to
learning. For that matter, I'll see what I can scrounge up in the
way of manuals on infiltration and espionage. I think she'd be
good at it. And if she cuts and runs instead, well, then we don't
have to worry about her anymore."
"There is that," Anastasia said, smiling. "So, when do I get
my bondage dungeon?"
"I'll put it on my construction list," Mike said, grinning.
"But this afternoon, I've made another date."
"Tinata," Anastasia said, nodding. "I'd wondered why she
was looking so happy."
* * *
Mike lay the red-head down on the bed and leaned down to
gently kiss her on the neck.
All the girls knew his tastes by this point and Tinata had
changed into a pair of five inch spike sandals. She moaned and
twisted aside as he tickled her neck with his tongue, sliding
around to reach for his crotch.
"Not so fast, young one," Mike chuckled, sitting down next
to her. "We've got all afternoon."
"That is very good," Tinata said, turning her eyes aside in
mock shyness. "I can wear you out."
"Good luck," Mike chuckled again, kissing her neck and then
digging his tongue into the juncture of her shoulder and neck.
There was a muscle there with a nerve running along it that
generally got women juicing and Tinata moaned again as his
tongue dug firmly into the nerve juncture.
He slid his hand up her stomach, untucking her shirt and
began unbuttoning it. He occasionally just tore one off, he
owned the uniforms after all, but this time he was taking his
time. Tinata enjoyed being pinned but wasn't into full bondage
and still freaked out a bit when he got too rough. She enjoyed a
bit of dominance but that didn't mean she was a full BDSM
freak. The last two times they'd been together he'd only had time
for a quickie. She orgasmed, but barely. He intended to drive her
nuts this afternoon. And he had a secret weapon: she was really
turned on by giving head.
He slowly unbuttoned her blouse while continuing to suckle
at her neck, occasionally putting one hand on her upper arm. The
spread of goosebumps was a good indicator of how interested
the girl was and this one had bumps to her elbow, good sign.
As the bra came off he slid down her chest, still teasingly,
and slowly worked his way around her breasts. They really were
quite magnificent, solid and natural DDs but still so young and
fresh they were nearly as hard as fakes. They were also quite
sensitive and by the time he'd finally worked his way to the
nipples, sucking and licking on one while his hand worked the
other, she was moaning.
He suddenly reached up and grasped her hair, slithering
around so that he was on his back and she was up on her knees.
"Do me," he ordered, pushing her head down towards his
crotch.
Tinata let out another moan and slid his pants down,
bringing out his member. She began by slowly licking along the
base, working her way up with light flicks of her tongue.
He reached past her arm and cradled one of those
magnificent breasts, stroking it lightly with the balls of his
fingers as she began to fellate him. The combination of her fetish
for head and the sensitivity of her breasts caused her to stop for a
moment, just shuddering, as she ran her cheek up and down his
dick.
"Keep going," Mike said, grabbing her by the hair and sliding
her lips back over his cock. "I didn't say you could stop."
He quit playing with her tits and reached around, grabbing
her ass and dragging it closer so he could reach between her legs.
He slid his hand under her cotton panties and up onto her clit,
stroking her labia and clit lightly.
Tinata started to stop again, shuddering too hard to go on,
but he had retained his hold on her hair and he began forcing her
up and down on his dick as his finger plunged into her slit.
The girl began to rock and moan while keeping up the
suction, as he timed the thrusts at both ends keep up a constant
state of sexual tension. When he judged she just couldn't take any
more he pulled her up, ripped her panties off and took her, hard.
Pulling one of her legs up he thrust, hard, all the way into
her until their pelvis bones met squarely on her clit, elicting a
moan of pleasure and a gasp. Tinata had her eyes closed and was
already starting to rock into him as he began to pound, hard. He
tried very hard not to concentrate on the fact that he was fucking
the hell out of a teenage red-head with really great tits. He didn't
want to cum until he'd worn her flat out. When he started to feel
himself getting close he'd think about multiplication tables. That
always got him to back off.
He grabbed her wrists, pinning above her head with one hand
then started stroking her tits as he thrust. He just used his thumb
on the left nipple, brushing it in time with his thrusts.
That really got the girl going. She kept thrusting against him,
moaning and crying in pleasure until she came, suddenly and
quite vocally, letting out a shriek of pain and pleasure that was
surely heard all over the caravanserai.
Mike stopped immediately, letting her get her breath back.
He'd been working out ever since he took over the caravanserai
and wasn't even winded, yet.
"You okay?" he asked, looking at her as she opened her eyes.
"Oh, yes," Tinata breathed then laughed. "I am very okay."
"Good," Mike said, sliding back into her. "I'm barely
started."
"Oh, God!" Tinata gasped, lying back and quivering as his
thrusts caused the aftershocks from her orgasm to crescendo.
"Have mercy, Kildar!"
"Not hardly," Mike answered, gruffly.
This time he took more time, not just hammering in and out
but varying the pace and movement. He would thrust slow and
long, all the way in, for five thrusts then pick up the pace over a
few more series until he was hitting in a rapid fire he called
"bunny fucking." After the bunny fuck he'd back off again.
By this time, Tinata wasn't in any control any more at all.
She was just orgasming in rapid sequence, especially as the
bunny fucks hit. From time to time he'd back off for a bit to let
her gain some equilibrium then go back to it before she could
even get a word out. If she could talk, she wasn't fully in the
moment from his point of view.
When he got a little tired he slid over to the side, still
maintaining penetration, and rearranged their limbs so he could
lie on his side. Her right leg was over his left and his right over
hers with contact maintained in the middle. He slid her right arm
under his body and pinned her other arm behind her head with his
left hand. This left his right hand free and he began stroking her
nipples again as he continued to slide in and out.
"Kildar..." the girl gasped. "Please..."
"Please, what?" Mike asked, slowing down but not stopping.
"I...please...," the girl whimpered. "No more..."
"Just a little more," Mike said, evilly, sliding his hand down
to her crotch.
"Nooo..." Tinata whimpered as his finger slid over her clit
and started working it.
Mike began hammering her, hard, as his finger continued to
work her clit. Suddenly she let out a shriek and began writhing in
his grasp at which point he stopped, withdrawing his hand.
"Oh..." the girl said, lying supine on the bed. "Oh...God..."
"Was that okay?" Mike asked, curiously.
"Okay?" Tinata said, opening her eyes. "I can't see! I can't see
anything! I'm blind!"
"Low blood flow to the optic nerve," Mike said, gently. "It
passes. You'll get over it."
"That's easy for you to say!" Tinata replied. "Does that mean
that this has happened with you before?"
"To women I've been with," Mike admitted.
"You are a danger to all women, Kildar," Tinata said,
chuckling throatily.
"So I've been told."
"I think I can see some light, now."
"See, it's passing," Mike said, sliding out.
"Ooooo..." the girl gasped. "Warn a woman next time!"
"Why? It's more fun if it's by surprise," Mike said, getting
out of bed. "Want something to drink?"
"I should be serving you," Tinata pointed out.
"Be a little hard at the moment," Mike said, opening up the
fridge. "Coke?"
"Please," Tinata said, sitting up and fumbling to pull a
pillow behind her. "I've never been blind before. It's not nice."
"But it's passing, yes?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Tinata admitted. "I can see shapes."
"Here," Mike said, putting the open coke bottle in her hand.
She fumbled at it and lifted it to her lips, carefully.
"That's good," she said, smiling. "I'm seeing better."
"Good," Mike said, taking a pull off of his own Coke. "As
soon as you can see clearly, we'll start again."
"So you can make me blind again?" Tinata asked, laughing.
"If I can," Mike admitted, smiling. "Are you saying it wasn't
fun? Besides, you never finished your blowjob."
Over the next four hours he screwed Tinata through three
applications of lubricant and various complaints of swelling,
along with more orgasms than the poor girl could count. Only
when she was entirely spent and supine did he finally allow
himself to cum. And it was a hard one, fully curling his toes.
"Kildar..." Tinata said as he slid a towel under her, gently, to
catch the outflow.
"Hmmm?" Mike asked, pulling her to cuddle into his
shoulder.
"Wonderful..."
"Shhh," Mike said. "Sleep."
Mike lay there, thinking about his task list, until her
breathing was regular and it was clear she was deeply asleep.
Then he slid out of bed, carefully arranging a pillow under her
head, and put on his clothes. He had plenty of work he should
have been doing, but sometimes you just had to take time to
make sure the harem was happy.
Chapter Three
"Okay, buddy, what do you take?" Adams asked when Mike got to his office. The former chief was
sitting in one of the chairs with his feet up, apparently awaiting
his arrival.
"What do you mean?" Mike asked, sitting down and clearing
his screensaver with his password.
"I timed it, this time," Adams said.
"Three hours and forty-seven minutes from the first shriek until
your door opened. I mean, are you getting black market Viagra or
something?"
"I don't need Viagra," Mike said, shrugging and pulling up
the spreadsheet on Keldara costs. He'd made a pretty penny from
killing wanted terrorists and "securing" a few nukes that
otherwise would have left large holes in cities. But the Keldara
were costing like crazy and it was just amazing how fast the
money bled away.
"Oysters?" Adams asked.
"Christ, you're not going to let this go, are you?" Mike
asked, leaning back in his chair.
"How many times did she come, anyway?"
Adams asked. "The shrieks were getting pretty muted
by the end."
"I don't know," Mike admitted, trying not to grin. "I only
counted the times she went blind. That was three."
"Good Lord," the chief said, shaking his head. "So, give.
What are you taking?"
"Nothing," Mike said. "I don't take anything. I just don't
allow myself to come."
"How?" Adams asked,
exasperatedly. "I mean, Tinata is..."
"A knock-out," Mike finished. "A certified virgin the first
time I screwed her, pretty as hell, great tits and a tight pussy. I
just think of other things when I think I'm going to come. And
keep going. For as long as I want."
"What? Dead puppies?" Adams
asked, curiously.
"No, mathematics, generally," Mike admitted.
"Multiplication tables. What's eight times seven?"
"Uhm..."
"Right, it's not right there in your head, you have to think
about it," Mike said. "Most people do have to think about the
sevens and eights in the tables. Anything that requires a bit of
concentration. Something you have to think of to recite to
yourself. Just...distract yourself get out of the moment but keep
them in it. And if you've got a modicum of control you can keep
from coming. That way you can make a lady really happy, if you
fit even vaguely. If she's not into penile orgasms, there's the
fingers and tongue. And once a woman comes once, she generally
will keep coming if you keep going. Most of the time they'll want
you to stop, but unless they're really aggressive about it, keep
going. They just get larger and larger until they're really over the
edge. Simple as that."
"I need to try that out," Adams
admitted. "Where the hell did you learn this?"
"I over analyze," Mike said, grinning. "You've told me so
yourself. There's more than one reason that they called me...what
they called me on the teams. When you're doing a sneak at that
level, you have to be able to read a person, to know exactly what
they are going to do, to feel everything around you. It's not much
different in bed. You're a great entry guy, buddy, but you were
never as good as I was at a sneak, right?"
"Admitted," Adams said, shrugging.
"And that makes you great in bed?"
"Believe it or not, it's awful close," Mike said, smiling
thinly. "They're both about power, trust me. When a woman is
that much putty in my hands, it's just like when the knife goes in
on a target. There's a reason they call orgasm the 'little death.'"
"That's sick," Adams said, shaking
his head.
"I never said I was a well man," Mike replied, still smiling.
"Go ahead and try it on Flopsy, Bambi or Mopsy," Mike
continued, listing off three of the hookers by nickname. "I think
Thumper's either gay or essentially asexual; I've never gotten her
so much as hot. And Cottontail's impossible; cold as the
Antarctic. Don't even try."
"She seems to have fun," Adams
said, frowning.
"She's pretty good at faking, but not as good as she thinks,"
Mike said, shrugging.
"How can you tell?" Adams asked.
"What, you want me to give up all my secrets?" Mike
replied, grinning.
* * *
As soon as it was dark Mike donned combat gear and headed
out to his personal Expedition. He'd ordered various vehicles for
the Keldara to get the farm on a more modern basis: When he
bought the property the Keldara had still been using horse drawn
plows. Besides tractors he'd purchased trucks and SUVs for each
of the Six Families. They doubled as transportation for the
militia but were mostly used for farm work.
This was his personal Expedition, however, and although it
seemed the same as the rest on the exterior, save for a spare
antenna here and there, it was significantly modified on the
interior. He'd given Vanner a bunch of money and the electronics
wiz had fitted it out with every conceivable bit of gear that he
might need to control the militia. In effect, it was a roving
command post.
He punched in a code on the dashboard mounted computer
and brought up current locations on all the training groups.
Phase One of patrolling was about done and he'd hardly had a
chance to go out and check them out. A group from Team Sawn
was conveniently near the north road, while being well out of
sight behind a ridge, so he put the SUV in gear and headed out.
The caravanserai was perched on a ridgeline overlooking the
valley of the Keldara and at a height to be able to barely see into
the town of Allerso
which was in an upper valley. The driveway from the
caravanserai ran down a series of switchbacks to the road that
passed along the edge of the valley. The road was slightly
elevated so that most of the valley could be viewed as he drove
northward. The crops did, indeed, seem to be growing well and
there was a new glow of electric light from the houses. When
he'd arrived the Keldara didn't have a pot to piss in, much less
electricity. If he died tomorrow, or today which on this road was
a possibility, he'd have done that much good at least.
Lasting good, that is. He'd done many things that he defined
as "good" over the years, but they mostly involved killing
terrorists or finding wayward weapons of mass destruction. But
more terrrorists always seemed to arise, hydra-headed, and
WMDs were here to stay. There was always some Russian guard
willing to sell his soul for a bagfull of cash or some muj with a
high school knowledge of chemistry whipping up a beaker of
Sarin. To put him out of business would require changing the
world, and that was too big a prospect for any former SEAL.
He cleared the valley and ascended the switchbacks at the
north end, heading into the mountains. He was glad the road was
clear this time of year. The first time he'd come to the valley of
the Keldara he had been lost and the road had been an ice-covered
nightmare of a drive. On an early summer night it was simply
pleasantly winding.
He reached a good debarkation point where a small parking
area overlooked the river foaming through the gorge below and
got out, stretching. The night was clear and black as pitch, perfect
for a walk in the woods.
He loaded up his assault ruck and picked out an SPR for the
trip. The teams were on their last exercise of Patrol Phase One, a
two day hike with various mission objectives. Patrol Phase One
was designed to train them in various missions in patrolling in
large groups, rotating members of the teams through leadership
positions. It was straight out of the Ranger Handbook, which fit
the mission of the Keldara better than SEAL training. After they'd
gotten used to patrolling in large groups they'd move to Phase
Two which would train them in small unit patrolling over large
distances, the only way that they would be able to fully interdict
Chechen movement in the area.
He deliberately hadn't looked at the particular mission of
this patrol. They might be in movement or set up for ambush, it
was up to him to find them and determine their mission.
He had to be careful about it, however. The teams were
loaded with blanks but carried a full load of combat ammunition;
the area was unsecure and their "training" might involve hitting a
Chechen group at any point. The Chechens had to know by now
that this region wasn't safe. They'd stopped a snatch and wiped
out a full battalion attack already in the area. But the Keldara
area had been a major path for Chechen groups for some time;
the passes in the Keldara AO were the only way through the
mountains short of entering the much better protected area
around Tibilisi. It was one of the reasons that the Russians, and
therefore the American government, were looking for him to
shut down Chechen operations in the region.
He first had to cross the rather sizeable stream. While that
sort of thing was easy with a group, by yourself it required a bit
more care. He hunted around for a good ford but there was none
in the immediate area. And even getting down to it from the road
was tricky.
Finally, he found a reasonably negotiable spot and slid down
the hill on his butt, ending up with his feet planted on a rock that
was actually jutting out of the stream. He secured a climbing
rope to the rock and hooked off to it then slid into the stream.
The current was powerful and bloody damned cold, water
coming straight off of glacial melt from the mountains. The
rocks were also slippery as hell. He made his way carefully
across the current, planting his feet and using the hard point of
the rope to stabilize.
He got to the far side and pulled the disconnect he'd tied into
the rope, retrieving it and then coiling it and putting it away. He
thus was starting off his hunt dead wet, cold and nigh on to
miserable. Which was all to the good, he'd been having it too
easy lately.
The team had last been placed on the far side of the ridge
above him so he headed up the steep slope. In places he had to
push himself up using the trees on the ridgeline but it only took
him thirty minutes or so to ascend the ridge and get a good hide.
He pulled out a thermal scope and started scanning the area
below him. When he didn't see anything in the spot he'd noted the
team in, he scanned around. There didn't seem to be anything in
the valley below so he kept scanning around.
The valley the team had been in was a narrow V heading
down from the north and more or less paralleling the road at
about two hundred meters of elevation. There was a small stream
running down the center. It joined with a slightly larger valley
that curved in from the east and finally joined the gorge the road
wound up, adding the contents of both streams to the river that
cut the gorge.
The team was no where in sight in the first valley so he kept
panning back and forth looking for hot points in either valley. He
finally spotted a hot point coming into the larger, perpendicular,
valley, but it was coming from the east and no where around
where the team had been. They'd have had to run like hell to get
up to that point and the figures were moving wrong. As he
watched, more and more figures came in view and some of them
had the distinct outline of horses or mules. It wasn't one of the
Keldara teams, that was for damned sure. In fact, unless he was
much mistaken, it was a Chechen supply convoy.
He considered for a moment where he'd left the Expedition.
Supply trains like this one generally met up with trucks
somewhere along the road that he'd parked on. The damned
Expedition was directly in view of anyone driving down the road,
which was one hell of a note.
He didn't know why this sort of thing always seemed to
happen to him. He was like a terrorism fuck-up magnet. All he'd
wanted to do was go watch the Keldara doing ops and here he
was dealing with a damned Chechen supply convoy. It was such a
pain in the ass.
He pulled out a map and slid down the hillside out of direct
view. The maps, a new improvement by Vanner, were fluorescent
in ultraviolet, so he set the Night Observation Device to UV, slid
it down over one eye and opened up the map.
The valley the Chechens were moving down was marked as
415 and, sure enough, there was a narrow trail running along the
south side. There was also a ford marked. It was a good thing he
hadn't taken a better look at the map or he might have used both
and run right smack dab into them coming the other way.
The trail was snaking on the hillside and based on their
movement they were going to take a good hour to reach the road.
Depending on where the Keldara team was, it might be able to
get into ambush position. But groups like this usually met up
with trucks coming down the road and they'd be coming from the
north; even the Chechens weren't stupid enough to run up the
valley of the Keldara, and all the sources they used were to the
north. That was the whole point of running through here.
Ergo, there was a truck or trucks coming down from the
north to meet them. It would rendezvous with them near the ford,
transfer cargo and go back north. Guns and ammo coming in,
drugs, girls and what have you going out.
This was a mission for more than one of the teams. And he
still couldn't find the team he was looking for, so he'd have to
call in.
"Keldara Base, this is Kildar," he whispered over the radio.
"We have a situation."
* * *
Gildana Makanee keyed her headset and waved at Corporal
Vanner as the call came in.
Gildana was seventeen years old blue-eyed and long-legged
with long blonde hair she regularly braided in a thick rope that
hung to her lower back. Until a few months before, Gildana had
envisioned a life just like her mother and her grandmother and
great-great-great grand, dating back to medieval times. She
would soon marry, many of her friends had married already, and
the man she was to marry, Givi Ferani had already been chosen.
Then she would have as many children as she could manage until
she was old and gray and worn out from working the farm.
She liked Givi and thought he would make a good husband.
He was hard working and at least had a sense of humor. She
really had no dreams beyond having beautiful and healthy
children who would live.
Then everything changed. The new Kildar had come and now
everything was topsy-turvy. As one of the better readers and
writers among the women of the Keldara she had been chosen to
assist in the "ops and intel" section and met Corporal Vanner. He
had opened up a whole new world to her and the girls who
worked with her. They now controlled the communications for
the Keldara militia and some of them worked in the intel section
intercepting what they could catch of the limited Chechen radio
traffic. The work was long and often boring, but far more
interesting than cleaning the house, cooking, hauling water and
keeping the fires going. Corporal Vanner had even gotten her a
"correspondence course" on satellite communications and she
was working on it assiduously. Along with it had come several
other courses on mathematics and she was working her way
through those at the same time.
Life was looking up.
"Kildar," she answered in a calm and lilting tone, "this is
Keldara Base. Say situation, over."
Calm and unhurried. Corporal Vanner had drilled that into
them over and over. The last thing anyone wanted to hear over
the radio was that anyone was stressed out. Keep calm, no matter
what was happening.
"I was going out to observe Team Sawn, operating in the
vicinity of valley 415. I am at position 918 in view of a convoy
of probable tangoes moving down 415 from the east towards a
probable rendezvous at 228. Count is thirty tangoes, eighteen
pack animals. Weapons not observable at this range. Clear?"
"Tango convoy at valley 415, moving east towards 228.
Your position 918. Count is thirty tangoes, eighteen pack
animals."
"Roger. Unable to determine position of Team Sawn.
Probable vehicle movement from north along Tibilisi Road
for link-up. Get Keldara Two, Three and Five in
contact. Contact Team Sawn, have them display UV source. Will
vector Team Sawn to ambush on convoy if possible. Vector
second team to road if possible. Tell teams to go red on ammo."
"Roger, Keldara Six," Gildana said, scribbling notes. She
looked over her shoulder at Corporal Vanner who had slipped on
a headset and was nodding at her notes. "Keldara Two is
available at this time, Six."
"Roger," the Kildar said. "I'm going to sit tight until I've got
an idea where Sawn is. Get cracking."
* * *
Vanner had already opened up a window showing the
locations of all the teams and shook his head.
"That's funny," he said. "Sawn's just to the east of him, down
in the valley. They're in an ambush position along the side valley,
so they're not in position to hit the Chechens. Call them up."
"Sawn Six, this is Keldara Base," Gildana said, switching
frequencies for transmission but leaving open the Kildar's
frequency so she could listen if he called.
"Sawn."
"Be aware, there is a Chechen force, thirty tangoes, eighteen
pack animals, moving down valley 415, approximately three
thousand meters from your position. Kildar is on the ridge
behind you, observing from 915. Show UV marker so the Kildar
can vector you to them."
"Roger."
* * *
Mike blinked as a hot-spot appeared in the valley and then a
UV light was laid out, clearly marking the position of the
ambush team. They weren't more than five hundred meters below
him and they'd been completely invisible to IR. They must have
covered themselves up pretty damned good.
He checked his frequency sheet and changed to Sawn's
codes. The different connections weren't frequencies, but packet
codes for the distributed network that had been laid in over the
last few weeks. Besides going out on patrol training, the Keldara
had been laying down dozens of "black box" retransmitters. The
devices were encrypted and distributed information in frequency
hopping burst packets. Weighing in at a bit less than two pounds,
they functioned something like the internet, picking up the
packets and moving them along the best routes. The boxes were
now in so many places in the nearby mountains that
communications were virtually solid throughout the local area.
But only for the Keldara. The system was locked out for anyone
else, short of very high-tech and aggressive hacking.
"Goddamn, Sawn, you guys are hidden like a bitch," he said,
approvingly. "But we're going to have to move. Pick up your
team and move south to the trail along 415. And boogie. Go hot
at this time."
"Roger, Kildar," Sawn said. The Makanee boy was not by
any stretch his top team leader, that would be Oleg Kulcyanov,
but he was pretty damned good. And if he could hide that well, it
boded well for the mission. Now if the team could just move fast
and quiet.
"I'll link up somewhere around the river," Mike said. "Tell
your guys if they frag me I will strangle them with my bare
hands."
"Understood, Kildar," Sawn said, the humor evident in his
voice.
"Kildar, this is Keldara Base."
"Gotta go, Sawn," Mike continued as more hot-spots
appeared. It was apparent that the entire twenty man team had
been lightly dug in along the hillside. Too bad they weren't in
position to hit the Chechens; it had been a perfect hide. "See you
at the stream. Go Keldara base."
* * *
"Kildar, Keldara Three is here," Gildana said, looking over
her shoulder at Colonel Nielson. "He recommends vectoring
Team Padrek onto the road to the north."
"Have him handle that end," the Kildar answered with a
slight grunt of effort. "Be aware that my damned Expedition is in
full view on the road. If the Chechens steal my car, tell Padrek to
run far and fast."
"Roger, Kildar," Gildana said, smiling slightly.
"I'm going to go link up with Sawn and cover that end," the
Kildar continued. "Get the trucks."
"Roger, Kildar."
"Kildar out."
Gildana looked over her shoulder at Colonel Nielson
quizzically.
"Vector Padrek to point 583," the colonel said, pointing out
a spot on the map near the road to the north. "Interdict all
vehicles moving from the north, standard road block. The
Chechens will probably be carrying contraband. Rules of
Engagement Three. Do not fire until sure of resistance, but stop
everything and use full care. Roll out the support team, have
them draw RPGs and MGs. They need to be on the road in fifteen
minutes."
"Yes, sir," Gi3ldana said. The Kildar had bought a
specialized database and she and Vanner had modified it slightly.
This was the first test of it in a "real world" mission.
She brought up the database and punched for live-mission. A
screen gave her a number of options, each of them marked by
large buttons or icons. She chose "roll response team", then
"heavy weapon loadout", "roadblock", punched in the code for
the location when the box came up, chose "rendezvous" then hit
the icon for Team Padrek which was the head of a ram and last
chose ROE 3.
The system automatically generated an operations order
including what weapons and ammunition pack each member of
the team would carry, which vehicles were available and a map to
the position. In addition, there was a frequency list and
information about friendly forces in the area.
She hit send and got a pop-up screen that read: "Please detail
commander's intention."
She hit the "modify" key and rapidly typed in data on the
current situation including the fact that there was probably a
truck or trucks headed to rendezvous with the Chechen mule
train. Then she reloaded the frag-order.
Nielson considered it for a moment and then nodded.
"Send."
Chapter Four
Oleg Kulcyanov's eyes flew open as a buzzer went off
beside his bed and the monitor of the computer turned on
flooding the darkened room with light. The printer started
spitting out sheets as he rolled to his feet, rubbing his eyes.
Another damned drill.
Oleg Kulcyanov was nineteen. A huge bull of a man with a
shock of nearly white hair, his great grandfather, Mecheslav
Kulcyanov was the head of the Kulcyanov Family. His
grandfather had died before he was born in a logging accident.
His father was probably going to be the next head of the
Kulcyanov Family and in time he would probably succeed him.
While he had been in electric light from time to time in
town, until recently he had never considered that he, himself,
might live in a house with electricity. He had never seen anyone
operate a computer until last February when the Kildar arrived.
He had certainly never believed he would use one.
But the Kildar had arrived in the valley like a whirlwind.
Before they had assimilated the arrival of a newcomer to the area
the Kildar had bought the valley from the bank, and their service
with it. More changes started coming with increasing speed, new
vehicles, tractors, medical care. Then the trainers had arrived and
suddenly the Keldara found their true purpose returning. For the
Keldara were warriors at heart.
Oleg went to church every Sunday but the Keldara were not
truly Christian. They cloaked themselves in the mantle of that
faith, but they had retained their true allegiance through the years,
to The All Father One-Eye, to his son Frei the Lord of the Axe,
to the Old Gods. They had held true to their faith through
generation after generation, working as farmers as the only way
to survive but never losing their faith that some day the Way of
War would return. And the Kildar had brought it back.
Oleg knew that the Kildar was not a god, but many of the
Keldara regarded him as one, an avatar of Frei perhaps. He was
certainly a warrior among warriors as he had proven again and
again. And Oleg was willing to follow the Kildar to anywhere in
the wide world, for he knew that the Kildar would always lead
them on the path of war, where a Keldara could truly be a servant
of Frei.
As he read the form on the computer screen he grinned.
Finally, it was time to go to war.
He reached out and hit the red button over his bed then
stood up and picked up the papers that had finished spitting out
of the printer.
The button activated the lights in the squad bay beyond his
room and started a high toned pinging that was interspersed with
a recording by Lydia
, Oleg's fiancee.
"Arise, Keldara! Enemies are at the door! Prepare for battle
and the day of red war! Bring us scalps!"
Oleg had been sleeping in his uniform pants and a t-shirt. He
slid his feet into zipper tac-boots and zipped them up then threw
on his uniform jacket, striding out of the room.
Dmitri Devlich, his team second, was just finished zipping
his boots as Oleg stepped into the squad bay. The rest of the team
was mostly on its feet, putting on their boots and jackets, as the
recording continued.
"Battle this day for honor and the Keldara! Be true to your
comrades and warriors born!"
Oleg handed Dmitri the sheets detailing each man's load-out
and mission. The sheets were arranged in the same pattern as the
squad bay, so all Dmitri had to do was go down the length of the
bay handing them out. Each sheet had a picture of the individual
squad member, the weapon and ammunition load they were to
draw, a list of materials they were to carry and a general mission
order including the paragraph Gildana had written about the
current enemy conditions.
As soon as Oleg had passed off the sheets he read the section
detailing his responsibilities and walked back to his room. He
pulled out the correct map-set, checked to make sure it was
actually the right one and started buttoning his uniform tunic
while rereading the mission orders.
As he was rereading, Givi Kulcyanov came in the room,
buckling on his gear and carrying Oleg's in his arms.
"Simple mission," the radio telephone operator said, handing
Oleg his body armor and combat vest. Givi was a cousin rather
than a brother as the name would imply but they had known each
other their whole lives.
"We don't know if this is the only group of Chechens in the
area," Oleg pointed out. "And we don't know what will be
waiting for us in the trucks. It might be simple and it might be
very hard indeed."
"You're always a pessimist," Givi said, grinning.
"I'm always a realist," Oleg replied, throwing his armor over
his head and buckling it on. "That's why I'm the team leader."
When he got to the squad bay most of the team had moved
down to the armory to draw their weapons. Their pre-packed
rucksacks were by the door and as each man drew his weapons
for the mission they added them to the load, moving out the door
to the waiting vehicles.
Oleg drew an SPR and a .45 caliber silenced pistol, checking
each then slipping in a magazine. Last he put the weapons on safe
and picked up his ruck, heading for the door.
Dmitri was by the door as he went out, checking each
weapon to see that no one had loaded a live round, yet, and that
all weapons were on safe.
"You're the last out," Dmitri said.
"Load it," Oleg replied, heading for his vehicle. "Givi, call in
that we're loaded and preparing to roll. Then give them roll
time."
"Roger," Givi said.
"I make it as seven minutes, more or less," Dmitri said,
climbing in the passenger side of his Expedition. He would be
the last vehicle out of the compound. Oleg would be in vehicle
three of the five. The lead vehicle traveled well forward of the
convoy as a point in case of ambush.
"Agreed," Oleg said, getting in his own vehicle. "Let's roll."
* * *
Mike crouched by the side of the trail as the team passed. He
was both pleased and pissed that not one of them noticed him.
He'd intended to close from the rear and call in before contacting
the team but had accidentally gotten ahead of them. He was
pleased that he hadn't lost the ability to be virtually invisible in
the brush and that nobody had reacted to the figure by the side of
the trail by fragging him. On the other hand, he was pissed that
the Keldara, and even McKenzie, had just walked right past him.
If he'd been an enemy they'd be in a world of hurt.
Part of the reason they hadn't noticed him, he had to admit,
was his camouflage. From the first he'd determined that the
Keldara would have only the best equipment and he'd paid
through the nose for it. The camouflage uniform, in particular,
had been costly. There was an Italian firm that produced digi-
cam, digitally enhanced camouflage, in virtually any pattern. The
first uniforms he'd ordered had been standard digi-cam, US
military issue. But they hadn't, in his
opinion, been perfect for the local terrain. The US
digi-cam was designed to blend the wearer
in any condition from city to mountain to desert. It wasn't
"dialed" for pure mountain/forest conditions.
The Italian firm had sent him several sets of digicam in
various shades and patterns until he found one that he liked. Then
he'd outfitted the Keldara in that. It had been expensive as hell,
though. Besides the custom camouflage pattern, the fabric was
comfortable, conformable and fire resistant. Each uniform cost
about three times that of a standard US
digicam uniform, but he figured it was
worth it. The Keldara were limited in number and were his
primary outer defense. Besides, they were friends.
He let the last member of the team, who was correctly
checking his back trail, pass by and then stepped out onto the
trail. When the Keldara's back was turned, he crouched and let
out a slight "psst."
The Keldara spun in place, raising his SPR to his shoulder
and crouching to sweep behind him.
Mike, who was within arm's reach, simply grabbed the barrel
of the weapon and yanked it out of his hands.
"You've got lousy situational awareness, Jitka," he hissed.
The name of the Keldara was embroidered in glow-letters on the
back of his boonie-cap. "Stand down."
"Kildar!" the boy whispered. "I never saw you!"
"That's why I'm the instructor and you're the trainee, boy,"
Mike said, quietly.
The Keldara forward of the trail had heard the byplay and
slapped the shoulder of the Keldara in front of him, sending the
signal up the line of troopers to halt for something to the rear.
Mike handed the weapon back and stepped up along the line
of crouched troopers, tapping them on the shoudler as he passed.
"Piatras, how's it going. Beso, ready to do a man's job
tonight? Sergejus, keep your barrel down this time. Stepan, how's
the baby?"
"McKenzie," Mike said when he got to the command group
in the middle of the patrol. "Sawn. Let's get moving, they haven't
stopped."
Sawn nodded and tapped forward and back. He waited until
he'd gotten responses from either direction then got the team
moving.
They continued down the trail until they got to the stream
and then moved off to the right through the woods, weaving in
and out among the trees.
As they approached the trail that was being used by the
Chechens, Sawn gathered the group into a cigar shaped perimeter
and had them drop their rucksacks. Leaving two personnel behind
to keep an eye on the rucks he brought the team forward to the
trail.
He detailed two of the Keldara to move up the trail in the
direction the Chechens should approach from then laid out the
rest of the team along the trail, about five meters into the
woodline. At the far end he laid in a group across the trail,
closing it in an "L" shape.
The ambush was set up on the downhill side from the trail,
which wasn't perfect, but it would probably do. They also didn't
have any claymores with them, which wasn't great. Nor did they
have heavy weapons, this training had been based on recon and
light ambushes so the machine guns were back at the base. They
did, however, have frag grenades. And the Chechens probably
wouldn't have NODs.
With no signal from the observers along the trail the Keldara
started working on their positions. There was no time to dig real
fighting positions but the Keldara rapidly scraped out shallow
trenches, pushing the dirt up in small breastworks in front of
them. The leaves they scraped off to the side. When they lay
down in the trench they wrapped themselves in a poncho lined
with a thermal blanket then pulled the leaves back over
themselves, covering themselves completely.
Sawn's second, Dimant Ferani, followed behind, touching
up the positions and ensuring that each position had minimal
thermal output. The Chechens rarely used thermal imagery
devices but it never hurt to be sure.
Mike had scraped out his own hasty fighting position,
wrapped and covered. Under the cover he slipped out a frag
grenade and held it in his right hand with his weapon by his right
side. Then he settled down to wait.
The Keldara were as perfect as any group he'd ever met.
From years of farming and hunting they had enormous patience
and the ability to simply sit, or lie down in this case, for hours.
They also tended to keep awake which was a major problem with
ambushes; the ambushers tended to drift off and start snoring.
But the Keldara just...waited, like expert hunters. He was again
amazed by the absolute perfection of the group of rural farmers.
The Chechens, however, were not nearly as good. He could
hear them coming long before the signal from the overwatch
position that the target was entering the zone. He could also
smell them, a tinge of woodsmoke, BO and harsh cigarettes. The
latter was so strong he was sure one or more of them was
actually smoking.
There was a series of clicks over the radio as Sawn signalled
the team to prepare to engage. Mike could hear the click of the
mules' hooves on rocks and couldn't imagine that the normally
vigilant animals didn't know the Keldara were there. However,
Sawn had obviously chosen the downhill side for more than one
reason. There was a current of air coming down the
mountainside and it blew from the trail to the ambushers. That
was keeping their scent from reaching the mules. As long as
everyone was silent, they were golden.
There was another series of faint clicks in his earphones and
then a series of beeps. One, two, three...
Mike pulled the pin from the grenade and lifted himself to
his knees, the leaves and poncho cascading away from him, then
threw the grenade uphill into the mass of men and mules in front
of him. With that done he ducked down into the hasty fighting
position and flattened himself into the ground, as a series of
sharp cracks filled the air with a hail of shrapnel.
As soon as the last grenade had detonated he slid his SPR
over the side of the small mound in front of him and began
picking out targets. The Chechens had gone to ground fast, but
they didn't have good cover along this section of the trail and if
he couldn't directly target someone one of the Keldara to the side
could. AK rounds cracked overhead but he ignored them,
sweeping his weapon back and forth in a search for targets.
The mules complicated things, slightly. Some of them were
down, kicking in pain from the riddling shrapnel. Others,
however, had broken free and were running loose. One came
barreling right over his position, stamping hard on his thigh as it
passed.
He'd picked out three targets and downed them when he
heard Sawn's whistle for the team to sweep across the objective.
He lifted himself up and kept the weapon at present as he
stepped forward. There was a wounded tango on the ground, hit
by shrapnel or a round in the leg he wasn't sure which. There was
an AK on the ground next to him. He swept the UV light from
his rifle flash on the tango, made an assessment that he wasn't a
leader and put a round through his head.
He continued across the objective, checking the dead and
wounded carefully, until he was well into the woods on the far
side. He flipped the sight on the rifle to thermal imagery and
swept it up the hillside, looking for hiding tangoes but didn't find
any.
Sawn's whistle signalled recall and he headed back down the
hill to the trail, checking his sector for recovery items. Besides
the mules, the surviving ones of which the Keldara were
gathering up, he was looking for any intel items such as
paperwork. There didn't seem to be much immediately obvious
and he left off the search to go find Sawn and McKenzie.
"We've got three prisoners and two somethings," McKenzie
said as he approached.
"Somethings?" Mike asked.
"Two bints with the Chechens," the Scottish former SAS
sergeant said in his thick brogue. "One with a grenade fragment
in her side. Ivar's talking with them at the moment. I get the
impression they weren't wives or such like."
"Slaves," Ivar said, stepping up to the trainer's side. "They
were picked up on farms over towards the Pankisi Gorge. That
and the food on the mules. They weren't bought, the fucking
black-asses raided and burned the farms."
"Bloody hell," Mike muttered. "Orphans and damaged
goods."
"More lassies for your harem, lad," McKenzie grunted,
humorously.
"Raped and abused ladies make difficult harem girls," Mike
pointed out, sighing. "What about the other prisoners?"
"One looks like the leader of the convoy," McKenzie said.
"The other two were hiding in the woods and put their hands up
so fast nobody had the heart to shoot them."
"Probably drivers," Mike said. "Post-battle clean-up time.
I'm going to head down to the road and try to intercept the
response team on the way up to intercept the trucks."
"They might not be coming tonight, lad," McKenzie pointed
out.
"But they will eventually," the Kildar said.
* * *
Mike made it to the road just as the first vehicle of the
reaction convoy rounded the nearest corner. He stepped out in
the road and waved at it as it approached, hoping like hell they
wouldn't either run him down or frag him.
"Kildar," Ivar Makanee said as the vehicle rolled to a stop.
"Need a ride to my Expedition if you please," Mike said. The
vehicle was a Ford F-350 flare-side and he waved at the point
leader to stay in his seat as he climbed in the back.
"Keldara Base, this is Kildar," Mike said, settling into the
load of weapons and ammo in the rear.
* * *
"Kildar, this is Keldara Base," Gildana said. It was past her
time to be relieved but Vanner had kept her on the radio since she
was fully "dialed in" on the situation. The truth was, you couldn't
have pried her out of the seat.
"I've linked up with Team Oleg point," the Kildar replied.
"I'm going to head up to the roadblock and check out operations
up there. Russell's with Team Padrek, correct?"
Gildana looked at her ops screen and nodded to herself.
"Correct, Kildar," she said, looking around the room. She'd
put the call in on the announcement system since it was from the
Kildar and she caught Colonel Nielson's eye, raising her
eyebrows to see if he had anything he wanted to pass on. But the
colonel just shook his head.
"I'll head up there and hang around to see if anything
happens right off," the Kildar continued. "Make sure that Padrek
knows it's us coming up the road, please."
"Roger, Kildar."
"Kildar, out."
She changed frequencies to Padrek by hitting the appropriate
icon and took the system off announce.
"Padrek, Keldara Base."
"Padrek Five, go."
"Kildar and Team Oleg are on the way, ETA five to seven
minutes. Status?"
"All clear so far," Padrek Five replied. That was Bori
Mahona, a distant cousin like most of the Keldara. He was a
serious young man, more studious than most of the Keldara, and
she could practically see his furrowed brow over the radio.
"Kildar asks that you not fire on their vehicles," she added,
twitting him slightly.
"We're prepared for their arrival, Keldara Base," Bori
replied, tightly. "Anything else?"
"Negative," she said, secretly happy to have pricked his
seriousness. "Keldara Base, out."
"How are you feeling, Gildana?" Vanner asked, sitting down
in the station chair by her.
"Good, sir," Gildana replied.
"You need relief?" he asked.
"No, sir," she said as the icon for Team Sawn started to
flash. "Go Sawn."
"If you flag out, tell me," Vanner said, sitting back.
"Keldara Base, this is Sawn Five," Gavi Makanee said over
the radio. Gavi was a first cousin, about her age and they'd been
raised almost as brother and sister. She could see him now, short
cut red hair tousled by his boonie hat, camouflage paint on his
face, probably crouched over a scrap of paper carefully doing it
all "by the book."
"Go Sawn Five," she said, bringing up the mission report
screen.
"Enemy KIA twenty-nine," Gavi said. "Enemy WIA one.
Papa Whiskey three. Hotel two. Friendly KIA, zero. Friendly
WIA, two, non-critical, say again, non-critical. Ammunition,
green. Supplies, green. Large quantity of small arms, food and
some contraband. Twelve pack animals functional. Caching or
destroying immovable material and moving to road for pickup."
"Roger, Sawn Five," Gildana said, bringing up another
screen and dispatching a group of vehicles to go pick up Team
Sawn.
* * *
"Hey, Padrek," Mike said as he rolled off the back of the
truck.
"Kildar," the team leader said, ducking his head. "Would you
like to take a look at our positions?"
Mike glanced at the team's trainer and then shook his head.
"This is your game, Padrek," Mike said. "The next time
you're going to have to do it all on your own, so you might as
well start now. I'm just another shooter on this one."
"Yes, Kildar," the leader said, swallowing nervously. "I've
laid in positions on both sides of the road and prepared a tree for
a roadblock. I'll get with Oleg and get his vehicles in position to
reinforce the block."
"Go for it," Mike said, wandering to the roadside with a
wave. He hunkered down on a rock, dropped his ruck and
stretched his shoulders. To think a few hours ago he was
screwing the hell out of a young red-head. What the hell was he
doing here?
A couple of the farm trucks were placed to block the road
while the two teams began cutting trees to make negotiable S
curves that would slow vehicles approaching the position. A
forward position was also under construction, the "chicken" pit
where a single soldier would be placed to order vehicles into the
roadblock.
Meanwhile the heavy weapons gunners of Team Oleg were
building positions along the roadside. If anyone tried to force the
block, they would catch them with raking fire as they tried to
negotiate the S cover obstacles.
Last, the drivers of the three remaining Team Oleg vehicles
waited in place in case anyone passed them. They could pursue or
be used as a secondary blocking point.
Mike's big worry was truck bombs. The defenses were
spread out but one truck bomb could cut a swath through the
core of the Keldara families. Which would put a pretty large
black mark on the record of the Kildar.
Which he wasn't going to fix by worrying about it.
"I've redeployed the group," McKenzie said, coming over to
his position in the trees and dropping his ruck. "I'm moving Sawn
up forward to close the block if anybody tries to run and putting
Oleg's boys on the block itself."
"Works," Mike said. "Get the spare vehicles out of sight and
if they get a solid block in place move the ones blocking the
road."
"Will do," McKenzie said. "You really expect them soon?"
"No reason the mule train is going to want to wait around,
especially this close to us," Mike said, leaning back on his own
ruck. "It's been a long day. Wake me up if anything interesting
happens."
Chapter Five
"Kildar?"
Mike had awakened when he heard stirring and sat up
immediately, checking his weapon.
The vehicles were gone from the block and large timber and
boulder blocks were in place on the road. All he could see in
view were a few of the Keldara, though.
"There are three trucks coming down the road," Dmitri said,
quietly. "Gregor's taxi passed through late last night but we
expected him. He ran Captain Tyurin into Tibilisi yesterday."
Tyurin was the local police chief. Venal to a fault on minor
items, he was a strong supporter of the Keldara militia and it's
fight against the Chechens. With fine uniforms, far finer than his
official salary could afford, and a regal bearing he appeared to
base his actions in life on Inspector Louise "I am Shocked,
Shocked" said Renault from Casablanca
.
Mike checked his watch and saw it was just before dawn.
"Okay, that looks like show-time," he said, getting to his feet
and checking the SPR. "Where is everyone?"
"Most are in defensive positions," Dmitri said. "Oleg left
only five in view. All of Sawn's force are in hides or dug in.
Corporal Vanner has sent Lytaya up with some technical gear."
"What?" Mike asked, following Dmitri into the woods.
The intel specialist was in an open hole about thirty meters
from the road about half way up the switchbacks. Mike could
hear the trucks approaching down the grade as they got to the
position.
"Good morning, Kildar," the young woman said, smiling at
him in the faint pre-dawn light. She had light red hair that was
tied in a bun under her boonie cap and, like all the Keldara
women, was almost startlingly beautiful. She looked like an out-
of-place fairytale princess dressed in digi-cam.
"What did you bring?" Mike asked, curiously.
"Intercept and jamming gear," the girl said, waving at a
blinking box at her feet. "And an umbrella mike so we can
overhear their conversation."
"Great," Mike said, picking up the directional microphone
and waving it towards the waiting Keldara. However, all he
could hear from the troops awaiting the trucks was breathing.
The Keldara were almost scary. They'd lived together so long that
they could communicate at a level that sometimes seemed like
telepathy. He saw one of them turn and look at another and make
a chin gesture which was all it took for the other two to redeploy.
The trucks were making too much noise at this range for
him to overhear the drivers but he saw them brake as the Keldara
in the chicken pit lit off a magnesium flare.
"Five gets you ten they try to run," McKenzie said, peering
through a night scope.
"No transmission from the lead truck," Lytaya said, looking
at her scopes. "No transmissions at all."
"Start jamming on all non-Keldara freqs," Mike said,
crouching down and directing the microphone at the trucks,
trying to pick up chatter.
"The driver of the lead truck just asked the guy next to him
something," McKenzie said.
"Saw that," Mike replied, directing the microphone at them.
But there was still too much noise from the truck motor for him
to hear anything useful. The passenger in the lead truck took his
time answering, though. And when he said something, the truck
pulled forward.
"Okay, the passenger in the lead is a leader," the Kildar said.
"Get that out to the trooops. I'd like him alive."
"Yes, Kildar." Dmitri said, keying his communications.
* * *
"What is this?" the driver of the lead truck demanded as he
pulled up next to the small timber and sand-bag bunker placed in
the middle of the road.
"Inspection for contaband," Juris Makanee said, easily.
"Proceed one vehicle at a time around the barriers. If more than
one truck enters the barrier area both will be fired upon. Stop
half way down the barriers for pre-inspection then you can
proceed to the final block for clearance."
"I'm sure that something can be arranged," the driver said,
handing over his license with a folded bill behind it.
Juris looked at the license as he absently handed the fifty
ruble note back.
"You're cleared to move to the next check point," Juris said,
looking the man in the eye. He wasn't Russian or Georgian,
probably a black-ass Chechen bastard. But the orders were to
stop and inspect, not shoot them out of hand as he'd prefer. "And
if you try to bribe the next guard, he'll put a bullet through your
head. Move out."
The driver angrily put the truck in gear and jerked forward as
Juris waved for the next truck to stop.
* * *
"Checkpoint," Mikhail Solovi said, looking across the
compartment at Vyatkin.
Vyatkin put his head out the flap of the military truck and
looked at the set-up.
"This isn't Georgian National Guard, whoever it is," Vyatkin
said, sitting back down and looking at the Chechen black-asses in
the back of the truck. "Who is it?"
"Keldara," one of them said, frowning. "I told Mashadem we
couldn't move through here, but they wouldn't listen."
"Are these the new militia in the area?" Solovi asked,
shaking his head. "Bribe them."
"They won't take bribes," one of the Chechens said, fingering
his AK. "They are lead by an American, the Kildara. They are very
loyal. We are totally fucked. They don't take prisoners."
"There were only five I saw," Vyatkin said, looking at
Solovi.
"There will be more hidden around the checkpoint," Solovi
said. "We need to not be caught in this, Eduard."
"Agreed," Vyatkin said, looking at the Chechens. "You never
saw us, understand?"
"Have a good walk back to Russia
," the Chechen said as the two dropped
over the back of the truck. "You Russian bastards," he added
when they were out of sight.
* * *
"Interesting," Mike said. The reception at the back of the
trucks was clear as gin. "The last vehicle's filled with troops.
Two guys just jumped off the back. Let them get in the woods
and then tell Sawn I want them both alive. When the first truck is
has been checked for explosives, let the second one up to the
midpoint check point. Check it while the first one is being
cleared, then engage. Blow the shit out of the trail truck, but just
kill the drivers of the other two and take down the passengers. I
want all that done in one hit."
"Understood, Kildar," Dmitri said, keying his
communicator.
* * *
"We're clear," Vyatkin said, stopping to pant.
"You are out of shape, Eduard," Solovi said, looking back at
the trucks. The lead truck had reached the final checkpoint and he
briefly considered whether they should have stayed in the truck.
But not even the stupidest guard could miss the armed Chechens
in the rear truck. They had supposedly been "guarding" them on
the way to the meeting, but they'd spent most of their time being
as insulting as they could manage in a hamfisted way.
As Mikhail watched, the militiaman searching the second
truck climbed out of the back and walked over to the driver's
side. As soon as he reached it, there was a series of pops and the
passenger side doors were yanked open by more guards who
dragged the occupants out and threw them on the ground. The
drivers were clearly dead.
Before the Chechen guards in the trailing truck could react,
RPG rounds slammed out from both sides of the road, turning
the rear of the trucks into burning shrapnel. The Chechens who
made it out of the back were quickly silenced by heavy fire from
machine-guns, their bodies dancing as the bullets slammed into
them from either side.
"Tobv yo mut," Eduard whispered, looking at the carnage.
"Set up," Mikhail said, angrily. "They knew we were coming.
There must be a platoon hidden in those trees."
"Closer to a company, actually," a voice said from behind
them.
"Fuck."
* * *
"This situation brings out the cliché in me," Mike
said, gazing in wonder at the two Russians. "But I'll try to leave
it at one. I've got a gun, a backhoe and over a thousand hectares
to get rid of the bodies. So why don't you just tell me what you're
doing here and I'll be up by a couple of bullets and some diesel
on the deal."
"You're American," Mikhail said, sneeringly. "You won't
kill us. Just call the damned Georgians and turn us over to them."
"You're so sure of that, tovarisch," Mike said, drawing his
.45. "Okay, two cliches. I'll try to keep it down. Last chance."
"You're not going to..." Mikhail said, just as the Kildar,
without looking, pointed the weapon and shot Dmitri through the
knee.
As the screaming man fell back on the hold of his two
Keldara handlers, Mike pointed the weapon at his head.
"This is the deal," Mike said. "I was listening to you in the
truck, so I know you're the leader, 'Mikhail.' So why don't you
keep your fat friend from having his head blown off, and various
unpleasantries to you, by telling me why a couple of Russian
hitters are traveling with Chechens."
"Tobv yo mut," Mikhail said, panting.
"Jeeze, you're stupid," Mike said, pointing the pistol at
Dmitri and dropping him with a round through the teeth that
blew out the back of his head, spattering the Keldara and the
surviving Russian with brains.
"You son of a bitch!" Mikhail snarled, struggling in the grip
of the two Keldara.
"Your turn, comrade," Mike said, pointing the .45 at the
Russian's knee. "You've got four major joints. And even after I
shoot them, there are various unpleasant things I can do to you.
Huh-one, huh-two...no? Three."
The Russian screamed as the .45 blew his knee joint to
splinters and sagged in the grip of the Keldara, but they held him
upright.
"Damn, you're dumb," Mike shook his head. "You're going
to die. You've got to know that. And I know you don't have some
honor code to stick to. Now, me, I'd take a lot before I'd give up
the location of some SEAL buddies. But you? You've got
nothing to look to but money. What's the point in suffering for
something you're not going to earn, anyway? Tell me what I want
to know and I'll put a bullet through your head and put you out
of pain. I don't promise more than that, but you can hope."
"Fuck you," the Russian panted.
"Stupid, stupid, stupid," Mike said, kicking him squarely in
his wounded knee.
This time the Russian fell to the ground, writhing, despite
the best efforts of the Keldara to hold him upright.
"Plug the hole before he bleeds out," Mike said, stepping
away. "Don't let his apparent pain give him an opening. But let's
try to keep him alive for a bit."
Three Keldara pinned the writhing Russian to the ground
while a fourth worked on the knee, plugging it with coagulating-
impregnated cotton and then wrapping it in a pressure bandage. It
was still bleeding, but not as copiously, when the Keldara was
done.
"Feeling better?" Mike asked, stepping up to the Russian and
then kicking him, hard, in the bandaged kneecap.
When the screaming died down Mike sqatted down near the
Russian's head and shook his own.
"Come on, Mikhail," Mike said, sympathetically. "Why were
you with the Chechens? What in the hell is going to make them
let a couple of Russians ride with them?"
"Weapons..." Mikhail grunted.
"Oh, give me a break," Mike said, shaking his head. "Hold
out his arm, it's the elbow next..."
"No!" Mikhail gasped. "Special weapons. That's all I know.
There is a trade. Money for special weapons."
"How much money?" Mike asked.
"I don't know," Mikhail said, desperately. "I was just to meet
about security arrangements."
"The Russian mob is selling the Chechens weapons?" Mike
asked, musingly. "Vladimir
is going to love that."
"Not mob," Mikhail said. "Sergei. Sergei Karensky. He is
handling security for someone, I don't know who. Dmitri was to
discuss money. He said only that it was very much. Very much."
"Not enough, Mikhail," Mike said, putting the hot barrel of
the .45 to the Russian's elbow. "What kind of weapons? How
much money?"
"I don't KNOW!" he screamed. "Much money!"
"Where was the meet going to go down?" Mike asked.
"Somewhere near Arensia," Mikhail gasped.
"That's right in the Paniski, Mikhail," Mike pointed out.
"There is no security in that region. How were they getting in,
chopper?"
"Cars," Mikhail gasped. "Land rovers. From the Russian
sector. Sergei set it up. Right at the edge of the Paniski Gorge."
"And why didn't you go in that way?" Mike asked.
"Too risky," Mikhail said. "He can do it once, but only once.
Please, I've answered your questions. I ask only that you not kill
me."
"I rarely leave enemies alive, Mikhail," Mike said,
sympathetically. "You know how it is. You just can't trust a live
enemy. You can trust a dead one."
"Kildar," Oleg pointed out from behind him. "He will
remember more things. Perhaps if Vanner questioned him more
at base, there would be useful information he could extract."
"Hmmm..." Mike said, standing up. "Mikhail, here's the deal.
Vanner's a very nice guy. Bit of a geek, bit squeamish. If you're
very nice to Corporal Vanner, perhaps I'll let you live and let you
retain the use of your dick. Do you think you can be open-
minded about that?"
"Yes," Mikhail squeezed out.
"And, who knows, you might even walk without a limp,"
Mike said, holstering the .45. "They do remarkable reconstructive
surgery these days. I had a buddy who was a SEAL instructor
who lost his lower leg in
Afghanistan
and a year later it hardly slowed down his
runs. Of course, he lost it to a fucking mine you dip-shit
Russians planted. You scattered them all over the fucking
country. So you'll understand if I'm less than caring if you do
walk with a limp for the rest of your life. Oleg, get this piece of
shit out of my sight."
* * *
"McKenzie," Mike said when he found the former SAS
sergeant.
"Heard the shots," McKenzie said, scooping up a spoonful
of beef stew. "And the screams. Anyone live?"
"One," Mike said. "And this is now a sanitization situation.
Not because of the bodies, but the Russkies were setting up a
meet with the Chechens involving 'special weapons.' We might
have queered that by hitting these two."
"Pity," the NCO said, folding the pouch and putting it away.
"What do you want to do?"
"I want everything to disappear," Mike said. "Get the
Keldara up here. All the bodies go in the ground, the trucks
disappear, the mules disappear.
The girls go into the caravanserai with the remaining Russian."
"What about the bearers and the Chechen leader types?"
"Take them back to the caravanserai," Mike said. "There are
all those cellars and what-not. We'll see what we can get from
them."
* * *
"You're one cold son-of-a-bitch," Adams said, admiringly. "You just tangoed that one bastard and
shot up the other?"
"Russians aren't going to work with the Chechens unless
they're secret emissaries or there was a hell of a lot of money
involved," Mike said, forking up a piece of egg with steak. "If
they were from the government they were going to ID themselves
right off. We'd protect them like gold and they know it. Ergo,
they were with the mob or something along the lines. And that
meant big money which meant something special."
"WMDs again?" Adams asked.
"At a guess," Mike replied, shaking his head. "A Russian
would sell his own mother for the right money. He looked up as
Vanner entered the kitchen, holding sheets of paper. "Get
anything good?"
"After they saw what you did to the Russian, all the
Chechens opened up. It was a basic supply run with the added
mission of getting the Russians to some of the top Chechen guys
over in the Pansiki." The former Marine was red-eyed and
gratefully accepted a cup of coffee from Mother Savina as he sat
down unceremoniously. "The dead Russian wasn't much help but
he did have this," Vanner added, sliding a plastic card across the
table.
"And this is?" Mike asked, looking at the unmarked card
with a series of numbers on it.
"I'm surprised you've never seen one," Vanner said, amused.
"They're issued to keep track of Swiss bank account numbers."
"Not from Zurich Merchantile," Mike said.
"Merchantile does it sometimes," Vanner said. "Those are
from Bank Suisse, though. I don't have the codes to open up the
accounts, but those are four different accounts in Bank Suisse
containing any number of dollars."
"Or none," Mike said. "If they were selling something, there
could only be starter cash in them. You can open one with a
hundred euros."
"But that is where the money was going, presumably,"
Vanner said. "The 'big money' this Mikhail guy keeps babbling
about. The Chechens confirm that there were 'special weapons'
involved, but they don't know what. The rumors range from
MANPADs to nukes."
"Find out from Mikey who else this Sergei guy might use
for a contact," Mike said, finishing off his breakfast. "In the
meantime, I'm going to go round up one of the girls and screw
myself to sleep."
"No rest for the donkeys, huh?" Vanner asked.
"I didn't say you had to do it right now," Mike pointed out.
"Let him sweat a while. Without painkillers."
Chapter Six
"Crap!" Mike suddenly muttered, stopping his stroke.
"Kildar?" Jana said, writhing under him. "Kildar, you've
stopped."
"I know," Mike said, propping himself up on his elbows. "I
told Genadi that I'd meet with some of the elders this afternoon.
In about thirty minutes, in fact. Damnit!"
"Surely after last night, they won't mind if you cancel," Jana
said, humping into him. "You have time."
"But I didn't tell them I was canceling," Mike said, sourly.
"That means they'll be here, come hell or high water. I was so
bent on getting it in I forgot."
Firefights always made him horney. He'd been told that was
a natural reaction and as a SEAL he'd learned to suppress it, to an
extent. But under the current circumstances there was no
particular reason to. Which was why as soon as he'd gotten done
with Vanner and breakfast, he'd gone to the harem, literally
grabbed Jana and dragged her upstairs.
He'd already come once but he could feel at least one more
in there and he'd been heading for it happily, with the intent of
following it with about twenty hours of sleep, when he
remembered the meeting.
"We're going to have to cut this short," Mike said. "Sorry."
"You are the Kildar," Jana said, shrugging. "And it is not as
if I have not had mine..."
* * *
"Father Kulcyanov, Father Makanee, Genadi," Mike said as
he entered the parlor, "it is good to see you again. Oleg, long
time no see." When he saw Oleg he was especially glad he hadn't
cancelled; the kid had been out on ops for a week and had a
"murthering great" skirmish in the morning. The least the Kildar
could do was show up after all that.
The meeting was being held in one of the three small parlors
in the caravanserai. One had been set aside more or less
permanently as a "recreation room", read bar, for the trainers. The
second was commonly used by the harem girls. This one was set
aside for when Mike had a small number of guests to entertain.
Such as the Elders, all of whom could easily fit in the
comfortable room.
The room overlooked the gardens by the harem quarters.
When Mike had arrived, the gardens had been suffering from
decades of neglect. The somewhat inexpert care of the Keldara
yardsman hadn't gotten them back to any condition of glory, but
they were much better than when he'd arrived. The roses were
coming along well and they filled the room with scent.
He'd taken a very fast shower and his hair was still wet. He
hoped it wasn't as obvious that he'd just jumped out of bed.
However, given the way that the Keldara talked amongst
themselves, if not to outsiders, he was pretty sure they knew
damned well where he'd been. He hoped they wouldn't take it as
an insult. He was only a few minutes late, after all.
"You gentlemen asked for this meeting," Mike said, sitting
down on the couch and pouring a cup of tea.
"Kildar," Father Kulcyanov said, formerly. "We come to
speak of the customs of the Keldara."
Father Kulcyanov was not the oldest of the Family leaders,
but he was acknowledged as the senior for all matters of protocol
and custom. He was, in fact, the high priest of the Keldara's
ancient worship. A tall man, he was clearly shrunken from his
original growth with clear signs of cardiovascular failure. Once
he must have been as large as Oleg, perhaps bigger, and he had
been one of the few Keldara to fight in the "Great Patriotic War",
WWII, from which he had returned with a chestfull of medals.
"I am always observant of the customs of the Keldara," Mike
said, carefully. In fact, he had trampled all over a few, but only
when it seemed the only way to accomplish what had to be
accomplished. In one case, he'd trampled all over their fear of
debt by taking a girl with a burst appendix to the hospital in
Tibilisi. He wasn't about to let the girl die just because the
Keldara couldn't afford the cost. He'd unknowingly trampled all
over another by taking her friend, Lydia
, Oleg's fiancee, along as a chaperone. It
turned out that as an unmarried female he couldn't have picked a
worse one.
That had, he thought, been smoothed over. But the presence
of Oleg argued against it.
"As you know, Oleg Kulcyanov is fasted to Lydia Makanee,"
Father Kulcyanov continued. "There is a problem in that regard.
It involves bride price."
Mike looked at Genadi. The farm manager had been a
Keldara before being forced off the farm by his predecessor.
However, he hadn't just been tossed off the farm but formally
cast from the Families. The move had been forced on them by his
predecessor, but it put him in a good position from Mike's
perspective; he knew the customs but was no longer bound by
them. And he could generally talk freely about them without
offending the Keldara since he was no longer one of them.
He was also a graduate of the
University of Tibilisi and had thought long and hard about the
customs so he had an understanding that often eluded both Mike
and the Keldara.
"It's a dowery," Genadi said. "It's a long held and very
serious custom, but it has a purpose. It's generally fixed at a
year's income for the male. In the first few years of setting up a
household, there's a strong loss of income from both sides. The
bride generally becomes pregnant quickly and there are
household items that are needed. The male also tends to have a
fall off of quality of work."
"I'm going to need Oleg at high function this year," Mike
said. "But I get your point. How much do you need."
"This is not a situation where the Kildar can simply gift the
bride and groom," Father Makanee said, grimacing. He was one
of the younger Elders and he and Mike had a very good
relationship. So if he was that blunt, Mike probably was in a
minefield. "Bride price is a very personal item. If you gifted Lydia
without recompense then it would,
effectively, make her your bride. Oleg could never marry her in
that condition."
"Not gonna happen," Mike said, looking at Oleg who was
looking very unhappy. "Oleg, where do you stand in this?"
"I will let the Elders explain, Kildar," Oleg said. The guy
looked really unhappy.
"Okay, first things first," Mike said. "Oleg is my top team
leader. I'm cognizant of the customs of the Keldara, but anything
that reduces Oleg's functionality or loyalty is out the window."
"This will reduce neither, Kildar," Oleg said, definitely,
looking Mike in the eye. "This is a long held custom and one that
binds the Keldara. The custom they wish to speak of binds the
Keldara to the Kildar. And you are both my commander and my
friend. I am in support of it."
"What custom?" Mike asked, cautiously.
"The Kardane," Genadi said, grimacing. "In Western cultures
it would be called the 'droit de seigneur.'"
Mike frowned for a second as he tried to remember where
he'd heard the phrase and then blanched.
"You've got to be JOKING," he snapped.
"They're not," Genadi said in rapid English. "It's an old
custom. A really old custom, one that hasn't been used since the
days of the Tsars. But it's custom and they can live with it."
"Kildar, the Kardane is fully acceptable to all involved,"
Father Kulcyanov said. "The prospective bride spends one night
with the Kildar and the Kildar then gifts her with her bride price.
This is a trade for a trade, the opening of the prospective bride
for sufficient funds to set up her household. It must be
consensual on both sides."
Mike opened his mouth to reply angrily and then shut it. He
was the Kildar. He owned the land they lived on and even the
houses they lived in. he could simply order them to ignore this
stupidity and they might. Or he might find himself in a bitter
multi-year war with disaffected troops he had to trust like his
own brothers. So...don't assault the position, find a way around.
"Okay, Lydia
comes up to the caravanserai..."
"Don't go there," Genadi said, in rapid English again. "It has
to be as it was stated. Don't try to twist it or you'll run into real
crap."
"Explain," Mike sighed.
"It has to be value for value," Father Makanee said,
seriously. "Full value must be given in both directions or it
would be a violation of honor. In both directions."
"Translation," Genadi said, in Georgian. "If you don't open
Lydia
, she'll be looked upon as too useless to be
a woman of the Keldara. She'll be looked upon as unfit since you
rejected her in that way. Her honor will be violated by being
alone with you and twice violated for being found wanting."
"And she and Oleg don't get married," Mike said, looking
over at Oleg. "You're going along with this?"
"I am most worried that you will refuse, Kildar," Oleg said.
"Not that I'm going to...be with Lydia
?" Mike asked, incredulously.
"I would consider it an honor," Oleg said, seriously. "As
would Lydia
. We have discussed this."
"Crap," Mike muttered. "What is it with women wanting to
jump in the bed of the Kildar? Why couldn't this have happened
when I was seventeen?"
Both questions were rhetorical since he'd already discussed
it to death with everyone from Genadi to Nielson. The Kildar
was very high status, not only among the Keldara but among the
other groups in the region in contact with them. The girls he'd
rescued from the Chechen slavers had practically fought one
another for the right to be first in his bed. And plenty of the
Keldara girls had made it clear they wouldn't object to even a
casual roll in the hay, which was normally verbotten among the
Keldara. The touch of the King was magic and in the region the
Kildar was regarded as more of a King than anyone since Louis
the XIVth.
"How do you stand with this, Kildar?" Father Kulcyanov
asked, again formally. "The arrangement is that Lydia
will spend one night with you, upon
which night you will open her. For this boon you will grant her
the boon of her bride price, which is at a mimnimum five
hundred rubles."
"Lydia
's worth a lot more than that," Mike
muttered. She was, arguably, one of the three prettiest of the
Keldara women, which put her in the top one percent
internationally. Most of the Keldara girls could easily be
supermodels.
"Very well, but I have conditions upon this ceremony. For
one thing, we will make it a ceremony. If this is to be done, it
should be done well."
"What do you mean?" Genadi asked, curiously.
Mike hadn't been sure but when the question was asked the
broad outlines dropped in as if he had seen them somewhere.
Maybe in a dream, maybe in a book, he wasn't sure. But it was
right.
"Genadi, obtain two horses," he said. "A gelding for me,
black by preference but most important is that it's rideable and
good looking. Obtain a...I think they call it a palfrey as well,
white by preference. In the meantime, if
Lydia
doesn't know how to ride side saddle, get
her instruction, I don't care from where or how much it costs. I
will get with Mother Savina on the preparations for
Lydia
, over and above riding lessons. For one
thing, there are...call them other riding lessons. She's not going to
come to my bed entirely ignorant and terrified. Anastasia will
handle part of that, but I'll put Mother Savina in charge. There
will be special clothing involved for both of us. And when I
come to her house to pick her up, there will be a small ceremony.
I'll work on that. This won't take place for at least a couple of
weeks. We need to get the horses and riding lessons, first."
"Is this an American custom?" Father Kulcyanov asked,
confused.
"No," Mike said. "This is a me custom and you will abide by
it."
* * *
"More hot, young, virgin pussy?" Adams asked as Mike entered the kitchen the next morning.
"Oh, bite me," Mike muttered, pouring a cup of coffee.
"And I thought that not having to fight over time with
Bambi and Thumper was the good life," Adams continued.
"We're talking about Oleg, here, damnit," Mike replied. "If I
don't handle this just right I'm going to lose the support of my
top team leader."
"He's fully on board," Adams said.
"I was talking about it with Mother Savina. She thinks it's a great
idea."
"Jesus, this culture is sick," Mike muttered quietly, so that
Mother Savina, who was pottering around in the kitchen,
wouldn't hear him.
"Not really," Adams said,
shrugging. "Odd. Quaint. But hardly sick. If it was sick, they
would have found a less pleasant way to manage this. What gets
me is how well we get along."
"Huh?" Mike said, frowning. "Not that I'm not good for a
distraction right now."
"You've spent some time in the sandbox," the chief
said, shrugging again. "What do you think about your average
towel-head versus the Keldara?"
"No comparison," Mike said, puzzled. "The Keldara are can-
do. They don't try to stab you in the back. If there's a problem,
they fix it or if they can't they get your assistance with it and pitch
in as much as possible."
"There's other stuff, yeah," Adams
said. "But do they remind you of anyone over there?"
"Not really," Mike said, making a moue of distaste. "If I was
comparing them to the towel-heads, it'd be insulting."
"Ever do much with the Kurds?"
"No," Mike admitted, thinking about it. "I was training a
group that had a couple in it. But not for long."
"The Kurds are the same way," Adams mused, leaning back. "With the regular Arabs and what
have you in Iraq
, you're always negotiating. You need
something done, you have to scratch back first, or grease a palm.
With the Kurds it's like...BAM! You need something that's in
their interest, they're right there in support, be it a firefight or
power-plant construction. We just...get along better with the
Kurds than we do with the Arabs. Ghurkas the same way. You
don't get it with most tribal groups, but you do with, oh, say the
Massai. And the Kurds. And the Ghurkas. And now with the
Keldara. It's like some sort of secret handshake. That's why I
agreed with you about the whole commando thing and why I
don't let it swet me when they come up with something like this.
The one thing that I never particularly liked about the Kurds is
the way they treat their women; the Keldara are at least better at
that."
"Well, I'm glad you think it's such a great idea, since you're
going to have a part of the whole thing."
"Whoa!" the former chief snapped. "I'm not going to touch
Lydia
."
"Much as I like her, it's not Lydia
that I'm worried about," Mike said.
"Mother Savina, come over here. We've got a ceremony to figure
out."
* * *
Mike had a full schedule for the day. Among other things, he
hadn't been keeping up with the progress of the brewery.
When he'd arrived in the valley he'd been surprised by
several things. One, of course, was the general good looks of the
Keldara. The women were outstanding but even the men were so
good looking they could have been actors playing their roles. In
most "peasant" cultures, the nature of the work tended to make
both men and women hard and ugly. So did the inbreeding
characteristic of such cultures. The Keldara were a rare exception
that proved the rule.
The second thing he had been astounded by, however, was
the quality of the local beer.
Georgia
was far better known for its wines than
beer and it had been a long time since he'd had really good beer
when he arrived. But the beer in the tavern in town had been
outstanding, as good as any to be had in an American or German
microbrewery. However, when he began interacting with the
Keldara he'd discovered that the beer in town was their "bad"
stuff; the pure quill was so good it should be illegal.
It wasn't pure beer by German standards, having some
additional berries and herbs added that were limited to the local
area. But it was truly amazing stuff. Mike had seen the
possibilities from the day he took over. The Keldara were
depressingly poor by modern standards. His introduction of
modern equipment and methods in farming would help alleviate
that somewhat, but they really needed a source of capital. They
made outstanding beer, people paid good money for good beer.
Ergo, they needed a brewery and a distribution program.
The problem was, what Mike knew about either could be
written on the inside of a matchbook in crayon. And the Keldara
women who brewed the beer did it in small batches.
His answer, as usual, was to delegate. As part of the Keldara
spring festival, which was so old it matched pre-Christian
festivals found only in ethnology textbooks, a "king" was chosen
as well as a goat, the latter called the caillean. One of the Keldara
militia members, Gurun, an otherwise intelligent and capable
fellow, had been chosen as the caillean when he found a bean in
his bannock.
The caillean was regarded as an omen of bad luck by the
more conservative Keldara and the team he'd been assigned to
had pinned every problem they encountered on him. So he'd been
almost impossible to integrate into the teams.
However, the women were much less attuned to the problem
of having a caillean around. So Mike had given him a quick class
in internet research, a reasonable budget and put him to work on
the brewery problem. Gurun had asked a couple of questions in
the beginning but since the battle with the Chechens Mike hadn't
seen hide nor hair of him. And while he'd seen some construction
on the brewery site – a bench near the road to town that
had once been a toll station – he didn't think it was
complete.
When he pulled onto the bench, he was surprised by the
almost abandoned air of the place. There was a partial building
completed, two storeys more or less with stone walls and a roof
at least, but the doors at the front weren't installed nor were the
windows. There was some construction sounds coming from the
interior, however, so Mike parked and walked in the front door.
"Ware, Kildar!" a voice called from above, just as a balk of
timber crashed to the floor a few feet from him.
"Thanks for the heads up," Mike said, looking up. One of the
older Keldara males was looking through a large hole in the
second floor with an abashed expression on his face.
"Vassily, you were nearly out one Kildar," Mike said.
"Watch where you're thowing logs next time!"
There was far more work completed than Mike had thought.
The upper floors were mostly in and were heavily reinforced with
thick cross-beams that were not much more than adzed down
tree-trunks. The supporting pillars, which were rather close
together towards the front, were much the same. Some of the
bark was still evident in spots. The right hand side of the building
was open to the ceiling in a loft configuration. Mike wasn't sure
what that was for, but he was willing to assume someone did.
"Kildar," a voice called from the back. "We were wondering
when you would drop by."
"Hello, Vatrya," Mike said as his eyes adjusted to the gloom.
Vatrya was one of the older unmarried Keldara females. He
wondered if she was in the same boat as
Lydia
and hoped that, if so, the brewery would
be making enough money soon so the same compromise
wouldn't be necessary. On the other hand, he had to admit that the
honey-blonde was a fine figure of a young woman. Long legs
under that skirt and nice high ones. Not to mention a heart-
shaped face and just lovely dark blue eyes.
He realized he was slipping over to his dark side rather
quickly. The idea of breaking in several of the Keldara women
was more than attractive. But that was the problem; it could
quickly become addictive. It would be easy enough to use the
excuse to abuse the privilege and he had worked too hard to
cultivate the Keldara's respect to lose it that way.
Vatrya was accompanied by a tall, spare, man Mike didn't
recognize. From his clothing, a casual polo shirt and tan slacks,
he probably wasn't a Keldara.
"You haven't even met Mr. Brock," Vatrya said, gesturing
the man forward. "Kildar, this is Herr Gerhard Brock of the Alten
Brewery Company."
"Herr Brock," Mike said, offering his hand.
Brock shook it deliberately in the manner of a European and
nodded.
"You are the Kildar," the man said in English with a strong
German accent. "A pleasure to meet you."
"And you Herr Brock," Mike replied, trying to keep the
confusion off his face.
"The brewery apparatus is in transit at the moment," Mr.
Brock said, waving to the rear. "As stated in the contracts, we had
the vats and piping in stock. I am assured that locally
manufactured materials are available for the barley bins. And, of
course, the ovens are being constructed by the Keldara."
"The Keldara are very good at general construction," Mike
said, nodding.
"I strongly suggest that you take Gurun's suggestion in
regards to the annual convention," Herr Brock continued, stone-
faced. "It would be the perfect venue for your aims in regards to
marketing. Time is, of course, short, but I am being assured that
you are capable of managing the requirements."
"We're very adaptable," Mike said, nodding. "And we are
used to short decision cycles."
"I am to look on the oven construction," Brokc said,
nodding in farewell. "I look forward to further conversation with
you, Mr. Kildar."
"It's just Kildar," Mike said as the man strode towards the
back of the building again. "Vatrya?"
"Yes, Kildar?" the girl asked, her eyes wide and smiling.
"What did I just talk about?"
Chapter Seven
"You want to what?" Mike asked.
Gurun looked uncomfortable sitting in the chair across from
the Kildar. But he stood his ground.
"The convention for the International Association of
Brewers and Brewery Distributors is this year in the city called
Las Vegas in the United States
. You know of this city, Kildar?"
"Yeah, I know Las Vegas
," Mike said, sighing. "
Sin
City
."
"I do not understand, Kildar?" Gurun said.
"Sin
City
?"
"Las Vegas
is in a state, like a province, that permits gambling
and prostitution," Mike said, sighing again. "It's nickname is
Sin
City
. It alliterates in English. So you want to, what?
Have a booth for Keldara Beer at this convention? Do you have
any idea what the logistics are for something like that? And
where in the hell did this Brock guy come from?"
"Kildar, when you assigned me this task I was challenged by
several problem," Gurun said, frowning. "The first being that I
knew nothing about brewing. This is a woman's task in the
Keldara and they guard their secrets closely. Mother Lenka was,
of course, the person to work with on that. She has agreed to be
the...the Brewmistress for the brewery and has been working with
Herr Brock on the design for the initial brews. Herr Brock is
with the Alten Brewery in Koblenz, Germany. Alten has it's own small brewery going back to the
1800s, but it is also an international supplier of brewery
equipment and materials. In addition, they have been most
helpful in regards to marketing and shipment methods. At their
suggestion, I inquired as to a...booth it is called at this
convention. The convention had a cancellation, so I was able to
secure a small booth. It is in an outlying area, but quite
functional for our needs. All of this I have managed to do within
the budget you assigned to me, but to actually set up the booth
and create marketing materials for it will require a higher
budget."
Mike was stone faced through this recital but it was hiding
deep surprise and respect. Gurun had taken his suggestions and
run with them in a way that Mike, even with his experience of the
Keldara, found amazing.
"Where'd you scrounge up Alten?" Mike asked, ignoring the
question of the convention for the moment. He knew diddly
about setting up a booth but he'd been to a couple of conventions
where people sold gear that SpecOps groups used. All he really
remembered about them was booth babes... Now there was a
thought.
"Alten was one of the three companies I contacted after an
internet search," Gurun replied. "They were both the most helpful
and, when I contacted previous customers, the one that seemed
the most well-liked and respected. Their prices were slightly
higher, but Command Master Chief Adams pointed out that
quality is often worth the extra money."
"And they're supplying...?" Mike said, curiously.
"Almost all of our equipment," Gurun answered. "As well as
marketing and distribution advice. They've built breweries in
Europe and the United States but this is the first time they've done one from Georgia or the other Caucasus areas and they seem very enthusiastic."
"You've really taken this bull by the horns, haven't you?"
Mike asked, finally smiling.
"I had some questions about it when I started," Gurun
replied, carefully. "You were...busy with many things. I spoke to
Chief Adams and he said that SEALs consider intiative to be a
good thing. He told me to take as much initiative as I could. I
have been careful with my budget, but it will take more to
complete the plans and get distribution going."
"I'd figured that the budget really only covered research,"
Mike said, musingly. "Okay, tell me about the convention."
"I have never attended such an event," Gurun admitted. "I
have, however, contacted a company that is in the business of
setting up for such events. They have supplied suggestions about
what we would need. Some fo them they can provide, others we
need to provide ourselves. They assure me that they can set up
a...'turn-key' booth, but we must have certain marketing items
prepared in advance."
"Lots of marketing items," Mike said, musingly. "Folders,
brochures, posters, freebies. I'm not even sure how many of each
we'll need."
"In addition, we will need beer," Gurun said, seriously.
"Genadi has a lawyer who is handling the farm's legal issues. I
have contacted him and gotten permissions to export a batch for
marketing purposes and more permissions to import it to the
United States
. He also obtained permissions for us to
import the brewing equipment and a grant from USAID in the
amount of $50,000 for the brewing equipment."
"That's a damned big grant," Mike said, wonderingly.
"It was a matching grant," Gurun said, uncomfortably. "We
agreed to provide $25,000 and they doubled the money."
"And what is seventy-five grand going to buy us?" Mike
asked, curiously.
"All of the brewing equipment to set up a one hundred
hectoliter plant," Gurun replied. "In fact, we're going to have to
do some charging internal to the Keldara to expend it all."
"Run that one by me again?" Mike said, confused.
"There is more money in the grant than we actually need for
equipment and materials," Gurun said, carefully. "Therefore, we
are also using the grant money to pay the Keldara for their work
and some is set aside for initial capital before we get a cash flow
going."
"You've been talking with Nielson, too, haven't you?" Mike
said, grinning.
"Yes, Kildar," Gurun replied with a nod.
"Okay, approved," Mike said. "Top to bottom. And I've got a
few ideas about the booth I'd like to bring up..."
"Hey, Vanner, didn't you buy some whiz-bang photograhy
gear as part of your 'I wanna be a super-spy' package?" Mike
asked as he strolled in the intel shop.
"If we have to do HUMINT work, we're going to have to
have cameras, Kildar," Vanner sighed. "I bought a pretty good
Nikon set-up and a few lenses, yes. Your point?"
"I need to borrow it..."
* * *
Mike wasn't, by any stretch, a professional photographer.
But he'd taken a couple of courses his first time through college
and enjoyed them. And there were some subjects that were just
purely photogenic.
He'd taken the Expedition down to the valley where the
troops that weren't training were hard at work in the fields. The
Keldara males, still picking rocks in areas and checking on the
progress of the barley, were good for a few dozen shots. But it
was when the girls came out with lunch that he really got started.
About a third of the girls from the compound carried baskets
with loaves of bread and rounds of cheese poking out from under
colorful cloths. The rest, however, were carrying buckets
brimming with ice and ceramic beer bottles.
"Lydia
," Mike said, walking over to the group, "I
need to get some photographs of the girls so we can make up
some advertising stuff for the brewery."
"I understood all of that except the last part," Lydia
said, smiling.
Mike thought about that for a second and then shrugged
helplessly. He hadn't considered that the Keldara had so little
access to modern technology and culture that the concept of
"modeling" was outside their world-view.
"You know that Gurun is planning on trying to sell the beer
at a convention in the United
States
?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Lydia
answered as the girls, and most of the
guys, started to gather around.
"Well, we won't be selling it by the glass or bottle," Mike
said, frowning in thought. "What we will be looking for is
someone who will buy it from us in large quantity and then sell it
in the United States
. That's called a distributor. What we will
be doing is looking for a distributor, a good one that will give us
the most money for our beer we can get. With me so far?"
"I can handle even larger words, Kildar," Lydia
replied, batting her eyes at him. "Two,
even three syllable."
"Very funny," Mike replied. "You asked. Okay, so to find the
best distributor, we have to have people notice us. There will be
hundreds of small brewers like us at the convention, all trying to
get the big distributors to notice them. So, how do we get the
distributors to notice us, rather than the other brewers?"
"We have the best beer?" Greznya asked, smiling. Greznya
was one of the older unmarried females, a tall redhead with
bright blue eyes and pert if small breasts who normally worked in
the intel section. Recently, Vanner had started breaking the intel
girls down and assigning them to work with specific teams.
Apparently Sawn's team was on field duty. So the girl had gone
from running an intercept and analysis section to hauling bread
and cheese to the field. On the other hand, she didn't seem to
mind.
Mike considered the answer and then caught Katrina's eye.
The little minx would have the answer he was looking for he was
sure.
"Katrina, how do you get the boys to notice you?" Mike
asked, raising an eyebrow.
"Sway your hips?" Katrina replied, grinning. "Look them in
the eye? Pout your lips? Drop one shoulder? Put your hand on
their arm? Then they'll carry your water and you don't have to."
"Minx," Greznya said with a smile.
"Katrina, however, is right," Mike said, seriously. "We want
the distributors to notice us. We will build some displays for the
booth that have the 'look' of the valley of the Keldara, we will
have bright signs and we will have pictures of pretty girls. Oh,
and we will have pretty girls giving out free tastes of our beer.
Some of you will go to the convention and serve beer, smiling all
the time. But before that we have to make things to give out that
have pictures and information about our beer. And for that we'll
need pictures," Mike finished, holding up the camera.
"Of pretty girls?" Katrina asked. "Then just take them of
me."
"Quiet, you," Mike growled. "I will. But first I want pictures
of all the girls. Girls with beer is a good thing for sales. So line
up and smile."
It took more than that. The Keldara women were trained
almost from birth that they shouldn't use their looks as a weapon.
And they were very camera shy at first. But after Mike got a
couple of good photos, and was able to show them to the girls
using his laptop, they got into the spirit of the shoot.
The best image was towards the end of the shoot, when he
had all the girls line up with their buckets in one hand and the
other wrapped around the girl's shoulders next to them. Most of
them were holding a bottle in their off-hand and he'd managed to
get a decent expression on every face. The boys, thankfully, were
more interested in the shoot than they were in food for the time
being and didn't so much as grumble about their lunch being held
up.
When the food and beer had finally been served Mike
discreetly grabbed Katrina and pulled her aside.
"When you get back to the house, have them call me," Mike
said. "I'd like to get some shots of you later today. But have your
mother call me and set it up."
"Very well, Kildar," Katrina said, batting her eyelashes at
him. "But I can go now. There is less to carry back than we carry
to the field."
"Okay, but we're going to go by the brewery and pick up a
chaperone," Mike said. "I know just the one to use."
* * *
"Hello, Mother Lenka," Mike said as he ducked his head in
the still-under-construction brewery. "Could I have a moment of
your time?"
"There is something you need to know about sex, Kildar?"
Mother Lenka cackled. "Or is it brewing?"
"I need a chaperone, actually," Mike said, leading her out
into the sunshine. "I'm going to take some photos of Katrina for
the brochures for the brewery. But I'm sure as hell not going to
go off alone with her."
"And you think that I'm a chaperone?" Mother Lenka said
then started laughing so hard she choked. "Oh, Kildar, you tell
such good ones!"
"You're just the chaperone I need, old crone," Mike said,
grinning and leading her over to the Expedition. "You're an
older, married female. Wholely respectable...sort of."
"Not even close," Mother Lenka said, still gasping for
breath. "They will assume that you just needed coaching with the
young one!"
"No, they won't and you know it," Mike said. "But when I
ask her to do some of the things I'll need her to do for the shots,
you won't so much as bat an eye. Could you imagine if I asked
her to suck the foam off the top of an open beer bottle in front
of, say, Mother Kulcyanov?"
"She wouldn't even know what you were trying to suggest,"
Mother Lenka said, giving him a toothless grin. "But I
understand. Assuredly I will chaperone you, young man. And if
you need any suggestions..."
"I'm sure we'll do fine," Mike said. "But I do need to pick up
some supplies."
* * *
He'd spotted the location while checking out the Keldara
doing patrolling ops. It was a quiet little dell with a small
waterfall surrounded by trees. There was a wide grassy area that
at the moment was filled with late spring wild flowers and the
light was just about right.
He parked the Expedition on a narrow dirt logging road and
led the two up to the dell then went back to the SUV for his
equipment and the bucket of beer he'd appropriated from the
brewery.
"Okay, Katrina," Mike said, handing the girl a bottle of beer
and positioning her by the waterfall. "What I want you to do is
think of just how wonderful Keldara beer is and when you look
at the camera I want you to look at it as if it's the most wonderful
thing in the world."
"Make love to the camera," Mother Lenka said, somewhat
sadly. "That was what I was told when I would model. Think of
the camera as your lover."
"I didn't know you modeled," Mike said, glancing over her
as he considered the light and made some manual adjustments to
the Nikon.
"I've done many things you would not think I had, young
one," Mother Lenka said then laughed again. "And many that
even you would not believe!"
"Mother Lenka is my role model," Katrina said, holding up
the beer bottle and giving the camera a smouldery look. "Like
this?"
"That's a start," Mike said. "Work it, babe."
Chapter Eight
Mike hit the answer button on his phone and threw the
estimates for the convention booth costs on the desk. He hadn't
realized it would be that much. Just getting electric run was a
minimum of two hours at $175 per hour. Thank God he didn't
need internet connection! At least the photo shoot had worked
out well. He had some killer shots that had been worked into
three different brochures and a poster of Katrina that was sure to
be a big hit. But the more he looked at the rest of his plans, the
more he realized he was going to need some pull in DC...
"Go."
"Kildar, there is a call from the United States
," one of the Keldara women said over the
speaker phone. "An officer in the State Department."
"Put it through," Mike replied, picking up the handset. Speak
of the devil...
"Mr. Jenkins?" a cultured voice said a moment later.
"The same," Mike growled. The only thing worse in the
US
government than IRS agents, in his
opinion, were the Northeastern Liberal brahmins that ran the
State Department. And this guy sounded like a classic case.
"Mr. Jenkins, my name is Wilson Hargreave Thornton, I am
a desk officer for the Moldava section in the State Department."
"I don't suppose that's located in
Minot, North Dakota, is it?" Mike asked. Moldava was the poorest country in
Europe, with no major exports except
blonde hookers. It was hardly the France
desk.
"No, Mr. Jenkins," the man said, laughing dryly and quite
falsely. "The Moldava desk is hardly Siberia. It has had some serious action of late. And it's about that
that I wish to talk to you. I was asked to do a favor for a senior
member of the legislative branch. However, I've exhausted my
sources in this matter. When I so informed him he, quite out of
the blue, asked if I knew you and if I would contact you for him.
I will say you're a hard man to find."
"I like it that way," Mike said.
"So I understand," the man said, chuckling again. He had the
dry chuckle of a person who had had their sense of humor
surgically removed but tried to act as if it was still intact. "I
would like to ask you to come to
Washington
for a few days and meet with the member I was
referring to. He needs someone with your...background."
"I don't think so," Mike said. "I don't go around taking
orders from 'senior members of the legislative branch.' I don't
even take them from senior members of the executive branch."
"Mr. Jenkins," Wilson Hargreave Thornton answered,
seriously, "you have many enemies both internationally and,
frankly, within the government. Having a senior senator that
owes you a favor is in your best interests. I might add that the
Senator has already been instrumental in helping you. I believe
you recently received a grant from the International Monetary
Fund?"
"Yeah," Mike said, grimacing. "I'd thought they were being
pretty friendly with the taxpayer's money."
"Nonetheless," Thornton
replied, clearly smiling.
"And what the hell does a senator have to do with the IMF?"
Mike asked.
"Mr. Jenkins," the State Department officer answered,
chuckling, "there are senators and senators. And then there are the
ones that can quietly suggest that stalled paperwork be unstalled.
Or, for that matter, permanently stalled I might add."
"My...background is generally lots of dead bodies," Mike
said, bluntly, ignoring the implied threat. "Senior senators have a
remarkable way of forgetting past favors when bodies turn up."
"Not this time," Thornton
said, just as bluntly. "I'll tell you that it involves a
young lady who is in trouble. And you are, frankly, the only name
that came to mind to fix that problem. Given your...background."
"Crap," Mike muttered. They knew his hot buttons, that's for
sure. "When?"
"The senator can set aside tomorrow evening for a quiet and
discreet discussion," Thornton
replied. "Would that work for you?"
"If I can get a plane," Mike said. "And this is not going to be
a freebie unless it's dead easy."
"Understood," Thornton
replied. "Check in to the
Washington
Sheraton. The senator will contact you there."
"And you'll disavow any connection to me, right?" Mike
said, grinning.
"I'm glad you understand," Thornton
said, cutting the connection.
* * *
"Anastasia," Mike said, sticking his head in the harem
manager's office. "Could you do me a favor and pack me some
bags. I have to go to DC. Enough for a few days. No uniforms.
Some casual clothes and a few suits with sundries."
"Very well, Kildar," Anastasia said. Mike's harem manager
and general girl Friday had been a member of an Uzbek shiek's
harem since she was twelve. She had been singled out, early on,
as of management quality and took over as full harem manager
when she was twenty-one. Mike had visited the shiek with the
specific purpose of finding a harem manager and since Anastasia,
then twenty-six, had gotten a bit long-in-the-tooth for the shiek,
Mike had returned with her in tow. Unlike the shiek, Mike
offered her complete freedom to come and go but she had long
before developed the professional harem girl's acrophobia and
spent the vast majority of her time in the caravanserai. A serious
sexual masochist she fulfilled Mike's occasional need to wield a
whip and he fulfilled hers for a serious leather back-scratching.
"When will you be back?"
"Not sure," Mike admitted. "But that will do for as long as
I'll need those clothes. And call that charter company in England
and get me a jet. I might as well travel in
style."
* * *
Mike hated DC. It wasn't anything personal, just a formless
resentment. When he'd been a SEAL, DC was synonymous with
the "brass", the medal bedecked bastards, most of whom had
never heard a shot in anger, who sent the teams out to work
miracles and then bitched when they failed. Or performed the
miracles but caused a bunch of bad press over dead tangoes.
Now, somehow, he'd ended up being brass. Or close enough
as made no never mind. He didn't walk the corridors of power,
but if he picked up the phone he could be having a quiet dinner
with the president this very evening. Or the secretary of state or
defense or the national Security Adviser. That made him, de
facto, a Washington
"player", even if he spent his time staying as far away
as he could.
And at the moment he was particularly pissed. He was just
hanging out waiting for a phone call. He hadn't even brought one
of his "ladies" with him to pass the time. All he could do was
watch Fox News and kick his heels.
He got up and walked to the mini-bar, preparatory to just
getting stinking drunk and telling the "senior senator" to go stuff
his mission, when the phone rang.
"Jenkins," he growled.
"I've set aside a meeting room on the third floor," a faintly
familiar baritone replied. "The Sherman Room. Follow the
signs."
"I'll be there in a few minutes," Mike said. Might as well
find out what the fucking senator wanted.
* * *
There were two heavies outside the room. They had the look
of Secret Service, which made the "senior senator" very senior
indeed. As Mike approached the door a man in coveralls came
out carrying a black instrument bag. The "senior senator" had had
the room swept before the meeting which was rather unusual.
"Jenkins," Mike said, stopping at the door and ignoring the
technician.
"Cell phone, pager and PDA, please," one of the men said,
holding out a canvas bag with a zipper lock.
Mike pulled out his cellphone and dropped it in the bag then
shrugged. The other agent pulled a magnetic wand and ran it over
him as the first agent zipped the bag shut and handed Mike the
key.
When he was swept, the agent knocked on the door and
opened it to a faint call from inside.
Mike instantly recognized the "senior senator" when he
entered. He couldn't quite place the name, but he'd seen him on
TV a few times.
"Mr. Jenkins," the man said, getting up from his seat at the
conference table and walking over to the door to shake Mike's
hand. Just about middling height but with a commanding
presence, he had a firm handshake and looked Mike right in the
eye. He was a guy you trusted immediately. Just like any good
con artist or politician. Speaking of redundancy. "I'm Senator
John Traskel."
"New Jersey
," Mike said, nodding his head. "You're the guy
they're saying's going to be the next minority leader."
"And I'm the senior minority member of the Senate Foreign
Relations committee, which is more to the point," the senator
said, waving him to the a seat. "But please call me John."
"Mike," Jenkins said, sitting down. "You've got a problem."
"One of my constituents does," the senator said, nodding
sagely. He was a tall guy with prematurely gray hair that was
perfectly coiffed and his suit hadn't come off the rack. Mike also
remembered that there was serious family money behind the
senator, something in excess of a hundred mil. Come to think of
it, he was also one of the few members of the Democratic party
who was a tad right wing on social issues. Which was why he
was also being bruited around for a presidential candidate in the
next election.
"His daughter has gone missing," the senator continued,
opening up one of the folders and sliding a picture of a girl in a
bathing suit across the table. She looked about fourteen and
filled the suit well. Blonde and very pretty.
"Natalya Fedioushina," the senator continued. "Fourteen."
"Call America
's Most Wanted," Mike said, sliding the pic
back to the senator.
"She went missing in Moldava," the senator said, seriously.
"How the fuck did that happen?" Mike asked, aghast.
"The gentleman is a native Ukrainian," the senator said,
sighing. "His wife was visiting relatives in Moldava when the
young lady was kidnapped. Presumably for, well..."
"To be sold as a sex-slave," Mike said. "It's Moldava's only
real export. And you want me to find her? Do you have any idea
what sort of task that is?"
"Yes," the senator said, nodding. "I do. I've seen both the
open and the classified data on the sex slave industry. But we do
have one lead."
"Go," Mike said, shrugging.
"This man," the senator continued, sliding another picture
across. The pic was taken of a man exiting a small foreign car, a
Ladia Mike thought from the roofline. Heavyset, dark, he had the
look of a Balkans pimp type, one each. "Yuri Smegnoff. He is
most probably the man who kidnapped her. Unfortunately, we
don't know what he did with her."
"How long?" Mike asked.
"Two weeks ago," the senator replied, slipping the pic back
into the file and sliding the whole folder across.
"By now she's in
Albania or Serbia
being broken in," Mike said, flipping the
folder open. There were more pics of the girl and of Smegnoff as
well as a list of his common hang-outs.
"We just want to know where she is," Traskel said.
"That's not going to be easy, even if this pimp is a good
contact," Mike replied.
"You very much want to do this mission, Mr. Jenkins," the
senator replied, tightly. "I need the favor. And you don't want me
remembering that you didn't help when I needed it."
"Was that a threat, senator?" Mike said, smiling but not
looking up. "Please. You've got access to some of my files, at
least. Any threat from you is hardly going to sway me."
"You're playing with the big boys now, Mr. Jenkins," the
senator almost snarled. "This isn't killing a few terrorists on an
island in the Bahamas
. This is the kindness and consideration, or
not, of the United States Senate. You really don't want to piss me
off."
"I've been playing with the big boys for a long time,
Senator," Mike said, bluntly. "Again, water, duck."
"All my constituent wants is his little girl back," the senator
said, tightly. "Please?"
"Big contributor?" Mike asked, flipping through the file.
"Yes," the senator admitted. "Very large."
"Good," Mike said, closing the file and looking at the
senator again. "Because this isn't going to be a freebie. I won't be
able to lone-wolf this one. I'll need an intel team and shooters
most likely. This is likely to get bloody."
"I believe that you already got a fairly substantial IMF
grant..." the senator said, frowning.
"Hah!" Mike said, chuckling. "That's barely earnest money.
You have any idea how much an op like this is going to cost
me?"
"I suppose I should," the senator said, nodding. "A million?"
"More like five," Mike said, frowning. "It's going to be
expensive on my end. I'll submit a cost sheet at the end. He'd
better pay up."
"That won't be an issue," the senator said.
"You want her extracted?" Mike asked.
"Just found," the senator replied. "When we know where she
is, we can use other channels to get her out. Legal channels. I
trust that I don't have to suggest that my name not come up if
anything...untoward occurs."
"I'm very discreet," Mike replied, standing up. "But when I
send you the bill, your friend had better pay it. Because if he
doesn't, you will."
* * *
Mike perused the file as the Gulfstream crossed the Atlantic . Finding the girl wasn't going to be
easy but that wasn't what was bothering him. The girl in the
photos was certainly pretty enough, but she didn't look like a girl
having a great time at the beach. And the picture wasn't taken in
the US
, he was sure. The rocks along the beach
were limestone or something similar. There simply weren't any
major beaches in the US
that had limestone around them. Not like
the stuff in the pic, anyway. He'd put money on the pic being
taken on the Adriatic or Black Sea coast.
And the bathing suit she was wearing in the one pic and the dress
in the other were European, not American.
On the other hand, the unnamed "constituent" was an
immigrant. The pics might have been taken in the Old Country.
But the girl's eyes...she was not enjoying having her picture
taken. It wasn't teenage surlinous. She was resigned and unhappy.
Mike frowned and looked close at the bathing suit pic. He
wished he had a magnifying glass with him because it looked
very much as if the girl had a large bruise on her abdomen. Like
from a punch.
The whole op had a bad feel to it. The minor State
Department official contacting him, the senator, the pictures. It
just didn't add up.
Well, he'd know he'd found out what was really going on
when it started to stink.
* * *
"Well, it would certainly be nice to have some support from
the other side of the aisle," Nielson mused as he looked at the
pictures. "And the lady is certainly charming enough in a naifish
sort of way."
"Tracking her's going to be a stone bitch, though," Adams pointed out. "Most of the gangs
running this racket in that region are Albanians. They're right
bastards and mostly come from Albanian clans. They all know
each other, so we won't be able to insert anyone."
"Not on the runner's side," Mike said, rubbing his chin.
"What are you thinking?" Nielson asked, looking up.
"I'm thinking that we need Vanner and Cottontail in here,"
Mike replied.
* * *
"That's the op," Mike said looking at Vanner and the Russian
hooker. Cottontail was sitting up and apparently paying rapt
attention but that could mean anything. Mike had picked her up
from the local brothel, very much against his will. The girl was
pure poison. Either as a result of her experiences as a sex slave or
from nature she was a vicious sociopath and delighted in making
life for everyone around her miserable. Since she'd been living at
the caravanserai, Mike had kept her from being too much trouble
by keeping her busy, first in studies and then later working with
Vanner in the intelligence section. The girl was smart as hell,
which was part of the problem; as a whore she'd been
underutilized.
But she had the makings of a first class agent. She simply
had no soul and was a great actress.
"How are you planning on tracking her?" Vanner asked,
curiously.
"Well, the first line is that we're going to pay a trip to the
pimp and ask him nicely what happened to the girl," Mike said
then looked over at Cottontail. "The other string rests with you."
"You want me to go into that," the girl said, waving at the
papers.
"It's not like you don't know the moves," Mike replied,
flatly.
"What's in it for me?" Cottontail asked, just as flatly.
"Money," Mike said. "Twenty thousand euros for the entire
op, assuming you do your job. And you'll get to fuck over the
sort of guys that made you a whore. We're going to be having a
lot of polite and charming conversation with them."
"Do I get to watch?" Cottontail asked, seriously.
"If it fits the mission," Mike said. "And I'll guarantee you
that we'll be following. I won't say bad things won't happen to
you, but we're going to be on your ass the whole way. I guarantee
you won't be stuck back in the system and we'll try damned hard
to keep you alive. But mostly it will be up to you. You in?"
Cottontail looked at him coldly for a moment then nodded.
"At the very least, take pictures," she said, suddenly grinning
in a way that was truly scary.
"Will do," Adams replied. Of all the
men who knew her, Adams was perhaps
the only one who liked her. At least in part because he liked right
bastards.
"We're going to need two teams," Mike said. "Each will
have an intel and operational section and a group of shooters and
security. We're going to have to insert across multiple borders,
through multiple police jurisdictions and, worse, into multiple
gang territories. And after a bit the fact that we're closing on
something might become obvious. The intel section..."
"Tracking devices," Vanner said, looking at the ceiling.
"Bugs. Cameras. Shotgun mikes. Body mikes..."
"You're on it," Mike said, looking at Adams
. "The shooters..."
"Team Sawn is dialed in on entry techniques,"
Adams said. "Break it down four ways. One team for
entry, one for security, attached to each main group. We'll need
vehicles..."
"The white vans the traffickers use," Nielson said, nodding.
"Plenty of room and..."
"The Keldara girls that are handling intel and commo will
just look like more whores on their way west," Mike said,
nodding. "With the shooters as their guards. We got us a plan?"
"Well," Nielson said with a sniff. "It's a start."
Chapter Nine
Mike considered the border crossing as the six vans
approached it. It had just flat taken six vans for all the teams and
gear.
Set up of the operation had only taken three days. Vanner
had many of the items they were going to need on-hand and the
few that he didn't were more available in the Ukraine than in
Georgia
. The route had taken them through the
Ukraine
and a brief stop at Dnipropetrovsk filled
in the gaps. Weapons were easy; the Keldara were very well
armed.
However, travelling to Moldava had taken some time. The
roads in Georgia and
the Ukraine
ranged from bad to just awful. And given
that the vans were packed with foreign nationals using fake
passports and enough weapons for a small coup, discreet travel
was the byword. They'd mostly stayed off the major roads, which
meant not only circuitous travel but staying mostly on the "just
awful" roads.
By the end of the week's trek, Mike felt as if his kidneys had
been shaken out through his sinuses.
However, they'd made it to the Moldavan border. The
problem being that the out-of-the-way border crossing near
Ribnita, which according to reports was unguarded, had a couple
of Moldavan soldiers running a checkpoint.
"Be of good cheer and tip heavily," Mike said. The headset
dangling from his ear was a bit out of the ordinary for white
slavers but it wasn't entirely out of character. "Hand me your
passports," he continued, looking to the rear of the vehicle.
The seats right behind the driver's were filled by three
Keldara in work clothes and jeans. Their heavy-cotton button-
down shirts were untucked so the pistols at their waist were
concealed. Poorly in a couple of cases, but concealed. The rest of
their gear was packed in the cargo area of the van, stuffed into
several discrete pullman bags. He just had to hope that the border
guards didn't want to search them or they'd find far more than
they bargained for.
Behind them were four girls from Vanner's intel section in
blouses and jeans. The latter had caused some screaming from
the more traditional Keldara but Mike had thrown the weight of
the Kildar behind the decision. The girls were potentially vital to
the operation and they had to fit in. Most women didn't wear
skirts when travelling, even in this part of the world. A couple of
the girls had looked askance when told they were going to dress
in pants, but most of them had taken to them with glee. Change
was coming to the Keldara in the form of Levi's 505s.
In the last set of seats were four more Keldara heavies, the
entry team portion of the shooters. They also had pistols
holstered at their belts but in addition they had sub-guns under
the seat. Mike dearly hoped that they weren't going to start the op
by killing a couple of Moldavan soldiers. That would be...bad.
"Hello," Yevgeni said to the soldier as he rolled to a stop
next to him. "How are you today?"
"I'm out here on this shit road," the soldier grumped as the
passports were handed across.
"At least it's not raining," Yevgeni said, happily.
Mike looked around carefully. There were only two, the
soldier taking the passports and his companion, who was leaning
against a tree by the side of the road. If worse came to worse,
they could probably take them both down without bloodshed.
The soldier flipped through the passports, pulling out a bill
from the top one and pocketing it.
"You are from Georgia
?" the soldier asked.
"Yes," Yevgeni said, grinning. "We are a church group going
to visit monasteries in your country and
Romania
."
"And I'm the High Prelate," the soldier replied, handing the
passports back. "It is lonely out here, how about some time with
one of your girls?"
Mike blinked at the suggestion. It wasn't one he'd run across
before, but he'd never been masquerading as a white slaver.
"I think that could be arranged," Mike said, smiling. "I have
just the girl for you..."
"That one looks good," the soldier said, pointing in the
window at one of the Keldara girls. As it turned out it was Daria,
one of Yevgeni's first cousins. He could see the Keldara slowly
turning purple at the suggestion.
"No, no," Mike said, trying to keep the desperation out of
his voice. If he didn't get this guy to go for Cottontail there was
going to be blood on the walls. As he was thinking that, the other
soldier started to wander over, wondering what was going on. "I
have a very pretty one for you and your friend," Mike continued,
hitting his mike. "Adam...ovich, tell Cottontail she's got a special
duty up front." He only remembered at the last moment to use
Russian and he knew he still had an accent. He wasn't supposed
to be talking at all! Damn Yevgeni!
"We will want one for each of us," the soldier said, looking
in the van at the back. "And I still like that one by the window.
She is very pretty and has good tits."
"Kildar..." one of the Keldara muttered from the backseat.
"Silence," Mike snapped. "I have a girl coming up for you.
She is very good, very pretty and can take you both at once if you
wish." He glanced in his rear-view and sighed in thankfulness as
he saw Cottontail walking up the line of vehicles. There were a
couple of cars stopped behind the line of vans, now. This was
going downhill fast.
"Hi, boys," Cottontail purred as she came around the van to
the driver's side. "You want some company?"
The Keldara women were justly famous for their beauty but
Cottontail had most of them equalled at least. And when she put
her mind to it, she could exude a sort of raw sensuality that was
riveting. What was most riveting was that she looked like a teen
virgin, even if she'd been with more men than a dockside whore
and had the soul of Jeffrey Dalmer. Part of the strength of her act
was that men rarely really looked at her eyes. Oh, they were
stunningly beautiful, but men never got beyond that. They didn't
see the little fire of hell burning in the rear. Or if they did they
thought it was just lust, not pure evil.
"She will be good to you," Mike said, waving them away.
"We will pull out vans to the side until you are...done."
Mike got out and waved the vans forward and to the side of
the small back road then walked down the line, wishing he
smoked. He needed something to steady his nerves. He was fine
if it was a matter of killing everyone in the building, hole, ship or
even town. But this shit was for somebody who enjoyed it.
He also took the time to wave the two cars that had been
waiting through, and then found the chief in the fourth.
"What was that all about?" Adams
asked.
"The soldiers were bored and horney," Mike said, sharply.
"They thought it would be a good way to pass the time to
'borrow' Daria as part of their tip."
"The Moldav bastards," Sedama snarled from the driver seat
as the rest of the Keldara muttered angrily.
"Yevgeni nearly blew his top," Mike snapped. "But this sort
of thing is going to come up. Handle it. Talk your way through.
I'll tell you when you can kill someone. Don't kill anyone until I
tell you. Is that clear?"
"Clear Kildar," Sedama replied, breathing out. "So
Cottontail is taking care of it?"
"Yes," Mike said, still angry. As much at himself as at the
situation. He should have prepared for it.
"And on another crossing when we don't have her along?"
one of the Keldara in the rear of the van asked.
"I'm going to have to think about that one," Mike admitted.
"Giving up the Keldara women is, clearly, out of the question."
"I dunno," another Keldara said. "There's always Anisa..."
"Hey!"
* * *
Mike was leaning on the front of the lead van, looking at a
map, when Cottontail came back out of the woods wiping at the
corner of her lip with her thumb.
"Everybody satisfied?" Mike asked, cautiously. He hadn't
told her she was going to have to bribe border guards and he felt
curiously shamed by the incident. It wasn't as if she hadn't
screwed enough men for two more to be no big deal.
"They are," she replied, archly.
"And are they alive?" With Cottontail you always had to ask.
"Yes," she admitted. "I considered it, but it would interfere
with the mission, no?"
"Yes, it would," Mike said.
"And the mission is killing many slavers. This is a mission I
like. I would not want it to fail."
Her eyes were as clear and innocent blue as a child's.
* * *
Chisinau was the capital of the small country of Moldava.
Moldava was more an agreed upon border state between Russia and Romania
than a real country. Russia had troops on
the east side of the Dniester River to support the local slavic
ethnic groups so the central government couldn't even really call
that "their" territory. The situation was so bleak, they'd even
elected a communist as president and more or less regressed to a
semi-communist, sort of Stalinist, failed state. Totally
landlocked, the poorest country in Europe, it's total exports were limestone, hookers and people looking
for a real life somewhere else.
The teams had been installed at the Hotel Stalin on the
outskirts of town. The hotel was near an industrial area and if
Chisinau had a better and worse part of town, it was in the worst.
In keeping with the generally dilapidation of the neighborhood,
the hotel looked as if it had been used by every rocker at Woodstock
. The carpet, where it wasn't pulled up entirely, was
about fifty years old and poorly made then. The rooms were
filthy, the corridors were littered and the bathrooms didn't bear
description.
It also was doing a booming business. They'd barely been
able to get enough rooms for all of them and when Mike checked
out their fellow travellers he could see why. They weren't the
only people bringing girls through Moldava.
He wandered down to the bar, which gave "dive" a whole
new meaning, and looked over the offerings. To his amazement,
they had Johnny Walker Red.
"Walker
," he said, perching on the rickety stool. The bar was
about half filled and the clientele was telling. The men were all
beefy and from various bulges mostly armed. The women were
all wearing damned near nothing and given the temperatures in
the bar they had to be freezing. Most of them also seemed
rather...subdued. As in "if I make a wrong sound, my pimp is
going to beat the shit out of me. In public. And nobody will
care."
One of the girls had just had her head pushed under the table
when he sensed someone coming up from his off-side.
"Where you in from?" a man said in Russian as he settled in
the seat next to Mike.
"Georgia
," Mike said, honestly.
"Strange accent," the man said, frowning. "You're not
Georgian."
"American," Mike admitted. "This is a way to pay the bills
and the fringe benefits are great."
"Now we've got Americans in the game," the man grumped.
"I am Ahmed Pasha. I saw some of your girls, though. Very nice.
How much?"
"I'm taking them to
Montenegro
for an auction," Mike said. "They're not
for sale. Mike Duncan."
"I saw one, a blonde, very big breasts," the man replied. "I'll
give you a thousand euros and you won't have to feed her from
here to Montenegro
. I don't keep them, myself, you know. I am
broker and move them. I know men will give me good price for
her."
"I can get better money there," Mike said, laughing. "The
buyers are special, pimps with wealthy clients. They want virgins
or damned near. Clean and undamaged so they can have them
first and hard. That's why I've got so much muscle with me, so
the girls don't have to be disciplined. I'll go with the plan. What's
the word on the roads west?"
"Ungheni was covered when I came back through," Pasha
said. "You have to go all the way up to Balti to get through
without a check. But the guards on Balti will usually take only
five euros per passenger. They prefer euros. Here in Chinisau so
many girls come through, so many men. Some have do this long
time, some, like you, just getting started. I know everybody, can
find best price for you. Fifteen hundred. She was very lovely. The
one wearing the blue blouse. Very nice breasts. Very nice. I, too,
have special customers and girls that good are getting hard to
find."
"They had guards on Ribhita," Mike replied. "Five euros per
passenger and they wanted a freebie. Fortunately I had one that
had already been broken in or I'd have been out a lot of money.
I've only been doing this for a while, yeah, but I've got a covered
racket. Just me and my partner and we cut out the middlemen.
When we're done with them we sell them to guys like you; my
partner handles that. No dice. Not even in the game. That's Daria
and I'm looking at damned near ten grand for her first. You'd just
dump her into the pipeline; if you've got special customers I'm
the Pope. What was happening in Romania
?"
"Not much until you get near Cluj Napoca," the man said.
"There was a checkpoint on the E-60 near Tarnaveni. Real
bastards when I went through west. They acted like I was
transporting my girls for immoral purposes and against their will.
The shame. And it was very expensive in bribes. Ten thousand in
dollars or euros? It doesn't matter, that is crazy. I can buy twenty
girls for that."
"Don't know how far east you're going, but we hit one like
that near Novyi Buh," Mike replied. "I explained to one of the
girls that she had to talk us through. Or else. I understand,
though, that there was a crackdown in
Odessa
and some of the guys are looking to move their more
noticeable girls. You could probably get some good trades. And
she's not really for sale, anyway."
"I operate here," Pasha said. "Although I buy Ukrainian girls.
And if you have any more like those, next time through, I'll give
you a good deal. I know all the men who buy and sell. I wonder
who you know in Montenegro
? Ammad? Tufa?"
"Neither," Mike said. "Very small network; I doubt you've
run into it. We get high price girls and charge Westerners, mostly
American, for the privilege of breaking them in. Charge them
through the nose. You have to have the contacts for that. My
partner is connected in the States. Then we dump them in the
regular channels. We're in the market for those types of girls,
though. Bringing these all the way from
Georgia
is a pain. You know a guy named
Smegnoff? I understand he's got some girls that I might want to
buy."
"Everyone has got girls," Pasha said, shrugging. "Smegnoff,
yes, he has some good ones sometimes. If you really want to see
him, he is in the Café Arrendi in the evening. But so do my
suppliers. And we don't use them as hard as he does. He had one
girl that tried to run away, so he broke her knees. She can walk
only with a limp, now. Very sad." He didn't seem terribly broken
up about it.
"I need them unused," Mike said, standing up and tossing a
twenty euro bill on the bar. "I can do with a couple of very high
quality girls, very pretty, virgins, young. I'll give you a good deal
on them. I'll be around for a couple of days if you get anything
worth talking about."
* * *
"Well, we're established," Mike said as he came in the room
the team was using as a command post. Vanner was already in
place with various electronic gadgets set up and a wire discreetly
running out the window. "The agreed cover: we're running high
quality girls to Montenegro
for a special auction. I put out the word
that we're in the market for unspoiled girls."
"I've gotten Smegnoff's cellphone plotted," Vanner said,
nodding. He had a set of cup headphones on with one cup
dangling. "He's about a half a kilometer southeast of here which
plots out as..."
"The Café Arrendi," Mike said, grinning as the intel
specialist turned to look at him. "Already got the word."
"What's the play?" Adams asked.
"Work him," Mike said. "Then get him someplace quiet and
have a nice long chat."
Chapter Ten
The Café Arrendi was a "coffee shop" that fronted for
a brothel. It was on a minor street in south Chinisau that was the
center of what passed for a red-light district. The traffic along the
road was slow since business, even in the early morning hours,
was brisk. Girls lined both sides of the streets, waving at the
passing cars and rapidly boarding those that stopped.
"Pull over, here," Mike said as the van reached the front of
the shop. He noticed that none of the girls were waving for them
to stop; it was apparent what the van was used for.
What the darkened windows cloaked, however, were five
Keldara in full body armor, cradling MP-5s. If anything
"untoward" went down in the coffee shop, their job was to
extract Mike, and Smegnoff, alive. And since Mike was the
Kildar, they were very serious about that mission.
Mike rolled out of the van and stepped between two cars to
the curb. He noticed that besides the girls there were men, most
of them heavyset and wearing bad suits, scattered along the road.
He wasn't sure if they were there to make sure the girls kept
working or as external security on the coffee shop. He did spot
what was probably the Ladia the picture of Smegnoff was taken
by. Of course, there were three other Ladias parked within less
than a block of it, but it was nearly opposite the coffee-shop and
the right color and trim.
The interior of the shop was run down with rickety tables
and chairs and a filthy floor. Mike was almost afraid to try the
coffee, but it wasn't all that bad. The girls working the counter
were the most rode-hard-and-put-up-wet duo he'd ever seen, a
hollow faced girl with black hair and a bleached blonde. Both
were dressed in skin-tight tube dresses and clearly were supposed
to be advertising. If they were, they were advertisements for
getting every venereal disease ever discovered and probably a few
that were barely known.
Mike had spotted Smegnoff when he walked in. The pimp
was in a corner with two other males. They had the scent of
muscle and helpers at "breaking" girls. They were larger than the
pimp but Mike figured if it came down to cases he could take all
three of them. And the Keldara fire team was waiting in a van
outside.
He sipped the espresso as he drifted over to the table.
"You're Smegnoff," Mike said, sitting down uninvited.
"And you're the new American," Smegnoff said, smirking. "I
hear you're in the market for girls."
"Top quality, only," Mike said, nodding and ignoring the
muscle. "Pretty, young and untouched."
"What is the fun of selling untouched girls?" Smegnoff
sneered.
"Money," Mike said, shrugging. "You can get pussy
anywhere. But young, virgin pussy, that's real money if you've
got the right customers."
"I have customers like that," Smegnoff said, shrugging. "A
few. Everyone does."
"Well, that's my main clientele," Mike said. "I hear you
sometimes get pretty top quality girls."
"They're around," Smegnoff said, nodding and eyeing the
former SEAL. "Not all the time, you know?"
"Anything at the moment?" Mike asked. "Or, for that matter,
anything you can steer me to that hasn't been raped, yet?"
"Not right now," Smegnoff said. "But they will be
expensive."
"We'll bargain," Mike said. "I'm in town for two days letting
the ladies rest. Then we're gone. You've got that long."
* * *
"I've got a shotgun mike set up on the Arrendi," Vanner said
when he got back. "But his car has a heavy by it. I can't get a
tracer on it; the Keldara were too obvious."
Mike looked around the room at the Keldara females and
rubbed his chin.
"What are you thinking?" Yevgeni asked, eyeing the Kildar
uncomfortably.
"Anisa," Mike said, glancing at the Keldara girl. She was a
lovely young brunette with long legs and a classical face.
"Yes, Kildar?" the girl asked, curiously.
"Would you be willing to pose as a hooker?" Mike asked.
"We're going to run into this problem again. I could send
Cottontail to do it, but what I'd like is to send both of you. One
of you to distract the guard, the other to plant the tracer. That
way if we have to do it again, or something like it, after
Cottontail is inserted you'll have experience. You'll have a
Keldara back-up team, of course."
"What would I have to do?" the girl asked, uncertainly.
"Well, the first thing is getting into character," Mike said.
* * *
"I cannot wear this in public!" Anisa wailed.
The tube dress was, okay, pretty darned short. And the girl
had clearly never worn high-heels in her life. Cottontail, who
could walk in them like most girls walked in flats, was smirking
as the Keldara female attempted to balance on the top of the
stilletto sandals.
Cottontail and Killjoy had been sent out shopping and come
back with everything that Anisa needed to look like a hooker.
And the girl did, albeit a rather expensive one.
"I'm having problems with this," Adams said in English, shaking his head.
"So am I," Mike admitted. "But I think it's the best plan to go
with."
"Oh, it's not the plan," Adams
replied. "I'm wondering how much we could get for her..."
"Don't go there," Mike snapped, shifting to Georgian.
"Anisa, you look perfect. You'll be fine. All you have to do is
walk up to the car with Katya, lean up against it while she talks
to the guard, plant the tracer and then walk away with her. You'll
be under observation the whole time and the Tigers will be there
if anything goes wrong. But nothing will. You'll do fine."
"I cannot walk down the street in this!" Anisa said. "I look
like a whore!"
"Uhmm..." Vanner said. "That's sort of the point."
Anisa opened her mouth to respond and then shut when she
couldn't think of a reply.
"Well..." she said after a moment, half triumphantly. "How
am I supposed to carry it dressed like this? Where am I going to
hide it?!"
"It's not that large," Vanner said, pulling out a gray rectangle
that was about the size and general shape of a cigarette lighter.
"It's got a contact adhesive on one side. I suppose you should
hide it somewhere where it's out of sight and easy...to...access..."
he trailed off.
Anisa looked at him blankly then over at the Kildar.
"On your leg, right up in your crotch is what he doesn't want
to say," Mike said, bluntly. "For that matter, you might be able to
simply palm it. Keep it in your fist. The problem with that is that
people will assume it's money or something."
"I don't think this is going to work," Anisa said, holding out
her hand for the device.
Vanner helpfully peeled the cover off the contact adhesive
and handed it over.
"You can turn your back, now," Anisa said, looking at the
men.
"Oh," Mike said, turning around, "right."
* * *
Anisa looked at Katya, who was standing with her arms
folded watching and then shrugged. She took the small rectangle
and spreading her legs slightly, stuck it to the inside of her thigh.
"You can still see it," Anisa said, triumphantly.
"Higher," Katya said, sighing angrily.
"If I put it any higher it will be inside of me!" Anisa
protested.
"And the problem with that is...?" Katya asked. "Besides, it
won't. Just put it higher. There is plenty of room. You just have
to actually touch yourself. Don't tell me you've never touched
that part before."
"Cottontail..." Mike said, warningly.
"Ow! Ow!" Anisa exclaimed as she peeled it back off. "That
hurts!"
"It's...pretty strong adhesive," Vanner replied, his back still
turned.
"Oh, no," Anisa said as she fumbled under the dress.
"What now?" Mike asked in exasperation.
"It's...caught," Anisa said, blushing. "On...hair. Down there."
"You should have waxed," Cottontail replied, her arms still
crossed. "This is silly. Let me carry it."
"I don't think Anisa is up to chatting up a guard," Mike
pointed out. "Do you have it in place?"
"Yes," Anisa said, adjusting her dress. "You can look again."
"Now, try walking in the heels," Mike said.
Anisa carefully tottered across the room, stopped at the far
side and turned without actually falling down.
"This is insane," Katya said, angrily. "Just let me do it! I can
chat up the guard and plant it!"
"She needs to learn," Mike said. "We can't be depending on
you to do all the outside work. Anisa, one foot in front of the
other, like you're walking on a narrow beam. Move your hips
with the motion and your shoulders against it. Undulate. Try it."
Anisa sighed and started back. She did pretty well until she
got her hips and shoulders out of sync and Adams
had to catch her before she fell.
"Nobody had better ever find out about this," she hissed,
pushing herself back up. The chief had been exceedingly careful
with his hands, but there wasn't much he could catch that wasn't
off-limits. He'd managed by wrapping both hands around her
waist. This caused her dress to head north and south,
respectively, which very nearly left her unclothed. At least in
important areas.
"Try it again," Mike said, sternly. "This is training. You are
going to be doing a mission every bit as important as the door-
kickers. They had to train, you have to train. If I'd thought ahead,
I would have brought one of the harem. I didn't. This is my fault.
Drop it on me. But we're going to need you to be able to do this.
And maybe more than just you. You'll be training at least one
other girl in the same things. Get used to it. And everyone is
going to know about it. You're going to have a security team
watching you."
"Okay, okay," Anisa said, readjusting her dress again. "Here
goes."
By the end of thirty minutes with Mike coaching her and
Katya inserting snarky, but pertinent, remarks, she could walk in
the heels and even undulate. A bit. Enough to look like a new
hooker on the street.
As the two left, Adams let out a
long sigh.
"I'm going to have to either go down on the street and hire a
girl or go take a long cold shower," the chief said. "That was
just..."
"Erotic as hell," Mike replied. "You can understand why
these pimps do what they do. Besides the money, which in this
society is nothing to sneeze at."
"It almost makes me rethink my choice of career," Adams admitted. "And they get to do this all
the time."
"And beat the girls around when they screw up," Mike said,
nodding.
"I'm not particularly into beating on women,"
Adams said, shrugging.
"Well, most of the girls they get don't exactly want to be
hookers," Mike pointed out. "And even the ones that do, don't
want to give up most of their hard earned money to the pimps. So
they beat on them until they learn better. It's a sucky situation.
And you know the fun part?"
"What?" Adams asked, frowning
curiously.
"How many whores have you fucked in some third world
shit-hole?" Mike asked, turning to look at him. "We're the reason
this goes on. You can't just say 'it's males' when you're one of the
males that benefited by it."
"Tell me something I don't know," Adams said, shrugging. "I don't notice you losing sleep over it."
"I do, sometimes," Mike admitted. "And I'm the one that
enjoys beating on women. I wish I had the money to buy up every
whore and potential whore on the planet and put them
somewhere safe."
"But if you did, you'd just have more kidnappings."
"There's that," Mike admitted, sighing.
"You ever think about this whole system as a good thing?"
Adams asked, musingly.
"What in the hell do you mean by that?" Mike snarled.
"Think about it," Adams replied,
calmly. "In the states, the predators snatch some girl off the
street, rape her and kill her. Here they snatch them off the street,
rape them and then sell them. Alive."
"Now there's a hell of a thought and no lie," Mike said,
quietly. "But you think that some of them don't die in the
process?"
"No, a bunch of them do," Adams
admitted. "But a bunch of them live, too. For a given value of
life. Which means still breathing. Concentrate on bringing home
a live one and leave the fucking existentialism for after the
mission, SEAL."
"Will do, Chief," Mike said, grinning.
"Now I'm gonna go find some abused, raped, forced-to-be-a-
whore whore and fuck her silly ass off. For cash. Without
beating on her. End of angst."
Chapter Eleven
"I don't know where to look," Anisa said, nervously trying to
adjust her dress so she wasn't showing so much skin.
"Anywhere but at the cars," Cottontail said, easily. She
clearly didn't care if her dress was riding up. Or down. She
looked as if she was terribly bored and more than willing to just
have the damned thing fall off. "If you look at the drivers they
might stop. That would be good on one level; we'd look like we
were actual working girls. But we'd have to turn down the offer.
Unless you're planning on doing a trick while you're doing this
and I don't suggest it."
"I'm not," Anisa snapped.
"Well, that's one problem off my mind," Cottontail said,
smirking. "You might want to try it, though. You don't have a
pimp to take all the money and cash is cash. Well, the Kildar
might want a cut."
"I'm not going to...do that with a man other than my
husband," Anisa said.
"And probably the Kildar, right?" Cottontail said, snidely.
"For your 'bride price', right? What do you think that is but
turning a trick? Maybe you could work up the bride price while
you're here..."
"Stop it," Anisa said, angrily. "Just...stop, okay? We're here
to work."
"Well, it's work..." Cottontail said, trailing off. "There's the
car."
"I see it," Anisa said, nodding.
"Don't look directly at it," Cottontail said, looking around.
"Look at the other girls, instead."
Anisa looked around and sighed.
"They are all dressed so..."
"Sluttily," Cottontail said, laughing nastily. "Men like that.
They like to have women that are fast, cheap and easy. They don't
have to worry about whether we like it or not. Most of them like
that we don't. They like to hurt us, to use us, to make us feel less
than they are."
"Not the Kildar," Anisa pointed out.
"Even the Kildar," Katya replied, sharply. "He likes that he
owns us, that he can use us."
"He treats you well," Anisa protested.
"But he still owns us," Cottontail snapped, turning to look
at the girl and waving at the whores along the street. "We're no
better than these! We're owned by the Kildar and he uses us at his
pleasure! The only difference is we don't walk the street! We just
live in his brothel for the use of him and his friends."
"He said he offered to let you all go," Anisa argued,
unhappily.
"To where?" Katya snapped back. "What can we do but
make our way on our backs? There are plenty of girls here who
chose to be here, because even this is better than wherever they're
running from! Because they don't have any other choice but to
sell their bodies. They don't have a family to go back to..." She
stopped and turned away, her face hard.
"Is that what happened to you?" Anisa asked, quietly, as they
continued walking.
"I don't talk about it," Cottontail said, bitterly.
"Do you have a family?" Anisa asked, still quietly.
"Just shut the fuck up, okay?" Katya replied. "We're nearly
there and we need to get our game face on."
"Okay," Anisa said, nervously. She very carefully did not
adjust the lower part of her dress.
The guard was a beefy guy in a sweat-stained shirt and
trousers. He was leaning on the hood of the car, casually
watching the girls on the street. If he was supposed to be
guarding the car, he was looking at the wrong people in Anisa's
opinion. Or, maybe not, given what she was planning on doing.
"Hi, big guy," Katya said in Russian. "My friend and I were
having an argument."
"I saw," the man said, stolidly.
"I say that you can tell the length of a guy's parts by his
hands," Katya said, slinking up to him. "And I notice you've got
really big hands..."
Anisa smiled in what she hoped was a winning way and
leaned up against the hood, turning away slightly. Patrick had
told her the easiest way to place the device would be in the wheel
well. The device had a magnet and the adhesive so it should stay.
"What do you say?" Katya asked, leaning up against the
guard. "How are you...hung?"
"Well enough for you," the man said, less stolidly. "Care to
find out?"
"Maybe," Katya said, coyly. "I've just had an hour session
with a guy whose dick was smaller than my finger. And I could
do more with my finger than he could with his dick. Do you
think you could do better?"
Anisa reached up under her skirt and ripped off the tracer,
trying not to whimper as she pulled out a fingerfull of pubic hair.
Katya was right; she should have shaved. She never had but she'd
heard about it. It seemed terribly...whorish. Okay, so she should
have shaved.
She turned back towards the guard, slipping her hand under
the wheel-well and pressing the tracer into place.
"I'm busy now," the guard said, slipping his hand up Katya's
dress and fingering her. "I'll be off in about an hour."
"And I'll get you off in much less," Katya said, pouting. "But
I'll see you then. You're going to be around here?"
"For sure," the guard said, running his hand over her breasts.
"I'll look forward to it. Bring your friend."
"Sure will," Katya said, walking off. "She needs the attention
of a real man, too."
"He stinks," Anisa said as they walked away.
"So do most of the Keldara," Katya replied. "So do most
tricks, at least around here. It's like they've never heard of soap.
Now let's get back to the hotel and maybe I can get some hot
water to wash his stink off."
* * *
"He's moving," Tolenka said.
"Got it," Jov replied, putting the car in gear. The four year
old gray Ladia had been purchased earlier in the day in a very
informal transaction involving cash and a promise to get the tags
transferred. It was less conspicuous for a stake-out than one of
the vans. But a van was right around the corner, loaded with
shooters. For that matter, there was an MP-5 at Tolenka's feet.
"The tracer's working fine," Egor said, looking at the screen
on his lap.
"Don't pull out, yet," Killjoy said from the backseat. He was
one of the American trainers who had accompanied the mission.
The Keldara were getting pretty damned good as shooters, but
they still didn't know diddly about moving around in the world.
Killjoy wasn't exactly a world traveller but he had more
experience than the Keldara and could think on his feet. He also
was somewhat smaller than Russell, which was why he was
crammed in the back of the small car.
"He had a couple of girls with him," Tolenka added.
"Could mean anything," Killjoy noted.
"Speaking of girls," Jov replied. "I couldn't believe it when I
saw Anisa!"
"Watch your mouth," Egor snapped. Not only was Anisa his
cousin, he'd worked with her in the intel section and respected
her.
"I'm not saying anything wrong," Jov said, smiling.
"But...All Father! I never realized what legs she had!"
"Jov..." Egor said, angrily.
"Can it," Killjoy said. "Jov, pull out. Egor, where'd he go?"
"He turned. Right. I think about three blocks away."
"Turn right at the next street," Killjoy said, looking at the
map. "He's headed across the river. We'll parallel then fall in
behind at the Soseua or whatever that damned road is called."
* * *
"He's gone to a townhouse across the river," Vanner said,
looking at his screens. "Confirm it's him by intercept. He called
someone named Vass and asked him if he had any girls meeting
your requirements. Also if he'd ever heard of you. No indication
that he's worried about Americans coming down on him."
"Odd, that," Mike said, musingly. He was ensconsed on the
bed with his fingers interlaced behind his head, looking at the
ceiling. "She had to have told them that she was an American,
right? She's at the very least a legal resident. And she would have
told them her father would pay money to get her back. I mean,
getting back a kidnap victim over here is no big deal. You pay off
the police, they don't try to arrest the kidnappers."
"So what's really going on?" Vanner asked.
"That's what I'm going to find out," Mike said, sitting up.
"Somewhere along the way. But right now, I need to know more
about this guy. I'm heading for bed and so should you. By
morning I want full intel on him."
"Got it," Vanner said.
"But put one of the girls on duty and you rack out," Mike
added. "I'll be right next door."
* * *
"He went back to the townhouse last night at eleven,"
Vanner said, rubbing his eyes and sipping coffee. "He took two
girls with him and no guards. Over the next six hours, girls came
trickling in in ones and twos. Looks like about a dozen. There
was at least one male present when he arrived and when he left he
brought a different girl with him. The townhouse is two story,
but it appears it may have a basement. I've got Sawn down at the
building records office looking for blueprints. He returned to the
coffee-shop and has not left. Neither has the male at the
townhouse and there appear to be at least three females still in
the house. The surveillance team was relieved at seven AM. Over
night they put up three surveillance cameras and laid in two
window microphones on the townhouse, one of them by his
apparent office and another by his bedroom. You want the take?"
"Is it what I'd expect?" Mike asked, biting on an already stale
roll.
"Pretty much," Vanner said. "The girls in the house are
apparently not fully trained. They're in the process of being
prepared, so to speak. This is the analysis from my section and
I've audited enough of the take to agree. I'm a little reluctant to
have the Keldara girls doing point on this. It's pretty brutal."
"They'll find out what it's all about when they get married,"
Mike said, shrugging. "Have a talk with them as a guy, though. I
don't want them getting so emotionally scarred they're put off of
sex for life. And who else is going to do it? The shooters?"
"Point," Vanner admitted. "We also placed two mikes in the
coffee shop, near his usual table, and I've, of course, got his
cellphone wired."
"If Adams ever shakes a leg, get him
up to speed," Mike said. "I'm going to go shopping."
* * *
"Mr. Duncan," Ahmed Pasha said, sitting down next to him.
"A little early for Johnny Walker is it not?"
"The sun's over the yard arm somewhere," Mike said,
swirling his drink. "Do you live here?"
"No," Pasha said, lifting his chin and clicking in negation.
"But it is a good place to conduct business. Many traders come in
here. How are your girls?"
"Almost recovered from the rigors of the trip thus far," Mike
said. "We're definitely leaving tomorrow morning."
"I have found one girl that would possibly meet your
requirements," Pasha said, leaning over conspiratorily. "A young
Ukrainian girl. Very nice, very pretty. Blonde. Not much in the
breast department but unspoiled and very pretty. And they may
yet grow; she is quite young."
"Works," Mike said, nodding. "Yours?"
"A friends'," Pasha said. "I can introduce you, if you wish."
"Pasha, you don't have any friends," Mike said. "What's your
cut?"
"Ten percent," Pasha said. "Minimum of one hundred euros,
cash."
"You really think this girl's worth a thousand euros?" Mike
said with a laugh. "Right. Pull the other one."
"Pull the other what?" Pasha asked, confused.
"Sorry, doesn't translate," Mike replied. "I was saying that
you were not being truthful with me. Girls here go for less than
five hundred euros, even the best."
"This one is unspoiled," Pasha said, sternly. "She will get
you much money where you are going. Enough that you will
pay."
"We'll see," Mike said. "Here?"
"I have a room here," Pasha said. "Two eleven. That is
neutral ground, yes?"
"Okay," Mike said with a sigh. "When?"
"I will call my friend," Pasha replied. "Perhaps soon after
noon."
"Okay," Mike said. "I'll give you my cell number."
Chapter Twelve
Pasha's room, as befitted a more or less permanent resident,
was much cleaner than the ones Mike had secured. That seemed
to be mostly his doing. Whatever his failings as a slave trader, he
was apparently quite neat in his housekeeping.
Mike was in an easy chair nursing another Johnny Walker
when there was a knock at the door. When Pasha opened it, a
man pushed a young girl into the room and then followed it up
with a slap to the back of the head to make her step further in.
"Here's the stupid slut I was talking about," the man said,
harshly. He was at least in his sixties with a red face and nose
half hidden by a white beard. He'd make a nice Santa Claus and
Mike wondered if he used that to pick up his victims.
The girl was clearly frightened, even terrified. And, yes, very
pretty. About five one, long blonde hair and blue eyes. And no
more than twelve. She was just starting to get the gangling
growth spurt that kids hit at that age and might, indeed, grow
some more tit. He wasn't sure she was even menstruating yet.
"Very nice," was what he said.
"Strip," Santa Claus ordered the girl.
"Please," she whimpered. "I just want to go home..."
"Strip, stupid whore..." Santa Claus snarled, drawing his
hand back.
"No marks!" Mike snapped, standing up and walking over.
"Girl, I must see what I'm buying. Take off your clothes."
"Please, no..." the girl begged, looking up at him with tears
in her eyes.
"This is how you do it without marks," Mike said, sighing
and gripping the back of the girl's head with his thumb and
forefinger. He applied pressure, hard, and received a gasp as the
girl's knees buckled at the pain. "Take off your clothes you stupid
slut."
The girl looked at the three hard-faced men and then closed
her eyes and began removing her clothing.
When she was fully stripped, Mike walked around her,
shaking his head. She had welts on her back, ass and budding
breasts.
"You hit her on the breasts?" Mike asked, angrily. "With
what?"
"My belt, of course," Santa Claus snarled. "What do you
expect me to do? She needs to be trained but I'm hardly up to it
anymore!"
"Christ on a crutch," Mike muttered in English then
continued in Russian. "These damned bruises will take weeks to
fade! I'm planning on being in
Montenegro
the end of next week; she won't be
presentable by then!"
"She's untouched," Santa Claus snapped. "She's a virgin.
That is worth something."
"She's bruised," Mike snarled. "Two hundred."
"Forget it!" the slaver replied. "Put your clothes on, bitch."
"Wait, wait," Pasha said. "We are friends here. Let us sit and
drink tea and talk."
The girl had quickly scooped up her dress and underthings in
her hands but Pasha shook his head.
"No," he said to her, pulling the clothes out of unresisting
hands. "Stand by the chairs, there is much to discuss."
Pasha poured green tea and laid out a service on the table as
the girl stood by, shivering in the cold of the room. Mike ignored
her as did the others.
"You have at least a week of travel, if you are staying off the
major roads," Pasha said, sipping his tea. "This will give most of
the bruises time to fade."
"Not all of them," Mike said, poking the girl on the ass.
"This one cut the skin for that matter. She'll scar."
"A virgin," Pasha noted.
"No proof of that," Mike pointed out. "She was probably
raped by her uncle who sold him to this guy."
"I took her from an arcade," Santa Claus replied with a
shrug. "These young girls, they trust me because I look like Saint
Niklaus. And I did not rape her. Even with the Viagra, sticking it
in young pussy like this is too hard. I use the older hookers who
are looser."
The girl had put her face in her hands and was quietly crying
when Mike stood up.
"Lie on the bed," Mike said, pushing her to the bed.
"If you take her here you must pay for..." Pasha said.
"I'm checking," Mike snapped. "Lie on the bed, on your back,
with your knees up in the air."
"Please," the girl whimpered through the tears.
"Shut up and do what I said, slut, or you'll be hurt again,"
Mike said, sternly.
When the girl was on the bed he stuck his fingers in her
pussy and spread it as wide as he could. Even with the dim light
in the room he could see the hymen and it was unbreached.
"Virgin all right," he admitted grumpily. "Get up and put
your clothes on, bitch."
"There, a virgin," Pasha said, happily. "For that, two hundred
is much too little. Fifteen hundred euros."
"You're crazy," Mike said, shaking his head. "No more than
three. So, Santa, you ever go over to Romania
?"
"No, only the
Ukraine
," Santa Claus replied as the girl finished
dressing. "Little slut, sit on my new friend's lap and show him
how biddable you can be."
Mike let the girl sit in his lap and ran his hands over her
stomach as she quivered in fear. He was careful to try to skip the
bruised areas but she still was quaking which didn't help much.
He had a very real problem with being the sort of son-of-a-bitch
he was playing and the entire scene was turning him on more than
he liked. He knew the girl could feel a very solid erection under
her pert little ass and he knew that made him not only a Class A
son-of-a-bitch but a pervert. Unfortunately, short of castration he
wasn't sure what to do about his little problem. Other than killing
bastards who actually let their demons out. Such as the two other
males in the room.
They chatted about the bad roads, the problems with weather
and the unreliability of finding virgins as they sipped green tea.
From time to time one or another would make an offer. Mike
almost walked when they balked at thirteen hundred euros until
he realized that would be leaving this poor kid in their hands. He
finally dickered them down to nine hundred euros but not a
penny less. He only got the hundred euros off because of the
bruises and actually getting up and walking half way to the door.
He pulled out the cash and forked it over with a grim face
then slapped the girl on the back of the head.
"If you think that you have had it bad so far, try to run away
from me," Mike growled in her ear. "I will do terrible things to
you. Terrible terrible things. Are you going to try to run?"
"No," the girl said, resignation in her voice.
"You could run from the old man, maybe," Mike pointed
out. "But I can outrun you. And if I have to even hurry, not only
will you not be a virgin by tomorrow, but I will sell you to the
worst whorehouse in Istanbul
for seamen to fuck all day long. And the reason I will
sell you there, is because you will be too messed up for anyone
else to buy you. Do you understand me?"
"Yes," the girl replied, her head down.
"Let us go," Mike said, nodding at Pasha and the still
unnamed Santa Claus. "If you can get more like this, we can do
business in the long term. But no marks!"
"I'll see what I can do," Santa Claus said, smiling and
standing up. "It was good doing business with you."
"The same," Mike said, graciously, taking the girl by the
wrist and leading her to the door.
His rooms were a flight up and down the hallway. When he
got to the command center room he paused.
"I'm glad you didn't run," he said, quietly. "The reason is, I'm
not a slaver and I would not want to have to hurt you. But you
must not talk about what you see in here, do you understand?"
"No," the girl said, fearfully.
"You will," Mike replied, knocking on the door.
One of the Keldara girls answered the knock and looked in
surprise at the girl Mike still had by the wrist.
"Graznya," Mike said, thankfully. "Just the lady I needed.
Come on, girl. What's your name, anyway?"
"Oksana," the girl said, quietly, her eyes widening as she saw
the computers and electronics set up around the room.
"This is Graznya, Oksana," Mike said, gently pushing her
further into the room. "She's not a slave, not a whore. She works
for me. We're doing something here and it's necessary that I act
like a slaver. I'm sorry that you were put through that, but you are
safe, now."
"Really?" Oksana asked, panting.
"Really, really," Graznya said, smiling. "This is the Kildar.
He is a renowned fighter and he does not harm women."
"Unless I have to," Mike pointed out. "Sorry about what
happened in there. But that fat bastard was about to smack you
one across the face. Again."
"Come in," Graznya said, sighing. "We know something of
what you have been going through and we are very sorry. Where
are you from?"
"The Ukraine
," Oksana said. "Near Kremenchug
."
"Well, we have much to do," Graznya said, pulling her
further into the room and settling her in a chair. "But we will see
if there is a way to get you back there. You have family?"
"No," Oksana replied, quietly. "I was raised in orphanage.
They had sent me out only the day before. I was at a fair when the
man, Hadeon, approached me. He offered to buy me lunch and I
was very hungry. Then he said he could get me a good job in
Italy
."
"Which is one of the places you might have ended up," Mike
said, sighing. "I won't speak as to the quality of the job, since
that's rather obvious. I'm sorry, Oksana, but that story is very
common. This is how many girls end up in places like this." He
paused and looked around the room at the monitors. "Well, not
like this."
"What is this?" Oksana asked, finally settling down. "What
are you doing?"
"We're tracking a girl who was kidnapped, as you were,"
Graznya replied. "We know she came as far as here. We are trying
to find out where she went."
"Why?" Oksana asked, suddenly tearing up again. "Why do
you look for her when nobody cared about me!"
"Because her father is rich and has powerful friends," Mike
said, bluntly. "You have neither a rich father nor powerful
friends. Well, you didn't." He looked at her and cocked his head
on the side. "I'm not sure what we're going to do with you. I
needed to buy you because it made our cover stronger, but I'm
not sure what to do with you, now. I'd hoped you'd have a family
to go home to."
"So you could get more money?" the girl asked, unhappily.
"No, I have plenty of that," Mike said, waving his hand
around the room. "This isn't cheap. No, you were going to be
returned gratis. But with nobody to go home to... Well, that
presents me with a problem. I'll think about it."
* * *
When Mike had left the room, Oksana looked at Graznya
with wide eyes.
"He is very strange," the girl whispered. "He frightens me."
"Well, you don't have to be frightened of him any more,"
Graznya replied. "And as for the being strange...you get used to
it."
* * *
"We got anything different?" Mike asked as he wandered
next door. Vanner had moved the data analysis section to the
adjoining room since the other one was both crowded and busy.
"Very straightforward," Vanner said. "We haven't really had
a lot of time to pin down his movements, but it looks like he
mostly is a repeater."
"So we have a choice of taking him down at the café
or at his house or in movement. And he's got, effectively,
hostages, at each point."
"He didn't bring a girl back with him in the morning,"
Vanner pointed out. "If he doesn't tomorrow..."
"Works. I'll send Adams out to find
a quiet spot."
Chapter Thirteen
"Bravo team in position."
Mike looked back at the van full of Keldara and nodded to
Yevgeni.
"Alpha in position."
"Target is moving. Target is unaccompanied, repeat
unaccompanied."
"Roll the op up," Mike said, quietly.
"Roll up," Yevgeni repeated.
"Roll up confirmed," Vanner replied. "We are out of here in
one five minutes. Team Charlie is in place to recover telltales."
"Don't forget to pay the bill," Mike muttered. "Don't send
that."
"Roger," Yevgeni replied. They were both in civilian clothes
with body armor underneath. The team in the back was in full
battle rig. Smegnoff was a hard worker and it was just after
dawn. He'd been heading back to the café to get some
paperwork done. He also apparently counted down his cash in the
back room. That was where the majority of his "associates" were
located and his main base for farming his girls and doing deals.
"Target is repeating, repeating. Kramor Prospect so far."
"Get ready," Mike said, turning his head. "It looks like us.
Close up."
"Close up," Yevgeni said as he started the van. "Close up."
Santos Street
was two lane with cars parked along both sides. The
van for Alpha team was parked in an alley half way down the
block.
"Closed up," the following team called. "Target is turning
on Santos
. One, two...Go! Go! Go!"
Yevgeni threw the van into drive while hammering the
accelerator. The lightly loaded van jerked out into the road in a
cloud of blue smoke and immediately began disgorging fighters
in full battle dress, MP-5s and silenced SPRs pointed at the
oncoming Ladia.
Smegnoff was a survivor of numerous street battles and he
had quick reactions. He didn't bother to come to a full stop
before throwing the Ladia into reverse and hitting the accelerator.
The problem being that the four year old Ladia following him
slammed into him from the rear and then went to full power,
turning his car sideways across the street.
It was less than ten meters to the car and before he could try
to drive out of the ambush the lead Keldara had smashed in his
driver side window. The second in line dropped his MP-5, drew a
taser from his holster and fired it into the slaver.
In no more than seven seconds the slaver was in the back of
the van, wrapped in rigger's tape, leaving only two smoking
Ladias for the police to try to explain.
* * *
"Good morning, Yuri," Mike said, pleasantly, as the man's
eyes flew open from the ammonia capsule. "Did you have a good
rest? I'm sure you recognize the after-effects of chloroform;
you've used it a time or two."
"Muh-wugfuh?" the man said through the rigger's tape on
his mouth.
"Oh, sorry," Mike said, reaching up and ripping the tape off
the man's face.
Yuri Smegnoff was taped to a chair which was firmly bolted
into the middle of an abandoned factory floor. It had probably
been a supervisor's chair when the factory had been in operation.
Now it served Mike's uses perfectly. He had to give
Adams a bonus for scrounging up the facility on
such short notice. Another note to make, they needed to do more
ground work at each stop. This wasn't the last such interrogation
that they'd have to do.
"Ow! What the fuck is this? I don't know who you are but..."
"Yuri, Yuri," Mike said, kindly. "All I am is an honest
businessman trying to do a job. Now that job is for people who
view you and me as no more than insects. In your case, one to be
stepped upon. You've made some very powerful people very
angry, Yuri. Now, this can go easy, or it can go hard. Let's make
it easy, shall we?" He drew out a folder and pulled out a picture,
flipping it in front of the man's face.
"Now, I know you see a lot of young women," Mike said,
nicely. "But I'm really hoping, for your sake, that you recognize
this one. Because if you don't, I'm going to have to improve your
memory."
"I...I do," Yuri said, licking his lips. "Yes, I remember her."
"Ah, good," Mike said. "Now, Yuri, there's a thing about my
friends here," Mike said, gesturing at the Keldara standing behind
the chair. Yuri hadn't even noticed them and when he turned
around his eyes flew open. Mike had chosen two of the larger
shooters and they were both holding MP-5s at port arms and
wearing full battle armor. "They're really simple farmers from the
back hills. And they're simple people. They have a very strong
code of honor. So they really don't like lies. Not a bit. And since
I'm their leader, I need to uphold that tradition. So, please, Yuri,
let's not be lying as we go on. You do remember her, yes?"
"Yes," Yuri said, licking his lips again. "One of my catchers
picked her up near the town square. She said she was Ukrainian,
that she was looking for work."
"Go on," Mike said.
"Can I have some water?" Yuri asked, carefully. "I am very
parched."
"It's an effect of fear," Mike pointed out. "It comes from the
adrenaline. I'm sure that many of your little girls had very dry
mouths. Did you give them water, Yuri? No, I thought not. So,
you picked her up near the town square. And you brought her to
your townhouse?"
"Yes," Yuri said, starting to breath hard.
"And you settled her, there, I'd think," Mike said, raising an
eyebrow. "We're men of the world; we know what that means.
You dipped your wick and that of a couple of your guards. You
beat her around and told her she belonged to you, now. All the
rest of that sort of thing. Yes, Yuri?"
"Yes," the slaver said, quietly. "But this is who you look
for? She had no friends!"
"We'll get to that later," Mike said, smiling. "So, you settled
her down and then what, Yuri? She's not walking the street for
you. We've checked rather carefully. So, where'd she go, Yuri?"
"I did what I always do," the slaver said with false bravado.
"I sold her. I don't remember to who."
"Ah, Yuri, Yuri," Mike said, reaching back and accepting a
large sledge hammer from the Keldara. "Bad answer."
"No, look, I can try..." the man said as Mike moved the
hammer back and then forward into his left knee.
When the screams died down, Mike leaned forward to the
man's ear.
"Yuri, Yuri, my friend. We are friends, right? Yuri, that was
a bad answer. Do you know why that was a bad answer, Yuri?"
"I need to remember..." Yuri whispered.
"It's because we've had your house and coffee shop bugged
for the last day and a half," Mike replied. "You talked about how
you keep careful records. You sold two girls yesterday, Ionna and
Sofiya, to a man named Markov. We've got rather good pictures
of all three of them. Sofiya is a lovely lady, isn't she? And you
got seven hundred euros for her, as I recall. And you told Markov
that you kept all of your information to hand, in your PDA. So,
Yuri, why didn't you mention your PDA to me, please?"
"No names," Yuri gasped. "No names."
"Why, Yuri?" Mike asked, straightening up. "Because the
men you sold her to are very dangerous? Yuri, I eat people like
you, and the bad men you work with, for lunch. And is there
something they can do to you that I'm not going to, Yuri, my
friend, my buddy? So, who did you sell her to? Actually, what's
the password for you PDA? My little geek friend would very
much like to know. He says he's having trouble hacking it."
"Hey!" Vanner said from the back of the room. "These things
aren't easy. He's used at least a ten point encryption and you can't
just hammer them on the ground and pull out the info!"
"No, but I suppose that's possible with you, isn't it, Yuri?"
Mike asked, smiling in his most friendly manner. "So, Yuri,
password, please?"
"No names," the man gasped again then shrieked when Mike
lightly kicked his knee.
"Yuri, Yuri, I grow tired of this," Mike said, picking up the
sledge again.
"Please," Yuri said, eyeing the heavy hammer. "Please. I
can't give you names."
"Oh, Yuri, and you were doing so well," Mike said, tossing
the hammer onto his shoulder. "How many women have begged
you, Yuri? Did the one that tried to run away beg you, Yuri? And
why should I listen to your pleas when you didn't listen to theirs?
So, Yuri, count of five," Mike continued, lifting the sledge. "And
after we've worked through the major joints, there are always the
intermediate bones..."
"Capital A, zero, One..." Yuri gasped.
"I'm in," Vanner said a moment later. "What name did you
use for her?"
"Her name was Natalya," Yuri said. "Natalya Y I think."
"Natalya," Vanner muttered. "Damn there are a lot of
Natalyas in here. Try Natalya S, Yuri. That was two weeks ago."
"No, she was two or three months ago," Yuri said. "There
are pictures."
"Sure are," Vanner said, wonderingly. "Kildar, you need to
see this."
Mike set the hammer down and walked over to where the
intel specialist was holding the PDA up.
"I've hotsynched it," Vanner said, unplugging the cord.
"We've got the whole thing. Including his list of clients and who
bought what girl, etcetera. But you've got to see this."
Mike picked up the PDA and looked at the picture. Then he
walked back over and opened up the folder, pulling out the pic of
the girl on the beach.
They were identical. And there was more than one. Most of
the rest were of the same girl, without the bathing suit.
"Nice tits," Mike said. "We've got what we want. Close it
down and call in the clean-up team."
* * *
"Penny for your thoughts, Mike?" Adams said.
They'd made it from Chisinau to Vatra Dornei in one day by
hard travelling. The crossing at Gostesti had been guarded but
they'd gotten through that by slipping the appropriate amount of
klei to the guards.
Once in Romania
they'd gotten on National Route 17, which
would have just about been adequate to a poorly maintained
county road in a poor county in the states, and made the best time
they could, ignoring the potholes to the extent they could. By just
after dusk they'd made it to Saratel, short of Cluj Napoca but not
by much. However, that was the area that Pasha had reported
roadblocks so Mike decided to settle in at a small hotel that
generally catered to Transylvanian tourists and move on the next
day.
He set the bottle of beer on his stomach and considered the
chief's question.
"Well, I'm wondering if we weighted the body enough,"
Mike admitted. "I think a couple more concrete blocks would
have been a good idea."
"He'll stay down long enough," Adams said, shrugging. "And it's not like they're going to be
looking at us. He had a lot of enemies. We were barely on his
radar horizon."
"And I'm wondering what the hell I'm going to do with
whatsername," Mike admitted.
"You mean Oksana?" Adams asked.
"Nice girl. She can ride on my lap the rest of the way."
"I mean long term," Mike replied. "The same problems apply
to her that apply to all the other waifs I've been picking up. I need
to find a boarding school in
Argentina
or something that will start taking them
in."
"Worry about that after the mission's over,"
Adams suggested.
"Good point," Mike said, frowning and taking a pull off the
beer. "And I'm wondering just what the fuck we're really
chasing."
"Ah, now we get to the source of your angstiness, Great
Leader," Adams said. "You got another
one of those?"
"Cooler," Mike said. "There are three bits of information to
sort. What we were told. What we know is true. And what we
know about the overall situation. We were told that the girl was
a dependent of a rich constituent. That is, almost certainly, a lie.
If she was when she got into that crap she would have screamed
bloody murder about how they could make more money off of
her from her father. And Yuri was pretty damned sure that she
wasn't an American. When he was begging for his life, he added
that she didn't even speak English, only Russian. So..."
"So, she's not what the fine senator told you,"
Adams said, belching. "We're still going to find her,
right?"
"Oh, yeah," Mike said. "For one thing, there's a rich senator
who owes me one huge fucking favor for sending me on a wild
goose chase when I could be fucking my harem. And for another,
this has already cost like crazy. He's in for the five mil or we'll be
committing crimes against the peace in the Continental United
States. I'm wondering why we're really here."
"Well, we know the senator really wants to find her," Adams pointed out.
"Do we?" Mike said. "Or are we just being diverted from
something else? Is the senator, for example, running a scam with
the Chechens to get us out of the valley so we can get hit while
the team is gone?"
"Pretty unlikely," Adams said,
frowning. "I don't know what they could use as payment to the
senator and so we're gone? The other five teams are still there.
And Nielson's running the store. That one doesn't wash."
"I'm brainstorming," Mike pointed out. "First you come up
with the ideas. Later you knock them down. Okay, that one
wasn't so great. But why? And if he does want her found, why?
And why me?"
"You can find her and are imminently deniable,"
Adams pointed out. "How many people could testify
that they saw you and the senator together? And nobody but the
two of you know what was said in the room."
"The secret service guys saw us meet," Mike said. "On the
other hand, I don't know they're service. And that guy on the
Moldava desk."
"And you know he exists?" Adams
asked.
"Ouch," Mike said, grimacing. "Nope."
"Something for Vanner to research," the chief said. "And one
more thing."
"Go," Mike said.
"Who besides Nielson is briefed in and not on the op?" Adams asked.
"Nobody," Mike said, frowning. "Why? You think
somebody's going to try to clean us up? Good luck."
"There's always poison, but no," Adams said. "I was wondering who could be broken free to go
have a chat with your friends in
Washington
."
"No one," Mike admitted. "But good point. At this point
we're in fuck-up zone. I'll put Sawn on it. I can spare him. We're
really running the team and he can think on his feet. Time to
cover our ass."
"Or somebody's anyway," Adams
said. "I'm pretty sure we're going to end up getting fucked
somehow."
"Or somebody will," Mike said.
Chapter Fourteen
Timisoara
turned out to be a fairly interesting place, for a
Romanian city.
Much more Western in design and feel than the other towns
they'd passed through, Timisoara
had a rich history. The fertile bottomland around the
river Temis had attracted settlement as early as 200BC.
Subsequently, the area had been held successively by the Dacians,
the first known settlers, the Romans, the Magyar, the Ottomans,
the Hapsburgs and every other notable group in
Eastern Europe's history. Burned to the ground by
the Mongols, burned again when retaken from the Ottomans,
who had made it a central military repository and armory, it was
rebuilt for the last time by the Hapsburgs and still retained their
baroque influence. It was that influence, to a large degree, that
set it off from other Romanian towns.
The reasons it had been fought over so often were apparent.
The Temis river gave it easy navigation and it had close ties to
the various mines in the Transylvanian region. With a strong road
and rail network, it was one of the vital strategic points in the
area called the "banat" with links to
Hungary, and thus the West, and Serbia
to the Balkans.
The same reasons that every major conqueror had captured
or destroyed it, now made it a central way-point for the transport
of nubile flesh.
Smegnoff's helpful PDA had listed the buyer of Natalya as
one Nicu Gogasa, a man with whom he'd done extensive
business. There was even a pic of Gogasa sitting in the
Café Arrenica with the late and unlamented Yuri, both of
them with young, lightly dressed females, sitting on their laps.
They were clearly good buddies. Nicu was much slighter than
Yuri and better, even flashily, dressed. He looked more like a
mildly successful American pimp than a mafia thug. There were
contact numbers including cell, a PO box for mail and a physical
address; the Club Dracul. They even had a website that included a
map.
Many Romanian official records turned out to be on the
internet. From these, with the sometimes problematic assistance
of an online translator, Vanner had been able to determine that
Nicu Gogasa was listed as the sole owner of the Club Dracul.
Mike found it unlikely that he was really the sole owner. He
looked far too flash. Clubs were a great place to wash money so
the mob was probably a silent backer. But it meant he was
probably going to be around the club.
So it was in this happy state of mind of having all the initial
intel he needed that Mike pulled up in front of the Club Dracul in
the company of Russell. The former Marine barely fit in the
rented Fiat, which just made Mike all warm inside.
The first thing to make him pause was the security. Two
guys in battle dress, both damned near Russell's size, were
guarding the door, while a third bouncer in a t-shirt that revealed
bulging muscles was sweeping for weapons.
The second thing was the line, which stretched down the
block.
"Mr. Gogasa is apparently making money," Mike said as they
cruised past the entrance looking for parking. "Law Level Nine
protocols."
"Crap, I hate those," Russell muttered, reaching under his
jacket and beginning to divest himself of weapons. It took a
while.
"Alpha Team," Mike said, keying his mike with his voice.
"Law Level Nine zone. Battle
armor. Probable heavy weapons."
"Great," Adams growled back. "Try
not to start a free-fire."
Mike finally found a parking space in a for-pay lot and
headed down towards the line for the club.
"Your motivation is I'm important and you're my muscle,"
Mike said over his shoulder as he walked past the line, reaching
in his pocket.
"Your motivation is to get us out of this fucker alive,"
Russell replied.
The bouncers in armor eyed both of them as they approached
the front of the line but it was the sweeper that waved them to a
stop.
"I understand there's a cover," Mike said, flicking a folded
hundred euro note up where it could be seen over his thumb.
"That covers it," the bouncer growled in accented English.
He took the bill, but still insisted on sweeping them. Mike wasn't
as sorry about leaving the weapons behind as he was about the
radios and cameras.
The line skipped, the two of them walked in, paid their real
cover of seven hundred and twenty-five thousand lei, or about
ten euros, got their hands stamped and walked through the doors.
Romanians considered the popular Western image of
"Count Dracula" as an insult. "Dracul" translated as "Dragon"
and was the name of an ancient order of Romanian knights, the
equivalent of being named to the Order of the Garter. Vlad Tepes
was, in fact, a defender of Romania against incursions by the
Ottoman Empire and was celebrated in Romania not as a blood-
drinking monster but as a strong and willful leader of the anti-
Ottoman forces, a sort of fifteenth century George Washington.
The fact that he occasionally ate his dinner while surrounded
by hanged bodies was politely overlooked.
The Club Dracul, however, bowed to the Western tradition.
It was more Gothic than most Goth clubs in the states, with
coffins on the walls and anks being the primary symbol. The
waitresses were dressed in long flowing gowns, slit down to their
navels in the front and up to their waists on the side, and wore
heavy black eye shadow and lipstick. The pointed teeth on many
of them came as something of a shock, though, even to Mike
who had spent plenty of time in Goth clubs in the States.
Unsurprisingly, the club was dark as hell. There were three
elevated dance floors, each with a girl or girls up on them
wearing from very little to nothing at all and two floor level
dancing areas. These were crowded with both males and females.
The Romanians clearly believed in combining regular dancing
with strip. For that matter, as he was checking out the
environment Mike saw one of the girls he'd pegged as a patron
get up on the platform and start making out with the dancer while
slowly stripping.
"Okay," Mike said. "I think this is my kind of place."
"What?" Russell shouted over the heavy European
industrial-dance music booming from speakers set all around the
periphery.
"Let's get a drink and pace!" Mike replied.
"Special dance, sir," a nearly naked brunette asked, rubbing
up against Russell.
"Maybe later," Russell replied, looking around.
"Grab her while you can," Mike said over his shoulder.
"Here," Russell said, handing her some cash. "Walk with
us."
"We want someplace out of the way," Mike shouted at the
girl as they walked to the bar. "But where we can watch!"
"I no speak English," the girl replied. "You wanna good
time? I not expensive."
"She speaks enough English," Russell shouted.
"Is it just me, or would a firefight be quieter?" Mike
screamed back. He was definitely going to be hoarse by the end
of this evening.
"Much!" Russell yelled back.
They got their drinks, and a "pay-me" drink for the brunette
then circulated as the girl continued to try to scam Russell out of
all his spare change.
"Eleven o'clock," Russell yelled.
Mike looked left and got a glimpse of the tango. Nicu was
near the back of the club at a semi-circular banquet. He had a girl
on either side, then a couple of guys that Mike pegged as friends
or business acquaintances. There were a few more girls scattered
around but most of the people in the immediate vicinity were
muscle.
There had been more muscle scattered around the room but
it was definitely concentrated in the vicinity of Nicu. And the
muscle around him was as heavily armored as the bouncers out
front. And more heavily armed. One of them was toting a Czech
Skorpion 9mm SMG on friction straps.
Mike got all that in one quick glance then spotted a table
where they could keep an eye on the tango and the floor.
When they were in posession of the table, Mike leaned over
to Russell.
"Go lay the bitch and check out the security in the rooms,"
Mike said as quietly as he could under the circumstances.
"Will do," Russell said, taking one of her upper arms in a
hamlike fist.
"He be very good to you!" Mike yelled to the hooker as they
walked away.
"You be good to me?" a female voice yelled by his ear.
Mike turned to look into an exquisite pair of nearly black
eyes. Very shapely. So was the rest of the body when he got his
eyes off of hers. And he could see that plainly because every
stitch she had on was see-through.
"Maybe," Mike yelled back. "You sit and talk. I pay."
"Okay," the girl yelled back. "I speak English."
"So what the fuck are you doing in a place like this?" Mike
asked, looking around for a waitress.
"Making money," the girl replied with a laugh. "You want
drink? I get."
"Only one for you," Mike said, pulling out a twenty euro
note and handing it to her. "Get something real for yourself and
come back! There's more where that came from."
"I will," the girl said, eeling away through the crowd.
When she got back, with a real honest-to-God energy drink,
she handed him the change.
"Yours," Mike yelled. "And here," he continued, handing
over another twenty. "That means you stay with me for an hour."
"Twenty minutes," the girl replied, tucking the the money
into her g-string. "Twenty minutes, twenty euros. You want
blow? You want fuck?"
"How much?" Mike asked.
"Twenty minutes, twenty euros," the girl yelled back,
laughing.
"What's your name, girl who laughs?" Mike asked.
"Nikki."
"Sure it is," Mike replied, shaking her hand. "I'm Mike."
"Sure it is!"
"Nice club," Mike yelled back, looking around.
"Is only good dance club in Timisoara
," Nikki yelled back. "All others closed. Government
shut them down. Said they were illegal brothels!"
"So is this," Mike pointed out.
"You noticed!" Nikki said, laughing again. Very merry eyes.
"See man in corner?"
"There's a bunch of them," Mike pointed out.
"Silk suit, silk shirt, open at collar, gold chain, Tanya and
Svetlana feeling him under table?"
"Got it," Mike yelled.
"Nicu Gogasa. Owns club. Says he owns club, anyway.
Twenty euros, twenty minutes. Fifteen to him, five to me. And all
of the five goes to pay off my 'debt' for when he bought me from
the man who raped me. Or to food or my clothes that I don't even
want."
"That sucks," Mike said, distantly. It was clear he wasn't
really listening.
"Very," Nikki said, her face suddenly hard. "But all other
clubs, close by government."
"Somebody's got the ear of the government," Mike said,
looking around.
"Club is owned by Albanians," Nikki said, turning sideways
and spitting on the ground in a most unladylike fashion. "Run
whores through here. Bring them in from all over. Then they go
away."
"When are you going to go away?" Mike asked, looking at
her darkly.
"Soon," Nikki said, no longer laughing. "Club always have
new girls. That what makes it best in town. Would leave if I
could. Can't."
"No papers," Mike said. "Where are you from?"
"Belarus
," Nikki said. "You know story, right? You
been in clubs like this, yes?"
"Many times," Mike said with a nod. "Was it a waitressing
job in Italy
?"
"Taking care of kids in
Belgium
," Nikki said, sadly. "I was looking forward
to it."
"Things suck all over," Mike replied.
"Seem like nice guy," Nikki said. "Like boyfriend I had in
Belarus
. Why you go to clubs like this?"
"To meet pretty girls like you," Mike said.
"No," Nikki said. "Eyes are wrong. Not watching girls,
watching men. Not gay ones. The breakers."
"Bouncers," Mike corrected, automatically.
"That too," Nikki said, reaching out and turning his face to
her. "And breakers."
"Gotcha," Mike replied. "Good work if you can get it."
"You think?" Nikki asked, angrily.
"What would you say if I told you I was shopping?" Mike
asked, turning to look out at the floor again.
There was a pause and he looked over at the girl.
"I'd say maybe," Nikki admitted. "Is that what you do?"
"Maybe," Mike said. "How much for you?"
"To buy?" Nikki asked, angrily. "You think you can just buy
like so much vodka?"
"If I walked over to whatsisname and offered him five grand
euros, what do you think he'd say?" Mike asked, turning to look
at her again.
"I think your twenty minutes are up, that's what I think,"
Nikki said, turning away.
"I don't," Mike said, grabbing her arm. "Sit and talk. You've
got five more minutes. Don't make me take it up with the
management."
"You would," Nikki said, sitting down and crossing her
arms in front of her chest.
"Let me put it this way, would you rather stay and take your
chances with the Albanians or with me?" Mike asked, turning at
movement and realizing it was Russell coming back through the
crowd.
"I think the Albanians," Nikki spat.
"Bad bet," Mike said as Russell sat down. "Well?"
"Wired to the max," Russell replied. "Camera and probably
sound."
"Live on Candid Camera?" Mike asked. "Must be off-
putting to the customers."
"They were concealed," Russell said. "I had her get on top so
I could get a good look around."
"You're not shopping," Nikki said.
"Shit!" Russell snapped. "She speaks English?"
"Quite well," Mike replied. "Go on."
"Security door at both ends," Russell said, looking at the
girl. "Booths along the sides, curtains. She was very professional
but still sort of stumbled through the motions. She hardly cried at
all, though. These are intermediate whores. They're still getting
settled in."
"You're looking for better trained?" Nikki asked, nastily.
"We're doing research," Mike said. "On the sex trade in Eastern Europe."
"Sure you are," Nikki snorted.
"Parts of it," Mike said. "And you talk a lot. Don't you get in
trouble for that?"
"All the time," Nikki said.
"They're good about not leaving scars," Mike noted.
"You should look under my hair," Nikki said. "And the
needle marks don't show up much."
"Gotcha," Mike said, standing up. "Come on."
"Don't go over there," Nikki said, pulling back. "Please."
"Time to find out what you're worth," Mike replied,
dragging her towards Nicu's table.
She straightened up and tried to appear as if she liked the
idea as soon as a bouncer looked her way and had almost
managed a smile by the time they got to the table. One of the
muscle stood up and held his hand out to stop the twosome but
Nicu waved them forward with interest in his eyes.
"Mind if I sit?" Mike said, waving at the chairs filled by
women.
"No," Nicu said, glancing at Nikki darkly.
"Nice club," Mike said. "Very classy."
"Thanks," Nicu said, looking sideways at one of the men at
the booth and then back. "What can I do for you?"
"How much for this one?" Mike asked, waving at Nikki.
"For the night?" the pimp asked, grinning. "Five hundred
euros. She could have told you that. Should have told you that,"
he added, looking at Nikki again, this time with a smile that
promised pain later.
"No, to buy," Mike said. "I'm in the market."
"That, of course, would be out of the question," Nicu said,
smiling faintly. "That would constitute sexual slavery. This
young lady is free to come and go at any time."
"Sure she is," Mike said. "Half the cops in town would pick
her up for you if she could even get out of the club. We've
danced through all the proper forms. How much? Time is money,
Mr. Gogasa."
"And you are?" Nicu asked, suddenly curious.
"A drunk American who wants to buy a sex-slave," Mike
said, blankly. "Of course. What else?"
"Many things," Nicu said, glancing sideways again. Mike
ignored the look but he'd now pegged the "associate" as
something on the order of a control.
"Well, what I actually am is a guy passing through with a
group of girls intended for sale in Macedonia
," Mike said. "A special sale. Very special.
I think she would do well at it."
"And I can believe that or not," Nicu replied.
"Would you believe five thousand euros?" Mike asked.
"Hah!" Nicu said, grinning. "You make me laugh. I will
make more than that off of her before I sell her."
"You don't sell her," Mike pointed out. "You move her to
your boss' network." He glanced over at the "associate" and
nodded. "Right?"
"And we will make more," the man replied, coldly. "Far
more."
"Maybe, maybe not," Mike said. "Sure, you move her
through the network, maybe to Albania
then over to Italy
. Then up to the rest of Europe, maybe the
US or UK
. But what's going to happen along the
way? You lose how many girls that start from here? What's your
actual profit per girl? I know I will. And you don't have to deal
with her support anymore. Or the possible loss. Raise, fold or
call."
"Fourteen thousand," Nicu said, glancing over at the
Albanian with a raised eyebrow to which he received a nod.
"Out of the question," Mike snapped. "Half that, maybe. I
can walk out onto the street and buy any four free women for
that much."
"But she is trained," Nicu pointed out. "She has been taught
not to try to escape, what that gets her. And she has been trained
to give sex well. Would you like her to show you how well she
sucks? Nikki is a very good sucker. Thirteen is a very reasonable
price."
"All of that is assumed," Mike pointed out. "And your
training is sunk costs," he added, gesturing at the muscle. "You
pay them from the profit from the bar, not even counting the
money you're laundering through here."
"What money?" the Albanian asked, angrily.
"Oh, get off it," Mike snapped. "Clubs are perfect laundering
spots. Did you take in a thousand in cover charges or ten
thousand? How are the police to know? Water the alcohol and
charge it at full price then figure on the margin. Then there's the
girls. Are they turning ten tricks a night or twenty? The difference
between the two all goes in your pocket. Do me a favor and don't
take me for an idiot, okay?"
"Okay," the Albanian said. "But you must take us for idiots.
You come in here with a bullshit story about selling girls in
Macedonia
. To who? I know all the buyers in Macedonia
."
"I don't know who they go to after our special customers are
done," Mike said. "I just get them to the house in Macedonia
."
"There was a crackdown on those," Nicu said, frowning.
"Most got shut down."
"Jesus," Mike said, looking at the Albanian. "You don't keep
him around for his brains, do you? Who forced the crackdown?"
"IFOR," the Albanian said, looking at him carefully. "And
KFOR. And you're American military. The haircut, the build.
Their fucking Special Force, yes?"
"So you think they really cracked down on our house?"
Mike asked.
"You buy for the military?" Nicu asked, really confused
now.
"Of course not," Mike said, sighing. "Soldiers can't afford
what we sell."
"You make black funds," the Albanian said, nodding as he
sat back. "You run house that raises money so your military can
do the things your government doesn't pay for. The things your
parliament cannot know about, yes? Twelve thousand. Because
the American military has been very good to my people."
Mike had to admit that the Albanian would make a great
writer for the Democratic Underground. Of course, there was
more than a gram of truth to it. He did do black work and he was
doing some fundraising. He'd have to give it some thought. But
he knew he didn't sell girls. End of existential angst as the chief
would say.
"And for the Israelis, yes?" Nicu said, the light finally
dawning.
"There are things you don't talk about," Mike said with
another sigh. "But let's just say that Mossad got its funding cut
way back this year, just when we really needed them to keep
funding their Damascus
office. Okay? And thirteen is out of the question. I
need to make a damned profit, okay?"
Over a couple of drinks and more than one copped feel they
got an eventual price of ten five worked out.
"And you think you will make a profit from her in Macedonia
?" the Albanian asked.
"For what we offer rich bastards from the states and Japan
?" Mike asked. "You betcha."
"We have such visitors," the Albanian said, still clearly
puzzled. As well he should be; Mike was spinning bullshit so fast
it was practically brown silk.
"Look," Mike said, shaking his head. "What is the US
Military known for?"
"Destroying countries?" one of the other men asked.
"Very good bombs?" Nicu said.
"Invading any country that has oil?" the Albanian asked,
shrugging. "Being very good at killing people and less good at
finding them?"
You just wait, motherfucker, Mike thought.
"Okay, all of that," was what he said. "But the main thing
that matters here is we don't talk. What happens at the house,
stays at the house. Period fucking dot. That's something that our
customers can depend upon. We don't have fucking cameras in
the booths. Hell, we don't even have booths. You have your
choice of anything from silk bedrooms to the dungeons. And
anything goes if you've got the cash. Understand?"
"I have never heard of this house," the Albanian said,
frowning.
"See? Now go get your clothes, honey," Mike said, looking
at Nikki. "You're mine, now."
* * *
Once they were out on the street, with Mike and Russell
flanking the whore, Mike leaned over to her ear.
"Nikki, you really don't want to run," he whispered. "Not
just because of the bad things that Nicu will end up doing to you
if you do. Just go along with us and you won't be sorry."
"So I can be raped in a dungeon by rich old men?" Nikki
asked, breathing hard and fast as they approached the car. All she
had was a tube dress and a small bag that couldn't hold much
more than cosmetics. He had to wonder where the clothes she'd
"bought" had gone.
"Well, it's that or the Albanians, honey," Mike said. "And
just don't ask stupid questions until we can get someplace to talk,
okay?"
"What are you?" the whore asked.
"Like I said," Mike repeated. "Shut up. Russell, sit in back
with her."
"Miss," Russell said as he opened the door for her. "Please
don't try to run. If you did I'd have to restrain you. I'd try not to
hurt you, but you're a lot smaller than me and you'd probably get
hurt anyway."
"Where would I run to?" she asked, bitterly.
Chapter Fifteen
It was a silent twenty minute ride to the hotel and then
another silent three minutes to the set of rooms Mike had found.
"Russell, go debrief with Vanner," Mike said as he knocked
on the command room door. He knew there'd be at least some
Keldara women there. "He'll need your input on the club layout."
"Oh, Kildar," Anisa said, blushing. She was wearing the tube
dress and high-heels, very much the same uniform as Nikki if in
different colors.
"You really are a whoremaster," Nikki said, bitterly.
"Not quite," Mike said, trying not to smile at Anisa's
discomfiture. "Doing some training, Anisa?"
"Uhmmm, yes, Kildar," the girl said, still furiously blushing
and pulling her dress down. The maneuver just about got Mike a
view of nipple which caused her to blush and back up so fast she
nearly went ass over teakettle.
Katya was in the room, dressed in jeans, and for the first
time Mike saw what looked like a real, honest, smile on her face.
In fact, most of the Keldara girls were in the room along with
Oksana and there were three more dressed in tube dresses and
trying to stand on high-heels.
"Been doing a lot of training, Cottontail?" Mike asked,
breaking into a grin. "I gotta say, if I really was selling hookers,
I'd make a mint off of you girls."
"Don't even joke about it, Kildar," Graznya said, gasping.
"We've been listening to far too much of what happens to them."
"Sorry," Mike said, contritely. "Speaking of which, various
gals, this is Nikki from Belarus
who up until recently was a whore in
Nicu's club. I want you to suck her brains dry. Do we have maps,
yet?"
"Blueprints of the club as well as his apartment building,"
Graznya said, getting up and going over to a table to flip through
some sheets. "We're not sure where he breaks the girls in, or
where he keeps his records."
"You're not a whoremaster," Nikki said, looking
around at the girls. The Keldara girls were all fiddling with their
dresses, nervously. She clearly wasn't sure what to think. They
were dressed as whores and as nervous as new ones but they
certainly didn't look as if they were in fear of him.
"I am not a whoremaster," Mike said. "I know you have a
tendency to chatter, Nikki. Even if you get a chance, do not
chatter about what is happening here. Lives depend upon it.
Okay?"
"Okay," she said, puzzled.
"Ladies," Mike said, looking around and trying not to grin
again. "I leave it to you. And...this looks like good training!"
"As in unpleasant and uncomfortable," one of the girls trying
to balance on stilettos asked. "These shoes hurt."
"Exactly," Mike said, walking to the door. "Good Training!"
* * *
"You worked in Nicu's club?" Graznya asked, settling Nikki
on the edge of the bed with a Coke.
"Yes," Nikki said, looking around. "What is this?" she
asked, staring at Katya and Oksana. There was something
different about them, she could tell.
"We were hired to find a girl who is in the sex slavery
industry," Graznya said. "Sometimes we have to pose as hookers,
which is why the girls are practicing. It was sort of a joke; only
Anisa has had to do it."
"And me," Katya said, sipping at her drink which was clearly
alcoholic. "But I'm a real whore, just like you."
"And what about you?" Nikki asked, looking at Oksana.
"She was going to be made into one," Graznya answered.
"The Kildar bought her, instead."
"He was a little late for me," Nikki said, bitterly.
"He will be late for almost all the women around here,"
Katya said, with a slight slur. "He was late for me. Hell, he used
me as one. Still might. And worse. I'm a whore, why not? Once a
whore, always a whore."
"You are more than that," Anisa said, sharply. "Much more."
"Whatever," Katya replied.
"Hail, hail, the gang's all here," Vanner said, walking
through the adjoining door.
"Nikki," Russell said, nodding at her.
"Hi," Nikki said, smiling to see a familiar face, even if it was
Russell's.
"We need to look at the blueprints," Vanner said, walking
over to the table. "What Russell is sketching out doesn't sound
like the design on the paper."
"It's not," Russell said, glancing at the blueprints. "The sex
booths are through here, which shows a solid wall. It looks as if
they knocked a door into this section, here," he added, pointing.
"This place used to be a couple of warehouses, they've
redesigned it."
"Nikki, right?" Vanner said, gesturing at the girl. "Have you
been in much of the club?"
"Some," Nikki said, walking over and looking at the
schematic in incomprehension. "What is this?"
"It's like a map of the building the club is in," Vanner
replied. "I know it's confusing, but don't worry. We'll walk you
through it..."
* * *
"I hope you have something for me, Vanner," Mike said the
next morning when he strode into intel. "I had a crappy night's
sleep and the smoke in that damned club is killing my lungs."
"Well at least some of us got some sleep," Vanner replied.
"No rest for the staff pukes, huh? Yeah, we got some stuff but
it's basically crap."
"Go," Mike said, flopping into an armchair.
"Okay," Vanner said, flipping up the blueprints for the club
on an easel. They'd been heavily marked over and some of the
areas were either entirely unmarked or marked with dotted lines
making approximations. "First part of the crap."
"I can see," Mike said. "They've really worked that building
over. And I don't see where they've got the guys watching the
security cameras."
"We've positively established it as being right here," Vanner
said, waving his hand over one quarter of the more or less square
building that wasn't mapped. There were some doors around it,
but nothing inside the box.
"That's bad," Mike said.
"It gets worse," Vanner said. "There are cameras on all
entrances. Nikki has seen the security in full rig and they're
heavy. Up to RPG."
"How very good," Mike said, dryly.
"They stay in the club, in a barracks," Vanner said, glancing
at his notes. "But it's in the security area. The girls don't go in
there to service them. Nicu moves in a three vehicle convoy.
Leaves late, comes back late, around noon. Sometimes goes out
of town."
"Shopping," Mike said.
"Shopping," Vanner confirmed. "His convoy uses multiple
routes. The only confluence is his apartment and the club.
Sometimes takes girls, especially new ones, to the apartment.
Apartment has security all over it, too."
"All over?" Mike asked.
"All over the ground floors," Vanner said. "We've got
cameras on the club and the apartment."
"Does he keep records of the girls?" Mike asked.
"Presumably," Vanner said. "Or someone does. But that
would be in the offices." He pointed to a spot on the blueprint
near the back of the main club area. "To get to the offices you
have a couple of choices. Go through the club, go through the
girl's dormitory, which has very tight security, or go through the
security area itself."
"No," Mike said. "You're thinking two dimensionally."
"The roof?" Vanner asked, incredulously.
"It's worth looking at," Mike said. "Brainstorming. Okay,
convoy, multiple routes. Lots of bystanders around in the club
and heavy security. Lots of security on the apartment. Records in
a practical vault. Nikki tell you about the Albanian?"
"The guy who actually sold her?" Vanner asked. "Brami
Dejti. Former officer in the NLA. Got made fighting the Serbs,
worked his way into fundraising by sex, slavery and drugs.
Arrested for war crimes, rape and murder of females, mostly,
associated with the NLA, never prosecuted. He got released by
the Belgian contingent of KFOR and nobody ever brought it up
again. Arrested in Greece
for pimping, released. Arrested in Belgium
for suspicion of transportation of women
for immoral purposes and kidnapping. The two witnesses, the
whores, disappeared. Case dropped. That guy?"
"Where'd you get it?" Mike asked, nodding.
"I pulled up a list of known players and ran the mug-shots
past Nikki," Vanner said. "For damned near two hours. After that
it was easy. Interpol has a rap sheet the length of Albania
on the guy. Somehow he always slips out
of the net."
"Interpol is the epitome of European policing," Mike said.
"All the information in the world and no real success at stopping
crime. We need to work on him. Maybe more than Nicu."
"He left last night in a convoy of three Mercedes that from
the looks were armored," Vanner replied. "We might be able to
get something more tomorrow night. If he shows."
"We need them both," Mike said. "Together. And we need
their records."
"That means taking down the whole club, Kildar," Vanner
said, frowning. "You're not talking about that, are you?"
"I dunno," Mike said. "I'm going to think on it. Find me a
way in that doesn't require shooting. Anything. Find it. If we can
get somebody inside, we're going places. Short of that, I'm out of
ideas. We'll have a meeting this afternoon to toss ideas around.
You, me, Adams, Sawn, Russell, Nikki
and a couple of the Keldara women."
"Will do," Vanner said, sighing.
* * *
Mike looked around the room and then at the unhelpful
blueprint on the easel.
"Nobody?" he asked. "I mean, I knew I was stumped, but
you're all smart people. Somebody's got to have an idea!"
"Well I'm stumped too," Adams
admitted. "But I know the way I think. If you can't get in easy, get
more firepower."
"I'm not calling in the clans to deal with one damned link in
the chain," Mike said.
"Well, I'm just not the Mission Impossible type," Adams replied. "Vanner?"
"I could try to remote access their computers," the former
Marine said, musingly. "I've got the systems to do that. The
problem being that the walls on the warehouse are old Russian
concrete. It's pretty lousy stuff; it falls apart pretty quick
normally. But the problem with it is it's ferroconcrete. Instead of
using rebar, it's laced through with wire mesh. That acts as a
Faraday cage; no signals get out. I'm pretty sure there's hardly any
cellphone connection in there. I know I haven't picked up cell
calls from Nicu or Bramji."
"What about the roof?" Graznya asked. "The walls stop
signals, but does the roof?"
"Checked," Vanner sighed. "It's metal. Stops 'em dead."
"I am still not so sure about reading this map of the
building," Nikki said, diffidently. "But there is something on it I
don't understand." She got up and walked over to the blueprint,
tracing a section. "What is this?"
"The warehouse had in-ground drains," Vanner said. "It's the
sewage connection for them. I looked at that; it's marked as being
only three inches wide. Really fucking thin for the purpose, but I
suppose that's Soviet architecture all over."
"It looks larger," Nikki said. "This is the marker?" she added,
pointing to a number.
"Yeah," Vanner said, curiously. "Why?"
"This is in decimeters," Nikki pointed out. "Three
decimeters. That is about this big," she pointed out, holding her
hands apart.
"Damn," Vanner said, standing up and walking over to the
map.
"Fifteen inches," Adams said. "Still
very damned small. I wouldn't want to try to get shooters in
there."
"No," Mike said, softly. "But you can get someone or even
something up it."
"It runs under the club," Vanner said, tracing the line. "And
under the offices and through the girl's rooms into security. The
entrance is over on that side. There are drains marked."
Mike walked over for a closer look and shook his head.
"There wasn't a drain opening there," Mike pointed out.
"Nikki, this is between the bar and stage two. There's not an
opening there, is there?"
"No," the girl said, definitely.
"They'll have laid the floor in over them," Vanner said
positively. "Nicu wasn't the first owner of the club and from the
looks of the paperwork the previous owners were forced to sell.
He might not even know about it. And one of the drains is right
under the offices."
"What can we do with that?" Mike asked.
"Let me do some shopping," Vanner said, distantly. "At the
very least I can get a recon probe up it. Maybe by the end of the
day."
"Get some of the Keldara into the club," Adams
said. "Rotate them through, picking up intel. They'll
need to keep their mouths shut and their eyes open."
"Just the men or women as well?" Graznya asked. "The girls
are trained for intel gathering. Not this type, but they understand
the concept."
"There were plenty of customers going there just to dance,"
Mike pointed out. "Send in a shooter and one of the intel girls as
a pair. How many of the girls would be willing to do it?"
"Most," Graznya said, smiling. "Totter in on high-heels,
yes?"
"They'll need more practice," Mike said, seriously. "They'll
need to be able to dance on them."
"I'll get with Katya to show us," Graznya said with a nod.
"Okay, let's break this up," Mike said. "Vanner, go shopping.
Take a couple of the Keldara shooters and a girl if she wants to
go. They need to get used to city life."
"Will do," Vanner said. He had pulled out a scratch pad and
was writing on it.
"Take Killjoy with you," Adams
added. "That way he can answer questions while you shop."
"Got it," the Marine replied.
"Graznya, talk to the girls," Mike said.
"I will, Kildar," the girl replied.
"It's not a plan, but it's a start."
Chapter Sixteen
Patrick Vanner was running on too little sleep and he knew
it. However, he'd found everything he needed shopping, and
putting the pieces together had been relatively easy. Once he'd
gotten the pieces and put together a plan, he'd turned it over to
Graznya. The girls had gotten used to tinkering with electronics
and the design changes were relatively simple. The device was
mostly hollow, anyway, and had a built-in spot for a camera. All
they'd needed to do was install the bits he'd picked up, a few
black boxes he always kept around just in case and do the
systems integration. He'd gotten in a power nap.
All that being said, he knew that he'd come up with the idea
while in a sleep-deprived haze. In other words, it might be genius
and it might be utter stupidity. Since he wasn't sure which, he'd
carefully avoided discussing it with the Kildar or Adams and had
sworn Killjoy to secrecy.
Which was why the former Ranger was with him in the
sewer tunnel.
"I think you're bent," Killjoy said, lifting the device into the
tunnel overhead.
"It's designed to avoid walls," Vanner pointed out as he
checked the take from the device. "All we have to do is put it in
the tunnel and let it go. It's perfect, really."
"It's nuts," Killjoy said. "Even if it works."
"If it's stupid and it works it ain't stupid," Vanner replied.
"Don't go quoting Murphy's Law of Combat to me," Killjoy
said. "Not while I'm doing this. It makes me wonder if the smell
from the sewer is making me as bent as you are."
"Just turn on the motor," Vanner said, dazedly. "I'm getting a
good feed from the camera and the intercept systems are
nominal."
"Okay," Killjoy said, flicking the switch on the base of the
thing.
"Right, here goes," Vanner said, touching a control.
There was a series of beepings that emitted from the tunnel.
"Don't tell me you didn't pull the sound box," Killjoy said.
"I'm pretty sure they won't hear it," Vanner said. "And, no, I
forgot to tell them."
"Like they wouldn't know about it?" the former Ranger
asked.
"Hey, they're the Keldara," Vanner said, shrugging. "It's not
like they go to a lot of movies. They've never even seen Star
Wars!"
He hit another button and there was another series of beeps.
"You go, R2," Killjoy said, chuckling.
And the miniature R2D2 toy began making its way up the
tunnel and into the darkness.
* * *
"Where's Vanner?" Mike asked as he walked in the
command post. "I looked in intel and he wasn't around."
"Getting some sleep," Graznya said, peering at her laptop
computer screen. "He's planted an intercept system under their
offices and we're getting the take from their computers. Getting
in through the sewer worked, by the way."
"Can you hack their girl database?" Mike asked.
"Not yet," Graznya admitted. "They're using the computer at
the moment and that takes too fine of a touch; we'll have to wait
until Patrick wakes up. What we're doing is getting the
information that they're seeing. Which is mostly financial at the
moment. And we got their passwords when they punched them
in. And Nicu uses a laptop with a WiFi link. He accessed it and
updated it when he got into the club and we got the take from
that. And he left it on but wasn't using it so we sucked it out. But
it doesn't have a back-list of girls on it, just 'current projects.'"
"Anything we can really use, yet?" Mike asked.
"Nope," Graznya admitted. "Wait for Patrick to wake up. He
didn't get any sleep all last night or today."
"Okay," Mike said. "I'll go bother somebody else for a while.
Send somebody to get me when he's up and functional."
* * *
It was nearly midnight when Mike got called to the intel
room.
"You got something?" Mike asked, looking at the group
gathered around the computers.
"Sort of," Vanner said with a grimace. "They've got, they
think, pretty good security. It's not as good as they think, but it's
pretty good." He spun around in his chair and stood up,
stretching his back.
"There are three different computer systems running in the
room," Vanner said. "Nicu's laptop, an internet connected
computer and a remote computer without any external
connections. Their internet communications systems are
encrypted with PGP and the computer's got three firewalls, one
hardware and two software. The hardware and one of the
software firewalls have known holes in them. The third doesn't.
It's Romanian and if anybody's found holes in it I haven't been
able to track the information down."
"So we're still not in their computers?" Mike asked.
"Not really," Vanner said with a sigh. "I tried slipping in a
trojan and got wacked. Hard. They damned near traced me. Well,
actually, they did trace me. To a university computer in the US
that I've got a trojan on. From there the
trace went cold. I don't think it was someone in the room, it was
an automated response. But I've already determined that the
information we need isn't even on that computer. It's on the
computer without outside access. There's no way to get
information off of it except to connect. If I can get a connection
on it I can suck it out in about ten minutes. But I'll need at least
ten minutes with the computer to do that. And the office is
manned around the clock. Oh, and one huge problem we keep
running into."
"What?" Mike asked, sighing.
"Everything is in fricking Romanian," Vanner said,
shrugging. "You read Romanian? I don't. We're using automatic
translators. You know how good those are."
"What about Nikki?" Mike asked.
"She speaks English and Russian," Vanner replied.
"Go roust out Russell, a Keldara girl and one of the Keldara
shooters," Mike said after a bit of thought. "Have them go find a
street hooker that speaks Romanian and English. Reads it, too.
One that won't be missed. Bring her back here. We'll just take her
with us when we leave."
"That's pretty damned cold, isn't it?" Vanner asked,
incredulously.
"We'll pay her," Mike said, shrugging. "And figure out
something better she can do than being a hooker when we're
done." Mike folded his arms and looked at the blueprint again.
"Can you sleep, again?"
"In a while," Vanner said.
"Good, get some more sleep. We'll brainstorm this again in
the morning. I've got an inkling of a plan; we'll see if it holds up
to scrutiny."
* * *
When Mike entered the command center the next morning,
there was a new face.
The girl was in her twenties, thin, dark and attractive but
with a very hard face.
"Kildar, this is Ruxandra," Vanner said by way of
introduction.
"Hello, Ruxandra," Mike said, sitting down. "Is she briefed
in?"
"Yes," Russell said.
"And are you willing to help us, Ruxandra?" Mike asked,
raising an eyebrow. "I mean, of your own free will?"
"I'm still wondering about that," Ruxandra admitted, staring
at him darkly. She had really good eyes for it. "I'd gladly see Nicu
in hell, though. One of my friends was picked up by his men and I
never heard from her again. Then her body turned up off the coast
of Italy
. It had been in the water for a long time,
probably dumped off the coast of Albania
. Another girl, she didn't want to give the
blowjob, yes? She tried to bite. Nicu had her front teeth
hammered out. Now she does not bite, yes? I'd be more happy to
help you if I was sure he was going to die."
"I think that's going to be how it has to go," Mike said. "I've
worked this over a half a dozen ways. I'll run through a few of
them."
"Way one. We find one of the guys that works in the office
in the evening that we can dope up someone to impersonate.
Grab him, slip our guy in, suck the computer and our guy goes
out."
"Welcome to Mission Impossible," Adams said, shaking his head. "They speak Romanian, Mike."
"Yeah, that's only one of about a thousand problems," Mike
pointed out. "Way two, we just go with a frontal assault. We'd
have surprise. We can get some weapons in the room in advance.
I suspect that Nikki knows a couple of the girls that would bring
stuff in for us. Right?"
"Possibly," Nikki said. "They are not swept when they come
in the back entrance. And there's nothing keeping them from
going into the club."
"Set up assignations with the girls off-site, discuss it with
them, let them do it if they wished, hold on to the ones that
balked. Then hit the front and rear, hard. Go for Nicu and the
Albanian from the front while the back team went for the
computers."
"We'd take a lot of casualties," Adams said, frowning. "That was my thought. And I don't want to
think about the mess. Lots of dead civilians. Even if the Keldara
picked their shots, Nicu wouldn't. For that matter, we don't know
that some of the girls wouldn't burn us. We could be running
right into an ambush."
"Right," Mike said. "Now, the question is, if things go
down, what do Nicu and the Albanian do?"
"I'd say, head for either the office or the security barracks,"
Vanner replied. "There are more cars out back. I'd say if they have
to they escape that way rather than out the front. There's a door
near his booth that goes to a hallway that leads to the office. Turn
left on it and you're headed for the girl's area and the security
barracks. He'd hit that door if anything went down. Then either
sit it out in the office or head out the back to escape. There are
three rear entrances."
"We need a person to go up the tunnel," Mike said, shutting
his eyes.
"It's too damned small for the Keldara," Adams
said. "Even the girls."
"Yeah," Mike said. "But Oksana would fit. Graznya, go get
her, would you, please?"
When the girl was led into the room she was clearly
frightened.
"It's okay, Oksana," Mike said, gently. "I asked you to come
in here because I need you to do something for us. It's going to
be hard and it's going to require that you be brave. Do you think
you can do it?"
"I'm not really brave," Oksana said, honestly. "I'd like to be,
but I am always fear."
"Being brave doesn't mean not having fear," Mike said,
shrugging. "If you don't have fear, you can't be brave. You have
to overcome fear to count as brave. Do you think you can
overcome fear?"
"I don't know," the girl said. "What do you need? Do you
want me to be with man? I do not want to be with man."
"No," Mike said, shaking his head. "This is going to require
physical bravery in a different way. Have you ever been in a small
place?"
"Yes," the girl said. "I like it in a small place. I feel safer."
"That's good," Mike said, nodding. "Oksana, we need
someone to crawl into a very small, very dirty and nasty place,
and put some things in there. Up a tunnel."
"That..." the girl said then paused. "I do not know if I would
like that."
"If you do it, we can capture and kill slavers," Mike said,
leaning forward. "I don't know if we can free more girls like you,
but we will give them more of a chance. Some of us are probably
going to die doing this. If you don't do it, more will die. I am
really hoping that you will do this. We need you. Very much."
The girl regarded him for a moment and then tilted her head
to the side, looking him in the eye.
"When you bought me, you treated me very bad," the girl
said. "Why did you do that? The Keldara women, they say that
you are a very nice man."
"I am a very bad man who tries to be nice," Mike said, not
turning away. "This is the truth. I did what I did because if I did
not, the men in the room would have suspected I was not who I
said I was. They would have thought me soft, a weak man who
could not be a slaver because I was too nice."
"Did you enjoy it?" Oksana asked.
Mike looked at her for a long moment then shrugged.
"Yes," he answered, simply, still staring her in the eyes. It
was as if there were only two people in the room. "I would not
have done it if I didn't have to. But, yes. I am not a nice man. I am
a very, very bad man who has chosen to be nice most of the time.
I do many things that are for the side of what I call 'good.' But
many of them are very bad things, like what I did to you. I do
them for good reasons. But my bad side enjoyed it very much."
"You tell me this even though you want me to do something
for you," the girl said, wonderingly.
"If you do this, you are like a soldier that works for me,"
Mike said, shrugging. "I must be honest with my soldiers, with
my troops. I must be honest and loyal with them as they are
honest and loyal with me. If I don't, it doesn't work. I have shown
them my bad side and my good. They choose to believe I am, at
heart, a good man. I don't argue it with them. Maybe they are
right and I'm wrong. But the things that I do are as much to make
up for my bad side as they are for any other reason. Perhaps that
makes me good. I don't know. All I know is that I must be
honest."
The girl stared at him for a moment more and then looked
away, breathing out.
"Yes, I will do this," she answered. "But you pay your
soldiers, yes?"
"Oh, don't worry," Mike said, grinning. "You'll get paid."
"Good," the girl said. "And I get to keep it?"
"You'll get to keep it," Graznya said, looking over at Mike
with a strange expression.
"Two thousand euros for this mission and as of today you
go on base Keldara intel operative pay," Mike said. "Graznya,
she's now in your section."
"Good," Graznya replied. "I can use another girl who
actually knows how to use high-heels."
"Good indeed," Mike said, distantly. "Okay, Vanner I'm
going to need most of the shooters taken off of intel duty. Figure
that out. Adams, you and I are going to
work out the entry plan. We're also going to need a place to
rehearse."
"I'll get some of the girls looking for that," Vanner said.
"They were the ones that found the warehouse in Chisinau."
"How much Semtek do we have with us?" Mike asked.
"About sixty kilos," Adams said.
"We're going to need most of it," Mike replied. "And we'll
need some field expedient CS."
"I'll add that to my list," Vanner said.
"Chief, my room in fifteen, bring all the maps and updated
intel data," Mike said, nodding. "And Oksana?"
"Yes...Kildar?" the girl asked.
"Thank you."
Chapter Seventeen
Mike looked over at the chief a couple of hours later and
shrugged.
"Think it's going to work?"
They'd been over and over the design of the club, but in the
end a modified brute force method was all that they could come
up with. And even that meant putting some "principles" on the
line. If they screwed up, the Keldara were likely to be in a very
deep crack. On the other hand, Mike, personally, probably
wouldn't be around to care.
"Oh, it'll work," Adams said. "What
I'm wondering is if it's worth it. We're going to lose people. At
least one, probably three."
"So are we doing this for money?" Mike asked. "Or are we
doing this for the mission, whatever that means?"
"Or are we doing it because we're just curious where the
trail leads?"
"That too," Mike admitted.
"You're risking a lot for curiosity," Adams said.
"If it was just curiousity, I don't think I would," Mike
admitted. "I'd just pull back and tell the senator the trail was too
cold. But I'm not doing this for pure curiousity or for the
'mission'. And certainly I wouldn't pay two or three Keldara for
five mil. I've got the funny feeling that this little Ukrainian whore
is way more important than the senator was willing to admit."
He looked up as there was a knock on the door and slid a
cover sheet over the plans.
"Come."
Graznya stepped into the room and looked around.
"I hope I'm not disturbing," she said.
"We're about done," Mike replied.
"I was wondering something," the woman said, looking over
at the chief.
"I've got to go start getting the troops dialed in,"
Adams said, standing up with a file in his hand.
"You two talk."
When the chief had left Graznya sat down and regarded the
Kildar thoughtfully then frowned when he smiled.
"What?"
"I was just thinking of the changes in the Keldara since I've
taken over," Mike said, still smiling. "They wanted to kick Lydia
and Irina out of the Families for being
alone with a man, even though there were four people in the car
and it was a medical emergency. And look at you, now. Not to
mention being willing to, effectively, throw the chief out for a
private chat."
"I see the humor," Graznya said, finally smiling.
"So what's wrong with how I handled Oksana?" Mike asked.
"You're sure that's it?" the girl asked.
"Yep," Mike said. "I saw your look."
"I was just wondering..."
"What I did to her?" Mike asked, his face hard.
"Oh, no, she told me that," Graznya said. "And I said much
the same things you said to her. Except the part about you being
evil. And I wasn't sure how you actually felt about it. But...the
way you spoke to her. How..."
"How did I know to treat her that way?" Mike asked, leaning
back. "I asked myself the same thing. I wasn't sure if I was
manipulating her or not. But I felt like I had to treat her as if she
mattered. Because she does. As a human being and as a member
of the team."
"I think that's it," Graznya said, smiling. "You treat people as
human beings, no matter who they are. This is why we love you."
"That's a bit strong," Mike said. "And I've treated people as
things, plenty of times. I'm doing it right now, looking at the
plans, knowing that some of the Keldara are going to die in this
raid. And I've done it to women plenty of times before."
"But you speak to a young girl as if she is the most
important person in the world," Graznya said. "Nobody has ever
treated her as if she was important. You treat us, the women of
the Keldara, as if we were important. In the Families we are only
as important as our wombs and the 'women's work' we do."
"And is it manipulation?" Mike asked. "Don't ask me back. I
don't know. All I know is that there are people who are important
to my mission. And I treat them that way. Whatever the mission
might be. However, once they are members of the team, they are
always members of the team. If I treated you, tomorrow, as if you
had no importance then the next time I needed you, the next time
the mission needed you, I wouldn't be able to depend on you. I
guess it is manipulation. But it also includes loyalty in the mix."
He paused and shrugged, grinning. "Call it military leadership."
"Now I know that Oksana is smarter than I," Graznya said,
staring at him thoughtfully.
"Why?" Mike asked.
"Because I have to agree with her. You are both crazy and
very scary. But I will still follow you wherever you lead, Kildar."
"Yeah, but am I right?" Mike said, shrugging. "I have to
wonder about this entire mission; there is no way we're going to
get the data we need from the club without some casualties."
"We are the Keldara," Graznya said, shrugging and looking
away. "You are the Kildar. We will follow wherever you lead."
"But..." Mike said, noting the body language.
"There is really no 'but,'" Graznya said, getting up and
shrugging. "For the rest...I think you should talk to Sawn."
"Why?" Mike asked.
"Because I'm a lady and I can't use those words," Graznya
said, nodding as she walked out.
* * *
"Kildar," Sawn said, not looking up from the MP-5 he had
broken down on the bed.
"Graznya said I should talk to you," Mike replied, settling
into a chair. "About the mission."
"She mentioned that," Sawn said, still not looking up. "I sort
of expected this to be tomorrow, though."
"Unfortunately, tomorrow is when I'll need to give the
mission a full go," Mike said, stretching out his feet as the
Keldara began reassembling the sub-gun. "So, what do you
think? I won't promise to take your recommendation, but I want
some thoughts."
"Go," Sawn said, shrugging and closing the gun. He jacked
the breach and stared into it, ensuring that there wasn't a round in
the chamber.
"Why?" Mike asked. "I mean, curiosity, sure. And I've got
the feeling that there's something very sniffy in Washington
but I can't be sure unless I follow the trail to the rot.
But we are going to take casualties, Sawn. They're
probably going to be shooters. But there's always the possibility
that they'll be one of the ladies. Or me or Adams."
"Go," Sawn said, finally looking up. The stare forced Mike
to pause. Each of the teams had a...call it a personality, one that
they got from their team leaders. Oleg's team was blunt and
implacable as a tank going through a wall. Vil's team depended
on speed and finesse, grace over power. Sawn's team, though,
was the thoughtful one. Not that they couldn't go hard against the
bad guys, but they tended to think their shots, to take just a tad of
time contemplating before doing unto others. That might be only
a fraction of a second, but the result was usually smarter and
tighter than the other teams. Sawn's team had been up on the
rotation for this mission, but Mike was glad. This mission had
required a lot more think and a lot less "implacable" than Oleg
could have handled. Team Sawn was a good choice.
All of that thought, all that contemplation, came from Sawn.
Farmers didn't tend to produce philosophers but Sawn was a
close as the Keldara came. He had a depth that Oleg, Vil, Padraic
and the others didn't posess. And that depth turned out to be
filled with quite a bit of anger.
"There are a number of reasons," Sawn continued, looking
back down at the weapon in his hand. "This is the first true
mission which the Keldara have attempted. If you withdraw, even
for the reason of sheltering us, it will affect our confidence. Oh,
not entirely, but we will be forced to question whether you
would have taken a team of Americans in, if you would have
trusted them..."
"But..." Mike said, stopping when Sawn raised a hand.
"I said a number of reasons, Kildar," the team leader said,
looking up and smiling tightly. "That is but one, and the least.
The second reason is what you have said.
America,
Washington
, affects the entire world. We had not realized to
what a degree, hidden away in our valley. But now that we are
looking out of our hole, looking again at the world,
America
affects everything. If there is
this...evil somewhere near the core of your government, finding
it is important. To you, to
America
and to the Keldara. Without digging out
the rot, we cannot know if it will harm us. But knowing that the
rot is there, without digging it out... That is like a tooth that you
let fester. It will kill you in time."
"Okay, I'll buy that one," Mike said, frowning. "My fault for
dragging you into it."
"You are the Kildar," Sawn said, suddenly angry. "It
is not our horror, not our shame, that we are your fighters, your
guards, it is our honor, Kildar. We share your
danger, willingly and even with joy. You have given us, again,
our honor. And as you gain more dangerous, more powerful,
enemies, our status raises thereby."
"Okay, that one's sort of...twisted," Mike said, chuckling.
"But I sort of get it. If you're going to believe in the way of the
warrior, you have to believe all the way."
"And there is a last thing," Sawn said, seating a magazine in
the weapon. "This...trade. It is dishonor upon us all." He turned
and looked out the window at the city and shook his head. "Our
women have been stolen, Kildar. When we were weak, when we
had nothing and certainly no weapons, people who think
they are warriors came upon us and treated us like peasants
. We are not peasants, Kildar. We have had to do what we
have done over the years, so many years even we did not realize
until you came to us. But we are not peasants, Kildar and
these men, in this trade, have dishonored our lands, our homes."
He turned back to Mike and his eyes were bright with anger
as he jacked a round into the chamber.
"Do not even think of turning back, Kildar," Sawn
said, gritting his teeth. "I would that we could kill them all. Kill
them until the All Father cried out in horror and the sun bled."
* * *
"This is very scary, indeed," Oksana said, looking at the hole.
"You can do it," Russell replied, fitting the package in the
tube. "I know I can't," the massive NCO added with a grin. "You
just push the package up the tunnel until I tell you to stop and
then back out. If you get stuck, I'll pull you out with the rope."
"Okay," Oksana said, trying not to breath.
"You'll be on the radio the whole way," Vanda said. The
female Keldara was fiddling with the receiver box for the
telephone headset Oksana was wearing. "Count to five, slowly."
"One, two, three, four, five," Oksana said.
"Can you hear me?" Vanda asked. "I mean, in your
earphone?"
"Yes," Oksana replied.
"We're good."
"Okay, Oksana," Russell said, putting one hand under a
shoulder and wrapping the other around her lower thigh. "Up you
go."
Whether she wanted to or not, Oksana was lifted up to the
tube.
"Stick your arms in," Russell said. "Push on the package. I'll
push you in for the first bit."
As Oksana placed her hands on the inside of the tube she felt
herself gently but firmly rammed into the hole. The package was
right inside the opening but by holding her hands out she was
easily able to push it ahead of her.
Someone had found a suit of a strange, slick, material called
"Tyvek" that covered her from head to foot. That was nice of
them since the interior of the tunnel was very dirty. And some of
the Keldara soldiers had given her pads for her elbows and knees
and leather gloves with rough palms so they would help her
crawl. She supposed the least she should do was keep going.
"You there, Oksana?" Vanda asked.
"I'm here," Oksana said. "I am crawling forward."
The tunnel was very tight, she could barely move her arms,
but she could push with her legs and pull a little. Bit by bit,
pushing the package ahead of her, she moved down the tunnel.
"There is not much air in here," Oksana said, panting.
"Slow down a bit," Vanda said. "We've got hours to do this.
Don't push yourself and you won't need as much air. So, you're
from the Ukraine
? Where?"
"I was raised in an orphanage in
Kremenchug
," Oksana said. "It was not very nice."
"I'm sorry," Vanda said. "Wasn't there anything that you
liked growing up?"
"There was a garden that we got taken to, sometimes,"
Oksana said, pushing forward again, slowly. "It was very
beautiful in the spring and summer. But in the orphanage there
was not much. Even the place where we played didn't have grass,
only some weeds."
"Do you know what you want to do when you grow up?"
Vanda asked.
"I think I want to be a fashion model," Oksana said. "I see
their pictures in magazines and they are all so beautiful."
"I suppose that is a goal," Vanda said, dubiously. "Have you
ever considered being a gardener...?"
* * *
Sawn looked around the lobby of the embassy. The guard on
the front, a Romanian security guard, had directed him to the visa
section. But that was not, really, what he was here for. However,
as he'd been briefed, there were two Marines in dress uniform in
the lobby, standing at parade rest. He walked over to one of them
that had more stripes.
"I am told the guard on the gate I am here for visa..." Sawn
said.
"The visa section is down the hall, sir," the corporal said,
pointing. "Good day."
"I am not here for visa," Sawn said. "I am courier for station
chief. Please direct me to secure point to wait for clearance.
Code is Kildar Seven Three One Two."
* * *
"Interesting clearance," the man behind the desk said,
looking at his security screen.
"Yes, sir," Sawn said. "I am not know. I am only courier."
"You're a team head for the Kildar," the man said, looking
over at him. "Sawn Makanee, head of Team Sawn. There's even a
not-very-good picture of you."
"I would not know anything about that, sir," Sawn replied.
"I'm sure you wouldn't," the CIA station chief said, smiling.
"What are your orders?"
"I am to be directed to secure console," Sawn said. "I am to
enter password and put in file from disk. I am to run destruction
program on file and then take file to burn point for burning. I
have had all steps described to me."
"I'm sure," the station chief said, rolling his tongue in his
cheek. "There was a disappearance in Chisinau last week. A
slaver."
"I am not sure what you say, sir," Sawn said, looking
honestly puzzled.
"And a report that a group of Georgians were passing
through the town," the station chief pointed out. "Men
transporting women to
Macedonia
, if I recall correctly, for purposes of
prostituion. I don't suppose there is any connection?"
"I would not be able to say, sir," Sawn replied.
"So where is the Kildar?"
"I am not sure what you ask, sir?" Sawn said. "Can I just do
upload, now?"
"The guy who gave you the packet. And your instructions."
"I am given to them by man on the street and paid money,"
Sawn replied. "May I do upload, now?"
"Are we going to have a disappearance, here?"
"I should be going, now," Sawn said, standing up.
"Sit down," the station chief snapped. "You're in an embassy
in a secure section. You walk out when I tell you to walk out!"
"Yes, sir," Sawn said, sitting down. "Permission to speak
freely, sir?" His accent had apparently disappeared.
"Yes."
"You really don't want to ask questions, sir," Sawn replied.
"You really don't want to have ever seen me, to have ever heard
the name Kildar, to have ever thought about any connections.
Not if you value your career, sir. Because, sir, the Kildar is here
for very senior Americans, sir. That he is here, you need to
forget. If anything happens, you need to not make the
connections, sir. Or very senior American will be very upset, sir.
I was told to pass this to you, sir, by the Kildar, who, yes, gave
me the package, sir. And to note that all he needs to do is get on
the telephone and you will find that
Romania is a much nicer place than Ghana or Benin
, sir. I don't even know, frankly, where
Ghana or Benin are, sir, but I think you'd
rather be in Romania
, yes?"
The station chief's face had gone from the red of anger to
white and then back to red.
"You little shit, you can't just walk in here..."
"Sir, is telephone number," Sawn said, pulling out a number.
"Would you call, sir?"
"What is this?" the station chief asked, looking at the slip of
paper. It was a number in DC and by the exchange it was in the
Pentagon. There was even a scrambler code. Fucking Defense
Department getting in on intel, of course.
"Please to call, sir, or let me leave," Sawn said, tilting his
head to the side. "Your choice."
The station chief looked at him haughtily for a moment and
then picked up his secure phone.
* * *
"Pierson."
"And you are?"
Colonel Bob Pierson looked at his phone. The call was
coming from the CIA station chief's office in Bucharest, Romania . He hadn't even known there was
such.
"This is Colonel Robert Pierson, Special Operations Liaison
Office. And to whom am I speaking, sir?"
"This is Jasper Weatherby, I'm the CIA Station Chief in Bucharest
. I've got a young man in my office who wants to use
our secure room to send a message from someone called the
Kildar."
"Has he got codes?" Pierson asked.
"Yes, I've checked the database and he's one of this Jenkins'
character's team leaders."
"Then let him send the message," the colonel said, his brow
furrowing. "What's the problem?"
"The problem, colonel, is that I've got what looks like a
rogue DIA black op going on in my patch! I've seen the data on
Jenkins and I don't want to be the one to clean up the mess!"
"Oh," Pierson replied, smiling as he leaned back in his chair.
"So you're saying you're not going to let him use your secure
facilities because you don't want Mike in your patch. I can see
that. Tell you what, just have the Keldara toddle back to Mike
and tell him that. Not a problem, I'll guarantee it. Mike won't
bother you any more."
"Let me be clear, colonel," Weatherby said, tightly. "I want
him out of Romania
. Now."
"I'll pass that on," Pierson replied. "Look, I'm sure you're
busy and I know I am. Just send the Keldara back and forget it."
"Very well, colonel," Weatherby said. "Thanks."
"Not a problem," Pierson said. "Good bye."
* * *
"I won't ask what you're doing in Romania
," Pierson said over the secure link.
"You didn't get the message?" Mike asked, incredulously.
"The station chief blew his lid and I had him send your
unnamed Keldara back," the colonel said. "He should be on his
way. Tell him no big deal. I'll send a courier over. Where are
you?"
"You don't want this going by anyone who's not one
hundred percent, Bob," Mike replied, tightly. "You really, really
don't. I think...no, I know I got scammed. The message laid it out
to date and more or less asked if you-know-who wanted me to go
home with my tail between my legs and discuss it with the person
that sent me or to keep going."
"You're being so discreet it's scary," Pierson said.
"I don't want to end up on C-Span, Bob," Mike replied.
"That's scary all right," the colonel said, breathing out. "I
need that data."
"Damned straight," Mike said.
"If Sawn's not gotten too far, have him go cool his heels in
the embassy," Pierson said, thoughtfully. "I need to make some
calls."
* * *
"Mr. Makanee?" the Marine said, politely. "Could you come
with me, please?"
"May I ask where we are going?" Sawn said, just as politely.
"The military liaison office," the Marine replied.
As they were walking down the office Sawn saw the station
chief walking in the opposite direction. There were two Marines
with him. One was carrying a box that appeared to be personal
effects while the other was discreetly if unmistakably escorting
him.
"This is an outrage!" the station chief snapped as he
approached Sawn.
"Sir, your orders are to remain silent," the Marine trailing
him said, definitely. "Further attempt to speak will require that
we restrain you, sir, with respect."
The station chief opened his mouth to respond and then
clapped it shut.
Sawn ignored the by-play, with the exception of stepping
politely out of the way, until they were passed.
"Thanks," the Marine escorting him said. "Turn right at the
next corridor."
"I did not think it best to argue in the hallway," Sawn
replied, turning the corner.
"Oh, thanks for that, too," the Marine said. "But I meant
getting rid of that guy. He was a real shithead. I'd love to ask
what this is all about, but I know better."
"The reason I'm here is that we are not sure," Sawn admitted
as he entered the Office of Military Liaison.
Chapter Eighteen
It was well past his official quitting time, but Bob Pierson
wasn't even sure what that meant anymore. Generally, this job
had involved sixteen hour days running up to sixty in the bad
times. The military had long before learned to count "days" as the
period between one solid sleep and the next and ignore such
things as the rising and falling of the sun. And he was afraid this
was one of those "bad" times. When Mike got that cadgy on the
phone he was onto something hot. And the mention of C-Span
meant he was afraid it was going to explode.
So he sat and tapped the balls of his fingers together,
wondering what was about to come in on the secure server.
SIPARNET was the military's internet. Set up like the
civilian internet it was entirely separate and transmitted only over
secure lines. Theoretically, it was uncrackable. Lord knew the
military tried to keep it that way, tried very hard. And, thus far,
there had been no leaks. But there was already a first time.
Pierson had half considered that they might want to hand carry
the data back to the states. But Mike must have thought it was
time-critical.
His inbox dinged and he hit the message with a sigh.
A moment later, after the second "Holy Fuck!" he picked up
the secure line to the Office of the Secretary of Defense. This
was going to be a long one.
"This is Pierson in SOLO," he said. "I need to talk to the
Secretary. Now."
* * *
"We're over time for our cover," Adams pointed out as the Keldara fast-roped off the balcony,
again.
"Well, I'd say we're dialed in," Mike replied. "I'm hoping for
some word from Pierson, though."
"Thus Nadzia following you around with the sat-phone," the
chief said, looking over at the Keldara girl. She was wearing a
short dress and more make-up than he'd ever seen on a Keldara
female.
"And she builds the cover," Mike said.
"Speaking of which, I haven't gotten my ashes hauled in a
few days," Adams pointed out.
"Be discreet and smart," Mike replied as the sat-phone
started to beep.
"Kildar," Nadzia said, walking over.
"Jenkins," Mike said once he got the headphone in.
"Approved," Pierson said. "Find the girl and gather all
possible intel. You can probably guess how high that went."
"I take it that it only went up one chain," Mike said.
"Absolutely," Pierson replied. "And nobody actually had the
conversations. Nobody had lots of conversations late into the
night. And nobody is going to say anything about it, ever again."
"Gotcha," Mike said.
"Except one thing," Pierson replied, then paused. "I need to
send that by courier, though. Damnit. I don't want any more
conversation on this than necessary. It's incredibly inflammatory.
Mike, you might want to just back out."
"Forget the other unless it's truly pertinent intel," Mike said.
"And, no, I'm going to follow the trail. I said I'd know what was
going on when it started to smell. I think I'm getting a whiff. And
it stinks like hell."
"Be careful."
"There's careful and then there's careful," Mike said. "Out
here."
He watched the Keldara slide down the rope again and fan
out as one of the Keldara intel specialist followed them down.
The girl, who was no more than seventeen and until six months
before had never seen a computer, never driven a car, never been
on a date, was wearing the same black uniforms and body armor
as the fighters. She ran immediately to a computer on a desk,
threw the monitor on it to the side and began removing the cover.
In no less than thirty seconds she had it disassembled and the hard
drives stashed in a pouch. Despite the gas mask she was wearing.
Thirty seconds later, all the Keldara were back on the
balcony.
"I think we're ready."
* * *
"It's a profitable night," Dejti said, looking around the club.
"They are all good nights," Nicu replied.
"I said 'profitable' not 'good'," the Albanian replied.
"This is much better than running around in the mountains
being chased by the Serbs, yes?"
"Sometimes," Dejti said, stoically. "But the tension is the
same, yes? Or don't you feel it? I have felt this before. There is
something moving. The American is back in the house, with
some of his girls. You see?"
"I saw," Nicu said. "They're buying drinks and whores. What
about it?"
"I don't trust him. He doesn't have the right feel."
"You worry too much," Nicu said, shrugging.
"And you don't worry enough," the Albanian said, darkly.
"You think that because we have done well, that it will always
continue. You think that because we have the government, that
there are no other forces against us. That is what Kadul thought,
too. And now who owns the club? Perhaps the Americans are
looking to take over, eh?"
"Calm down," Nicu said. "I will get you a girl, a young one.
Have your fun with her, you will feel better."
"No, not tonight," Dejti replied, looking out at the dance
floor. Too many of the fucking guards that were supposed to be
looking for threats were looking at the women. Most were not
his people. He could trust his tribe, but too many had to be in
positions like his, handling the money and the girls. Muscle you
could hire, but could you depend on it? If, no, when things went
wrong, could you depend upon them to die, to keep you alive, to
fight for you like members of your family? No. That was why it
was Albanians that were on his cars. It was Albanians in the
office, counting the money and bundling it. Nicu thought he ran
the club. Let him handle the women, Dejti's people handled the
money.
"Tonight I want to be clear," Dejti continued. "There is a feel
in the air, yes? Like before a storm when you are walking in the
mountains; you can feel the prickling on your skin? Like before
an ambush."
"There will be no ambushes here," Nicu said, yawning. "And
I wouldn't know about storms in the mountains. I'm a city boy."
"So you are," Dejti replied. You useless shit. As soon as I
can get a decent Albanian to replace you, you are going to be a
graveyard boy.
"You need a girl," Nicu said, waving at one of the guards.
"Dragos, go and get Bohuslava. You'll like her," he added to
Dejti. "Very young, very new, from Slovakia
. Beautiful. Don't mark her too badly,
please."
"I said I didn't want a girl you stupid..." Dejti started to reply
then stopped as screams and coughing erupted on the dance floor.
"What is happening?" Nicu yelled as the music kept
throbbing.
"Someone dropped a stink bomb!" the nearest guard said,
just as Nicu caught a whiff of the stench. Already people were
crowding to the exits.
"Fucking jokers," Nicu growled, standing up just as the
ground thumped hard, twice.
"This is no joke," Dejti shouted. "Out! Now!"
"What?" Nicu yelled. "Why?"
"Because, this is an attack," the Albanian yelled as he ran for
the back door to the offices.
* * *
Mike leaned back in the booth and tried to ignore the stench.
"I'm really wondering about this," he said.
"Timing," Adams said. "And...now."
The three Keldara girls got up and started screaming and
coughing, running for the nearby door that had just been opened.
Nicu had finally gotten up and was hurrying for the same door,
his bodyguards closing in around him.
Mike, Adams and Russell got up and followed the girls,
shouting at them to calm down. Mike caught one just before they
reached the line of bodyguards.
"You little bitch!" Mike yelled, slapping the girl so hard she
fell over. "You don't try to run on me!"
He turned to grab at another, who had literally bounced off
one of the guards, and continued through with a stab into the
guard's gut. The polymer blade sank up to the small hilt and he
yanked sideways, but left it in the wound, as the guard started to
crumple.
Adams and Russell had each accounted for two more and
that left just one between the door and Mike. The guard had
drawn a gun but had no fucking clue how to use it at that range.
Mike ducked down and sideways, wrapping a hand around
the barrel and left the guard with a broken finger that had nearly
been ripped off.
Nicu was through the door but Mike took up a stance and
put a round right through his leg as Russell turned and shot the
nearest guard that hadn't been covering the retreat.
"Sixteen seconds," Graznya yelled, ripping off her shoes and
rolling to the side. She somehow had acquired a pistol as well
and used the body of one of the dead guards as a resting spot to
fire across the room, taking out another guard. "GO!"
Russell was already through the door, dipping down to lift
Nicu by his collar as the assault team came through the door to
the offices. There were two guards between them and Dejti and
one got off a burst from his Skoda Scorpion. It was his last
action as the following Keldara put two rounds in him, center of
mass. The other guard had already flown forward, his face
blasting open as a 9mm round from Chief Adams blew through
the back of his head and out the front.
Dejti had drawn a pistol but he was surrounded and slowly
laid it on the ground, his hands in the air.
"Twelve seconds!" Graznya yelled, backing through the door
and closing and bolting it.
"Tag and bag 'im," Russell said, thrusting Nicu at the
Keldara now filling the hall. Two were covering the far end, one
was working on the downed Keldara and the other two caught
Nicu, rapidly wrapping his hands and mouth with rigger's tape.
"You're going to die for this," Dejti said as Russell caught a
tossed roll of tape and pulled off a strip.
"I've heard that one before," Mike said.
"Seven, six..."
* * *
"How's Endar?" Mike asked as the van pulled away.
"Bad," Yevgeni answered, pulling off his black balaclava. "I
think even if we could take him to the hospital he would not
make it."
"Vanner, status on the casualty?" Mike asked as soon as he
had his headset in.
"Gone, sir," Vanner answered. "I get terminal reactions. He
took one through the aorta, I think. They must have been using
hot rounds."
"That Scorpion was a 5.54 variant,"
Adams said. "It went right through the
plate. I checked. Three rounds, one of them dead through the
target point."
"Understood," Mike said. "Continue plan."
* * *
"What do we have?" Mike asked as he walked in the new
command post.
It was another abandoned warehouse. The former Eastern
Bloc was littered with them. Mostly they had held military
equipment that was designed to fight the evil Americans and their
hordes of puppet-state armies. Once the world woke up and
shook off the miasma of communism, they'd been filled with
nothing of much use. The military equipment was sold off at ten
cents on the dollar, if that, the factories mostly shut down and the
warehouses now awaited someone to fill them with...something.
At the moment this one was filled with white vans,
computers, cots and Keldara racking out on the floor and talking
in low tones about the op. It had been successful, but the loss of
Endar was clearly weighing on them.
And towards the back it was filled by two guys trussed up in
station chairs and the group regarding them with interest.
"We got anything useful to ask them yet, Vanner?" Mike
asked.
"Not really," Patrick replied. "We're still looking for
Natalya. Do you know that they've moved over two hundred girls
named Natalya alone in the last year. Twenty in the period we're
looking for."
"You should be through twenty already," Mike said.
"They're database is for shit," Patrick sighed. "They're using
Excel if you can believe it. Finding a grouping of Natalya's is
easy. I think it's only twenty in the date range, some of the dates
aren't input right. And I've looked at those; she's not any of them.
So I'm expanding the search."
"Hurry," Mike said, turning to look at Nicu and Dejti. "I'm
looking forward to asking these guys the right questions."
"Ah, here she is," Vanner said, happily. "She was received on
the fifteenth of May and shipped out on the third of July. The guy
transporting her was called Mehmet Hubchev and she was going
to the Belgrade
facility..."
"So we're going to Belgrade
?" Mike said.
"But!" Vanner added. "There's a note that she was to be
transshipped to Rozaje. Where in the hell is Rozaje?"
"Montenegro,"
Adams said. "Near the Albanian border."
"That got a rise out of Dejti, here," Mike said, stepping
forward and yanking off the tape on the Albanian's mouth. "So,
Dejti, what's so important about Rozi or whatever."
"I tell you nothing!" the Albanian said, spitting at him.
"Hey, a live one," Mike said. "Chief, the screams really hurt
my ears, stuff something in his mouth."
"Okay," Adams said, stepping
forward while he drew his knife. He took Nicu's ear in a thumb
and forefinger and then cut it off, neatly. Then in one swift
motion he stuffed it in Dejti's mouth and followed it with a wad
of cloth. "That do?"
"Works," Mike said, stepping around the back of the chair to
pick up the sledge hammer. "Now, it only took a couple of wacks
from this to get Nicu's friend...what was his name?"
"Yuri," Vanner said, helpfully. "Hey, boss, there are only a
couple of girls in each shipment sent to this Rozaje place. Most
of them get sent to other brothels or straight to Albania with notes to check them
for breaking and then send them through the pipeline to Italy
. I only count...twenty females in the last
six months that went to Rozaje. I've got it on a map; there can't
be much of a brothel there, it's tiny."
"So, Dejti," Mike said, pulling the hammer back. "We're
going to talk about Rozaje."
Once the screams had died down, Adams pulled out the ear. Then he picked up a smaller sledge,
held the Albanians mouth shut by pushing up on his chin and
smashed out his teeth.
"Sorry about that addition, boss," he said, fishing in the
whimpering man's mouth. "I didn't want him biting me while I
got Nicu's ear out. Guess where I got that idea?"
"Not a problem," Mike said. "As long as he can talk. So,
Dejti, what's the deal with Rozaje."
"You look for girl," Dejti said. "One girl."
"That's right, one insignificant little Ukrainian hooker,"
Mike said. "So what's so important about Rozaje?"
"If she went to Rozaje, she is dead."
* * *
"We will find who did this and kill them," Luan Dejti said,
looking around the shattered office. Not much was visible; it was
clear that whoever had hit the club had left explosives behind.
Those had started a fire and even the police said there was not
much evidence. Witnesses had seen some people enter the back
rooms, but nobody could identify who they were. Except the
dead guards, possibly.
"They were professionals," Yarok Bezhmel said. Bezhmel
was one of the few "made" men in the Albanian mafia who was
not an Albanian. The former Spetznaz officer was highly
regarded by them, however, for his professional training and total
ruthlessness. "The shooting was short and precise, the bombs
were precisely placed and whoever took down the guards at the
door killed four guards armed with pistols and machine guns
with nothing but plastic knives."
"So, who are they?" Luan asked. "I want their balls. He was
my cousin. We cannot just walk away from this."
"Oh, no," the Russian said, squatting down and picking up a
spent cartridge. "Hmm... American 5.56 for their M-16s and
variants. I'd say that, somehow, you have angered the American
military my friend. That would explain the precision, at least. I
would say that this is the work of American special operations.
Their SEALs or even Delta Force. Perhaps one of their quieter
groups that works with the CIA or the Defense Department
intelligence. Yes, that would be it most likely. Their 'black ops'
groups. So, who did you anger in America
?"
"This should not be," Luan said, breathlessly. "What have I
done?"
"Perhaps you got the wrong girl," Yarok answered, standing
up. "I heard that Yuri in Chisinau has disappeared. A very clean
operation, very professional. He did much work with Nicu, no?"
"Yes, but I have no idea how much," Luan said, waving
around the room. "Everything is destroyed!"
"And if anything is gone, it is not evident to the fine
Romanian police," Yarok said, dusting off his knees. "I think I
need to go to Chisinau and ask questions. Also of your
employees here. But I will have better questions when I return.
Will you reopen the club?"
"Perhaps," Luan said, frowning. "It was a very good business
for us. But I will need a new front man. I don't suppose you want
to run a club?"
"Not at all," Yarok replied. "But I do need you to get some
people together for me, some people that are good with weapons.
Very good. We will need them."
Chapter Nineteen
"Well, I'd say that our cover is going to be pretty thin after
that one, Mike," Adams pointed out.
Mike looked out the window of the small hotel south of
Belgrade
and shrugged.
"I suppose we know the next main objective," Mike said.
"Bastards."
It was raining in Serbia
and the hills to the south were cloaked in
clouds. A shitty day for a shitty discussion.
"It was, more or less, what we said we were doing with the
girls," Adams pointed out.
"Yeah, but I really hoped that it didn't exist in reality," Mike
said.
"The world's a fucked up place," Adams opined. "So, do you think the Senator was a client?"
"But why's he looking for a girl that's dead?" Mike asked.
"That just doesn't make sense."
"We don't know she's dead," Adams
pointed out. "We only have what Dejti said."
"They snuff all the girls that go to Rozaje," Mike said, still
looking out at the rain.
"Most," Adams said.
"He only said that after we'd broken his other leg," Mike
said. "I'm not sure it was good intel. Besides, he was hard to
understand after you broke out his teeth."
"So we go to Rozaje, discuss it with this Bulgarian that runs
the place," Adams said. "We discuss it
with him really personally."
"I'm thinking about that," Mike said. "But there's a bunch of
problems."
"It's in the KFOR sector," the chief said. "I think the Fijians
have got that area at the moment."
"I really don't want to get in a fight with KFOR." The
Kosovo Force was an international peacekeeping enforcement
group placed in the Kosovo region of Serbia
after the brief Kosovo war. Effectively,
they policed the region. If the Keldara went in and wiped out
another Albanian brothel they wouldn't be dealing with just the
local police. And KFOR had access to modern forensic
techniques. They might not choose to use them under the
circumstances, but it was something to think about.
The worst bit, however, was what was unsaid.
"And KFOR knows about it," Adams pointed out.
Up until then. Damn.
* * *
"He's sure?" the president asked.
"As sure as he can be, Mr. President," Pierson replied. "I sent
him a code disc so we could send and receive highly encrypted
transmissions. His last transmissions indicate that the compound
in Kosovo is used for terminal sexual purposes..."
"They bring in hookers from around Eastern
Europe so rich and very sadistic bastards can kill
them during sex," the Defense Secretary said, bluntly.
"Yes, sir," the colonel said. At this point, he'd gotten used to
briefing the President; it went with the job. Office of Liaison was
founded to keep the current president up-to-date on what was
going on with very black, very special operations organizations
around the world. Pierson had gotten Mike dumped in his lap on
his first operation, back when Mike had a real life and a real
name. Since then he'd been Mike's "control", to the extent that the
former SEAL had any such thing.
If anyone, he should have been the point of contact on this
mission. It was obvious, now, why the senator had not used him.
"What in the hell was Traskel thinking?" the president
snapped. "Did he think that Mike wouldn't find out where the girl
had gone?"
"It's possible, Mr. President, that he was unaware," Pierson
pointed out. "We don't know that the Senator was a client."
"He traveled to Eastern Europe
during the same time-frame," the National Security Advisor
pointed out. Her normally dark face was gray with anger.
"So did three other senators from his party," the Secretary of
Defense pointed out. "And two from yours, Mr. President. So
were their families. And it was a very open trip."
"At the taxpayer's expense," the president said, angrily.
"Actually, Mr. President, it was paid for by a special interest
group," the Secretary of Defense replied. "The International
Association for Women's Rights. Apparently they hadn't
anticipated how...interested the congressmen and senators would
be in the subject; there are quite a few confidential reports on the
trip. Much went on that would be rather..."
"That if the American public got wind of it would cause a
firestorm," the National Security Advisor said with a sigh.
"I'm thinking less of the senator than of his son," the
Secretary said, musingly. "He had an entire report all of his own."
"If we even hint about this..." the president said.
"We can't do a thing," his chief of staff said. "We need those
reports to stay absolutely confidential. If there's even a hint that
anything about that trip came from our party, it would blast back
on us, hard."
"And in the meantime, we continue to just let it happen," the
National Security Advisor said, coldly.
"You know the problems with stopping it," the president
pointed out. "The pressures are too high for us to do more than
spit in the wind. And we've got other fish to fry, like stopping
terrorists from attacking the
United States
. In the meantime, it goes on. And, no, I
don't like that. Do you think I wouldn't stop it if I could?"
"No, sir," the NSA said, sighing. "It just, sorry, pisses me
off."
"Well, I suspect that this one operation is going to get
stopped," the secretary of defense said, smiling. "And stopped
hard."
* * *
"What are we going to do with Endar?" Adams
asked.
The question of what to do with three bodies was the current
topic of discussion. Two of them were easy. There are a million
ways to get rid of a body, some of which even worked if you
didn't want it discovered. However, all of them were a bit cold
for one of your own troops. And repatriating the body was out of
the question.
"We're going to take a little side trip," Mike said. "There are
some nice beaches down on the Adriatic coast and I think the
girls are due for a break."
"We're just going to cart a body around for the next few
days?" Adams asked, aghast.
"Look," Mike said. "We're carrying seven girls who look as
if they're intended for immoral purposes, over sixty weapons,
body armor, night vision goggles, entry tools, bugging tools,
hacking tools and at least six remaining kilos of explosive.
What's a couple of bodies to add to that?"
"Smell?" Adams asked.
"Get some dry ice."
* * *
Yarok scanned through the computer records, looking for he
knew not what.
He'd told Dejti that the group was American special
operations, but he still wasn't sure. The methods were the same,
if he had to guess he'd say SEAL by the entry patterns and the way
the groups moved based on the few remaining eye-witnesses. But
there was no reason he could find that an American special
operations unit would attack the Albanians. Quite the opposite,
in fact, given some of the videos in Dejti's hands.
He'd nosed around Chisinau, a bastard city in his opinion,
and some of Yuri's associates had mentioned a group of
Americans nosing around. They supposedly had Georgian girls
they were taking to a "special auction" in
Montenegro
. The also had more muscle than was
normal, at least fifteen or twenty Georgians.
The database he was looking at was from Interpol, a listing
of potential security threats in and around the EU zone. The
problem was, there were so many he wasn't sure what he was
looking for. The group might not have even been Georgian, but
he was concentrating there. But between the Ossetian separatist
movements and the Chechnyans...
He stopped in his perusal and backed up a page. There was a
note in the database about a new Georgian militia with American
training. A mountain infantry group called the Keldara.
"An American using the name of Michael Jenkins has begun
to form a new militia in the Georgian mountains. Said militia has
engaged with Chechnyan terrorist groups twice. Equipped with
light small arms, the group has undergone training with five or
more Western special operations trainers. Results of training
unknown."
There was a picture of "Jenkins" and he matched the
description of the American in Chisinau. Of course, so did half
the men in the world. But Yarok copied it off the database and
mailed it to his men in Timisoara
to show to the witnesses from the club.
He briefly considered simply turning the information over to
the Romanian authorities. They'd put the word out through
Interpol and that would certainly inconvenience this "Jenkins"
character. But it wouldn't fulfill his mission, which was to put
the man in an unmarked grave.
However, Interpol also kept a database of people using
hotels. It was slow to update, but it might give him an idea where
Jenkins was going...
* * *
The girls liked the hotel.
The Hotel Caesaria was on the Adriatic coast of Montenegro
, a narrow strip of land that included the
cities of Kotor and Perast. The town of
Zalenika
, which was where the hotel was located, could barely
count as a town, much less a city. There was a straggle of old
houses, a small market and a warf to support the primary local
industry: small boat fishing. The majority of the boats looked as
if they'd been constructed in the time of the Argonauts. They
were open "caiques", lightly built wooden dories originally
designed for one or two men to row them or to use small sails.
Their only concession to the 21st century was the
addition of small diesel motors. The fishermen would generally
leave in the afternoon, go out in to the reefs that choked the area,
lay down gill nets with gourd floats then pick them up the next
morning, starting usually at dawn.
Zalenika was near the opening of a large bay that serviced
the boat traffic of both Kotor and Parest. There wasn't much for
either, local trade was highly limited and there wasn't even a
regular ferry service to Dubrovnik, the
nearest major city, much less to Italy which was just across the Adriatic
. Zalenika was the definition of "backwater." The
hotel was just down the road from the main "town", near the very
tip of the cape that protected the bay.
There were a few beaches but mostly the coastline was too
rocky for good swimming. There was, however, enough room
for some sunbathing and a small beach by the hotel. Mike had
explained to the girls that, as part of their cover, it was important
that they looked as if they were just on a trip and getting a little
sun. After some pro-forma protests, most of the Keldara had
suited up and headed for the beach along with the three
"liberated" hookers.
Which left Mike out in a small Ladia, looking for a boat.
Two, actually.
Zalenika mostly fronted on its excuse for a warf. The small
bay that the city faced was curved in a semi-circle with ancient
jetties protecting it from northerly gales. The warf itself was a
seawall that looked as if the original stonework was Roman with
rickety wooden piers jutting out from it. It was backed by a
narrow street made of flagstones patched with everything from
bricks to concrete to sand. There were a couple of sailboats
anchored in the middle of the bay and a few ancient speedboats
tied up at the piers. Nets were hung up along the seawall to dry
but no fishermen were around when Mike parked his car,
removed the distributor to hopefully prevent its theft, and began
looking for a bar.
The first storefront was a general store. Just checking
around, Mike went inside.
There was a woman who looked to be a hundred, and was
probably forty, sitting behind the counter watching some show in
Serbian. It mostly involved women crying, which was about par
for this region. The shelves were filled with some of the worst
snack foods Mike had ever seen, and he'd been in plenty of third
world stores. For that matter, most of them looked as if their
sell-by date was before his birthday and they were covered in
dust. He peeked in the two refrigerators and backed away hastily.
The contents were mostly local erzatz Coke knock-offs. He'd had
one of those during his previous trip through the area and
regretted it for days.
As he went out he had to shake his head. There was a post-
card rack celebrating the wonders of visiting scenic Zalenika.
Most of the post-cards were faded to the point of illegibility. He
wondered who ever figured this place for a major tourist
destination.
The second store was a fish market. From the smell, he was
more than willing to pass right by.
The third, however, was what he was looking for. The small
restaurant and bar - the distinction was small in places like this
– had a few rickety tables out front and a big sign in
Serbian that had seen better days. Under it another weathered sign
proclaimed that he had found "The Head of the Albanian."
His kind of place.
Mike sat down at one of the tables, which rocked
ferociously on the flagstones of the street, and wondered if he'd
get any service.
After staring out at the not-particularly-scenic scene in front
of him for about a half an hour, and noting the lack of boat
traffic, a man came out from the back wiping his hands on a
rather dirty cloth.
"You want drink?" the man said in passable English.
"Wine," Mike replied. "In the bottle."
"Carafe," the man said, slapping the back of his right hand
into his left palm in the local signal for "all gone."
"Carafe, then," Mike sighed. The alcohol would probably fix
whatever was growing in the carafe. "Some bread and fish. As
long as it's not from the place next door."
"No problem," the man said, grinning a gap-toothed smile.
"Is fresh."
"Fresh last week, probably," Mike said.
"Today," the man replied. "Fishermen come here. I buy their
fish. You want prawns?"
"Steamed, if you can," Mike said, nodding.
The prawns, local shrimp and about half the size of a small
lobster, were actually pretty good. They'd be better with drawn
butter, but that had never caught on in the Adriatic region. Hell,
in the Mediterranean, for that matter.
The wine, on the other hand, was paint thinner. Mike ordered tea,
hot, which wasn't exactly awful, and sipped at that.
It was about three PM when the fishermen started to show
up. Mostly they headed for their boats and started to load the
dried nets into large baskets then stowed them in the covered
forecastles. However, a few stopped into the tavern for a belt
before heading out.
When most of the boats were gone, one of the men who was
clearly a fisherman remained, morosely sipping at the paint
thinner wine.
"No boat?" Mike asked in Russian.
"Is in yard," the man replied in something that was half
Serbian, half Russian. Both were Slavic root languages and
hadn't actually drifted that much. They were about as similar as
two types of German. "You fish?"
"I want boat," Mike replied. "Two. One to buy, one to rent.
Where's yard?"
"Down around corner," the man said, pointing to the south
east. "I show you?"
"And get a cut?" Mike asked, smiling.
"Is good day not to fish," the man said. "Especially if I get
some money anyway."
* * *
On the east side of the town was another small bay Mike
hadn't suspected was there. There weren't any piers but there was
a narrow strip of sand and rocks where a small boatyard existed.
There were about three caiques in various stages of
completion, two more drawn up and being worked on,
supposedly, and a few small speedboats. Most of the latter were
clearly the worst for wear but two were in decent condition at
first glance and one even had an outboard motor mounted.
"This is Drulovic," the fisherman said, walking up to a man
who was bent over a torn apart diesel. "Drulovic, this is man who
wants boats."
"I need one of those," Mike said, pointing to the caiques
drawn up on the shore. "To buy. And a speedboat to use for a day
or so. Both have to work."
"Those I'm making for people," Drulovic said, wiping his
hands on a cloth. "One of the others, it was Vasa's. He's gone.
Never paid me. It needs work."
"Two days," Mike said. "That's when I need it. How much?"
"Two thousand euros," Drulovic said, shrugging.
"Three hundred," Mike said, automatically.
"You want it working in two days, you give me two
thousand euros," Drulovic said, grinning. "And you give me
another three thousand as deposit on other boat. What you going
to do with it?"
"Bury somebody," Mike snapped. "Five hundred for the
caique; it only has to work for a couple of hours. And a thousand
deposit."
"A thousand for the caique," Dulovic said, thoughtfully. "A
thousand deposit and a hundred to use it."
"Done," Mike replied, dipping in his pocket and pulling out
a wad of cash. "Half now, half when I pick it up."
"You carry a lot of money around," Dulovic mused as he
counted out half the money.
"Very few people are stupid enough to try to steal from me,"
Mike replied, handing over the wad of cash. "Otherwise I'll need
to buy another boat."
Chapter Twenty
"Okay, you are officially nuts," Adams said as Mike pulled the caique up on the rocks strewn
shore of the cove.
Finding the right place for the ceremony had turned out to
be the toughest job; coves along the Adriatic that were landable at all tended to have villas. As did this
one, the difference being that the owners weren't home.
Most of the Keldara were gathered on the shore. Endar had
been loaded on a bier made of four different woods while the
two slavers still rested in the plastic bags that, along with liberal
addition of ice, had kept the smell down for the last week.
"First the wood," Mike said. "You got the kerosene?"
"Of course I have the kerosene," Adams snapped. "And this is going to be visible for miles!"
"By the time anybody gets to the boat, they're going to be
toast," Mike replied. "Everybody checked out."
"I even paid the bill."
"Sawn."
"Yes, Kildar," the Keldara team leader said, stepping
forward.
"The wood is to be loaded by Tenghiz and Padrec," Mike
said, stepping back. "Then the bodies by Slavic and his team. His
weapons are to be laid by Rusudani. You will take the position
of Priest of the All Father and sing him to sea."
"Yes, Kildar," Sawn said, nodding.
"Before we begin, I will explain," Mike said, stepping onto
the moonlit beach. All lights had been left behind in the vans
along with a small security detachment composed mostly of the
trainers. "The translation of the song of the wanderers shows that
your tribe came, long ago, from among the ranks of sea-faring
warriors. It was their tradition to send their great warriors who
had died in battle to sea. They would shove a specially made boat
into the sea and set it afire. We're going to drive this one out to
sea and then set it on fire with Beslan, his weapons and his dead
foes. I cannot bring Beslan back to the valley. This is the best
choice I can think of."
"We understand, Kildar," Sawn replied, nodding. "It is said
that even in the days of the Tsar a few of the dead each year,
especially the Family seniors, would be burned on the pyre. This
is a rite we accept. Thank you."
"Like I said, best I can do," Mike answered, shrugging. "Lets
get started."
Sawn wasn't the best singer among the Keldara, but he was
pretty good. And he'd heard the words of the funeral rite, the
Keldara funeral rite, enough times to be able to repeat them.
Mike wasn't sure what language they were in, it certainly wasn't
Georgian and he suspected it wasn't Celtic like the song of the
wanderers. The latter was sung each spring by the best voice in
the tribe. At the last ceremony McKenzie, the former SAS NCO,
had been able to partially translate it as an epic about a wandering
group of fighters that had come from the far north and been
captured and enslaved then forced to defend an inhospitable
fortress on the edges of the empire. The clues in the song were
clear to Mike, who had wondered about some of the oddities of
the Keldara and the caravanserai.
The original Keldara had been a group of Norse, and
apparently Scot, warriors that had made their way down through
the Mediterranean until they encountered the
Byzantine Empire. Since they were clearly related to
the guards of the Byzantine Emperors, the Varangian guard, they
were grouped with a small team of actual Varangians and sent to
guard the caravanserai, which at the time was a lucrative income
generator on the Silk Road.
Since that time, with influxes of succeeding waves of
invaders, their fortunes had fallen even further, leaving them as
mere farmers in a lost mountain valley. But the warrior core
remained and had been brought out by the training of the
American and British soldiers Mike had brought in.
Now, the circle closed. The latest Keldara dead, like their
forebearers of old, would be sent out to sea on a wooden boat
with the bodies of his foes at his feet and his weapons piled at his
head.
It was a hell of a lot better than being dumped in an
unmarked grave. And since Mike intended to take the boat to
damned near the horizon before lighting it off, there was damned
little chance anyone would notice. Or, given the area, care.
Of course, they'd pulled the ammo. They were going to need
it.
Chapter Twenty-One
The villa was actually southwest of Rozaje, right up in the
mountains near the Albanian border. The road from Rozaje,
according to the map and satellite photos, stopped not far beyond
the villa, but a collection of trails was evident as well, some of
them passable to all-terrain vehicles. It was likely that the villa
was on a smuggling route from
Serbia into Albania
. The same routes had supplied the KLA
during the war against the Serbians.
Mike had expected that getting into the area would be harder
than normal. The region was under the sporadic control of the
Kosovo Force and Mike had expected more efficient checks than
had been characteristic up to this point. The first check, the
"border" crossing from the Serbian controlled area had really had
him worried. The troops were French and thus, he'd assumed,
unbribable.
However, while there were French troops in the area, the
actual border crossing had been under the control of Serbians.
Mike had spoken to them in Russian and put in the usual tip. The
Serbs had looked in the vans, seen that the cargo was mostly
women, and waved them through.
From there the trip had been smooth. There were two
internal checkpoints that had caught them but at the first the same
tip had worked and at the second Katya and Nikki had sealed the
deal. Mike was still unsure about bargaining his way through on
the backs of the girls, but if it worked he wasn't going to knock
it.
Montenegro
was an anomaly. Depending upon who
you asked, it was either a province of Serbia,
according to Serbia,
an independent state, according to most of the residents or
something in between, according to most of the rest of the world
and certainly the US
government. In 1992, in the wake of the
Dayton Accords, the then legislature and president had agreed to
not separate from Serbia , as Croatia
and Bosnia
had done. The decision was so
controversial that even the US
government didn't recognize it.
Furthermore, the Serbians were unsure how to deal with it since
Montenegro
had it's own freely elected government
and, notably, it's own burgeoning army. So for the time being,
nobody rocked the boat. Technically, it was a province, but in
reality it was an independent state.
The name "Montenegro" translated as " Black
Mountain" and in keeping with
the name Montenegro
, whether it was a province or a country,
was definitely mountainous. The mountains were alpine in their
heights, not even up to Georgian standards, but they were pretty
serious hills. The country stretched from the plains of, definitely,
Serbia to the Adriatic and the very limited flatland was
either cultivated or covered by cities.
Their objective was in keeping with the terrain and,
therefore, wasn't a pretty sight from the perspective of assault.
"Right on the hilltop," he noted, looking through the
binoculars and taking pictures.
"The outer perimeter security is KFOR," Adams
noted. "Fijians."
"We're going to have to figure something out about them,"
Mike said. "We don't want to go around killing KFOR troops."
"Tasers?" Adams asked.
"Maybe."
The high hill had wall terraced into its sides as well. Anyone
approaching was going to be in view. And he'd gotten a count on
at least six guards inside the compound. That meant, at a guess,
something on the order of twenty total in three shifts. They'd
have to lay this one out carefully. A frontal assault had all the
makings of a disaster.
"We'll leave a couple of the Keldara up here to get the guard
schedule," Mike said, sliding back down the ridge overlooking
the compound. "Two days to prep. Let's get working on a plan."
* * *
"Guards change three times per day," Vanner said, pointing
to the sand table of the compound that was set up in the small
conference room the hotel hosted. If the owners had questions
about why a group of slave traders wanted a conference room, a
hefty tip had answered them. "Girls normally arrive during the
day and not later than midnight, according to our sources." By
which he meant the now deceased Dejti.
"This is going to be hairy," Vanner continued, looking at his
console. "We don't even have a good internal schematic. What if
they dump their records when we hit? I mean, even if they've
made backup DVDs, you throw those in a microwave and set it
on high and they're toast."
"I think we might be overmuscling this one," Mike said,
looking at the window design again. Over the years, Western
special operations and their intelligence support units had
developed an encyclopedic database of windows and doors
throughout the world. Even older, by definition custom-made,
windows such as those on the villa fit basic parameters which
were in the database. And Vanner just happened to have acquired
a copy.
Mike sometimes had to wonder if Vanner was his actual
control.
"Define," Adams said, looking up
from the rough floor plan that had been worked out from
external observation. The outer rooms were sketched in, lightly,
with vast areas of gray area. They knew there was a basement,
there was a visible door, but they had no idea of the lay-out.
"Well, overmuscling is when you're using too much force
for a mission," Vanner said, looking up from his computer with a
smile.
"Wise ass," the chief growled."So what are you thinking?"
"I'm thinking we're going to need Lasko and Praz," Mike
replied, musingly. "And some special equipment."
"Make up a list," Vanner said, sighing.
"And we need more interior data," Mike said, rubbing his
chin in thought. "We can try to find one of the Albanians that
work there and bribe him for a layout..."
"They're all from one clan," Vanner said, flipping through a
chart of the known guards. "At least it looks that way."
"Which would be risky," Mike continued. "We can try to
insert a girl into the place, such as Katya..."
"I was wondering why you'd been carting her around," Adams said. "Besides for looks."
"Might I remind everyone that this is a snuff house?" Vanner
pointed out. "Whoever goes in there probably isn't going to come
out!"
"It's Katya," Mike said, offhand, then smiled. "Just joking."
"Thank God," Vanner said, breathing out.
"Besides," Mike continued, still looking at the windows,
"what I really meant was that I'd be damned surprised if Katya got
snuffed. Even if we weren't banking on her getting intel out to
us. I mean, think about it: Fat middle-aged European or
American or Japanese rich jackass, poor-little-practically-
virginal-crying-thing..."
"And you've been teaching Katya hand-to-hand, haven't
you?" Adams said, nodding. "You
think...?"
"No," Mike replied. "Because I don't think she could get the
intel out. Kill her perp, sure. If it was an assassination mission I'd
send her in a heartbeat, pardon the pun. But for this, I don't think
she's right."
"So...what?" Adams said, throwing
up his hands.
"Pleased to meet you..." Mike whispered, finally looking up,
"won't you guess my name?"
* * *
"The group that hit the Club Dracul is called the Keldara,"
Yarok said, bringing up the first slide. "They are a Georgian
militia group, using the women smuggling routes and a cover of
being sex smugglers. There are about fifteen to twenty shooters
in the group as well as some women from their tribe. I'm not sure
of the function of the women. In addition, they've picked up one
or more women from normal sources on the way."
"Where are they now?" Boris Dejti asked, angrily. "We will
rape their women before their eyes then gouge them out."
Boris Dejti was the senior Dejti clan member in charge of
all the scattered "operations" in the Balkans. There were
members of the clan more senior than he, but they were all semi-
retired in the back-country of
Albania
. However, Boris realized he was going to
have to have a talk with the Senior Fathers about the events of
Club Dracul. And he wanted to be able to give them a timeline
on how long it was going to take to avenge the attack.
"You will be lucky to kill them at all," Yarok said.
"Remember what they did to the Club. It's defenses were
formidable but they took it down with, at most, one casualty. I
think you had better leave them to me. As to where they are, they
were supposed to be going to
Montenegro
. They certainly haven't used a major hotel
there, but that might have been disinformation. The last report I
had on their movements was in
Serbia
. They may be heading for Kosovo."
"Then they are heading into the lion's den," Boris replied,
happily. "We will find them and kill them. There are many
fighters available in Kosovo and Montenegro
."
"You're certainly permitted to try," Yarok said with a sigh.
"But don't say I didn't warn you. I'd recommend increasing
security at facilities in the south. They have taken at least three
people and probably tortured them for information. They are
looking for something. When we figure out what, we'll know
where they are going..."
* * *
Mike loved the night. Of course, that was fundamental to his
one great gift, but he still loved it.
The night had never held any terrors for him, even as a child.
He remembered walking through darkened woods when he was
no more than eight and simply being enthralled by the difference
between the night and day. At night, every sound was clearer and
sharper, all the senses alive to the slightest hint of wrongness.
Like the waves of smell wafting off the Fijian sentry.
There was a thirty meter open area to cross to the first
terrace and the sentry was on a regular beat. One hundred paces
south, turn, one hundred paces north. On the other hand, he
wasn't Teutonic in his pace. Quite often he'd simply stop and lean
against the wall. If that happened while Mike was crossing, it
would be a bitch.
The choices were simple, fast or slow. If Mike waited until
he was near the end of his beat and then darted across, he could
be up on the second terrace before the guy reached the end. On
the other hand, if he stopped and turned Mike's movement was
sure to give him away.
However, if Mike went slow there was a good chance he'd
be caught in the open area by the sentry. He was good enough
that the sentry might simply walk past. Might.
There was a small niche in the wall of the terrace where
some stones had fallen and lay scattered in the grass. As a hiding
place it would normally be discounted, but between Mike's
ghillie suit and luck, he could probably hole up there to let the
sentry pass.
As the sentry continued on his southward journey, Mike
opted for a middle ground. He lifted himself up on fingers and
toes, a leopard stance, and slithered out onto the close-cropped
grass.
There was a half-moon tonight, but the clouds were fairly
solid. The mottled light actually made seeing harder. If they
broke up he might have problems. For now, though, the clouds
were still solid. There was also a slight breeze from the
southwest, blowing any sound he might make, slight at best,
away from the sentry.
Mike kept his head down, looking mostly at the grass with
occasional glances at the sentry, and envisioned himself as
darkness and silence. He wasn't sure if the mental state was really
helpful or not, it seemed like mumbo-jumbo to him. But he'd
used it most of his career and even if it was only self-hypnosis he
wasn't going to change things now.
He made it to the niche and paused as the sentry turned to
head back. All the cover he had was the broken wall and his
ghillie suit. He had a silenced .45 if it came down to cases, but he
really didn't want to kill this Fijian guy. For one thing, he didn't
deserve it. All he was was a poor guy far from home told to
guard a facility. There was a 99.999 to infinity percent chance
that the guy had no idea what was going on in the villa. But even
if he did, Mike would eventually have to fess up to having offed
him. Which would drop him in the clacky. Killing Albanian
pimps was one thing, killing a soldier on a UN sponsored peace-
enforcement mission was another. Words would be had. And
then there was the fact that it would probably blow the mission.
The sentry made it to within five meters of Mike's spot and
stopped, turning to look out at the darkness and stretching his
back. He propped his weapon on the wall, about three feet from
Mike's niche, leaned back against it and fumbled in his pocket for
a cigarette and light.
Mike closed his eyes as the lighter flared and the smell of
cheap, strong, tobacco wafted over him and tried not to sigh.
Lord only knew how long the guy was going to rest there. Mike
was just settling in to wait when he heard a hail from the north
and cringed; the sergeant of the guard was wandering around.
He'd only done that one other night. Why tonight?!
Mike didn't speak a word of Fijian, but he'd spent enough
time around grunts and doing guard duty himself to fill in the
blanks.
"What a night, huh?"
"Just like last night. Nothing to fucking do but look at the
woods. Why the fuck are we here?"
"Because we're too poor to be sitting on the beach in Fiji
."
"I should have gone to work for my cousin Emil at the dive
shop."
"I didn't know your cousin Emil had a dive shop."
"Sure, down in Toraborabawankununka. You know it."
"Sure, Toraborabawankununka Dive and Sport. Hey, I used to
go there when I was on vacation..."
Mike suddenly realized he was muttering the lines of
dialogue and stopped as the sergeant said something he translated
as "Well, I've got to get back and check my paperwork..."
...and wandered back to the north.
He was definitely getting too old, and too introspective, for
this work.
With the sergeant headed north, the guard headed south.
Mike waited until they were both separated by at least thirty
meters from his position, stood up, stretched his aching joints
and oozed up onto the wall.
Thirty yards from the woodline to the first terrace. Three
terraces, each between twenty and thirty meters wide. Then the
final wall up onto the balconies. From the terraces, except when
he scrambled to the next higher, he wasn't visible to the sentry
below. And the terraces weren't patrolled. But there were
Albanian guards up on the patios around the villa. This far down,
he wasn't going to be particularly visible to the guards, who did
not use night-vision systems. But as he got closer he'd be more
and more likely to get spotted. From here on out, slow and
cautious movements were the order of the evening. In and back.
The Albanian guard was visible up on the patio. He was
looking out towards the woods, not down at the terraces, as far
as Mike could tell. But movement drew the eye. Mike eased over
the wall onto the first terrace and then oozed, slowly, across the
terrace until he was in the shadow of the second wall. So far, no
alarm.
If the shit totally hit the fan, a Keldara reaction team was in
the woods to cover his withdrawal. Of course, that would blow
the mission, permanently. If that happened they might never find
out what happened to the girl. And then the president would get
all pissy and the senator would go on doing what he, presumably,
did. That wasn't on.
Mike lifted up and checked on the sentry who was
apparently, from the smoke and slight IR signature, taking
another smoke break. Lifting up further he saw that the Albanian
was talking to another guy, their heads turned away from the
view. He slithered up the rocks of the wall then began sliding
across the open area just as the moon broke out of the clouds.
He froze, immediately, not looking up. His face was covered
in camoflage makeup and the ghillie suit had a light mesh mask
in addition. But a face always seemed to be the easiest thing to
pick out. He simply waited on the sward, sweating a little despite
the cool of the night, until the moon went back behind the
clouds. Then he started his sneak again.
Three terraces, each of them bringing him closer to the
Albanian who was hanging out at the top. Within an hour, Mike
was crouched at the base of the wall of the last terrace, smelling
the thick, acrid stench of the Albanian's cigarette. This one was, if
anything, more vile than the Fijian's. Mike had never seen the
point in using tobacco; all it did was blunt the senses and ruin
your night vision. On the other hand, he loved it when enemies
used it.
There were eight guards on duty in the house. Five were on
exterior duty, one on each side with an additional one by the gate
on the east side and two were, apparently, on various internal
points. The eighth acted as something like a sergeant of the
guard, roaming from point to point to make sure the others
stayed awake and alert.
During the day and into the evening there were, in addition,
about five Albanians and a handful of local workers. The locals
were probably ethnic Albanians for that matter.
Getting past the Albanian was going to be harder than
getting past the Fijian. The open area at the bottom was larger
than the one at the top for one thing. And the Albanian didn't
seem to be wandering. He was just hanging out in place with a
full view of the final stretch of ground and of the patio to either
side.
Mike stripped off his night vision goggles and lifted up a
mirror, angling it over the top of the wall. As he'd climbed he had
shifted to the north and he was about twenty meters from where
the Albanian was standing, leaning with his arms on the low
railing or wall that surrounded the patio. It was, apparently,
concrete or similar materials formed in a lacy, open pattern. First
there was the open area of the terrace, then the six foot high wall,
then a slight ledge, then the railing.
Getting over that railing was going to be impossible if the
guard was standing in plain view. Which was why Mike planned
on distracting him.
He reached into his utility pocket and pulled out a small
flashlight. When he flicked it on, nothing appeared to happen, but
that was just if you had the wrong vision.
* * *
"There's the signal," Sawn said, picking up the UV light
from the flash through his night vision goggles and nodding at
Vanner.
"Roll the party," Vanner whispered into the mike.
* * *
"It's nice to finally get to have some fun," Graznya said,
flicking a lighter into life and applying it to the string of
firecrackers.
"I've never actually set fireworks off," Katya replied, holding
up a long tube. "What is this?"
"Roman candle," Listra said, smiling. "We'll save that until
we have their attention..."
* * *
At the first sounds of gunfire, Kreshnik Daci's head snapped
up. It had been a long and tiring night and he was spoiling for
action. When he'd been sent out to help the far flung reaches of
the gang run by his family clan, he'd expected much more
fighting and more of a view of the world. Thus far, he'd beat up a
few uppity bitches in Lunari, guarded a group of girls in transit in
Serbia, loaded some
on a boat to Italy
and ended up guarding this place. None of
it was contributing to his real dream, which was to get a student
visa to America
.
Short of that, he wanted to shoot someone.
So he actually hoped someone was attacking the villa.
Anyone who did so, though, had to be insane. They'd have to
assault up the slope in full view of the guards who had more than
just the Czech Skorpion he was toting. They'd get slaughtered if
they tried. Which was all right by him.
However, the gunfire was not close. It was on a hill about
five hundred meters away to the southeast. He wandered in that
direction, just as a ball of fire drifted up and then swore. It wasn't
gunfire at all, just some kids playing with fireworks. Okay, so
from the tracers, they were also shooting off a gun, but they
weren't shooting at the villa.
"Kreshnik!" Imer called over the radio. "What is
happening?"
"Some fireworks," Daci replied, walking down to the
southeast corner of the patio. "Some kids probably. Somebody
shooting off an AK, too. But it's not coming this way."
"Oooo," Gustini Huksa wooed as a bottle rocket ascended
and then erupted in a shower of sparks. The southern guard had
drifted over to the corner and now lit up another cigarette. The
flash bastard smoked American Marlboros. Gustini had been
assigned to Herzjac, the main town that supplied IFOR with it's
girls. There he'd struck up a deal with one of the UN vendors:
two cartons of Marlboros for one hour with a girl. It was a
win/win situation for the two since the vendor could "loss" the
Marlboros and Gustini didn't even have to do that much
paperwork with the girls. When he left he turned the source over
to another guard for a share of the action. He still got a couple of
cartons of Marlboros every week. "Nice. I wish I was out there
rather than stuck in this rathole."
"Sooner or later we'll get to go somewhere else," Kreshnik
opined with no real hope. He had been told that assignment to
this villa was a sign of the trust and respect that the clan had for
him. So far, it seemed like a dead-end.
The fireworks didn't last long and as the last faded, Imer
appeared.
"Nice, you're both watching the fireworks instead of your
posts," the older man snapped. "Get back in place and make sure
no one has gotten past you."
"How could they?" Gustini argued, waving at the hilltop. "It
would take a ghost to get up the hill without us seeing him!"
Chapter Twenty-Two
Mike stepped through the door and closed it softly on oiled
hinges. The alarm had been tricky but the lock was totally vanilla.
The room he was in was a rather pleasant dining area with
the look of a breakfast room. The floor was hardwood with
thrown carpets that had the feel, from their depth and softness, of
being costly. Clearly no expense had been spared in hosting the
exclusive clientele. He had a hard time putting that together with
the nature of the establishment, but he supposed that after a hard
night torturing the whores the customers were probably ready for
a good breakfast before they began their day.
It wasn't, however, useful from his point of view. The single
interior door didn't show any light so, after carefully oiling the
hinges and checking for alarms, he opened it soundlessly.
The hallway beyond was, indeed, unlit. It was hardwood
again, and he stepped carefully but still elicited a squeak. Moving
down the edge limited the noise. To the right, near the end, there
was a door with light coming from it and the hallway intersected
a lit corridor there.
He slid up his vision system and slid silently down the
hallway to the lit doorway. Squatting down and keeping an ear
out for approaching guards he slid a fiber-optic camera under the
door. Paydirt.
The interior was an office and security room. One of the
guards was napping in front of a computer console that was
playing back either a scene from in the building or a similar rape
video. There were three computers in the room, including the one
the guard was napping in front of, along with file cases and paper
scattered over a desk.
Mike snapped a couple of pics of the room then slid the
camera out. Stepping to the corner he slid the camera out at
ground level and looked around. There was one more guard, as
well as the rover, to find. Nobody in the cross corridor but there
was another lit room. The far end opened out into a large room.
From the exterior map that had been developed that would be the
main entrance. The doors along that hallway were more or less
mapped from exterior observation. The one with the lit doorway
was the guard room, then there were two parlors for "meet and
greet." The last was always curtained, so it's purpose was
unknown. There were two external rooms along the hallway, also
purpose unknown. The end of this corridor would terminate in
the ground floor kitchen. Somewhere, there were going to be
stairs to the upper floors and to the basement.
Mike slid back down the unlit corridor, sliding the camera
under the unlit doorways. The exterior "gray" rooms were
bedrooms. From the accoutrements, they were designed as low-
impact bondage rooms. The beds had shackles on them but there
was no sign of suspension gear and cleaning them up would be a
pain.
The inner rooms, however, were apparently for rougher play.
One had a bed in it, but it was covered only with a matress cover
and stains on the side indicated that blood had been spilled. The
other was a straight torture room. Getting the camera in that
room was tough since the door was solid to the ground. But
there was a rubber lintle and Mike slid it in.
No girls, though. And the rooms still didn't have the look of
serious killing rooms.
Mike paused as he heard a door open and close followed by
footsteps coming down the lit corridor.
He opened the door to the room adjacent to the office and
slid over to the partitioning wall. Slipping out a contact mike, he
placed it on the wall and slid in an earbud.
The door to the room opened and there was a barked
exclamation followed by the sound of a chair hitting the floor
along with a body. The following conversation was in Albanian,
which Mike couldn't even begin to make out. But the chewing
out was clear enough. The rest, as things settled down, was
unclear. Finally, it finished and the supervisor left the room.
Mike waited until the footsteps had died down and the guard
in the room started snoring. Then he stepped back out into the
corridor.
Mike continued down the corridor to the door at the end and
checked that. Kitchen. Okay, that was an exterior, but they hadn't
been able to get a full view. There didn't appear to be anyone in it
at the moment. He oiled the hinges and opened the door
carefully.
The room was large and well scrubbed with a large range,
industrial refrigerator and a center prep island. Stepping into the
room he could see five doors besides the one to the exterior. One
of them, from the look, was a walk in fridge or freezer. He'd
check that last. One checked out as a large pantry, a second
opened onto another interior corridor, the third opened onto a
small room that appeared to be another office, the fourth,
though, led to stairs both up and down. Basement entry and a way
to the top floor.
He stepped over to the freezer and took a look inside then
backed away hastily. There were a couple of large sides of meat
towards the back but two bodies of young women dangled from
hooks towards the front. Both had been savagely tortured from
the marks. One had a cut throat and the other looked as if she had
been strangled.
Mike slid out a low-light camera and took pics of both girls
then quietly closed the door. Neither was the target and getting
pissed about the find would simply degrade his performance. He
put the sight aside and checked the door to the stairs.
The stairs down were simple wood, those going up were
covered in carpet. He chose up first, stepping along the side to
reduce squeaks.
The landing at the top had another door, this one bolted on
the inside. He quietly slipped the fiber optic camera under the
door.
The hallway was brightly lit and it took his eyes a moment to
adjust. When they did, the first thing he noticed was a guard
sitting in a chair and napping at the far end of the to the left. That
would be to the north.
He stepped back down the stairs, going all the way to the
bottom floor. There was another bolted door and he checked
under it.
The basement was a pure torture dungeon. There were a
couple of cages along one side, various pieces of furniture
including a St. Andrew's Cross and a saddle as well as suspension
devices. There were also a couple of metal tables and a bed with
rubber sheets on it. The tables had been cleaned, but from the
looks of the floor bad things had happened.
He slipped into the room and looked around carefully. He
had to step up on one of the tables to find what he was looking
for, but he finally found the first one hidden in the suspension
rig: the room was wired for full audio and video. He doubted the
monitors were live at the moment, but it would be a bad thing if
they were.
Okay, the layout was solid. Time to egress.
He moved quietly back up the stairs to the kitchen then
down the hallway to the breakfast room. He half-wished he'd
brought some poison along. Serve the bastards right. He'd done
as much, or worse, to men in the past. The recent past come to
think of it. But that was a target and the purpose was obtaining
information. Not just to get his rocks off.
The worst part was that he knew that the whole set-up held
an attraction for him. Inside he was, face it, the sort of person
who patronized this establishment. He had thought more than
once about not only rape but torturing a woman just to get his
kicks. Killing her even. Brutally and with the greatest possible
fear and pain inflicted.
That didn't mean he did it. He had the...discipline to control
that particular demon. Admittedly, he channeled it into things
that were damned near as horrible. But this was...vile.
And he was going to end it.
* * *
"Any trouble getting through customs?" Mike asked.
"Not really," Praz said, shrugging. The retired member of the
Army Marksmanship Training Unit was the Keldara sniper
instructor. Short and muscular, he had come in second twice in a
row on the "long shot" at Camp
Perry
, being beaten out by the same Marine sniper. Mike
had his eye on the Marine as soon as he quit the Corps. "They
thought we were crazy, but they didn't give us any hassle."
"What is the mission?" Lasko asked, setting the long cases
down on the bed. The former hunter was one of the oldest
Keldara in the force, but he'd hardened like teak. Thin and wiry,
he looked like nothing so much as the mountain goats he
normally hunted. The goats were wary and had very keen vision;
in general the only shot even a very good hunter got was at over
five hundred meters. Lasko was a firm believer in coming back
with as many goats as expended cartridges and he usually did.
"Right up your alley, Las," Mike said, his face hard.
"Choosers of the slain."
* * *
"Sniper teams in position," Praz said over the radio.
"Dart team One in position," Sawn whispered. "All targets
present."
"Dart two in position," Valdam whispered. "Ready."
"Bravo entry, ready," Adams said.
"Alpha entry..." Mike whispered back, looking around,
"ready. Initiate."
* * *
Sawn peeped through the scope and calculated the wind,
again. The darts were very low velocity and tended to drift with
the slightest wind. And the range was long for the shot. He
wished that it was Praz or Lasko doing the shooting, but he
would have to do.
There were four of the Fijian guards gathered by the lower
gate to the villa. One was the sergeant which was what they had
been waiting for.
Sawn took a deep breath and then paused and looked at
Parak.
"Two right," Sawn said, wiggling the dart held between the
fingers of his left hand.
"Got it," Parak replied laconically. The team sniper was far
more sure of his shots.
"If I miss..." Sawn said.
"Follow over," Parak said. "Copy. Same for you."
"You won't miss," Sawn said, taking a breath and letting it
out.
He took his first shot, followed quickly by Parak's first. The
sergeant stopped gesticulating and reached for the dart that had
sprung up on his chest, looking at it in a puzzled manner.
By the time he'd started toppling Sawn had rotated the bolt
of the air-gun and slid in the next dart. He hadn't even lined up
his next shot, however, before Parak fired. Sawn took his time,
though, making sure of his target and trigger control before
firing. That dart sunk in as well and the Fijian guards on the gate
were all down.
"Target one down," Sawn whispered, sliding back through
the concealing underbrush.
"Target two down."
"Snipers."
* * *
Praz looked through the scope and calculated the shot one
more time. The east target was easy, the south target harder. And
there was no telling when the rover would show up.
He took a slight breath, waited for his heart to pump to
diastolic and then gently squeezed the trigger of the customized
sniper rifle.
"South target down," Oleg said. "Not moving."
Praz had felt the round was right and was already tracking to
the second target. The question was whether he would hear the
first fall and, sure enough, he was moving, reaching for a radio.
Praz led him a touch and fired.
"Miss," Oleg said as the man paused and looked around
wildly, crouching behind the ornamental railing. He had his radio
up, now, and was talking into it excitedly.
Praz, rotated the bolt one more time and lined up the target's
head. At this range it was not exactly an easy shot, but it was the
only portion in view. Wait, wait, squeeze.
"Target," Oleg said. "He's all over the patio."
"I can see that," Praz said, sliding back and wiping at the
sweat on his forehead. "Keep looking for targets."
* * *
"Wake up you idiot!" Imer Emini said, running into the
computer room. "Kreznik said we were under attack!"
"I heard," Oltion Dzaferi said, sitting up and wiping his eyes.
"Where are they?"
"That is what all this is there to tell us!" Imer snarled,
waving at the computers. "Turn on the monitors! Kreznik,
report!" Imer paused and looked at the radio, shaking it for a
moment in frustration. "Gustini? Pejerin? Victor? Anyone?"
"Shkumbin, here," the upstairs guard replied. "What is
happening?"
"I don't know," Imer replied, breathing hard. "Go to one of
the girls' windows and look out. See if you can see anything.
Oltion, get those black-asses on the phone and ask them what is
happening!"
"I go," Shkumbin said, grouchily.
"Stay on the radio," Imer continued. "Keep talking. Oltion?"
"There is no reply from the blackasses," the technician said,
shrugging. "I need to turn on the lights to see with the monitors."
"Not yet," Imer said, cautiously. "Skumbin?"
"I'm in the girl's room," Shkumbin replied. "I see nothing out
the..."
* * *
"Target, upper window three," Vladim said, quietly.
"Got it," Lasko replied, stroking his trigger.
* * *
Imer looked up at a crash from above and then snarled.
"Get on the phone to town! Tell them we're under attack!"
"Phones are out," Oltion said, shaking his head. "And
internet."
"Begin dumping," Imer said, shaking and drawing his pistol.
"I will go buy you time to dump all the data..."
The last thing he consciously recognized was the sound of
the door blowing in.
* * *
"Computer room secure," Mike said, lifting his balaclava.
"Clear. Vanner, get to work."
"On it, boss," the intel specialist said, sitting down at the
first computer and waving Greznya to the second.
"I count eight tangoes down," Adams replied. "Preparing to sweep upper floors."
Mike stepped out into the corridor as more Keldara women
flooded into the room. Keldara were moving from room to room
in a coordinated sweep, searching for additional targets.
"Bravo Six," Adams said. "Sweep
complete. One down tango in an upper room, courtesy of Lasko
at a guess. Six girls."
"Grab 'em and get down here," Mike said. "Vanner?"
"We've got the hard drives," Vanner said, standing up. "What
about the files?"
"Savo! Packs!"
"Ignition system in place," Adams
called. "The place is rigged."
"Five minutes, people," Mike called as the Keldara women
started ripping files out of the drawers and filling the bags the
militiamen held out to them. "Greznya, start the count."
* * *
Yarok looked at the devastated villa and shook his head.
"They took down the Fijian guards with tranquilizer guns,"
he said, sighing. "They clearly did not want to anger KFOR
excessively. Then they, apparently, took down the villa's
defenses, took the girls and probably other information and
torched it, rather expertly, on the way out. There was one Fijian
guard who said that from the time he heard the first shots to
when the vehicles left was no more than five minutes."
"I will kill them all," Boris roared. "This cannot be
permitted!"
"Oh, agreed," Yarok replied, sighing again. "But you'll recall
that I recommended increasing security at all facilities in this
area. There were only the normal eight guards here."
"That should have been enough," Boris snapped. "Especially
with the Fijians. These Americans are wizards!"
"Hardly," Yarok said, musingly. "They took down the outer
guards with snipers. Good ones, too. I have found one sniper
point, I believe, and it was a seven hundred meter shot with a
crosswind. That is a world-class sniper. However, with the outer
guards down, that left only four. What I'm wondering is how they
found the plan to the house."
"What do you mean?"
"To do something like this, this cleanly, you have to know
where you are going," Yarok said, rubbing his lips in thought.
"You need a layout to the house. Otherwise you're running
around trying to find your targets. I would say, from the time that
was given by the remaining guard, that they had to have the
layout to the house. And given the defenses, I don't see how they
could have entered it beforehand. So..."
"You're saying we have a leak?" Boris asked, coldly.
"I'm saying it's a possibility," Yarok admitted.
"I will look into this," the Albanian promised.
"Do," Yarok replied. That will get you off my back while
I take care of the real business. "In the meantime, I'm going
to try to find where they ran to to hide. I doubt that Rozaje is
going to be their last target. It will be interesting to see where
their final destination lies."
Chapter Twenty-Three
Mike leaned back in the beach chair and readjusted his
sunglasses as a really stunning woman wearing barely a g-string
walked by.
"What did we get, Patrick?" he asked. The beaches of the
Adriatic had their good points. At the
moment, he was fixated on two of them.
Getting across the border into Croatia
had been relatively easy. There were
dozens of small border crossings near Vinica and Čitluk
that had lax security. Smuggling was endemic in the area and the
few crossings that had guards were entirely revenue generators.
They had been more than willing to take their usual cut for
smuggling girls.
The coast of Croatia had numerous islands and beaches and was a destination
spot for summer tourists from throughout Eastern
Europe. A quick change of demeanor and the group
were tourists, schoolkids taking in the sun along the
Adriatic. They'd even been able to check into a
decent hotel for once.
And all the Keldara girls had broken down and gotten
swimsuits. For the cover of course. Most of them were far less
daring than the lovely blonde, Czech or Slovak at a guess, that
had just wandered by, but they were still an eyefull.
"They apparently did get full audio and video on their
clients," Vanner said, tightly. "I only...audited it. But it's pretty
rough. The problem being, there are only five DVDs from the
haul. And our girl isn't on any of them."
"That's good I suppose," Mike said.
"Yeah, but they're only recent DVDs," Vanner pointed out.
"The rest were transported out to a town called Lunari."
"Crap," Mike said, picking up his sunscreen and wiping
some on his chest. He'd picked up a hell of a farmer's tan over the
winter and spring.
"But..." Vanner said. "I'm not sure it matters. We got the rest
of their records. They didn't keep electronic records, but the files
were solid. And there's interesting news."
"Don't keep me waiting," Mike said, watching a couple of
the Keldara girls splashing each other. He briefly considered
joining them and then suppressed the idea.
"The thing is, all the girls that went to Rozaje didn't die,"
Vanner said. "We're having a hard time translating all the files
since they're in fucking Albanian. I'm having to scan them in and
OCR them then run them through a translator. You know how
funky that can come out. But we're sure that some girls leave.
Sometimes they had too many there. A client or clients wouldn't
show up, whatever. They'd end up with too many girls from time
to time and they'd ship out the excess."
"Don't tell me Natalya slipped through the cracks," Mike
said, incredulously.
"That's the way it looks," the intel specialist replied,
grinning. "She got transported to Lunari along with a bundle of
DVDs."
"Shit," Mike said, sighing. "What do we have on Lunari?"
"It's not going to be fun," Vanner admitted. "It's the center
for girl running, and drug running and gun running, in Albania
. Totally lawless. It's controlled by about
six different clans or gangs, there's not much distinction. The
government doesn't even try to control it. Land-locked but not far
from the sea. From the intel I've managed to get, not much, it's
also pretty carefully controlled. There are notes about elaborate
security systems. And the gangs are heavily armed. There's some
stuff in the files on it, too, but...getting through all of them is
going to take time. I could use some help on translation."
"Any idea where, exactly, the booty is?" Mike asked.
"Yep," Vanner said. "Natalya, and the DVDs, were sent to a
particular brothel run by the Dejti gang."
"That's a familiar name," Mike mused.
"He was, apparently, one of the guys in tight with the clan,"
Vanner said. "That's going to be an issue. Long term, at least."
"Oh, I don't think so," Mike said, standing up. "I'm going
swimming. Want to come?"
"In a minute," Vanner said, swallowing. "There's something
else. We didn't get the DVDs, but we did get their client list and
payment rendered for services, so to speak."
"And?" Mike asked, pausing.
"I ran a bunch of names through the internet," Vanner said,
shaking his head. "It's not exactly a Who's Who, but there are a
lot of...well rich people at least. And a few that are just powerful.
Jesus, Kildar, this data is political dynamite!"
"I'd figured as much," Mike said, sighing.
"The former French commander of KFOR, for God's sake!"
Vanner said.
"That explains the security," Mike said, dryly. "What about
our friend the senator?"
"Senator Traskel isn't on it," Vanner said, tightly. "Neither is
his son. But...there is someone you've heard of..."
* * *
"Oh...blast," the president said, looking at the message.
"There was just the one word, sir," Pierson replied. "But I
think the meaning is clear."
"Senator Fullbright!?" the Secretary of Defense snarled.
"Impossible! I've known him for...decades!"
"Who knows what evil lurks in the hearts of men," the
National Security Advisor replied. "He was on the junket, too. I
don't see how it changes things."
"Well, it's going to make our jobs harder," the Chief of Staff
pointed out. "I'd be more than happy to see Traskel gone.
Fullbright, on the other hand..."
"There is no 'other hand,'" the president said, definitely.
"None. As with Senator Traskel, I'm going to wait on solid
confirmation. But if we get it, Fullbright will no longer be a
senator. Period."
"The governor's from another party..." the chief of staff
pointed out.
"I don't care," the president snarled. "Not One Damned Bit. I
doubt I can give him the justice that he so richly deserves. But he
will no longer be a senator of the United States
."
* * *
Mike was surprised at the extent to which the Keldara girls
were willing to play a little grab-ass. He'd put it down to the
"Kildar" effect, but they were playing with the militiamen as
well. Hell, even Oksana was out there, playing in the very small
waves. Mike hadn't tried any grab-ass with her, only to find the
girl trying to tackle him along with some of the Keldara girls.
He'd let them dunk him and then swam through their legs, pulling
them under and then pushing them back to the surface; very few
of them were strong swimmers. They'd been amazed and alarmed
at how long he could hold his breath.
The problem with the grab-ass was that it was getting him
horney. And the Keldara girls were off-limits. So, for different
reasons, were the girls they'd "picked up." He still wasn't sure
what to do with them. Transferring them from sexual slavery to
the harem, a different form for all extents and purposes, didn't
seem like a decent use of his time. Something would have to be
done, but that was for another day.
With a certain amount of reluctance he finally climbed out
of the water and wandered back to his beach-chair. Which was
occupied.
"You're..." Mike said and then paused.
"Daria," the girl replied, getting up. She was about nineteen
at a guess, one of the girls they'd recovered from Rozaje. Tall and
statuesque, she had a great set of knockers and an air of naivete
that had to be an act. "Sorry, was I in your chair...Kildar?"
"Call me Mike," Mike said, waving for her to get back in the
chair as he squatted down by it. "How are you doing?"
"The nightmares are less," the girl said, quietly. "We knew
what we were there for; the guards made sure to tell us. And we
could hear some of it. Girls would leave and not come back. I
was sick when I arrived and I wasn't presented."
"Good thing," Mike said. "I'm sure you would have been a
first pick."
"Thank you so much," Daria replied, her face tight. "I
thought the same. The doctor had just given me a clean bill of
health. They told me I was going to be presented to the
next...customer."
"And now you're not," Mike said. "Be happy. Enjoy the
sunshine knowing you're going to get to keep enjoying it."
"Am I?" Daria asked, pointedly.
"Uhmmm, yes," Mike responded. "Right now, I can't afford
to let you leave. You're still, effectively, a prisoner. But you
won't be raped or beaten and when this mission is done I'll drop
you anywhere you care. Back home if that's what you want."
"Home," Daria said, quietly. "I don't know if I recognize the
word. If you're talking about the Ukraine
, there is nothing there for me."
"We'll figure something out," Mike said, picking up his
sunglasses.
"Where do you live?" Daria asked. "In
Georgia
? But you are American."
"I've got reasons to live there," Mike said, shrugging.
"And you have a house there," the girl said, tilting her head
to the side.
"And a harem," Mike replied, shruggging. "I'm sure you've
been talking to the Keldara girls."
"Is that where we will go?" she asked, carefully.
"For a time," Mike said, shrugging again. "Until we figure
out what else to do with you. I've got to figure something out;
the caravanserai's going to fill up with women otherwise and
then it'll be nag, nag, nag all day and night. 'Kildar, when will I
have my turn? Kildar, can I have a new dress? Kildar, am I the
prettiest?'" He grinned at the girl and was surprised to get a grin
in return.
"I can tell you live with women," Daria said. "You have that
look."
"Domesticated, that's me," Mike sighed. "Just a hopeless
love slave to women's desire..."
"And you get nothing?" Daria asked, lightly.
"Oh, I suppose so," Mike said, grinning again. "But I try to
give as good as I get."
"I get nothing," Daria said, shrugging. "I was virgin until..."
"Get a good job in Western
Europe?" Mike asked.
"Yes, but, I knew about the problems with that," Daria said,
frowning. "The thing was, the person who...sold me was my
boyfriend!"
"Ouch," Mike said, shaking his head. "That's cold."
"He said that he knew someone who could get me a job in
Belgium
," Daria continued, looking out at the sea.
"I am trained as secretary, yes? I can read and write in English,
French and German. My boyfriend...well he is not great man. Has
no job but...I like him."
"I had a girlfriend one time. She said that she was a bum
magnet," Mike said, nodding. "She wasn't, by the way, referring
to me. But...there are women who attract those sorts of guys like
flies."
"That is me," Daria continued, her nose thinning in
remembrance. "He is introduce me to another man who said he
had contacts with business in
Belgium
..."
"I'm sure he did," Mike said, dryly.
"We meet...three times before I agree to take job," Daria
said, sighing. "He is having letterhead and letters of employment.
But I have not the exit visa or entry visa, so Pasha..."
"Pasha?" Mike said, crinkling his brow. "Ahmed Pasha?"
"That was his name, yes," Daria said. "And there was another
man with him, Peter..."
"Looked like Santa Claus?" Mike asked.
"Yes!" Daria said, turning to look at him.
"You need to talk to Oksana," Mike said, his jaw working.
"So, you certainly didn't make it to Belgium
."
"They took me over the border to Moldava," Daria said.
"There..."
"They raped you, beat you and took away your passport,"
Mike said. "So you couldn't leave without their aid. And sold you
to the Albanians."
"Yes," Daria said, turning back to look at the ocean.
"Run into a guy named Dejti?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Daria replied, quietly.
"Well, he sleeps with the fishes."
Daria paused and frowned then shrugged.
"That means nothing to me," she admitted.
"American slang," Mike replied. "It means I broke both his
knees and then shot him through the head and dumped his body in
a lake."
"Oh," Daria said, breathing out. "Oh."
"I doubt you ran into a man named Nicu..."
"In Romania
," Daria said, her face hard. "It was he who
sent me to Rozaje." She paused and quirked an eyebrow.
"Fishes?"
"Fishes."
"I am not sure how I feel about that," she admitted.
"That's because you're a nice girl," Mike replied. "And I am
not a nice man."
"That I don't believe," Daria said, laughing breathlessly. "If
you were not a nice man, we would have been left in the villa,
still chained up, waiting for the next men to take us."
"Believe it," Mike said, flatly. "Because I do nice things,
does not mean I'm a nice man. The men who raped you, the men
who beat you, simply do the things I would like to do. And
occasionally do when a young lady likes that sort of thing. I'm
not a nice man. A nice man would not beat another human being
to death with a sledgehammer."
"Dejti?" Daria asked.
"Nicu's boss," Mike replied.
"Dejti poked my breast with needles," Daria said, softly.
"And shocked me with electric cables. He hit me in the belly so
hard I was peeing blood. He didn't leave any scars on the
outside..."
"But he left them on the inside," Mike said.
"Many." She paused again and then shrugged. "You know
women who like this sort of thing?"
"My harem manager for one," Mike said, smiling faintly.
"Anastasia used to... belong to a shiek in
Uzbekistan
. She told me she was happy to come work
for me, because he would not hit her hard enough. She likes to be
whipped and hurt. Giving her what she wants, without causing
scars, is hard."
"She is your harem manager?" Daria said, shaking her head.
"I have a hard time thinking about that."
"They are girls that I picked up for various reasons," Mike
replied. "I didn't know what to do with them, so I kept them as
girlfriends, concubines really. They can leave any time, I even
offer them a stake to get started. None of them took me up on it.
When they get old enough to make it in the world, and educated
enough, I'll kick them out the door. In the meantime I'm giving
them an education and a chance for a real life."
"And they give you sex?" Daria said, tightly.
"I don't force them," Mike said, shrugging. "Most of them
were from small farms in the mountains. They considered it an
honor, which surprised me. The thing they call me, Kildar, is a
sort of nobleman in the area. But... yes, they give me sex. You
can say pay their way that way, but I prefer to think of it as
consensual. We all live with the lies we tell ourselves."
"Yes," Daria said, sitting back and sighing. "That we do."
"So what do you think I should do with these girls?" Mike
asked. "I've got everything from Oksana, registered virgin and
orphan with nowhere to go to... you I suppose. I assume you have
somewhere to go back to?"
"If I could face it," Daria said. "My parents told me not to
leave. They did not like my boyfriend."
"Looking them in the eye will be tough," Mike admitted.
"But... 'home is where, when you have to go there, they have to
take you in'."
"And where is your home?" Daria asked.
Mike stopped and blinked. Home still meant the US
to him. His parents were dead, he hadn't
talked to his sister in...years.
"Thanks for asking," Mike said, frowning. "The answer is, I
don't have one."
"You should have a home," Daria said, frowning in turn.
"You are a good man, you should have a good home."
"I suppose it's with the Keldara," Mike replied, still
frowning. "They are the closest thing to family I have. For years,
home was the Navy, the Teams and BUD/S. I was married, but
that came apart after I got out. Now...I don't know."
"You should marry again," Daria said, definitely.
"When I find the right girl, maybe," Mike replied. The sun
was slowly descending to the west and the temperature was
dropping steadily. He wasn't bothered by it, he'd gotten used to
far worse on beaches all over the world, but the girls were
getting out of the water and shivering. "Looks like time for
dinner," he added, standing up.
Daria followed him as he headed back to the hotel and he
turned to look at her, quirking an eyebrow.
"I was wondering..." the girl said, then shrugged. "It is
nothing."
"Tell you what," Mike said, quirking one cheek up. "Let's
talk about it upstairs."
When they got to his room, Mike waved her to a chair and
flopped on the bed, propping up some pillows behind him.
"One of the things we haven't done on this op is introduce a
consistent rape counselling program," Mike said. "Or an abuse
counselling program. Why? Because we're on a combat op and
it's not important to the operation. And, frankly, we don't have
any counselors. Maybe we should bring in some touchy-feely
types to cover the bases, but we haven't. I haven't. Comments?"
"Why should you care?" Daria asked, shrugging one
shoulder.
"If it's effecting the mission," Mike said. "We're stuck with
you girls for the time being. If you're not functional, it effects the
mission."
"We're functional," Daria said, angrily. "And you're not
stuck with us."
"Yes, I am," Mike replied. "You're aware of who we are and
what we're doing. If we just dropped you off on the street, the
news would get around. Besides, as part of my not being a nice
guy, but trying to act like one, I can't just drop you on a street
corner. So I'm stuck with you. And if you're getting huffy about
that and decide you're going to storm out, you'll discover we've
got plenty of rigger tape."
"Rigger tape?" Daria asked, confused.
"Duct tape, then," Mike said, rolling over and pulling a roll
out of his jump bag.
"We're still prisoners, then," Daria said, angrily.
"Yep," Mike replied. "Just like before. But we're not
planning on killing you as part of sexual funs and games. Only
real difference. Oh, and you're not going to get raped. And we'll
try really hard not to raise a hand to you. But, yeah, you're still
prisoners. It's just a more comfortable jail."
"Then why don't you rape me?" Daria said, breathing hard.
"Don't tempt me," Mike said. "Seriously. Don't. You're a
real looker. And the reason is, I try to act like a nice guy."
"What if I told you I wanted you to?" Daria said, looking
down at the floor and blushing. "What if I told you that as much
as I hated what happened to me... I liked it as well?"
"Then I'd tell you that I'm not a rape counsellor," Mike
replied, with a dismissive shrug. "I'd also tell you that you're not
alone. Bum magnets tend to end up in abusive relationships. I
would guess that your bum boyfriend occasionally slapped you
around, right?"
"Yes," Daria said, looking up. "I should have stopped him,
but..."
"You loved him and he loved you," Mike finished for her,
shrugging. "It ain't love, honey, it's abuse syndrome. Hell, it's
being a submissive. Not necessarily sexually, but in general. You
probably felt like you deserved it, that it was all your fault."
"Are you in my head?" Daria asked, angrily. "Is this some
sort of mind thing?"
"No, it's being old enough and experienced enough to have
had the conversation before," Mike said, shrugging again.
"You're hardly alone. Abuse like that happens all over, honey,
even in the United States
. You never had sex with your boyfriend?"
"No," Daria said, blushing again. "I drew the line there, even
when he became angry. And he only hit me when he was drunk.
One time he tried to..."
"Rape you," Mike said.
"I was going to say force me," Daria replied. "It was not
really rape..."
"Yeah, it is," Mike snapped. "Date rape is rape. Period
fucking dot. So you drew the line there, now what?"
"Now..." Daria said and stopped.
"You said that some of the abuse you enjoyed?" Mike asked,
calmly.
"I should not," Daria said, dropping her face in her hands. "I
think I am a very bad person."
"Item number sixty two of the checklist," Mike said,
chuckling.
"What is so funny?" Daria snapped, glaring at him.
"You were brought up to be a very good girl," Mike said,
still smiling. "To not have sex until you are married. But you feel
the want of it?"
"Yes," Daria admitted. "Very much."
"I won't ask if that's an 'especially now' answer," Mike said.
"But the point is, if you're forced then it's not your fault. If a man
makes you do it, you are not so bad a person. It is one of the
reasons that you want to be forced, to be made to have sex. Yes?"
"I...hadn't thought of it that way," Daria admitted.
"If you are tied, how can it be your fault?" Mike asked. "But
you still like it, that still makes you a bad person inside. So you
want to be hurt for being a bad girl. Am I close?"
"Yes," Daria answered, quietly.
"All right," Mike said, shrugging. "Let's talk about that. Part
of it might be because of the rape. But...did you ever think that
way before the rape? I mean, did you fantasize about things like
that when you masturbated?"
"That's a very personal question!" Daria snapped.
"This is a personal conversation," Mike replied. "The
question is, did these feelings come about as a result of the rape,
or did you have them before?"
"Some of them..." Daria said, softly. "Some of them before."
"There are books and books written about what you're
feeling," Mike said. "The term is sexual submission. Lucky for
me, I tend to run into them a lot since I'm a sexual dominant.
Opposites attract and all that. The point is, you're not bad for
feeling that way. It's a normal, hell probably a majority, feeling in
women. It's even a desire in some men. So the first thing to get
into your noggin is that you're not evil for feeling that way."
"It feels...wrong," Daria said. "Bad."
"And some women enjoy being told how bad they are," Mike
said. "That's all fine and dandy, as long as it's really a consensual
thing between two rational adults. Or more, sometimes. The
point is, it's okay to feel that way, okay to play out those
fantasies. As long as you know where to draw the line. The term
is 'the bedroom door.' As long as your fantasies are play, whether
it's in a bedroom or a living room or the kitchen, the whole
house or on a mountainside, as long as the play ends at an agreed
upon point, it's just fun."
"Fun," Daria snorted. "I want... I want to be told I'm bad."
"And as long as that's in the bedroom, metaphorically, that's
all fine and good," Mike replied. "Daria, look at me."
He waited until the girl looked up and met his eyes.
"You're a good girl, a fine woman," Mike said, holding her
eyes with his. "You just have the need to be told otherwise. Do
you want to be spanked? To be abused?"
"Yes," she admitted, still looking him in the eye.
"But you don't want that to be your life, right?" Mike said.
"Tied up and hit, carefully, and told you're a bad girl in bed, sure.
But not hit in the face because supper's late."
"No," Daria said, shocked. "I mean, yes, the first but not the
second."
"You're a sexual sub," Mike said, shrugging and leaning
back. "My favorite kind of girl. But the point is, at the end of the
play you go back to being your own person. Owning yourself.
Loving yourself and knowing that you are not a bad person. If
you can't do that, you're never going to be the person you can
be."
"But now I feel as if I really need it," Daria practically
wailed. "I want it all the time..."
"Item twenty something on the post-rape checklist," Mike
said. "Nymphomania. The female in the situation shifts to
desiring sex. If it's going to happen, anyway, they might as well
learn to enjoy it. A lot. And do it. A lot. Even when they aren't
forced to."
"You're saying I'm sick?" Daria asked, carefully.
"Nymphomania is being sick."
"Not really," Mike replied, shrugging. "You're just having a
standard reaction to your form of trauma. Sorry if it makes you
feel less special. Not sorry if it makes you feel less bad. Because
you're not. You're a fine young lady. You've just been through a
traumatic experience and you're reacting to it in fairly well
recognized ways."
"So what do I do about it?" Daria asked, sitting up.
"That's where my knowledge sort of breaks down," Mike
admitted. "The thing about rape, especially when it happens to a
person with little or no experience of sex, is that it changes the
wiring for what is positive and negative sexual experiences. You
can't really know what your sexual interests, your needs, are.
Look, my ex wife did some rape counselling. Most of the stuff I
know comes from her and girlfriends who have been abused. I'm
not an expert. Okay?"
"Okay," Daria said, carefully. "But you're as close as I can
get right now."
"Right," Mike admitted. "Especially since you're still,
effectively, a prisoner. Even if I went out and found a counselor,
he or she would be sucked into the same void. So I'll just tell you
what I know. The thing about rape is that it sort of changes the
wiring. There was a boy that my wife counselled. He'd been
homosexually raped when he was thirteen or so. And he'd been
homosexually oriented ever since. So he was in his mid-twenties
or so and all of a sudden he starts getting interested in girls. He's
not sure what's happening, so he goes back into counselling.
Turned out, he wasn't really homosexual at all. His orientation
was as a result of the rape, period. So right now, it would be hard
to tell what your real orientation is."
"So what do I do?" Daria asked. "What do I do about
the...the nightmares? About the feelings?"
"Well, one thing is you talk about them," Mike said. "This is
a good start. And if you're fixated on certain kinds of sex, try
them. You're not a virgin anymore. If you want to have sex, have
sex. Over time, your real orientation will probably, I dunno,
realign? Talk to some of the other girls about the feelings they
have, the nightmares their having. Talking about it hurts when
you do it, but it will help."
"I'll tell you one nightmare," Daria said. "It's that this is all
an elaborate joke to break us down again. That we're going to go
right back into being whores. That's not even a nightmare, it's
something I worry about all the time."
Mike opened his mouth to reply and then paused.
"You know, there's an aspect of this I hadn't considered," he
admitted. "If we bungle one of the upcoming ops, you might just
end up that way. Back in slavery, that is. Hell, the Keldara
women would. Although I think the rest of the militia would turn
up pretty quick with Nielson leading them. I probably ought to
figure out a way to get you all back to Georgia
. You'd be safer there. Not safe, exactly,
but safer."
"To be part of your harem?" Daria asked, bitterly.
"Like I said, I'm not sure what to do with you," Mike replied.
"Can I just go home?" the girl asked, softly.
"Not until the op is over," Mike said. "You understand
why."
"Understand, yes," Daria said. "Happy about, no."
"Not much I can do about your happiness," Mike replied
with a shrug.
"You can do one thing," Daria said.
"And that is?"
"I need..." she paused and looked at the ground. "I want..."
"You know that this is probably just your reaction to what
you went through, right?" Mike asked.
"Yes," she admitted. "That doesn't relieve the need."
Mike cocked his head to the side and really looked at her for
a moment.
"Daria?"
"Yes?" she asked, looking up.
"Take your clothes off."
"What?" the girl asked.
"I'm going to relieve both our needs," Mike replied, standing
up and walking over to her. "I'm not sure if it's a good idea, but
it's the best one I can come up with right now. The bedroom door
is, metaphorically and really, shut. You can choose to not play
the game if you wish."
"I choose..." Daria said then paused. "I think I choose to
play."
"Fine," Mike said, walking over to one of the other chairs
and sitting down. "Then stand up and take off all of your
clothes."
The girl looked at him for a moment and then stood up and
started to slowly undress. She started off looking at him but
when she started to slip her dress off she had to look away.
When she started to sit down and remove her shoes, Mike
waved at her to stop.
"Keep the shoes on," Mike said, gruffly. "I like high heels.
Here is the deal. You've been an actual sex slave. Some of the
play is based around that sort of situation. Are you going to be
able to take that?"
"Yes," Daria said, softly, still looking at the floor. "As long
as I'm sure it's play."
"Are you?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Daria admitted. "I trust you. I don't know why I do,
but I do."
"It might have something to do with rescuing you from
durance vile," Mike told the naked girl. "Or my winning smile.
But we're going to have to establish the parameters. That is,
we're going to have to find out what I can and cannot do. And
you're going to have to know how to end the play. Are you
listening?"
"Yes," Daria replied. "Can I put my clothes back on?"
"Not unless you want the play to end," Mike said. "Do you?"
"Not yet," Daria admitted. "I am very confused. I want to do
this, but I am frightened. I was stripped like this to be sold to
Ahmed Pasha. It was very humiliating. This is very humiliating.
But..."
"You like it," Mike said.
"Yes."
"Go over to the bed and get a pillow," Mike ordered. "Put it
on the floor and kneel on it. There," he added, pointing to a spot a
few feet away from his chair. "Keep your head down when you
are kneeling. You will only look at me when I order you to do
so. The response to that is 'Yes, master'."
"Yes..." Daria said, pausing with a catch in her voice. "Yes,
master."
When the girl was kneeling, Mike leaned forward.
"From now until the end of play, you are my slave," Mike
said. "I will order you to do things, I will force you to do things.
You will obey my orders. Do you agree to this?"
"Yes, master," Daria said, her head bent in submission.
"Before we begin, we have to know what you will accept
and what is not acceptable," Mike said. "Is there anything that you
will not accept? Answer truthfully."
"I don't want to be hit in the face," Daria replied, shivering.
"And I don't want to be burned."
"I will not hit you in the face," Mike replied. "What about
anal sex?"
"I don't like it," Daria admitted. "But..."
"It's humiliating?" Mike asked.
"Yes," the girl answered, softly.
"And you like to be humiliated," Mike said. "You like to be
shown what a bad girl you are."
"Yes," Daria said, her face working against the tears.
"Time out," Mike said, sitting up. "When I say that, we're
out of play and it's time to talk. How are you feeling?"
"Strange," Daria admitted. "Very weird. Like I'm not really
here."
"Detached?" Mike asked. "Floating? Almost like you're not
in your body?"
"Yes."
"A normal reaction," Mike said. "Do you like it?"
"Yes," Daria admitted.
"Am I causing bad flashbacks?"
"No," she said, blinking. "Strippping sort of did. But
this...no."
"Okay, we'll continue," Mike said. "If at any time, you have
to stop, you can say 'time out' or 'yellow' or any odd word. But if
you say 'no', or 'stop' or 'please' or anything else along the lines,
it means 'You're doing great, do it harder and meaner.'
Understood?"
"Yes," Daria said, half laughing.
It was the first time Mike had heard her so much as chuckle
and he took it as a good sign.
"What are you laughing about, slave?" Mike snapped. "Drop
your eyes to the floor where they belong!" He stood up and
walked over to her, circling her predatorially.
"You have been a very bad girl, Daria. You defied your
parents, had sex out of wedlock and admitted that you enjoyed it.
You are a bad girl and you must be punished."
"Yes, master," Daria said, softly.
Mike dipped into a bag and came out with a couple of
lengths of soft rope and a cloth. He tied her hands and ankles then
looped the two ropes together to hogtie her on her knees then
blindfolded her with the cloth. He carefully pulled most of her
long, blonde hair out from under the blindfold and then grabbed
it, hard, pulling her head back and making her gasp in pain.
"You've been a bad girl, little bitch," Mike rasped. "And
you're going to be punished for it." He slipped his bathing suit
off and hit her on the face with his cock. "Say 'I'm a bad girl'."
"I'm a bad girl," the girl sobbed.
"Whatever punishment my master gives me, I deserve," he
said, hitting her on the face again.
"Whatever punishment my master gives me, I deserve."
"Take it in your mouth, bitch," Mike said, shoving his dick
in her mouth. "Suck it like I know you do. Suck it hard or you'll
be punished."
He wasn't sure if it was natural talent or the training she'd
gotten since being kidnapped, but Daria truly knew how to give a
blowjob. She could have sucked a golf ball through forty feet of
steel hose. He felt like his dick was being hickeyed. She might be
the best blower he'd ever had, which was saying something. He
hadn't planned on blowing a load in her mouth, but the blowjob
was too good to pass up. When he felt himself starting to
orgasm, he blew most of it in her mouth then pulled out and
pumped the rest onto her face and gorgeous tits. And she
swallowed automatically after barely a choke. Damn she was
good.
"Slutty little bitch," he growled into her ear, rubbing the cum
onto her face and breasts. "You're nothing but a slut, a little bad
girl. Say you're a slut."
"I'm a slut," Daria whispered, shaking her head as if to try to
throw off the cum.
"I'm going to show you what sort of slut you are, bitch,"
Mike whispered. He grabbed her by the hair with one hand and
wrapped an arm around her body, lifting her bodily and throwing
her onto the bed. "Bad girls get beaten."
"Please don't beat me, master," the girl whined. "I'll be
good."
"I'll teach you to be good," Mike said, pulling his belt off his
trousers. He untied her wrists then retied them to the front,
stretched them over her head and rolled her onto her stomach.
"You're a bad girl and you need to be spanked."
"Please..." Daria whined. "Please don't..."
Mike pinned her hands over her head, wrapped a leg onto her
body to hold her in place and began whipping her on her
gorgeous ass. He wasn't using full strength by any stretch of the
imagination, since he wasn't sure what she could actually stand.
Daria bit into the cloth of the bedcover, whining and trying
not to scream.
After a while Mike stopped and lifted her head up by her
hair.
"Have you had enough, bitch?" he growled.
"Master," Daria gasped. "Please, I've been very bad..."
Mike twitched an eyebrow up and forced her head back
down into the bedcovers. This time, he parked higher, pinning her
arms with his leg and began whipping not only her ass but her
back as well, carefully keeping clear of the kidney region. He
also hit harder.
She began shuddering and sweating from the pain, moaning
into the bed and occasionally screaming. But if she really wanted
him to stop, all she had to do was spit out the bedcover so Mike
kept at it.
It was at times like this that he considered the fact that in a
"scene", the sub was actually in charge. Here he was doing all the
work and she was getting exactly what she wanted without
having to do anything but take the pain, which she actively
enjoyed. It was an odd dichotomy and he found that he suddenly
wasn't as into it as he usually would be. Part of that was keeping
one eye on the fact that the girl had been recently traumatized. He
wasn't sure if what he was doing was helping or reinforcing the
trauma. But Daria, like Anastasia, seemed to be one of those
girls who just soaked up pain and turned it into pure pleasure. It
was almost disheartening. He really enjoyed inflicting pain and
suffering; having someone absolutely and totally enjoy it was a
let down.
He suddenly realized that he'd completely lost his erection.
That's what came of philosophizing in the middle of a scene.
Mike shifted again and grabbed her hair, turning her face
towards his crotch.
"Lick it, bitch," he growled. "Lick it and suck it like the little
slut you are."
She took it in her mouth and began expertly sucking it again,
which got him back to a world-class erection in no time.
"You're a little fucking slut," Mike snarled, dipping into a
bag and pulling out a condom. "You're worth less than the price
of dog turds. You're worth nothing." He pinned her down and
spread her ass, shoving his dick into it, hard, as she moaned in
pain.
"You're a useless little slut," Mike growled in her ear,
clamping one hand over her mouth and wrapping the other
around her throat. "You think I'm a nice guy, I'm not. I'm an evil,
raping, bastard, just like the evil
raping bastards that kidnapped you. And I like to rape my little
bitches and then kill them. And that's what I'm going to do to
you, bitch. I'm going to rape you in the ass and strangle you at the
same time. Nobody will care about a little bitch like you,
anyway."
He knew he had her now, since she was struggling against
the bonds. But he had her pinned flat with his weight and she
wasn't getting away from either hand. He kept talking to her,
threatening her and abusing her as he kept one hand clamped over
her mouth and the other applying light pressure to her windpipe.
He pumped hard on her gorgeous ass for a few minutes and
finally came.
"Are you all right?" he asked, withdrawing both hands and
easing out of her ass.
"You really scared me," she said, breathing hard. "I wasn't
sure..."
"It's called edge play," Mike replied. "Creating a condition of
doubt in the mind of the sub. You weren't sure if I was serious or
not."
"Yes!"
"I wasn't," Mike said, rolling over and undoing her hands.
"Seriously."
"It was scary," Daria admitted, sitting up and untying her
ankles. "But I liked it. I was sure enough that you weren't going
to do it that I wasn't panicking, but..."
"Well, let's try something else," Mike said, standing up and
walking to the bathroom.
"You mean you're not done?" Daria asked, surprised.
"Oh, hell no," Mike said. "Be right back."
He came back with a hot wash cloth and gently wiped the
cum from her face and breasts.
"You're gentle," she said, lying back and sighing then
gasping a bit as she hit a sore spot.
"How's the back?" Mike asked, caressing her breasts a bit
more than was strictly necessary.
"Sore," she admitted. "But not as sore as my ass. You hit me
very well."
"Thanks," Mike replied, sliding the washcloth down her
stomach and taking one of her nipples in his mouth.
"Oh, that feels good," Daria sighed.
"Should," he replied, blowing on it lightly to get it to stand
up. "You have a gorgeous body, did you know that?"
"It is okay," Daria said, shrugging.
"It's absolutely exquisite," Mike replied, lowering himself
on the nipple again. He'd slid the washcloth down her stomach
and now slid it between her legs, giving the area a thorough
cleaning. He wiped the outside then slid his finger, encased in the
rough cloth, into her vagina.
"Oh," Daria sighed. "Oh...god..."
"You like it rough, huh?" Mike chuckled, biting on her
nipple lightly. "I'll give you rough..."
He rolled onto her and pinned her legs open, biting on her
shoulder and thrusting his fingers into her vagina repeatedly. She
began panting and sighing so Mike kept at it, thrusting with his
fingers and biting her on her neck, shoulder and chest, appearing
to lose control as she bucked under him and moaned. Finally, as
she appeared to be nearing climax, he slid another condom onto
his dick and thrust into her.
She settled a bit at first but the continuous hard thrusts
warmed her back up as he growled in her ear and continued to
pinch, bite and twist her nipples roughly. He pulled her legs up
and grabbed her sore ass, eliciting a half scream of pain. Finally,
she panted and moaned her way into a screaming climax that had
him clamping his hand over her mouth to save his ears as much
as for decorum. Hell, Sawn was in the next room and it was
going to be obvious that the Kildar was up to his old tricks.
The girl didn't seem to be a multi-climax type, so he slowed
just enough to let her get her wind back and then drove in, hard,
getting his third orgasm of the encounter. It had to be the tits.
"That was..." she whispered then moaned as he carefully
withdrew.
"Decent?" Mike asked, cleaning up and then pulling her in to
cuddle on his shoulder.
"Very nice," Daria whispered. "I did not think it could be
that way."
"Welcome to the real world," Mike said, yawning. "I'm for a
nap, how 'bout you?"
"I think I could use a nap as well," Daria admitted. "Can I
sleep here?"
"Just try to leave," Mike said, curling into her.
Chapter Twenty-Four
"None of them have left," Ctibor said, as Yarok walked into
the apartment. "They usually stay at least two days in one place,
by the look of the previous data."
The Albanian hit team had taken up four apartments in the
building. It was owned by the Albanian mob, so getting the
apartments had been simple enough, if rough on the previous
tenants. But they'd left behind some nice furniture.
Unfortunately, it was not going to be in very good condition
when they left; the "shooters" Boris had turned up were mostly
gutter scum. What was it that British general had said? "The
scum of the earth enlisted for drink." That was what Boris
had found for him when he asked for professionals. Yarok
wondered, briefly, which one it had been.
Montgomery
, probably.
"I'm not happy with taking them down in the hotel," Yarok
said, rubbing his lips with his fingers. "Is the team all here?"
"The ones that are sober," Ctibor said, spitting on the floor.
"You'd think the Albanians could round up better men than this."
"It would have been better if we'd caught them in that hotel
in Kosovo," Yarok admitted. "But around here all you can get is
gutter thugs. Even the veterans of the war mostly have real jobs.
Or they work for rival gangs."
"So what do you want to do?" Ctibor asked, shrugging.
"We will hit them tonight," Yarok said, decisively. "Before
dawn."
* * *
Mike blinked and opened his eyes at the ring from the
cellphone and started to roll over only to find that he was totally
tangled in sheets and covers. He managed to untangle without
disturbing Daria and snagged the phone.
"Jenkins," he growled.
"Kildar, it is Gurun."
"Gurun?" Mike asked, rubbing his eyes and wondering why
the brewery manager would be calling him while he was on an
op.
"I am in the city of Las Vegas
, Kildar," Gurun said. "The booth for the convention
is well prepared and the company is in the process of installing.
But you said that you wanted some of the Keldara here for the
booth. I had left the choice up to you, Kildar, but when I called
home they told me you were...on business."
"Shit," Mike snapped, sitting up. "I completely and totally
forgot."
"I can hire local models, Kildar," Gurun said. "They are not
cheap and I will have to hurry to find Keldara dress..."
"No," Mike said, thinking rapidly. "I've got a better idea."
* * *
"You want what?" Pierson snapped.
"We need to meet," Mike said. "About the other thing. And I
need to get some people into the US
. Now. We have what is called a win-win
situation here."
"You're joking," Pierson said, sighing. "You want visas for
thirty something complete unknowns?"
"And I'm going to need some passports, too," Mike said. "I
can get the photos, but I'm going to need them by the time the
plane lands in the US
. And the visas on file."
"Why don't you just fly back yourself?" Pierson asked,
exasperatedly.
"Because we're in Indian Country," Mike pointed out. "I'm
not going to just drop my team in Indian Country, Bob."
"Shit," Pierson replied, tightly. "Okay, okay. But you'll need
to go to the Embassy. What kind of passports?"
"Georgian, I guess," Mike said. "No, scrap that. I know a
better way to get them. But we're going to need somebody in the
states to receive us that knows not to ask too many questions.
The thing is, we're going to Vegas. That's right next to Nellis
which has some really good secure rooms. Oh, and we're carrying
about seven hundred pounds of print intel on the op that's going
to need some Albanian translators. Very closed mouth ones. I'll
drop the original electronic EEI with you as well. That's in half a
dozen languages, including Romanian."
"I'll get you a secure fax number to send the information on
the girls to the Embassy," Pierson said, relenting. "I need to start
making some phone calls, though, right now."
"That's fine," Mike said, sitting up and slapping the still
sleeping Daria on the rump and eliciting a yelp. "We're going to
have to move like lightning to make the convention."
* * *
"The stake-out just called," Ctibor said. "They're packing
up."
"Shit," Yarok muttered over the phone. "Any idea where
to?"
"No," Ctibor admitted. "We couldn't get a mike into the
rooms. The stake-out has a shotgun mike, but the men who are
loading the vans don't seem to know. The stake-out said that one
of them said something about a convention."
"That tells us a lot," Yarok snapped. "Find out where they
are going."
"Perhaps we can hit them enroute?" Ctibor suggested.
"Maybe. Tell the stake-out to follow them. We'll need more
than one car to follow."
"I'm on it."
* * *
"Vanner," Mike said, slipping the intel specialist a note.
"Call this number. It's a chartering company I've dealt with
before. Tell them I need a large plane as fast as possible. My
usual pilot if he can fly it."
"Yes, sir," Vanner replied, grinning. "How are we going to
get the girls into the States, sir?"
"I'm on it."
* * *
"This is highly irregular, Kildar."
"I know, Minister," Mike said, rolling his eyes. "And I am
sorry to place this burden upon you, knowing that your time is
extremely valuable. But it is most urgent and very important. I
know that aspects have the attention of the President of the United States
. While the situation does not directly
affect Georgia
, it has very wide ranging implications.
And it is imperative that I take the full team to the United States
as soon as possible. Tonight if we can."
"I will call the Embassy in
Croatia
immediately," the Georgian Minister for
External Affairs said with a sigh. "But I will want to know that
this is for an important purpose."
"I will convey that to the President, Minister," Mike said,
rolling his eyes and wondering how many favors he was going to
owe by the time the night was over.
"Mike," Adams growled over the
radio.
"Go," Mike said.
"I think we have a problem. I've spotted the same white Lada
four times since we got out of town. Either the guy's going to
Zagreb
just like us or we're being followed."
"Crap," Mike said, shaking his head. "We knew it had to
happen sooner or later. Okay, evasion plan Alpha. Sawn, you
monitoring?"
"Yes, Kildar."
"Follow the agreed routes and meet at the agreed rally point.
Adams, you have pick-up. Everyone go
to scrambled cell at this time." Mike pulled out his map and
studied the roads. "Yevgeni, take the next left..." So much for
making good time.
* * *
"Yarok," the security specialist growled. He'd had a hard
time getting all the vehicles for the assault team, most of whom
were half or all the way drunk. While the American had taken
less than fifteen minutes to get on the road, it had taken him over
an hour.
"Ctibor. They're splitting up. I think the trail car was made."
"I told you to use more than one car!" Yarok fumed.
"I had a hard time getting more," Ctibor complained. "And
we never caught up. The stake-out car is still following one
group that is on the main highway to
Zagreb
, but the other vans all have pulled off."
"Follow the group on the main highway," Yarok said. "They
have to rendezvous somewhere."
* * *
"Okay, Garold, they're still on us," Adams said over the radio. "Break it down. I'll stay on the
highway."
He watched as the other vans pulled off the main road to
Zagreb
and then shook his head.
"That's right, little lamb," he crooned. "Stay right on my
tail."
Chapter Twenty-Five
"Hello, Mr. Jenkins," Hardesty said as Mike reached the top
of the rolling ramp. "Larger crowd than normal?"
John Hardesty was a tall, slender and distinguished looking
former RAF fighter pilot who had gotten out with the fixed
intention of becoming a pilot for British Airways. The problem
with that being that, like the RAF, BA had been having cutbacks
for years. Unable to get the job of his dreams, he'd settled for
flying rich bastards around in private jets.
One day he'd gotten a charter that looked to be the usual,
flying a rich American bastard around Europe. However, it had turned out somewhat differently than
he'd imagined. The first odd note was that the rich American had
turned up with just one suitcase and a small backpack instead of
the loads of business suits the pilot had expected. And the
destinations had been...odd. Small towns in
Russia, rather notoriously dangerous
towns in Serbia
. And instead of the usual "I've got a
business meeting tomorrow morning, we'll be taking off at
noon", the passenger had required he and his co-pilot to be on-
call twenty four hours a day. And had usually turned up in the
middle of the night, reaking of cordite, his clothes spotted with
bloodstains. At one point he turned up with what was clearly a
low-class Russian hooker and carted her around for the rest of
the trip. Hardesty tastefully ignored the fact that she had recent
bruises from a beating.
The passenger also turned out to be travelling under at least
three false names, and clearances for entry to countries had been
remarkably smooth. He might be a hitman, but if so he was a hit
man for a government, which made him almost respectable.
The various flights had culminated in Paris where the passenger had advised him to get to an airport
well away from the City of Light
and choose a hotel room that didn't look in that
direction. The news the next day that a nuclear weapon had been
found in Paris
, and been disarmed, came as no real surprise.
Since then he had carted "Mike Jenkins", AKA Mike
Duncan, AKA John Stewart, AKA whoknowswhat around to
various spots in Europe, the United States
and Southeast Asia. Since that first wild charter there hadn't been a hint of
gunpowder. Until tonight. Tonight he had the feeling things were
going to get wild and wooly. Again.
"A bit," Mike said. "And documentation is following. We've
also got a bit of luggage."
"Plenty of room in the compartments," Hardesty said,
leaning down to glance under the fuselage as the Keldara began
unloading. Some of the bags looked suspiciously long. "I take it
none of it's going to explode?"
"We're leaving the Semtek if that's what you mean," Mike
replied, standing by the females as the girls walked by.
"Nice joke," Hardesty said, smiling. Then he looked at
Mike's face. "You were joking, right?"
"Customs is going to be handled on the far end," Mike
replied. "But we'll be leaving a good bit of the material on the
bird. So figure on a five day layover in Vegas."
"You weren't joking," the pilot said, shaking his head as one
of the Keldara men went by with his arm in a sling.
"We've gotten drivers to take all the vans to the Embassy,"
Mike replied. "But while I'm wiling to leave my Semtek, I'm not
willing to leave all the gear. Or the ammo," he added as the
Keldara men started filing up the stairs with various rather heavy
bags that might or might not contain such things as guns and
ammunition.
"There are times that I really wish you'd picked another
charter company as your flyers of choice," Hardesty sighed. "On
the other hand, the young ladies are quite charming, are they
not?"
"About half of them are intel specialists," Mike said. "The
others are hookers that have been freed from Albanian gangs.
One of which is, apparently, hot on our tail. As soon as the last
of our party turns up, you might want to be ready to take off.
Fast."
"Really, really wish..."
"If wishes were horses, beggars would ride."
* * *
"This is most irregular," the second assistant to the
Ambassador from Georgia to Croatia
moaned as he looked at the pile of blank
passports. "Most irregular."
"You want irregular?" Chief Adams sighed. "There's an
Albanian hit team on my tail. There's a plane waiting to fly to the
US
at the airport. And I've got to get from
here to there, with these passports, and without getting killed. So
just do me a favor and stamp the appropriate spots so I can get
the hell out of here before we have a firefight in the Embassy,
okay?"
"You are joking, yes?" the official moaned.
"I am joking, no," Adams said,
picking up the official stamp. "So you want to stamp them or
not? Your call. But I'm not leaving without them."
* * *
"Mike, got the documents," Adams
said, leaning over to look out the window of the van. He was
currently parked on Georgian territory, but the minute he pulled
out he was going to be in Indian Territory. With no back-up.
"Hold one," Mike said. "Any sign of shooters?"
"Not so far," Adams replied.
"Well, we'll just have to go for the trailer."
* * *
"IFOR duty desk, Sergeant Simmons speaking, how may I
help you, sir or ma'am?"
Simmons was a reservist from
Tennessee
with the Fifth Regiment. All in all he'd much rather
be back in Murfreesboro watching
NASCAR, but duty in Bosnia
these days was pretty tame. And the girls
were plentiful and downright fine. Cheap too. There was worse
duty. He'd already done one tour in the sandbox and that classifed
as "much worse."
"Sergeant," a man said in a hoarse whisper. "Thank God I
finally got to an American. I've got a real problem."
"Sir, IFOR is not available to help distressed citizens..." the
sergeant replied, sighing. Every time somebody lost a passport or
got mugged or rolled or something, they fucking called IFOR.
He flipped open his roll-a-dex looking for the number for the
local police.
"It's not that," the man whispered. "I'm running from a group
of Albanian terrorists. I'm an Albanian American, okay? My
name's Hamed Dejti. I grew up in San
Diego
, okay? I was down in Kosovo, I was visiting
relatives, okay? I was in a café and I heard some of the
men talking about bombing one of the IFOR camps. They had a
car and the explosives but they were arguing about who was
going to drive it, okay? I guess I left too fast, they must have
suspected I heard them. I mean, they were talking about the
stupid American that didn't understand them, okay? I've been
running from them ever since. I tried to get the border guards to
help me..."
"Sir, are you sure about your information?" Simmons said,
hitting the alert button and rolling out the duty guard platoon.
This wasn't a mugging. The voice had a definite American accent
and the caller was clearly scared. He just wished he had a tracer
circuit.
"They said they were going to strike one of the American
camps," the man said, more definitely. "They didn't say which
one. But that's you guys, right?"
"Where are you right now, sir?"
"I'm at a payphone on Gajdekova
Street
," the man said. "The only ones I know about are in a
white Lada, parked a half a block from the Georgian Embassy.
I'm right across the street. I think they want to kill me, but there
are too many guards around. I'll wait here until somebody gets to
me. I can't even get to the American Embassy, they cut me off!
Please..."
"Sir, I'm scrambling the duty platoon right now," the
sergeant said, looking up as the duty officer walked in, scratching
at his stomach under his uniform. "We're on it."
* * *
"Adams."
"Cavalry is on the way. As soon as our friends are occupado,
boogie. We're only waiting on you."
* * *
"They're in the Georgian Embassy," Ctibor said, pointing
with his chin.
Yarov leaned down to mask his face and looked towards the
gates of the Embassy. It was an old mansion with an iron spike
fence around the courtyard and a baroque exterior. The guards
didn't seem to be paying any attention to the white Lada, but he
could see the van parked by the side entrance.
"Well, we're in place, but that's only one of them," Yarov
replied. "We need them all."
"Why did they go to the Embassy?" Ctibor mused.
"Because they knew we couldn't get at them, there," Yarov
said. "The rest might have already rendezvoused and this is a
throw-away group. We'll wait one night and if they don't move..."
He looked up and shook his head as a group of Humvees,
with the one in the lead sporting the blue light of an MP vehicle,
raced down the road at high speed. The side of the Humvees were
painted with the American flag and a large yellow blazon he
didn't recognize.
"Fucking IFOR," Ctibor growled. "Fucking Americans. Why
can't they just go back to their own damned..."
He paused as the vehicles screached to a stop and began
disgorging troops in full body armor.
Yarov started to back away from the Lada and stopped as an
M-16 was thrust in his face.
"Up against the wall, dirt bag!" the American private from
the Fifth Cavalry screamed, grabbing his arm and turning him
around. "Hands above your head."
He twisted his head sideways and growled as the white van
sedately drove out of the main entrance to the Embassy. As it
passed the street scene of American trooops rounding up
"dangerous terrorists", whoever was driving tooted their horn in
farewell.
Fucking Americans.
Chapter Twenty-Six
"Jenkins," Mike said, picking up the phone.
The 757 was configured with a large passenger area in the
rear and a small office compartment up front. Mike was currently
in the office, discussing the recent mission with Vanner and
Adams.
"This is Captain Hardesty," the pilot said, dryly. "You might
want to know that we are now 'feet wet' over the
Adriatic."
"Thanks," Mike said, chuckling. "Feet wet" was a military
term for leaving an area of operations over the water. Dating
back to the Vietnam War it was the traditional call that the unit
and aircraft were safe from interference by hostiles. "I'll be even
more happy when we're feet wet over the Atlantic
."
"I'll give you a call," Hardesty replied. "We will, however,
be refueling in England
. One hopes that this charter will not cause
inconvenient questions to be raised upon landing."
"Unlikely," Mike said, smiling. "I think that even if any
questions are being raised, the British Government is going to be
more than willing to avoid them given some of the information
we've probably acquired."
"I've got at least one name from the British Foreign Office,"
Vanner said, looking at his notes. "I haven't translated the file,
yet."
"More than willing," Mike repeated.
"I see," Hardesty replied. "Very well. Flight time to Las Vegas
with stops to refuel will be about twenty hours. You
might want to get some rest. We'll also be picking up a change of
pilots in England
. They're...briefed."
"Good to hear," Mike said. "Talk later."
"So far, we're not getting real far on the data we picked up in
Rozaje," Vanner said. "The translation is going really slow. But
there's one bright spot. We don't have their DVDs, but the video
was stored on the computer and then the DVDs were burned
from it. I'm going to run a file reconstructor on the data and see
if we can find any bits from the previous videos. It doesn't look
like they cleaned the computer but the bits are going to be
partial."
"Tell me what you get," Mike said, yawning. "Can any of the
girls run the program?"
"Yeah," Vanner replied. "I'm going to let them work it while
I get some shut-eye. But I want to scan the files. The girls have
seen just enough of this stuff to know they don't want to see any
more."
"Agreed," Mike said, tightly. "Get started on it and then get
some rest. We're going to need you fresh in Vegas."
"Will do," Vanner said, picking up the laptop and leaving the
office.
"If we have to go to Lunari it's going to be tough," Adams said after the intel specialist had left.
"We don't have much on it, but what I've been able to glean
indicates that the town's a fucking fortress. More than one, since
all the gangs have houses there and they don't trust each other."
"We might be able to do something with that," Mike said,
yawning again. "What goes for Vanner, goes for you, too. Get
some rest. I'm going to need you alert whenever we get there."
"I was planning on it," Adams said,
getting up. "You too."
"I will," Mike replied. "I'm going to watch some news and
then rack out." The couch in the compartment converted to a bed
and he was planning on taking the unusual step of using "rank
has it's privileges".
"See you in the morning," Adams
said. "Or whenever it's going to be."
* * *
Mike flipped open his own laptop and scanned the news. The
top news story on the Fox site was the search for a missing girl in
Kansas
. Which meant dick all to him. Next down was the
battle over the current Supreme Court nominee. The nominee
was stuck in committee, naturally. The liberals were screaming
about the nominee's "non-mainstream" religious views, by which
they meant he was a practicing Catholic and had firm views on
abortion and other "life" issues. And Fullbright was the
Chairman of the committee, he noted.
It was assumed he would be voting with the president but
he'd hardly been supporting the nominee in the last few days
which was worth fifteen minutes of comment from political and
legal experts. The senator, it seemed, had twice missed
opportunities to move the nominee out of committee and on to a
floor vote.
France
was trying to crack down on Islamic
jihadists and having a rough time. The French security forces had
been on high alert ever since the previous year when a nuke was
set to blow in Paris
. However, the French judiciary and various liberal
groups were creating road-block after road-block against
deportation of even the most extremist members of the Islamics.
The majority of the Islamics were found in southern France and around Paris
. And the majority of those were housed in
"government housing" neighborhoods composed of block after
block of massive apartment buildings. The neighborhoods had
become "no-go" zones for the police and in places there had been
pitched battles that were nearly the equal of the "insurgency"
period in Iraq
. It hadn't, quite, reached the level of civil
war, but if it were anywhere but France
the news media would be all over it. As it
was, the only term that came to mind was "downplayed." There
was one shot in the background of what had to be an RPG being
fired at French police, who appeared to be in retreat. IT sure as
hell didn't look good and he was glad he was out of it. He might
drop a line to the Chataneuf and see how bad it was.
And in the tail end of the news was a poll showing that the
lead in the presidential polls was Barbara Watson, former First
Lady, junior senator from Massachusetts
and a card carrying bitch from hell. If there was
anything she hated more than conservative political positions it
was the military. Still deployed all over the world trying to fight
the good fight, the military was sure to be gutted, War on Terror
or no, if she took office. And the intel groups would be
hamstrung.
Mike wasn't sure if the news was just particularly bad or if it
was just fatigue. But it seemed like everything he had worked for
most of his life was going down the tubes. The only good news
was that the Georgian government seemed to be stabilizing and
even the Ossetians were coming to the table. The way things were
going, Georgia
was going to be a better place for him to
live, all around, than the States.
Thoroughly depressed, he killed the TV and the lights and
lay back, watching the stars through the narrow windows of the
plane.
* * *
Mike rolled to his feet, disoriented, as the plane began its
descent. He rubbed his eyes and looked out the window, still
disoriented. According to his watch it was 8AM, but the sun still
wasn't up. Oh, yeah, they were flying with the sun. This was
going to get annoying. Jet lag is a bitch.
"Ladies and gentlemen, we're beginning our descent to Gatwick
Airport in
England
," Captain Hardesty intoned. "Please
reconfigure your seats and such like for landing. We'll be
refueling and picking up breakfast. I'd appreciate it if the English
speakers could translate, since my knowledge of Georgian is
sadly lacking. Mr. Jenkins, if you could pick up the phone,
please?"
"Jenkins."
"We've received an inflight advisory that members of the
British Government will be visiting with us while we're in England
," Hardesty said, neutrally.
"Oh, really?" Mike asked. "I'm going to need to make some
phone calls."
"Please do," Hardesty said. "As long as they don't get my
plane impounded and my pilot's license pulled. I am officially
disavowing any suspicion of illicit activities, I might add."
"Nice to know," Mike said, chuckling as he hung up the
phone. He dialed a number from memory before checking his
watch. It was still the middle of the night in the US
.
"Office of Special Operations Liaison, Navy Captain Parker,
speaking. How may I help you, sir or ma'am."
"That's a mouthful, Captain," Mike said. "Mike Jenkins. I'm
checking in. We're landing in
England
and we're apparently getting a deputation
from the Brits. Comments?"
"Unknown at this time, Mr. Jenkins," Parker said after a
moment. "I'll need to make some calls."
"Please do," Mike said. He picked up the phone and
connected to the rear cabin.
"Yes, Kildar?"
"Greznya? I hope you got some sleep."
"I got quite a good sleep, thank you, Kildar," Greznya
replied.
"Are Adams and Vanner functional?"
"They will be after another cup of coffee," Greznya said.
"And Vanner has something he's looking at. Would you like them
to step up front?"
"No, I'm going to head back," Mike said. "See you in a bit."
* * *
The rear of the plane was configured for about twice as
many people as there were Keldara so Keldara were sprawled
everywhere. Adams was getting them up
and the seats reconfigured as Mike stepped through the door.
"Be with you in a second, Mike," Adams called.
There were two flight attendants on the plane and Mike
waved one of them over.
"Is there a way to access the intercom back here?" Mike
asked.
"Right here, sir," the woman said, picking up a phone and
hitting the appropriate button.
"Rise and shine, Keldara," Mike said in the Keldara dialect
of Georgian, which he was fairly sure the crew wouldn't be able
to understand. "We're about to land in England
. When we do we're going to be getting a
visit from some representatives of the British government. I'm
not sure what they're going to be asking about, but I suspect it
has to do with our visit to
Romania
and points south. In that case, nobody
speaks English at all well and understands it even less. If it comes
down to lawyers, guns and money we've got all three on our side
as well as some very interesting video footage. Enough about
that, though.
"As you all know, we're headed for the US
to attend a convention and try to sell our
beer. In addition, I'll be meeting with members of the US
government and will be discussing our
recent trip. Hopefully, we'll be able to trade for some intelligence
on our next objective. But that's for me to worry about. What
you are going to be doing is selling beer. Gurun will be running
that side of things. I don't want any caillean stuff to interfere.
Gurun has done a good job this far and it's time for us to
backstop him. The girls will be wearing traditional dress, handing
out beer and smiling at the customers. The boys will be making
sure the customers keep their hands to themselves. Pictures may
be taken. In that case, smile for the camera. I don't know how
much of it Adams, Vanner and I will be available for, so you're
mostly going to be on your own.
"Las Vegas is called Sin
City
. There are various vices available to the visitor. But
I know that the Keldara are far too meek and gentle to engage in
such things as fornicating with prostitutes, gambling and
drinking."
He waited for the expected chuckles to die down and then
shook his head.
"Okay, so maybe you're not. But there are lots of ways to get
in trouble that you're not aware of. So most of the trip I'd like
you to stay around your rooms or down at the booth on your
schedule, which we'll come up with and publish. I'll try to
squeeze out some free time so you can see the town with local
guides. After the convention, though, I suspect it will be back
into the belly of the beast. So have as much fun as you can."
"Kildar," one of the Keldara women said as he hung up.
"Phone."
"Jenkins," Mike said, picking up the handset.
"Parker," the caller said, briefly. "Answer to your question:
Your activities came to the attention of MI-6. They put the
Georgians together with the Americans and came up with you as
being the likely person. When we were questioned on it,
routinely, we were non-committal. They apparently have specific
concerns, unspecified according to the report. My guess is that
they want to talk about their unspecified concerns."
"We're carrying out gear," Mike pointed out. "A search of
the plane will lead to embarassing questions. For that matter,
we're going to need some interference run in the States."
"You're not debarking or unloading until Las Vegas
, right?" Parker asked.
"Correct."
"It's handled," Parker said. "When you land in Vegas, get
your troops settled in at whatever their doing. You'll be
contacted at your hotel and flown out to Nellis for debrief and
data comparison."
"Got it," Mike said. "Anything else?"
"Not here."
"Out, then," Mike said, hanging up the phone.
"Kildar," Vanner said as he finished. "We've got something."
"Something useful?" Mike asked. "Finally?"
"Very."
* * *
"There were over two hundred file snippets on the hard
drive," Vanner said, leaving his trayback down with the laptop on
it as the plane descended. "I haven't had time to look at all of
them, much less get a feel for who all the people on them are, but
I found this..."
He hit play and the screen showed a masked but naked man
in bed with two women, girls really. One of them Mike
recognized immediately as their target, the other was unknown.
"The other female is Ludmilla Seventy-Eight," Vanner said,
continuing to let the video stream without sound. The scene was
pretty clear. Neither of the women were having fun as the man
worked "Ludmilla" over with what looked like a soldiering iron
and a pair of pliers. The target, Natalya, was simply chained to
the bed in a position where she had to watch.
"The video is broken, but the end is there," Vanner
continued in a strained voice.
The next snippet showed the same scene, but in that portion
Ludmilla was on her face with the masked man apparently taking
her anally. From what was visible of her back, she had apparently
been whipped in one of the missing segments. As Mike watched,
the masked man wrapped a thin cord around the girl's neck and
strangled her while he was taking her. When her struggles had
ended, permanently, the man got off of her and the video abruptly
ended.
"There's no way to tell that that's Fullbright," Mike
commented.
"Well, there's one corroborating item," Vanner said, backing
the video up and turning on the sound while handing Mike a pair
of earphones.
Mike didn't really want to watch the video again but he put
on the earphones anyway.
"Fucking bitch," the masked man snarled. "Little
fucking whore. I'm going to do you in every hole and then
fucking kill you. You're playing with the big boys, now! Beg me
for your life and you might live, bitch..."
The video continued in the same vein for some time and
Mike finally hit the pause button.
"And?" he asked.
"Here's a video of Fullbright talking to the cameras," Vanner
said.
Mike watched that video as well and listened to the voice
with his eyes closed then played the snuff film as well with his
eyes closed.
"Same voice," Mike said, shaking his head.
"I thought so, too," Vanner said. "But something was
bugging me about it. So I took a good look at the video."
He brought up a screen capture in PhotoShop. The capture
was of the masked man, stretched out next to the murdered girl
and working her over. He'd apparently stretched his back and he
was at full height.
"The bed is a standard European double," Vanner said,
bringing up a ruler tool. "The height of the bed is 78 inches." He
laid the ruler down and got a length off of it. "Senator Fullbright
is six foot one or seventy-three inches." He laid the ruler down
and got the height off of the figure in the video.
"Doing the math," he continued, pulling out a cocktail
napkin and sketching the numbers on it, "I get that the guy in the
video is only five feet ten inches tall. More like five nine. Max of
five eleven."
"So what's with the voice?" Mike asked. Something was
nagging at him about the video but he couldn't put his finger on
it.
"Various ways it could be cloaked," Vanner said, shrugging
as the wheels chirped on touch-down. "There's a device that goes
on the vocal chords that can change a voice. Not perfectly, but
close enough for this. Not my area of expertise and I don't have
the equipment to do a really tight voice compare. But what this
looks like is a deliberate frame of the senator by person or
persons unknown."
"And you can bet that Traskel is in it up to his patrician
eyeballs."
Chapter Twenty-Seven
"Mr. Jenkins," the first man through the door said, holding
out a limp hand to be shaken. "Horace Wythe-Harcourt of the
Foreign Office. A pleasure to meet you."
"And you, sir," Mike said, nodding as two more men came
through the door of the plane.
"Jasper Drake, MI-5," the second man said, nodding. "And
my counterpart from MI-6, John Carlson-Smith." Drake was tall
and slender with an air of respectability about him that would
have done for a banker.
"Pleasure," Carlson-Smith said, shaking Mike's hand firmly.
Carlson-Smith was a short-coupled, broadly-muscled blonde
man with a nose twisted from a fight.
"What can I do for you, gentlemen?" Mike asked, waving
them to seats in the office compartment.
"To be clear about our intentions," Wythe-Harcourt said,
smiling, "we're not going to ask you about the special operations
group you have on the plane or your cargo."
"About forty automatic weapons, RPG launchers,
ammunition for both and sundry other devices of destruction,"
Carlson-Smith said, also smiling. "Why'd you leave the Semtek?
Certainly not space considerations. We have people in the Zagreb
airport, you see."
"So what are you going to ask about?" Mike said, ignoring
the question.
"We believe that you have recovered intelligence from a
villa outside of the town of Rozaje
," Drake replied, smoothly. "It has come to our
attention that a member of the British Government has recently
been making decisions that are...somewhat out or character.
Actually, three members. All of whom recently served in the
Balkans and all of whom have known proclivities that might
have been...assuaged in that villa."
"Crap," Mike muttered. "You've got yourself a real problem,
then."
"You don't have intel?" Carlson asked. "I'm surprised. From
the after action report it was a very clean op."
"Cards on the table and no repercussions, then?" Mike said,
smiling also.
"None," Carlson-Smith replied, directly. "We just want the
take."
"That's going to be a problem," Mike said. "There's three
'takes.' They kept paper records and made videos. But the vids
were then burnt to DVD and sent elsewhere. There are some
remaining snippets on a hard drive. We've got the harddrive and
the paper records, which are in Albanian, but not the DVDs. And
I'm taking all of it to the US
. We've got a higher priority problem than
a couple of diplomats."
"I'm not sure that will work," Wythe-Harcourt said,
smoothly. "The problem is that there may or may not be other
records that are a higher priority problem, as you put it, for Her
Majesty's Government as well as allied governments. We would
very much prefer that the information remain close, if you will."
"So what you're saying is that we're not leaving with our
intel?" Mike asked, bluntly.
"We assure you that all the information that is germane will
be handed over to the American government," Wythe-Harcourt
said, calmly. "It's simply that we actively prefer that those items
of interest to Her Majesty's Government not go astray as it were."
"Well, then we've got ourselves a problem," Mike said, still
smiling. "You see, there is information that is of very great
importance to the people and government of the United States
in that intel. So you'll see where I've got
an issue with turning it over to you. At least as much of an issue,
if not a greater one, than you have turning it over to the US
government. I see a very ugly stalemate."
"We need that harddrive," Carlson-Smith said, tightly.
"Calmly, John," Wythe-Harcourt said, smoothly. "This is
why we are negotiating."
"I'm not sure what the basis of negotiations would be," Mike
said, shrugging. "You're not going to let me take off with the
intel and I'm not going to turn it over. I didn't get rid of all my
Semtek, by the way, and you're going to have a very hard time
capturing the data before it's destroyed, given that I've got twenty
top-flight troops on the plane. SAS isn't going to do you much
good except to get the data destroyed and make one hell of a
mess. And an international incident between two countries that
have a very special relationship."
"So you're not going to give it up?" Drake asked, musingly.
"Over my dead body," Mike said. "Literally. That is how
you're going to have to get it. And the bodies of my troopers."
"Calmly, Mr. Jenkins," Wythe-Harcourt said, sighing.
"Calmly. As I said, negotiations. Your concern is understandable.
Is ours?"
"It's a matter of relative concern," Mike said. "There is data
in there, that we have found, that is uncontrovertible proof of
crimes comitted by a senior member of the
US
government. That's not going anywhere
but a very secure facility in the
US
. And we're not sure we have all of it.
Further, there may be other data as dangerous. This data is
extremely sensitive but right now all you have is the Sword of
Damocles hanging over a few of your minor diplomats. That's a
world of difference from what the US
is looking at. Relative concern."
"We have information that there may be a higher degree of
concern for Her Majesty's Government," Wythe-Harcourt said,
deadpan.
"How high?" Mike asked, carefully.
"Very high," Carlson-Smith practically snarled. "Very
damned high."
"Stalemate again," Mike said, shrugging. "Anybody?
Because I'm not planning on going home empty handed. And
Gatwick
Airport
is a lousy place for a firefight, I'll also admit.
People would ask questions and there'd be all sorts of media
and..." He shrugged and smiled. "For that matter, they'd ask
questions if the plane simply sat here for a few days." He paused
for a moment and then shrugged.
"Let me bring someone else into the discussion," Mike said,
musingly. "If I may?"
"Someone...discreet?" Wythe-Harcourt asked.
"My intel specialist," Mike said. "Former Marine intercept
specialist. Did time with the NSA. Good enough?"
"I suppose," Drake said.
Mike picked up the phone and hit the connection to the rear.
"Send Vanner up. Tell him to bring his computer and notes," he
said then turned back to the threesome. "Care for some coffee
while we wait? Or, pardon, tea?"
* * *
"Yeah, boss?" Vanner said when he came through the door.
"These gentlemen are from the British Government," Mike
said, waving him to a seat. "They think there are some Rozaje
files that are important to them. Important enough that we're not
taking off until we turn over all our intel. I told them over my
dead body. And yours, by the way."
"Oh," Vanner said in thought. "Yeah, I guess it would be
over mine, too. Hell, even the girls'. Even if they didn't know
why."
"So let's discuss the take with these gentlemen and try to
come to some sort of arrangement," Mike said.
"So you're saying we don't trust the Brits with this stuff and
they don't trust us?" Vanner asked.
"That would sum it up nicely," Drake said, dryly.
"I think that's it," Mike said, frowning at the Brits. "I,
frankly, don't know any of you from Adam. And strange things
happen with intel in bureaucracies. I know the people I'm going
to be turning this over to. I trust them not to abuse it."
"And for our part, I must add that we most especially do not
trust you," Wythe-Harcourt admitted. "You're a free agent, an
international security contractor with a very shady reputation
holding the blackmail equivalent of a nuclear weapon."
"There is that," Mike said with a grin. "And I've got copies,
moreover. Horrible thing. Vanner, how many video clips did you
get?"
"There were a bit over two hundred listed 'scenes' in the
files," Vanner said, temporizing. "I haven't translated all of them,
but there about the same number of video clips, most of them
incomplete. Natalya was listed on three scenes before being
translated. I cross-referenced those scene files and found the one
we were looking for in the harcopy. But finding the video was
more luck than anything. I had to scan through clips of the scenes
one by one but I found her on the seventh clip. That was the one I
showed you. But I don't know what is on the other scenes and
there's no file directory to cross-reference to the hardcopy files."
"There were two hundred women killed in that place?"
Wythe-Harcourt asked, his eyes wide.
"Approximately," Vanner replied. "Women were not killed
in all of the scenes but a few of them more than one was
apparently killed. The highest I found was three. I think that guy
needs to be tracked down and taken out, he apparently hardly
engaged in rape, just torture and murder."
"Later for that," Mike said. "Gentlemen, what are you
looking for? Maybe we can just extract the hardcopy files and try
to find the video clips and turn them over. Understand, the
Albanians still have the DVDs."
"I'm not sure that will be sufficient," Wythe-Harcourt
sighed. "And we'd very much like to avoid naming names at this
juncture."
"Screw this," Mike said, picking up a phone. "Greznya, get
me OSOL on the line."
"Mr. Jenkins," Wythe-Harcourt said, firmly, "I really believe
that the fewer people brought in on this..."
"And I believe that this decision is at the wrong level," Mike
replied, bluntly. "Like I said, I don't know you guys from Adam
and as you said I've got no cred in your eyes. So let's get people
with cred involved. This is too high level for us to be dicking
around with."
"I'm here at the personal orders of the Foreign Minister,"
Wythe-Harcourt said, just as bluntly.
"Head of MI-6 for me," Carlson-Smith said.
"Head of MI-5 in my case," Drake added.
"And I've got marching orders from the President," Mike
snapped. "I think I trump."
"Parker."
"You're sounding tired," Mike said.
"End of shift," Parker said. "Pierson's supposed to be in in
about an hour. What do you got?"
"The Brits are refusing to let us take off with the take," Mike
said, tightly. "They're afraid that someone senior is on camera.
Someone senior in the British government."
"Oh, joy," Parker said with a sigh. "And we have..."
"We have something very interesting," Mike said. "Among
other things, we've got data that tends to disprove our previous
intel. The person named previously does not appear to be really
present. But there is enough there for a slighly lame frame of said
person."
"Interesting," Parker replied. "We need that data."
"That's what the Brits are saying," Mike said. "And they've
got the guns to prove it."
"I hope it doesn't come to that," Parker said.
"Yeah, especially since without this take the previous
information is out there," Mike said. "We need bigger guns in on
this."
"I'll make some calls," Parker said with another sigh. "I'm
going to have to wake people up."
"Great," Mike said. "Especially since right now my body has
no idea what time it's supposed to be."
"Parker is waking up some of our more senior people,"
Mike said, picking up his coffee. "You can hang out here, or you
can call your people and tell them to start expecting very
important phone calls."
"If you don't mind, we'll stay here," Drake said, pulling out
his cellphone. "But we would like to make some calls."
* * *
"Kildar," Greznya said, sticking her head in the door.
"Colonel Pierson for you on line two."
"Got it," Mike said, picking up the phone and hitting the
connection. "Jenkins."
"Do you just enjoy kicking hornet nests?" Pierson asked.
"There I was, minding my own business, eating my breakfast like
a real human being..."
"Tell it to the Brits," Mike said, glancing over at where
Carlson-Smith was scanning the video footage and taking notes.
"I understand that you're going to get clearance soon,"
Pierson replied. "But we're going to have the Brits 'assisting us
in our investigations.'"
"Works for me," Mike said. "As long as I can take off..."
"Kildar," Greznya said, breathlessly, glancing around the
room. "A very important call on Line Three."
"I'm talking to Colonel Pierson," Mike said, covering the
receiver.
"More important!" Greznya said, her eyes wide.
"Hang on, Bob," Mike said, putting him on hold and
switching lines.
"Do you just enjoy kicking hornet nests?" the president
asked, tiredly.
"Jesus, did they get you up for this, sir?" Mike asked.
"Yes, they did," the president replied. "Actually, they got me
up to field the call from the Prime Minister. You're getting
clearance to take off if you don't already have it. When you get
here, all the data, every snip and dribble, gets carted to a base
along with your intel people. The Brits are sending over some
people to keep an eye on it at the same time. Since we were on a
very secure line, the Prime Minister told me who was suspected
of being in their video and I agree that not letting it become
public knowledge is a good idea."
"Bloody hell..." Carlson-Smith snapped, hitting a key.
"Was that who I think it is?" Vanner asked, his eyes wide.
"I think they just found what they were looking for, Mr.
President," Mike said at which four heads snapped up, even the
two glued to the computer screen. "Is it who you thought it was?
The pres already talked to your Prime Minister and he'd like to
know."
"Yes," Carlson-Smith snarled. "It is."
"They confirm, Mr. President," Mike said.
"Get that intel to the US
, now," the president ordered.
"Yes, sir," Mike said.
"And don't lose it!"
"Will do, sir," Mike replied.
"Carlson-Smith will remain with the materials for the rest of
the flight," Drake said, hanging up his phone. "You're cleared to
take off. You're to fly direct to Washington, Dulles
Airport
, refuel and then direct to Nellis Air Force Base.
You will offload your materials there, as well as your intel
specialists, and then fly to Las Vegas
. The landing in Nellis will not be recorded. We'll
brief your pilot on the new itinerary. Mr. Wythe-Harcourt and I
will debark and brief our respective bosses."
"Well, I just debriefed the only guy I consider in the
category," Mike said, waving the phone. "Who was it, by the
way?"
"That's none of your business," Carlson-Smith snapped.
"The British Home Secretary," Vanner replied. "And Jesus
does that guy have a tiny dick."
Chapter Twenty-Eight
"Daria," Mike said, sitting down next to the girl. "I'm sorry, I
haven't been ignoring you. There's just a lot going on."
A lot was an understatement. Despite the president's
assurances, various hoops had to be jumped through. Among
other things, it turned out that Carlson-Smith didn't have his
passport with him. Mike had offered one of the blank ones from
the Georgian Embassy, but that had been politely declined. The
delay, however, even with no problems in the US, was going to make their
arrival in Las Vegas
tricky at best. Mike had, along the way, managed to
convince people that he had a real need to go to Vegas first, so
the landing in Nellis had been put off until the Keldara, and
Mike, were dropped in Vegas. Which left just a few little details
to clean up.
"I understand, Kildar," Daria replied, smiling. "How is it
going?"
"Well, we're on our way at last," Mike said. "But I was
wondering if you could do me a few favors."
"Of course," Daria said, smiling. "Here?" she added with a
wink.
"Now, now," Mike said, shaking his head. "I need you to call
ahead and talk to Gurun. Find hotel rooms for everyone. Some of
us might not actually make it to Vegas but I want everyone to
have a room. We probably can't..."
"This is done," Daria said, pulling out a notebook. "The
group that cancelled at the convention had a block of rooms
reserved. I found out about it and contacted them. They still had
the rooms held, but had finally decided that they were not
attending. I secured that block of rooms for us at a very
reasonable rate. Since we needed some more space, and the hotel
was mostly booked, I also secured the penthouse suite for your
use, anticipating that Chief Adams and Mr. Vanner would be
using it as well. I asked about information security on the room
and the hotel has assured me that since the usual users of the
room are major American businessmen who often discuss
proprietary business in the penthouse that it is quite secure. I
spoke with Gurun, who is a very nice man, and ensured that there
was access to food for the Keldara. I also talked to the intel girls
and they have sufficient 'traditional native costumes' for the
convention."
"Oh," Mike replied.
"I spoke with Chief Adams as well," Daria continued.
"We're at about sixty percent on small arms ammunition, one
hundred percent on RPGs and have a sufficiency of grenades. He
wanted me to remind you that we need more Semtek and that if
we have to go into Lunari that we're probably going to need more
troops. We also need resupply on first aid equipment. And we
only have sufficient rations for one day for the entire group." She
paused, looked at his expression and shrugged. "I'm trained as a
secretary and manager. And my father was a colonel in the
Ukrainian Army."
Mike opened his mouth to reply then shut it.
"Is there anything for me to do?" he asked, somewhat
plaintively.
"Just sign the appropriate checks," Daria said, smiling
prettily. "Oh, and I need your passport."
"Why?" Mike asked, pulling it out.
"We're hoping you have all the right entry and exit stamps,"
Daria replied, flipping through the passport. "And you do."
"What's that going to get us?" Mike asked, curiously.
"Mr. Vanner thinks that he can create stamps for the rest of
the passports from this," Daria said, tucking the passport away
and making a note. "We're going to need Croatian entry and exit
stamps, at the very least. And I think that's it."
"Are we paying you?" Mike asked, incredulously.
"No, as a matter of fact," Daria said, shrugging. "But I'm
trying to help."
"In that case, take a note to double your pay," Mike said,
smiling. "Seriously, Anastasia does some of this for me in Georgia
but I could use a real assistant. And you
seem to have things remarkably under control. Are you open to a
job offer?"
"Does it involve shooting people?" Daria asked, carefully.
"No," Mike said then shrugged. "I'd suggest that you take
some training, purely for defense. But what I'm thinking of is
what you're doing, a personnel and logistics person for missions,
assuming there are other missions, and being my personal
assistant. I suspect that in
Georgia
you're going to be bored, but when we're
doing things like this you sure won't be."
"What would something like that pay?" Daria asked,
carefully.
"Well, it would include room and board at the caravanserai,"
Mike pointed out. "On the other hand, there's not much to do
there. As to the pay, we can work that out and find something
equitable."
"And what about...the other?" Daria asked, just as
cautiously.
"What other...oh," Mike said then shrugged. "Up to you. If
you consider it a duty, don't worry about it. I've got more women
problems than I'd prefer. On the other hand, if you consider it a
fringe benefit we can work something out," he added with a grin.
"For now, I think I'd put it in the category of 'fringe
benefit,'" Daria said, smiling back. "I accept the job offer. We'll
work out the pay."
"Thanks," Mike said, standing up. "Get used to finding out-
of-the-way buildings to beat people to death in."
"I'm sure they'll deserve it," Daria said, smiling darkly.
* * *
"So how are you going to use my passport to fix everybody
else's?" Mike asked Vanner. "Copy the pages?"
The intel specialist was seated at a table at the rear of the
plane, working on his computer.
"Won't work," Vanner said. "The Georgian passports have
different watermarks. I scanned in all the entry and exit stamps on
your passport including most especially the Croatian one. Now
I'm creating a three-D model of what the stamp looks like," he
continued, spinning the computer around so Mike could see.
"Very nice," Mike said, dryly. "It looks like a stamp. And
that gives us...what?"
"Well," Vanner said, hitting a key and looking at a large item
that looked vaguely like a printer on the floor, "in about fifteen
minutes it should give us a Croatian entry stamp."
"How?" Mike asked.
"That," Vanner said, pointing at the box, "is a desk-top
manufacturing device. Give it any sufficiently small three
dimensional design and it can make it. Right there."
"You're kidding," Mike said, furrowing his brow. "Right?"
"Nope," Vanner said, grinning. "It's no good for multi-part
machinery but it can make any solid object that's smaller than its
collection area. The technique is called sintering. The machine
takes the CAD diagram and splits it into thin layers. The way it
used to work is that each layer would be laid down and then
welded to the lower layer, sintered actually. This one is a rapid
system that lays the whole model down, layer by layer, then heats
the item up and forms it in one go."
"I almost hate to ask how much that thing cost," Mike said,
shaking his head.
"It was the first run of a new generation of them," Vanner
replied. "And a lot. But I thought it might be useful to have
along. And I got a deal on it as a beta tester."
"We're going to need more than one," Mike said, thinking
about the future.
"Well, I've got an in with the manufacturer," Vanner said,
grinning.
* * *
"You do have ink, right?" Mike asked as Vanner slid the still
hot stamp into a holder. It sure looked like an entry stamp.
"Fourteen different colors and shades," Vanner admitted. "I
mean, I'm not a professional forger, but I can hum a few bars."
He picked up a piece of paper and opened up a stamp pad, Mike's
passport open on the table in front of him. Humming, he inked
the stamp and then stamped it on the piece of paper.
"Looks...pretty much the same," Mike admitted.
"It should, it was made from this model," Vanner said. "I had
to work out the background watermark and I think that might
have led to some thin spots..." He pulled out a loop and
considered the stamped paper under the light. "Yeah, there are
some rough spots. But if it's not a close inspection it should
work. And if any of these passports get a close inspection we're
going to have problems."
"Well, we should be okay on the US
end," Mike said. "Where's the MI-6 guy?"
"Going over the hardcopy files," Vanner said. "Turns out he
speaks and reads Albanian."
"I hope he's not developing more intel than we'd like," Mike
said. "Where?"
"Front of the compartment," Vanner replied. "I'm going to
get started on the exit stamp..."
* * *
"This is horrible stuff," Carlson-Smith said, skipping to the
next video.
"See anyone you recognize?" Mike asked.
"Unfortunately, yes," Carlson-Smith said, tightly. "I was
assigned to the Kosovo sector for some time and I recognize
several gentlemen who are or were similarly assigned."
"Interesting that they were able to get them there," Mike
said. "I suppose you've also seen the video that we're interested
in."
"Vanner pointed out the file," Carlson-Smith said. "I've
avoided it. That's for you Yanks to fix up. The rest of this is
going to be more... difficult. They've compromised the bloody
head of the French force in Kosovo. And he's been promoted.
He's in charge of the military-civilian liaison office in France that's supposedly been
backstopping Interior Ministry Forces on rounding up France
's Islamics. Which has been notably
unsuccessful, I might add."
"I'm missing something," Mike admitted.
"The Albanians have been working with the muj for some
time," Carlson-Smith said, dryly. "Nothing that the bloody media
is willing to bring up, but they trade information among other
things. I'd give odds that our friend General Robisseau has been
feeding information to the targets in France
. Probably because he was 'encouraged' to
do so by his Albanian friends."
"Crap," Mike muttered. "Any Georgians in there?"
"Not as far as I can tell," Carlson-Smith said with a chuckle.
"But there's more than one American and quite a few Japanese.
Check this one out," he added, hunting in the files for a moment.
Mike watched the resulting playback for a moment and then
turned away.
"So?" he asked. "I've seen a couple."
"Didn't recognize the gentleman?" the MI-6 agent asked,
smiling thinly. "One of your bloody liberal strategists, mate.
Been on TV any number of time. Big money collector."
"Cleaning this up is going to be a nightmare," Mike
admitted. "Multiple countries, multiple jurisdictions. And all
people that could afford the squeeze, which means either rich or
powerful or, generally, both. Who bells the cat?"
"Who indeed, mate," Carlson-Smith said, jumping to
another file. "Bloody hell, another one. Junior member of the
Foreign Service. Works with the UN in Kosovo. Refugee relief.
Rich liberal poofter. I'd have guessed him for being under the
whip, not holding it."
"I'd think he'd be getting his pussy from refugees," Mike
noted.
"He probably was," the MI-6 agent admitted. "But getting rid
of the bodies is tough. And when you abuse them beyond a
certain point, they go talking to the press. That gets your career
sidetracked. You have to leave the Foreign Service and go work
for an NGO, which doesn't have as good of benefits, does it?"
"Point," Mike said. "What are the benefits of working for
MI-6?"
"You get to look at really nasty porn," Carlson-Smith said,
darkly. "And you get to deal with low-lifes and drug-dealers.
Then there's the terrorist informers, most of whom don't actually
know anything, but are more than willing to take cash for
nothing. On the other hand, it's got great dental."
"Sounds great," Mike opined. "James Bond and all that."
"People think that," Carlson-Smith said with a sigh. "But it's
more like your CIA, isn't it? I mean, yes, we get weapons training
in class and all that, but we never bloody use the things. I haven't
drawn my weapon in my whole career and very rarely carry
anything for that matter. Very few of us do. Neither do your CIA
intel fellows, believe me. The paramilitary types like NVA are a
different story, of course. They're the wet-work fellows."
"So what do you do?" Mike asked, curiously.
"As I said, run around dealing with low-lifes and trying to
get someone to tell us something true," the MI-6 agent said,
shrugging. "You build up a group of contacts and get
information in any way that you can. It's more glad-handing than
running around with beautiful women and killing super-villains.
Most of it's quite boring, really."
"Sounds that way," Mike said with a snort. "I'll take James
Bond any day."
"I'd rather be doing that than this, mate," Carlson-Smith said.
"Among other things, there are things that man is not wought to
know or something like that. And this is one of them. Something
you'd best keep in mind."
"What do you mean?" Mike asked, frowning.
"There are going to be quite a few very powerful and very
unhappy people when this particular ant-pile gets kicked over,"
the Brit said, shutting down the video program. "I'm covered
since I'm just a dumb bureaucrat doing my job. Except for those
IRA bastards, nobody personally cares about one agent or
another. Sure, the odd muj will have a wack at us, but that's just
business. You they're going to hold personally responsible. The
people on these files, they're going to lose and lose big. But so
are their supporters and sponsors. And they're still, mostly, going
to be in power, either directly or indirectly. Even if parties fall as
the result, which they just might. Just by finding these files,
you've made some powerful enemies."
Mike thought about that and shrugged.
"Let 'em come."
Chapter Twenty-Nine
"Everybody has their customs and immigration form filled
out," Adams said as Mike waited
nervously for the inspectors from BCIS to board the plane.
They'd stopped at Dulles to take on fuel and for clearance and
Pierson had assured him that clearances were taken care of. But
after the stop in Britain
, Mike was half anticipating being taken
into custody along with the whole team.
The plane had docked to a tubeway. Mike wasn't in a
position to see down the hallway but he could hear the footsteps
approaching and was surprised by the degree of reaction. He'd
gotten shot to ribbons on more than one occasion, but for some
reason this meeting was filling him with dread. Probably as a
result of the conversation with Carlson-Smith. The MI-6 agent
was calm as toast, however. As he'd said, nobody was going to
hold him personally responsible for the files. Hell, the data on the
computers was illegal, forget the guns and ammo in the cargo
hold!
The customs inspector stepped through the door and shook
Hardesty's hand and it took Mike longer than it should have to
process the face.
"My name's Pierson," Colonel Pierson said, smiling at
Hardesty disarmingly. "I'll be processing your crew and
passenger's manifest while my associate does a quick check of
your cargo hold."
"A pleasure to meet you," Captain Hardesty said,
swallowing nervously.
"Pierson?" Mike asked, his eyes widening at the sight of the
Army colonel in the uniform of a custom's agent.
"Ah, Mr. Jenkins, I presume?" Pierson said, smiling. "Let me
just check on the crew's documentation and I'll be with you and
your...group in a moment."
* * *
"Yes, BCIS is shitting a brick," Pierson said when he'd sat
Mike down with a stiff bourbon. "And State is shitting a brick.
And the National Security Council is shitting a brick. Which is
why I'm here instead of a regular inspector and why a Navy
commander from OSOL is carefully ignoring the contents of the
hold. Satisfied?"
"I should have trusted you when you said it'd be taken care
of," Mike admitted, smiling finally. "But that's not the only
reason you're here."
"No," Pierson admitted, looking over at the MI-6 agent who
was watching him carefully. "And, as agreed, all the original files
are going to Nellis for your review, Agent Carlson-Smith. But
you said Fullbright wasn't the culprit and the President wants that
data as soon as possible."
"Let me get Vanner," Mike said, picking up the phone.
It took Vanner a few minutes to run through his song and
dance again but when he did Pierson leaned back and nodded in
satisfaction.
"Fullbright's been acting weird, lately," Pierson said. "I
mean, yes, he's his own man and he works the Senate as he needs
to, cutting deals, concentrating on what he thinks is important.
But the decisions, the votes and actions he's been taking, are
completely out of his normal line."
"The Supreme Court nominee?" Mike asked.
"That's just the most noticeable," Pierson replied, nodding
again. "But that's the big one. He's stalling the guy in the Senate.
It's the first changed vote that the president has had a chance to
place on the bench, a conservative for a liberal. The news media
is screaming, the liberals are screaming and Fullbright should be
acting decisively. Instead, it's like he's trying to run out the clock
or something."
"So somebody is blackmailing him with the video?" Mike
asked. "Traskel?"
"That would be the prime suspect," Pierson admitted. "But
that doesn't mean it's him. It could be any enemy of Fullbright's
normal positions. And it would be a stupidly long-ball shot for
somebody like Traskel. He's been in the Senate for years, is likely
to stay there for years, there's no reason for him to have set this
up."
"Well, it's connected to Traskel somehow," Mike said,
frowning. "I mean, he knew to send me after this particular girl.
And why her, I wonder?"
"Natalya's in the video but she survived the scene,"
Carlson-Smith said. "She's more likely than most to be able to
identify the perp."
"There's another way to do it," Vanner said. "Voice print.
The person has had his voice modified, but you're still going to
be able to pull out some data and get a voice recognition on
them."
"We'd have to have a matching voice print," Pierson pointed
out.
"Echelon could run it in a couple of hours," Vanner said,
shrugging.
Echelon was a "black" operation of the NSA that monitored
world-wide voice and internet communications searching for
keywords.
"Okay, assuming that Echelon really exists..." Pierson said,
dryly.
"I used to work at No-Such-Agency," Vanner said, just as
dryly, using the nickname for the NSA. "It wasn't an off-the-cuff
estimate, colonel."
"Okay, assuming we could get the NSA to admit it exists,
for this project, which has major political overtones," Pierson
said, raising his hands. "Even admitting that, the voice is
disguised and NSA won't use it, period, for investigation of
American citizens. Even under the Patriot Act. And I'm pretty
sure we don't want to open that can of worms for this. This is
horrible, but it's definitively not terrorism related. In fact,
except for being something like a constitutional crisis, it's not
even national security related!"
Pierson paused and shrugged unhappily.
"What should be done, by the book, is that the data would be
turned over to the FBI," the colonel continued. "There's a process
for that, now. Information gathered during an intelligence
operation that points to a crime committed can be forwarded to
the FBI for investigation. The problem is, the FBI doesn't have
jurisdiction. What we have here is a rape and a murder. Those are
civil crimes. They occurred in
Macedonia
which is the only jurisdiction that could
try them."
"So we either turn the data over to the Macedonians,"
Carlson-Smith said, musingly, "which would give them
blackmail material on half the governments in the Western World
or...we let them walk?"
"No," Pierson said, shaking his head. "What the president
wants to do is very quietly show the data to the appropriate
people. Quiet meetings that result in the perp simply no longer
being in anything that resembles a position of power. And it
won't matter which side of the aisle they are on, or what country
they're from. He's discussed this with the prime minister and the
prime minister is on board. But..."
"But we have to have all the data," Mike sighed. "We've got
to get the DVDs."
"And anyone associated with the Albanian operation,"
Pierson agreed. "And then there's the other side. Who bells the
cat?"
"The State Department," Mike said with a shrug.
"Nope," Pierson replied. "Currently, what you're carrying is
very closely held. And it's going to stay that way. No leaks. God-
help-us-please, no leaks."
"Agreed," Mike said, frowning. "But you're not
suggesting..."
"Either we or the Brits will handle the introductions,"
Pierson said, his face hard. "But you're going to be the
messenger."
"Like hell," Mike said, shaking his head. "No fucking way."
"You're not an operative of the American government,"
Pierson continued, tightly. "You're just...you. You'll handle the
data presentation and get the appropriate assurances from the
people you deal with on what is to be done. But the bottomline is
that every single person has to exit the government, and anything
government affiliated. No Non-governmental organizations, no
military contracts, no lobbying. They become common citizens
and disappear. Hopefully, most of them will commit suicide."
"Then we might as well scrap most of the data," Mike said,
frowning. "All we'll need is the hardcopy of who was involved,
and the DVDs."
"Agreed," Pierson said, nodding. "We'll lock down the data
in a vault and it won't ever go anywhere."
"No," Mike said, looking distant. "If I'm the guy carrying the
message, then I'm the guy holding the data. They won't trust
anyone with that data, including the United States
government. I've got a hole that's plenty
big enough for it. We'll bury it under the caravanserai. I'll tell
them where it is. And tell them to leave well enough alone. They
won't believe it if I tell them it's been destroyed, which would be
my first choice. We'll just...hold it. Someday, it will just be
history."
"I'm not sure the Prime Minister would agree with that,"
Carlson-Smith said.
"And I'm pretty sure the president wanted to keep them in
Nellis," Pierson said, frowning. "That's a big damned
responsibility to just delegate."
"Who are you talking to?" Mike asked, tightly. "Think about
how we met, Bob."
"That's different."
"How?" Mike replied. "The President and the Prime
Minister will geek. Trust me. Because this way, these things don't
hang like a sword of Damocles at every high level meeting.
They'll go from Nellis to the caravanserai and be buried. You'll
pull the data about American and British members for America and Britain
to deal with. The rest are up to me. After
we find the DVDs. Hopefully they haven't made copies."
"You'll have to make sure of that," Pierson said, darkly.
"I'm not even sure I can get the DVDs," Mike said, breaking
his stare and sighing.
"We've got improved intel," Pierson said. "Not much of it,
but some. That, too, will be available at Nellis. There's one
oustanding issue: Information control. Who knows what in your
teams?"
"The Keldara know pretty much everything about Rozaje,"
Mike said, frowning. "But the Keldara don't talk..."
"Can we trust that, though?" Carlson-Smith asked.
"Could you trust the Ghurkas?" Mike asked. "This is the
business of the Kildar. The Keldara don't talk. Even then the
information on who and what is pretty tightly restricted. I had
Vanner keep it away from the girls just because of what it was.
They've looked at the files and made some lists. But even then it's
very close. I'm not even sure that Adams
knows any names except your Foreign Service guy and the not-
Senator-Fullbright. We'll keep it close. Vanner will lock it down
as of now. Scrap the Albanian translators; we won't need them
for the rest of this."
"So it's tight," Pierson said, sighing hopefully.
"It's tight," Mike said. "And with the Keldara, and me, it will
stay that way."
"And you'll take the messenger duties," Pierson said.
"And the guard duties," Mike replied. "After we have the
DVDs. I'm going to need support for that. A lot."
"You'll get whatever we have," Pierson said. "Anything you
ask for, trust me."
"And then I get to be the Chooser of the Slain," Mike said,
grimacing. "Great. Oh, there's one more thing."
"Which is?" Carlson-Smith asked.
"When we find out what the link is to Traskel, I get to break
it to him," Mike said, darkly.
Chapter Thirty
"Gurun, it's good to see you again," Mike said, looking
around the gate area.
Las Vegas
McCarran
International
Airport was, for most visitors,
their first introduction to the state of
Nevada
. For good or ill, that first impression was of slot
machines. Lots and lots of slot machines. They seemed to be
stuck into every nook and cranny and most of them were in use
by arriving, departing and even transferring passengers trying
their luck.
Other than that, and the ads for casinos, it was much like any
other airport and the Keldara had seen a few at this point. The
group still gawked as they exited the walkway from the airplane.
"Vanner, sorry, you're going to have to forego the pleasures
of Sin
City
," Mike said, shaking the corporal's hand.
"I'll pass," Vanner said, smiling. "Been here, done that, lost
my shirt."
"I'm not planning on gambling," Mike said, looking around.
"I'm doing enough of that as it is. I'll be out to visit in a day or
two."
"Got it," Vanner said, stepping back into the tubeway.
"Good luck."
"Same," Mike said, turning back to the Keldara brewery
manager. "What do you have laid on, Gurun?"
"There is a bus waiting, Kildar," Gurun said, leading the way
into the airport. "I was not sure about luggage..."
"The Keldara have everything that we're bringing here,"
Mike said, gesturing to the Keldara troopers loaded down with
black luggage.
"We have the rooms laid on and the booth is set up," Gurun
burbled. "There was a pre-day but we were not prepared for that,
I hope it doesn't hurt sales..."
"Couldn't be helped," Mike said, feeling the effects of both
jet-lag and culture shock. Not so many hours ago, he was
running from an Albanian hit team.
"The convention begins tomorrow," Gurun continued. "It is
only three o'clock, here. The Keldara could take the evening off
and look around..."
"The Keldara are going to the hotel and going to bed," Mike
said. "With pills, if necessary. It will help reset their body clock."
"Very well, Kildar," Gurun said, his brow furrowing. "But I
need a few for set up. There is more work than I had expected.
And...I think I overestimated the trouble of setting up the booth I
designed."
"How much trouble could it be?" Mike asked.
"Much," Gurun admitted. "I truly do need some Keldara,
Kildar. Please."
"Okay, okay," Mike said, shaking his head. "We'll need four
of them functional tomorrow, but you can have at least ten."
"Thank you, Kildar," Gurun said, breathing a sigh of relief.
"Thank you. That way we should be able to get fully set up."
"I'm almost afraid to ask what you did to the booth design,"
Mike said, shaking his head.
"It is...a very noticeable booth, Kildar," the brewery manager
admitted.
"What's laid on for tomorrow?" Mike asked, trying to shake
off fatigue. He needed to be sharp. As much as the current
mission mattered to the world, getting a distributor for the
Keldara would affect them for a long time. For good or ill. It
was important and he had to simply compartmentalize the other
mission. Among other things, they couldn't even talk about it,
here.
"We will have the booth open all day," Gurun said. "Daria
sent me a roster of the female Keldara to set up a schedule. But
there is a problem."
"And that is?" Mike asked, yawning.
"There is a local law that anyone serving alcohol must be of
eighteen years or older," Gurun pointed out.
Mike blinked for a moment and then frowned. The Keldara
girls were professionals doing a tough job so it was hard for him
to remember, most of the time, that they were teenagers. Most of
them. Greznya was over eighteen and so were a couple of others.
But most of them were sixteen or seventeen. Beyond that age,
most of the Keldara women were mothers and they weren't
attached to the operational teams. He had a sudden mental image
of Litya sliding down the fast rope into the office in Club Dracul
and stripping out the computer in mere seconds. The girl had just
turned seventeen a month ago.
"There are only five of the girls who are eighteen or over,"
Gurun pointed out. "That is enough for one or two to cover the
booth all day but the convention runs for five days..."
"This is what I get for putting their real ages on their
passports," Mike said with a sigh. "And I'm not going to call DIA
and ask them for a bunch of false IDs, just to sell beer. We'll put
everyone that's of an age to work. We've got two more women
that can fill in for that matter. If the guys have do some of the
serving, fine. The rest can just be booth babes and charm the
customers."
"Very well, Kildar," Gurun said, sighing. "I had hoped you
would agree with that."
"I'm nothing if not reasonable," Mike said, smiling. "Now,
where's the bus?"
* * *
Mike had forgotten how much he hated trade-shows.
The convention was in one of those massive, echoey
convention centers that seemed to be designed as a stable for
sperm whales. It was certainly big enough; just walking from one
to the other was a work-out. One that Mike, after the stresses of
the last few days, wasn't going to bother with. He had no interest
in picking up a bag full of pens, coasters and t-shirts from beers
he was never going to drink.
The International Brewery Wholesaler's Convention had it's
good points, he had to admit. The Keldara "booth" was in the
Beer
Garden
where over forty breweries, ranging from
Annheiser-Busch to...well the Keldara with their patented
"Mountain Tiger Brew", offered free samples. Mike had tried a
couple of the other brews and then given up. There just wasn't
anything on earth that compared to Keldara beer.
And others seemed to agree. Since a few hours after their
opening, as the word got around, there had been a continuous
line for the Keldara beer. And most of the drinkers had just sort
of...hung around. Part of that was the beer, but a big part of it
was the Keldara girls.
The girls manning the booth, both those serving and those
just being friendly, were soaking up the attenion and flirting for
all they were worth. They'd never been in a situation where men
were vying for their attention and they were clearly enjoying
themselves. And the distributor reps, almost entirely male, were
enjoying themselves as well. The Keldara girls were spectacular
and so...naif that the distributors found them too charming to
resist. He wondered what most of them would think if they knew
what the girls had been doing for the last few weeks. Or that the
"bar backs" hefting the barrels like they were made of air could
probably kill everyone in the convention in less than thirty
minutes.
Gurun had done a good job on the booth as well. And he
was right, it was noticeable.
It turned out that after checking shipping costs, the amount
of beer they were taking would cost far less as a container
shipment than it did sending it by air. The problem being that
even with that amount of beer, it would only take up part of the
container. There was a way to do that, called Less Than
Truckload, but the cost difference wasn't all that great.
So Gurun had looked at the problem and, with the usual
Keldara ability to look outside the box, had decided to use most
of the container for other "stuff".
What the rest of the container held was mostly stone.
Specifically the granite the Keldara picked from the fields every
spring and used for everything from fences to house walls. It was
the same granite that the brewery was being constructed from.
With the help of the ten Keldara that Mike had loaned him,
Gurun had built a miniature Keldara "brew house", complete
with a display of original Keldara brewing methods, a small
"fence" that channeled the convention goers into the area and a
"bar" constructed of undressed granite with a wooden
countertop. It was, by far and away, the most spectactular booth
in the convention and Mike wondered whether others would try
to top it the next year.
"Are you Mr. Jenkins?" a heavyset man asked, plopping
down on the stone bench the Keldara had installed along the wall.
"Yes?" Mike said. "And you are?"
"Bob Thomas," the man said, holding up an electronic
device that looked something like a PDA.
"I'm not sure what that is," Mike admitted. Gurun had
handed him one early that morning, but Mike had parked it
behind the booth.
"It's my card," the man said, smiling. "I guess you lost
yours?"
"No, it's in the booth," Mike said. "So we trade cards with
that thing?"
"That's how it's supposed to work, yeah," Thomas said,
grinning and putting it away. "Your information is on your
badge, too. But you're the brewery owner?"
"Co-owner, sort of," Mike said, shrugging. "I set it up as a
way for the Keldara to build capital. I supplied the funds and the
land, they're supplying the labor and knowledge. I think we're
splitting the barley and hops. It's pretty complicated."
"How?" Thomas asked. "And why's an American backing a
Georgian start-up brewery?"
"The Keldara are sort of my retainers," Mike said, frowning.
"I know that's a weird way to put it, but it's the closest to reality
that I can find. I own the land they live on, their homes and most
of their tools. And I can't sell it back to them, either, legally. They
also like it that way; it's custom for them. Anyway, I bought this
farm and it came with...retainers. So I built the brewery mostly to
give the women some income. They don't have any the way that
things are set up now."
"What about the men?" Thomas asked, frowning. "If you're
talking about tenant farmers, the men aren't going to have much
income either."
"Ah, well," Mike said, quirking up one cheek. "There's a
brochure about the Mountain Tiger Militia in there, too."
"I read it," Thomas said, his brow furrowing. "I thought it
was a joke, all that stuff about defending the valley from
Chechens and stuff."
"Not at all," Mike replied. "The men get paid as part of the
militia. Some of the women, too. Actually, what you're looking
at is mostly a militia team. The girls that are chatting up the
customers are intelligence specialists. Most of them speak two to
three languages and are experts in electronic intercept or
intelligence analysis. The men are militia members, at least as
well trained as American Rangers and all of them with combat
experience. They lost a member just a few days ago."
"And they're selling beer," Thomas asked, tilting his head to
the side.
"And they're selling beer," Mike agreed. "So that they can get
some income into the valley that's not dependent upon the Kildar.
That being me."
"And if they get so successful they're independent of the
Kildar?" Thomas asked.
"Then I'll still have a very nice house in a very nice valley,"
Mike said, grinning. "And part ownership in a very nice brewery."
"So what do you do, Mr. Jenkins?" Thomas asked. "Where'd
your money come from? And how'd you end up in Georgia
?"
"Well, if I told you that I'd have to kill you," Mike said, then
laughed. "Seriously, I was a SEAL then I started a company that
made classified communications widgets. That was before 9/11
and I made money but not world class. Then, after 9/11, the
widgets got very important and I got bought out by a major
defense contractor. After that I didn't have much to do. I didn't
want to start another company so I travelled. While I was
travelling I literally got lost and ended up in Brigadoon, so to
speak. And here we are."
"Starting up a brewery isn't cheap," Thomas said. "You made
that much money selling to the defense contractor?"
"Close enough," Mike said, shrugging. "Most of the stuff
I've done, including the widgets, has been classified. I was sort of
serious that I couldn't explain where all the money came from.
But the brewery had some help from the IMF as a matching
grant. And the barley is, more or less, free. Ditto the hops and the
other ingredients. WE'll have to buy some extra stuff but not
much. And the labor is cheap to set up. If we can get a fair price
for the beer, we'll make money. The Keldara will make money. It
will take me a while to recoup my investment, maybe more time
than a lot of investors would like. But I'm in it for the long haul
and it's mostly for the Keldara."
"You like them," Thomas said, gesturing with his chin at
one of the girls who was chatting with two guys, both of whom
had the expression of pole-axed oxen.
"They're damned good people," Mike said, thoughtfully.
"Damned good."
"And the girls are pretty, too," Thomas said, grinning.
"Where'd you get the model on the poster?" he asked, gesturing
into the brewery. In pride of place over the bar was a poster sized
pic of Katrina. She had a bottle of beer that was foaming over
and her lips were pursed to sip off the excess. The caption was
"Are You Tiger Enough?". Mike was pretty sure that when that
got back to the Elders, and got explained to a few of them, he
was in for a very tough conversation.
"Katrina Makanee," Mike said, grinning. "She's
Greznya's...cousin or something. I took the picture."
"You're kidding," Thomas said, his eyes wide. "I figured you
had it shopped out."
"Nope," Mike said, still smiling. "I took all the pics in the
brochures and the posters." The pic of the girls lined up with
their bottles had been made into a banner that fronted the entire
display.
"You're a man of many talents, Mr. Jenkins," Thomas said.
"My partners and I would like to meet with you and your
manager this evening."
"Up to Gurun," Mike said, wondering what was happening
out at Nellis and when he'd be called out there. "He'll set up the
schedule. I may not be available; I have some other business
going on here in town."
"Well, I hope we're able to meet," Thomas said, heaving
himself to his feet. "It was a pleasure to meet you." Thomas
paused and looked at the booth, shaking his head. "They really
have to fight terrorists?"
"We had an attack by a short battalion, about two hundred, a
month ago," Mike said, gesturing with his chin. "The guy heaving
a barrel was one of the snipers. The girl chatting with that guy in
the blue shirt was on a mortar. The redhead serving beer was
handling the communications. So...yes."
"I hope you don't mind if I say we can use that," Thomas
said, thoughtfully. "Beer drinkers tend to be patriotic. 'Buy
Keldara beer and you're helping kill terrorists.'"
"And various other bastards," Mike said, thinking of the
most recent mission.
"Kildar," Latya said, walking over. "There is a call from the
suite. You have a call there."
Which was where the secure phone had been installed. Game
time.
"You'll have to excuse me," Mike said, nodding at Thomas.
"I hope to meet you later."
"Good luck in your other business," Thomas said, nodding
in farewell then turning to Latya with a smile.
* * *
"Jenkins," Mike said, leaning back in the seat.
"Mike, there's a jet waiting for you at the airport," Pierson
said. "We need you out there by three."
"Can do," Mike said, sighing. "Why three?"
"You'll see," Pierson said, cutting the connection.
Chapter Thirty-One
Nellis Air Force Base was one of the most secure bases in
the United States
. Plunked in the middle of thousands of
miles of just about nothing, the base was called "Dreamland"
since it was the center for testing the most advanced concept
aircraft in the world. It was from Dreamland that the entire
stealth series of aircraft had been envisioned, designed and
produced.
So when Mike landed, he wasn't expecting a tour and he
didn't get one.
The G-V jet, with window shades covered, rolled to a stop
inside a hangar before the door opened and a polite but definite
Air Force SP led him across the hangar, down a windowless
corridor and up to a security station by an elevator.
"Mr. Jenkins, your badge," the SP sergeant manning the desk
said, nodding. "Please place your hand on the scanner and your
eye up to the cup."
Mike hadn't used a retinal scanner before but it was pretty
straightforward.
"You don't have a retinal scan," Mike pointed out as a badge
with his picture on it was handed across the desk.
"We do now," the SP sergeant said. "And your fingerprints.
We normally match them, but we didn't have a comparison set."
"Don't let them get out," Mike said, frowning. "Where?"
"The elevator," the SP said, waving. "Wait for it, swipe your
badge through the reader. It will take you to your floor. Have a
nice day, sir."
Mike got on the elevator unaccompanied and swiped his
card. There wasn't even a readout so he had no idea how many
floors he was descending but it was pretty far.
"Deep here," Pierson said, greeting the elevator with a smile.
"And cold, too," Mike added; the air conditioning had to be
set to about sixty.
"It's for the computers," Pierson said, waving him into the
government green corridor directly in front of the elevator, which
was at at junction. There were doors down all the corridors, but
they all had electronic locks on them. It looked like something
from a nightmare and Mike wondered how many of the workers
down here had cracked over the years. "I'm told there are more
Crays in this facility than any single facility in the world."
"I thought NSA had a lock on them," Mike said, frowning.
"And do you really think they're in DC?"
* * *
"You guys look like you've been working hard," Mike said
when he entered the conference room. Vanner, Carlson-Smith
and one of the Keldara girls were sitting at the table just about
surrounded by paper.
"We have," Vanner said, crossly. "I thought thirty-six hour
days had ended when I got out of the Corps."
"If you've actually been going that long, you need to crap
out," Mike said, seriously. "Judgement really starts slipping after
thirty or so."
"We're about done here," Vanner said, shrugging. "There are
seven Brits in the files, twenty-three Americans of various
political grades and the rest are other lads. We've broken them
down by country and created a special DVD for each country
indexed to the files along with a...prospectus of their actions in
Rozaje."
"The big winner numerically appears to be the Nips,"
Carlson-Smith said. "No real surprise. But the Prime Minister is
going to be very surprised what his Under Minister for External
Security has been getting up to."
"That's the guy who more or less runs the JDF, right?" Mike
asked, shaking his head. "Okay, if our people are willing to cut
you loose, we'll borrow a secure vault and fly you out to Vegas
for a short R&R. Pierson?"
"They need to wait a bit," the colonel said, frowning. "And
I'd suggest a shower and a shave. We're having some VIP visitors
in about a half an hour."
"Christ," Vanner said, standing up and stretching his back.
"We don't exactly have a brief set up."
"Just get cleaned up, Pat," Mike said. "And you too, Layela.
Your clothes are here, right?"
"And your plane," Pierson pointed out. "And its pilots."
"I'll need to keep it here until this stuff is ready to go," Mike
said, shrugging. "Can do?"
"Can do," Pierson said. "Where's the index?"
"Here," Vanner said, sliding it across the table to him.
"Tabulated by country then by name. Each of them has a short
synopsis of who they are in the real world and what they did at
Rozaje. There's a pack of DVDs, too..."
"I've got it," Mike said, sitting down. "Colonel, could you
find someone to scrounge up the showers and whatnot for these
three?"
"There's a security issue with the Brit data," Carlson-Smith
said, uneasily.
"I'll keep that in mind," Mike said, opening up the thick file-
folder. "Ah, England
, let's start there..."
"Mr. Carlson-Smith, if you'll come with me," Pierson said,
smiling. "He does that to get on your nerves, you know," he
added as they entered the corridor.
"And it works," the MI-6 agent admitted. "I could wish we'd
never let that stuff leave jolly old England
."
"The DVDs are in Albania
," Vanner pointed out.
"So you've said," Carlson-Smith replied. "Repeatedly. And
how are we going to get our hands on those I'd like to know.
Lunari's a place angels fear to tread."
"We won't send angels," Pierson said, opening up one of the
doors with his passcard. "Gentlemen, showers and clean clothes
await. Miss, if you'll accompany me. By the way, the door locks
when I close it. Just hit the buzzer when you're ready to head
back. You have about twenty three minutes."
* * *
Mike looked up as a man in a suit stepped through the door
unannounced.
"Who the hell are you?" Mike asked then stopped and
nodded as the president followed the SS agent into the room. "I
must be getting tired, Mr. President."
"I can understand that, Mike," the president said, walking
over to shake his hand. "I was told some of your intel people, and
a Brit, were going to be here."
"They've been on straight ops for the last couple of days, Mr.
President," Mike replied as the president was followed in the
room by the National Security Advisor, the Secretary of Defense
and a man Mike didn't recognize.
"Step outside," the president said to the three SS agents that
had come in the room. "You're not in on this one."
"Yes, sir, Mr. President," the lead SS agent said, nodding to
the other two.
"I thought they were supposed to argue about that sort of
thing," Mike said, smiling and standing up. "And I'm at the head
of the table."
"Sit, Mike," the president said, collapsing in one of the seats.
"We have an hour to do this. I'm on my way to California
for a meeting with the governor and to look over the
latest damage from an earthquake. Which was fortunatous since
it meant I could clear my schedule for this meeting." He looked
up as Colonel Pierson came in trailed by Vanner, Carlson-Smith
and Layela.
"Mr. President," Mike said, waving at the three. "MI-6 Agent
John Carlson-Smith, Patrick Vanner, formerly of the US Marines
and NSA, and Layela Kulcyanov of the Keldara."
"A pleasure to meet you all," the president said, standing up
to shake their hands. "Mr. Carlson-Smith, I want to assure you
that I've spoken with the Prime Minister and he and I are in
agreement on the way to implementize this situation."
"Yes, sir, Mr. President," the MI-6 agent said, uneasily.
"I'm John Parais," the unnamed man said, extending a hand.
"Undersecretary of Defense for Intelligence Gathering and
Analysis. As soon as we're done here, we'll get you on a secure
line to Lord Arnold so he can clear up any questions."
"Yes, sir," the MI-6 agent said, apparently relieved that there
was another professional in the room.
"I'm also going to remain here with a small team," Parais
continued. "Not to look at the data, though. We've got some
additional intel on Lunari."
"And it's Lunari that we need to talk about," the Secretary of
Defense said.
"Indeed," the president agreed. "Don, you take it."
"We need those DVDs," the Secretary of Defense said,
leaning forward. "And it's been agreed that, yes, Mike, you'll be
the one to secure them. That does remove various problems
while effectively dumping them on your shoulders. But the
president has managed to convince the Prime Minister that you
have broad enough shoulders."
"Thanks," Mike said, dryly.
"But we also need the DVDs or...how we would prefer to
handle this simply won't work," the NSA said.
"Agreed," Mike said. "And I suppose sending in Delta..."
"Has been discussed and ruled out," the president said. "We
need someone who is highly deniable. Admittedly, there has
been..."
"Enough contact that I'm sliding out of that realm," Mike
said with a chuckle. "But I'm the best thing you've got."
"That's it in a nutshell," the Secretary said. "The same goes
for the various other black ops groups. When you hit Lunari,
there are probably going to be too many traces left behind to
totally deny which group did it. Bodies among other things. I'm
sure you'd prefer to pull out all of your dead..."
"We try," Mike said, remembering the Viking funeral.
"But you might not be able to," the Secretary continued.
"Ditto on Delta or ANV or ILS. Yes, they'll go in sterile, but."
"But," Mike said. "The problem being that I'm sure I can't
take the bordello with one team and I'm not sure I could do it
with the whole Keldara. And if I call in the Clans, it leaves us
uncovered at home. Bad things can happen when that happens."
"Which is why a Special Forces team will arrive in Georgia
the day after tomorrow to train in-country
militias," the National Security Advisor said, smiling. "Three
teams, actually, with a company of Rangers in augmentation. Do
you think that will be enough?"
"Yes," Mike said. "But they'd better be carefully briefed on
Keldara culture."
"Your Colonel Nielson will remain in place as a liaison,"
the Secretary said. "He's being temporarily reactivated so he'll
outrank the team commander. Effectively, he'll be in command."
"Oh," Mike said. "So much for deniability."
"It's still there," the NSA said. "Thin but there. We do this
sort of thing all the time with various groups. The Keldara are
well liked by the Georgian government."
"How much do they know about this?" Mike asked.
"Not much," the NSA said. "And the less the better."
"Yeah, I wouldn't want them trying to get their hands on the
booty," Mike said, shrugging. "Not that they would. Trust me, the
room that this is going in will be wired to destroy everything.
And the Keldara will trigger it even if I'm dead."
"Works for me," the president said. "But you're going to
have to get the DVDs from Lunari. And we're going to need the
American data."
"Vanner?" Mike asked.
"I have it here," Vanner said. "Once we had the basic
database set up, it was easy enough to pull out the Americans.
Layela?"
"Here, sir," the Keldara girl said, pulling a folder out and
carrying it over to the president.
"What about Fullbright?" the president asked. "We got a
brief description from Colonel Pierson, but..."
"Here, sir," Vanner said, turning to his computer and then
stopping. "This is..."
"Just run it, Marine," the president said. "I understand what
we are dealing with."
"Yes, Mr. President," Vanner said, bringing up the image on
the plasma screen over Mike's head and explaining why it
couldn't be Senator Fullbright murdering the girl.
"John?" the president asked, turning to Parais.
"I'd like confirmation from my own analysts," Parais said,
frowning. "But I'm not going to ask for it. But with the original, I
will do my own confirmation. Pending that, I have to agree with
Mr. Vanner. That is not Senator Fullbright."
"Who is it?" the president asked, rhetorically.
"Doing a voice comparison will be hard," Parais said. "The
quality of the data has been damaged by the voice modifier. I'm
not sure we could be certain of the identity based upon that data.
Even if we ran it against Echelon, we'd probably come up with
hundreds, possibly thousands, of hits. The reason being, we'd
have to spread the net for the hits. We couldn't say 'Give me the
person this is' because it would bring back either 'no one' or
someone that sounds just like that, which probably wouldn't
mean Fullbright because just because it sounds like him to the
human ear, doesn't mean it matches signal ..."
"It doesn't," Vanner interjected. "We checked. The signal
spread is all wrong."
"So that's a confirmation that it's not Fullbright," Parais
said, nodding.
"Explain," the president said.
"The human voice is more than just what we hear," Layela
said, softly. "There are not only undertones and overtones, things
beyond our range of hearing, but frequencies within the sounds
we can hear that are cancelled out. When you take all of that and
break it down, it creates a very distinct signature, the 'voice print'
of a person. I actually ran the comparison of this man's voice
against Senator Fullbright's. You can see where the voice has
been modified and where it has not. And there has been no
modification of the under and over tones. It has only seventy
points of congruence to Senator Fullbright and three hundred
non-congruent points. And additional fifty three were ambiguous
and fell outside standard probability."
"I brought Layela rather than one of the other girls because
she's my best person at voice recognition," Vanner said. "She can
pick out which Chechen or Russian commanders we're picking
up on the basis of less than a full word."
"Sort of like when a radio station plays just one bit of a
song?" the president asked.
"Yes, sir," Vanner replied. "And she's very good at voice
analysis as well."
"This is not Senator Fullbright, whoever he is," Layela said,
softly but firmly. "I have listened to six of his speeches and
compared them to this person's voice, tone and word choice.
Admittedly, the subject matter is highly different, but this person
uses certain word strings that are not consistent with the senator.
And that is ignoring the fact that the voice analysis is not a
match."
"Any idea who he is?" the president asked, just as softly,
looking with interest at the girl.
"He is an American," Layela said. "He naturally has an
accent consistent with the North Eastern United States. He has
some habitual phases that he may use in common company,
notably 'playing with the big boys' and 'gaming the future.' He is
between twenty five and thirty at a guess based upon his natural
tones. He is a non-smoker. There is no sign smoking of
degradation in his voice, however there is slight age degradation.
I would say that he is college educated or at least uses large
words frequently. More than that I cannot tell."
"That's a bit," Parais said, nodding. "We'll look at it as well."
"Carefully," the Secretary of Defense said. "Very carefully.
And you're going to need to bring the FBI in on it."
"That, unfortunately, is an absolute," the president sighed.
"Okay, Mike, you don't do this for free. What's the cost on
Lunari?"
"I'm also not a mercenary, Mr. President," Mike said after a
moment's thought. "I do what I do and if there's a reward I collect
it. The question I've been asking all along is 'why go to Lunari?' I
know why I did the other things I did, Lunari is a bit more
nebulous. Clear a senator? Not sure I care enough to lose a
single Keldara. Make sure that a Brit Foreign Office brahmin
isn't being blackmailed? Ditto. Money has never been the reason I
do what I do and you know it."
"It's important," the NSA said, frowning. "Very important. If
it weren't, would we be here?"
"I know it's important," Mike said. "I'm just wondering if it's
important to me. And mine, I might add."
"Depends," the Secretary of State said. "You're going to get
a lot of enemies out of this. You're already going to get them, no
matter how we play it after stirring this up. But if we can get all
the data, you're also going to have some friends. Some very
senior friends."
"Trust not in the friendship of princes," Mike said, still
frowning. "I don't know why I even brought it up. I know I'm
going to Lunari and I'll get the DVDs if at all possible. But I'm
not sure it's going to be possible. Insertion and extraction is
going to be a bitch. And we've got no intel."
"There's a possibility, there," Parais said. "But not for this
discussion."
"As to getting paid," Mike said, shrugging. "The good
senator from New Jersey
owes me five mil if I find the girl. I pointed out to
him that if his 'constituent' didn't pay up, he was going to be
given the bill. Let him pay it."
"We'll talk," the president said, standing up. "You're going?"
"I'm going," Mike said, looking at the table. "God help me."
"He will," the president said, nodding. "His hand will be
over you, Mike. I know it will."
"Thanks," Mike said. "Although I'll admit I'd rather have a
B-52 loaded with JDAMs."
* * *
"You said you have data for us," Mike said when the
president and most of his party had left.
"We've got a partial layout for the streets," Parais said,
sliding over a DVD. "Also some data on the building but not the
interior. I had an intel crew sweep for computer noise and there
wasn't any. However, we know there is at least one computer in
the building from information on the street. So..."
"It's shielded," Vanner said, sighing. "Which means they
know how important this place is."
"There are at least twenty guards on duty at all times in and
around the building," Parais continued. "And there are more than
sixty working for the same clan in the area. All of them will
come swarming at the first sign of a firefight. In addition, if it's
apparent that it's not the regular authorities, such as they are, or
another clan attacking, the other clans are likely to pile in. I'm not
sure about reaction times, but you're looking at Mogadishu
if it drops in the pot."
"We need more intel," Mike said, shrugging. "We need
interiors. We need to know where the DVDs are. We need to
know where Natalya is. We can't even be sure she's still there.
What about a ground-pen sweep?"
"There aren't any tasked for that area at the moment,"
Pierson said. "I checked."
"Bob, the president just made a special effort to stop by,"
Mike said with a sigh. "Retask."
"That's not a simple action, Mike," Pierson argued. "I can't
just pick up the phone and..."
"Yes, you can," Mike said, his face hard. "You pick up the
phone, call your boss and say 'Hi, I need a ground penetration
satellite retasked. Why? It's compartmentalized. But the president
asked.' Do you really think he's going to ask the president if he
really asked? And if he does, do you think the president won't
back it? Hell, Bob, I should have even had to ask. We should
already have the data."
"I'll see what I can do," Pierson replied with a sigh.
"I'll get it retasked," Parais said. "Easier and less questions if
I order it. And you're right, this is a presidential directive
mission. That's easily a high enough priority."
"Preferably, we need people inside," Mike added, looking
thoughtful.
"Dracul?" Vanner asked.
"Not if there are that many guards," Mike said, shaking his
head. "The lack of intel is what's getting me. But I'm not sure
how to get someone in the club."
"We can get a girl in," Carlson-Smith noted. "The data from
Rozaje included some internal e-mails of the clan. Girls go to
Lunari from all over. All we have to do is pull a car up with the
right words, drop the girl off and leave. The driver doesn't even
have to be Albanian. Of course, that leaves her in a very bad spot.
I'm not sure MI-6 has a female agent who would take that
mission. Lunari is nearly as bad as Rozaje."
"That's not an issue," Mike said, distantly. "I've got one. I
just can't figure out how to get the intel out. She won't have a
way to send out commo and she won't be able to just up and
leave. Even if she can develop intel, it won't do us any good."
"We might be able to offer some help," Parais said, uneasily.
"I was directly ordered to offer this technology but I'm not happy
about it. It's highly classified."
"Get over the pro-forma protests," Mike said, his eyes
narrowing. "What is it?"
"The tech is experimental," Parais said. "But we can
internally wire a person for sound and video. Not very good
video, but both. And it's almost untraceable. And for sure won't
turn up on standard scanners."
"How the hell do you do that?" Mike asked, blinking.
"You hook it up to the optic nerve," Vanner said, watching
the DIA Secretary carefully. "You either pre-process there or
send out a rough signal and process it somewhere else. I've read
about the theory. Has it actually been done?"
"Not on humans," Parais admitted. "We haven't been able to
find an agent that will permit the operation. It's not without risks.
Blindness for one."
"You're thinking about inserting Cottontail?" Vanner asked.
"Yep," Mike said, thoughtfully. "We'll need a doctor who's
willing to carefully explain the risks. Where would you do this?"
"There's a special hospital in Virginia
..." Parais said.
"Does she get Dr. Quinn?"Mike asked, laughing.
"Been there, have you?" Parais said, smiling. "That's actually
one of my charges. But that's where the procedure would take
place."
"We're probably on short time here," Mike pointed out. "The
Albanians know what they have and with Rozaje hit they're going
to do something about it."
"The procedure is fairly non-invasive," Parais said. "At least
from what I've been told. They go in through the nose for the
video portion and there's only a very small implant in the mastoid
for the audio. It's something like having a tooth pulled."
"I'll have to pitch it to Katya," Mike said, frowning. "If she
goes for it, we'll drop her of on our way through with someone
to keep an eye on her after the procedure. How long for full
recovery?"
"A day or two at most," the DIA director said.
"What about...I dunno, security?" Mike asked.
"The transmitters are frequency hopping and use burst signal
compression," Parais said. "Very hard to detect and they're
encrypted transmissions. The data won't get compromised."
"I just hope the agent doesn't," Mike replied.
Chapter Thirty-Two
As soon as the unmarked plane landed in Vegas, Mike pulled
out his cellphone and turned it on. Not surprisingly, he had a half
dozen messages.
"Gurun, it's the Kildar," Mike said, walking over to the
waiting mini-van. He nodded at the driver as he entered and just
hoped the guy actually knew where he was supposed to be going.
"Kildar," Gurun said, in a relieved tone. "I have arranged a
meeting with a Mr. Robert Thomas and his partner Mr. Colin
Macnee for this evening. In about an hour and a half. Are you
going to be able to attend?"
"Probably," Mike replied. "Driver? Time to the hotel?"
"About forty minutes, sir," the driver said.
"Probably," Mike repeated. "If I'm there in an hour, the
answer is yes. You checked out Thomas?"
"Oh, yes, sir," Gurun burbled happily. "He was one of the
people on my short list of potential distributors. I've had three
other companies express strong interest in the line, but Mr.
Thomas' company specializes in placing high-end beers in
specialty stores and bars. I think that he is liable to be the best bet
we have for a really good income from the product line."
"Sounds good," Mike said. "I hope to see you in an hour and
fifteen or so."
"Oh, and both Daria and Colonel Nielson have been
attempting to contact you," Gurun added.
"I've got them on my cell to call back," Mike replied,
sighing. "By the way, have you seen Chief Adams."
"No, Kildar," the brewery manager replied, puzzled. "I had
assumed he was with you."
"No," Mike replied, frowning. "I haven't seen him since we
landed. If you see him, tell him to give me a call, okay?"
"Yes, Kildar."
"See you in a bit."
He hit the disconnect and looked at the other calls. One was
a number he didn't recognize, one was from Nielson, another was
from DC and the last was from Adams'
phone. Ah-hah! The chief had finally checked in from whatever
he'd been doing. He called that one first.
"Daria."
"Why do you have the chief's phone?" Mike asked,
curiously.
"I've been setting up our return flight," Daria replied. "I
borrowed it from him while we were still on the plane. He
seemed more than willing to give it up. Mr. Hardesty had to
return for another charter and there was a hold-up on ground
transportation in Georgia
. I was calling, though, to tell you that
Colonel Nielson wants to talk to you and that we got a call from
a number in Washington
that refused to leave a message. They stated that they
were calling for Colonel Pierson, though and I took a number as
well as giving them the number to your cellphone."
"Thanks," Mike said. "Do we have transportation? Wait;
Hardesty had all our gear!"
"That has been handled," Daria said and he could practically
hear the dimples. "I called OSOL and discreetly explained the
problem. I suspect that the other call is about that."
"Thanks," Mike said, sighing. "I'm going to have to read
Hardesty the riot act, though. I've got to call Nielson. If you see
the chief, tell him to call me."
"I will, Kildar."
"Kildar Caravanserai, Obreckta speaking, how may I help
you sir or ma'am?"
"Obreckta, this is the Kildar," Mike said, looking at his
watch and doing the time in his head. "Is the colonel still up?"
"Yes, Kildar," Obreckta replied. "Please hold while I transfer
you."
"Nielson."
"Jenkins," Mike replied. "What's up?"
"I dunno, you wanna tell me?" the colonel replied testily. "I
think we should go secure."
"Scrambled. Again, what's up?"
"I got a call from the US Embassy stating that we were
going to be receiving some 'training cadre' from the US Army.
You know anything about that?"
"Damn that was quick," Mike replied, wonderingly. "Expect
three SF teams or so and some Rangers. Officially, they're going
to be training the Keldara. Unofficially...I'll talk about when I get
back."
"Okay," Nielson said, sighing. "I'll start working on
bunking."
"The barracks is going to be cleared out," Mike said. "That's
part of the 'unofficially.'"
"I need to hear this, don't I?" Nielson replied.
"Yep. But not over a phone. Even a secure phone. When I
get back. Which will be on Tuesday or so."
"See you then."
He looked at the last number and dialed it as the minivan
pulled into the reception area of the hotel.
"OSOL, Captain McGraffin speaking."
"Jenkins."
"Go scramble, please."
"Be aware that I'm in an unsecure area."
"Oh." The officer on the other end of the line paused for a
moment. "Your materials are going to be sent to your homebase
via military transport. Clear enough?"
"Clear enough," Mike said.
"Your oh-so-efficient secretary informed us that she had
already secured a charter aircraft to return your personnel. Do
you need anything else?"
"Not at this time," Mike replied. "And I'm not sure about the
wisdom of using mil craft for moving the materials. I'll discuss it
at another time."
"Understood," McGraffin said. "Anything else?"
"Negative. Oh, one thing. I'm missing a man. My second in
command, actually. Anyone heard from Adams on your end since we landed?"
"Uh." There was a pause as McGraffin clearly checked his
paperwork. "Negative on that, Mr. Jenkins."
"Thanks," Mike replied, frowning. "Out here."
Mike hadn't even realized that he'd navigated his way to the
elevator by instinct.
And he still wasn't sure who'd sent the driver.
Or where his second-in-command had got to.
Chapter Thirty-Three
"Kildar, it is very good you are here," Gurun said, nervously,
as Mike entered the suite.
The penthouse was more of a two story town-home, much
more spacious than any apartment Mike had ever owned. Daria
had mentioned getting a deal on it, but he was pretty sure the
penthouse was costing more than the convention space. With
thick carpeting, original paintings on the walls and antique or
designer furniture, it seemed far too luxuious for his needs.
However, one of the Keldara girls had been over it for security
and determined that the conference room, which was entirely
interior with no external walls or windows, was set up very much
like a secure room. And the rest of the security on the suite was
similar. There was one door and anyone approaching the door
had to traverse a long corridor for which there was a security
camera. The suite was clearly designed for use by paranoid
executives and movie stars, which made it well suited for Mike.
"What's the status, Gurun?" Mike asked, his brain still filled
with the problems of the Lunari mission.
"Mr. Thomas will be here shortly," Gurun replied. "But not
on time. He just called and he's running a little late. I am thinking
of starting with a bid of two euros per bottle, freight on board at
P'otli, ten euros for the keg."
"Let them open," Mike replied. "And go for everything the
market will bear. We should have brought Mother Lenka with us;
she'd screw them without their even recognizing it. And
get...Greznya and Latya up here right now. They're going to
charm the socks off of these guys for us."
"Are you sure, Kildar?" Gurun asked. "Women aren't
usually..."
"Gurun, you've done an excellent job," Mike said with a
sigh. "But you really need a lesson in how to sell. If I had set it
up in advance, one of the girls would be doing the entire sell and
you'd just be there to close and do the paperwork. Get Greznya
and Latya right now. And Chief Adams if anyone can find him..."
* * *
"Mr. Thomas," Latya said, as she waved the two
businessmen through the door. "It's a pleasure to see you again.
And this must be Mr. Macnee."
She'd barely had time to get dressed and fix her makeup but
she knew she was looking good. She'd borrowed a short skirt,
too short really, from one of the "rescue" girls and had purchased
a pair of high heels during the mission. A light blouse, a small
string of pearls and she was ready, as the Kildar had put it, to slay
them.
"Call me Colin," Macnee said, smiling. He was a short man
going bald who had opted for the shaved skull look. "You must
be one of the Keldara booth girls I heard about."
"Watch her," Thomas said, jovially. "She's one of their
militia girls, too. She's probably packing."
Latya smiled thinly and shook her head. Now she was really
ready to slay them.
"Not in here," she said, laughing as honestly as she could
manage and showing them into the suite. "The rooms down the
corridor are held by the Keldara. When you came down the
corridor you were identified in advance and swept for weapons.
Mr. Macnee is carrying a small clasp knife in his right pocket.
You, Mr. Thomas, have a license to carry a concealed weapon
issued by the state of Pennsylvania
. You scored a forty-five out of fifty on your last
qualifying shoot. Your registered handgun is a Sig-Sauer .40
caliber. A very popular choice I might add. I prefer the H&K
USP .45 myself, but the Sig is a nice weapon."
"As I mentioned, Latya and Greznya are much more than just
pretty faces," Mike said, walking over to the two businessmen
and holding out his hand. "On the beer side, I use them for
datamining and analysis."
"And in your other business?" Thomas asked, trying to get
back in control.
"I use them for...datamining and analysis," Mike replied,
smiling.
"How many enemies are in the building," Greznya said,
slithering to her feet. She'd opted for one of the sleeve dresses.
With her long legs and moderate bust, it worked very well. "What
type of weapons. Location of information, hostages or targets to
be extracted. That sort of thing. I'm Greznya, the intel team
leader."
"All that stuff about a militia in the brochure is for real?"
Macnee asked.
"Yes," Mike said as Latya went to get them drinks. "It's for
real."
"We can use that, you know," Macnee said, seriously. "Beer
drinkers tend to be more patriotic than the wine types. 'Every beer
you drink helps in the war on terror, so drink up' sort of thing."
"Your end," Mike said, smiling. "Not that I hadn't thought of
it."
"You said they'd already had some combat action," Thomas
replied as Latya handed him a drink. He took a sip and then
looked at it.
"Elijah Craig," Mike said, smiling. "I believe bourbon is
your tipple?"
"Datamining," Thomas replied, shaking his head.
"Yes," Mike said. "And, yes, they've engaged in combat
actions. Including ones that, minorly, made the news. Greznya?"
"AP picked up on the attack on our valley," Greznya said,
sliding a print-out of the AP wire across to the businessman.
"Were you there?" Macnee asked, leaning over to look at the
sheet of paper.
"I was on the communications end," Greznya said.
"And intercept," Mike added. "WE knew they were coming
before they did. You see, we believe in doing our homework."
"And does that extend to the beer side?" Thomas asked,
setting down the paper.
"In the main," Mike said. "We know we can get a distributor
for Mountain Tiger. We just want the best distributor we can get.
Frankly, you are high on the list, but not the top."
"In other words, we have to sell ourselves to you?" Macnee
asked, smiling.
"You could put it that way," Mike replied.
"And the ladies are here to...?"
"The ladies run the brewery," Greznya said, smiling.
"Brewing is a woman's secret among the Keldara. And, thus,
we're going to be making most of the money from it. So...say
we're here representing the interests of the Keldara women," she
finished, leaning back and crossing her legs.
"A brewery run by beautiful women that fights terrorism,"
Macnee said after he regained his voice. "My hands are getting
sweaty just thinking about the marketing."
"Are you sure that's what's making them sweaty?" Mike
asked, gazing at Greznya in surprise. He knew that if one of the
Keldara mothers was present, Greznya would be half way out of
the clan.
"No," Macnee admitted. "What were you thinking of as
terms?"
"Five euros per liter, delivered at P'Otly," Greznya said,
smiling and batting her eyes. "We also will supply the special
ceramic bottles for discerning customers."
"Out of the question," Thomas snapped after he'd actually
processed the information. "We can't sell it for anything like a
profit on this end at that rate! We'd have to charge ten dollars a
bottle. No. More! That's... impossible."
"It is what is called an opening bid," Greznya said, smiling
and recrossing her legs as she shifted on the couch. "I'm sure you
have some reasonable counter..."
* * *
"Three euors per liter, freight on board in Georgia
," Thomas said, shaking Greznya's hand
and doing the same with his head. "We'll figure out a way to get
the market to bear. Am I nuts?"
"If you are, so am I," Macnee said in a dazed tone.
"Contracts," Mike said, sliding them across the table.
"They're taken from the standard contract that the AABA
recommends. There's some wiggle room. And we'll supply the
first ten thousand liters at one euro per liter along with six
thousand ceramic bottles at fifty centis per bottle. You might
want to look for a better supply on those, if they meet the
Keldara standards."
"Will do," Thomas said, shaking his head again as he looked
over the contract. For all the daze he appeared to display at the
effect of the girls, more of whom had drifted in, all dressed to the
nines as they found out that the negotiations were going on, he
read the contract carefully. "We can do this. We will do this. And
we're going to make lots of money doing it."
"You're sure?" Macnee asked, nervously.
"Yeah, I'm sure," Thomas replied. "We'll start the roll-out in
New York
. This September."
"Ah," Mike said. "No direct reference I hope."
"No," Thomas said. "But when we run the ads, we're going
to have pics of police and firefighters with the beer. Between that
and the pics of your spec-ops teams, the subtext will be clear.
And we'll just let the point lie that the extra you're paying is
supporting the War."
"And the girls," Macnee added, smiling at the group around
him.
"We're getting a good price?" Latya asked in Georgian. She'd
been snuggling up to Macnee but othewise keeping her head
down during the negotiations.
"Quite survivable," Mike said in the same language. "It'll
mean, at a guess, about sixty euros per month per worker. A bit
more for Mother Lenka and Gurun."
"Good," Latya said, smiling. "I might actually be able to
afford a husband."
"And not go through the Kardane?" Greznya said, looking
over at Mike and winking.
"Oh, good point," Sarisa said, grinning. "No one would want
to avoid the Kardane now."
"So I save it for when we get married," Latya added,
shrugging. "Nothing says that you cannot enter into Kardane just
because you can afford the price!"
"Oh, we so don't want to go there..." Mike said, sighing.
"What is this?" Macnee asked, looking at the cross-talk.
"I was explaining that we'd be able to keep the brewery
running at this price," Mike said, shrugging nervously.
"There was more," Thomas said, grinning. "I could tell."
"You really don't want to know," Mike replied. "There's a
lot about the internal workings of the Keldara you don't want to
know."
"Anything that will affect the marketing?" Macnee asked,
seriously.
"Hmmm..." Mike muttered. "The Keldara are
very...conservative. The girls are more or less owned by one male
or another..."
"We are not!" Greznya snapped.
"You're controlled by your father, who can..." Mike said in
English and then switched to Georgian. "Let me explain this as
well as I can, okay?" he said to Greznya, fiercely. "I know
American customs and where there are going to be friction
points, okay?"
"Okay," Greznya said, frowning.
"How old do you think Latya is?" Mike asked Macnee as the
girl leaned against him harder.
"I'd put her at about twenty," the fifty-ish businessman said,
shrugging. "I mean, that's a bit young..." he added, nervously
fingering his wedding ring. "But I'm not planning on..."
"She's seventeen," Mike said, grinning as Macnee sat up and
started to back away. "Don't let it bother you and it won't bother
them. And what goes on in the suite, stays in the suite. But the
point is that she's working as an intel specialist and she's a
damned good one. Quite a few of these girls are married and the
oldest is Greznya, who isn't by the way, and she's nineteen."
"Oh, my..." Thomas said, blinking hard.
"The Keldara grow up fast," Mike said. "Greznya is
considered an old maid. Most of them get married around fifteen.
These girls didn't have electricity in their homes a year ago.
Now...well they're some of the best intel troops I've ever had the
honor to serve with. Not to mention great models," Mike added
with a grin.
"The girl in the pictures?" Macnee asked, frozen. "The
redhead. How old?"
"Fifteen," Mike said, shrugging. "I checked the various laws;
it's legal. She's dressed, so it's not child pornography. And you
won't have to worry about a lot of information getting out about
them, no matter how much interest. The Keldara don't talk and
the area they live in is a restricted military zone. The point to this
brewery, and other things that I'm doing, is to get them an
economic boot-strap into the 21st Century; there's
only so much I can do alone. They need to earn it so they
understand where it comes from."
"Okay," Thomas said, looking at Greznya in even greater
interest. "Where'd you learn to negotiate like that?"
"In the village market," Greznya said, shrugging. "When you
have nothing, you learn to bargain for every kopek."
"I suppose there's that," Thomas said. "Well, this has been a
fascinating evening, but if I don't drag Colin off, he's likely to get
divorced and I can't afford that."
"Spoilsport," Macnee said, but he heaved to his feet with a
sigh. "Ladies, it's been fascinating to meet you. I don't suppose
we can visit?" he added to Mike.
"You, I can get through the checkpoints," Mike said.
"Honestly, all that anyone who wants to get near the Keldara has
to do is bribe the regular guards. But once you get to the area we
enforce, nobody moves without my say."
"I think we'll leave the 'local warlord' aspect out of the
marketing," Thomas said, dryly.
"Please do," Mike said. "Among other things, there are
various people who would like to put my head on their wall. And
I mean that quite literally."
"Another thing to keep in mind," Macnee replied. "We'll be
in touch with Gurun about delivery schedules. I'm sure you have
other things to do."
"Such as talk to Katya," Mike said as Greznya closed the
door. "Girls, it looks like we're in the clover. But I'm not done. If
you ladies could clear the suite and somebody ask Cottontail to
stop by. And has anyone seen Chief Adams...?"
* * *
"You are joking, yes?" Katya said, her eyes wide as Mike
finished explaining the plan.
"I am joking, no," Mike replied. "We'll talk with the doctors
about it and if you absolutely say no, then the answer is, no. But
you won't be able to just walk into Lunari and back out. And
even if you walk in, we won't know where you are. This way, we
can track you constantly and be ready to pull you out."
"I agreed to do this for twenty thousand euros," Katya said,
angrily. "But not to get cut on beforehand. I will probably get cut
enough in Lunari."
"Do you want more money?" Mike asked, shrugging. "I will
promise you this, if the surgery goes bad I will put you in a very
nice place and set you up for the rest of your life."
"I won't be able to see it, yes!" Katya snapped.
"Tropical paradise, guaranteed," Mike said, seriously.
"Servants and all the rest. How much do you want for this?"
"The same either way," Katya replied, tightly. "If I do this
operation, we are done. I get very much money and a nice place
someplace warm. I'll make my own way from there."
"Done," Mike said. "There might be some requirements to
tell them how things are going after the fact. Can you handle
that? Among other things, it would mean that you'd have the
US
government taking care of at least part of
your medical."
"Probably," Katya said, frowning. "But I still want the
tropical island."
"Agreed," Mike said, smiling. "So, to be clear, that's a yes?"
Katya paused for a long moment and then shrugged.
"Yes."
"I'll point one thing more out, though."
"What?" Katya asked.
"You're going to be wired for sound and video the rest of
your life," Mike said. "Admittedly, it will be a limited number of
people that can access it. And with your looks, you can get in just
about anywhere. The US
government is probably going to be
showering you with money to try to get you to do other ops.
You're going to be the world's top super bug until they find
somebody else crazy enough to do this. And with your looks
and...training I'd be surprised if you couldn't get in about
anywhere."
"Why don't you, then?" Katya asked, her brow furrowed.
"I'm a fighter not a lover."
"And I'm a killer, not a lover," Cottontail pointed out, with a
purely evil smile.
* * *
Mike was tapping his foot, angrily, watching the Keldara
take down the last of the display.
The convention was over, the troops were packed, and he still hadn't heard from Adams. He
was beginning to think that maybe the redoubtable former SEAL
had run into a mugger or something. Maybe he should call the
damned morgue. Or, hell, face it, the chief might have just
decided that being around Mike wasn't conducive to long life and
prosperity. Although he'd been making more money with Mike
than he'd make doing virtually any job for which he was trained
and prepared.
"Kildar," Gurun said, diffidently. "We have all the gear
packed. It is time to go."
"Where in the fuck is..." Mike started to say and then stopped
as he saw Adams wander around a set of
booths that still hadn't been taken down. He was noticeably
weaving and appeared to be in lousy shape. Mike wasn't sure
what... Oh. Hell. He'd forgotten about Adams and
Las Vegas
. He shouldn't have, but that last weekend had been a
long time ago. And, frankly, Mike didn't remember most
of it.
"Been on a bender, Ass-boy?" Mike asked, maliciously, as
soon as he was sure that Adams was
suffering from a hangover and not malaria.
"Oh, Go'," the chief replied, leaning up against a booth and
stifling a belch. He scratched under a, apparently new, Hooter's t-
shirt for a moment and contemplated the scenery blurrily. He also
had picked up a pair of Bermuda shorts, somewhere, that were at
least a couple of sizes too large. They appeared to be belted with
string. "Wha' day is it?" The words were distinctly slurred.
"Monday," Mike said. "The day we're leaving."
"Good," Adams said, trying to stand
to attention. "I ma' mo'ment."
"Is that all you have to say for yourself?" Mike asked,
bitingly, putting his hands on his hips. "That you made
movement?! You're supposed to be my second-in-command!
You're not a fucking meat anymore, chief!"
"How 'bout, 'Viva Las Vegas!'?" the chief replied and
belched again. "Or, 'I ha' a rea'y fuckin' good fuckin' ti'e'? Wha' I
can rer'mem'er of it."
With that, the chief slowly slumped down the side of the
booth until he was flat on his back on the convention hall floor.
Then he began to snore.
"I'm tempted to send him home in the container..." Mike
muttered.
Chapter Thirty-Four
"Mr. Jenkins," the doctor said, nodding and looking over at
Katya. "And you would be, potentially, Patient Number 7194."
Mike had sent the rest of the Keldara back to Georgia
along with Chief Adams, Vanner and
Carlson-Smith, who seemed to be permanently attached to their
collective hip until the mission was complete. He had stopped in
Virginia
, however, to stick with Katya for the procedure and
ensure she was taken care of. He still wasn't sure where the
hospital was; the drive had involved the normal closed van. Just
"somewhere in Virginia
" down in the flat-country. He couldn't place it
within a hundred miles.
"Wow, lots of casualties, lately," Mike said, smiling.
"We do not, in fact, increment by patient," the doctor
replied. Mike had to assume he was a doctor, since he said he
was. But the usual plaques were distinctly missing from the bare
walls of the spartan office. "Otherwise people could make a
guess such as you just made as to casualty rates among black
units. The total number of patients operated upon by this hospital
is as secret as their individual identities."
"I like this place," Katya said, smiling in her friendliest
manner at the rotund physician. "I am told of what is plan. Put in
microphone and camera. In body."
"Not exactly a camera," the doctor said, pulling out some
papers and sliding around to the other side of the desk. "We're
going to insert a small bundle of wires into your visual cortex,
where the optic nerve intersects the brain. These, together with a
microprocessor and a small transmitter, will decode the view that
your eyes are sending to the brain. This procedure has been
successfully demonstrated on everything up to and including
chimpanzees. There has not, yet, been an attempt with a human.
The technology is very cutting edge and, frankly, we haven't
found anyone willing to undergo the procedure. You're aware of
this?"
"Yes," Katya said, shrugging. "I am being paid much to do
this mission and I need the...things."
"Very well," the doctor said. "However, I have to warn you
of potential known side-effects as well as possible unknown
side-effects."
"Go ahead," Katya said, sighing.
"There is a possibility of reduction or loss of sight," the
doctor said. "We haven't actually had a patient that could tell us
just how accurate their sight is and how it has changed. There are
visual acuity tests for animals, but they're not entirely accurate.
There is a possibility of long term sight degradation. There is a
possibility of long term secondary cranial degradation. There is
very little data on long term brain implants available. Infection
around the implantation sight could cause cerebral damage, brain
damage that is. Damage is also possible from the long-term
degradation. There is a slight possibility of debilitating stroke.
And as with any surgical procedure there are possibilities of
death. Are you sure you wish to continue with the procedure?"
"Doctor," Katya said, strangely quiet. "I was raised in an
orphanage in Russia
with hundreds of other girls. I had nothing
of my own until I was sold, straight from the orphanage, to a
pimp who raped me when I was twelve. And he was not the first;
I got my tits when I was eight and was raped soon after by the
master of the orphanage. I have been beaten, raped, tortured and
threatened with death all of my life that I can remember. I have
been hungry and cold more times than I can remember. Death
holds no fear for me. Nor does blindness. Or brain damage. I
wish that I did not remember most of my life. And with
this...devices, I will have great power. Many will wish to use me
for their spy. If it works I will never be poor, or dependent upon
men, again," she spat.
"Doc?" Mike said to the stone-faced physician.
"Yes?"
"Any other enhancements available?" Mike asked. "Hidden
weapons? Poison fingernails? Jump jets in the feet? She'll take
'em all."
The doctor regarded him balefully for a moment and then
cleared his throat.
"We're only authorized to provide the listed implants. The
visual system does, however, have a bio-feedback replay system
that is potentially capable of enhancing long and short distance
vision. It requires practice."
"Telescope eyes, cool," Mike said, grinning. "So she can get
jump-jets in her soles?"
"There are other...devices," the doctor said, shrugging. "But
I'm not authorized..."
"Got an outside line?" Mike asked, seriously. "I can get them
all authorized. How long would she be down?"
"How much do you want?" the physician snapped. "I can't
even tell you what they all are."
"Get me an outside line," Mike said, sighing. "I'll get you the
authorization."
* * *
Katya looked over the long list in wonder.
"What is 'micro-metallic skeletal enhancement'?" she asked,
her eyes wide.
"You don't want that," Mike said, looking over her shoulder.
"Unless there's been some radical breakthrough in
nanotechnology they're sitting on, it would mean stripping off
your skin and muscle to get it. On the other hand, you'd be bullet-
proof, to low velocity weapons, over most of your body. Jesus
Christ. There aren't many of these that are listed as actually used.
But the ones that are scare the hell out of me. At least the 'sonic
transceiver' is listed as 'tested, stable.' But I was joking about the
poison fingernails!"
"Where?" Katya asked.
"'Digital extremity chemical insertion device,'" Mike said,
pointing. "It looks like a pretty nasty procedure, though."
"Worse than having someone stick a scalpel up your nose?"
Katya asked.
"The pouch for whatever you want to give the recipient is in
the palm," Mike pointed out. "You'll go around squirting cyanide
all over every time you clench your fist. Not to mention injecting
yourself."
"Use something that has an antidote, then," Katya said,
grinning. "Antidote on one hand, poison on the other."
"There's bound to be problems with it," Mike pointed out.
"Go for the 'subcutaneous non-metallic puncture device.' Means
you can carry a knife anywhere."
"I like the poison fingernails," Katya said. "I can use them on
this mission!"
"I'm afraid that if you get the full upgrade, they're never
going to let you out of their sight," Mike said with a sigh.
"'Subcutaneous injection, phys...' I'm lost again."
" 'Subcu...'" Mike muttered for a second and then shook his
head. "It's a combat drug. I'm not sure which one; they've been
playing around with them for a long time. Probably a temporary
enhancement of strength and reaction time along with calming
agent so you're less scared."
"I don't get scared anymore," Katya said, darkly. "I get
angry."
"Perfect for you, then," Mike said.
"'Mas...'," Katya said, pointing to one line.
"Face job," Mike said. "Change your appearance."
"So I can look like a particular person?" Katya asked.
"You don't sing well enough to replace Jessica Simpson,"
Mike said, shaking his head. "It's for people that can't use their
present face for whatever reason. Get a couple of the sub-
cutaneous pouches. You can fit all sorts of stuff in those. And,
hell, if you really want the poison fingernails..."
"Why thank you, Kildar," the girl said, smiling thinly.
"But I'm definitely getting you out of my house after this,"
Mike said, grinning. "And you'll need that maseo-facial surgery if
you think you're going to get back in."
"You don't love me," Katya said with a pout.
"I don't trust you," Mike replied with a smile. "You'd be
surprised how much I like you. I'm not sure I'd go as far as love,
but..."
Katya looked at him oddly for a moment then shrugged.
"The audio visual upgrade," she said, looking over the list.
"Three subcutaneous pouches, the combat drug upgrade and the
poison fingernails."
"I'll tell the doc."
* * *
"So do I get to call you by your real name?" Mike asked as
Director Pareis came into the small, and distinctly secure,
waiting room.
"Do I?" Pareis asked.
"I hope you don't even know it," Mike snapped.
"Come on, I'm the DIA Director," Pareis said with a sigh.
"And I've now officially stated that I'm uncomfortable with
fitting this..."
"Russian whore," Mike finished for him.
"Foreign agent," Pareis corrected, "with some of the most
advanced personal enhancement technology on earth."
"Including the tracker?" Mike asked.
"What tracker?" Pareis asked.
"Oh, come on," Mike replied, scornfully. "If there's not a
GPS tracker on that girl I'm going to call the president as soon as
I get out of here and tell him he needs to can you for being a
complete moron. Cottontail is one dangerous bitch. And she's
now going to be the most dangerous bitch on the planet. Once
she gets those fingernails loaded I'm not going to want to be in
the same room with her."
"It only transmits when a tickler signal comes from a
satellite," Pareis admitted. "And I'll be surprised if even she can
detect it."
"You've tested these things for interference, right?" Mike
asked.
"As well as we can," Pareis admitted. "She'll need a day or
two of testing and tweaking once she's out of recovery."
"And then we high ourselves to wonderful Albania
," Mike said, snorting. "I take it we got the
overheads?"
"They'll be brought to you by officer courier as you're on
your way home," the director said. "Along with an intel update.
We still don't know if the girl is still there. They do ship them
out, you know. Notably to Italy
. And we've been afraid to put out feelers
about her for obvious reasons."
"She's still there," Mike said. "I can feel it in the water."
* * *
"How you doing?" Mike asked.
The G-V was technically from a charter company, but it had
been supplied by DIA so Mike figured it was something along the
lines of Air America
. The pilots were certainly reticent. Mike
missed Captain Hardesty. Not to mention the stewardesses that
usually accompanied the flights; he'd had to get his own drinks
and it took some hunting and eventually resorting to forcing
open a fixture with a screwdriver.
"You were right about the fingernails," Katya replied,
holding up her hands. The palms showed a line of small puncture
wounds. "But there is a valve. However, I start playing with it
when I get upset..."
"Which is most of the time," Mike said, looking at her and
smiling. "You'll just have to learn some restraint."
"I'm working on it," Katya said, blinking and shaking her
head. "And I keep getting double images, one of them grainy.
Like a bad TV set showing me what has just happened."
"You need to work on locking that down," Mike said,
pulling out the sheets of paper, liberally stamped with "Top
Secret", which were her post-op instructions. "No fever when we
left, which is good."
"I'm sore in some odd places," Katya admitted.
"Odder than normal, I take it," Mike said, carefully taking
her hand. "You'll get used to it. Are you going to be okay..."
"From all this?" Katya asked, withdrawing her hand. "Or on
the mission?"
"Yes," Mike said, crossing his hands in his lap.
"I am going to get well paid," Katya said, smiling. "That is
all that matters. Why this sudden show of concern, Kildar?"
"Do you think I didn't care?" Mike asked. "From the
beginning? Did you think I was just one of the users in your
life?"
"No," Katya admitted.
"I suppose that makes me one of the suckers, then," Mike
said, snorting.
"Not that...either," Katya said, at least sounding honest. "So I
don't know what you are."
"Because there are either users or suckers?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Katya admitted. "So, yes, I must accept that you are a
sucker. Certainly for giving me all these gifts."
"Use them on the wrong person, and every agent on earth
will have a termination contract on you," Mike pointed out.
"So I must find the right men to use them upon, yes?" Katya
said, smiling and working her fingers. "I look forward to it."
* * *
"You've got real problems," Nielson said, gesturing at the
map. "You realize that, right?"
"I know some of them, tell me the rest," Mike said, sighing
and leaning back in his chair. He was glad to be back at the
caravanserai; America
had been almost a culture shock. The
caravanserai really did seem to be home these days.
"I won't go over the tactical issues," Nielson said. "I've been
looking at what you might call operational issues. The entire area
around Lunari is controlled by the Albanian gangs. You've got
multiple checkpoints to pass to even get to the town. And forget
inserting on foot across the mountains. First of all, egress would
be a bitch. Second, that's the center of the clan power. You'd have
a fight on your hands, from all the Albanian clans, from,
basically, the time you cross the border. And it's not only their
turf, they'll outnumber you a few hundred to one. I don't see
doing a land ingress and egress."
"Lunari is land-locked," Adams
said. "You want us to fly in? The troops aren't trained in air-
mobile operations. Or HALO for that matter."
"Training on helicopter insertion and extraction isn't all that
hard," Mike said. "But that begs the question; where in the hell
are we going to get the helicopters?"
"More than choppers," Nielson said, gesturing at the map
again. "You're dealing with multiple sovereign countries
surrounding the area. I couldn't find one spot that I'd like to do an
assembly and extraction through."
"I hope you're not just throwing this out as an insoluble
problem," Mike said, sighing. "Because we can't use US assets
for this. Not a one."
"Not insoluble," Nielson admitted. "But it's going to be very
expensive."
"How expensive?" Mike asked. "And what's your plan?"
"There is a group in Russia
that supplies heavy lift choppers," Nielson
said, tossing Mike a brochure. "They mostly work on relief
operations and oil operations in remote areas. They went in with
the Marines in Dali, which is where I first heard of them. When
you said the Keldara were going to have to hit Lunari in force, I
started looking at the problem and saw the solution pretty quick.
And I've had some very quiet conversations with them about the
problem. They're willing to provide enough choppers and pilots
to get us in and out. But...they figure it's going to be a hot LZ.
And then there's the problem of being identified. So they want
two million, minimum, for the mission. Plus recoup costs on any
aircraft lost on the mission, to be escrowed in a Swiss bank
account controlled by a neutral third party. The vig on that is
another mil. But there's more."
"Crap," Mike said, shaking his head. "Three mil for
insertion? We need to get our own helicopters and crews."
"Maybe," Nielson said, shrugging. "But the rest is expensive,
too. You see, you can't take off from any of the countries around
or nearby. Nobody is going to miss a spec-ops group boarding
military helicopters. And most of the area around has Albanians
that are going to report it to the mob. Then there's just the
diplomatic implications. So you're going to have to come in
from the sea. You can't take off from Italy
, which is the only place in range of a Hip
helicopter, so..."
"We've got to lift from a boat," Mike said, sighing. "How
much for that?"
"Three hundred thou," Nielson said, throwing the full
budget brief on the table. "But that includes picking up the Hips,
moving to Albanian waters, launch, recovery and taking the Hips
back to Georgia
."
"Well, even if I can get the senator to geek, that's it for a
profit on the mission," Mike said with a sigh. "I think I'll call DC
and tell them that I'd like a combat bonus. Because we are going
to lose people."
"And we'll have to depend on these helicopter pilots not to
fuck us?" Adams asked.
"You got a better plan?" Mike asked.
"Yeah, call some of the 'trainers'," Adams said. "One to ride on each chopper and a group on the
boat."
"Maybe," Mike said. "But we have to get started on this
now. Nielson, get that portion moving right away. Vanner,
tactical intel?"
"We got reads from ground penetrating radar on the brothel
and the surroundings," Vanner said, shrugging. "So we've got an
interior. The building is three stories of concrete with two stories
of wooden addition on the top. There appears to be a basement as
well..."
"Which is where the DVDs are going to be located," Adams predicted. "We're going to be fighting
out way in and out."
"We can get the troops familiarized with the building by
doing a mock-up," Mike pointed out. "But we still don't know
where any of the targets are located for sure."
"The DVDs are likely to be in a safe," Nielson pointed out.
"Anybody know how to crack a safe?"
"Not I said Cock Robin," Vanner replied, shrugging.
"Gimme enough demo and I can move the world," Adams said, raising an eyebrow.
"We want them back intact," Mike said. "We need somebody
that actually knows how to open a safe. Nielson?"
"One safe cracker coming up," Nielson said, sighing. "We
don't even know what kind of safe."
"Then find one that can think on his or her feet," Mike said.
"I'll take that one," Carlson-Smith said, smiling. "I'll simply
give Drake over at MI-5 a call. I mean, he's the fellow that keeps
an eye on fellows like that. And MI-6 has people who train in
such as well."
"Thank you," Mike said. "What are the Italians going to say
to a bunch of helicopters taking off for
Albania
? Or the Albanians for that matter?"
"The Albanians have shit for coverage on that coast," Vanner
said. "They're not an issue. We'll have to stay out of Italian
territorial waters until we're done. Or... I hate to suggest this, but
we can take some copies of clips and present them to a couple of
people in the Italian government. After that, I don't think they're
going to say much at all."
"That's a very slippery slope," Mike said after a moment's
thought. "Let's see if the Brits can convince the Italians to look
the other way," he added, looking over at Carlson-Smith.
"It might help to have a pic at least of that Ital general..."
Carlson-Smith pointed out.
"Do it," Mike said with a sigh. "But let's try to limit that.
Otherwise we'll become a target just like Lunari.
Adams, get started on the mock-up. Nielson, get the
freighter moving and get those choppers down here. Russell will
take point on training for insertion and extraction with the Chief
in overall charge of the tactical training. Mr. Carlson-Smith..."
"I suppose I have a plane to catch," the MI-6 agent said with
a sigh. "I very much hope that the next time I come to visit that
you do have your own helicopter. These roads are torturous."
"So does Vanner," Mike said, frowning.
"Say again?" Patrick piped up.
"We need to get Katya inserted, now," Mike replied. "You're
going to take the Sawn intel team and monitor. You know what
intel we're looking for. Turn over the shop to Lidiya for the time
being. Take a fire team of Keldara shooters from Team Sawn
with you for security."
"So I'm going to be sitting in the woods for the next week or
two?" Patrick asked. "Cool."
"Hell, no," Mike replied. "What gave you that idea?"
Chapter Thirty-Five
Katya stepped out of the car when she was told, her head
down, and headed for the door, lifting her head just long enough
to get a good look around. Camera above the door, one of two
apparently into the same building, another camera there. More on
each end of the street. Windows up the wall, barred. One guard
on the door. That should be enough.
The two men who had driven her across the Macedonian
border were hired thugs and had picked up some fringe benefits
on the drive; she had a fading bruise on her cheek from her one
protest about that. According to plan there was supposed to be a
back-up team out there, somewhere. But she'd anticipated getting
hit. A lot. A slap on the face wasn't anything to cry about and she
hadn't, just sucked him off as he'd told her to. She'd really wanted
to jam her new nails into his scrotum and watch his face as he
bled out, but she'd resisted.
She'd also resisted clenching her fists. The packet was
loaded, although until she manipulated the valve in her palm it
shouldn't squirt out. But she'd been told the poison was "fast
acting" and didn't have an antidote. It was also unlikely that she'd
be able to use it more than once.
She had been consigned to hell for at least a week. She
needed to save it for when it would actually do some good.
But if they thought she was going to do this mission without
just one slaver choking out his life at her hands, they were very
stupid people indeed.
"Get inside," the man on the door said, opening it and
moving to slap her.
"No, I'm going," Katya said, whining, ducking her head and
scooting through the door ahead of the promised slap.
"This the new bitch?"
The room beyond was dark with only a single bulb hanging
from the ceiling. There was a table with some men playing poker,
a few girls sitting on laps and more men along the sides.
"Katrina or something," one of the men said, standing up
and walking over to her. "Look up, bitch, I want to see your face.
What's your name, bitch?"
"Katya," Katya said, quietly. "They call me Cottontail."
"Are you?" the man asked, pulling up her skirt and brutally
ripping off her panties. "Hey, the carpet matches the curtains."
"Good looker," one of the men in the shadows along the
wall said. "She's only going to make a few euros here, though.
Send her on to Italy
."
"We need to know that she knows her job, first," the man
standing in front of her said.
"I am good hooker," Katya said, looking down at the floor
again and ignoring the torn clothes. "I was hooker in Ukraine
. I know my place."
"We'll see," the man said, picking her up and throwing her
on the table. "And we'll see how tight that pussy is," he added,
unbuckling his belt.
"Just as tight as it was before you, Greva," another voice
laughed.
Katya ignored it and thought about scratching. Just one little
scratch...
* * *
When the last dick had pulled out of her ass, a man rolled
her over and slapped her. There had been quite a few of those as
well.
"I'm Boris Dejti and you are...?"
"Katya," she whispered, working her mouth. There was only
a little blood from a split lip, but she'd really like to spit. She also
knew she'd be hit harder if she did.
"Go upstairs and find a bed," the man said. "Then get your
ass out on the street. You owe me six hundred euros tonight.
That's to pay off your debt. I bought you and if you want free,
you have to pay me ten thousand euros. Of the six hundred, one
hundred goes towards your debt, the rest is the interest. You owe
me twenty euros a day for your bed, and ten euros a day for your
food. Anything else you can keep. If you give it to me, though, it
pays off your debt quicker. You understand?"
"Yes," Katya said, still quietly and keeping her head down. It
was the usual deal with bastards like this, but even more
usurious than usual.
"We're all friend in this town, we know who's girls are
who," Boris continued, grabbing her hair and twisting her head
up painfully. "You try to run, somebody in this town will bring
you back to me. And then I'll strip the skin off of your body in
little strips, you understand?"
Just one little scratch.
"I understand," Katya whimpered. "I'll be good. I'll be a good
whore."
"Get to work, bitch."
* * *
She hobbled upstairs, sore in a way that she'd almost
forgotten. It was a soreness that soaked at the soul, like the foul
taste in her mouth, a soreness in every pore of her being and
certainly all three holes that would fit a penis. She'd also lost
some of her muscle control in her mouth in the time with the
Kildar. She hadn't had to constantly serve men, there. Her jaw
ached along with the rest.
There were guards where the concrete steps gave out and the
wooden ones started and she started to see a few girls around,
looking out of the curtained rooms on either side of the corridor.
They all looked very sick. She guessed that you'd have to be
very sick not to work in this place. There were a lot of girls
here. Finding this stupid Natalya bitch wasn't going to be easy.
She poked into rooms, seeing the few posessions of the girls
by or on most of the matresses strewn on the floors, until she
came to one about half way down on the fifth floor. There was a
mattress there, like the others with no sheets and plenty of stains.
And a small blanket, all the concession to survival offered to the
girls in these parts.
The other mattress in the small room had stuff by it. She
knew that the girls would steal anything of value, even the least
little cosmetics, which was why she had hardly anything. At some
point she'd find a place to hide stuff down on the street.
No, she wouldn't have to. She wasn't going to be here that
long. But should she anyway? Yes, stay in cover...
"Katya, you read?" Vanner whispered over the radio in her
head.
"Uhmmm...?" she hummed. She'd tried the sub-vocalization
thing but wasn't really good at it, yet.
"We're in place," Vanner said. "Video and audio are coming
through...surprisingly clear. You hang tough. The teams are on
track to be here. Sorry there's not a damned thing I can do until
then. But we're here."
"Hmmm..." Katya said, rolling her eyes. Vanner was such a
dick. He-Man hero, hiding in some hotel. And watching
everything that happened to her, but not feeling it. He was
probably stroking off to the video.
"Just wanted you to know I was here," Vanner said.
"HMMM..." Katya practically screamed.
"Got it. I'll shut up."
She tossed her bag on the bed and went back down the stairs;
she had seen a sign for a bathroom down there.
The place was filthy and stinking, no surprise. But it had
some hot water and she washed her face and soaked the bruises
for a moment. Then she slipped a comb out from under her dress
and combed her hair, making herself marginally presentable.
Time to go hang it out on the meat rack.
* * *
"Mikhail," Vanner said, looking over at one of the bored
Keldara security team. "Time to build the cover."
The team had inserted as individuals, each of the men
bringing one of the Keldara girls with him along with their gear
and taking individual rooms at the Hotel Albana. When they were
all in place, the gear had been moved to Vanner's suite and
everyone had gathered there and remained there, the girls taking
turns monitoring Katya while the shooters just cleaned their
weapons and were bored.
But if a group of men didn't get it on a little in Lunari,
questions would be asked.
"So, how do I do this?" the team leader asked, setting down
the SPR from which he'd been wiping imaginary dust.
"It's not that hard," Vanner said. "Go get your car, drive
around town, pick up a girl and take her back to your room. Let
nature take it's course after that."
"Don't worry, Mikhail," Greznya said, grinning. "What
happens on the mission, stays on the mission. I won't tell your
mother."
* * *
She was already late for the first pickings around lunch and
there wasn't much traffic. And she had a lot of competition.
Girls were lined up along the street outside the brothel,
waving at every passing car, shouting, screaming even. She
watched as one walked right out into the road and tried to stop a
passing Lada, with three men in it, by standing in front of it. The
driver honked and maneuvered around her at which she screamed
and punched the passenger side window, letting out a stream of
profanity that even Katya found impressive.
Katya looked at the women along the street and despaired of
ever finding this Natalya bitch. She was just standing there, her
arms crossed, when a Fiat pulled to a halt and honked its horn.
She didn't even realize it was honking at her until three other
girls rushed over, leaning in the passenger window, and she heard
the argument.
"No! The one behind you you stupid bitches!" the man
shouted in English. "Get out of the way you ugly whores. That
one! The blonde!"
Katya walked up behind the center girl trying to force her
way into the car and calmly kicked her in the crotch. That area
was just about as sensitive on a woman as on a man, not to
mention being that girl's main source of income, and the girl let
out a shriek and crouched back, falling over on her stilletto heels.
"I'm just who you want," Katya said, kicking the girl
blocking the door handle in the ankle and opening the door. "I
take very good care of you."
"You're fucking gorgeous," the man said, embarassedly
wiping at his face when he actually drooled.
American from the accent, overweight but not gross and
balding. And very excited. She'd seen worse. She leaned over and
ran her hand over his crotch. Well, not that excited. This was
going to take some time.
"I am very good for you," she said.
"You look...young," the man said. "Where am I going?
Where am I going?"
"I have room," Katya said, shaking her head. She didn't know
where the hangouts were in this town. Five minutes on the street
and she was already picked up. Of course, after decent living with
the Kildar, and the easy life in the brothel before that, she looked
better than most of the street hookers in this town. Enough better
that it actually frightened her for a second. But if Boris, the
bastard, hadn't noticed anything she was probably safe.
"I've been in one of those," the man said with a shudder,
looking around at the traffic fearfully. "And I nearly had my car
stolen. They tore out the radio and you wouldn't believe what
those assholes at the rental agency charged me to get it replaced!"
"You have hotel?" Katya asked, rolling her eyes. This was
going to take extra fuck time and travel time and then she had to
get back! Maybe she could work the hotel, but the security
probably already had deals with other girls. Well, that was what
blowjobs were for. "I can give you blow, here."
"Not here, it's not safe," the man said, breathlessly.
Katya tried very hard not to sigh, the guy was such a...what
was it Russell said, a 'whiner'? Stuck in that hole in
Georgia
, servicing kopekless farm hands, she'd
forgotten about tricks like this. The scared ones, the ones that
were running from everything and completely out of their
element. Sure enough, he had a wedding ring. He was probably
over in Europe for "business" and somehow drifted to Albania
.
"We'll go to my hotel," the man said, suddenly, turning left
and nearly broadsiding a van. "Could you take your hand off my
zipper? I'm sort of..."
"You need good thing," Katya said, sliding over and
working more on the man's crotch. If she didn't he'd take forever
to cum when they got to the hotel. He clearly hadn't had an
erection in the last decade.
"How young are you?" the man said, suddenly, slowing the
car down.
"I am not too young," she answered, not sure if he wanted
some young thing or was afraid of her being "too" young. How
young was "too" young? Was she "too" young when Ivan had
raped her when she was eight? "But I am young enough to make
it very good for you."
"Wait," he said, actually turning and looking at her. Since
she'd gotten in the car, he'd seemed afraid of even that. "You're
speaking English?"
"I speak little," she said, cursing. Fluent English, and she
was fully fluent at this point, wasn't common among street
whores. "How young you want me?" she asked, couquettishly,
dropping her head and looking up at him from under her lashes.
"I can be as young want. I am very nearly virgin," she added,
knowing that would get him off. Sure enough, he actually went
from entirely flaccid to having a pulse.
"How young are you," the man said, speeding up again and
running a red light. Not that anyone paid any attention to them,
anyway.
"I am just turn sixteen," Katya said, stripping an easy year
off her age and picking one that Americans seemed to fixate
upon. "I am old enough, here. There is no problem."
"Are you sure you're sixteen?" the man said, with an edge of
disappointment as they pulled up at the hotel.
"When we get to the room, I tell you real age," Katya said,
coyly, smiling up at him innocently and batting blue eyes through
lashes again. "I give you very good time and you give me good
money, yes?"
"Yeah, yeah," the man panted. "But...I can't be seen going
through the lobby with you..."
"Give me room number," Katya said, trying very hard not to
sigh. "I meet you there."
* * *
Mikhail didn't like this particular "mission", but he felt he
had to set a good example. Each of the team would have to move
around town and meet and...spend time with the hookers that
supported the local economy. There were a few problems with
that in his case. The first was that he'd never picked up a hooker.
The rest didn't bear thinking on.
He drove down the main boulevard in a surprisingly nervous
state for someone who'd faced Chechens in battle. He thought
that he had been fully trained for whatever he might encounter,
but the American trainers had not really given him much advice
on this particular skill. He could have killed some of the hookers
lining the street and in many cases shouting at him. But he wasn't
sure he knew how to talk to them. There should have been a
training task on this. He'd have to bring it up when they got back.
If they got back.
He knew he didn't want to pick up one of the hard-faced
bitches that looked as old as his mother, and not nearly as pretty.
They were mostly the ones that screeched from the sidewalk like
crows and sometimes ran over and tried to pull his car door
open. And some of the girls just looked... He couldn't imagine
doing it with them. They were just...
Finally he spotted what he was looking for after about an
hour of driving around and pulled over, waving at the girl.
The brunette practically ran to the door as he leaned over
and unlocked it. She still had to hip-check another woman, one
of the older ones, out of the way and tumbled into to the
passenger seat.
"Hello," the girl said, sliding over to lean against him. "I'm
Tanya. I give you very good time."
"Mikhail," the Keldara said, putting the car in gear and trying
to figure out which way back to the hotel.
"Hello, Mikhail," the girl said, sitting up. "Where are we
going?"
"The Hotel Albana if I can find it," Mikhail said.
"I think you take a right up here," the girl said, sighing. "I've
been there, once. Is nice. But it takes time to get there and back,
so it will be more. I give you very good time for an hour
for...fifty euros."
Vanner had told him that the girl should cost thirty
or forty euros but he wasn't going to haggle. One of the reasons
that he'd picked this girl out was that she looked as if she knew
what she was doing but she didn't really look like a whore. He
just couldn't haggle with her.
"Fifty is okay," Mikhail said, frowning. Vanner had told him
to just submit an "expense report." He figured one of the women
would know how to do that.
"Ooo, you're nice," Tanya said, running her hand over his
arm. "You are going to like this very much."
Mikhail frowned for a second and then sighed.
"Is something need to tell you," he said.
"You want special service is more," Tanya said, not looking
very happy. "In ass is ten euros. You want hit, is more."
"It's not that," Mikhail said, hurriedly. "It's...I've never done
this before. Been with a..."
"Prostitute?" the girl asked then looked at his face and
stopped. "Oh. Have never been with girl?"
"Don't laugh, please," Mikhail said, desperately.
"Learn early not to laugh at men," Tanya said, still looking at
him seriously. "You tell truth?"
"Yes," Mikhail said, frowning. "Where I'm from...is not
much chance. Good girls...don't. Bad girls...leave."
"Oh," Tanya said. "Well, I show you good time. Will be
okay, okay?"
"Okay," Mikhail said, smiling finally. "Thank you for not
making fun of me. How did..."
"How did nice girl like me end up here?" Tanya said,
sighing. "From nice boy like you."
"Excuse me?"
"Boyfriend," Tanya said, leaning back into her own seat. "I'm
with him for...three months or so. He tells me has a friend can get
me into Germany
as maid. There is no work in
Russia
for me, so I say I'll meet friend. Turns out
friend gets hookers for Albanians. Never see boyfriend again."
"That's..." Mikhail said, angrily.
"Shitty, yes?" the girl replied with a bitter laugh. "I think,
maybe he not know. I love him, yes? And he do this to me. But
he must know. Sometimes think of what would want to do to
him if found him again. Are not nice thoughts."
"I'll hold his arms for you," Mikhail said. "If you not want to
do this..."
"I have to do this," Tanya said, desperately. "Don't drop me
off, please. I need to earn money. If I don't bring back money, I
get beaten."
"Okay," Mikhail said, as they pulled up to the hotel. "We do
this."
"You very nice," Tanya replied, snuggling back up to him.
"You nice boy, nice man. I think I give you special service. I rock
your world."
Chapter Thirty-Six
When the American answered the door he grabbed her and
tried to kiss her on the mouth. Katya thought about it for a
second and let him. He'd put on cologne and brushed his teeth.
Americans. Like she cared.
"I am very good for you," she said, rethinking her strategy. If
she walked back to the hotel, she'd probably be passing through a
bunch of other brothels' territories. Which meant if she tried to
pick up tricks, she'd get the crap beat out of her by the pimps that
watched the girls. Paying for a taxi, unless this guy was
incredibly generous, was out of the question. Even if he gave her
the fare, she'd be better to pocket it and walk.
But it was at least a half hour walk back, if she walked fast.
In heels.
So...and so.
"I give you good time," Katya said, pushing him back
towards the bed. "And you give me money, please?" she
practically sobbed. "I am sorry to ask, I am not good whore. I
have only been whore for few days." She sat on the edge of the
bed and started sobbing.
"What?" the man said, sitting up and patting her on the
shoulder. "Really?"
"I am orphan," she sobbed. "I am thrown out of orphanage.
There I learn English. Not so good, but I can understand, yes? I
have no where to go, no one hire me. I must do this." She looked
up, suddenly, and stared at him, fiercely. "I will do this with you,
yes? You are good man, sweet and nice, a good American, yes? I
will give you much sex, but, please..." she broke down and
sobbed. "Please, I ask you not send me back out. I will give you
sex over and over but Boris, he hit me if I not bring back enough!
Please to help me!"
"How old are you, child?" the man said, pulling her up into
his lap.
"I am...I am fourteen," Katya sobbed. "I am only whore a few
days. Boris, he rape me and tell me I make money for him. He
make me pay rent and I must pay him eight hundred euros every
day! Yesterday, I only make sixty euros! He hit me much," she
added, pointing to the bruises on her face and her cut lip.
"That's just...abominable," the man snapped. "Horrible! You
can stay here, if you want. I'm going to be here...I'd planned on
being here for a few days..."
"No!" Katya gasped in fear. "NO! Boris' men, they find me.
Find you! No, I will stay with you until is very late. But I must
have money! I must...you are not...I must..." She broke down
again.
"Look," the man said. "I'd planned on spending...quite a bit,
here. You can have it. I don't really need..." He stopped and
sighed.
"You need, yes?" Katya said, looking up with tears in her
eyes. "I will. With you, I am very good for you, yes? And...you
need. I feel you."
"My wife and I..." the man said with a sigh. "I mean, I love
her, but she just...doesn't want to anymore. And I'm not going
to...you can't just up and beat a woman because she doesn't want
to have sex. So...I use a Kleenex and...well. Anyway, I was at a
seminar in Italy
and there was this...young lady. Like you
but...not as young. And she...was very good for me."
Katya was fighting yawning and trying to keep the tears
going at the same time. It was a tough call, but she managed it.
The important part was to stare him in the eye and nod. Doing
your nails was a bad idea. Save that for later when he was on top
and wouldn't notice as long as you kept making lots of noise.
The long story of the man's journey to the most whore-
infested town in Albania
wound to a close and Katya jerked back to
wakefulness, trying to rememer what he'd said.
"Your wife is very bad woman!" Katya said, throwing her
arms around him. "She should give you what you need. You are
good man!" I hope I can suck enough out of him for all this time.
But if I play my cards right...
"She's not a bad woman," the man said with a sigh. "She just
doesn't understand how...what I need. And...she's not as good
looking as she used to be. I don't want to leave her, though.
So...here I am. In Lunari. It seemed like a good idea with a few
drinks in me..."
"But I am good you," Katya said, standing up and lifting up
her skirt a little. "I am take care you. But..."
"I'll pay you," the man said, reaching into his shirt and
pulling out a secure wallet. "I'll buy you from him if that's what
it takes!"
"Would not sell me," Katya said, pushing the money away
and mentally calculating the bulge. If that was all he had with
him, she was sunk. "This town, is not safe and safe at all same
time. I know people make safe. But need money. You pay me, I
stay near you most of time. Must go back so they know I not try
to run. But I come for you. I show you town, we go to club. You
pay me. I give you much sex, more sex than ever have in life. We
get other girls, do it together if you want. Not much more money
at all. I take very good care of you! But..."
"Would a thousand euros a day cover it?" the man asked,
pulling out Traveller's Checks.
"I cannot do with those..." Katya said in real desperation.
"But can cash at hotel?"
"I have some euros, too," the man said, handing them over to
her. It was about three hundred, so far so good. Oh, shit, the
mission. This would have been heaven if she was really one of
the whores in the brothel. But she had a different mission. "And,
yes, I can cash them at the hotel. And it has an ATM, but...if I hit
that too hard my wife will wonder why."
"We take care of it," Katya said, seriously, but with a touch
of innocence. "I take care of you and give you very good time
until you leave. I am rock your world."
* * *
"Oh...wow!" Mikhail said, lying back on the bed.
"You come quick," Tanya replied, wiping the cum away
from her mouth. "And lots. I think there is more there," she
added, stroking his member. Sure enough, it started to pop back
to life.
"I'm not sure..." Mikhail said, starting to sit up.
"I show you other way," the hooker said, standing up and
pulling off her sheath dress. "You like my body?"
"You're very pretty," Mikhail admitted. She would only be
average as a Keldara, but he'd never seen a Keldara girl naked so
he had limited experience to judge. All he knew was that he
wanted to do it again. And again and again.
"Come over here," she said, lying down on the bed. "You
need condom."
"I've got one," Mikhail admitted, getting up quickly and
digging through his bags until he found the foil packet.
"I show," Tanya said as he fumbled with the latex sheeth. "Is
almost too small." She took the condom, placed the tip in her
mouth and put it on that way. "You like?"
"Yes," Mikhail admitted. "What...where...?"
"Come here," the girl said, pulling him over to her. "On top.
Try not to put all your weight on me..." she started to spit on her
fingers to moisten herself and realized she didn't have to, she was
actually enjoying herself. "I get you there..." she added, guiding
him down and in.
"Oh...wow," Mikhail repeated, starting to pump at her
furiously. He looked up after a moment and stopped as he saw
tears in the girl's eyes. "Are you okay?" he asked, starting to pull
out.
"Don't," she said, digging her fingers into his buttocks. "Is
good for me, too. You are very nice. I like. Makes me sad,
though. I not be whore for very long. Is almost like boyfriend
again."
"Only almost?" Mikhail asked.
"Actually, is better," Tanya admitted, grinning through the
tears. "Boyfriend was too small. I think you are rock my world."
* * *
Katya got out of the taxi, one of the last driving around
Lunari, and twisted her spine to get it back in line, getting a full
view of the front of the building. Two guards, more barred
windows up to the fourth storey, heavy steel door. The street was
mostly deserted, though, at this time of night.
The man, he said his name was Tom and he was a
neurosurgeon from Cleveland,
Tennessee, had been as hard
to get off as she'd predicted. But he still wanted sex most of the
time and she'd given it to him. And he must have slept in, because
he hadn't passed out until after three. It hadn't advanced the
mission much, but it gave her some leeway. She had her money
for the day, at least.
"You're late," the guard on the door growled. She was using
the front entrance, which she'd never been through, because it
was clear the others were closed.
"I have to make money, yes?" she asked.
"Get in," he said, irritably. "You're the last one."
Boris, unbelievably, was still awake, the bastard.
"Where the fuck have you been, bitch!" he stormed, walking
up to her and smashing her to the floor with a hard slap.
"I have your money!" she whimpered, reaching under the
dress and pulling out money. "Six hundred euros!"
"Let me see that," Boris said, snatching the money out of her
hand and then reaching into her dress and fumbling around.
"More, bitch? You have more!"
"I found a rich American," Katya said, stopping the
dissembling and standing up. "He thinks I'm fourteen and just
broken in. My amazing skills at sucking him off being natural, I
suppose. Six hundred for my debt, thirty for room I'm only going
to use for a few hours and food I didn't eat, yes?" She reached
out and calmly plucked a hundred euro note out of his hand.
"This is for me, yes? If you hit again, American might not like my
face. He wants me and sometimes other girl. Let me pick and he
stays happy, yes? And you make your money. Is another hundred
there is yours. Or...you can hit and tell me I'm stupid bitch and
beat me up so I not look good... and tomorrow maybe I have six,
maybe not." She shrugged and dared to look him in the eye.
"You've been around," Boris said.
"I said, I am whore in
Ukraine
," Katya said, shrugging. "Have been a
whore for...five year. I know how to work men, how to suck
them dry of money. I speak English, I speak Russian, I even speak fucking Georgian. No
Albanian. But I spend some time here, suck my American dry,
send him home happy to his fat wife and then you send me to
Italy where I make you real money."
"Bring him to the club, tomorrow," Boris said, his eyes
narrow.
"He doesn't like those shitty rooms upstairs," Katya said. "I
will, but..."
"There are other rooms," Boris said. "Ten euros to rent.
Clean sheets, red light, very nice. You didn't know?"
"No," Katya said, trying not to sigh again because then he
would hit her. "You only told me to get out on the street and
make you your money, yes? I have made you your money. I'll
bring him to the club. But...he likes me. He likes girls like me.
Let me find another for part of the time. There will be at least
one here that will do. I'll bring him, introduce him, get him to
buy pay-me drinks, yes?"
"You know the routine," Boris said. "But I think you're a
little too smart for your own good."
"I bring you money," Katya said, shrugging. "Why you
care?"
"Because you better understand that I own you, bitch," Boris
snarled, grabbing her by the arm. "And I can teach you that
without ever leaving a mark. Come with me."
He dragged her to the back of the club and into the men's
restroom. It still hadn't been cleaned from the night and smelled
of shit, piss and puke.
He kicked open one of the stalls and shoved her head into
the fetid bowl of the toilet.
"Lick it clean, bitch," Boris snarled, shoving her head down.
"You're no more than a fucking whore. And whores do what
they're told. So lick that shit out of the bowl, bitch!"
Katya gagged but did what she was told, licking at the shit
besmeared bowl. She tried to tell herself that she'd done worse,
but when didn't come to mind. Yes, it did. There was a Japanese
tourist in the Ukraine
that had paid her to eat his shit. But she'd
at least been paid. And that was a long time ago.
When Boris jerked her head up she was careful to look as
meek as possible. He wanted her humiliated so she brought up
some more tears and quivered in fear.
"Please," she whimpered. "I bring you money! I will!"
"You're damned right you will," Boris said, reaching into
her dress again and pulling out her remaining hundred euro note.
"And this is a fine for thinking your smart! Now get your ass up
to the room, bitch. And your rich American had better be in my
club tomorrow!"
Katya kept her head down on the way up to her room. Light
was apparently optional above the main club level and she kept
stumbling over bumps and cracks in the floor with her heels as
she made her way.
When she got there she saw that her stuff had been picked
through but they hadn't taken her toothbrush at least. But she
didn't have any toothpaste left.
She made her way back to the only bathroom she had found,
other than the one on the ground floor and she wasn't going there
any time soon. She brushed her teeth with the horrible soap that
was on the sink and managed to get the last of the shit taste out
then took a sketchy shower. The hot water had apparently been
turned off as well.
That done she went back to her semen and blood stained bed,
set her dress against the wall to avoid having it stolen and linked
her fingers behind her bed, staring at the ceiling.
So far, the mission was going better than she'd expected.
* * *
"Mikhail, do you have any idea what time it is?" Vanner
asked, grumpily.
"Yes," the team leader said. "I have problem."
"Come on in," Vanner said, waving the way into his
bedroom. The intel team had set up in the main room and he'd
taken one of the two bedrooms. He'd just gotten off of
monitoring duty and had looked forward to a few hours rest
before Katya woke up. One of the girls was on duty to monitor
when she was asleep, in case a serious security issue came up.
But Tiya would get to sleep during the day. He wasn't going to
get the chance.
"The girl I pick up..." Mikhail said as the intel specialist
closed the door.
"Oh, crap," Vanner said, collapsing on the bed. "Don't tell
me you've fallen in love with a hooker."
"She not want to be whore," Mikhail insisted.
"Mikhail," Vanner said, frowning. "We're on a mission here.
We can't afford for you to go all John Wayne on us."
"What?" Mikhail asked, confused.
"You were supposed to just go out and get laid," Vanner
replied, sighing. "Not fall in love with the girl. Look, most of the
hookers in town aren't here because they grew up wanting to be
hookers. In fact, you'd be hard pressed to find one that had that
on her list of intended vocations. But that's what they are, now.
What do you want to do about it? Where is she, by the way?"
"In my room," Mikhail said, worrying his lip.
"Damnit, they have a curfew," Vanner snapped. "Her pimp is
going to come looking for her."
"She called," Mikhail said. "She tell them she is staying with
her...trick and will bring money in morning."
"She needs at least..."
"Six hundred and thirty euros," Mikhail said, miserably.
"And I suppose you want me to cough it up," Vanner said.
"The Kildar to pay for it."
"I will pay back," Mikhail said. "I not want her to get hurt.
She is from Club Aldaris. That is target, yes?"
"Christ," Vanner said, sliding up the bed and leaning on the
headboard. "Mikhail, you're supposed to be security for the suite.
You think she can come in here with you?"
"No," the trooper admitted. "But..."
Vanner held up one hand and thought for a second.
"Okay," the intel specialist said, frowning. "You're on deck
for security tonight. You're supposed to be in there now. So go
tell her you have to go for a while, she can sleep there.
Tomorrow you take her back to the club, she pays her pimp,
then you two go back to your
room. Get some rest, don't just screw all day because you're on
duty tomorrow night, too. We'll see what we can arrange."
"Thank you, sir," Mikhail said, standing up.
"I want to meet her, tomorrow," Vanner added. "Maybe we
can salvage something useful out of this."
"Yes, sir."
"Now...go!"
* * *
"Come," Mike said at the knock on the door.
"Kildar," Oleg said, entering the room and coming to
attention.
"Sit, Oleg, what's on your mind?" Mike said, clearing the
screen on his computer.
The helicopters had arrived and the Keldara had gotten
started on that training. Most of them had never ridden in an
airplane before and few had even seen a helicopter. But, as
always, they were soaking up the information like so many
sponges. And the majority already knew how to fast-rope for that
portion of the entry.
Taking off and landing on the freighter, though, was going
to be problematic. Mike intended to exercise in the Black Sea
before they headed for Albania
.
"Kildar, I am not sure how to say this..." Oleg said.
"If it's about that...Kardane thing..." Mike said.
"No, no!" Oleg replied, waving his hands. "It does, however,
touch on the honor of the Keldara."
"Go ahead," Mike said, furrowing his brow.
"Before you came, we had problems with the Chechens,"
Oleg said, furrowing his own in thought. "They often came
wanting us to give up our food, our mules...our women."
"And you fought them off at least once," Mike said. "I heard
about that."
"But even then..." Oleg said and paused. "I should not be the
one saying this, but the elders don't have the same..."
"Who was she?" Mike asked, softly.
"My sister," Oleg said. "Elena. She was twelve."
"Oleg, it's a big damned world out there..." Mike said then
paused himself. "What are you asking?"
"There is going to be information in Lunari about...much,"
Oleg pointed out. "Greznya spoke to me. An Elena, a Georgian
girl, was listed on one of the...hard-drives you recovered. The
one in Romania
..."
"Oleg, she might not be in the same building," Mike said,
sighing. "It's an astronomical unlikelihood that she will be. And,
Oleg, you've seen the raw intel. That town is one fortress after
another. If we can find and extract Elena, without compromising
the mission, we will. And if we can't extract her, but we can find
her, I'll move heaven and earth to get her back. Is she the only
one?"
"No," Oleg admitted. "Catrina Mahona. She was taken...four
years ago. And there was no record of her. But, Kildar, both of
these women, they are..."
"Dead to the clan," Mike said, nodding. "I understand. They
are soiled, untouchable. I'm talking to a school in Argentina
that might take in the girls we've
recovered, those that don't have some sort of life to go back to. I
may send them some of the girls in the harem, as well. Would
that do?"
"Kildar..." Oleg replied, his face working.
"Concentrate on the mission, Oleg," Mike said, his own face
hard. "You've communicated your concerns to me. Let me handle
it from here. You've got enough to worry about."
* * *
"You're not usually up this late, George," Senator Traskel
said as he was lead into the sitting room. The president was
leaning back on the couch, his eyes closed and pinching the
bridge of his nose, while his Chief of Staff poured coffee.
"There was just too many things going on today to break off
early," the president said, yawning. "And another long one
tomorrow unless I'm much mistaken. What can I do for you,
Tom?"
"I picked up a rumor that we have an operation going on in
Albania
," Senator Traskel said, sitting down and
accepting the proffered coffee cup. "I hope that it's nothing that
should have been discussed with my committee beforehand.
Albania
is a sovereign country, with a growing
reputation in the UN..."
"Albania
?" the president said, looking over at the
Chief of Staff, quizzically. "You're talking about a special
operations black operation? As far as I know, no American
military operation is being planned for
Albania
. I can't even imagine why we'd do one. I
mean, it's a land that exports nothing but drugs and beaten-up
prostitutes, which is good and sufficient reason for
democratization. But it doesn't actively threaten the
US
, so we've more or less left it alone except
for encouraging improvement. Through the UN, as a matter of
fact."
"You're sure about that?" the senator asked. "I heard a fairly
credible rumor that a company of American Rangers was going
to be flying into a town in
Albania
to rescue some hostages. I didn't even
know there were any hostages in Albania
. If there were, I think the American people
would be interested, don't you? I know that many things must be
kept 'black' as the military likes to put it. But some things need
the sun shown upon them, don't you think?"
"I'm sure they do," the president said, smiling. "But as I said,
there is no American military operation going on in
Albania
. No, wait," the president said as the
senator started to protest. "I might be wrong. There are
operations going on all over the world. It is possible that there is
a group of terrorists there we're going after. Albania
is primarily Muslim, after all. Let me
check."
The president leaned over and picked up the phone.
"Grace? Could you call OSOL and ask them if we have an
operation going on in Albania
? Something about a company of Rangers?
If so, I want to know, right away, what the nature and purpose of
the mission is. Thank you." He turned back to the senator and
shrugged. "As you know, OSOL has its finger on the pulse of
every operation, black or white, that is done under any special
operations umbrella including the blackest DIA operations. If
there's anything going on, they'll know it. In the meantime, what
do you think of the Astros this year?"
* * *
"Your information was wrong," Traskel snarled into the
phone.
"I don't think so," the man on the other end said. "A company
of Rangers was sent to Eastern Europe.
That's a fact. And another source said that there was a mission
planned for Lunari using a company sized force. There are people
that don't agree with all these military adventures of this idiot in
the White House. We talk. You know that."
"They're looking for the girl," the senator said, his face
working. "And she's in Lunari. Get over there. You should have
cleaned this up the first time. Clean it up now."
"Do you have any idea how many women are in Lunari?" the
voice said, chokingly.
"They're going to find her, so can you. And then finish it. No
little games, you understand me. Finish her."
Chapter Thirty-Seven
"Katya," a female voice whispered in her head. "This is
Lidiya, Team Padrek. Good morning."
"Hmmm..." Katya replied as she brushed her teeth again.
She'd traded a dollar she'd hidden in one of her pouches for some
toothpaste and Lord did she need it. It was almost lunch time.
Time to go look up "Tom" again. She had to look half way
decent. A heroine in a movie that's been roughed up but still
looks like a model... She ran her fingers through her hair and
tossed it around to get just the right effect. If she only had some
cosmetics, she could get it perfect.
"Additional mission. There are some Keldara girls that
might be in the town. We have visuals of them. If we see one,
through you, we'll redirect. Understand?"
"Hmmm..." Katya said, rolling her eyes. Great. Fucking
Holier-Than-Thou Keldara. Nobody ever came for her when she
needed it.
"You need to get more of a layout on the club. Use your
American if you can."
"HMMMM..." Teach me to suck eggs, stupid Keldara
bitch!
"I can see you're not a morning person."
Katya sighed angrily and finished brushing then headed back
down to the street. Supposedly, there was something resembling
breakfast around here, but "Tom" had had some food in his room
and that was enough to keep her going through the very short
night.
But, first, she wanted to take a look around. Most of the
girls were still just getting ready for the day, the lazy whores.
Getting out early, looking fresh, would usually pick you up at
least two or three tricks. All it took was getting out of bed. If she
ran this place, there'd be a reveille.
But the fact was that there wasn't. So the girls were still
getting up and she could see the faces.
It was all the way on the sixth floor that she found her. The
girl was just finishing working on her hair using a bit of mirror
on the wall. She was pretty sure it was the same girl, but she
continued to stare then hummed and finally sighed.
"Sorry, you're calling us aren't you?" a female voice said.
"Yes, that appears to be the target. Find out what room she uses.
Move into it if you think it will work."
She'd hatched a plan in an instant, but she wasn't sure how to
tell the stupid Keldara. There was very little in the way of
privacy. Later for that.
"Hello," she said, walking over to the girl.
Natalya looked at her fearfully then around for support.
"I'm not going to put on you," Katya said, looking her up
and down. The girl was young and fairly good looking. She'd
look better with some cosmetics, no question.Could she swing
this? "I have found a rich American. He wants two girls, even
though he can barely get it up with one. And he likes young ones.
But not to hit on, he is nice. You are pretty good. You want in?"
"Will I make as much as usual?" Natalya asked in a resigned
tone.
"If you work with me, you will," Katya said, shaking her
head. "More and with less work. You need to learn to be a good
whore, though. He thinks I'm fourteen and barely touched. I'm
not going to take him some dragged out whore. If you can't act,
the deal is off. You speak English?"
"No," the girl said, still looking at her fearfully.
"Good," Katya said, the plan blooming. "Let me handle the
talking, then. And don't tell anyone what the arrangement is.
You'll get seven hundred euros a day. He uses traveller's checks.
I know a man who will give me a special deal on them, so I'll
cash them, alone."
"Ah, got it," the Keldara listener said, musingly. "We'll
supplement. I'll get Vanner and tell him."
"We'll go down, you stay by the doors. I'll find him and we'll
get together with him and tell him the deal. Yes?"
"Yes," Natalya said, her eyes wide. "But why are you being
nice to me?"
"Who says I'm being nice?" Katya said, laughing evilly. "I'm
going to let you do most of the fucking and I'll take most of the
money. And because you're such a little mouse you won't try to
double-cross me, will you?" She leaned forward and ran her
sharpened nails down the girl's neck, lightly. "Will you?"
* * *
"You know," Vanner said, leaning back at the head of the
bed and monitoring the grainy video take on his laptop. "If we
were really just after the girl, we could pull her out like this. No
muss, no fuss."
"Who would have thought they'd have her out walking the
streets?" Lidiya asked, shaking her head. "That means something,
but I'm not sure what."
"Well, whatever is important about the girl, the Albanians
clearly don't know it," Vanner replied. "Upload that item. We
might want to find an alternate plan to get the girl. One that is
less likely to get her wacked."
* * *
Katya realized she had screwed up by not making special
arrangements to meet "Tom" last night. But as soon as she
stepped down to the street, she saw his Fiat cruising slowly along
the boulevard.
"Tom!" she shouted as he pulled next to her. She ran over
and leaned in the window, giving him a good solid French kiss.
She hoped some day she'd get the chance to tell him how her
night had gone. But not today, not after that kiss.
"He hurt you," Tom said, running his hand carefully over the
fresh bruise on her cheek.
"It is okay," Katya said. "Men have hit me since I was very
young. I am used to it. I told you I have friend," she said, waving
to Natalya. "We will give you very good deal, but we must talk.
And, if you don't mind, I would like to shower at your hotel.
Would you scrub my back?"
* * *
"Do we have this set up?" Katya asked in Georgian when she
was in the shower. The hotel water was at least warm, if not
exactly clear. And hot didn't seem to be a setting. But there was
some shampoo, thank God, and decent American soap. She
scrubbed hard.
"It's set up," Lidiya answered. "Whenever you're ready to
make the switch. It will be in the hotel."
"Good," Katya said.
"We're communicating with higher about extracting you and
Natalya prior to the main op, less likely to get shot."
"That would be nice," Katya said, dryly. "How long?"
"No more than four days," Lidiya replied.
"I hope I can string him along that long," Katya said. "It's the
best bet I've got for keeping close to the girl."
"You're doing fine," Lidiya said, soothingly. "Just keep on
like you have been."
"Being beaten, raped and having to service men?" Katya
replied, sarcastically. "You try it."
"I've got other skills," Lidiya said. "One of which is making
sure you have your money to keep your pimp off your back."
"I'm done here," Katya said.
"Out."
"You talk to yourself, too?" Natalya asked, dreamily.
Katya nearly had a heart attack until she realized the girl was
never going to know the Keldara accented version of Georgian
they'd been speaking. The dialect was practically another
language.
"Sometimes," Katya said, wondering what the girl might
have understood. "When I think I'm alone!" Should have made
sure.
"Do you have voices?" Natalya asked in the same dreamy
voice. "I have voices. They tell me that the bad man is coming."
"They are all bad men," Katya said, wondering if the girl had
implants like she did or if she was just crazy. Hopefully, just
crazy.
"No, this is the real bad man," Natalya said. "He said that he
would come for me. That he would let me wait and fear. But he
didn't come back. And they sent me here, instead."
"Well, he's not here," Katya said. "But I am. And if you don't
get out of damned bathroom you're not going to have to fear him
because I'm going to kill you!"
"He seemed like such a nice man," Natalya said, as she
closed the door. "So very nice. He had a nice face."
* * *
"Bingo," Vanner said as he replayed that portion of the tape.
Of course, that also meant that he had to look at Katya's tits from
an angle he'd never seen them from before. But he managed to
keep his mind on work. "She saw the face of the guy who was
impersonating Fullbright."
"And he said he'd be back," Lidiya continued. "To kill her,
later. But the Albanians had shipped her, already."
"So did he know that there was full audio/video in Rozaje?"
Vanner mused. "Who did know, at that time?"
"The British government," Lidiya pointed out. "Maybe the
American government as well?"
"Yeah, but who in the American government?" Vanner
asked, rhetorically. He turned to the satellite link and started
typing. "Want to bet that Senator Traskel is on the list?"
"Who's going to do the plant?" Lidiya asked. "Two of the
girls are out planting vids, I'm on deck and Liya is sleeping."
"I've got an idea," Vanner said, smiling.
* * *
"Oh, this is very good," Mikhail groaned as Tanya humped
him from on top.
"You are very good," Tanya replied, panting. "I think...toooo
gooo..." She paused and gasped as there was a knock on the door.
And then squealed as she was suddenly thrown half-way across
the bed and Mikhail was on his feet with a pistol clutched in a
two handed grip.
"What are you..." she asked, half in a whisper.
"Get down and be quiet," Mikhail replied, cat-footing to the
door, apparently ignoring that he was entirely naked. "Who is it?"
"Vanner. Open up."
Mikhail uncocked the gun and looked around wildly then
snatched up a towel before opening the door.
"Smells like you haven't been getting much sleep," Vanner
said in Russian as he walked in the room. "Where's the girl?"
"Here?" Tanya said, popping up over the far side of the bed
holding her sheeth dress in front of her.
"Get some clothes on," Vanner said and looked Mikhail up
and down. "And you, Mikhail. But take the condom off first."
* * *
"We will both be very good to you," Katya said as she
walked back into the room with a towel wrapped around her hair
and torso. The latter barely covered her pubic hair and was pulled
down low on her breasts so she had his full and undivided
attention. "But there are some things that we have to do for that
deal."
"Okay," Tom said, breathlessly. Natalya hadn't even waited
for a suggestion and was fellating him rigorously. "Whatever you
two want..."
"I have found man that will give me good deal on traveller's
checks," Katya said. "I will cash them. Just once every day, eight
hundred euros. And we must spend time at the club."
"I don't..." Tom started to say and then winced.
"We don't go to girl's rooms," Katya said, quickly. "There
are nice rooms, only ten euros to use. And if you find other girls
you like, you go with them, too. But you must buy us some
drinks so Boris makes money or he will get angry." She brushed
her cheek, lightly, and shook her head. "He was very angry that I
come back so late last night. He think I run. If you want both of
us, must keep him happy."
"Okay, okay," Tom said, groaning. "Whatever you want..."
"Move over, stupid one," Katya said in Russian, kneeling
down in front of the neurosurgeon. "You don't know how to
really give a man head."
* * *
"So you're Tanya," Vanner said when both of them had
gotten dressed. She was a fairly pretty brunette, he had to admit.
Not up to Keldara standards, but close.
"Yes?" she replied, looking over at Mikhail.
"You've probably figured out by now that Mikhail is not a
farm manager here on vacation," Vanner said, smiling. "By the
pistol, if nothing else."
"I...hadn't thought so before..." Tanya said, carefully.
"You want out?" Vanner asked. "Out from being a whore
that is?"
"Yes," the girl said, fiercely then paused. "But I cannot run. I
would be beaten, killed."
"Not where we'll send you," Vanner said. "The Albanians
won't be able to touch you. But to get out, really out, you need to
help us."
"What are you doing?" Tanya asked, nervously.
"You don't have to know," Vanner said. "All you have to do
is what we tell you, when we tell you, exactly. And you don't talk
about it. Not even to your girlfriends. If you do, you're going to
get Mikhail killed, and yourself. Do you understand?"
"Yes," the girl answered, quietly.
"Okay," Vanner said, pulling out a metal packet and tossing
it to her. "Put that in your purse. You're going to plant it for us."
* * *
"Now," Katya said when the doctor was laid out flat on the
bed and Natalia was using up the hot water. "The money changer
I found is near the hotel. I will go to him once per day, as I said.
But we must go to the club as well. And I must sleep there late at
night, so that they know all their girls are still in town. So, we
must either come back here, later, to get the money changed or I
change it now."
"You're just going to run, aren't you?" Tom said, sighing in
regret. "Take the money and run..." he sang.
"No, Tom," Katya said, seriously. "Please, look at me. I will
not run." That's right, look right into these innocent blue eyes
you sucker.
"Okay, okay," Tom said, pulling out his money pouch and
pulling out the traveller's checks. "How much?"
"Eight hundred, please," Katya said, putting her hand on his
arm and leaning into him. "I promise. I am only gone..."
"Ten minutes," Vanner whispered. "Max."
"Ten minutes," Katya continued, stepping over his "max".
"And Natalya stays here, yes? When she gets out of shower, she
give you good time."
"Not as good as you, Katya," Tom said, handing over the
endorsed traveller's checks. "Nobody is as good as you."
"I be back very soon," Katya said, standing up. "I do
whatever you want. I play little girl, yes?" she asked, pulling her
hair into pony-tails.
"Do you have a schoolgirl outfit?" Tom asked, breathing
hard.
"No," Katya said, pouting. "I not even have hair ribbons. Is
all I have, what you see," she added, waving at her body.
"I could..."
"If you want send me shop," Katya said, smiling winningly.
"I buy whatever you want. I be whoever you want. Any name you
want, any girl you want. You do whatever you want."
"Can you...resist a little?" Tom asked.
"I be whatever you want," Katya said, slipping to the door.
"Ten minutes."
* * *
"In ten minutes, with this much money, I could be on my
way to Greece
," Katya said as she strode down the hall.
"This is the time for me to cut and run, normally. Where am I
going?"
"Third floor," Vanner answered. "West stairwell."
She rode the elvator down to the third floor and stepped
aside for another whore who wordlessly boarded the elevator as
she got off. Then she headed for the stairwell.
"Fire hose compartment on your right," Vanner said as she
stepped into the stairwell. "Container under it."
She pulled the plastic container out and had a moment's
trouble opening it. But when she did a thick envelope fell out.
"Put the traveller's checks back in," Vanner said. "You can't
hold onto them with Boris searching your dress every time you
go back."
"You're getting off on this, aren't you?" Katya asked,
slipping the checks into the box and replacing it.
"Only when you're looking in a mirror, honey," the former
Marine said. "Seriously, you're doing great."
"Compliments get you no-where," Katya said, stepping back
into the hallway. "But the Kildar had better come through with
the money or he's going to find out how badly I can scratch these
days."
* * *
"Are we going to be okay?" Tanya asked when she got back
to the room.
"We'll be fine," Mikhail promised. "As long as you don't talk
about anything you do or are asked. Okay?"
"Yes," the girl answered.
"I'd like to go back to what we were doing," he added. "But
we'll have to wait until later. How long have you been in Club
Aldaris?"
"Three months," Tanya said. "Why?"
"Have you spent much time in the club?" Mikhail asked,
pulling out some sheets of paper.
"Yes," she replied. "All the girls spend time working in club.
Why?"
"Because I need to ask you some questions about it,"
Mikhail said, unrolling the sheets and pointing to a spot on the
floorplan. "What is this room used for?"
* * *
"There, you see?" Katya asked when she came back in the
room.
Tom was sitting on the bed, looking at Natalya who was
crouched in the corner, rocking.
"Is she okay?" Tom asked, nervously. "She came out of the
shower and seemed just fine. Then she screamed and she's been
over there ever since."
"Bad man," Natalya was muttering, appearing to draw on her
leg with her finger. "Bad man's going to come..."
"Some girls, they don't do well here," Katya said, carefully.
"I talk to her, I get her calm down. She still be very good to you."
"I like her," Tom said, his face twisted. "She seems
so...fragile. So do you, but not like her. I wish I could take both
of you away from here."
"It cannot happen," Katya said, sighing and approaching the
rocking girl. "Natalya?"
"Bad man is coming," the girl was singing to herself.
"Coming back for you..."
"Natalya," Katya said, sharply. "There's no bad man, here. Is
he the bad man?" she added, darting a glance at "Tom."
"No, not here," Natalya said, still drawing on her leg.
"Natalya, go suck on Tom," Katya ordered.
The girl quickly scurried across the bed and began opening
the doctor's fly.
"She was worried she hadn't been good enough for you,"
Katya said, letting out a sigh of relief that sounded very real
because it was. "That was all. She let it worry her too much. If
you don't do well enough for the pimps, well, they beat you and
other things."
"Oh," Tom said, shaking his head as the hooker began
fellating him. "I don't think I can...you know, right now."
"Maybe we get some schoolgirl outfits?" Katya asked.
"Some makeup? Am told can look very much like Britney
Spears... You want rape Britney?"
* * *
Chapter Thirty-Eight
"Kildar," Anastasia said, looking in the door. "Father
Kulcyanov wishes to see you."
"Send him in," Mike said, trying not to sigh and clearing the
screen on his computer. The operation had turned out to be
almost nightmarishly complex and making sure all the strands
were in place had become a day by day struggle. The last thing he
needed was to deal with the often long-winded Father
Kulcyanov.
It had ended up making more sense to move in stages. The
freighter didn't need much in the way of modification for the
mission so, since the one they'd hired had been in the western
Med when the deal was made, it had headed directly for Albanian
waters.
The helicopter company, Russkiya Heavy Lift, had often
operated in and around Macedonia and
Albania
, supplying implementation forces and
humanitarian operations. With a few words in the right ears,
getting permission for the helicopters to pick up a "oil rig relief
team" hadn't been hard.
The teams were, thus, to be flown into Hellenica airport,
board busses and drive to the Greek coast then be picked up by
the choppers and flown out to the freighter.
The biggest hassle had been getting the equipment to them.
This had required the services of another freighter and a mid-
ocean transfer managed by Chief Adams.
Pulling it all together had been a day by day struggle with
logistics while maintaining security. Vanner had ended up going
to Spain to arrange
the freighter, Chief Adams had put more pages into his passport
flying to Turkey and
Greece to ensure the
arms made it through and even Nielson had had to fly to Germany
for an updated intel brief. Carlson-Smith
had smoothed the way in
Greece
and turned up a rather respectable looking
fellow that knew an enormous amount about the safe industry.
He had turned out to be unwilling to actually put his life in
jeopardy, but he had determined the actual safe that the Albanians
had installed, it's location and carefully drilled some of the
Keldara women in the opening method.
And if it turned out to be the wrong safe, Mike was planning
on using the Chief's method and the hell with the contents.
Mike admitted that without the Chief and Nielson, not to
mention Carlson-Smith, he would have been lost. Hell, even
Daria had been doing dog work keeping up with all the
paperwork. She had a better ground-level feel for what was
where at any time than the rest of them.
This level of organization and support was so far beyond his
previous training he half the time had no clue what people were
talking about in the, frequent, meetings. But he doggedly asked
questions until he understood, came up with a series of
checkpoints and times for people to make and then ensured they
did. And Daria kept up with those without batting an eye.
Russell had turned out to be a keeper. The big former
Ranger had apparently soaked up everything the US Army had to
tell about airmobile operations and had drilled the Keldara
mercilessly. In less than a week he had every one of the teams
fully trained on everything from fast-rope work to sling-lift. They
wouldn't need the latter as far as Mike could tell, but it was nice
that they were trained.
If things slowed down for a while he might just get a plane
and start training them on parachute work. What the hell.
"Kildar, it is good to see you," Father Kulcyanov said,
entering the office at a dignified pace.
"And you, Father Kulcyanov," Mike said, pulling a chair
around to the coffee table in the office. "How are the crops?"
"They are well, Kildar," the Elder replied as Anastasia
directed one of the harem girls to lay out tea. "It is difficult with
the young men all engaged in preparing for the mission, but we
persevere. This mission is important to the Keldara and to you
and we are your followers."
"And the Family is well?" Mike asked picking up one of the
teacups and taking a sip.
"The Family is well," Father Kulcyanov said, sipping at the
tea and nodding. "Well. But to support you and yours through the
generations, we must increase, Kildar."
"I hope that all is well with the women?" Mike asked,
confused.
"All is well," Father Kulcyanov said, nodding sagely.
"Women are a trial, but we must have them to support the home,
yes?" He nodded at the girl who was still standing by in case the
Kildar needed anything.
"And support the militia," Mike pointed out. "The girls on
the mission were invaluable. The Keldara are amazing people."
"But to have more Keldara," Father Kulcyanov said, "we
must have marriages, Kildar."
"Oh," Mike said, shaking his head. "This is the Cardane
thing, isn't it? Thank you, Tanya, that will be all," Mike added,
gesturing with his chin for the girl to leave the room.
"The wedding is in only four weeks, Kildar," Father
Kulcyanov said, regally. "You will be gone for two of those, at
least..."
"And it's not a good idea to have the ceremony on the day
before the wedding, huh?" Mike said. "Father, we are very
busy..."
"We have secured the horses you requested," Father
Kulcyanov said, ignoring the argument. "All is prepared, Kildar.
When can you perform the Ritual of Cardane?"
"Given what we're working with, here, the whole ritual
makes me uncomfortable," Mike admitted. "But I think I can still
squeeze it in. Hang on."
He walked to the phone and hit the speakerphone.
"Nielson?"
"Here, Kildar," the colonel said. "I'm up to my eyeballs,
though..."
"When is a good day to close down the caravanserai for a
whole night?" Mike asked. "Don't say 'never.'"
"After the mission?" Nielson asked. "I mean, we move in
four days!"
"Not good enough," Mike said. "Give me a day. One night."
"Jesus, Mike," Nielson said but Mike could hear keys
tapping. "Tomorrow looks best. I'll have to shift my flag down to
the Keldara, though."
"Block out three hours in the evening for all the Keldara,"
Mike said. "And everybody in the caravanserai gets locked down.
If they have to come and go, they use the back door."
"Will do," Nielson said. "What's this about?"
"It's a Keldara thing," Mike said. "I'll get back to you." He
turned back to Father Kulcyanov and shrugged. "Tomorrow
night?"
"Very well, Kildar," the elder said. "We will be prepared."
"And while I enjoy talking to you," Mike said, holding out
his hand, "I am also up to my eyeballs in work. And now I must
finish it faster."
"I will go and ensure that Lidiya is prepared," Father
Kulcyanov said, nodding.
"I'm more worried about Oleg," Mike said after the door
was closed.
* * *
"Mr. Bezhmel?"
"Yes," the security specialist said, sitting down at the booth.
He'd gotten a call from someone he occasionally did business
with who had set up the meet in the
Moscow
hotel bar. No names as usual, which was just the way
that the business worked. "You have the need of special security
arrangements?"
"I have information that you need," the man, an American,
said in Russian. Then he smiled. "And a special security need.
You've been investigating the attacks on Rozaje and the Club
Dracul?"
"Perhaps," Bezhmel said, shrugging.
"It is known that you work with the Dejti clan," the man
replied, smiling still. "So I'll take that as a yes. You might be
interested to know that the next target is Lunari, probably the
Club Aldaris. Their mission is to extract this girl," the man
added, sliding a picture across the table. "Her name is Natalia.
And possibly to capture the DVDs from the Rozaje villa. This
wouldn't be good, would it?"
"No," Bezhmel said, frowning. "Why are you telling me
this?"
"Because I'm your friend," the man replied, then laughed
quietly and shook his head. "God, I crack myself up. No, the
reason that I'm telling you is that I need this girl killed before
they get their hands on her. And this man..." he added, sliding
another picture across the table along with a thick envelope. "No
idea what name he'll be using but he'll be near Natalia. There is
thirty thousand euros in there. If you kill both, there is another
sixty thousand that will be forwarded to you. If you kill only one,
that is your pay. If you kill neither...I'll expect a full refund. There
are other security specialists in the world."
Chapter Thirty-Nine
Mike looked in the mirror and grimaced.
"I'm not sure about this," he said, shooting his cuffs lace
cuffs nervously.
Mike still wasn't sure about the whole "Cardane" thing. For
one thing, he had a very hard time wrapping his head
around Oleg being comfortable with it. But since he'd agreed, he
decided that it needed to be right.
Part of that was setting the mood. He could, of course,
simply pick up Lidiya in the Expedition, drive up to the
caravanserai, have a good old time and then dump her back at her
house. That, however, had far too "casual" a feel for what was an
intensely important event. One point that
Adams, of all people, had brought up
was that the Right of Cardane was a form of bonding between the
Kildar and the Keldara; the Keldara, effectively, provided a
maiden sacrifice and the Kildar, presumably, responded by being
more closely bonded to the Keldara.
The Right also provided genetic input. Natasha had done
some digging and found old records of the Kildars dating back to
the Middle Ages. Each of them had been "foreign" soldiers-of-
fortune of one race or another, Kurd, Greek, German, French and
even British. Each of them had attained the position by being
superior fighters and commanders. So if Nature had anything to
do with culture, the "genetic input" of the Kildars, through the
Right of Cardane, had added to the warrior component of the
Keldara, bit by bit over the years.
But he still wasn't sure about his outfit.
"I am," Natasha replied, smiling. "If you're going to do
something, do it right..."
"...Or don't do it at all," Mike said, sighing.
According to the Keldara Elders, the Right of Cardane
hadn't been practiced since the time of the Tzars. And the last
"true" Kildar had been a German mercenary who had started off
as an advisor to the Tzarist Army and eventually worked his way
into the nobility and been deeded with the Keldara.
Natasha, traditionalist to the core, had pointed out that it
would only be fitting to dress in a traditional, and formal, manner
for the occasion. And she, again, had done the research.
Which was why Mike was dressed in a dark-green, short-
waisted velvet coat and a white silk ruffled shirt with matching,
very tight, dark-green trousers. The knee-high riding boots
completed the ensemble.
"I feel like I ought to have a cap and ball pistol tucked in my
waist," Mike said, fiddling with the the lace at his collar. "You
set?"
"Very much so," Natasha replied, straightening out the lace.
"By the time you get back, I'll have gotten dressed and be gone.
Speaking of which, it's just about sunset."
"Right," Mike replied, pulling his jacket down to smooth
out the wrinkles.
"Time to go."
* * *
Petro held open the front door of the caravanserai as Mike
strode through. Mike, despite trying to remain serious about
what was, after all, a very serious event, could not help but play
the bars from "Pomp and Circumstance" in his head as he strode
down the stairs.
Uncle Latif was holding the gelding by the mounting stand.
Genadi had done a good job there. The gelding was an Orlov-
Rostchopin "Russian Riding Horse", a breed dating back to 1845
and the premier riding horse of the Tzarist court. Flat black and
about seventeen hands high, the beautifully proportioned gelding
was trained for both dressage and "pleasure riding." According to
Genadi, who it turned out had practiced in dressage at the
University, he was both an easy ride and quite biddable with "a
very smooth gait". The black leather saddle, with silver
accoutrements, was almost invisible on the glossy horse's back.
Mike, however, looked at the horse in trepidation. He hadn't
ridden in years. He'd intended to get some refreshers in
riding before he did this, but the current mission had taken up
virtually all of his time.
There was a smaller mare behind the gelding, a lead line
running from her halter to the saddle of the gelding. The mare
was a less common Braz Curly, a Russian warmblood that was a
descendant of cavalry horses. "Gray" in horse terms, the mare
was a beautiful, almost perfect, white
and the curly mane had been plated with red ribbons.
Despite being a warhorse descendant, the 14 hand mare was so
placid as to appear drugged.
The toughest part of the whole operation had turned out to
be finding the side-saddle. Two had eventually been ordered from
a company in Germany
, a severely plain "training" saddle for
Lidiya and a much more ornate one for the night of the
ceremony.
Mike looked the two horses over for a moment and then,
realizing he was stalling, stepped up on the mounting stone,
stuck his boot into stirrup, which was being held by Petro, and
mounted.
The saddle didn't budge. Then again, neither did the horse.
No sidling, no shifting. It was like mounting a warm, furry, rock.
Uncle Latif wordlessly handed him the reins and then stood
back.
"Good night, Kildar," the Keldara said, bowing.
"Good night, Latif," Mike replied, settling in the seat. One
thing that he did recall was that a horse wanted to know that the
rider knew what he was doing. He took the reins in his left hand,
gripped between two fingers and his thumb and slowly released
pressure, giving a slight "click" with his tongue and a grip of the
knees.
The gelding automatically started walking, the mare
following placidly, and Mike, just to be sure, walked them
around the courtyard as the two Keldara walked back into the
caravanserai. He'd been clear that he did not want anyone
seeing him trying out the horse.
The velvet pants had a patch of suede on the butt and crotch
and the first thing he noticed was that the patch made for a very
firm seat. He'd always ridden in jeans before, which tended to
slide a bit, and he found this a much more reassuring ride. The
horse was also responsive but not overly so. One circuit around
the courtyard was enough to give him the surety to head down.
Actually, he sort of liked the outfit. Deep in Mike's scarred
soul there was a peacock he vigorously suppressed; his normal
mode of dress was jeans or shorts, depending on weather, and a t-
shirt. For one thing, he really didn't feel he had the panache to
carry off nice clothes. But when he had the chance to show off,
he liked to. Hell, he even liked dress whites which was something
of a heresy among SEALs. He was pretty sure that didn't make
him gay; he'd never had any interest in guys. But he was also sure
that it wasn't something he was going to admit to
Adams.
There was no choice but to walk down the switchbacks; a
canter would have been impossible at the corners and a trot was,
for the time being, out of the question. Besides, it was simply
safer for the horses to walk down a slope. So, despite the fact
that he was running behind schedule he carefully walked down to
the road and then, as he reached the relative flats, broke into a
trot then a canter.
The gelding had an excellent canter, long, smooth and fast.
However, looking back, he noticed that the mare was up at a
gallop. Next time he needed better matched horses. Lidiya had
been riding, though. He'd have to ask her if she was comfortable
with a gallop on the way back.
As he pulled to a halt by the Makanee compound, the door
was opened by Mother Makanee, the senior lady of the Family.
Mike drew a little comfort from the fact that she had a sober but
not unhappy expression on her face.
One of the younger Keldara females was outside, waiting,
and she took Mike's reins as the Kildar dismounted. Mike had
insisted that the minimum necessary males be included in the
ceremony. Mike straightened his jacket again and then marched
over to the door, pausing at the entrance.
"I request the privilege of entering the home of the
Makanee," Mike said, pausing.
"This roof is yours, Kildar," Father Makanee replied from
within. "These walls are yours. This home is yours to enter."
Mike nodded, secretly sighing in relief; everybody was
remembering their lines.
Mike walked in and looked around. The main room of the
Keldara houses was usually packed with people; there was a bit
of housing shortage among the Keldara that he kept meaning to
rectify. However, at the moment the only persons present were
Mother and Father Makanee, Father Jusev, the Orthodox priest
from town, and Lidiya.
The latter was wearing a white, silk dress edged in seed
pearls that looked not at all like most wedding dresses. It was cut
down the front to reveal a rather startling amount of cleavage,
stopped well above the knees and was form-hugging all over. She
also was wearing a pair of white high-heels. Normally, riding in
high-heels was damned near impossible, but side-saddle it was
much simpler. The outfit was, by Keldara standards, scandalous.
One of the reasons that nobody else was present.
The girl was looking nervous but had the presence not to tug
at the outfit as she awaited her lines.
"I am come to take my rights as the Kildar," Mike said,
sternly, looking Father Makanee in the eye.
"The right of the Kildar is acknowleged by the Keldara and
the Family Makanee," the Elder replied, nodding. "The Kildar is
reminded of his duty to the future family."
"I acknowledge my duty," Mike said, turning to Father
Jusev, the priest. "I have come to take my rights as the Kildar."
"The right of the Kildar is acknowledged by the church," the
priest said, nervously. The fact was that the Orthodox church
acknowledged no such thing. But Mike, despite the fact that he
never attended, was the local parish's single largest contributor.
Father Jusev was also aware that the Keldara weren't exactly
Christian. Between the two facts, he wasn't about to stand in the
way of the Right of Cardane. "The Kildar is reminded of his duty
of teaching," the priest added, swallowing nervously.
"I acknowledge my duty," Mike said, turning to Mother
Makanee. "I come to take my rights as Kildar." His tone in this
case was much less stern, intentionally.
"The right of the Kildar is acknowledged by the women of
the Keldara," Mother Makanee said, smiling slightly. She was the
only one that apparently found the ceremony humorous. "The
Kildar is reminded of his duty of gentleness."
"I acknowledge my duty," Mike said, gently, then turned to
Lidiya, dropping to one knee and bowing his head. "My lady, I am
come to crave a boon of you, one night of gentleness. May I have
my time as is my right?"
"You may, Kildar," Lidiya replied, nervously. "May you
remember your duties in all things."
"I shall," Mike said, standing up and taking her hand. "I shall
return with this daughter of the Keldara when the sun rises," he
said, looking at the three. "I shall render my duty as tradition fits
and no shame is had in this Right."
"No shame, only duty," Father Makanee said.
"No shame, only duty," the priest intoned.
"No shame," Mother Makanee said, winking, "only
pleasure."
Now that was off the script.
Lidiya blushed scarlet but followed Mike out of the room.
The Keldara girl was still holding the horses when Mike
came out. She had unclipped the lead-line and held both sets of
reins. Mike first helped Lidiya into the side-saddle, not that she
needed much help, then mounted and took the reins.
"Have fun," the girl said to Lidiya, giggling, then ran around
the side of the house.
* * *
Mike kept it down to a light canter up to the flats then Lidiya
kicked her horse into a gallop and hit the first switchback at a
run.
The gelding snorted and took off after the mare and Mike,
working hard to keep his seat, gave the horse his head. However,
when he drew up behind Lidiya's mare, he reined back slightly,
letting the mare set the pace.
After the first turn, which they took faster than Mike liked,
the mare began to struggle and Lidiya let her slow to a trot then a
walk.
"That was fun," Lidiya said, smiling over at him.
"Had you ridden before you started training?" Mike asked.
"Just some bareback on the plow-horses," Lidiya said,
shrugging. "Not like this," she added, gesturing at the side-saddle.
"Well, you've got a good seat," Mike said, smiling. "A better
one than I do, to tell the truth."
"But you've got the better horse," Lidiya said, grinning back.
Two of the girls from the harem were waiting when they
reached the courtyard, both in "traditional" harem dress,
including veils. They silently took the reins as first Mike then
Lidiya, with Mike's hand in assistance, dismounted. Then they
just as silently led the horses around to the stables.
"Are you okay?" Mike asked as they stood in front of the
doors of the caravanserai.
"Yes," Lidiya said, distantly then turned to look at him. "I
will admit that I am even eager." But her eyes had a shuttered
look.
"But?" Mike asked.
"I worry about Oleg," Lidiya admitted, turning back to the
open doors. "Not for the long term, but for tonight."
"So did I," Mike said, taking her arm and stepping towards
the door.
"Did?" Lidiya asked.
"Oleg is...taken care of."
* * *
"Have another beer, Oleg," Sawn said, shaking his head.
"And tell me what's been happening while we were gone."
"Nothing much," Oleg said, taking the mug from the team-
leader and looking at it. "Training and more training."
"We'll need it soon enough," Padrek said, spitting through
his teeth into the fire. "I've heard McKenzie muttering about this
mission."
The team leaders were gathered around their own bonfire,
taking a night off from training. Ostensibly it was a break so the
teams didn't get too worn down before the mission. But
everybody knew what the real point was; get Oleg good and
drunk. The young man was superficially prepared for temporarily
losing "his" girl to the Kildar, but it had to hurt.
"Hairy," Vil said, nodding. "But we'll get it done."
"To getting it done," Sawn said, raising his mug. "Hammer
it, Oleg."
"I'm fine," Oleg said, sighing. "Just fine."
"You won't be if you br..." Vil started to say as there was a
jingle of bells from the darkness beyond the fire.
All six team leaders looked towards the sound and then their
eyes widened.
The woman, whoever she was, was wearing a blue harem
girl's dress, transparent pantaloons, bikini panties and a blue
midriff top. Lining every hem were small bells and more were on
her fingers and toes.
The apparition danced sinuously into the firelight until she
was sure she had the full attention of the group and then began to
dance.
Somewhere in the darkness, a drum was being played, a beat
that matched the human heart as the women sinuously glided in
front of the fire until she was opposite Oleg. Spinning, bending
and writhing she appeared to dance only for him to the beat of the
drum, until it abruptly stopped.
"The Kildar feared that you would be lonely this night," the
woman said, huskily. "He has sent me for your pleasure and to
teach you the arts of pleasuring a woman. I am for you this night,
a proxy for your bride to be. Do you approve?" she chuckled,
kneeling down before him gracefully.
Sawn looked at his friend who was sitting on the log with
his mouth open.
"I think he does," Sawn said, grinning. "But you might have
to give him a hand."
"Then I will," Natasha said, taking Oleg's hand and pulling
him to his feet. "Gentlemen, I will return him in the morning."
"Alive?" Vil asked.
The chuckles followed the pair back into the darkness.
* * *
Mike led Lidiya upstairs to his private suite of rooms. As
they climbed the stairs he could tell she was getting more and
more nervous and he noted, with almost a chuckle, her surprise
and shock when she was led to the kitchen.
"What, I'm supposed to cook, too?" Lidiya asked, when she
saw the food laid out on the counters and the pan on the stove.
"Not at all," Mike said, seating her on a barstool where she
could watch the proceedings. There were two places already set
at the bar along with an unlit candle and flowers. He pulled a
champagne bottle, one of three, out a large bucket filled with ice
and water and uncorked it. "You get to watch." He poured two
glasses of the champagne and handed one to her. "Cheers."
"You can cook?" Lidiya asked, surprised. "I don't mean..."
"Keldara men can't cook very much," Mike admitted, going
over to the stove and taking down an apron. "But I learned to a
long time ago. Lidiya, we both know what this night is all about.
But...hmm..." He took a sip of the champagne, tied on the apron
and then poured some olive oil in the pan, working it around and
then turning on the heat.
"In the US
, we have a custom called 'dating,'" Mike
continued, tossing precoated slivers of beef into the saucier pan.
The sides were rounded and hammered so he could use it as a
wok. "It's also a custom in about all big cities. Now, you're a
country gal. The only people you know are the people of the
Keldara and a few townspeople. But in the cities, girls don't
know the men around them, generally, from birth. And the guys
don't know the girls. So they have to meet somehow."
"I guess," Lidiya said, crossing her legs and taking a sip of
the champagne then looking at the glass. "What is this?"
"Champagne
," Mike said, not looking at her as he smiled.
"Sparkling wine."
"It's good," Lidiya said, taking another sip.
"Have more," Mike replied. "Anyway, where I come from, a
guy meets a girl, however, and generally asks her out on a date to
test the waters. They have dinner, maybe see a show and then, if
the chemistry is right, maybe more. The bottomline from a guy's
point-of-view is the 'maybe more'..."
"So I'd heard," Lidiya said, pointedly.
Mike turned to look at her and grinned.
"Different strokes," Mike said, shrugging then getting back
to cooking. "In the States, reasonably casual sex isn't that big of a
deal. Different cultures and, trust me, I don't treat this evening
casually. But the point is, when I was dating I was interested in
getting the young lady interested enough to really test the
waters."
"Were they?" Lidiya asked, interested. "This wine is good, by
the way. Dry."
"Makes you want to drink more," Mike said, looking over
his shoulder again. "Go ahead. With the way that you Keldara
drink, you're going to have a high tolerance. Anyway, to answer
your question, a few. Okay, more than a few. But being a
good date is the important point. There's a saying in the US
: 'The way to a man's heart is through his
stomach.'"
"We say something similar," Lidiya said, giggling. " 'Food
makes the softer bed.'"
"Well, what I found out," Mike continued, slooshing some
wine into the vegetable mix and setting a cover on it, "is that it's
really the way to a woman's heart. Most men can't do
much more than grill. So, instead of inviting a young lady out to
an expensive restaurant, where you'd then have several other
steps to getting to the point, I'd invite her to my place for
dinner."
"I'd have said 'take me to the restaurant,'" Lidiya said, then
giggled again.
"Ah, but that's because you're a good girl," Mike said,
looking at her and grinning. "I was very careful to only date nice
girls. Do you know the difference between a good girl and a nice
girl?"
"No?" Lidiya said, pouring her third glass of champagne.
Part of the requirements that Mike had laid down was, since there
would be dinner involved, she hadn't eaten since lunch. The
champagne also had more of a kick than she realized. He didn't
want her to get drunk, but alcohol would tend to reduce her
tension and that was a good thing.
"A good girl goes to a party, goes home and goes to bed,"
Mike said, turning back to the stove. "A nice girl goes to a party,
goes to bed and goes home."
"That's terrible," Lidiya said, laughing.
"Anyway, I'd invite a nice girl over," Mike said, stirring the
vegetables then adding some oyster sauce. The latter had turned
out to be nearly impossible to obtain and he'd resorted to making
it from scratch. However, he'd tried the recipe out in advance and
the homemade worked fine. "Then I'd cook for her and wine and
dine her, maybe watch a movie on video, and when it came time
to close the deal, voila! There we were already in my apartment.
No 'your place or mine', no 'would you care for a cup of coffee'."
"Sneaky," Lidiya said.
"If you ain't cheatin', you ain't tryin'," Mike intoned.
"And if you get caught, you ain't a SEAL," Lidiya finished,
giggling. "So I should expect sneaky?"
"Up to you," Mike said, transferring the Chinese beef and
vegetables from the pan into a serving dish. "But let's just have
dinner, shall we?"
He'd already had rice prepared and he brought that out as
well, setting it down at the bar. Then he shifted her over to her
place, carefully holding her chair out and pushing it back in. The
last step was to light the candle and turn out a couple of lights.
"This is interesting," Lidiya said, looking at the food
dubiously.
"I think you'll find it edible," Mike said.
Lidiya picked out a bit of meat to start and then, with a look
of surprise, took more.
As they ate they chatted about conditions among the Keldara
and the condition of the farm. Every time that they got near
touchy subjects, Mike carefully steered them away. He didn't
want to talk about the previous mission, or upcoming ones, or
where he was going with the Keldara. Light and easy was the
tone of the evening. And he made sure he kept the champagne
glass topped up.
As for sneaky, she'd missed the first "cheat." Mike had been
careful to keep the wineglasses separated by at least an arm's-
length. That was because her glass was at least 25% larger than
his. Even if he matched her glass for glass, she was getting far
more wine. And it was showing. The alcohol, and food, was
making her less nervous as time went by.
"This is fun," Lidiya said, sighing and setting down her fork.
She'd eaten lightly, which was good. "There should be more
things in life like this. But there is always too much work."
"That will get better," Mike said, wiping his mouth with his
napkin. "You'd be surprised how much better. Dessert?"
Lidiya had also never been exposed to chocolate cake.
Certainly not the deep, rich chocolate fudge cake Mike brought
out.
"Better to eat this by the fire," he said, grinning. "Bring your
glass; there's more champagne out there."
He led the way to the parlor area, where a fire had been laid,
and set the plates and his glass down then flopped on the couch.
The centerpiece of the coffee table was a heaping bowl of
strawberries.
"This is nice, too," Lidiya said, grinning happily and sitting
down next to him. "I was thinking that you'd just...you know..."
"Nah," Mike said. "The idea here is to have fun. You can't
have fun if you're worried sick about what's going to happen.
And you shouldn't be. It's important, don't get me wrong. But it's
also something natural and very fun. If it's done right and I've
rarely had complaints."
"I talked with Mother Savina about...it," Lidiya said,
nervously, her grin fading. "And Natasha. I'm...it seems..."
"There is no way to describe it," Mike said, getting a bite of
cake on his fork and holding it out to her. "Try the cake."
"That's good," Lidiya said, her eyes wide.
"Alas, this I didn't do," Mike said, picking up a strawberry
and offering it to her. "I don't bake well."
"You do other things well," Lidiya said, taking a delicate
bite of the strawberry while holding his eye.
"So do you," Mike said, for the first time in the evening
actually getting horney. He'd been working the situation so hard
he had forgotten to have fun.
She offered him a strawberry and he bit into it carefully then
got in a quick lick on her fingers that elicited another giggle.
They traded strawberries like that for a little longer and then
Lidiya, unexpectedly, took one in her teeth and leaned forward.
Mike took the bait, biting off his end of the strawberry and
then following it up with a kiss, flickering his tongue against her
lips. Whether Lidiya had ever had sex or not, it was clear that she
had been, as his mother used to put it, "spooning." She had no
problem with kissing whatsoever.
However, when Mike's hand crept up her leg, she tensed for
a moment, then went back to the kiss. He slid his hand up the
back of her leg, checking with his other hand on her arm.
Goosebumps were always an indicator that a girl was getting
turned on by caresses and she had plenty.
"Kildar," the girl said, huskily, drawing away and wiping at
her lips. "I want... I think..."
"Don't think," Mike said, smiling. He took her hand and had
her stand up. "But, yes, time to progress. Lidiya, take off your
dress."
The girl stood there for a moment and then, closing her eyes,
lifted the dress up and over her head. It had a built-in bra so all
she was wearing once she'd doffed it was her heels, panties, a
garter belt and stockings.
"You are very beautiful," Mike said, taking a pillow off the
couch and tossing it on the floor. "So, we progress. But before
we get to other things, there is one thing that I require."
He stood up and cupped her breast, eliciting a shiver. She
still had her eyes closed which made him almost chuckle.
"What do you...need?" Lidiya asked, opening her eyes.
"There is a very old saying," Mike replied, pressing down on
her shoulders so she knelt on the pillow. " 'Stand before your
god, bow before your king and kneel before your man.'"
"I was told about this," Lidiya said, looking up at him. "But I
have never..."
"I know," Mike said, unzipping his pants. "Later I will show
you other things. But this I require. Later, I'll tell you why."
"Very well," Lidiya said, softly, looking down. "I...would
like to."
"And you will take it all in your mouth," Mike continued.
He wasn't right up on her, but back a bit. "I take it you haven't
seen a man undressed."
"No," Lidiya said, uncertainly. "They told me about
it."
"Your turn," Mike said, stepping forward.
Lidiya cautiously unzipped his pants and then slowly pulled
them down, an act that caused Mike to almost lose it. He stayed
calm, though, while she considered...him.
Lidiya cautiously held out one hand and touched him, tilting
her head to the side to consider.
"It is bigger than I thought," Lidiya said, nervously.
"And, frankly, Oleg is bigger than I am," Mike said.
"Anastasia discussed what to do?"
"Yes," Lidiya said, biting her lip and wrapping her thumb
and forefinger around the base of his dick. Then she shifted
forward on the pillow and took him in her mouth.
She had a bit of trouble getting the rhythm of hand and
mouth together at first, but she quickly caught on.
Mike took her hair in his hand and sped her up. Again she
got out of rhythm but soon got the feel for it, speeding up quite a
bit.
Mike knew, though, that her neck muscles wouldn't hold out
for long. However, being fellated by a delicious blonde virgin on
her knees was more than enough for him. He quickly came into
her mouth.
She stopped and gagged at that but he grabbed her hair and
held her in place, pumping in and out to get the last drop.
"Catch it in your mouth and swallow," Mike said, gruffly.
"Yes, Kildar," Lidiya said, after she'd swallowed.
"And now," Mike said, picking up her champagne glass and
pulling his pants back up, "have a drink of champagne. It helps
with the taste."
"It...wasn't bad," Lidiya said, her brow wrinkling. She still
swilled the champagne around.
"Orange juice," Mike said, picking up his own glass and
having a sip. "It does something to the chemistry." He knelt down
and kissed her. "Thank you."
"You're welcome," Lidiya said, frowning.
"Now for the rest," Mike said, lifing her up to her feet and
then into his arms. "You'll be fine," he added at the look on her
face.
"I know I will be," Lidiya said, still nervous.
"Keep ahold of that glass," Mike added, chuckling.
"I will," Lidiya replied, smiling and then finishing off the
champagne in it.
He carried her into the bedroom and laid her on the bed,
sitting down next to her and picking a strawberry from the bowl
by the bed.
"Strawberry?" Mike asked, grinning.
They played the strawberry game again, until she was
smiling again. During it Mike had managed to get rid of the
boots, pants and shirt, sometimes with help.
Finally they were both more or less naked. Lydia
still had her panties and shoes on but Mike
was starkers. Lydia
was starting to show some signs of
nervousness, among other things trying to cover her lovely
breasts, so Mike decided to take a detour.
"Roll over," he said, giving her a slap on the side and a
smile.
"Why?" Lydia
said, nervously.
"You'll like it, trust me," Mike said, more or less pushing
her over.
When he had her on her stomach he opened up a jar and
smoothed some of the massage cream into her back. The cream
was a mixture of almond cream with a bit of sesame oil, a trick
that a former girlfriend who was a masseuse had taught him.
She'd also taught him the proper way to give a massage so he
started working Lydia
's muscles with strong strokes from his
thumbs, rolling them along the grain of the muscle in the girl's
back.
"That feels good," Lydia
sighed.
"Better if we had a massage table," Mike said, continuing to
massage the girl's back and neck then working downwards.
The massage, unfortunately, was counteracting the earlier
blowjob. The point of that, besides Mike just enjoying it,
was to let him blow off some steam. But
Lydia
had a truly gorgeous butt, rounded and
firm, and while Mike wasn't planning on going for any back-door
action, it was tempting as hell.
He massaged down her back and onto her ass, sliding her
panties off in the process, then down the legs to her calves. Then
he worked back up until he was up between her thighs and slid
his fingers into her pussy. That elicited another surprised gasp,
but she was also wet which was a very good sign so Mike rolled
her quickly back over and pulled her head back by the hair.
He slid his tongue down the side of it to the juncture of her
neck and shoulder, digging into that tender nerve point strongly
and eliciting a moan. More goosebumps had built up on her arm
which was a good sign. The idea at this point was simply to keep
her mind off of anything other than the moment. If she started to
stiffen up it was because she was thinking about secondary
concerns; what Oleg would think, what her family would think,
the Keldara. He had to keep her mind centered on what was
happening to the exclusion of everything else. And that meant
keeping up the stimulae so she couldn't think of anything
else.
While he continued to stroke at her neck with his tongue, his
right hand was busy, first playing with her nipples, which seemed
particularly sensitive, then sliding down her side, eliciting a
giggle at one point. Ticklishness was another good sign. It
showed she had a degree of sexual nervousness that was on the
good side. Girls who had virtually no tickle reaction were
generally either asexual or just not into sex, period. That would
make this evening rather trying. But Lydia
had always had a natural sexiness that
had to have some depth to it.
Finally his hand had crept back down to the bottom of her
stomach and he slid his fingers between her legs. They tightened
for a moment as she half struggled to get away then parted as his
fingers did their magic. Some women got off on having their clit
played with while others preferred penetration. From Lydia
's reactions she was more of a penetration
gal, so Mike slid his fingers in carefully, rubbing them along the
clit as he did so.
He'd moved his mouth down to her breasts and the nipples
were definitely an erogenous zone on Lydia
. The combination of stroking and playing
with her nipples had the girl writhing and panting.
The question at this point couldn't really be answered. Some
women wouldn't orgasm without penetration while others rarely
did with penetration. Without having experience with
Lydia
he wasn't sure which she would be. But
the question was answered a moment later as the girl gasped and
arched in a hard orgasm.
While she was still arching Mike quickly slid over and
spread her, entering her quickly but as gently as he could. He
could tell from the grimace on her face when the hymen was
broken but he didn't relent, beginning to drive hard into her.
Lydia
was clearly up for that, as her fingers dug
into his ass and pulled him in, hard, as he stroked. Her eyes were
closed and she was panting hard as he varied the rhythm, never
letting her get bored with the action. She came again in less than
a minute then again almost immediately after with a scream of
pain and pleasure.
The last orgasm was hard enough that Mike knew he had to
stop for a second anyway. As he paused she opened her eyes and
shook her head.
"I never knew..." the girl whispered.
"It's impossible to know," Mike said, kissing her on the
forehead. "But I'm not done, yet." He paused for a moment and
then grinned, evilly. "I think that's enough of a rest."
"Oh...All Mother," Lydia
whispered as he started again.
"Oh...Gods..."
* * *
Lydia
paused as she pulled the horse into the
compound, biting her lip nervously. There weren't many choices.
She could probably turn around and ride back to the Kildar and
beg him to take her as one of his women. And there
were...attractions to that. Attractions that worked hard against the
fear of shame from the night before.
But, then, there was Oleg. They had been friends as children
and even before they were betrothed she knew that she loved him.
She would always love him, no matter what. And he had
promised that he would not hold this night against her.
She finally loosened the reins on the gentle mare and let her
continue into the yard, pulling to a stop not far from the front
door. It was early for most people but she was surprised by the
lack of activity around the house; it almost looked deserted.
However, as she stopped the front door opened and Mother
Makanee came out with one of
Lydia
's female cousins, Nastya. Nastya held the
reins as Mother helped Lydia
down.
Mother Makanee's face was a picture. It was clear that she
was glad that her daughter had returned, apparently unharmed.
But that was combined with discomfort over the reason she had
been out all night and curiosity at what the large leather satchel
attached to her saddle contained. The case was tooled and formed
leather with bright silverwork around the edges and it was heavy
as Lydia
undid the ties that held it to the saddle.
"Come in," she said, finally, leading the daughter into the
main room of the house.
The first thing that Lydia
noticed was that with the exception of
Father Makanee, who was also trying to keep a welcoming
demeanor, the only persons in the room were women. Most of
them, furthermore, were Lydia
's friends and peers, girls of her own age, a
few married most unmarried. She was secretly glad that Gran
Mak, Grandmother Makanee, wasn't in the room. The old fart had
been going around for weeks with pursed lips and an angry look
for the whole Rite, despite the fact that she was usually the first
one to proclaim the superiority of anything old.
"Welcome home, Lydia
," Father Makanee said, bowing to her
slightly. "We welcome you once more to our fold."
The words had that suspiciously formal wording that
sounded like the Kildar had written them. And made Father
Makanee rehearse.
"I'm glad to be home," she said, nervously, looking around
at the group.
"Oh, bother with this!" Nastya finally snapped. "I want to
know what is in the package! What is it?"
"I don't know, honestly,"
Lydia
said, setting the suspiciously heavy leather
case down on the kitchen table. "The Kildar told me not to open
it until I got home. And he said we have to send the horse back,
but the case is mine to keep."
"So what's in it?" Nastya asked, impatiently. "Open it."
"Don't rush her," Mother Makanee snapped, but she was
clearly curious as well.
Lydia
broke the wax seal on the case then
opened it. Within there were three more packages, one a blue
silken wrap, one a soft suede purse that clinked and the last
another silken package, tied with a silken cord, that was more or
less rectangular.
Lydia
opened the leather purse, first, dumping it
out on the table.
What spilled from it was a waterfall of silver and gold coins
that made everyone's eyes go wide. There was more money on the
table than the entire Keldara made in a year.
"What's in the rest?" Nastya said in a choked voice.
The rectangular package turned out to be cash, Georgian
rubles tied around a thick stack of American hundred dollar bills.
Lydia
didn't want to think about how many
dollars there were there, and dollars were much more stable than
rubles, but the rubles had been fanned out so that it was clear
there were five one hundred ruble notes. She snorted when she
saw that. That was her official "price."
Lydia
quickly undid the red ties from the blue
silken roll and opened it. It turned out to be a jewelry wrap,
containing a pearl necklace along with matching earrings and a
bracelet. Contained within was a small note saying only "For
your wedding."
"Oh, All Father," Nastya whispered. "I so want to be
the Cardane Bride! Can we start making the arrangements now?!"
Chapter Forty
Mike clambered up the floating platform and onto the deck
of the freighter, looking around cautiously. The sky was overcast
but according to the weather reports it didn't presage bad
weather.
Mike had ended up having to fly to
Italy
to clear up some diplomatic issues related
to the photo that Carlson-Smith had carried. The very polite
Italian intel chief they'd ended up doing most of the talking with
was interested in what else might be in the trove. When told,
politely, to fuck off, he'd pointed out that they needed the Italian
acquiescense if they wanted to have the op go off. Otherwise,
alas, an Italian coast guard cutter might just happen to be in the
area.
So Mike had simply started listing some of the known
quantities, avoiding names or other descriptions but listing the
general levels associated with them. At which point the Italian
government had, quietly, shit its pants.
Mike ended up in a five minute, very friendly, conversation
with the Prime Minister, who had, as it turned out, had a rather
longer conversation with the President. After which all the
problems miraculously disappeared.
However, it had made him miss the choppers. Which was
why he'd gone down to the docks near Brundisi and bought an
offshore yacht. It had been a long time since he'd been on one of
the larger and more powerful versions of a cigarette boat and
he'd missed the feel of raw power. With nothing to do but get to
the freighter in time it was the best time he'd had in months,
including the sex.
But that pleasant idyll was over and as he stepped onto the
deck he felt the mantle of command descend on his shoulders
like a heavy cloak. Very heavy. Lead filled. Keldara were going
to die on this op. He had to wonder if the damned thing was
really worth it.
"Where we at?" Mike asked as the Chief, followed by Daria,
strode over.
"Troops are loading," Adams
replied, waving at the groups of Keldara lined up to board the
choppers. "All the secondary gear is onboard. The teams are
dialed in. All we were really waiting on is you."
"I told you I'd be on time," Mike said as Daria waved two
Keldara forward with his gear.
He stripped right on the cold deck, sitting on a coiled cable
to pull on his pants. As he did he mused that this was a long way
from his evening with Lidiya. Who was, as a matter of fact, was
already in Lunari at this very moment, much closer to harms way
than he was. Not a good thought, all things considered.
"Vanner and the intel group is in place," Adams
continued. "And the recon of the rally point is
complete. So far it looks clear."
"We getting any take from Katya?" Mike asked.
"Lots," Adams grunted. "From what
Vanner said her reception was not fun."
"As long as she lives long enough to give us a layout and
location of the target, that's all that counts," Mike said.
"Things have since gotten better," Adams said. "She has a sugar daddy that's keeping her from
getting bounced around too much and she's located the primary.
She and the primary are keeping the sugar daddy happy, thereby
securing the primary and getting a look at the club. She hasn't
gotten much intel on layout of the club, but Vanner also picked
up another source. That source has been a goldmine."
"Is he sure about the source?" Mike asked.
"What Katya has been able to confirm has all played out,"
Adams said. "The source looks genuine.
Mikhail, the security team leader, has hooked up with one of the
same pimp's hookers. She's seen more of the club than Katya and
has filled in all the little blanks. We even know where the
computer room is."
"Excellent," Mike said, standing up. One of the Keldara
lifted his ammo harness into place and another handed him his
SPR. "I'd say we're go."
"Agreed," Adams said.
"Gimme the maps and lets get this show on the road."
* * *
Katya listened to the music and tried not to ask what time it
was.
Since the second day with her sugar-daddy, they had mostly
stayed at the club; the American neurosurgeon seemed to enjoy
the atmosphere. Club Aldaris was like most such facilities in the
world. There was a ground floor bar where the customers hung
out and were propositioned by girls wandering the floor. In the
center was the bar itself and on the back wall were three dance
stages where the girls showed off their stuff.
Reception had been spotty all along. The combination of the
thick ferroconcrete walls and the background noise had interfered
with audio and the video had been bad as well. So she also
couldn't ask Vanner what the time was. It was time and past time
to get out of the club and get ready to extract. But "Tom" was in
the back with another girl.
She looked up as a man walked over to the table and looked
them both over. He payed particular attention to Natalya, though,
who was drawing on the table using condensation from the
glasses.
"Come on, girl," the man said, reaching down and pulling at
Natalya's arm. "I'm in need of some fun."
"Sir," Katya said, getting up and holding up her hand. "We
are with another man. You should ask for someone else."
She glanced at Natalya who was frozen in her chair, looking
at the man like a mouse looking at a snake.
"I just want this one little whore," the man said, dragging the
frozen Natalya to her feet.
"Hey, buddy," Tom said, walking up behind the man and
tapping him on the shoulder. "These are my girls."
"What, you own them?" the man scoffed.
"He's the bad man," Natalya said, so quietly it was hard to
hear over the music. "He's come for me."
"Yeah, I rented them for the day," Tom said, angrily. He'd
been drinking steadily all evening and Katya was pretty sure he
had to be drunk. "I bought 'em, they're mine. So take your hands
off of her."
"I want this one," the man holding Natalya said, reaching
into his pocket. "I'll pay you for her."
"Wait," one of the guards in the club said, walking over. "Is
no fighting."
"I don't want your damned money!" Tome snapped, slapping
the man's wallet away. "Just get your hands off of my girl!"
"Katya, what's going on?" Vanner asked.
"Problems," Katya whispered. "Big problems."
* * *
"So, why are we watching this?" Captain O'Keefe asked,
watching the real-time video from the Predator drone.
"Because we care?" Pierson asked, shrugging. "In case
there's anything we can do to help?"
"Well, we can't drop JDAMs on the town," O'Keefe pointed
out. "And we can't send in a SEAL team to help out. And we can't
interdict with Tomahawks. So what exactly are we going to do?"
"Sweep around the edge of town," Pierson said into the
microphone. "You really think that the president isn't going to
want to know how it went down? And getting an after action
report from Jenkins is like pulling teeth. So...we watch." He
paused and leaned forward, keying the communicator again.
"Whoa. Head down Highway One. I think I saw..." He paused and
blanched. "Zoom in on that group of busses. Get an angle from
the side if you can."
"That's not normal," O'Keefe said, leaning forward then
looking up at another plot. "And they're already in the air."
"No, it's not," Pierson agreed. "And, yes, they are. Zoom in
more on the windows."
"Crap."
* * *
"Kildar, Vanner."
"Go," Mike said, looking around the helicopter. The Keldara
were as prepared for the mission as could be arranged, but he still
was unhappy. As he watched, one of them reached into his blouse
and pulled out a silver "cross": the device was actually a hammer
disguised to look somewhat like a Christian cross. The Keldara
kissed the relic and replaced it in his blouse. For what we are
about to receive...
"We have two major issues that have just come up," Vanner
said, calmly. "The girls are still at the club and someone is trying
to extract Natalya. Katya believes that it may be the person who
was impersonating Fullbright."
"Shit," Mike said. "You got a facial visual?"
"Yes," Vanner said. "I've uploaded it to Colonel Pierson.
However, they have a Predator drone up and he has just informed
me that there is a convoy of armed personnel headed for the
town. ETA is about forty-five minutes."
"They'll hit us in the middle of the op," Mike said, thinking
furiously. "Where?"
"They're coming in on Highway One," Vanner replied.
"So are we blown?" Adams asked.
"Any other indicators?" Mike asked.
"Nothing in the club," Vanner said. "Nothing in town."
"I don't think it's coincidence," Mike replied. "But we're still
locked on the mission. I'll work on it. Good job. Tell Katya to
stay with Natalya if at all possible. Time for her to use her toys."
"Roger," Vanner said. "I'm going to roll part of my security
team to follow."
"Concur," Mike said. "Continue the mission.
Adams?"
"Go."
"Get me Team Padrek."
* * *
"All I want is this one little bitch," the man snarled at the
guard. "I'll fucking buy her from you!"
"She's bought and paid for, buddy," Tom snapped. "Get the
fuck out!"
"Gentlemen, gentlemen," Boris said, walking over. "There is
no need to argue about whores; there are plenty of whores."
"Then let him have others," the man said, reaching into his
pocket again. "Here," he said, pulling out a thick wad of hundred
euro notes. "Five thousand euros. Now I leave with her?"
"Now you leave with her," Boris said, nodding as he riffled
through the money. "And you do what you want as long as she
comes back alive."
"Fine," the man snapped, pulling her along with towards the
door.
"Hey!" Tom shouted. "I paid for her!"
"I give you money back," Boris smirked.
"I go with you, too," Katya said, stepping in front of the
man. "I give you good time, you give me money!"
He paused and looked her up and down then smiled.
"You want to go with me, too?" the man asked. "Okay, you
want to play with the big boys, you can come along, too."
"Bitches," Tom shouted. "Nothing but fucking bitches! All
you care about is the money!"
"Yes?" Katya said, laughing in his face. "So? And I was
never fourteen!"
Tom snarled at her and started to draw his hand back, but
then stormed out of the club.
"Now I go with you," Katya said, putting her hand on the
man's arm. "And I show you what I can do."
* * *
"Where is she?" Mikhail asked as the Ladia screeched to a
halt in front of the club.
"Gone," Vanner snapped. "Looks like west towards Highway
One towards the hills. We've picked her up on two vids so far,
but in just a minute she's going to be outside our reception
range."
"I'm on it," Mikhail said. "Keep an eye on Tanya for me."
* * *
"Tanya," Vanner said, as the girl opened the door. "We need
a big favor. A very important, and dangerous, favor."
* * *
"Padrek," Mike said over the radio. "Change of mission.
There is what looks like a reaction force headed for the town.
Take the half your team that was supposed to secure the Forward
Aerial Assembly Point down Highway One about two klicks and
block the road. Once the road is blocked I'll have someone pick
you up. Try not to get engaged."
"Understood, Kildar," the Team Leader said.
"Your entry portion will shift to Team Oleg," Mike said.
"Good luck. Try not to get your asses shot off."
* * *
"Where is Boris?" Bezhmel asked the guard inside the club
as he hurried through the doors.
"In back," the guard said, indifferently. "We close."
"Let's hope not permanently," the security specialist said,
hurrying across the almost deserted club. "Boris!"
"Ah, Yarok Ivanovich!" the Albanian said, smiling
unhappily. "What do you want?"
"You know this girl?" Bezhmel asked, pulling out the
picture of Natalya.
"Natalya," the pimp said, nodding. "What is so important
about one little crazy whore? First two Americans fight over her
then you want her. She is gone."
"Gone?!" Bezhmel shouted. "Gone where?"
"With American," Boris said, frowning. "You shout at me in
my own club?"
"Fuck," Bezhmel cursed. "Look, there is an attack coming,
but I have to find this girl. I have a group of soldiers coming to
stop it, my people, former Spetznaz. They will take care of it but
you must get your guards up, now! And I need to know where the
girl has gone, now! You said she went with American..."
Bezhmel said, pulling out the other paper. "Was he one of
them?"
"The one she left with," Boris said, nodding and trying to
catch up. "What attack?"
"The group that hit Club Dracul and Rozaje," Bezhmel said,
putting the pictures away. "Where did they go? The men with the
girl."
"I can ask around," Boris said. "They were in silver
Mercedes. But... what attack?"
"My people will be here in about thirty minutes," Bezhmel
said. "I need to find the others. East or west out of town?"
"Ask guards on door," Boris said, shrugging. "I go wake up
my guards. I will make phonecalls and see if anyone see them."
"Right, I'm out of here," Bezhmel said. "My second in
command is Yevgenius. He will bring the soldiers here. The
attack may come tonight but it may not. We need to surprise
them."
"We will," Boris said, grinning. "We'll kill them all for
Dracul and Rozaje."
"I've got to go."
* * *
"I'm getting something from her," Mikhail said. "Is it
retransmitting?"
"Got it," Vanner said. "I'm trying to boost the gain..."
Chapter Forty-One
"Where are we going?" Katya said, placing her hand on the
man's crotch and rubbing it.
The Mercedes was very comfortable, with leather seats like
the ones in the Kildar's Expedition but wider and softer. Some
day, she would have a car like this one. Including the divider so
the driver couldn't listen in.
"A place I know up in the hills," the man replied. "A quiet
place where we can have some fun. Well, where I can have some
fun," he added, grabbing her wrist and pushing her hand away. He
twisted her arm up behind her back and leaned over to her ear.
"There is special kind of fun I like to have."
"You want do this, I need much money," Katya said,
internally cursing as he twisted her arms behind her and cuffed
them. "Please no hurt. I give you good time! No need hurt."
"We'll talk about that when I'm done," the man said,
reaching into her dress and twisting her nipple, hard. "Well, just
before I kill you."
"Oh, please don't do that," Katya said, sobbing.
"But it's what I like," the man whispered in her ear. "I like to
hurt little girls like you. I like to kill them. I'm going to do you
just like I did that little bitch in Rozaje. I'm going to hurt you and
hurt you more. Then I'm going to take you in the ass and strangle
you while I keep pumping your ass til I come, bitch."
"Why you do this?" Katya whined. "Why you want
Natalya?" As the man spoke she twisted her hands as if to get
away. The valve at each joint at the base of the finger had to be
pressed four times to open up the poison pouch. It was a
laborious process. Fortunately, this jackass wanted to talk.
"It was so simple," the man said, laughing. "Just get a voice
changer, put on a mask and I was Fullbright. The bastard. He
blocked my nomination with the last administration. I should
have been the undersecretary for International Development but
he brought up that shit from
Nigeria
as if little bitches matter! Well, I fixed him
good. And now he's singing a different tune!" He looked at her
and shook his head. "What does a little whore like you
understand about anything. You're only good for one thing."
"You not need kill us," Katya whined.
"Try to figure out what Traskel has to do with it," Vanner
said, suddenly. "And we've got a security team following you.
Just hang in there."
"Please not kill me," Katya continued, trying not to snarl at
the distant voice. "Who Fullbright? I not know Fullbright. I not
know anything! Please don't kill!"
"Fullbright's a senator," the man said, dragging her down so
her head was in his lap as he continued to play with her body. He
pulled her dress down and reached into a cigar holder, lighting up
and then playing the lighter on her tit. "And you wouldn't
understand anything about that anyway."
Katya let out a very real shriek at that and tried to struggle
away.
"Please!" she begged. "Please not hurt me. I be very good to
you. I suck good. I suck really good. I get you off good!"
"That's right," the man said, dragging her off the seat and
onto her knees on the floor. "You suck me good and I might let
you live. But if you bite..."
"I not bite," Katya promised. "I not scratch," she added,
lying. "I be good to you, you let me live. Kill her if you want, I
don't care. But let me live."
"I already made that mistake," the man said, looking over at
the nearly catatonic Natalya who was huddled in the corner. "Kill
the one bitch and let the other one sweat it out, waiting to die.
But then my damned supervisor, the bitch who had my job, sent
me to fucking Rwanda
! And when I got back that little bitch was
gone. But now she's here, and she can watch while you service
me and then..."
"Mmmf," Katya answered as the man tangled his fingers in
her long golden hair and shoved her down on his dick.
"That's right, I'll let you live if you suck me good," the man
said as she began to fellate him expertly. "That's a good whore,
you suck good. Fucking Fullbright! Thinks he's so high and
mighty... I needed Traskel, though, the fucker. He got Fullbright
to go on that damned trip. I got another one of you whores to slip
a Rufie in his drink. He doesn't remember what he did that night,
which wasn't much. Then the stupid bastards gave me that
damned DVD and that was all I needed. That fucking Fullbright
is dancing to our tune, now. That's playing with the big boys!
Between Fullbright and Traskel, we've got Foreign Affairs and
Judiciary sewn up."
He suddenly yanked her head back and reached down to pull
both of her arms up with the shackles so hard she had to scream
again.
"But do you want to know the best part," he said, leaning
forward and whispering in her ear. "The best part is that with
those two behind me, I can do this anytime I want. I can buy you
little whores and hurt you and rape you and kill you and nobody
is going to stop me."
"Please don't kill," Katya begged as the car pulled to a stop.
"Depends on how good you are," the man said, dragging her
out of the car and over into the woods. "Get down on your knees
and suck me so good I forget about hurting you."
"Give me one hand?" Katya begged. "I not hurt but can suck
so much better with hand and mouth. Please? I take you all the
way down. I swallow your cum. Not to kill me! Please!"
"Gunther," the man snapped, stepping back. "Get that other
bitch over here so she can see this. I want her to watch every
single second."
The driver dragged Natalya out of the car by her hair and
into the woods, pulling her up so her back was to one of the trees
and then wrapping a rope around the tree and her neck, tying her
in place with it. The tree was far too thick for her to reach behind
and untie it.
"Take me in your mouth, bitch," the man said, gutturally,
dropping his pants and shoving his dick in Natalya's mouth.
"Suck it!"
"Mmmf!" Katya replied, trying to wave her hands.
"You want one hand free?" the American asked. "Why?"
"I no bite," Katya whined, pulling back. "I no scratch. Can do
better with mouth and hand, can suck and pump both. Is very
good."
"Yes, it is," the man said, considering her carefully. He
suddenly hit her in the face, hard, then when she was half
unconscious on the ground quickly unlocked her right hand and
then yanked the handcuff down, brutally, so that her left hand was
locked to her left leg. "And like that, you're not going to be going
anywhere," he added, yanking her back to her knees by her hair.
"Please, don't kill me," Katya whined, raising her right hand
slowly up to his dick. "I'll be good. I won't talk. Just don't kill
me."
"Do me good and I'll think about letting you live," the man
said, laughing and dropping his pants to settle around his ankles.
"I'll do you good," Katya said, calmly, and then raked her
fingernails down the inside of his thigh.
The man let out a shout of pain, punching her in the face
automatically and then clamping his hand over the wound. The
fast acting neurotoxin, though, caused the muscles in his leg to
spasm and he fell to the side, his leg thrashing.
"What did you do to me, bitch?" the man shouted, starting to
thrash in the leaves of the forest floor.
Katya wasn't listening. She had rolled with the expected
blow and now was trying as hard as she could to get to the driver.
Gunther had been fully occupied in deep throating Natalya
when he heard the shout and when he tried to withdraw, Natalya
reached down and grabbed his pants, tripping him.
The driver rolled sideways, crashing into Katya for a
moment and then driving an elbow into her gut.
Katya folded over at the blow but as the driver started to get
to his knees she rolled over to him and dug her right hand into his
butt then fell across him, pressing down on the palm and
pumping the neurotoxin into the muscle of his ass.
Cottontail finally pushed herself to her knees and looked
over at Natalya.
"It's finished," she said. "Now to get out of these..."
"Behind you," Natalya gasped. "The bad man."
The poison either wasn't as fast acting as she'd been
promised or she hadn't gotten enough in the "bad man." The
American had pulled a gun out of a shoulder holster and was
waving it at her.
"I'm going to k-k-k-i..." he stammered, pulling back the
hammer with difficulty. The pistol was waving like a branch in a
high wind.
Katya turned away just as there was a shot and then flinched.
"I think he missed," she said, looking at Natalya who was
watching wide-eyed.
"Hardly, lass," a British voice said from behind her. "I rarely
do."
Katya turned her head the other way and her eyes widened as
much as Natalya's.
"Tom?" she asked the man lowering the Walther PPk.
"Tom?"
"Actually, the name is Charles," the man drawled in pure
Oxford tones as he put the pistol away and pulled out a set of
handcuff keys. "Charles Calthrop, MI-6. Pleased to make your
acquaintance, Cottontail. It is Cottontail, isn't it?"
Chapter Forty-Two
"Vanner, what's the status on the primary?" Mike asked as
the helicopter banked around a hill; the highly paid Russian pilots
were earning their pay.
"Temporarily sort of secure," Vanner said.
"And what in the hell does that mean, exactly?" Mike
snapped.
"You want the whole story, sir?" Vanner asked. "It's a long
one. She is out of the box. She is currently unthreatened. She and
Katya are colocated. I am attempting pick-up at this time. It got
very hairy, but the situation is stabilized, I think. You want
more?"
"Negative," Mike said.
"The bad news is that the club has been kicked over like an
ant-hill," Vanner continued. "We've had a three hundred percent
increase in external guards and the full force appears to be up at
this time. You want to abort?"
"Negative," Mike said after a moment. "We'll continue the
mission. Support force?"
"Still moving, still out of the box," Vanner said. "Boss, you
do not, say again, do not have the element of surprise at the club.
I've managed to insert some new surprises, but you are going in
hot."
"Understood," Mike said, looking across the cargo-hold at
Creata. She was the youngest of the intelligence specialists, a tiny
girl with bird-like bones and a narrow face framed by dark brown
hair. She was so small and delicate that everyone in the Keldara
called her "Mouse." She was also surprisingly adept with
mechanical devices and had tested out to be the fastest and most
knowledgeable in opening safes. She was sitting very calmly,
holding a bag of tools that appeared to be at least two thirds of
her body weight in her lap with her eyes closed and appeared to
be either praying or going over the steps to crack the safe. Call it
a mantra. "We'll still handle it. Out here."
Mike reached down and changed his radio to the setting for
"all force."
"Listen up, troops," Mike said. "Primary is out of the box.
They know we're coming. There is a heavy force coming in from
the east. All the guards are up. We're going in anyway. The FAAP
team is going to delay the heavy force. Primary recovery team
now is added to front door. Entry and mission as planned. But it's
going to be hot. Do the job and we'll get the hell out of dodge.
That is all, Kildar out."
"Are you sure about this, boss?" Adams asked.
"I'm sure," Mike said. "We're going to get those DVDs and
along the way we're going to fuck them all."
* * *
The fleet of birds banked over the last hill and then split, half
the echelon heading down the main boulevard and the other half
to the smaller rear street.
As they split, four Allouette helicopters increased speed and
pulled away from the formation. Two braked to an out-of-
ground hover five hundred meters from the club and pivoted
sideways so that their troop doors pointed towards the club.
As soon as they were pointed, the two machine gunners in
each of their doors opened fire.
The MG-240 was capable of spitting out over 1200 rounds
per minute on continuous fire, but the machine gunners were,
while newly trained, quite expert and held them to precise three
and five round bursts. The combined fire tossed the guards on the
front door of the club to their face, littering the sidewalk with
bodies. This late at night, the only people on the street were the
few remaining guards on the club so there were no complications
from ladies of the evening.
The lead Allouette, paused for a moment in an out of
ground hover then, as the guards on the doors were reduced, slid
forward in a deathly precise maneuver and paused opposite the
club.
Intelligence had determined that the majority of the guards
were barracked on the third floor. In each of the Allouettes were
two RPG gunners, two assistant gunners and a sniper. As the
Allouette slowly slid down the now nearly empty street, the RPG
gunners began firing round after round into the barred windows
of the third floor, filling the upper stories with deadly shrapnel.
The backblast was directed out the other door of the stripped
helicopter. In a few of the second and third storey windows,
figures briefly appeared. Those that were not currently being
targeted by the RPG gunners were engaged by the Keldara sniper,
whose precise rounds removed the majority of the threats.
As the helicopter working the front of the building was just
about done with its run, one guard got smart enough to hurry to
an upper floor and open fire on the helicopter with his AK-47.
The majority of the 7.62x39 rounds flew wide, but two cracked
into the turbine housing of the French chopper.
The Russian pilot saw about half of his lights go red in less
than a second
"Tobv yo mut!" he shouted, killing the engine and dropping
the hovering helicopter like a stone. "We're going in!"
* * *
"Where's Tanya?" Vanner asked.
"Second floor," Lidiya answered, calmly. "Room Seven. It's
interior."
"Tell Team Sawn when they clear the second floor to find
her and extract," Patrick replied.
"We have response coming down
Ordur Street
," Greznya said.
"Got it," Vanner said, switching screens. "Blow det zones
nine and nineteen..."
* * *
Yevgeni Kulcyanov grasped the fast rope and slid down,
hitting hard and then bounding to the back door of the club.
"Rig it," he said, not even looking over his shoulder to make
sure Bran was behind him.
"Got it," the Keldara demo specialist said, slapping the
charge on the heavy door. "Clear," he yelled, sliding down the
wall to the side and then triggering the kilo of Semtek.
The remainder of the Keldara entry team had paused out of
the blast zone, hunkering down to take the blast on tehir armor.
As soon as it went off, Yevgeni tossed a frag through the door,
waited for it to detonate and then plunged into the smoke.
"Clear right!"
* * *
Padrek drifted through the dust from the destroyed main
door and took up a position to the right of the door, sweeping
around the mostly abandoned main club area. Abandoned by
clientele, that is. There was heavy fire coming from the far side
of the bar.
Padrek Ferani at 5' 9" was shorter than the average Keldara
and darker as well, with brown hair and eyes that had a slight
epicanthc fold, probably the result of a Mongol warrior passing
through the area. But his frame was compactly muscled from
years of farm work and the training the Keldara took for the
Rites of Ondah. That muscled had been further honed by the
training regime of the Western instructors, as had an already fast
mind.
Choosing the militia teams had, in the end, come down to
something like choosing teams for ball in school. To an extent,
the instructors had made sure that certain skills were passed
around, but the team leaders had final call on who was in "their"
team. And they'd tended to choose like minded individuals.
Oleg was a born warrior, a true Viking descendent who
tended to feel that peace could best be served by superior
firepower. When he saw an obstacle, his choice was to smash it
down. Vil was more subtle, preferring deception and quick
movement, the rapier to the broadsword.
Padrek was one of the best Keldara at mechanisms, one of
the kids who had spent his whole life keeping the few bits of
technology the Keldara posessed alive and kicking. He had the
mind of an engineer, so when he saw a problem he tried to work
it, to think "outside the box." As he surveyed the destruction, he
was automatically processing actions both near and far in terms
of combat time. And he sure as hell wasn't planning on a frontal
assault.
Oleg would have tried to overwelm with firepower. Vil
would have tried a ruse.
Padrek tended to prefer technology.
One of the Keldara was down in the doorway and a blood
trail denoted another that had been dragged out of the line of fire.
The rest were hunkered down behind a barricade of tables,
trading shots with the Albanians on the far side of the room.
More of whom were pouring through a doorway that was just
out of the Keldara's line of fire.
"Tch, tch," Padrek said, shaking his head. Team Padrek's
primary instructor had been McKenzie, the Scottish former SAS
NCO, and some of his manner had rubbed off. "This simply
won't do, what? Krasa?"
"Go Padrek," the intel specialist replied. She was hunkered
down outside the building, waiting for the club level to be
cleared.
"You've got the detonation codes that Vanner sent, yes?"
Padrek asked, consulting a piece of paper. "Could you give me a
hit on number six and...eight?"
* * *
Creata waited as the eight members of the side entry team
slid to the ground then stepped to the door. She looked over her
shoulder and wasn't surprised to see the Kildar giving her a
thumb's up. She grinned at him, grabbed the fast-rope and slid
into the alleyway.
As planned, she stepped to the far side from the door and
huddled to the ground as Ivan and Mikhail squeezed her from
either side, covering her from stray fire and random fragments.
"You don't have to lean in that hard," she muttered, barely
able to breathe from the weight of the two. Oh, well, it was
probably something like sex. Maybe some day she'd find out.
There was an explosion and then a series of shots then Ivan
stood up and yanked her to her feet.
"Stay between us, Mouse," he growled, running hard for the
door.
"Tango down right." "Down left. Left clear." "Hallway
clear." Another blast. "Door open. Descending." "Check fire,
hallway. Main entry team in place." "Basement..."
Creata didn't stop in time and bounced off of Ivan's armor
before being yanked to the ground by Ivan.
"What's happening?" she asked. She had been instructed to
keep her radio off unless she absolutely had to use it.
"Too many guards in the basement," Mikhail muttered.
"Secondary team going in." As he told her there was a massive
explosion from the level above.
"What was that?" Creata yelled.
"Padrek having fun," Mihail replied, grinning.
* * *
"Up and at 'em!" Padrek shouted, standing up over the
barricade and firing the MG-240 from the hip.
The detonation of the two IEDs the hooker had secreted in
the staircase had blown the reinforcing guards out of the
doorway like so much mangled meat. It had also seriously eroded
the morale of the guards that had, successfully, bottled up the
Keldara entry team. They stopped firing and turned to look at
what had happened, giving Padrek the moment's respite he'd
needed. Now the Albanians were suppressed as his fire,
and the fire of the two SAW gunners on the team, filled the area
around the bar with lead.
"Grenades," he yelled, continuing to snap out three and five
round bursts, working back and forth along the top of the bar,
sending the few remaining hail bottles up in an explosion of glass
and liquor. "Now!"
As the grenades reached the end of their apogee he stopped
firing and ducked; frags had no concept of who was friend and
foe. There were a series of "cracks" and screams then he was back
on his feet.
"Follow me!"
* * *
Gregoriya leapt over the black-clad body of a Keldara at the
base of the stairs and took cover on the far side of the hallway as
rounds cracked down the long gallery.
"Four, maybe more, on the south end," he said. "Twenty
meters down."
"I'll cover," Yevgeniya said, leaning around the corner of the
stairs and spraying fire from his Squad Automatic Weapon down
the length of the corridor.
Gregoriya got down and low-crawled forward to the next
doorway, reaching up and trying the door. Locked.
"Fuck," he muttered.
"Reloading!" Yevgeniya called as the fire died.
Gregoriya pulled his SPR around and began sending three
round bursts down the hallway, trying to keep the defenders at
the far end suppressed. An AK was stuck around the corner and
the trigger yanked, filling the corridor with bullets one of which
hit him on the armor.
"I need more cover than this!" Gregoriya sang out.
Suddenly more than just the SAW was firing down the
hallway and the AK was quickly yanked back.
"Thank you," he muttered, putting the barrel of the SPR
against the lock and blowing it away with a couple of bursts. He
pushed the door open with the barrel and then peeked around the
corner. The room appeared to be clear so he slid through the
door, tracking around for threats.
Well, not entirely clear. There was a girl huddled in one
corner, chained to the wall. She looked as if she'd been beaten
rather hard recently. And a nick on her leg was probably from a
bouncer.
"Just stay there and be quiet," he said in Russian, gesturing
her down. He leaned out again, carefully given the amount of
lead being thrown around, and checked the doorway at the end.
Close enough. He pulled out a fragmentation grenade, pulled the
pin and tossed it as hard as he could down the corridor.
Unfortunately, his aim was off and the grenade bounced off
the edge of the doorway. He'd wondered why the instructors had
been so insistent on accuracy and as he ducked back in the room
he decided that now he knew.
"Fucker!" Yevgeniya snapped as he jumped through the
door. "You could have called grenade!"
"I figured you were hiding on the stairs," Gregoriya replied,
grinning.
"Just shut up and hand me a frag," Yevgeniya said.
"Grenade!"
* * *
"Grenades here, here and here," Antoniya said, pointing at
the map as the Hip helicopter lifted off the road and into the
darkness. "Run tripwires across the road. We'll drop trees from
here to here. Then lay claymores as we retreat."
"We don't have any axes," Gena pointed out.
"Who needs axes," Antoniya scoffed, pulling a roll of det-
cord out of his pack. "We've got demo!"
* * *
"Get them out of there," Mike said, tapping two of the
Keldara reserve and pointing to the downed Alloutte as he
stepped off the Hip. "Clearing status?"
"Ground floor clear," Adams said.
"Two Keldara wounded, one dead. Clearing upper floors. Entry
team has opened the basement, clearing at this time. Some
resistance but they're handling it. More casualties."
"Oleg?" Mike said as he walked through the smoking
entrance of the club.
"Reaction from all four directions," the security team leader
replied. "Uncoordinate. Maintaining position. We're getting good
reads from Vanner."
"Sawn?"
"Third floor..." There was a burst of fire in the background
then an explosion and the Keldara team leader grunted. "Second
and third floor clear. We've picked up a primary per Vanner.
Secure and pulling out. IEDs laid to cover."
"When you pull back, check with the basement team and see
if they need any help," Mike said. "If not, go reinforce Oleg."
* * *
"Oleg! There are more coming down Dutro Street
! We need help here!"
"How many?" Oleg asked, waving at the team with him and
hurrying to the defense point on Dutro.
"At least twenty," Dmitri answered. "And they are giving
each other covering fire now. A car tried to get past us as well."
Oleg turned the corner and hunkered down behind a
stairway, peering over the top then looking across the street at the
defense team.
"We have them in a crossfire, now," Oleg said as he spotted
figures moving down the far side of the street. "Juris, see if you
can get onto one of the upper floors and give us cover fire. Jitka,
set up your SAW and get ready for fun..."
* * *
"Make enough of a mess?" Creata asked, stepping over the
body in the threshod of the room and looking around. The
basement office's computers had been shredded by more than one
grenade, but the safe on the far wall was impervious to
fragments.
"More or less," Yevgeniya said, grinning. "A little Mouses
nest, yes?"
"Genrich, Steppas," Gregoriya said. "Start pulling out EEI.
Mouse, we don't have much time."
"Got it," the girl said, hurrying over to the safe. "I'm going
to be at least ten minutes," she added as she began pulling tools
out of her bag.
"Understood," Gregoriya said. "Safe room secure. Working
on the safe..."
Chapter Forty-Three
"Creata's on the safe," Adams said,
pulling off his balaclava and looking around the club. "Ten
minutes. I say we get a drink. If Padrek left us any whole bottles."
"Who's she?" Mike asked, gesturing with his chin to a
hooker being held by one of the Keldara.
"Tanya," Sawn answered. "She's an intel source that Vanner
asked us to pick up."
"Vanner?" Mike asked, over the radio. "We giving rides to
hookers, now?"
"You talking about Tanya, Kildar?" Vanner answered. "She's
good people and we owe her; she laid in a series of IEDs that
really saved Padrek's ass. Besides, Mikhail really likes her."
"Fine, fine, like, what-everrrr," Mike said.
"So we're giving rides to hookers. What's the status with Oleg?"
"Pretty bad," Vanner admitted. "He's got a fight on his hands
on all fronts."
"Sawn, this place secure?" Mike asked.
"Yes, sir," the team leader answered.
"Get everybody out there supporting Oleg," Mike said.
"Keep a minimum security force back here."
"Yes, Kildar," Sawn said, striding away and talking to his
radio.
"Creata?" Mike asked, softly.
"Yes, Kildar?" Creata answered after a moment.
"How long?"
"I'm just beginning my drill, Kildar," Creata said. "Eight to
nine minutes, minimum."
"Thank you, Mouse," Mike replied then looked around the
room. "Stay here or go help Oleg?" he asked, rhetorically.
"You stay here," Adams said,
setting down his empty shot glass. "I'll go help Oleg oh Kildar!"
"Works. Vanner, status on the primary?"
* * *
"Kildar," Vanner said. "Update on the situation with Katya.
Still-unknown man pulled them out of the club over protests of
the sugardaddy. Took them to area outside town with stated
intention of killing them. Natalya recognized him as the 'bad
man', presumably the duplicate Fullbright from Rozaje. Person
explained most of the incident to Katya while gloating."
"And Katya is...alive?" Mike asked.
"Katya managed to scratch him and his driver," Vanner
continued. "Was about to be killed, anyway, by the unknown
man. The 'sugardaddy' prevented it. Turns out he's MI-6."
"Don't you just love it when a plan comes together," Mike
said. "Does he recognize the perp?"
"Negative," Vanner said. "I've uploaded a good face shot to
Pierson; they're trying to run a match. He's apparently American
State Department."
"Anything odd about this guy?" Mike asked, his brain
twigging at something.
"Accent," Vanner said, immediately. "Pure
Cambridge, Boston
. Hah'vah'd, you know? 'Pah'k the cah''?"
"Wait," Mike said. "Run a check against the guy who first
contacted me for the Senator. He was a State Department
brahmin..."
"Looking at the log..." Vanner said. "Wilson Hargreave
Thornton. And now Google is our friend..."
"And?" Mike asked.
"Bingo," Vanner replied. "We now have one dead member
from the Moldava Desk in the woods of
Albania
. Except he's actually in the Bureau of
International Development."
"Connection to Traskel?" Mike asked, curiously.
"He explained it all," Vanner replied. "Well, most. Enough.
I'm sure we'll figure out the link, other than that they run in the
same circles more or less."
"Got it," Mike said. "Look forward to the replay."
"That might be all we have," Vanner said. "I sent Mikhail
after them to act as security but he was late. However, he's got a
Land Rover following him according to Predator data. So
somebody else appears to be after either Wilson Whatsisname or
Natalya."
"And they're out of the box," Mike said, cursing under his
breath. "We'll vector a recovery team in as soon as we egress this
area. Tell them to either run like hell or stand pat, up to them.
But we'll be up to get them soon."
"How is it there?" Vanner asked. "Oleg looks like he's
getting pounded."
"Other than that, all good," Mike admitted just as there was
a shot downstairs. "Check that. Gunfire. Out here."
* * *
Boris waited quietly in the safety room, cursing the bastards
who had wrecked his club.
As soon as the explosions started upstairs, he had raced for
the secure room in the basement. But even before he reached the
stairs, he could hear gunfire from the side door and knew that
they were under heavy attack. Probably too heavy for even his
bloated guard force.
On reaching the basement, he'd ordered the guards to hold
out as long as possible and then secreted himself in the "panic-
room." The room was concealed behind a set of shelves that
contained some of the documents related to the wideflung
network of whorehouses and street whores.
The room had been ransacked, but nobody, fortunately,
noticed the carefully hidden door to the panic-room. After a few
minutes frantic activity, the ransackers, mostly women curiously,
had left carrying almost every document and computer harddrive
in the room. The exception was the woman working on the safe,
and one bodyguard.
Boris would very much prefer it if whoever was attacking
did not get the contents of the safe. Even if everything else was
gone, he could rebuild from just what was in there, in money,
drugs and especially his collection of DVDs. He wasn't sure, but
he thought most of the attackers had gone upstairs. The rest of
the gangs had to be attacking them from the outside. If he could
just kill these two he might be able to make it out alive.
The problem was that the little whore of a safecracker was
looking right at him. She'd started up the drill while the other
women were in the room then left it to drill as she chatted with
the guard. All he needed was for her to turn around for a few
seconds...
* * *
Creata was bored.
The first part of the mission had been exciting and scary.
Three Keldara had been injured or killed trying to get to the
basement office and she felt bad about that. But waiting to enter
the corridor had been the most exciting thing she had ever done,
except maybe fast-roping down to the alleyway.
Then running down the corridor and setting up had been
exciting. She had had to carefully, but quickly, find the precise
spot to start drilling. If she was off by half a millimeter, the entry
wouldn't work. She'd carefully measured and then started the
drill. After that, though, it got boring. Boring, boring, boring.
There had been two choices of drill, a mechanical or laser.
The laser drill was slightly heavier, but it had two advantages. It
could detect when there had been a burn-through, and with the
fine machinery on the far side of the outer plate Creata didn't
want anything touching it but her, and it didn't have the problem
of bits breaking or binding. It was a tad less reliable otherwise,
but she had been careful to pad it for the entry and it started up
without problem. Now all she had to do was wait for it to bore
through to the tumbler assembly.
Bore.
Now she knew why the words were the same in English.
They'd talked about this part in the briefing, and the Kildar had
said that she'd get bored and then laughed. So she did, chuckling
at the thought.
"What?" Ivan asked, frowning.
"I just figured out why the Kildar laughed when we were
talking about this part," Creata said. She'd propped her back on
the safe, waiting for the bore to finish. Looking at it wasn't going
to make it go any faster. "Any word on what's going on
upstairs?"
"All four teams are pinned down," Ivan said, shrugging.
"They've taken a few casualties. The only ones killed, so far, were
Dimant back there on the stairs, Arkady opening the front door
and Stanislav when the helicopter crashed. Oh, and the copilot of
the helicopter. Bunch of wounded, though."
"I'm going as fast as I can," Creata said, shrugging.
"We know," Ivan replied, then grinned. "Although I have
overheard some comments from upstairs. But they all know the
timing. They're going to be okay."
"I hope they can extract okay," the girl said, biting her lip.
"The Kildar thinks..." Ivan said, just as the drill went into
overrev.
"Through," Creata shouted, turning off the drill. "Quiet,
now."
"Yes, ma'am," Ivan replied, grinning. But he keyed his mike
and spoke into it softly.
Creata pulled the drill out of the casing carefully, rolling it
to the side, then slid a doubled optical wire into the hole. One
was for vision and the other one had a light. The interior was
precisely as she'd been told it would be and she looked at the
tumblers for a second.
"I can see the first number..." she muttered to herself,
ignoring a faint click behind her.
* * *
The guard didn't seem to hear the faint click as the shelves
unlatched from the wall and Boris held his breath as he slowly
swung the door open. But, still, the guard, who was speaking
softly into his radio, didn't seem to notice anything.
The guard was wearing heavy body armor so Boris slowly
raised his pistol up to the level of his eye, took a two handed grip
and shot the guard just below the base of his helmet.
* * *
Creata turned around in shock as the whole area around her
was covered in bloodspatter, only to find an unknown man, one
of the Albanians from the looks, standing over the body of Ivan
with a smoking pistol.
"Come away from there, girl," the man said, waving for her
gently. "Come away and you won't get hurt."
"No," Creata said, scurrying behind the bulk of the laser
drill. "They'll come for you, soon."
"But you're their safe cracker," the man said, moving around
to the side to get a clear shot. "Without you, they can't get in, can
they?"
"I don't want to hurt you," Creata replied, keeping the drill
between herself and the man. She had a very small body and
could crouch behind it almost totally under cover. "Just go
away."
"Ah, but I very much enjoy hurting little girls like you," the
man said, stepping forward.
"You probably do," Creata replied and turned the laser on.
The fifteen megawatt chemical laser was designed to bore
through one centimeter of 440 steel per second. Human flesh had
about the resistance to it that butter had to a hot knife. It was
nearly out of charge, but Creata only had to play it across the
man's abdomen, 23 millimeters below his navel. The precise
height that the laser had to be aligned to enter the safe.
* * *
Boris didn't even feel the pain at first: his legs simply
collapsed under him as he felt something slither down them. He
hit the floor on his face but retained his grip on his pistol and
tried to raise it, only to find a small and shapely boot on his
wrist.
"I really didn't want to hurt you," Creata said, pointing her
own pistol at his face. "I simply wanted to kill you. Of course, I
think that disemboweling you just got is probably starting to
hurt. Let me be nicer than you and make the pain go away..."
* * *
Mike could see Ivan's body on the floor before he even got
to the door of the basement office, but the shot that rang out was
a surprise.
He skidded through the door, SPR up and pointed, just as
Creata was putting her pistol away. There was a body on the
floor besides Ivan's, an unknown Albanian with his legs tangled
in intestines. His identity would probably forever be unknown,
since he also had a bullet hole in the back of his head and his face
was blown out.
"Oh, hello, Kildar," Creata said, turning back to the safe.
"Do you think you could watch my back while I finish?"
"Of course," Mike replied, just as calmly. "I'll be as quiet as
a church-mouse."
Chapter Forty-Four
"Oleg," Juris called, tracking a moving figure and then
stroking his trigger. The figure on the opposite roof fell, but two
more dove past him and began peppering the window he'd shot
through with fire. "We've got tangos on the roof opposite. I have
to pull out."
"I think we pissed these guys off," Jitka muttered over the
radio.
"Their home turf," Oleg replied, scanning the street then
consulting his map. "They're very territorial are the Albanian
clans. This is an affront to their honor. They'll keep coming, like
ants to a picnic, until we've killed them all or the picnic's left."
"Then I suggest we fold our napkins and go," Juris chuckled.
"Could I get some cover on that?"
"Roger," Oleg said. "Dutri street
team, pull back by sections. Section one, move. All
teams, fall back on the Club. Kildar, we are withdrawing by
sections at this time. Request cover fire in and around the club."
* * *
"Oleg, this is Kildar," Mike whispered. "Everyone's with
you. I'll get back to you on cover."
"Roger, Kildar," Oleg said as there was a scream in the
background.
"Vanner," Mike said. "Who's out on the interdict mission
and what's the status?"
"The area's rigged," Vanner said. "They're pulling back."
"Get two of the Allouettes to them," Mike said. "Have them
provide cover fire for the withdrawal to the club. Begin moving
all personnel to the evac point on the roof."
"Will do," Vanner replied.
* * *
"Die you Albanian motherfuckers," Ionis muttered, stroking
the trigger of his MG-240.
He'd thought flying in on the Allouettes had been scary. But
that had worked out perfectly. Now, though, he and Stephan were
under heavy fire, covering the retreat of one of Oleg's teams.
"Keep the ammo coming, brother," he muttered as Stephan
clicked another hundred round box into the linked belt that was
feeding the gun.
"Keep firing, brother," Stephan replied, grinning, just as
there was a whistling sound.
Ionis caught a brief glimpse of the RPG in the air before it
impacted on the wall above him.
* * *
Oleg dashed across the street, ignoring the hail of small
arms fire, and scooped up the MG-240.
"Dmitri! Sveryan! Grab Ionis and Stephan and get them
under cover," the team leader roared, popping up over the
stairway and hosing the far side of the street, holding the machine
gun off-hand like a giant rifle. There was return fire, though,
from every window it seemed and from the rooftop. He felt a
round punch him in the armor and then another in the left leg. He
ignored them and kept firing, both suppressing the fire from the
far side of the street and drawing it so the team could withdraw.
"Vagis! Juril! Somebody feed me!"
* * *
"Kildar, this is Sawn. We've withdrawn on Nevsk and
Agayev. I'm shifting some forces over to Dutris, though. Oleg
and his team are pinned there."
"Got it," Mike said, quietly. "I may have some support on
the way. Get everyone withdrawn as fast as possible. Mouse is
almost done. I need at least a fire team here in the building to
make sure we get to the withdrawal point."
"Will do," Sawn said. "See you in Valhalla."
"Got it," Creata said, leaning back and twisting the handle.
The handle moved for about a third of the way and then stopped.
"Damn."
"What's wrong?" Mike asked. If they couldn't get the door
open, the entire mission was for nothing.
"I thought I saw a fragment of metal in the tumblers," Creata
said, standing up and walking over to Ivan's body. She calmly
rolled him over and unshipped his SPR then walked back over to
the safe and hammered on the handle until it moved. "That's got
it," she added, twisting it all the way to open and then opening the
safe.
"Whoa," Mike said, blinking his eyes. "Sawn."
"Kildar, we've mostly pulled back to the club except for the
group on Dutris. We have cover on their back, but they are under
heavy fire."
"Okay, I need about..." Mike looked at the contents of the
safe again and then shrugged. "About ten guys down here. Some
of the girls will do but I'm going to need strong backs."
"Roger, Kildar," Sawn said. "Will do."
"That is a lot of money," Creata said, pulling out one of the
stacks of euros. "A lot of money."
"And the DVDs?" Mike asked, keeping an eye on the
corridor.
"Here," Creata said, pulling out two audio storage boxes and
lifting the lid on one. "In crystal cases, yes?" she asked.
"Check them," Mike said. "Vanner, what's the status on that
Allouette?"
* * *
"Glad to see you!" Antoniya shouted over the rotor wash.
"You may not be," the pilot shouted back. "I know I'm not
happy! See the machine guns?"
"Yes?" Gena shouted.
"They are to be used, yes?" the pilot said and then grinned.
"As the Americans say, we are going Downtown."
* * *
"There is firing in town," Yevgeni Andrushkin said, looking
over at Dmitri Balboshin. "And I cannot raise Yarok on his
cellphone."
Yevgeni and Dmitri had been assigned to the same Spetznaz
team, straight out of training, Yevgeni as a brand new lieutenant
and Dmitri as an equally shiny senior private. And both had left
the teams at about the same time, after an offer they couldn't
resist from the Russian mafia. Since then, Yevgeni had risen on
the paramilitary side of the mob, becoming a senior recruiter and
leader of professionals in "wet work" while Dmitri had handled
his personal security.
Yevgeni had reluctantly acceded to his former commander's
request to form a large force for the Albanian mob. The
Albanians and the Russians often clashed, but if there was a new
anti-criminal special operations team running around, Yevgeni
felt it in everyone's interest to crush it as soon as possible.
That assumes that they could even get to the force before it
completed its current raid. Yarok had said "soon" but not this
soon.
"I could give a rat's ass about Yarok," Dmitri said, propping
his SMG into a more comfortable position and fingering one of
the frag grenades on his ammo vest. "We'd better get paid,
though."
"We will be," Yevgeni said. "As long as we are not too late.
Driver, hurry!"
"Yes, Mr. Kutkin," the Albanian driver said, nervously. "But
this road is very twisty..."
"I don't care!" Yevgeni shouted, just as there was a crack
from the roadside.
The small Keldara team had not had much time and they had
only recently been through demolitions school. But what they
knew about dropping trees hadn't been discovered yet.
The explosion sequence was started by three grenades, their
pins loosened and attached to wires spread across the road at
waist height. AS the first bus hit the wires, the pins were pulled
and each of the grenades detonated.
Under the grenades, the trees that they were riggertapped to
had a triple wrap of det cord with two small charges of Semtek
wrapped in with it. The det cord detonated sympathetically from
the grenades, detonating the Semtek in turn and the base of the
trees shot away from the road, bringing their crowns down like
rockets.
But that wasn't enough for the busy Keldara. They had run
more detcord from the primary trees to others along the roadway,
along with stringing claymores on their trunks.
Before the first bus had even crashed into the obstacles
suddenly dropped in its path, more trees were dropping into the
road for over fifty meters along with a hail of ballbearings that
turned the buses into so many bleeding collanders.
* * *
"Oh, that was very cool," Gena said. The helicopter had
pulled up high enough that he could see the entire road and they
had added some flares so the scene was fully lit. The buses
carrying the "reaction force" were twisted across the road every
which way and three were on fire. Only the rear two buses
appeared unscathed.
"Sawn, this is Antoniya," the fire team leader said. "The
reaction force is...not having a good night. They will be late to
the party."
"Good," Sawn said. "One good piece of news. How long to
the town?"
"Perhaps three minutes," Antoniya said, cocking the door-
mounted MG-240. "I take it you have more work for us."
"Yes," Sawn said. "Hurry."
* * *
Oleg had been hit two more times, but had only been able to
pull back half the block. He knew he was bleeding too much, but
he could barely take time to cram bandages on the wounds.
"Juris, you there?" Oleg called, weakly.
"Above you, brother," the sniper replied.
"There are fighters on the roof over you," Oleg said. "Pull
out."
"You don't have any cover, brother," the sniper pointed out.
"I'll stay."
"Go," Oleg said. "Go now. That is an order."
"Going," Juris said after a moment. "But I thought I'd shoot
the fellow about to drop a grenade on you."
"Thank you," Oleg said, stroking the trigger. He was almost
out of ammo for the 240 and Sveryan, who had picked up the
spares, had already been pulled back with a sucking chest wound.
What was that song that the Kildar sang?
"And in the fury of this darkest hour, we shall be your light,"
Oleg said, tracking a moving figure on the rooftop opposite and
stroking the trigger. The machinegun spat out three rounds and
then went silent. "You've asked me for my sacrifice, and I am
Winter Born..."
* * *
"Oleg," Juris whispered. "Get up."
"Get out," Oleg replied. "Go."
"Not without you, brother," the sniper replied, targeting a
figure on the far rooftop. The man seemed to stumble and then
fell into the street but the single shot, even with the silenced
sniper rifle, had attracted a hail of fire from all along the street.
"Time to crawl."
"Bit hard to do," Oleg said, choking. "But, yes, we crawl..."
AS they tried to leave the shelter of the stairs, though,
rounds cracked all around them.
"Or not," Juris sighed. "Perhaps we stay here, yes?"
"I told you," Oleg replied, laughing redly. "You should
listen to your brother."
"I would much prefer to be in the house, yes?" Juris said,
leaning against the wall and trying to search for targets. "Having
some of Mother Lenka's brew."
"I would rather be in bed with Lidiya," Oleg said. "If you
make it, tell the Kildar..."
"We will both make it, brother," Juris said, knowing he was
lying. "But I will tell the Kildar..."
He paused as a body dropped from the window above,
spinning to fire and then checking.
"You see!" the girl behind him said. "I told you it was Juris
and Oleg! Here," she added, tossing him three boxes of
ammunition for the MG-240. "Get to work, Juris. You always
were lazy!"
"Elena," Oleg said, blinking his eyes in surprise. "Catrina? Is
it really you?"
"I wondered how long it was going to take for you to find
us," Elena said, making a moue. "I didn't expect it to be this
long." She reached down and yanked off her stilletto heels,
rubbing her feet. "I'm so glad to get those off!"
"We're not here for you," Juris said, slipping the ammo into
the machine gun and opening fire. "Not that I'm not glad to see
you, especially bringing ammo!"
"Oleg, Juris," Sawn said. "You there?"
"Here, Sawn," Juris replied. "We could use some cover fire."
"You're about to get it," Sawn said. "Get down."
"Tell whoever is firing to be careful," Oleg said, reaching up
and pulling his sister in close as his eyes watered from more than
pain. "We found Elena and Catrina."
"Found us, hell!" Catrina said, hugging Juris triumphantly.
"We had to find you!"
* * *
The Alloutte slid to a halt at the intersection of Dutris and
Turla, behind the assaulting Albanians. As soon as the helicopter
slowed, Antoniya and Gena opened fire.
The two MG-240s were firing down, suppressing or
engaging everyone along the street as the Allouette slowly
tracked back and forth. They started with the rooftops, firing
from above and behind the attackers that had made their way up
there, then started on those on the street.
The Albanians, caught in a crossfire from before and above,
didn't have many choices. Mostly, they died. Some ran into the
buildings, a few managed to retreat under the helicopter, but they
weren't much better off there. Efim and Vitaly, the other two
members of the blocking team, had found a case of
fragmentation grenades. Anyone headed for the helicopter found
frags dropping on them from great height. Due to the timing of
the frags and the distance to the ground, most went off before
they hit. This didn't do the retreating pimps and guards much
good, though, since that just meant the frags spread around
better.
As the fighters near the helicopter were suppressed, the pilot
slid the helicopter sideways down the road, letting the machine-
gunners and grenadiers engage more targets. However, it started
taking fire from hidden riflemen in the windows of the houses
along the street and backed off.
"Sawn, this is Antoniya," the team leader called. "What's the
status?"
"Pull off," Sawn called. "All personnel recovered. We're
beginning extraction. Come to the other end of Dutris and cover
us as we leave."
"Got it," the pilot called, pivoting the bird up and around.
"Will do."
"Anybody got any idea how we're doing?" Antoniya asked.
What was that line the Kildar used?
"Don't count your cards while their sitting on the table,"
Sawn growled. "Just shag your ass."
Chapter Forty-Five
"So, you are MI-6?" Katya asked, confused, as the agent
began uncuffing her.
"Yes," Calthrop said, grinning. "Lord Arnold thought you
might like some backup."
"I never suspected," Katya admitted, rubbing her wrist and
ankle as the cuffs came off.
"I had extensive amateur thespian experience at
Oxford
," Calthrop said, walking over to Natalya and cutting
the rope around her neck. "I must say that my Sancho Panza was
well regarded by the Oxford Gazette. I have a clipping around
here somewhere..." he added, patting his pockets.
"I think we talk about it later," Katya said, wincing as she
got to her feet. "There are things going on in town..." she
continued just as a series of distant thumps carried over the night
air.
"Ah, yes, your raid by the Keldara, what?" Calthrop asked.
"And, of course, there are the two cars that appear to be coming
up the hill."
"Oh, shit," Katya said. "Vanner, Vanner, can you hear me?"
"It's Lidiya, yes," Lidiya replied in her ear.
"We're okay, for now," Katya said. "But there are cars."
"The one in the lead is Mikhail," Lidiya said. "The other is
reported but who it is is unknown. A Land Rover. Definitely
following you and probably hostile."
"It would have been nice to know that before now!" Katya
snapped.
"You seemed a bit busy," Lidiya said with a hint of humor in
her voice. "The bulk of the force is engaged in the town or on
other operations. Kildar says that you need to run, or fight, your
choice, but hold on for a few more minutes until we can get
some support to you."
"Understood," Katya said, looking around. "I think...run."
"I take it you're using that special thingy in your head,"
Calthrop said. "What do they say?"
"The lead car is a friend," Katya said, frowning. "The trail
car is a Land Rover, probably hostile. The Keldara can't get free
for a few minutes. So we're on our own."
"Then I agree," Calthrop said, holding out his hand and
helping her to her feet. "We run."
* * *
"Mikhail."
"Go Lidiya," the Keldara said, steering through a hard turn.
"Get ready to take a right."
"Is that the way to Katya?" Mikhail asked, confused. "I saw
their lights above us."
"It will be."
* * *
"The other car is turning," Chito said, looking over at
Bezhmel.
"Yes, but the Mercedes is up there," Yarok replied, pointing
up the hill. "This road takes us up there. Keep going."
* * *
"Okay, the Tango One is still headed up the hill," Captain
O'Keefe said, over the sat-phone. "Sierra Two is headed down the
side road."
"Got that," Lidiya said, picking up the microphone.
"Katya..."
* * *
"...Turn right at the next intersection," Katya said, pointing.
"That's sending us back towards town," Calthrop said,
braking to make the turn.
The big Mercedes was solid and a comfortable ride, but it
was really lacking in acceleration and turning; the soft
shocks made it turn extremely wide. He could already see
flashes of light from the following Rover.
"We're meeting a friend."
* * *
Mikhail pulled the Ladia backwards into the road and then
bailed out, running across the small distance to the stopped
Mercedes and tumbling into the back seat.
"Nice of you to join us, Mikhail," Katya said, dryly. "Great
security. I had to depend on the British for protection."
"I was doing my best," Mikhail said, jacking a round into the
SPR. "But I was driving a Ladia. What did you expect?"
"So was I, lad," Calthrop replied in Georgian. "Of course, I
had a bit of a lead on you. Speaking of leads, we're losing ours
with the Rover. Nice of you to park your car in the road, but I
don't think that's going to stop them."
"Slow them down a bit, I hope," Mikhail said, shrugging and
looking out the back window. "If not, well, we will die well."
"The only way to do that is late," Katya replied.
* * *
"Who the fuck would park a car..." Chito said, swerving the
Rover around the parked Ladia. He'd barely spotted it in time and
had a seriously hard time keeping the SUV in control as it hit the
verge of the road. But he managed after a moment.
"Someone trying to slow us down," Bezhmel replied.
How many in the car was the question. The American was
dead; he'd seen the body as they drove past. He could take the
credit on that one. All he had to do was take out the hooker,
Natalya. Then he would be sixty thousand euros richer. But there
was more than just the hooker in the car. At least one, probably
more.
However, he had three fighters in the back of the SUV,
himself and Chito. That should be enough to take out whatever
was facing them.
* * *
"Hang on," Calthrop said, braking hard as he saw a
switchback ahead.
The diplomat/assassin had taken the girls far up into the hills
over the town but the current road was headed downward again.
And the narrow, barely paved, road was descending in a series of
nasty switchbacks that the big Mercedes dearly hated.
The outer tires dug gravel on the outside shoulder of the
road, causing a burst of adrenaline through his system that hit
like a hammer.
"That was too close," Katya said, disapprovingly.
"Yes," Calthrop said through thinning lips. "But so are
they."
* * *
"There," Bezhmel shouted, pointing to a narrow trail.
The switchbacks were not the only way down the mountain.
At various points, local shepherds had driven their flocks straight
down, generally just short of the switchbacks. Where the sheep
and goats could go, a Rover could follow.
Chito hit the brakes and turned hard to the left, the front
tires briefly leaving the ground and then thumping down.
The ride was bumpy, tossing the three gunners in the back
around to shouted complaints. But the Rover debouched onto the
road ahead of the speeding Mercedes as Chito braked it,
narrowly, to a stop short of the far side of the road.
* * *
"Oh....shiiiiit," Calthrop shouted, slamming on the brakes
and turning hard to the right.
As the Mercedes fishtailed across the road, Mikhail grasped
a handhold and lowered the window on his side. As soon as it
had more or less stopped he pointed his SPR out the window and
opened fire.
* * *
"Fuck!" Bezhmel shouted as rounds began cracking into the
SUV. "Out!" he continued, ducking and pushing on the driver so
the idiot would bail out on the far side.
However, the duck had been fortuitous since it permitted the
5.56 round meant for his head to instead strike the driver
in the right temple.
Chito's head snapped to the left as blood filled the interior
of the vehicle and his body slumped in the same direction,
tangled in the steering wheel and effectively blocking the door.
"Fuck!" Bezhmel shouted again, pushing at the body and
trying to get to the door latch. "What are you fuckers in the back
waiting for? SHOOT!"
* * *
"Out!" Calthrop yelled, bailing out on his side. He was
somewhat surprised to feel the sharp strike of high-heels in his
back as Katya made her own time out of the targeted vehicle.
Rounds were cracking through the air, and the car, before he
could even get to his knees. But, in the meantime, the hooker had
pulled Natalya from the back of the car and was already headed
away into the darkness.
"Where are you going?"
"I am saving my life," Katya said, not looking back. "And
hers, the primary, yes? You are going to help by killing
as many of them as you can before you die."
"Oh, that is so bloody..." Calthrop said, rolling behind a
wheel for cover as AK rounds began thumping into and through
the car. The two girls, however, were already fading into the
darkness. "Whorish."
He reached in with his right hand and drew the Walther from
its shoulder holster then shook his head.
"Not bloody likely," he muttered, reaching in to the other
side and removing a Winchester
.454 revolver. The weapon was a "pistol" only in
technical description; the round it fired was similar in ballistics
to a very heavy assault rifle. It also kicked like a mule.
"Better. Right." He took a deep breath and then let it out, getting
a good two handed grip and licking his lips as the fire died from
the back seat. So much for Mikhail. "Right. Bloody James Bond
time, right? Get my double-o rating and everything. Right. They
so did not cover this in recruiting. Mum was right; I
should have been an actor..."
* * *
Bezhmel finally managed to get the door open and tumble to
the road as the fire died down. But the first thing he saw was one
of the shooters from the back seat sprawled on the road, his legs
still in the backseat of the SUV.
There was only one of the former Spetznaz left alive, and he
was clutching at one arm where a bullet had passed through the
meat of the bicep.
"Move," Bezhmel said, waving him forward and plucking
the AK from the hands of the dead fighter sprawled out the door.
"I'll cover you."
"Right," the Russian grunted, hefting his SK-74. "I thought
we were after a girl. Who are these guys?"
"I don't know," Bezhmel said, shrugging. "Probably the
Keldara."
"Fucking Georgians," the former Spetznaz said, spitting and
lifting up to stride forward. "Time for them to..."
Bezhmel was never to be sure what the former soldier
thought it was time for. He had been watching the back seat but
as the fighter lifted up Yarok saw a flash of movement through
the back window and there was a tremendous report, as if
someone had snuck along a .50 caliber sniper rifle.
The former Spetznaz trooper had just lifted up, also
watching the back seat, and was tossed backwards as if pulled by
a wire. He hit on his back and slumped to the side, revealing a
fist-sized exit wound from a round through the upper chest.
"Holy Fuck," Bezhmel shouted, aware that one, he
was now entirely alone in this fight and, two, there was one
big fucking gun on the other side.
* * *
One down, at least one to go.
Calthrop had never been in a gunfight. He'd been in one
barroom brawl that he got out of as quickly as possible, and once
had a mugger threaten him with a knife. But this was the first
time he'd been in a gun battle and he wasn't sure of the rules.
Well, the one thing he was sure of was that there were no
rules.
But he'd watched quite a bit of the telly and movies.
Actually, he blamed this whole thing on an addiction to James
Bond movies, especially the early ones with Sean Connery. And
while most of what he'd picked up from those, and other movies,
was surely bogus, there was one trick he'd seen that
might save his ass.
So he got down on his stomach, mentally working up the
expense report for his clothes, and scanned under the car
for targets.
There was one man apparently still standing on the others
side. Calthrop could just see a knee past the left, front tire of the
Rover. He sighted on it carefully, pulled back the heavy hammer
of the beastly weapon and pulled back on the trigger.
* * *
"Bolgemoi!" Bezhmel shouted at the tire by his side
exploded. Something hit him heavily on the hip, throwing him to
the ground, but by the same token the Rover settled nearly to the
ground, giving him more cover.
The round, however, was quickly followed by three more,
each of which punched through not only the far doors but
both sides of the Rover, sending spalling and ricochets off
into the night.
"Fuck this," Bezhmel muttered, crawling to the dead fighter
in the door. He patted at pockets until he came up with what he
was looking for.
"Take this you goat-fucker," he muttered, pulling the pin on
the grenade and tossing it as hard as he could in the direction of
the fire.
* * *
Calthrop leaned against the tire and opened up the cylinder
of the revolver, pushing out the spent rounds and quickly
thumbing more in. Reload whenever possible. That bit was
coming back from very distant classes in tactics.
As he closed the cylinder he heard a thump in the darkness
beyond and looked carefully. When he saw the rolling sphere he
remembered the other injunction that had been right up
there with "reload."
"Oh, yeah," he said, trying to get to the other side of
the wheel as fast as possible. "I was supposed to move."
* * *
On top of the crack of the grenade was a scream and at that
Bezhmel leapt to his feet, running around the side of the Rover
and sprinting towards the Mercedes while firing a stream of
bullets from the AK held at his hip.
When he rounded the Mercedes he found that he needn't
have bothered. By the front tire was a sprawled body, a very
large handgun not far from his outflung hand. In the
backseat was another body, face down, one hand still on an SPR,
the other slumped down into a floorboard awash in blood.
However, there were no women. Just the two dead men.
"Where o where have my little lambs gone," Bezhmel
whispered, setting the empty AK up against the side of the truck
and drawing a SigSauer from his shoulder holster. "Oh, where oh
where can they be?"
Chapter Forty-Six
"Hurry," Katya said, pushing the girl ahead of her down the
twisting goat path. She'd heard one explosion and one more burst
of firing and now all was quiet. She took that for a bad sign.
"I can barely walk," Natalya said, sobbing. "My feet are
bloody."
"Your whole body will be bloody if you don't run,"
Katya whispered, fiercely. She'd ordered the girl to take off her
high-heeled shoes; they would be impossible on the narrow,
steep, trails. But the ridge they were on was covered in rocks that
had torn both of their feet to ribbons.
"Katya," Lidiya said, calmly. "Situation report. It looks like
Mikhail and the MI-6 man have both been taken down. The good
news, such as it is, is that only one of the Russians is still alive.
He's looking for you, but isn't directly on your track yet."
"How long until..." Katya panted, wincing as the rocks cut
further into her abused feet. It was like the time that one pimp
bastard had whipped her on her soles. But she was doing it to
herself, which almost made up for it.
"At least seven more minutes," Lidiya said. "I've made it
clear that you're badly in need of support."
"Tell them to hurry," Katya replied.
"I have," Lidiya said. "Let me remind you, the mission is to
recover the primary."
"Yeah, I know," Katya snapped. "But I can't get my money if
I'm dead."
They'd reached the second level below the switchback that
the firefight occurred on and Katya stopped, winded, when they
did. Natalya slumped to the ground, clearly willing to die rather
than run anymore.
"This is no good," she muttered, looking up the hill.
"Katya," Lidiya said. "He's found something. He's headed
down the trail. The American say that he's following you,
somehow."
"Tell them it's probably the blood from our feet!"
Katya whispered fiercely. Looking up the hill she could see the
flashlight, clearly. "We can't run anymore!"
"Then I suggest you figure something out," Lidiya said,
calmly.
"Easy for you to say," Katya said, looking around. There was
a culvert, but since they were both trailing blood...
"Natalya," Katya snapped. "Get down on your hands and
knees."
"Yes," the girl said in total resignation, doing as she was
told. "I will die now."
"The hell you will," Katya replied. "I don't get my money if
you die. Now, trying not to scrape yourself up and leave
a trail, keep your feet off the ground and crawl into that culvert."
"Why?" Natalya said.
"Because I told you to, you little whore," Katya
snarled. "Get. And when you're in there, crawl as far back as you
can and keep quiet."
Katya had retained her shoes, barely, by carrying them by the
straps. Now she sat down and, wincing, donned them again. Once
they were on and Natalya was climbing in the culvert, she started
tottering down the road, painfully.
"Katya," Lidiya said, with a note of confusion. "Predator
says that Natalya has gone to ground and you are moving very
slowly down the road. What are you doing?"
"Buying us time," Katya snarled. "Try to use it wisely."
* * *
Bezhmel spotted movement and turned off the torch, letting
his eyes adjust for a moment. There, one figure.
He ran uphill on the road for a moment until he spotted a
narrow trail and then took it as fast as he could without breaking
an ankle. Part of the time he was on his ass, sliding down the
steep hill, but he reached the road just behind the stupid little
bitch tottering along on her high-heels.
"Stop," he said, panting. The fight, and the chase, had worn
him down; he wasn't in the same shape he'd been in when he left
the service. "Stop," he repeated, turning the torch back on and
spotlighting the little whore who was still trying to hobble away.
He'd seen the blood; her feet weren't going to carry her far.
The girl turned around, wincing in pain from the light of the
torch and held up her hands.
Not the right girl. But she would know where the other one
went.
* * *
"Where's the other girl," a man's voice barked from the far
side of the light.
Katya screwed her eyes shut against the light and fell to her
knees, head bent and hands covering her eyes.
"Please, sir," she begged, tears rolling down her face. "I don't
know what is going on. I know nothing..."
"Where's the other girl, bitch," the man said, coming closer.
The torch was lowered and she could vaguely see his outline in
the reflection. And the glint from a pistol which was centered on
her forehead.
"She left me," Katya whimpered, pulling her hands away a
little but still keeping her head down. "My feet, they were so hurt.
She ran away, down the road..."
The torch came up and the man strode forward, looking
down the hill.
"I don't see her," he said.
"She was there..." Katya said, reaching under her left armpit
and pressing a valve four times in quick succession. Then she
pushed, hard, on the small packet under her skin and let the drug
take her.
She wasn't sure what was in it. The American doctors had
talked about pseudo-adrenaline and oxidizers and steroids and
man-made endorphins until her head was reeling with unfamiliar
terms. But they had given her one demonstration under
controlled conditions so she would know what to expect. All she
knew was that the world seemed to slow down and she suddenly
felt light, the pain of her muscles from running, and the pain of
her feet, drifting away as if they were nothing. She also felt
strong and graceful, as if she could dance off the face of the
world and drift away into space.
Last, but not least, she felt angry. But, then again, that was
how she always felt. And now she got to let it all hang out.
* * *
Bezhmel held the torch in his left hand and the pistol in his
right, tracking back and forth down the road. The light from the
torch was bright enough to clearly reveal the far switchback and
there was no girl in sight.
He started to turn back to the little whore that had lied to
him and got one brief glimpse of her rising up off the ground
then...she seemed to blur.
* * *
Katya struck the man's gun-hand with the side of her fist,
hard, spinning both gun and torch away down the hill. There was
a complicated disarm she had been taught, but in the grip of the
drug all she could think to do was smash. So she smashed.
She roundkicked upwards into the man's stomach, causing
him to double over in agony at the drug enhanced blow, then
kicked him again in the face on its way down. She got a sick
satisfaction from the crunch of bone and the splash of blood as
his nose pulped. The second blow felt like it broke something in
her foot, but she could care less. They'd told her that she'd only
have thirty seconds, at most, under the full effects of the drug and
she intended to make the most of it.
* * *
The little whore was supernaturally fast and so strong it felt
like being hit by a professional kick-boxer. Bezhmel was trained
in hand-to-hand combat, but this was like fighting a rabid
mongoose. He had been taken totally off-guard and couldn't even
start to defend himself as blow after blow came out of nowhere...
* * *
Dropping her kicking foot and stepping forward, Katya
actually turned her back to the man then spun on one foot,
driving the side of her clenched right fist into his right temple
then spinning back the other way for an identical blow to the left.
That one was assisted by the fact that the man's head had been
punched in that direction.
She punched down with one heel into his instep, driving the
stilletto all the way through to the sole of his boot. Then, as he
doubled over in agony at the pain, she punched up with her elbow
to strike his jaw. She heard a crack, that time, that might have
been neck vertebra. She hoped not, she had more mad to get out.
Hopefully it was just lots of teeth.
For now, in this time and in this place, she could let out
every scrap of hatred seared into her soul. This man, this fucker
that worked for the Albanians, he was every man who had ever
raped her, every man who had ever beaten her, every man who
had ever touched her. And she intended to take her full
time, sped up as it was, on this one man. It might be the only
chance she ever got.
* * *
Bezhmel was out on his feet. His eyes were blinded from the
head-blows, a TKO in any boxing rink. But this wasn't boxing,
and the woman clearly wasn't going to go for a simple technical.
It was all that he could do to manage to stand, to try to raise his
arms in pathetic defense, as insanely powerful blow after blow
struck from the darkness...
* * *
Katya, feeling the effects of the drug starting to ebb, kneed
the man in the groin then punched into the solar plexus before he
could even start to double over. Doubly bent, his neck was wide
open and she drove one rock-hard, enhanced-strength, elbow
blow into the back of his neck, dropping him to the ground.
The Kildar had told her that that was often a killing blow,
but the man still was writhing in agony on the ground. Oh, well.
That was easy enough to fix.
She raised one foot and drove the narrow tip of her hated
stiletto heels into the top of the man's neck, just below the skull.
The blow sunk the stiletto all the way up to the base. The man
twitched once, much like a pithed frog, and then was still.
She looked up, startled, as a helicopter raised up from below
the level of the road and slid sideways towards her. She had been
so concentrated on the beating she gave the man, she hadn't even
heard it approach. A spotlight suddenly came on, panning around
until it caught her in its light. She had to shield her eyes, again, at
the brightness.
The helicopter slid sideways, again, lining up its wheels with
the edge of the cliff and Katya could faintly see movement
behind the spotlight. She wasn't sure who it was, but she didn't
really care anymore. She'd had her fun. If it was more of the
Albanian motherfuckers, they could damned well kill her, but she
was never going back into slavery.
"Hey, Katya," Killjoy said casually, walking out of the light.
He was scratching under his armor and if he was perturbed at the
sight of a woman standing on the back of a man's neck with her
high-heel shoved all the way through to his esophagus it didn't
show. "Whatchadoin?"
"Your job, motherfucker," Cottontail replied, finally pulling
her stiletto out of the man's neck. Even over the rotor-wash,
there was an audible "pop." "About time you showed up.
Reinforcements my ass."
Chapter Forty-Seven
Mike tossed the last bag of ill-gotten gains into the
helicopter and waved Oleg and Juris by. He wrinkled his brow at
the two obvious hookers helping the big team leader, but decided
not to mention it.
"You gonna make it, big guy?" Mike asked the team leader,
who was just about shot to shit but still limping along with the
help of the sniper and the two girls, one of whom was carrying an
AK.
"I will be at my wedding, Kildar," Oleg said, grinning. "And
you had better be, too. And so will Catrina and Elena!"
"Glad to meet you," Mike said, making the connection.
"And you, Kildar," the one with the AK said, dropping a
curtsey that slipped her dress up far enough to see pubic hair and
then helping the team leader up the ramp.
"I'll be a monkey's uncle," Mike muttered as
Adams ran up. "Well?"
"All accounted for," Adams said,
not even pausing as he continued up the ramp of the Hip, which
was hovering just off the roof of the club. "Hail and not hail.
And, as you noticed, two recovered Keldara girls."
"Let's go, then," Mike said, stepping up onto the ramp.
"Pilot, shag ass."
As the ramp started to close, he flipped up the safety switch
of the activator and pressed the red plunger. The detonation was
surprisingly muted. They couldn't blow the whole building, there
were girls still on the upper floors, but the basement offices were
well and truly trashed. As he looked around for a seat, though, he
noticed a surprising number of unfamiliar female faces on the
helicopter. Maybe they could have blown the whole building.
"Adams, we appear to have some
stow-aways," Mike said, sitting down on the floor since there
weren't any spare seats.
"The basement rooms were being used as torture chambers
for new girls or girls that had somehow really pissed the boss
off," Adams replied, shrugging in
unconcern. "And, of course, the troops had to run a gauntlet of
girls as they headed for the roof. I guess a few somehow stuck to
them. What did you expect?"
"Nothing less," Mike admitted, looking over at one of the
girls who gave him a tremulous smile of hope. "Nothing less.
They're the Mountain Tigers."
Epilogue
"Senator," Traskel's executive assistant said, looking
through the door. "There's a Mr. Jenkins here to see you. He's..."
"Quite insistent," Mike said, shoving the door open and then
shutting it in the secretary's face. "Hi, John."
"I thought you'd have the good sense to not meet me here,"
the senator said, picking up the phone.
"Oh, I think we can dispense with those games, Senator,"
Mike said, walking over to the desk and slamming the phone, and
the senator's hand, down on the desk so hard they both broke.
"Jesus!" the senator roared, pulling his hand back furiously.
"I"ll have you arrested for that..."
"Oh, I don't think so," Mike said, sitting down and tossing a
packet on the desk. "You see, I found Natalya. And the bastard
you sent to kill her. Who was stupid enough to talk about it. All
of it, senator. Top sheet is a partial transcript."
The senator leaned forward and gingerly opened the manila
envelope with his unbroken hand then started to read the
transcription.
"There's no proof there," he said, hoarsely.
"There's enough to matter," Mike said. "The news media
would be all over it like stink on shit, even if you are their fair-
haired boy. Winston Three-Names was a former aide. He's been
definitely identified by a first hand source as the man who both
murdered a girl in Macedonia
and attempted to frame Senator Fullbright
for it. And despite the voice changer, you can get a partial match.
Between that and the confidential notes when you covered for
him after that incident in
Nigeria
, which are easy enough to leak, you're
toast. Don't even begin to try to fight this or you'll be facing
charges as well as being out of government service."
"What do you want?" the senator growled.
"You're leaving government service," Mike said. "Old war
wound will do. You don't play around behind the scenes, either.
No fundraising, no support for candidates, no quiet little deals,
no lobbying. You are out. O-U-T. Out. Go teach or something,
you're perfect for academia. And you don't have to work for your
salary. Your wife will support you. But one glimmer of a hint
that you're back in the power broker business and that entire file
gets forwarded to every single news outlet on the planet."
"Fuck you," the senator snapped. "There's no way..."
"The Senate leadership have already seen that file," Mike
said, grinning. "If you don't go, you're going to be impeached.
And then it will be all over the news. Charges in impeachment
proceedings have to be open charges. I'd imagine the President's
party would even be able to pick up your seat after that debacle.
Hell, I doubt that your party would be able to keep
New Jersey
. As it is, your party can appoint an interim and he'll
probably be reelected."
"What are they going to do about Winton?" the senator
asked, deflating. "He'll talk. He's too much of a coward not to."
"He's already dealt with," Mike said, standing up. "He had a
little accident in the Balkans. Bandits and such, you know how
troubled it is over there. And if you try to fuck with me or mine,
Senator, overtly or covertly, you'll be dealt with the same way.
Oh, and you owe me five mil," he added. "The number for the
bank account is in the file. Don't be slow on the payments. You
don't want to deal with my collections department."
* * *
"What was the take from the whorehouse?" Pierson asked.
He and Mike had agreed to meet in a
Georgetown
bar after Mike's meeting with Senator Traskel. Mike
had known he was going to need at least one drink afterwards.
Although, the meeting with the Senate leadership had been more
of a ballbuster all things considered.
"Damn near six mil," Mike said, shaking his head. "It turned
out that the club was the central clearing house for most of the
Balkans for that clan. Who ever knew that hookers could
generate so much cash?"
"Not just hookers," Pierson said. "The gang was deep in the
heroin business, apparently. Interpol sent us a very carefully
worded but hearty thank you."
"Nice to know we're appreciated," Mike said, shaking his
head. "And I kinda figured that when we found over six hundred
pounds of the damned stuff in the safe. Which was why most of
the Semtek and incindieries were on top of it."
"Where are you going to start?" Pierson asked, changing the
subject.
"Japan
I think," Mike replied. "They've got the
most files after the US
. You know I'm going to be the one most
hated son-of-a-bitch on earth after this. Shoot the messenger
doesn't even begin to cover it. The US Senate would love to bury
me under the Capitol. Both parties. The leadership meeting was a
real show of bipartisanship."
"You're also going to be one of the most feared," Pierson
pointed out, chuckling. "The people in the know in those nations
– and we're talking about every really major
nation on earth – are not going to want to piss you
off. Not after this. Forget saving Paris
. The general outline of what you and the Keldara did
is already making the rounds of the intelligence and military
services, at least the high-level TS sections. As is the news about
the files. And, believe you me, people are shitting their pants as
they wait for you to turn up. Especially the ones that don't know,
yet, if they're going to be getting visit. Frankly, I'm not sure if
they're more afraid of the files, or you personally."
"Well, I doubt they will ever love me. Most of them are
hypocritical PC motherfuckers with not an ounce of brains
between them. Bear witness that the French threw me out on my
ass after saving their sorry asses. I'm never going to be well liked
by 'the high and mighty' of Traskel's stripe." He stood up and
tossed back his bourbon, then rolled the empty shot-glass
thoughtfully between thumb and forefinger. "Enough, I suppose,
that they fear me."
"You and your Mountain Tigers."
THE END
For more great books visit
http://www.webscription.net
Ringo, John - Choosers Of The Slain - ARC
Choosers of the
Slain-ARC
Advance Reader
Copy Unproofed
Lust, Vengeance and Non-stop Action
Mike Harmon’s commando-quality retainers
agree: their leader, code-named Ghost, is a peculiar one. An ex-
Navy-SEAL, there is no stronghold he cannot penetrate, no
target he can’t take out. But Ghost is also a man
struggling to keep the animal inside at bay and his twisted
sexual desires satisfied with a rock-hard integrity and incredible
force of will.
Now Harmon and his militia have been hired to rescue the
daughter of a powerful political mover in America, kidnapped into the Eastern Europe sex trade.
Welcome to the Balkan Route: a notorious pathway for
human trafficking carved with blood and brutality and passing
through Serbia and Montenegro, Croatia, Albania, Macedonia,
Bosnia-Herzegovina, and Kosovo to the heart of darkness
itself: sexual snuff houses where powerful politicians pay to
rape and murder young women for kicks. Turns out some of
those politicians hail from Washington
, D.C.
But now the Route is about to be re-Routed, and the
balance of power is about to shift dramatically – to the
smoking muzzle of one very angry ex-SEAL’s
M-4.
Sometimes it takes a bad man to destroy an even more
terrible evil. And the baddest of them all is Ghost.
They’ll be sorry they made his girls cry.
John Ringo, veteran of the U.S. Army’s 82nd
Airborne and fivetimes New York Times best-seller
with over a million books in print, delivers another blockbuster
military technothriller with the latest entry in his “
Ghost” saga.
Cover Art by Kurt
Miller
|
Hardcover
This is a work of fiction. All the characters and events
portrayed in this book are fictional, and any resemblance to real
people or incidents is purely coincidental.
First printing, July 2006
Distributed by Simon & Schuster 1230 Avenue
of the Americas
New York, NY
10020
Printed in the United
States of America
|
ISBN-13: 978-1-4165-2070-2 ISBN-10:
1-4165-2070-8
Copyright 2006 by John Ringo
All rights reserved, including the right to reproduce this
book or portions thereof in any form.
A Baen Books Original Baen publishing Enterprises
P.O. Box 1403
Riverdale, NY
10471
http://www.baen.com
Electronic version by WebWrights
http://www.webscription.net
|
DEDICATION:
As always: For Captain Tamara Long, USAF
Born: May 12, 1979
Died: 23 March 2003,
Afghanistan
You fly with the angels now.
|
Choosers of the
Slain-ARC
Chapter One
"Colonel Ushakoff," Mike "Jenkins" said as the unwounded
Chechen prisoners were being unloaded at a Georgian military
prison.
Mike Harmon had been a college student at the
University of
Georgia when he'd witnessed the
kidnapping of a co-ed. Most college students would have picked
up their cell phones, or run to someone that had one, and called
911. But before he was a college student he'd been a SEAL and a
SEAL instructor. So he just jumped on the van and road it to it's
destination.
That move, and a series of similar decisions, had led him to
an underground bunker near Aleppo where
terrorists backed by Syria
had brought American girls to be used as
hostages. And their plans didn't just include holding them, but
torturing them for the cameras to force American units to leave
the Middle East.
Mike had lost one before he realized what the plan was, but
he'd fought his way through to the rest and held the position until
relieved, along the way wiping out a chemical weapons factory,
the Syrian president and Osama Bin Laden.
This had earned him the grateful thanks of a nation, quite a
bit of money and a price on his head from every Islamic terrorism
group on earth. Mike Harmon, Team Name "Ghost", had quietly
disappeared, maybe alive, maybe dead, and Mike Jenkins had
reappeared in his place.
After being the wrong place at the wrong time too many
times, Mike had settled down in the
Republic of Georgia, using part of his reward money to buy a
pleasant little farm with a group of tenant farmers already in
place. However, the security situation in the area being what it
was, he'd taken the opportunity to train the retainers as a local
"militia."
The retainers, called the Keldara, had taken to it like so
many ducks to water. A little digging turned up the fact that the
Keldara were anything but simple farmers. They were, in fact, the
last remnant of the Varangian Guard, the Viking guards of the
Emperors of Byzantium. The group had apparently descended
from a small force of mixed Norse and Scotts-Irish that had
drifted down through the Meditteranean until encountering the
Byzantine Empire.
They farmed quite well but at heart, like the Kurds and the
Ghurkas, they were warriors first and foremost. A couple of
million dollars in equipment and a similar amount in payroll for
trainers and training had turned them into a formidable, if small,
fighting force. They had taken on a Chechen "battalion" at nearly
three to one odds and the prisoners and dead in the Georgian
military trucks were the result.
Mike suspected it wouldn't be the last such battle for the
group called "The Tigers of the Mountains."
"Mr. Jenkins," the Russian attache replied, nodding. "Quite a
battle for a little militia."
"Untrained militia," Mike pointed out. "They were only in
their third week of training. The teams fought them straight off
of their first days of range training."
"How many did you kill?" Ushakoff asked.
"One hundred and three KIA," Mike replied. "Including
some who got froggy when we were in the capture phase. Forty-
two WIA, including some the doctors don't think will survive.
And twenty-one prisoners, unwounded."
"And Breslav?" the Russian asked.
"He, unfortunately, did not survive the encounter," Mike
said, slipping a picture out of his jacket pocket and handing it
over. Breslav had, apparently, been directly in the area of effect
of a claymore since his torso and right arm were missing.
However, his head was still attached and the expression of
surprise was clear on his face. As was the expression of
satisfaction on the face of the Keldara that was holding his head
up by its hair. "I would have liked to capture him for intel
purposes, but you can't always get what you want."
"We are glad enough that he's dead," Ushakoff replied,
smiling at the pic. "Can I keep this?"
"Certainly," Mike said. "It's a photo quality printout,
anyway. We only use digital cameras."
"Three weeks of training, you said?" Ushakoff asked. "I
think that my bosses will be impressed. Very impressed."
"And, of course, the intel we forwarded you," Mike pointed
out. "That stopped his team from entering
Chechnya
. Can I take it we might be able to avoid a
border war?"
"There is still the matter of the Paniski Gorge," Ushakoff
pointed out. "That is where their main bases are."
"I don't think the Keldara will be up to taking that on any
time soon," Mike replied. "But we'll start interdicting their
movements as soon as our training is complete. The Gorge will
be a matter between you and the government of Georgia
."
"I'll pass all of this on," Ushakoff said, pocketing the
picture. "And I give you the thanks of Russia
, for what it's worth."
"Oh, I'm sure it will have some use in the future," Mike said,
smiling faintly. "You scratch my back, I scratch yours. Take care,
colonel."
* * *
"Back into training again," Nielson said in a satisfied tone.
"Nothing like a little live fire exercise to get the blood pumping
and the troops motivated, but now they're going to think they
know it all."
Colonel Robert Nielson was the senior officer of the group
Mike had hired to train the Keldara. The colonel's field
credentials were impeccable but he was, at heart, a trainer. He
loved taking soft clay and molding it into soldiers. As such he'd
been a very good choice to lead the training, although some of
the trainers, notably the SEAL and Marine Recon members, had
questioned having a regular Army guy in charge. That was until
they started to see the results.
Mike had been flown back to the serai, courtesy of the
Georgian government which was being remarkably friendly at the
moment. He'd consistently tried to downplay the Keldara, but
having a fraction of their force wipe out a Chechen "battalion"
was, he was told, being discussed at the highest levels. It had also
made the international news, although the story for press
consumption was a special Georgian commando group. Which,
in a way, they were.
"Get that out of their system with a good, solid After Action
Review," Mike said. "I'll be on the grill, too."
"Everyone was involved," Nielson pointed out. "Who
conducts it?"
Mike started to answer when his sat-phone started to ring.
"Jenkins," he said.
"Pierson, go scramble."
"Scrambled, how's it going, colonel?" Mike replied when the
system was in place.
"I thought it was going to be a year before you were fully in
the groove?" Pierson said. "What's with making network news?"
Colonel Robert Pierson had been Mike's "control" ever
since his first mission in Syria
. The colonel just happened to be the guy
picked to talk on the phone with some madman who had traced
the kidnapped co-eds half way across the world. Since then he'd
received similar calls from Mike and made a few in the other
direction. He never ordered Mike, who was after all a free agent,
he just suggested or in a few cases pleaded. He was less a
"control" than an information conduit. And in a way a friend.
"We did?" Mike asked, frowning.
"Slow news day," Pierson pointed out. "And the Chechens
are still a bug-a-boo after Breslan. Apparently the guy you
wacked had a small piece of setting that up. At least, according to
CNN."
"Nice of them to tell us," Mike said, rolling his eyes at
Nielson.
"Seriously, what did you do, use all the trainers?" Pierson
asked.
"No, it was mostly Keldara," Mike replied. "Their first FTX.
Right off of their first two days on the range. The mortar girls
had had more range time, but not much."
"Jesus Christ," Pierson said, wonderingly. "How far are you
into training?"
"Three, four weeks," Mike said. "Depending upon whether
you consider that training. Colonel Nielson doesn't."
"I didn't say that," Nielson said with a sniff. "Just that it's
interfered a bit."
"Well, the boss man said 'Good job' followed by 'next time,
try to avoid the papers.'"
"Tell him I said thanks," Mike replied. "Anything else?"
"Just that," Pierson said. "I'll add my own 'good job.' Take
care."
"Will do," Mike replied. "See ya."
"We were talking about an after action review," he
continued, looking at Nielson.
"I was thinking it might make sense to ask DC," Nielson
replied, gesturing at the phone with his chin.
"Thought about it," Mike said. "Too many fingers in the pie.
You'll work up the AAR. Include me in
the review as well as yourself. Get Adams and a couple of the
instructors to do a forensic of the shoot site. I want a count of
every round expended and a probable of who shot who. Work
them all down and show them exactly what they did wrong. And I
did wrong. Start with my forgetting to bring the mortars; I'm not
used to having to think about integral heavies. And we had a
major problem at one point with commo control. I want that hit
heavy, along with the fact that it slowed down the pursuit, and I
want Vanner to get started on what we can do about team freqs
and sub-freqs. When Oleg told them to move by odd and evens,
the security guys wanted to get out and pursue. That has to be
covered, too."
"Will do," Nielson said, sighing. "Can I have Kat to assist?"
"Go for it," Mike replied. "Hot wash tomorrow, full AAR with all teams by the end of the week."
"Got it," Nielson said. "I'll get started."
* * *
"Vanner," Mike said, sticking his head in the radio room.
Vanner was pointing to something on one of the computer
screens with his head nearly touching that of the Keldara female
working the computer. Mike wasn't sure who she was, but he
was pretty sure she was a Makanee.
"Kildar?" the intel NCO said, spinning around.
The term "Kildar" was what Mike was called by the Keldara
but it had caught on with others. It was a unique name for the
local warlord, translating as something like "baron." What it
meant, simply, was leader of the Keldara and that was enough for
those who had come to know them.
Patrick Vanner was a former Marine, but Mike tried not to
hold it against him. The guy was plentiful hardcore, but he was,
nonetheless, the designated team geek. He'd been an intercept
specialist in the Marines then worked for the NSA for a while.
After getting out he picked up a degree in computer science
which was almost superfluous to his actual knowledge, which
when it came to electronics and electronic intel was enormous.
Short, stocky and crew-cut, he was proof positive that you could
take the boy out of the Marines but not the Marines out of the
boy.
"Got a couple of questions," Mike said, gesturing for him to
follow him out of the room. Mike led the way to the war room
and grabbed a seat.
"You look like you're getting pretty friendly with some of
the Keldara girls," Mike said, raising an eyebrow.
"Is that why you wanted to see me?" Vanner asked,
frowning.
"No, but I figure I should ask about it," Mike replied.
"Galina and I are just friends," Vanner said, shaking his
head. "She's really good at picking out freqs. I'm being very
proper in all my dealings with her. Speaking of which, I know
these girls are being paid for this, but is there some way we can
get them rank? They're doing the job of commo and intel techs,
which in the military would make them privates or specialists."
"I'll think about it," Mike said. "But watch yourself. I don't
want some Keldara Father on my case over a pregnant daughter.
Or even one that could be pregnant, if you get my drift."
"Got it," Vanner said.
"On the real reason I wanted to talk to you," Mike
continued. "We had a real breakdown in commo on the op. Not a
breakdown, exactly, but..."
"The team net got filled with chatter," Vanner said, nodding.
"That's partially a matter of training so they don't just jump on
the radio."
"I'd like more," Mike said. "Sub freqs for the sub-teams, a
general freq for the whole team, then on up. Something where the
commander doesn't have to think about it to pass stuff down,
though, and can listen in on the chatter. Also, I want to start
working on a battle net. Something where call-for-fire, at least by
those with the right equipment, is point and click. Probably with
a voice back-up and confirm, but I want to be able to point to a
spot on a map and say: 'Send fire there.' I'd also like to be able to
sketch out movements for the teams."
"I can get all that," Vanner said. "Some of it's off-the-shelf
and unclass but some of it's classified US and European systems,
mostly US."
"I think we can swing that," Mike said. "You find the system
and I'll get permission for us to get it. Keep an eye on whether it
can be integrated into US battlefield systems. If we end up in a
situation where we can call for fire from God, I'd like to be able
to do it. Look around at some of the firms that do C2 and offer
free field trials," he added, grinning. "Try to get a deal; it's not
going to be cheap gear."
"Will do," Vanner said. "Anything else?"
"If you and Galina get to be more than friends, tell me first,"
Mike said, seriously. "I'll see what I can do with the Keldara.
Unless it's a lot more than friendship, in which case you'll be
going home with a mother-in-law."
"Wasn't planning on it," Vanner said, frowning. "But it's a
thought. She sure as hell is gorgeous."
"And she can cook," Mike said, nodding. "But she'd have to
adapt to an entire new culture. A very, very different one. Think
about it carefully."
"I will," Vanner said.
"Now we're done," Mike replied, grinning. "Take care."
* * *
"What we're going to do here, is go over the action you just
engaged in just like any other test," Nielson said to the gathered
Keldara. The hot-wash on the action was being conducted team
by team, taking the whole day to go over known faults. They'd
started with Team Oleg as the one that had been involved in the
most combat. They were using one of the basement rooms in the
serai for the review and it was packed with the Keldara sitting on
folding chair and looking nervous. "We will do one of these after
every action, so get used to them.
"The first thing to say, and I'll say it again and again, is that
you did very well," Nielson continued, looking around at the
group. "Especially since you are in the middle of training. But
there's no such thing as perfect. This is a method to get closer and
closer, though, if you pay attention. Right now, Chief Adams and
Sergeants Fletcher, Graff and McKenzie are walking over the
skirmish area and working up the full review. What we're doing
today is called the hot-wash. We'll be going over individual and
unit actions as they are known and determining what we can do
better the next time. I'll start with ammunition expenditure."
He pulled up a list with a graph on the computer screen on
the wall and pointed to a couple of high points.
"There were over sixty rounds of 7.62 expended per casualty
that was found to have been shot," Nielson said, pointing at the
two graphs. "Not a total of sixty rounds, but sixty rounds per
casualty. The low round count was Oleg, which, given that he
shouldn't have been firing at all, was pretty good at only fifteen
rounds. Oleg, why did you fire?"
"I...wasn't doing anything else, Colonel," the team leader
said, uncomfortably.
"You were supposed to be paying attention to everyone
else's actions," Nielson said, shaking his head. "Chief Adams is,
trust me, much more accurate than you are in a fight like that.
But he expended no rounds because he knew he wasn't there to
fight. He was there to observe and control. You are given a
weapon for one purpose only; self defense or something that you
have to shoot at because you can't get one of the shooters to do it
in time. That is it. Period. I can't imagine a reason for you to have
expended even one round in this engagement. Did any of the
enemy get close to your bunker?"
"No, sir," Oleg admitted, dropping his head.
"Keep your head next time," Nielson said. "You're there to
control the flow of the battle. If you have to, lead from the front
if you're directly attacked; if you have to engage due to time
constraints, you can engage. Otherwise, keep your finger off the
trigger! Beso!"
"Sir!" the Keldara said, sitting bolt upright. He'd been bent
over talking to the Keldara next to him.
"Three hundred and eighty-six rounds?" Nielson said, clearly
amazed. "How in the hell did you expend three hundred and
eight-six rounds?"
* * *
The day after the hot wash they took all six teams out and
walked the ground, looking over what they could have done
better. Mike determined that Nielson was just better at picking
out details on stuff like this than he was. Everything from the
timing on when he'd pulled in Vil to when he'd sent Killjoy and
Vanim down the hill was reviewed and critiqued.
The third day was a final review held in the main dining
room of the serai. Mike had had more tables and chairs brought
in and there was just room for all the militia and the trainers.
They'd even brought in the females from the mortar section who
were sitting at a separate table with their trainers. The girls were
looking smug as cats at being included in "guy talk."
"Kildar," Nielson said. "Could you stand up?"
"Here it comes," Mike noted to Adams , standing up at the head of the table.
"The recon movement to the observation point was good,"
Nielson said. "No major flaws there except a lack of putting your
point out far enough during the movement. No trash found at
your bivouac of the first night although there was debris at the
main OP on the hilltop. I won't get into your choice of targets for
the sniper operations; that is idiosyncratic and depends upon
human factors I won't argue. However, your timing on
withdrawal was quite bad. You very nearly got flanked by the
pursuit party, you're aware of that?"
"Yes, I am," Mike said, nodding. "I took a few more shots
than I should have."
"Arguably, you should not have been shooting," Nielson
pointed out. "You should have been spotting and controlling and
let Lasko shoot."
"I wasn't sure that would work," Mike said. "The ranges
were longer than he'd trained on. I wanted to make sure the sniper
fire was good enough to really sting them. But I did pull out too
late."
"Your movement, given the closeness of the pursuit, was
about par," Nielson said, pointing to the map. "Why did you
choose to be the bait and send Praz and Lasko directly up the
mountain?"
"I was in better shape to run," Mike said, shrugging. "Praz
and Lasko weren't up to my level of condition. As it turned out,
they probably could have made it just as well, but it was a tough
hump. In the situation, I took the danger point."
"On reaching the ambush point you took one of the security
bunkers for your position," Nielson said. "Why? You couldn't
maintain view of the battle from there."
"I was following Chief Adams' direction," Mike said. "I
assume that the pursuit party was close enough that
Adams just wanted me to get to ground and that was
the nearest bunker."
"In the planning stage you failed to consider the mortars for
support," Nielson said, checking off an item on the list.
"Agreed," Mike said. "I'd thought of them solely in terms of
fixed position use. I'm glad you remembered them," he added to
chuckles through the room.
"Which brings us to the most critical danger point in this
action: command and control," Nielson said. "The true
commander of the mission was the Kildar. But he was forward
deployed and in action for the majority of the mission. I was
managing the battle, but I wasn't in command. The Kildar should
have either relinquished command of the battle or moved to a
position that he could manage all the pieces. It worked, because
the Kildar and I could work together very well. But one or the
other of us should have been designated for command and that
person should have been in a position to control the flow of the
battle."
"I'll comment on that," Mike said, stepping to the front. "I
intend to always command from near the front if at all possible.
My intention is to make that possible through better technology.
But, yes, in this instance I was without effective maps and didn't
really know where the pieces were. Colonel Nielson ran this
battle and did so quite well."
"Damned straight," Chief Adams said, loudly, starting the
applause.
Mike waited for the applause of the grinning Keldara to die
and then waved at the group.
"You've completed your first action and your first after
action review," Mike said, grinning. "And I'm sure you'd rather be
back in combat than having it nit-picked." He waited again for
the chuckles to die down then nodded. "Again, you did well. And
if we keep this up, each time you'll do better. But, for tonight,
you have met the enemy and survived. There is a custom among
the military that from time they have a dinner for only their unit,
called a dining-in. There are various customs, which we'll work
on as time passes. But for tonight, you are the guests of the
Kildar. Tomorrow, of course, you're back in training. So . . .
watch the beer."
"Kildar," one of the men said, glancing over at the two
tables of women. "What about the women? Are they to be
serving?"
"Not if you want fire support next time, Viktor Shaynav!"
one of the women yelled back. Which elicited a room full of
belly laughs at Viktor's expense.
"No," Mike said, as the doors opened and his various "girls"
came in bearing trays. "Tonight you will be served by the women
of the Kildar in thanks for being loyal retainers and some of the
finest soldiers it has been my pleasure to serve with."
* * *
"Christ, I can't believe you got it finished so fast," Mike said,
standing on the top of the dam. The outer slope and top had even
been seeded and covered in straw to prevent erosion while the
inner slope was covered in clay. The weir hadn't been closed, yet,
so the stream at the base still flowed freely. But all that took was
turning wheel. It was barely four weeks after the battle and the
whole thing was in place.
"I've even got most of the houses wired with some fumble
fingered help from the Keldara," Meller said, proudly. "The big
difference was getting the additional equipment."
"What about the channel to bring the other stream over?"
Mike said. It was clear the streams hadn't been joined up, yet.
"I used the spare Keldara to put a temporary dam in up
there," Meller said. "Then I blasted the channel. It created an
embayment so the hydrostatic force wouldn't be so bad. We'll
partially fill this with the current stream then open that up,
slowly, to add that stream in. That dam will probably wash away
in the spring, but by then you won't need it. You want to do the
honors?" the engineer concluded, waving at the wheel that
controlled the weir. The controls were propped out over the
water on a pier and had an automatic lifting device for when the
water rose too high.
"No," Mike said, shaking his head. "You built it. You close
it."
"Okay," Meller said, happily. He stepped out onto the pier
and calmly spun the wheel, dropping the metal plate into its slot
and stopping the water from the stream which immediately
started to back up. "We'll open up the other one in a few days
when this gets about six feet deep."
"How long to fill it?" Mike asked.
"About two weeks," Meller said. "At which point you and
the Keldara will have your power. And we can start running
water lines to the houses as soon as we get material."
"Start on that next," Mike said, nodding. "We'll have to
figure out something for treatment; this stuff isn't drinkable as
is."
"Chlorine's cheap," Meller said, shrugging. "I'll look into it."
Chapter Two
"It's nice to mostly have the house back," Mike said, walking
into the dining room. Nielson was drinking tea and looking over
some paper while Adams was finishing
off a plate of ham and eggs.
"Fewer fights over the girls," Adams said.
The Keldara were well into their patrolling phase of training
and that required fewer instructors. With "basic" over, most of
the trainers had left. A few were still around for patrolling and
advanced training and some, like Adams, Nielson and Vanner,
looked to be permanent additions. But the house was definitely
less full than it had been. Especially with most of the trainers out
running the Keldara around the mountains.
"The girls" were local hookers that Mike had hired for the
aid and comfort of poor trainers far from the joys of home. The
owner of the local brothel had given Mike a good deal on long
term rental eventually giving up the business entirely.
Four of the five girls were completely standard
Third World working girls. Three of them were from
the local area farms, girls with no better prospect than being
working girls for the rest of their lives, while the other two were
Russians. One of those, Katya, was somewhat different.
Poisonously mean when she could get away with it, the girl had
never adjusted to being "owned" in the way that was common in
the area.
Mike, who had nicknamed her "Cottontail", was slowly
shifting her out of being a working girl and into pursuits more
suited for her high level intelligence and utter sociopathy. He
wasn't sure what he was going to do with her long term, the
option of putting her in an unmarked grave was still out there,
but he saw lots of potential in the girl if he could just trust her
even a bit.
That, however, would not be a smart thing to do.
"Speaking of the girls," Mike said. "I'm going to move
Cottontail fully into intel. I wish we had a good Humint trainer
around, I think Katya would probably be a good agent."
"If you could trust anything she gave you," Nielson pointed
out, looking up from his papers. "Could you?"
"Depends on what was in it for her," Mike said, shrugging.
"She really hates Chechens, probably more than she hates the rest
of the world. If we use her to develop Humint in the Chechen
region it might work."
"She'll need to learn Arabic," Adams said, wiping his plate with a biscuit.
"Berlitz has a course available," Mike said. "Of course, that
means letting her out of the house. Hell, I'll give her a handful of
cash and tell her she can go if she wants. Win/win proposition."
"What about 'your' girls?" Nielson asked.
In addition to the hookers, Mike had more or less inherited a
harem. Sexual slavery was rife in the region and most of it was
controlled by the Chechens who used it, along with drugs, as
funding for their ongoing war with the Russians. Most of the
girls were bought from orphanages or their parents since the
farmers in the region could get nearly a year's income for
otherwise "useless" women. But the Chechens weren't above
snatching a girl off the street.
One such group had snatched one of the Keldara girls from
the local town where she had gone to market. When they took off
in their van they passed right by Mike's caravanserai.
He had taken five shots from a Barrett .50 caliber to stop the
van, fortunately missing the girls all in the back. Then he and the
reaction team of trainers had taken down the two Chechens in the
van.
This left Mike with nine girls ranging in age from twelve to
seventeen on his hands. Inquiries had indicated that they were no
deposit, no return; the various farms that had sold them had no
interest in getting them back. After discussing the situation with
his local advisers, Mike had accepted that the best course of
action was to take them in as concubines. He'd considered
various alternatives, but none of them would really work. He'd
drawn the line at breaking in the really young ones, but the rest
now were his bed warmers.
However, he'd immediately seen the problem with having a
house full of teenaged girls to manage. So he'd gone to Uzbekistan
, where harems were traditional, and hired
a professional harem manager. Anastasia had turned out to have
far more skills than just harem management. Not only was she
great in the sack, she spoke multiple languages and was at home
in almost any social environment.
Mike had also hired a female tutor for the girls. His long
term plan was to get them trained to a level that they could get
into college and get a "real" life. But in the meantime, he couldn't
exactly bitch about having five very good looking teenage screw-
bunnies at his beck and call.
"None of them are the right mindset to set on something like
this," Mike replied. "But Anastasia is fluent in Arabic. Maybe I'll
have her teach Cottontail."
"Be careful what she teaches her," Adams said, without looking up. "You might get a very nasty
surprise."
"Are you talking about Anastasia teaching Katya or the other
way around?" Nielson asked, grinning.
"Yes."
* * *
"Genadi," Mike said, as he pulled up in his Expedition next
to the farm manager. "I haven't spoken to you in weeks. How
goes the farm?"
When Mike had bought the Keldara farm, which essentially
meant the entire multi-thousand acre valley, he had been less than
satisfied with the overseer that came with it. In short, Otar was a
blow-hard and a bully that didn't know his ass from a hole in the
ground. The local police chief had turned up Genadi, who was
not only school trained in agronomy but a member of the
Keldara. He and Genadi had had a run-in and the former manager
had forced him off the farm, to the level of having him thrown
out of the Keldara.
Mike was impressed by the young man. He knew the
problems of farming in the valley with its very short season, but
he was also more than willing to bring in modern techniques and
equipment to improve conditions. He was also willing to face
down the Keldara elders over his changes. The Keldara were
open to many new ideas and ways of doing things while being
dead stubborn on others and many of the elders thought that
Genadi was going to starve them all with his new seeds, planting
methods, fertilizers and "herbicides." After all, anything that
killed the weeds would certainly kill the crops. This year was
going to be a test of how well he knew his stuff. Mike was
betting that things would go well.
"I could use some hands," Genadi admitted. "When are the
younger men going to be free for work again?"
"Not for a few weeks," Mike said, frowning. "What do you
need?"
"Small things, but numerous," the farm manager answered.
"Some trenching that I can't get a backhoe into, some fixing on
the barns that requires strong backs. The old men are doing well,
as are the women, but there is only so much they can do."
"We've got a break in the training schedule coming up the
end of the week," Mike said, frowning. "I'll see about gettting
that break extended from a few days to maybe two weeks. I want
them to have a break before we go to patrol phase two. That's
going to be a ball buster."
"I'll put it off until then," Genadi said, nodding. "And make
sure they have a break towards the end."
"Great," Mike said, grinning. "How's the crop?"
"Even Father Mahona admits that the grains are coming in
well," Genadi replied, smiling broadly. "And the peas are nearly
ready to harvest. We'll do that with the combine so I won't need
the young men. Before it would have taken everyone stripping
the plants, but the combine has an attachment that does it for us.
Then replant in beets for the fall crop."
"Whatever," Mike said, admitting that he knew nothing
about farming.
"It goes well," Genadi said, smiling back. "Very well."
"Good," Mike replied. "That's all I needed to hear anyway."
"The farm goes well," the farm manager said, frowning
slightly, "but there is another problem."
"What now?" Mike asked, sighing.
"Father Makanee and Father Kulcyanov would like to meet
with you, privately," Genadi said. "It is a very private reason, for
the Kildar only. Not involving the militia."
"Today?" Mike asked, puzzled.
"Soon," Genadi said, shrugging. "Not right away. Any time
this week or next week would do."
"Going to hint about what?" Mike asked, smiling.
"I think they need to discuss it with you," Genadi said,
shrugging. "It is for them to say."
"Day after tomorrow do?" Mike asked. "Afternoon?"
"That is fine," Genadi replied.
* * *
Mike entered the caravanserai and looked around the foyer.
Two of the harem, Tinata and Azhela, were sitting in the foyer
area playing a game involving small colored pebbles. Tinata was
a sixteen-year-old with flamboyantly large breasts and flaming
red hair that was quite natural. Mike knew for sure and certain
that the curtains matched the rug. Azhela was smaller with fine,
light brown hair and a smaller chest that, nonetheless, was quite
noticeable on her smaller frame.
In a move that made sense to him at the time, he'd had
Anastasia obtain uniforms for the girls. They were essentially
"school-girl" uniforms, white shirt, blue and green plaid skirts
and low-quarter shoes, which had advantages and disadvantages.
It cut down on the petty bickering about who got to wear what on
what day, and who was prettiest which was a major point of
contention among the girls. However, as with many males, the
"school-girl" look was a major turn-on. It didn't help that they
were, essentially, real school girls. As usual when the girls
popped to their feet, skirts swirling, their shirts straining their
buttons, smiling, bright-eyed and bushy-tailed and obviously
quite willing to satisfy his every desire, whatever important
problem had been on his mind went right out the window. The
braces that many of them now sported didn't help matters.
Mike dragged his eyes away from Tinata's remarkably fine
breasts and shook his head.
"I think I need to dress you girls in chadours," he said,
smiling to show it was a joke. "But could one of you ask
Anastasia to meet me in my office whenever it's convenient for
her?"
"Yes, Kildar," Tinata said, curtseying slightly and bowing
her head in a gesture of meekness that Mike knew was an act. The
girl was an absolute minx in bed. "I'll go summon her directly."
"Don't bother her if she's doing anything important," Mike
said, heading for his office.
"Shall I come back with her, Kildar?" Tinata asked, looking
at him out of the corner of one eye.
"No," Mike said, definitely. "But don't go far. I haven't got
anything scheduled this afternoon."
* * *
"You asked to see me, Kildar?" Anastasia said as she entered
his office.
The harem manager had been a member of an Uzbek sheik's
harem since she was twelve. She was tall and refined with long,
lovely, blonde hair and blue eyes with a slight epicanthic fold.
Fine boned with the face of an angel, she could have made money
as a supermodel. Instead she had been immured in a harem for
fourteen years with rare opportunities to get out; the flight to
Georgia
had actually been her first flight on an
airplane.
She was trained, and naturally skilled, at managing groups of
girls. However, she had few other skills. Since she was getting a
bit long in the tooth for the tastes of the sheik, all of twenty-six,
she was looking at being either given away as a bride to some
retainer or being sent off with a chunk of money to find a new
life. The "new life" would probably be a madame in a
whorehouse, given that she didn't know anything else.
The job offer from Mike had been like a gift from heaven.
Not only did Mike need a manager, he was far less controlling
than the sheik and more than willing to include her in his travels.
Then there was the fact that Anastasia was a serious masochistic
submissive. The sheik had never had a strong enough hand with
the whip in her opinion and was otherwise rather uninteresting in
bed, generally going for "wham, bam, thank you ma'am" but not
even staying awake for the "thank you" part. Mike was a serious
dom and more than willing to satisfy that side of her sexual
personality. Then there was the fact that he considered it a duty
and a pleasure to make a woman have a good time in the sack.
For Anastasia the last months had been heaven. Her only
complaint was that Mike still hadn't set up the bondage dungeon
in the old cellars he'd promised her.
"I want you to start working more with Katya," Mike said,
waving her to a chair. "I know she's working with Vanner, but I
want you to start training her in Arabic."
"I already have been," Anastasia said, smiling. "And German
and French. She already speaks Russian and more English than
she's willing to admit. I started teaching her other languages to
keep her busy. When she's learning, she isn't so much of a
problem. And she is very smart. Smarter than I am, I have to
admit. She soaks up information and has a remarkable memory."
"Especially for slights," Mike said, sighing. "But that's good.
I want you to concentrate on Arabic and Chechen dialects of
Russian and Arabic for the time being. Get her able to understand
it, clearly, no matter how garbled."
"I understand," Anastasia said, nodding. "Are you sure you
can trust her?"
"No," Mike admitted. "But leave that for me to worry about.
I'll set it up as a win/win proposition. She can do the mission, or
she can run. She won't have enough information to do us serious
harm."
"She has been working with Vanner," Anastasia pointed out.
"She knows about your intercept capability."
"So do the Chechens," Mike pointed out, sourly. "The
Russians leaked it to them."
"But she knows details," Anastasia argued.
"We can change codes after she leaves," Mike said. "And that
won't be soon. I'll pull her out of Vanner's section and set her to
learning. For that matter, I'll see what I can scrounge up in the
way of manuals on infiltration and espionage. I think she'd be
good at it. And if she cuts and runs instead, well, then we don't
have to worry about her anymore."
"There is that," Anastasia said, smiling. "So, when do I get
my bondage dungeon?"
"I'll put it on my construction list," Mike said, grinning.
"But this afternoon, I've made another date."
"Tinata," Anastasia said, nodding. "I'd wondered why she
was looking so happy."
* * *
Mike lay the red-head down on the bed and leaned down to
gently kiss her on the neck.
All the girls knew his tastes by this point and Tinata had
changed into a pair of five inch spike sandals. She moaned and
twisted aside as he tickled her neck with his tongue, sliding
around to reach for his crotch.
"Not so fast, young one," Mike chuckled, sitting down next
to her. "We've got all afternoon."
"That is very good," Tinata said, turning her eyes aside in
mock shyness. "I can wear you out."
"Good luck," Mike chuckled again, kissing her neck and then
digging his tongue into the juncture of her shoulder and neck.
There was a muscle there with a nerve running along it that
generally got women juicing and Tinata moaned again as his
tongue dug firmly into the nerve juncture.
He slid his hand up her stomach, untucking her shirt and
began unbuttoning it. He occasionally just tore one off, he
owned the uniforms after all, but this time he was taking his
time. Tinata enjoyed being pinned but wasn't into full bondage
and still freaked out a bit when he got too rough. She enjoyed a
bit of dominance but that didn't mean she was a full BDSM
freak. The last two times they'd been together he'd only had time
for a quickie. She orgasmed, but barely. He intended to drive her
nuts this afternoon. And he had a secret weapon: she was really
turned on by giving head.
He slowly unbuttoned her blouse while continuing to suckle
at her neck, occasionally putting one hand on her upper arm. The
spread of goosebumps was a good indicator of how interested
the girl was and this one had bumps to her elbow, good sign.
As the bra came off he slid down her chest, still teasingly,
and slowly worked his way around her breasts. They really were
quite magnificent, solid and natural DDs but still so young and
fresh they were nearly as hard as fakes. They were also quite
sensitive and by the time he'd finally worked his way to the
nipples, sucking and licking on one while his hand worked the
other, she was moaning.
He suddenly reached up and grasped her hair, slithering
around so that he was on his back and she was up on her knees.
"Do me," he ordered, pushing her head down towards his
crotch.
Tinata let out another moan and slid his pants down,
bringing out his member. She began by slowly licking along the
base, working her way up with light flicks of her tongue.
He reached past her arm and cradled one of those
magnificent breasts, stroking it lightly with the balls of his
fingers as she began to fellate him. The combination of her fetish
for head and the sensitivity of her breasts caused her to stop for a
moment, just shuddering, as she ran her cheek up and down his
dick.
"Keep going," Mike said, grabbing her by the hair and sliding
her lips back over his cock. "I didn't say you could stop."
He quit playing with her tits and reached around, grabbing
her ass and dragging it closer so he could reach between her legs.
He slid his hand under her cotton panties and up onto her clit,
stroking her labia and clit lightly.
Tinata started to stop again, shuddering too hard to go on,
but he had retained his hold on her hair and he began forcing her
up and down on his dick as his finger plunged into her slit.
The girl began to rock and moan while keeping up the
suction, as he timed the thrusts at both ends keep up a constant
state of sexual tension. When he judged she just couldn't take any
more he pulled her up, ripped her panties off and took her, hard.
Pulling one of her legs up he thrust, hard, all the way into
her until their pelvis bones met squarely on her clit, elicting a
moan of pleasure and a gasp. Tinata had her eyes closed and was
already starting to rock into him as he began to pound, hard. He
tried very hard not to concentrate on the fact that he was fucking
the hell out of a teenage red-head with really great tits. He didn't
want to cum until he'd worn her flat out. When he started to feel
himself getting close he'd think about multiplication tables. That
always got him to back off.
He grabbed her wrists, pinning above her head with one hand
then started stroking her tits as he thrust. He just used his thumb
on the left nipple, brushing it in time with his thrusts.
That really got the girl going. She kept thrusting against him,
moaning and crying in pleasure until she came, suddenly and
quite vocally, letting out a shriek of pain and pleasure that was
surely heard all over the caravanserai.
Mike stopped immediately, letting her get her breath back.
He'd been working out ever since he took over the caravanserai
and wasn't even winded, yet.
"You okay?" he asked, looking at her as she opened her eyes.
"Oh, yes," Tinata breathed then laughed. "I am very okay."
"Good," Mike said, sliding back into her. "I'm barely
started."
"Oh, God!" Tinata gasped, lying back and quivering as his
thrusts caused the aftershocks from her orgasm to crescendo.
"Have mercy, Kildar!"
"Not hardly," Mike answered, gruffly.
This time he took more time, not just hammering in and out
but varying the pace and movement. He would thrust slow and
long, all the way in, for five thrusts then pick up the pace over a
few more series until he was hitting in a rapid fire he called
"bunny fucking." After the bunny fuck he'd back off again.
By this time, Tinata wasn't in any control any more at all.
She was just orgasming in rapid sequence, especially as the
bunny fucks hit. From time to time he'd back off for a bit to let
her gain some equilibrium then go back to it before she could
even get a word out. If she could talk, she wasn't fully in the
moment from his point of view.
When he got a little tired he slid over to the side, still
maintaining penetration, and rearranged their limbs so he could
lie on his side. Her right leg was over his left and his right over
hers with contact maintained in the middle. He slid her right arm
under his body and pinned her other arm behind her head with his
left hand. This left his right hand free and he began stroking her
nipples again as he continued to slide in and out.
"Kildar..." the girl gasped. "Please..."
"Please, what?" Mike asked, slowing down but not stopping.
"I...please...," the girl whimpered. "No more..."
"Just a little more," Mike said, evilly, sliding his hand down
to her crotch.
"Nooo..." Tinata whimpered as his finger slid over her clit
and started working it.
Mike began hammering her, hard, as his finger continued to
work her clit. Suddenly she let out a shriek and began writhing in
his grasp at which point he stopped, withdrawing his hand.
"Oh..." the girl said, lying supine on the bed. "Oh...God..."
"Was that okay?" Mike asked, curiously.
"Okay?" Tinata said, opening her eyes. "I can't see! I can't see
anything! I'm blind!"
"Low blood flow to the optic nerve," Mike said, gently. "It
passes. You'll get over it."
"That's easy for you to say!" Tinata replied. "Does that mean
that this has happened with you before?"
"To women I've been with," Mike admitted.
"You are a danger to all women, Kildar," Tinata said,
chuckling throatily.
"So I've been told."
"I think I can see some light, now."
"See, it's passing," Mike said, sliding out.
"Ooooo..." the girl gasped. "Warn a woman next time!"
"Why? It's more fun if it's by surprise," Mike said, getting
out of bed. "Want something to drink?"
"I should be serving you," Tinata pointed out.
"Be a little hard at the moment," Mike said, opening up the
fridge. "Coke?"
"Please," Tinata said, sitting up and fumbling to pull a
pillow behind her. "I've never been blind before. It's not nice."
"But it's passing, yes?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Tinata admitted. "I can see shapes."
"Here," Mike said, putting the open coke bottle in her hand.
She fumbled at it and lifted it to her lips, carefully.
"That's good," she said, smiling. "I'm seeing better."
"Good," Mike said, taking a pull off of his own Coke. "As
soon as you can see clearly, we'll start again."
"So you can make me blind again?" Tinata asked, laughing.
"If I can," Mike admitted, smiling. "Are you saying it wasn't
fun? Besides, you never finished your blowjob."
Over the next four hours he screwed Tinata through three
applications of lubricant and various complaints of swelling,
along with more orgasms than the poor girl could count. Only
when she was entirely spent and supine did he finally allow
himself to cum. And it was a hard one, fully curling his toes.
"Kildar..." Tinata said as he slid a towel under her, gently, to
catch the outflow.
"Hmmm?" Mike asked, pulling her to cuddle into his
shoulder.
"Wonderful..."
"Shhh," Mike said. "Sleep."
Mike lay there, thinking about his task list, until her
breathing was regular and it was clear she was deeply asleep.
Then he slid out of bed, carefully arranging a pillow under her
head, and put on his clothes. He had plenty of work he should
have been doing, but sometimes you just had to take time to
make sure the harem was happy.
Chapter Three
"Okay, buddy, what do you take?" Adams asked when Mike got to his office. The former chief was
sitting in one of the chairs with his feet up, apparently awaiting
his arrival.
"What do you mean?" Mike asked, sitting down and clearing
his screensaver with his password.
"I timed it, this time," Adams said.
"Three hours and forty-seven minutes from the first shriek until
your door opened. I mean, are you getting black market Viagra or
something?"
"I don't need Viagra," Mike said, shrugging and pulling up
the spreadsheet on Keldara costs. He'd made a pretty penny from
killing wanted terrorists and "securing" a few nukes that
otherwise would have left large holes in cities. But the Keldara
were costing like crazy and it was just amazing how fast the
money bled away.
"Oysters?" Adams asked.
"Christ, you're not going to let this go, are you?" Mike
asked, leaning back in his chair.
"How many times did she come, anyway?"
Adams asked. "The shrieks were getting pretty muted
by the end."
"I don't know," Mike admitted, trying not to grin. "I only
counted the times she went blind. That was three."
"Good Lord," the chief said, shaking his head. "So, give.
What are you taking?"
"Nothing," Mike said. "I don't take anything. I just don't
allow myself to come."
"How?" Adams asked,
exasperatedly. "I mean, Tinata is..."
"A knock-out," Mike finished. "A certified virgin the first
time I screwed her, pretty as hell, great tits and a tight pussy. I
just think of other things when I think I'm going to come. And
keep going. For as long as I want."
"What? Dead puppies?" Adams
asked, curiously.
"No, mathematics, generally," Mike admitted.
"Multiplication tables. What's eight times seven?"
"Uhm..."
"Right, it's not right there in your head, you have to think
about it," Mike said. "Most people do have to think about the
sevens and eights in the tables. Anything that requires a bit of
concentration. Something you have to think of to recite to
yourself. Just...distract yourself get out of the moment but keep
them in it. And if you've got a modicum of control you can keep
from coming. That way you can make a lady really happy, if you
fit even vaguely. If she's not into penile orgasms, there's the
fingers and tongue. And once a woman comes once, she generally
will keep coming if you keep going. Most of the time they'll want
you to stop, but unless they're really aggressive about it, keep
going. They just get larger and larger until they're really over the
edge. Simple as that."
"I need to try that out," Adams
admitted. "Where the hell did you learn this?"
"I over analyze," Mike said, grinning. "You've told me so
yourself. There's more than one reason that they called me...what
they called me on the teams. When you're doing a sneak at that
level, you have to be able to read a person, to know exactly what
they are going to do, to feel everything around you. It's not much
different in bed. You're a great entry guy, buddy, but you were
never as good as I was at a sneak, right?"
"Admitted," Adams said, shrugging.
"And that makes you great in bed?"
"Believe it or not, it's awful close," Mike said, smiling
thinly. "They're both about power, trust me. When a woman is
that much putty in my hands, it's just like when the knife goes in
on a target. There's a reason they call orgasm the 'little death.'"
"That's sick," Adams said, shaking
his head.
"I never said I was a well man," Mike replied, still smiling.
"Go ahead and try it on Flopsy, Bambi or Mopsy," Mike
continued, listing off three of the hookers by nickname. "I think
Thumper's either gay or essentially asexual; I've never gotten her
so much as hot. And Cottontail's impossible; cold as the
Antarctic. Don't even try."
"She seems to have fun," Adams
said, frowning.
"She's pretty good at faking, but not as good as she thinks,"
Mike said, shrugging.
"How can you tell?" Adams asked.
"What, you want me to give up all my secrets?" Mike
replied, grinning.
* * *
As soon as it was dark Mike donned combat gear and headed
out to his personal Expedition. He'd ordered various vehicles for
the Keldara to get the farm on a more modern basis: When he
bought the property the Keldara had still been using horse drawn
plows. Besides tractors he'd purchased trucks and SUVs for each
of the Six Families. They doubled as transportation for the
militia but were mostly used for farm work.
This was his personal Expedition, however, and although it
seemed the same as the rest on the exterior, save for a spare
antenna here and there, it was significantly modified on the
interior. He'd given Vanner a bunch of money and the electronics
wiz had fitted it out with every conceivable bit of gear that he
might need to control the militia. In effect, it was a roving
command post.
He punched in a code on the dashboard mounted computer
and brought up current locations on all the training groups.
Phase One of patrolling was about done and he'd hardly had a
chance to go out and check them out. A group from Team Sawn
was conveniently near the north road, while being well out of
sight behind a ridge, so he put the SUV in gear and headed out.
The caravanserai was perched on a ridgeline overlooking the
valley of the Keldara and at a height to be able to barely see into
the town of Allerso
which was in an upper valley. The driveway from the
caravanserai ran down a series of switchbacks to the road that
passed along the edge of the valley. The road was slightly
elevated so that most of the valley could be viewed as he drove
northward. The crops did, indeed, seem to be growing well and
there was a new glow of electric light from the houses. When
he'd arrived the Keldara didn't have a pot to piss in, much less
electricity. If he died tomorrow, or today which on this road was
a possibility, he'd have done that much good at least.
Lasting good, that is. He'd done many things that he defined
as "good" over the years, but they mostly involved killing
terrorists or finding wayward weapons of mass destruction. But
more terrrorists always seemed to arise, hydra-headed, and
WMDs were here to stay. There was always some Russian guard
willing to sell his soul for a bagfull of cash or some muj with a
high school knowledge of chemistry whipping up a beaker of
Sarin. To put him out of business would require changing the
world, and that was too big a prospect for any former SEAL.
He cleared the valley and ascended the switchbacks at the
north end, heading into the mountains. He was glad the road was
clear this time of year. The first time he'd come to the valley of
the Keldara he had been lost and the road had been an ice-covered
nightmare of a drive. On an early summer night it was simply
pleasantly winding.
He reached a good debarkation point where a small parking
area overlooked the river foaming through the gorge below and
got out, stretching. The night was clear and black as pitch, perfect
for a walk in the woods.
He loaded up his assault ruck and picked out an SPR for the
trip. The teams were on their last exercise of Patrol Phase One, a
two day hike with various mission objectives. Patrol Phase One
was designed to train them in various missions in patrolling in
large groups, rotating members of the teams through leadership
positions. It was straight out of the Ranger Handbook, which fit
the mission of the Keldara better than SEAL training. After they'd
gotten used to patrolling in large groups they'd move to Phase
Two which would train them in small unit patrolling over large
distances, the only way that they would be able to fully interdict
Chechen movement in the area.
He deliberately hadn't looked at the particular mission of
this patrol. They might be in movement or set up for ambush, it
was up to him to find them and determine their mission.
He had to be careful about it, however. The teams were
loaded with blanks but carried a full load of combat ammunition;
the area was unsecure and their "training" might involve hitting a
Chechen group at any point. The Chechens had to know by now
that this region wasn't safe. They'd stopped a snatch and wiped
out a full battalion attack already in the area. But the Keldara
area had been a major path for Chechen groups for some time;
the passes in the Keldara AO were the only way through the
mountains short of entering the much better protected area
around Tibilisi. It was one of the reasons that the Russians, and
therefore the American government, were looking for him to
shut down Chechen operations in the region.
He first had to cross the rather sizeable stream. While that
sort of thing was easy with a group, by yourself it required a bit
more care. He hunted around for a good ford but there was none
in the immediate area. And even getting down to it from the road
was tricky.
Finally, he found a reasonably negotiable spot and slid down
the hill on his butt, ending up with his feet planted on a rock that
was actually jutting out of the stream. He secured a climbing
rope to the rock and hooked off to it then slid into the stream.
The current was powerful and bloody damned cold, water
coming straight off of glacial melt from the mountains. The
rocks were also slippery as hell. He made his way carefully
across the current, planting his feet and using the hard point of
the rope to stabilize.
He got to the far side and pulled the disconnect he'd tied into
the rope, retrieving it and then coiling it and putting it away. He
thus was starting off his hunt dead wet, cold and nigh on to
miserable. Which was all to the good, he'd been having it too
easy lately.
The team had last been placed on the far side of the ridge
above him so he headed up the steep slope. In places he had to
push himself up using the trees on the ridgeline but it only took
him thirty minutes or so to ascend the ridge and get a good hide.
He pulled out a thermal scope and started scanning the area
below him. When he didn't see anything in the spot he'd noted the
team in, he scanned around. There didn't seem to be anything in
the valley below so he kept scanning around.
The valley the team had been in was a narrow V heading
down from the north and more or less paralleling the road at
about two hundred meters of elevation. There was a small stream
running down the center. It joined with a slightly larger valley
that curved in from the east and finally joined the gorge the road
wound up, adding the contents of both streams to the river that
cut the gorge.
The team was no where in sight in the first valley so he kept
panning back and forth looking for hot points in either valley. He
finally spotted a hot point coming into the larger, perpendicular,
valley, but it was coming from the east and no where around
where the team had been. They'd have had to run like hell to get
up to that point and the figures were moving wrong. As he
watched, more and more figures came in view and some of them
had the distinct outline of horses or mules. It wasn't one of the
Keldara teams, that was for damned sure. In fact, unless he was
much mistaken, it was a Chechen supply convoy.
He considered for a moment where he'd left the Expedition.
Supply trains like this one generally met up with trucks
somewhere along the road that he'd parked on. The damned
Expedition was directly in view of anyone driving down the road,
which was one hell of a note.
He didn't know why this sort of thing always seemed to
happen to him. He was like a terrorism fuck-up magnet. All he'd
wanted to do was go watch the Keldara doing ops and here he
was dealing with a damned Chechen supply convoy. It was such a
pain in the ass.
He pulled out a map and slid down the hillside out of direct
view. The maps, a new improvement by Vanner, were fluorescent
in ultraviolet, so he set the Night Observation Device to UV, slid
it down over one eye and opened up the map.
The valley the Chechens were moving down was marked as
415 and, sure enough, there was a narrow trail running along the
south side. There was also a ford marked. It was a good thing he
hadn't taken a better look at the map or he might have used both
and run right smack dab into them coming the other way.
The trail was snaking on the hillside and based on their
movement they were going to take a good hour to reach the road.
Depending on where the Keldara team was, it might be able to
get into ambush position. But groups like this usually met up
with trucks coming down the road and they'd be coming from the
north; even the Chechens weren't stupid enough to run up the
valley of the Keldara, and all the sources they used were to the
north. That was the whole point of running through here.
Ergo, there was a truck or trucks coming down from the
north to meet them. It would rendezvous with them near the ford,
transfer cargo and go back north. Guns and ammo coming in,
drugs, girls and what have you going out.
This was a mission for more than one of the teams. And he
still couldn't find the team he was looking for, so he'd have to
call in.
"Keldara Base, this is Kildar," he whispered over the radio.
"We have a situation."
* * *
Gildana Makanee keyed her headset and waved at Corporal
Vanner as the call came in.
Gildana was seventeen years old blue-eyed and long-legged
with long blonde hair she regularly braided in a thick rope that
hung to her lower back. Until a few months before, Gildana had
envisioned a life just like her mother and her grandmother and
great-great-great grand, dating back to medieval times. She
would soon marry, many of her friends had married already, and
the man she was to marry, Givi Ferani had already been chosen.
Then she would have as many children as she could manage until
she was old and gray and worn out from working the farm.
She liked Givi and thought he would make a good husband.
He was hard working and at least had a sense of humor. She
really had no dreams beyond having beautiful and healthy
children who would live.
Then everything changed. The new Kildar had come and now
everything was topsy-turvy. As one of the better readers and
writers among the women of the Keldara she had been chosen to
assist in the "ops and intel" section and met Corporal Vanner. He
had opened up a whole new world to her and the girls who
worked with her. They now controlled the communications for
the Keldara militia and some of them worked in the intel section
intercepting what they could catch of the limited Chechen radio
traffic. The work was long and often boring, but far more
interesting than cleaning the house, cooking, hauling water and
keeping the fires going. Corporal Vanner had even gotten her a
"correspondence course" on satellite communications and she
was working on it assiduously. Along with it had come several
other courses on mathematics and she was working her way
through those at the same time.
Life was looking up.
"Kildar," she answered in a calm and lilting tone, "this is
Keldara Base. Say situation, over."
Calm and unhurried. Corporal Vanner had drilled that into
them over and over. The last thing anyone wanted to hear over
the radio was that anyone was stressed out. Keep calm, no matter
what was happening.
"I was going out to observe Team Sawn, operating in the
vicinity of valley 415. I am at position 918 in view of a convoy
of probable tangoes moving down 415 from the east towards a
probable rendezvous at 228. Count is thirty tangoes, eighteen
pack animals. Weapons not observable at this range. Clear?"
"Tango convoy at valley 415, moving east towards 228.
Your position 918. Count is thirty tangoes, eighteen pack
animals."
"Roger. Unable to determine position of Team Sawn.
Probable vehicle movement from north along Tibilisi Road
for link-up. Get Keldara Two, Three and Five in
contact. Contact Team Sawn, have them display UV source. Will
vector Team Sawn to ambush on convoy if possible. Vector
second team to road if possible. Tell teams to go red on ammo."
"Roger, Keldara Six," Gildana said, scribbling notes. She
looked over her shoulder at Corporal Vanner who had slipped on
a headset and was nodding at her notes. "Keldara Two is
available at this time, Six."
"Roger," the Kildar said. "I'm going to sit tight until I've got
an idea where Sawn is. Get cracking."
* * *
Vanner had already opened up a window showing the
locations of all the teams and shook his head.
"That's funny," he said. "Sawn's just to the east of him, down
in the valley. They're in an ambush position along the side valley,
so they're not in position to hit the Chechens. Call them up."
"Sawn Six, this is Keldara Base," Gildana said, switching
frequencies for transmission but leaving open the Kildar's
frequency so she could listen if he called.
"Sawn."
"Be aware, there is a Chechen force, thirty tangoes, eighteen
pack animals, moving down valley 415, approximately three
thousand meters from your position. Kildar is on the ridge
behind you, observing from 915. Show UV marker so the Kildar
can vector you to them."
"Roger."
* * *
Mike blinked as a hot-spot appeared in the valley and then a
UV light was laid out, clearly marking the position of the
ambush team. They weren't more than five hundred meters below
him and they'd been completely invisible to IR. They must have
covered themselves up pretty damned good.
He checked his frequency sheet and changed to Sawn's
codes. The different connections weren't frequencies, but packet
codes for the distributed network that had been laid in over the
last few weeks. Besides going out on patrol training, the Keldara
had been laying down dozens of "black box" retransmitters. The
devices were encrypted and distributed information in frequency
hopping burst packets. Weighing in at a bit less than two pounds,
they functioned something like the internet, picking up the
packets and moving them along the best routes. The boxes were
now in so many places in the nearby mountains that
communications were virtually solid throughout the local area.
But only for the Keldara. The system was locked out for anyone
else, short of very high-tech and aggressive hacking.
"Goddamn, Sawn, you guys are hidden like a bitch," he said,
approvingly. "But we're going to have to move. Pick up your
team and move south to the trail along 415. And boogie. Go hot
at this time."
"Roger, Kildar," Sawn said. The Makanee boy was not by
any stretch his top team leader, that would be Oleg Kulcyanov,
but he was pretty damned good. And if he could hide that well, it
boded well for the mission. Now if the team could just move fast
and quiet.
"I'll link up somewhere around the river," Mike said. "Tell
your guys if they frag me I will strangle them with my bare
hands."
"Understood, Kildar," Sawn said, the humor evident in his
voice.
"Kildar, this is Keldara Base."
"Gotta go, Sawn," Mike continued as more hot-spots
appeared. It was apparent that the entire twenty man team had
been lightly dug in along the hillside. Too bad they weren't in
position to hit the Chechens; it had been a perfect hide. "See you
at the stream. Go Keldara base."
* * *
"Kildar, Keldara Three is here," Gildana said, looking over
her shoulder at Colonel Nielson. "He recommends vectoring
Team Padrek onto the road to the north."
"Have him handle that end," the Kildar answered with a
slight grunt of effort. "Be aware that my damned Expedition is in
full view on the road. If the Chechens steal my car, tell Padrek to
run far and fast."
"Roger, Kildar," Gildana said, smiling slightly.
"I'm going to go link up with Sawn and cover that end," the
Kildar continued. "Get the trucks."
"Roger, Kildar."
"Kildar out."
Gildana looked over her shoulder at Colonel Nielson
quizzically.
"Vector Padrek to point 583," the colonel said, pointing out
a spot on the map near the road to the north. "Interdict all
vehicles moving from the north, standard road block. The
Chechens will probably be carrying contraband. Rules of
Engagement Three. Do not fire until sure of resistance, but stop
everything and use full care. Roll out the support team, have
them draw RPGs and MGs. They need to be on the road in fifteen
minutes."
"Yes, sir," Gi3ldana said. The Kildar had bought a
specialized database and she and Vanner had modified it slightly.
This was the first test of it in a "real world" mission.
She brought up the database and punched for live-mission. A
screen gave her a number of options, each of them marked by
large buttons or icons. She chose "roll response team", then
"heavy weapon loadout", "roadblock", punched in the code for
the location when the box came up, chose "rendezvous" then hit
the icon for Team Padrek which was the head of a ram and last
chose ROE 3.
The system automatically generated an operations order
including what weapons and ammunition pack each member of
the team would carry, which vehicles were available and a map to
the position. In addition, there was a frequency list and
information about friendly forces in the area.
She hit send and got a pop-up screen that read: "Please detail
commander's intention."
She hit the "modify" key and rapidly typed in data on the
current situation including the fact that there was probably a
truck or trucks headed to rendezvous with the Chechen mule
train. Then she reloaded the frag-order.
Nielson considered it for a moment and then nodded.
"Send."
Chapter Four
Oleg Kulcyanov's eyes flew open as a buzzer went off
beside his bed and the monitor of the computer turned on
flooding the darkened room with light. The printer started
spitting out sheets as he rolled to his feet, rubbing his eyes.
Another damned drill.
Oleg Kulcyanov was nineteen. A huge bull of a man with a
shock of nearly white hair, his great grandfather, Mecheslav
Kulcyanov was the head of the Kulcyanov Family. His
grandfather had died before he was born in a logging accident.
His father was probably going to be the next head of the
Kulcyanov Family and in time he would probably succeed him.
While he had been in electric light from time to time in
town, until recently he had never considered that he, himself,
might live in a house with electricity. He had never seen anyone
operate a computer until last February when the Kildar arrived.
He had certainly never believed he would use one.
But the Kildar had arrived in the valley like a whirlwind.
Before they had assimilated the arrival of a newcomer to the area
the Kildar had bought the valley from the bank, and their service
with it. More changes started coming with increasing speed, new
vehicles, tractors, medical care. Then the trainers had arrived and
suddenly the Keldara found their true purpose returning. For the
Keldara were warriors at heart.
Oleg went to church every Sunday but the Keldara were not
truly Christian. They cloaked themselves in the mantle of that
faith, but they had retained their true allegiance through the years,
to The All Father One-Eye, to his son Frei the Lord of the Axe,
to the Old Gods. They had held true to their faith through
generation after generation, working as farmers as the only way
to survive but never losing their faith that some day the Way of
War would return. And the Kildar had brought it back.
Oleg knew that the Kildar was not a god, but many of the
Keldara regarded him as one, an avatar of Frei perhaps. He was
certainly a warrior among warriors as he had proven again and
again. And Oleg was willing to follow the Kildar to anywhere in
the wide world, for he knew that the Kildar would always lead
them on the path of war, where a Keldara could truly be a servant
of Frei.
As he read the form on the computer screen he grinned.
Finally, it was time to go to war.
He reached out and hit the red button over his bed then
stood up and picked up the papers that had finished spitting out
of the printer.
The button activated the lights in the squad bay beyond his
room and started a high toned pinging that was interspersed with
a recording by Lydia
, Oleg's fiancee.
"Arise, Keldara! Enemies are at the door! Prepare for battle
and the day of red war! Bring us scalps!"
Oleg had been sleeping in his uniform pants and a t-shirt. He
slid his feet into zipper tac-boots and zipped them up then threw
on his uniform jacket, striding out of the room.
Dmitri Devlich, his team second, was just finished zipping
his boots as Oleg stepped into the squad bay. The rest of the team
was mostly on its feet, putting on their boots and jackets, as the
recording continued.
"Battle this day for honor and the Keldara! Be true to your
comrades and warriors born!"
Oleg handed Dmitri the sheets detailing each man's load-out
and mission. The sheets were arranged in the same pattern as the
squad bay, so all Dmitri had to do was go down the length of the
bay handing them out. Each sheet had a picture of the individual
squad member, the weapon and ammunition load they were to
draw, a list of materials they were to carry and a general mission
order including the paragraph Gildana had written about the
current enemy conditions.
As soon as Oleg had passed off the sheets he read the section
detailing his responsibilities and walked back to his room. He
pulled out the correct map-set, checked to make sure it was
actually the right one and started buttoning his uniform tunic
while rereading the mission orders.
As he was rereading, Givi Kulcyanov came in the room,
buckling on his gear and carrying Oleg's in his arms.
"Simple mission," the radio telephone operator said, handing
Oleg his body armor and combat vest. Givi was a cousin rather
than a brother as the name would imply but they had known each
other their whole lives.
"We don't know if this is the only group of Chechens in the
area," Oleg pointed out. "And we don't know what will be
waiting for us in the trucks. It might be simple and it might be
very hard indeed."
"You're always a pessimist," Givi said, grinning.
"I'm always a realist," Oleg replied, throwing his armor over
his head and buckling it on. "That's why I'm the team leader."
When he got to the squad bay most of the team had moved
down to the armory to draw their weapons. Their pre-packed
rucksacks were by the door and as each man drew his weapons
for the mission they added them to the load, moving out the door
to the waiting vehicles.
Oleg drew an SPR and a .45 caliber silenced pistol, checking
each then slipping in a magazine. Last he put the weapons on safe
and picked up his ruck, heading for the door.
Dmitri was by the door as he went out, checking each
weapon to see that no one had loaded a live round, yet, and that
all weapons were on safe.
"You're the last out," Dmitri said.
"Load it," Oleg replied, heading for his vehicle. "Givi, call in
that we're loaded and preparing to roll. Then give them roll
time."
"Roger," Givi said.
"I make it as seven minutes, more or less," Dmitri said,
climbing in the passenger side of his Expedition. He would be
the last vehicle out of the compound. Oleg would be in vehicle
three of the five. The lead vehicle traveled well forward of the
convoy as a point in case of ambush.
"Agreed," Oleg said, getting in his own vehicle. "Let's roll."
* * *
Mike crouched by the side of the trail as the team passed. He
was both pleased and pissed that not one of them noticed him.
He'd intended to close from the rear and call in before contacting
the team but had accidentally gotten ahead of them. He was
pleased that he hadn't lost the ability to be virtually invisible in
the brush and that nobody had reacted to the figure by the side of
the trail by fragging him. On the other hand, he was pissed that
the Keldara, and even McKenzie, had just walked right past him.
If he'd been an enemy they'd be in a world of hurt.
Part of the reason they hadn't noticed him, he had to admit,
was his camouflage. From the first he'd determined that the
Keldara would have only the best equipment and he'd paid
through the nose for it. The camouflage uniform, in particular,
had been costly. There was an Italian firm that produced digi-
cam, digitally enhanced camouflage, in virtually any pattern. The
first uniforms he'd ordered had been standard digi-cam, US
military issue. But they hadn't, in his
opinion, been perfect for the local terrain. The US
digi-cam was designed to blend the wearer
in any condition from city to mountain to desert. It wasn't
"dialed" for pure mountain/forest conditions.
The Italian firm had sent him several sets of digicam in
various shades and patterns until he found one that he liked. Then
he'd outfitted the Keldara in that. It had been expensive as hell,
though. Besides the custom camouflage pattern, the fabric was
comfortable, conformable and fire resistant. Each uniform cost
about three times that of a standard US
digicam uniform, but he figured it was
worth it. The Keldara were limited in number and were his
primary outer defense. Besides, they were friends.
He let the last member of the team, who was correctly
checking his back trail, pass by and then stepped out onto the
trail. When the Keldara's back was turned, he crouched and let
out a slight "psst."
The Keldara spun in place, raising his SPR to his shoulder
and crouching to sweep behind him.
Mike, who was within arm's reach, simply grabbed the barrel
of the weapon and yanked it out of his hands.
"You've got lousy situational awareness, Jitka," he hissed.
The name of the Keldara was embroidered in glow-letters on the
back of his boonie-cap. "Stand down."
"Kildar!" the boy whispered. "I never saw you!"
"That's why I'm the instructor and you're the trainee, boy,"
Mike said, quietly.
The Keldara forward of the trail had heard the byplay and
slapped the shoulder of the Keldara in front of him, sending the
signal up the line of troopers to halt for something to the rear.
Mike handed the weapon back and stepped up along the line
of crouched troopers, tapping them on the shoudler as he passed.
"Piatras, how's it going. Beso, ready to do a man's job
tonight? Sergejus, keep your barrel down this time. Stepan, how's
the baby?"
"McKenzie," Mike said when he got to the command group
in the middle of the patrol. "Sawn. Let's get moving, they haven't
stopped."
Sawn nodded and tapped forward and back. He waited until
he'd gotten responses from either direction then got the team
moving.
They continued down the trail until they got to the stream
and then moved off to the right through the woods, weaving in
and out among the trees.
As they approached the trail that was being used by the
Chechens, Sawn gathered the group into a cigar shaped perimeter
and had them drop their rucksacks. Leaving two personnel behind
to keep an eye on the rucks he brought the team forward to the
trail.
He detailed two of the Keldara to move up the trail in the
direction the Chechens should approach from then laid out the
rest of the team along the trail, about five meters into the
woodline. At the far end he laid in a group across the trail,
closing it in an "L" shape.
The ambush was set up on the downhill side from the trail,
which wasn't perfect, but it would probably do. They also didn't
have any claymores with them, which wasn't great. Nor did they
have heavy weapons, this training had been based on recon and
light ambushes so the machine guns were back at the base. They
did, however, have frag grenades. And the Chechens probably
wouldn't have NODs.
With no signal from the observers along the trail the Keldara
started working on their positions. There was no time to dig real
fighting positions but the Keldara rapidly scraped out shallow
trenches, pushing the dirt up in small breastworks in front of
them. The leaves they scraped off to the side. When they lay
down in the trench they wrapped themselves in a poncho lined
with a thermal blanket then pulled the leaves back over
themselves, covering themselves completely.
Sawn's second, Dimant Ferani, followed behind, touching
up the positions and ensuring that each position had minimal
thermal output. The Chechens rarely used thermal imagery
devices but it never hurt to be sure.
Mike had scraped out his own hasty fighting position,
wrapped and covered. Under the cover he slipped out a frag
grenade and held it in his right hand with his weapon by his right
side. Then he settled down to wait.
The Keldara were as perfect as any group he'd ever met.
From years of farming and hunting they had enormous patience
and the ability to simply sit, or lie down in this case, for hours.
They also tended to keep awake which was a major problem with
ambushes; the ambushers tended to drift off and start snoring.
But the Keldara just...waited, like expert hunters. He was again
amazed by the absolute perfection of the group of rural farmers.
The Chechens, however, were not nearly as good. He could
hear them coming long before the signal from the overwatch
position that the target was entering the zone. He could also
smell them, a tinge of woodsmoke, BO and harsh cigarettes. The
latter was so strong he was sure one or more of them was
actually smoking.
There was a series of clicks over the radio as Sawn signalled
the team to prepare to engage. Mike could hear the click of the
mules' hooves on rocks and couldn't imagine that the normally
vigilant animals didn't know the Keldara were there. However,
Sawn had obviously chosen the downhill side for more than one
reason. There was a current of air coming down the
mountainside and it blew from the trail to the ambushers. That
was keeping their scent from reaching the mules. As long as
everyone was silent, they were golden.
There was another series of faint clicks in his earphones and
then a series of beeps. One, two, three...
Mike pulled the pin from the grenade and lifted himself to
his knees, the leaves and poncho cascading away from him, then
threw the grenade uphill into the mass of men and mules in front
of him. With that done he ducked down into the hasty fighting
position and flattened himself into the ground, as a series of
sharp cracks filled the air with a hail of shrapnel.
As soon as the last grenade had detonated he slid his SPR
over the side of the small mound in front of him and began
picking out targets. The Chechens had gone to ground fast, but
they didn't have good cover along this section of the trail and if
he couldn't directly target someone one of the Keldara to the side
could. AK rounds cracked overhead but he ignored them,
sweeping his weapon back and forth in a search for targets.
The mules complicated things, slightly. Some of them were
down, kicking in pain from the riddling shrapnel. Others,
however, had broken free and were running loose. One came
barreling right over his position, stamping hard on his thigh as it
passed.
He'd picked out three targets and downed them when he
heard Sawn's whistle for the team to sweep across the objective.
He lifted himself up and kept the weapon at present as he
stepped forward. There was a wounded tango on the ground, hit
by shrapnel or a round in the leg he wasn't sure which. There was
an AK on the ground next to him. He swept the UV light from
his rifle flash on the tango, made an assessment that he wasn't a
leader and put a round through his head.
He continued across the objective, checking the dead and
wounded carefully, until he was well into the woods on the far
side. He flipped the sight on the rifle to thermal imagery and
swept it up the hillside, looking for hiding tangoes but didn't find
any.
Sawn's whistle signalled recall and he headed back down the
hill to the trail, checking his sector for recovery items. Besides
the mules, the surviving ones of which the Keldara were
gathering up, he was looking for any intel items such as
paperwork. There didn't seem to be much immediately obvious
and he left off the search to go find Sawn and McKenzie.
"We've got three prisoners and two somethings," McKenzie
said as he approached.
"Somethings?" Mike asked.
"Two bints with the Chechens," the Scottish former SAS
sergeant said in his thick brogue. "One with a grenade fragment
in her side. Ivar's talking with them at the moment. I get the
impression they weren't wives or such like."
"Slaves," Ivar said, stepping up to the trainer's side. "They
were picked up on farms over towards the Pankisi Gorge. That
and the food on the mules. They weren't bought, the fucking
black-asses raided and burned the farms."
"Bloody hell," Mike muttered. "Orphans and damaged
goods."
"More lassies for your harem, lad," McKenzie grunted,
humorously.
"Raped and abused ladies make difficult harem girls," Mike
pointed out, sighing. "What about the other prisoners?"
"One looks like the leader of the convoy," McKenzie said.
"The other two were hiding in the woods and put their hands up
so fast nobody had the heart to shoot them."
"Probably drivers," Mike said. "Post-battle clean-up time.
I'm going to head down to the road and try to intercept the
response team on the way up to intercept the trucks."
"They might not be coming tonight, lad," McKenzie pointed
out.
"But they will eventually," the Kildar said.
* * *
Mike made it to the road just as the first vehicle of the
reaction convoy rounded the nearest corner. He stepped out in
the road and waved at it as it approached, hoping like hell they
wouldn't either run him down or frag him.
"Kildar," Ivar Makanee said as the vehicle rolled to a stop.
"Need a ride to my Expedition if you please," Mike said. The
vehicle was a Ford F-350 flare-side and he waved at the point
leader to stay in his seat as he climbed in the back.
"Keldara Base, this is Kildar," Mike said, settling into the
load of weapons and ammo in the rear.
* * *
"Kildar, this is Keldara Base," Gildana said. It was past her
time to be relieved but Vanner had kept her on the radio since she
was fully "dialed in" on the situation. The truth was, you couldn't
have pried her out of the seat.
"I've linked up with Team Oleg point," the Kildar replied.
"I'm going to head up to the roadblock and check out operations
up there. Russell's with Team Padrek, correct?"
Gildana looked at her ops screen and nodded to herself.
"Correct, Kildar," she said, looking around the room. She'd
put the call in on the announcement system since it was from the
Kildar and she caught Colonel Nielson's eye, raising her
eyebrows to see if he had anything he wanted to pass on. But the
colonel just shook his head.
"I'll head up there and hang around to see if anything
happens right off," the Kildar continued. "Make sure that Padrek
knows it's us coming up the road, please."
"Roger, Kildar."
"Kildar, out."
She changed frequencies to Padrek by hitting the appropriate
icon and took the system off announce.
"Padrek, Keldara Base."
"Padrek Five, go."
"Kildar and Team Oleg are on the way, ETA five to seven
minutes. Status?"
"All clear so far," Padrek Five replied. That was Bori
Mahona, a distant cousin like most of the Keldara. He was a
serious young man, more studious than most of the Keldara, and
she could practically see his furrowed brow over the radio.
"Kildar asks that you not fire on their vehicles," she added,
twitting him slightly.
"We're prepared for their arrival, Keldara Base," Bori
replied, tightly. "Anything else?"
"Negative," she said, secretly happy to have pricked his
seriousness. "Keldara Base, out."
"How are you feeling, Gildana?" Vanner asked, sitting down
in the station chair by her.
"Good, sir," Gildana replied.
"You need relief?" he asked.
"No, sir," she said as the icon for Team Sawn started to
flash. "Go Sawn."
"If you flag out, tell me," Vanner said, sitting back.
"Keldara Base, this is Sawn Five," Gavi Makanee said over
the radio. Gavi was a first cousin, about her age and they'd been
raised almost as brother and sister. She could see him now, short
cut red hair tousled by his boonie hat, camouflage paint on his
face, probably crouched over a scrap of paper carefully doing it
all "by the book."
"Go Sawn Five," she said, bringing up the mission report
screen.
"Enemy KIA twenty-nine," Gavi said. "Enemy WIA one.
Papa Whiskey three. Hotel two. Friendly KIA, zero. Friendly
WIA, two, non-critical, say again, non-critical. Ammunition,
green. Supplies, green. Large quantity of small arms, food and
some contraband. Twelve pack animals functional. Caching or
destroying immovable material and moving to road for pickup."
"Roger, Sawn Five," Gildana said, bringing up another
screen and dispatching a group of vehicles to go pick up Team
Sawn.
* * *
"Hey, Padrek," Mike said as he rolled off the back of the
truck.
"Kildar," the team leader said, ducking his head. "Would you
like to take a look at our positions?"
Mike glanced at the team's trainer and then shook his head.
"This is your game, Padrek," Mike said. "The next time
you're going to have to do it all on your own, so you might as
well start now. I'm just another shooter on this one."
"Yes, Kildar," the leader said, swallowing nervously. "I've
laid in positions on both sides of the road and prepared a tree for
a roadblock. I'll get with Oleg and get his vehicles in position to
reinforce the block."
"Go for it," Mike said, wandering to the roadside with a
wave. He hunkered down on a rock, dropped his ruck and
stretched his shoulders. To think a few hours ago he was
screwing the hell out of a young red-head. What the hell was he
doing here?
A couple of the farm trucks were placed to block the road
while the two teams began cutting trees to make negotiable S
curves that would slow vehicles approaching the position. A
forward position was also under construction, the "chicken" pit
where a single soldier would be placed to order vehicles into the
roadblock.
Meanwhile the heavy weapons gunners of Team Oleg were
building positions along the roadside. If anyone tried to force the
block, they would catch them with raking fire as they tried to
negotiate the S cover obstacles.
Last, the drivers of the three remaining Team Oleg vehicles
waited in place in case anyone passed them. They could pursue or
be used as a secondary blocking point.
Mike's big worry was truck bombs. The defenses were
spread out but one truck bomb could cut a swath through the
core of the Keldara families. Which would put a pretty large
black mark on the record of the Kildar.
Which he wasn't going to fix by worrying about it.
"I've redeployed the group," McKenzie said, coming over to
his position in the trees and dropping his ruck. "I'm moving Sawn
up forward to close the block if anybody tries to run and putting
Oleg's boys on the block itself."
"Works," Mike said. "Get the spare vehicles out of sight and
if they get a solid block in place move the ones blocking the
road."
"Will do," McKenzie said. "You really expect them soon?"
"No reason the mule train is going to want to wait around,
especially this close to us," Mike said, leaning back on his own
ruck. "It's been a long day. Wake me up if anything interesting
happens."
Chapter Five
"Kildar?"
Mike had awakened when he heard stirring and sat up
immediately, checking his weapon.
The vehicles were gone from the block and large timber and
boulder blocks were in place on the road. All he could see in
view were a few of the Keldara, though.
"There are three trucks coming down the road," Dmitri said,
quietly. "Gregor's taxi passed through late last night but we
expected him. He ran Captain Tyurin into Tibilisi yesterday."
Tyurin was the local police chief. Venal to a fault on minor
items, he was a strong supporter of the Keldara militia and it's
fight against the Chechens. With fine uniforms, far finer than his
official salary could afford, and a regal bearing he appeared to
base his actions in life on Inspector Louise "I am Shocked,
Shocked" said Renault from Casablanca
.
Mike checked his watch and saw it was just before dawn.
"Okay, that looks like show-time," he said, getting to his feet
and checking the SPR. "Where is everyone?"
"Most are in defensive positions," Dmitri said. "Oleg left
only five in view. All of Sawn's force are in hides or dug in.
Corporal Vanner has sent Lytaya up with some technical gear."
"What?" Mike asked, following Dmitri into the woods.
The intel specialist was in an open hole about thirty meters
from the road about half way up the switchbacks. Mike could
hear the trucks approaching down the grade as they got to the
position.
"Good morning, Kildar," the young woman said, smiling at
him in the faint pre-dawn light. She had light red hair that was
tied in a bun under her boonie cap and, like all the Keldara
women, was almost startlingly beautiful. She looked like an out-
of-place fairytale princess dressed in digi-cam.
"What did you bring?" Mike asked, curiously.
"Intercept and jamming gear," the girl said, waving at a
blinking box at her feet. "And an umbrella mike so we can
overhear their conversation."
"Great," Mike said, picking up the directional microphone
and waving it towards the waiting Keldara. However, all he
could hear from the troops awaiting the trucks was breathing.
The Keldara were almost scary. They'd lived together so long that
they could communicate at a level that sometimes seemed like
telepathy. He saw one of them turn and look at another and make
a chin gesture which was all it took for the other two to redeploy.
The trucks were making too much noise at this range for
him to overhear the drivers but he saw them brake as the Keldara
in the chicken pit lit off a magnesium flare.
"Five gets you ten they try to run," McKenzie said, peering
through a night scope.
"No transmission from the lead truck," Lytaya said, looking
at her scopes. "No transmissions at all."
"Start jamming on all non-Keldara freqs," Mike said,
crouching down and directing the microphone at the trucks,
trying to pick up chatter.
"The driver of the lead truck just asked the guy next to him
something," McKenzie said.
"Saw that," Mike replied, directing the microphone at them.
But there was still too much noise from the truck motor for him
to hear anything useful. The passenger in the lead truck took his
time answering, though. And when he said something, the truck
pulled forward.
"Okay, the passenger in the lead is a leader," the Kildar said.
"Get that out to the trooops. I'd like him alive."
"Yes, Kildar." Dmitri said, keying his communications.
* * *
"What is this?" the driver of the lead truck demanded as he
pulled up next to the small timber and sand-bag bunker placed in
the middle of the road.
"Inspection for contaband," Juris Makanee said, easily.
"Proceed one vehicle at a time around the barriers. If more than
one truck enters the barrier area both will be fired upon. Stop
half way down the barriers for pre-inspection then you can
proceed to the final block for clearance."
"I'm sure that something can be arranged," the driver said,
handing over his license with a folded bill behind it.
Juris looked at the license as he absently handed the fifty
ruble note back.
"You're cleared to move to the next check point," Juris said,
looking the man in the eye. He wasn't Russian or Georgian,
probably a black-ass Chechen bastard. But the orders were to
stop and inspect, not shoot them out of hand as he'd prefer. "And
if you try to bribe the next guard, he'll put a bullet through your
head. Move out."
The driver angrily put the truck in gear and jerked forward as
Juris waved for the next truck to stop.
* * *
"Checkpoint," Mikhail Solovi said, looking across the
compartment at Vyatkin.
Vyatkin put his head out the flap of the military truck and
looked at the set-up.
"This isn't Georgian National Guard, whoever it is," Vyatkin
said, sitting back down and looking at the Chechen black-asses in
the back of the truck. "Who is it?"
"Keldara," one of them said, frowning. "I told Mashadem we
couldn't move through here, but they wouldn't listen."
"Are these the new militia in the area?" Solovi asked,
shaking his head. "Bribe them."
"They won't take bribes," one of the Chechens said, fingering
his AK. "They are lead by an American, the Kildara. They are very
loyal. We are totally fucked. They don't take prisoners."
"There were only five I saw," Vyatkin said, looking at
Solovi.
"There will be more hidden around the checkpoint," Solovi
said. "We need to not be caught in this, Eduard."
"Agreed," Vyatkin said, looking at the Chechens. "You never
saw us, understand?"
"Have a good walk back to Russia
," the Chechen said as the two dropped
over the back of the truck. "You Russian bastards," he added
when they were out of sight.
* * *
"Interesting," Mike said. The reception at the back of the
trucks was clear as gin. "The last vehicle's filled with troops.
Two guys just jumped off the back. Let them get in the woods
and then tell Sawn I want them both alive. When the first truck is
has been checked for explosives, let the second one up to the
midpoint check point. Check it while the first one is being
cleared, then engage. Blow the shit out of the trail truck, but just
kill the drivers of the other two and take down the passengers. I
want all that done in one hit."
"Understood, Kildar," Dmitri said, keying his
communicator.
* * *
"We're clear," Vyatkin said, stopping to pant.
"You are out of shape, Eduard," Solovi said, looking back at
the trucks. The lead truck had reached the final checkpoint and he
briefly considered whether they should have stayed in the truck.
But not even the stupidest guard could miss the armed Chechens
in the rear truck. They had supposedly been "guarding" them on
the way to the meeting, but they'd spent most of their time being
as insulting as they could manage in a hamfisted way.
As Mikhail watched, the militiaman searching the second
truck climbed out of the back and walked over to the driver's
side. As soon as he reached it, there was a series of pops and the
passenger side doors were yanked open by more guards who
dragged the occupants out and threw them on the ground. The
drivers were clearly dead.
Before the Chechen guards in the trailing truck could react,
RPG rounds slammed out from both sides of the road, turning
the rear of the trucks into burning shrapnel. The Chechens who
made it out of the back were quickly silenced by heavy fire from
machine-guns, their bodies dancing as the bullets slammed into
them from either side.
"Tobv yo mut," Eduard whispered, looking at the carnage.
"Set up," Mikhail said, angrily. "They knew we were coming.
There must be a platoon hidden in those trees."
"Closer to a company, actually," a voice said from behind
them.
"Fuck."
* * *
"This situation brings out the cliché in me," Mike
said, gazing in wonder at the two Russians. "But I'll try to leave
it at one. I've got a gun, a backhoe and over a thousand hectares
to get rid of the bodies. So why don't you just tell me what you're
doing here and I'll be up by a couple of bullets and some diesel
on the deal."
"You're American," Mikhail said, sneeringly. "You won't
kill us. Just call the damned Georgians and turn us over to them."
"You're so sure of that, tovarisch," Mike said, drawing his
.45. "Okay, two cliches. I'll try to keep it down. Last chance."
"You're not going to..." Mikhail said, just as the Kildar,
without looking, pointed the weapon and shot Dmitri through the
knee.
As the screaming man fell back on the hold of his two
Keldara handlers, Mike pointed the weapon at his head.
"This is the deal," Mike said. "I was listening to you in the
truck, so I know you're the leader, 'Mikhail.' So why don't you
keep your fat friend from having his head blown off, and various
unpleasantries to you, by telling me why a couple of Russian
hitters are traveling with Chechens."
"Tobv yo mut," Mikhail said, panting.
"Jeeze, you're stupid," Mike said, pointing the pistol at
Dmitri and dropping him with a round through the teeth that
blew out the back of his head, spattering the Keldara and the
surviving Russian with brains.
"You son of a bitch!" Mikhail snarled, struggling in the grip
of the two Keldara.
"Your turn, comrade," Mike said, pointing the .45 at the
Russian's knee. "You've got four major joints. And even after I
shoot them, there are various unpleasant things I can do to you.
Huh-one, huh-two...no? Three."
The Russian screamed as the .45 blew his knee joint to
splinters and sagged in the grip of the Keldara, but they held him
upright.
"Damn, you're dumb," Mike shook his head. "You're going
to die. You've got to know that. And I know you don't have some
honor code to stick to. Now, me, I'd take a lot before I'd give up
the location of some SEAL buddies. But you? You've got
nothing to look to but money. What's the point in suffering for
something you're not going to earn, anyway? Tell me what I want
to know and I'll put a bullet through your head and put you out
of pain. I don't promise more than that, but you can hope."
"Fuck you," the Russian panted.
"Stupid, stupid, stupid," Mike said, kicking him squarely in
his wounded knee.
This time the Russian fell to the ground, writhing, despite
the best efforts of the Keldara to hold him upright.
"Plug the hole before he bleeds out," Mike said, stepping
away. "Don't let his apparent pain give him an opening. But let's
try to keep him alive for a bit."
Three Keldara pinned the writhing Russian to the ground
while a fourth worked on the knee, plugging it with coagulating-
impregnated cotton and then wrapping it in a pressure bandage. It
was still bleeding, but not as copiously, when the Keldara was
done.
"Feeling better?" Mike asked, stepping up to the Russian and
then kicking him, hard, in the bandaged kneecap.
When the screaming died down Mike sqatted down near the
Russian's head and shook his own.
"Come on, Mikhail," Mike said, sympathetically. "Why were
you with the Chechens? What in the hell is going to make them
let a couple of Russians ride with them?"
"Weapons..." Mikhail grunted.
"Oh, give me a break," Mike said, shaking his head. "Hold
out his arm, it's the elbow next..."
"No!" Mikhail gasped. "Special weapons. That's all I know.
There is a trade. Money for special weapons."
"How much money?" Mike asked.
"I don't know," Mikhail said, desperately. "I was just to meet
about security arrangements."
"The Russian mob is selling the Chechens weapons?" Mike
asked, musingly. "Vladimir
is going to love that."
"Not mob," Mikhail said. "Sergei. Sergei Karensky. He is
handling security for someone, I don't know who. Dmitri was to
discuss money. He said only that it was very much. Very much."
"Not enough, Mikhail," Mike said, putting the hot barrel of
the .45 to the Russian's elbow. "What kind of weapons? How
much money?"
"I don't KNOW!" he screamed. "Much money!"
"Where was the meet going to go down?" Mike asked.
"Somewhere near Arensia," Mikhail gasped.
"That's right in the Paniski, Mikhail," Mike pointed out.
"There is no security in that region. How were they getting in,
chopper?"
"Cars," Mikhail gasped. "Land rovers. From the Russian
sector. Sergei set it up. Right at the edge of the Paniski Gorge."
"And why didn't you go in that way?" Mike asked.
"Too risky," Mikhail said. "He can do it once, but only once.
Please, I've answered your questions. I ask only that you not kill
me."
"I rarely leave enemies alive, Mikhail," Mike said,
sympathetically. "You know how it is. You just can't trust a live
enemy. You can trust a dead one."
"Kildar," Oleg pointed out from behind him. "He will
remember more things. Perhaps if Vanner questioned him more
at base, there would be useful information he could extract."
"Hmmm..." Mike said, standing up. "Mikhail, here's the deal.
Vanner's a very nice guy. Bit of a geek, bit squeamish. If you're
very nice to Corporal Vanner, perhaps I'll let you live and let you
retain the use of your dick. Do you think you can be open-
minded about that?"
"Yes," Mikhail squeezed out.
"And, who knows, you might even walk without a limp,"
Mike said, holstering the .45. "They do remarkable reconstructive
surgery these days. I had a buddy who was a SEAL instructor
who lost his lower leg in
Afghanistan
and a year later it hardly slowed down his
runs. Of course, he lost it to a fucking mine you dip-shit
Russians planted. You scattered them all over the fucking
country. So you'll understand if I'm less than caring if you do
walk with a limp for the rest of your life. Oleg, get this piece of
shit out of my sight."
* * *
"McKenzie," Mike said when he found the former SAS
sergeant.
"Heard the shots," McKenzie said, scooping up a spoonful
of beef stew. "And the screams. Anyone live?"
"One," Mike said. "And this is now a sanitization situation.
Not because of the bodies, but the Russkies were setting up a
meet with the Chechens involving 'special weapons.' We might
have queered that by hitting these two."
"Pity," the NCO said, folding the pouch and putting it away.
"What do you want to do?"
"I want everything to disappear," Mike said. "Get the
Keldara up here. All the bodies go in the ground, the trucks
disappear, the mules disappear.
The girls go into the caravanserai with the remaining Russian."
"What about the bearers and the Chechen leader types?"
"Take them back to the caravanserai," Mike said. "There are
all those cellars and what-not. We'll see what we can get from
them."
* * *
"You're one cold son-of-a-bitch," Adams said, admiringly. "You just tangoed that one bastard and
shot up the other?"
"Russians aren't going to work with the Chechens unless
they're secret emissaries or there was a hell of a lot of money
involved," Mike said, forking up a piece of egg with steak. "If
they were from the government they were going to ID themselves
right off. We'd protect them like gold and they know it. Ergo,
they were with the mob or something along the lines. And that
meant big money which meant something special."
"WMDs again?" Adams asked.
"At a guess," Mike replied, shaking his head. "A Russian
would sell his own mother for the right money. He looked up as
Vanner entered the kitchen, holding sheets of paper. "Get
anything good?"
"After they saw what you did to the Russian, all the
Chechens opened up. It was a basic supply run with the added
mission of getting the Russians to some of the top Chechen guys
over in the Pansiki." The former Marine was red-eyed and
gratefully accepted a cup of coffee from Mother Savina as he sat
down unceremoniously. "The dead Russian wasn't much help but
he did have this," Vanner added, sliding a plastic card across the
table.
"And this is?" Mike asked, looking at the unmarked card
with a series of numbers on it.
"I'm surprised you've never seen one," Vanner said, amused.
"They're issued to keep track of Swiss bank account numbers."
"Not from Zurich Merchantile," Mike said.
"Merchantile does it sometimes," Vanner said. "Those are
from Bank Suisse, though. I don't have the codes to open up the
accounts, but those are four different accounts in Bank Suisse
containing any number of dollars."
"Or none," Mike said. "If they were selling something, there
could only be starter cash in them. You can open one with a
hundred euros."
"But that is where the money was going, presumably,"
Vanner said. "The 'big money' this Mikhail guy keeps babbling
about. The Chechens confirm that there were 'special weapons'
involved, but they don't know what. The rumors range from
MANPADs to nukes."
"Find out from Mikey who else this Sergei guy might use
for a contact," Mike said, finishing off his breakfast. "In the
meantime, I'm going to go round up one of the girls and screw
myself to sleep."
"No rest for the donkeys, huh?" Vanner asked.
"I didn't say you had to do it right now," Mike pointed out.
"Let him sweat a while. Without painkillers."
Chapter Six
"Crap!" Mike suddenly muttered, stopping his stroke.
"Kildar?" Jana said, writhing under him. "Kildar, you've
stopped."
"I know," Mike said, propping himself up on his elbows. "I
told Genadi that I'd meet with some of the elders this afternoon.
In about thirty minutes, in fact. Damnit!"
"Surely after last night, they won't mind if you cancel," Jana
said, humping into him. "You have time."
"But I didn't tell them I was canceling," Mike said, sourly.
"That means they'll be here, come hell or high water. I was so
bent on getting it in I forgot."
Firefights always made him horney. He'd been told that was
a natural reaction and as a SEAL he'd learned to suppress it, to an
extent. But under the current circumstances there was no
particular reason to. Which was why as soon as he'd gotten done
with Vanner and breakfast, he'd gone to the harem, literally
grabbed Jana and dragged her upstairs.
He'd already come once but he could feel at least one more
in there and he'd been heading for it happily, with the intent of
following it with about twenty hours of sleep, when he
remembered the meeting.
"We're going to have to cut this short," Mike said. "Sorry."
"You are the Kildar," Jana said, shrugging. "And it is not as
if I have not had mine..."
* * *
"Father Kulcyanov, Father Makanee, Genadi," Mike said as
he entered the parlor, "it is good to see you again. Oleg, long
time no see." When he saw Oleg he was especially glad he hadn't
cancelled; the kid had been out on ops for a week and had a
"murthering great" skirmish in the morning. The least the Kildar
could do was show up after all that.
The meeting was being held in one of the three small parlors
in the caravanserai. One had been set aside more or less
permanently as a "recreation room", read bar, for the trainers. The
second was commonly used by the harem girls. This one was set
aside for when Mike had a small number of guests to entertain.
Such as the Elders, all of whom could easily fit in the
comfortable room.
The room overlooked the gardens by the harem quarters.
When Mike had arrived, the gardens had been suffering from
decades of neglect. The somewhat inexpert care of the Keldara
yardsman hadn't gotten them back to any condition of glory, but
they were much better than when he'd arrived. The roses were
coming along well and they filled the room with scent.
He'd taken a very fast shower and his hair was still wet. He
hoped it wasn't as obvious that he'd just jumped out of bed.
However, given the way that the Keldara talked amongst
themselves, if not to outsiders, he was pretty sure they knew
damned well where he'd been. He hoped they wouldn't take it as
an insult. He was only a few minutes late, after all.
"You gentlemen asked for this meeting," Mike said, sitting
down on the couch and pouring a cup of tea.
"Kildar," Father Kulcyanov said, formerly. "We come to
speak of the customs of the Keldara."
Father Kulcyanov was not the oldest of the Family leaders,
but he was acknowledged as the senior for all matters of protocol
and custom. He was, in fact, the high priest of the Keldara's
ancient worship. A tall man, he was clearly shrunken from his
original growth with clear signs of cardiovascular failure. Once
he must have been as large as Oleg, perhaps bigger, and he had
been one of the few Keldara to fight in the "Great Patriotic War",
WWII, from which he had returned with a chestfull of medals.
"I am always observant of the customs of the Keldara," Mike
said, carefully. In fact, he had trampled all over a few, but only
when it seemed the only way to accomplish what had to be
accomplished. In one case, he'd trampled all over their fear of
debt by taking a girl with a burst appendix to the hospital in
Tibilisi. He wasn't about to let the girl die just because the
Keldara couldn't afford the cost. He'd unknowingly trampled all
over another by taking her friend, Lydia
, Oleg's fiancee, along as a chaperone. It
turned out that as an unmarried female he couldn't have picked a
worse one.
That had, he thought, been smoothed over. But the presence
of Oleg argued against it.
"As you know, Oleg Kulcyanov is fasted to Lydia Makanee,"
Father Kulcyanov continued. "There is a problem in that regard.
It involves bride price."
Mike looked at Genadi. The farm manager had been a
Keldara before being forced off the farm by his predecessor.
However, he hadn't just been tossed off the farm but formally
cast from the Families. The move had been forced on them by his
predecessor, but it put him in a good position from Mike's
perspective; he knew the customs but was no longer bound by
them. And he could generally talk freely about them without
offending the Keldara since he was no longer one of them.
He was also a graduate of the
University of Tibilisi and had thought long and hard about the
customs so he had an understanding that often eluded both Mike
and the Keldara.
"It's a dowery," Genadi said. "It's a long held and very
serious custom, but it has a purpose. It's generally fixed at a
year's income for the male. In the first few years of setting up a
household, there's a strong loss of income from both sides. The
bride generally becomes pregnant quickly and there are
household items that are needed. The male also tends to have a
fall off of quality of work."
"I'm going to need Oleg at high function this year," Mike
said. "But I get your point. How much do you need."
"This is not a situation where the Kildar can simply gift the
bride and groom," Father Makanee said, grimacing. He was one
of the younger Elders and he and Mike had a very good
relationship. So if he was that blunt, Mike probably was in a
minefield. "Bride price is a very personal item. If you gifted Lydia
without recompense then it would,
effectively, make her your bride. Oleg could never marry her in
that condition."
"Not gonna happen," Mike said, looking at Oleg who was
looking very unhappy. "Oleg, where do you stand in this?"
"I will let the Elders explain, Kildar," Oleg said. The guy
looked really unhappy.
"Okay, first things first," Mike said. "Oleg is my top team
leader. I'm cognizant of the customs of the Keldara, but anything
that reduces Oleg's functionality or loyalty is out the window."
"This will reduce neither, Kildar," Oleg said, definitely,
looking Mike in the eye. "This is a long held custom and one that
binds the Keldara. The custom they wish to speak of binds the
Keldara to the Kildar. And you are both my commander and my
friend. I am in support of it."
"What custom?" Mike asked, cautiously.
"The Kardane," Genadi said, grimacing. "In Western cultures
it would be called the 'droit de seigneur.'"
Mike frowned for a second as he tried to remember where
he'd heard the phrase and then blanched.
"You've got to be JOKING," he snapped.
"They're not," Genadi said in rapid English. "It's an old
custom. A really old custom, one that hasn't been used since the
days of the Tsars. But it's custom and they can live with it."
"Kildar, the Kardane is fully acceptable to all involved,"
Father Kulcyanov said. "The prospective bride spends one night
with the Kildar and the Kildar then gifts her with her bride price.
This is a trade for a trade, the opening of the prospective bride
for sufficient funds to set up her household. It must be
consensual on both sides."
Mike opened his mouth to reply angrily and then shut it. He
was the Kildar. He owned the land they lived on and even the
houses they lived in. he could simply order them to ignore this
stupidity and they might. Or he might find himself in a bitter
multi-year war with disaffected troops he had to trust like his
own brothers. So...don't assault the position, find a way around.
"Okay, Lydia
comes up to the caravanserai..."
"Don't go there," Genadi said, in rapid English again. "It has
to be as it was stated. Don't try to twist it or you'll run into real
crap."
"Explain," Mike sighed.
"It has to be value for value," Father Makanee said,
seriously. "Full value must be given in both directions or it
would be a violation of honor. In both directions."
"Translation," Genadi said, in Georgian. "If you don't open
Lydia
, she'll be looked upon as too useless to be
a woman of the Keldara. She'll be looked upon as unfit since you
rejected her in that way. Her honor will be violated by being
alone with you and twice violated for being found wanting."
"And she and Oleg don't get married," Mike said, looking
over at Oleg. "You're going along with this?"
"I am most worried that you will refuse, Kildar," Oleg said.
"Not that I'm going to...be with Lydia
?" Mike asked, incredulously.
"I would consider it an honor," Oleg said, seriously. "As
would Lydia
. We have discussed this."
"Crap," Mike muttered. "What is it with women wanting to
jump in the bed of the Kildar? Why couldn't this have happened
when I was seventeen?"
Both questions were rhetorical since he'd already discussed
it to death with everyone from Genadi to Nielson. The Kildar
was very high status, not only among the Keldara but among the
other groups in the region in contact with them. The girls he'd
rescued from the Chechen slavers had practically fought one
another for the right to be first in his bed. And plenty of the
Keldara girls had made it clear they wouldn't object to even a
casual roll in the hay, which was normally verbotten among the
Keldara. The touch of the King was magic and in the region the
Kildar was regarded as more of a King than anyone since Louis
the XIVth.
"How do you stand with this, Kildar?" Father Kulcyanov
asked, again formally. "The arrangement is that Lydia
will spend one night with you, upon
which night you will open her. For this boon you will grant her
the boon of her bride price, which is at a mimnimum five
hundred rubles."
"Lydia
's worth a lot more than that," Mike
muttered. She was, arguably, one of the three prettiest of the
Keldara women, which put her in the top one percent
internationally. Most of the Keldara girls could easily be
supermodels.
"Very well, but I have conditions upon this ceremony. For
one thing, we will make it a ceremony. If this is to be done, it
should be done well."
"What do you mean?" Genadi asked, curiously.
Mike hadn't been sure but when the question was asked the
broad outlines dropped in as if he had seen them somewhere.
Maybe in a dream, maybe in a book, he wasn't sure. But it was
right.
"Genadi, obtain two horses," he said. "A gelding for me,
black by preference but most important is that it's rideable and
good looking. Obtain a...I think they call it a palfrey as well,
white by preference. In the meantime, if
Lydia
doesn't know how to ride side saddle, get
her instruction, I don't care from where or how much it costs. I
will get with Mother Savina on the preparations for
Lydia
, over and above riding lessons. For one
thing, there are...call them other riding lessons. She's not going to
come to my bed entirely ignorant and terrified. Anastasia will
handle part of that, but I'll put Mother Savina in charge. There
will be special clothing involved for both of us. And when I
come to her house to pick her up, there will be a small ceremony.
I'll work on that. This won't take place for at least a couple of
weeks. We need to get the horses and riding lessons, first."
"Is this an American custom?" Father Kulcyanov asked,
confused.
"No," Mike said. "This is a me custom and you will abide by
it."
* * *
"More hot, young, virgin pussy?" Adams asked as Mike entered the kitchen the next morning.
"Oh, bite me," Mike muttered, pouring a cup of coffee.
"And I thought that not having to fight over time with
Bambi and Thumper was the good life," Adams continued.
"We're talking about Oleg, here, damnit," Mike replied. "If I
don't handle this just right I'm going to lose the support of my
top team leader."
"He's fully on board," Adams said.
"I was talking about it with Mother Savina. She thinks it's a great
idea."
"Jesus, this culture is sick," Mike muttered quietly, so that
Mother Savina, who was pottering around in the kitchen,
wouldn't hear him.
"Not really," Adams said,
shrugging. "Odd. Quaint. But hardly sick. If it was sick, they
would have found a less pleasant way to manage this. What gets
me is how well we get along."
"Huh?" Mike said, frowning. "Not that I'm not good for a
distraction right now."
"You've spent some time in the sandbox," the chief
said, shrugging again. "What do you think about your average
towel-head versus the Keldara?"
"No comparison," Mike said, puzzled. "The Keldara are can-
do. They don't try to stab you in the back. If there's a problem,
they fix it or if they can't they get your assistance with it and pitch
in as much as possible."
"There's other stuff, yeah," Adams
said. "But do they remind you of anyone over there?"
"Not really," Mike said, making a moue of distaste. "If I was
comparing them to the towel-heads, it'd be insulting."
"Ever do much with the Kurds?"
"No," Mike admitted, thinking about it. "I was training a
group that had a couple in it. But not for long."
"The Kurds are the same way," Adams mused, leaning back. "With the regular Arabs and what
have you in Iraq
, you're always negotiating. You need
something done, you have to scratch back first, or grease a palm.
With the Kurds it's like...BAM! You need something that's in
their interest, they're right there in support, be it a firefight or
power-plant construction. We just...get along better with the
Kurds than we do with the Arabs. Ghurkas the same way. You
don't get it with most tribal groups, but you do with, oh, say the
Massai. And the Kurds. And the Ghurkas. And now with the
Keldara. It's like some sort of secret handshake. That's why I
agreed with you about the whole commando thing and why I
don't let it swet me when they come up with something like this.
The one thing that I never particularly liked about the Kurds is
the way they treat their women; the Keldara are at least better at
that."
"Well, I'm glad you think it's such a great idea, since you're
going to have a part of the whole thing."
"Whoa!" the former chief snapped. "I'm not going to touch
Lydia
."
"Much as I like her, it's not Lydia
that I'm worried about," Mike said.
"Mother Savina, come over here. We've got a ceremony to figure
out."
* * *
Mike had a full schedule for the day. Among other things, he
hadn't been keeping up with the progress of the brewery.
When he'd arrived in the valley he'd been surprised by
several things. One, of course, was the general good looks of the
Keldara. The women were outstanding but even the men were so
good looking they could have been actors playing their roles. In
most "peasant" cultures, the nature of the work tended to make
both men and women hard and ugly. So did the inbreeding
characteristic of such cultures. The Keldara were a rare exception
that proved the rule.
The second thing he had been astounded by, however, was
the quality of the local beer.
Georgia
was far better known for its wines than
beer and it had been a long time since he'd had really good beer
when he arrived. But the beer in the tavern in town had been
outstanding, as good as any to be had in an American or German
microbrewery. However, when he began interacting with the
Keldara he'd discovered that the beer in town was their "bad"
stuff; the pure quill was so good it should be illegal.
It wasn't pure beer by German standards, having some
additional berries and herbs added that were limited to the local
area. But it was truly amazing stuff. Mike had seen the
possibilities from the day he took over. The Keldara were
depressingly poor by modern standards. His introduction of
modern equipment and methods in farming would help alleviate
that somewhat, but they really needed a source of capital. They
made outstanding beer, people paid good money for good beer.
Ergo, they needed a brewery and a distribution program.
The problem was, what Mike knew about either could be
written on the inside of a matchbook in crayon. And the Keldara
women who brewed the beer did it in small batches.
His answer, as usual, was to delegate. As part of the Keldara
spring festival, which was so old it matched pre-Christian
festivals found only in ethnology textbooks, a "king" was chosen
as well as a goat, the latter called the caillean. One of the Keldara
militia members, Gurun, an otherwise intelligent and capable
fellow, had been chosen as the caillean when he found a bean in
his bannock.
The caillean was regarded as an omen of bad luck by the
more conservative Keldara and the team he'd been assigned to
had pinned every problem they encountered on him. So he'd been
almost impossible to integrate into the teams.
However, the women were much less attuned to the problem
of having a caillean around. So Mike had given him a quick class
in internet research, a reasonable budget and put him to work on
the brewery problem. Gurun had asked a couple of questions in
the beginning but since the battle with the Chechens Mike hadn't
seen hide nor hair of him. And while he'd seen some construction
on the brewery site – a bench near the road to town that
had once been a toll station – he didn't think it was
complete.
When he pulled onto the bench, he was surprised by the
almost abandoned air of the place. There was a partial building
completed, two storeys more or less with stone walls and a roof
at least, but the doors at the front weren't installed nor were the
windows. There was some construction sounds coming from the
interior, however, so Mike parked and walked in the front door.
"Ware, Kildar!" a voice called from above, just as a balk of
timber crashed to the floor a few feet from him.
"Thanks for the heads up," Mike said, looking up. One of the
older Keldara males was looking through a large hole in the
second floor with an abashed expression on his face.
"Vassily, you were nearly out one Kildar," Mike said.
"Watch where you're thowing logs next time!"
There was far more work completed than Mike had thought.
The upper floors were mostly in and were heavily reinforced with
thick cross-beams that were not much more than adzed down
tree-trunks. The supporting pillars, which were rather close
together towards the front, were much the same. Some of the
bark was still evident in spots. The right hand side of the building
was open to the ceiling in a loft configuration. Mike wasn't sure
what that was for, but he was willing to assume someone did.
"Kildar," a voice called from the back. "We were wondering
when you would drop by."
"Hello, Vatrya," Mike said as his eyes adjusted to the gloom.
Vatrya was one of the older unmarried Keldara females. He
wondered if she was in the same boat as
Lydia
and hoped that, if so, the brewery would
be making enough money soon so the same compromise
wouldn't be necessary. On the other hand, he had to admit that the
honey-blonde was a fine figure of a young woman. Long legs
under that skirt and nice high ones. Not to mention a heart-
shaped face and just lovely dark blue eyes.
He realized he was slipping over to his dark side rather
quickly. The idea of breaking in several of the Keldara women
was more than attractive. But that was the problem; it could
quickly become addictive. It would be easy enough to use the
excuse to abuse the privilege and he had worked too hard to
cultivate the Keldara's respect to lose it that way.
Vatrya was accompanied by a tall, spare, man Mike didn't
recognize. From his clothing, a casual polo shirt and tan slacks,
he probably wasn't a Keldara.
"You haven't even met Mr. Brock," Vatrya said, gesturing
the man forward. "Kildar, this is Herr Gerhard Brock of the Alten
Brewery Company."
"Herr Brock," Mike said, offering his hand.
Brock shook it deliberately in the manner of a European and
nodded.
"You are the Kildar," the man said in English with a strong
German accent. "A pleasure to meet you."
"And you Herr Brock," Mike replied, trying to keep the
confusion off his face.
"The brewery apparatus is in transit at the moment," Mr.
Brock said, waving to the rear. "As stated in the contracts, we had
the vats and piping in stock. I am assured that locally
manufactured materials are available for the barley bins. And, of
course, the ovens are being constructed by the Keldara."
"The Keldara are very good at general construction," Mike
said, nodding.
"I strongly suggest that you take Gurun's suggestion in
regards to the annual convention," Herr Brock continued, stone-
faced. "It would be the perfect venue for your aims in regards to
marketing. Time is, of course, short, but I am being assured that
you are capable of managing the requirements."
"We're very adaptable," Mike said, nodding. "And we are
used to short decision cycles."
"I am to look on the oven construction," Brokc said,
nodding in farewell. "I look forward to further conversation with
you, Mr. Kildar."
"It's just Kildar," Mike said as the man strode towards the
back of the building again. "Vatrya?"
"Yes, Kildar?" the girl asked, her eyes wide and smiling.
"What did I just talk about?"
Chapter Seven
"You want to what?" Mike asked.
Gurun looked uncomfortable sitting in the chair across from
the Kildar. But he stood his ground.
"The convention for the International Association of
Brewers and Brewery Distributors is this year in the city called
Las Vegas in the United States
. You know of this city, Kildar?"
"Yeah, I know Las Vegas
," Mike said, sighing. "
Sin
City
."
"I do not understand, Kildar?" Gurun said.
"Sin
City
?"
"Las Vegas
is in a state, like a province, that permits gambling
and prostitution," Mike said, sighing again. "It's nickname is
Sin
City
. It alliterates in English. So you want to, what?
Have a booth for Keldara Beer at this convention? Do you have
any idea what the logistics are for something like that? And
where in the hell did this Brock guy come from?"
"Kildar, when you assigned me this task I was challenged by
several problem," Gurun said, frowning. "The first being that I
knew nothing about brewing. This is a woman's task in the
Keldara and they guard their secrets closely. Mother Lenka was,
of course, the person to work with on that. She has agreed to be
the...the Brewmistress for the brewery and has been working with
Herr Brock on the design for the initial brews. Herr Brock is
with the Alten Brewery in Koblenz, Germany. Alten has it's own small brewery going back to the
1800s, but it is also an international supplier of brewery
equipment and materials. In addition, they have been most
helpful in regards to marketing and shipment methods. At their
suggestion, I inquired as to a...booth it is called at this
convention. The convention had a cancellation, so I was able to
secure a small booth. It is in an outlying area, but quite
functional for our needs. All of this I have managed to do within
the budget you assigned to me, but to actually set up the booth
and create marketing materials for it will require a higher
budget."
Mike was stone faced through this recital but it was hiding
deep surprise and respect. Gurun had taken his suggestions and
run with them in a way that Mike, even with his experience of the
Keldara, found amazing.
"Where'd you scrounge up Alten?" Mike asked, ignoring the
question of the convention for the moment. He knew diddly
about setting up a booth but he'd been to a couple of conventions
where people sold gear that SpecOps groups used. All he really
remembered about them was booth babes... Now there was a
thought.
"Alten was one of the three companies I contacted after an
internet search," Gurun replied. "They were both the most helpful
and, when I contacted previous customers, the one that seemed
the most well-liked and respected. Their prices were slightly
higher, but Command Master Chief Adams pointed out that
quality is often worth the extra money."
"And they're supplying...?" Mike said, curiously.
"Almost all of our equipment," Gurun answered. "As well as
marketing and distribution advice. They've built breweries in
Europe and the United States but this is the first time they've done one from Georgia or the other Caucasus areas and they seem very enthusiastic."
"You've really taken this bull by the horns, haven't you?"
Mike asked, finally smiling.
"I had some questions about it when I started," Gurun
replied, carefully. "You were...busy with many things. I spoke to
Chief Adams and he said that SEALs consider intiative to be a
good thing. He told me to take as much initiative as I could. I
have been careful with my budget, but it will take more to
complete the plans and get distribution going."
"I'd figured that the budget really only covered research,"
Mike said, musingly. "Okay, tell me about the convention."
"I have never attended such an event," Gurun admitted. "I
have, however, contacted a company that is in the business of
setting up for such events. They have supplied suggestions about
what we would need. Some fo them they can provide, others we
need to provide ourselves. They assure me that they can set up
a...'turn-key' booth, but we must have certain marketing items
prepared in advance."
"Lots of marketing items," Mike said, musingly. "Folders,
brochures, posters, freebies. I'm not even sure how many of each
we'll need."
"In addition, we will need beer," Gurun said, seriously.
"Genadi has a lawyer who is handling the farm's legal issues. I
have contacted him and gotten permissions to export a batch for
marketing purposes and more permissions to import it to the
United States
. He also obtained permissions for us to
import the brewing equipment and a grant from USAID in the
amount of $50,000 for the brewing equipment."
"That's a damned big grant," Mike said, wonderingly.
"It was a matching grant," Gurun said, uncomfortably. "We
agreed to provide $25,000 and they doubled the money."
"And what is seventy-five grand going to buy us?" Mike
asked, curiously.
"All of the brewing equipment to set up a one hundred
hectoliter plant," Gurun replied. "In fact, we're going to have to
do some charging internal to the Keldara to expend it all."
"Run that one by me again?" Mike said, confused.
"There is more money in the grant than we actually need for
equipment and materials," Gurun said, carefully. "Therefore, we
are also using the grant money to pay the Keldara for their work
and some is set aside for initial capital before we get a cash flow
going."
"You've been talking with Nielson, too, haven't you?" Mike
said, grinning.
"Yes, Kildar," Gurun replied with a nod.
"Okay, approved," Mike said. "Top to bottom. And I've got a
few ideas about the booth I'd like to bring up..."
"Hey, Vanner, didn't you buy some whiz-bang photograhy
gear as part of your 'I wanna be a super-spy' package?" Mike
asked as he strolled in the intel shop.
"If we have to do HUMINT work, we're going to have to
have cameras, Kildar," Vanner sighed. "I bought a pretty good
Nikon set-up and a few lenses, yes. Your point?"
"I need to borrow it..."
* * *
Mike wasn't, by any stretch, a professional photographer.
But he'd taken a couple of courses his first time through college
and enjoyed them. And there were some subjects that were just
purely photogenic.
He'd taken the Expedition down to the valley where the
troops that weren't training were hard at work in the fields. The
Keldara males, still picking rocks in areas and checking on the
progress of the barley, were good for a few dozen shots. But it
was when the girls came out with lunch that he really got started.
About a third of the girls from the compound carried baskets
with loaves of bread and rounds of cheese poking out from under
colorful cloths. The rest, however, were carrying buckets
brimming with ice and ceramic beer bottles.
"Lydia
," Mike said, walking over to the group, "I
need to get some photographs of the girls so we can make up
some advertising stuff for the brewery."
"I understood all of that except the last part," Lydia
said, smiling.
Mike thought about that for a second and then shrugged
helplessly. He hadn't considered that the Keldara had so little
access to modern technology and culture that the concept of
"modeling" was outside their world-view.
"You know that Gurun is planning on trying to sell the beer
at a convention in the United
States
?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Lydia
answered as the girls, and most of the
guys, started to gather around.
"Well, we won't be selling it by the glass or bottle," Mike
said, frowning in thought. "What we will be looking for is
someone who will buy it from us in large quantity and then sell it
in the United States
. That's called a distributor. What we will
be doing is looking for a distributor, a good one that will give us
the most money for our beer we can get. With me so far?"
"I can handle even larger words, Kildar," Lydia
replied, batting her eyes at him. "Two,
even three syllable."
"Very funny," Mike replied. "You asked. Okay, so to find the
best distributor, we have to have people notice us. There will be
hundreds of small brewers like us at the convention, all trying to
get the big distributors to notice them. So, how do we get the
distributors to notice us, rather than the other brewers?"
"We have the best beer?" Greznya asked, smiling. Greznya
was one of the older unmarried females, a tall redhead with
bright blue eyes and pert if small breasts who normally worked in
the intel section. Recently, Vanner had started breaking the intel
girls down and assigning them to work with specific teams.
Apparently Sawn's team was on field duty. So the girl had gone
from running an intercept and analysis section to hauling bread
and cheese to the field. On the other hand, she didn't seem to
mind.
Mike considered the answer and then caught Katrina's eye.
The little minx would have the answer he was looking for he was
sure.
"Katrina, how do you get the boys to notice you?" Mike
asked, raising an eyebrow.
"Sway your hips?" Katrina replied, grinning. "Look them in
the eye? Pout your lips? Drop one shoulder? Put your hand on
their arm? Then they'll carry your water and you don't have to."
"Minx," Greznya said with a smile.
"Katrina, however, is right," Mike said, seriously. "We want
the distributors to notice us. We will build some displays for the
booth that have the 'look' of the valley of the Keldara, we will
have bright signs and we will have pictures of pretty girls. Oh,
and we will have pretty girls giving out free tastes of our beer.
Some of you will go to the convention and serve beer, smiling all
the time. But before that we have to make things to give out that
have pictures and information about our beer. And for that we'll
need pictures," Mike finished, holding up the camera.
"Of pretty girls?" Katrina asked. "Then just take them of
me."
"Quiet, you," Mike growled. "I will. But first I want pictures
of all the girls. Girls with beer is a good thing for sales. So line
up and smile."
It took more than that. The Keldara women were trained
almost from birth that they shouldn't use their looks as a weapon.
And they were very camera shy at first. But after Mike got a
couple of good photos, and was able to show them to the girls
using his laptop, they got into the spirit of the shoot.
The best image was towards the end of the shoot, when he
had all the girls line up with their buckets in one hand and the
other wrapped around the girl's shoulders next to them. Most of
them were holding a bottle in their off-hand and he'd managed to
get a decent expression on every face. The boys, thankfully, were
more interested in the shoot than they were in food for the time
being and didn't so much as grumble about their lunch being held
up.
When the food and beer had finally been served Mike
discreetly grabbed Katrina and pulled her aside.
"When you get back to the house, have them call me," Mike
said. "I'd like to get some shots of you later today. But have your
mother call me and set it up."
"Very well, Kildar," Katrina said, batting her eyelashes at
him. "But I can go now. There is less to carry back than we carry
to the field."
"Okay, but we're going to go by the brewery and pick up a
chaperone," Mike said. "I know just the one to use."
* * *
"Hello, Mother Lenka," Mike said as he ducked his head in
the still-under-construction brewery. "Could I have a moment of
your time?"
"There is something you need to know about sex, Kildar?"
Mother Lenka cackled. "Or is it brewing?"
"I need a chaperone, actually," Mike said, leading her out
into the sunshine. "I'm going to take some photos of Katrina for
the brochures for the brewery. But I'm sure as hell not going to
go off alone with her."
"And you think that I'm a chaperone?" Mother Lenka said
then started laughing so hard she choked. "Oh, Kildar, you tell
such good ones!"
"You're just the chaperone I need, old crone," Mike said,
grinning and leading her over to the Expedition. "You're an
older, married female. Wholely respectable...sort of."
"Not even close," Mother Lenka said, still gasping for
breath. "They will assume that you just needed coaching with the
young one!"
"No, they won't and you know it," Mike said. "But when I
ask her to do some of the things I'll need her to do for the shots,
you won't so much as bat an eye. Could you imagine if I asked
her to suck the foam off the top of an open beer bottle in front
of, say, Mother Kulcyanov?"
"She wouldn't even know what you were trying to suggest,"
Mother Lenka said, giving him a toothless grin. "But I
understand. Assuredly I will chaperone you, young man. And if
you need any suggestions..."
"I'm sure we'll do fine," Mike said. "But I do need to pick up
some supplies."
* * *
He'd spotted the location while checking out the Keldara
doing patrolling ops. It was a quiet little dell with a small
waterfall surrounded by trees. There was a wide grassy area that
at the moment was filled with late spring wild flowers and the
light was just about right.
He parked the Expedition on a narrow dirt logging road and
led the two up to the dell then went back to the SUV for his
equipment and the bucket of beer he'd appropriated from the
brewery.
"Okay, Katrina," Mike said, handing the girl a bottle of beer
and positioning her by the waterfall. "What I want you to do is
think of just how wonderful Keldara beer is and when you look
at the camera I want you to look at it as if it's the most wonderful
thing in the world."
"Make love to the camera," Mother Lenka said, somewhat
sadly. "That was what I was told when I would model. Think of
the camera as your lover."
"I didn't know you modeled," Mike said, glancing over her
as he considered the light and made some manual adjustments to
the Nikon.
"I've done many things you would not think I had, young
one," Mother Lenka said then laughed again. "And many that
even you would not believe!"
"Mother Lenka is my role model," Katrina said, holding up
the beer bottle and giving the camera a smouldery look. "Like
this?"
"That's a start," Mike said. "Work it, babe."
Chapter Eight
Mike hit the answer button on his phone and threw the
estimates for the convention booth costs on the desk. He hadn't
realized it would be that much. Just getting electric run was a
minimum of two hours at $175 per hour. Thank God he didn't
need internet connection! At least the photo shoot had worked
out well. He had some killer shots that had been worked into
three different brochures and a poster of Katrina that was sure to
be a big hit. But the more he looked at the rest of his plans, the
more he realized he was going to need some pull in DC...
"Go."
"Kildar, there is a call from the United States
," one of the Keldara women said over the
speaker phone. "An officer in the State Department."
"Put it through," Mike replied, picking up the handset. Speak
of the devil...
"Mr. Jenkins?" a cultured voice said a moment later.
"The same," Mike growled. The only thing worse in the
US
government than IRS agents, in his
opinion, were the Northeastern Liberal brahmins that ran the
State Department. And this guy sounded like a classic case.
"Mr. Jenkins, my name is Wilson Hargreave Thornton, I am
a desk officer for the Moldava section in the State Department."
"I don't suppose that's located in
Minot, North Dakota, is it?" Mike asked. Moldava was the poorest country in
Europe, with no major exports except
blonde hookers. It was hardly the France
desk.
"No, Mr. Jenkins," the man said, laughing dryly and quite
falsely. "The Moldava desk is hardly Siberia. It has had some serious action of late. And it's about that
that I wish to talk to you. I was asked to do a favor for a senior
member of the legislative branch. However, I've exhausted my
sources in this matter. When I so informed him he, quite out of
the blue, asked if I knew you and if I would contact you for him.
I will say you're a hard man to find."
"I like it that way," Mike said.
"So I understand," the man said, chuckling again. He had the
dry chuckle of a person who had had their sense of humor
surgically removed but tried to act as if it was still intact. "I
would like to ask you to come to
Washington
for a few days and meet with the member I was
referring to. He needs someone with your...background."
"I don't think so," Mike said. "I don't go around taking
orders from 'senior members of the legislative branch.' I don't
even take them from senior members of the executive branch."
"Mr. Jenkins," Wilson Hargreave Thornton answered,
seriously, "you have many enemies both internationally and,
frankly, within the government. Having a senior senator that
owes you a favor is in your best interests. I might add that the
Senator has already been instrumental in helping you. I believe
you recently received a grant from the International Monetary
Fund?"
"Yeah," Mike said, grimacing. "I'd thought they were being
pretty friendly with the taxpayer's money."
"Nonetheless," Thornton
replied, clearly smiling.
"And what the hell does a senator have to do with the IMF?"
Mike asked.
"Mr. Jenkins," the State Department officer answered,
chuckling, "there are senators and senators. And then there are the
ones that can quietly suggest that stalled paperwork be unstalled.
Or, for that matter, permanently stalled I might add."
"My...background is generally lots of dead bodies," Mike
said, bluntly, ignoring the implied threat. "Senior senators have a
remarkable way of forgetting past favors when bodies turn up."
"Not this time," Thornton
said, just as bluntly. "I'll tell you that it involves a
young lady who is in trouble. And you are, frankly, the only name
that came to mind to fix that problem. Given your...background."
"Crap," Mike muttered. They knew his hot buttons, that's for
sure. "When?"
"The senator can set aside tomorrow evening for a quiet and
discreet discussion," Thornton
replied. "Would that work for you?"
"If I can get a plane," Mike said. "And this is not going to be
a freebie unless it's dead easy."
"Understood," Thornton
replied. "Check in to the
Washington
Sheraton. The senator will contact you there."
"And you'll disavow any connection to me, right?" Mike
said, grinning.
"I'm glad you understand," Thornton
said, cutting the connection.
* * *
"Anastasia," Mike said, sticking his head in the harem
manager's office. "Could you do me a favor and pack me some
bags. I have to go to DC. Enough for a few days. No uniforms.
Some casual clothes and a few suits with sundries."
"Very well, Kildar," Anastasia said. Mike's harem manager
and general girl Friday had been a member of an Uzbek shiek's
harem since she was twelve. She had been singled out, early on,
as of management quality and took over as full harem manager
when she was twenty-one. Mike had visited the shiek with the
specific purpose of finding a harem manager and since Anastasia,
then twenty-six, had gotten a bit long-in-the-tooth for the shiek,
Mike had returned with her in tow. Unlike the shiek, Mike
offered her complete freedom to come and go but she had long
before developed the professional harem girl's acrophobia and
spent the vast majority of her time in the caravanserai. A serious
sexual masochist she fulfilled Mike's occasional need to wield a
whip and he fulfilled hers for a serious leather back-scratching.
"When will you be back?"
"Not sure," Mike admitted. "But that will do for as long as
I'll need those clothes. And call that charter company in England
and get me a jet. I might as well travel in
style."
* * *
Mike hated DC. It wasn't anything personal, just a formless
resentment. When he'd been a SEAL, DC was synonymous with
the "brass", the medal bedecked bastards, most of whom had
never heard a shot in anger, who sent the teams out to work
miracles and then bitched when they failed. Or performed the
miracles but caused a bunch of bad press over dead tangoes.
Now, somehow, he'd ended up being brass. Or close enough
as made no never mind. He didn't walk the corridors of power,
but if he picked up the phone he could be having a quiet dinner
with the president this very evening. Or the secretary of state or
defense or the national Security Adviser. That made him, de
facto, a Washington
"player", even if he spent his time staying as far away
as he could.
And at the moment he was particularly pissed. He was just
hanging out waiting for a phone call. He hadn't even brought one
of his "ladies" with him to pass the time. All he could do was
watch Fox News and kick his heels.
He got up and walked to the mini-bar, preparatory to just
getting stinking drunk and telling the "senior senator" to go stuff
his mission, when the phone rang.
"Jenkins," he growled.
"I've set aside a meeting room on the third floor," a faintly
familiar baritone replied. "The Sherman Room. Follow the
signs."
"I'll be there in a few minutes," Mike said. Might as well
find out what the fucking senator wanted.
* * *
There were two heavies outside the room. They had the look
of Secret Service, which made the "senior senator" very senior
indeed. As Mike approached the door a man in coveralls came
out carrying a black instrument bag. The "senior senator" had had
the room swept before the meeting which was rather unusual.
"Jenkins," Mike said, stopping at the door and ignoring the
technician.
"Cell phone, pager and PDA, please," one of the men said,
holding out a canvas bag with a zipper lock.
Mike pulled out his cellphone and dropped it in the bag then
shrugged. The other agent pulled a magnetic wand and ran it over
him as the first agent zipped the bag shut and handed Mike the
key.
When he was swept, the agent knocked on the door and
opened it to a faint call from inside.
Mike instantly recognized the "senior senator" when he
entered. He couldn't quite place the name, but he'd seen him on
TV a few times.
"Mr. Jenkins," the man said, getting up from his seat at the
conference table and walking over to the door to shake Mike's
hand. Just about middling height but with a commanding
presence, he had a firm handshake and looked Mike right in the
eye. He was a guy you trusted immediately. Just like any good
con artist or politician. Speaking of redundancy. "I'm Senator
John Traskel."
"New Jersey
," Mike said, nodding his head. "You're the guy
they're saying's going to be the next minority leader."
"And I'm the senior minority member of the Senate Foreign
Relations committee, which is more to the point," the senator
said, waving him to the a seat. "But please call me John."
"Mike," Jenkins said, sitting down. "You've got a problem."
"One of my constituents does," the senator said, nodding
sagely. He was a tall guy with prematurely gray hair that was
perfectly coiffed and his suit hadn't come off the rack. Mike also
remembered that there was serious family money behind the
senator, something in excess of a hundred mil. Come to think of
it, he was also one of the few members of the Democratic party
who was a tad right wing on social issues. Which was why he
was also being bruited around for a presidential candidate in the
next election.
"His daughter has gone missing," the senator continued,
opening up one of the folders and sliding a picture of a girl in a
bathing suit across the table. She looked about fourteen and
filled the suit well. Blonde and very pretty.
"Natalya Fedioushina," the senator continued. "Fourteen."
"Call America
's Most Wanted," Mike said, sliding the pic
back to the senator.
"She went missing in Moldava," the senator said, seriously.
"How the fuck did that happen?" Mike asked, aghast.
"The gentleman is a native Ukrainian," the senator said,
sighing. "His wife was visiting relatives in Moldava when the
young lady was kidnapped. Presumably for, well..."
"To be sold as a sex-slave," Mike said. "It's Moldava's only
real export. And you want me to find her? Do you have any idea
what sort of task that is?"
"Yes," the senator said, nodding. "I do. I've seen both the
open and the classified data on the sex slave industry. But we do
have one lead."
"Go," Mike said, shrugging.
"This man," the senator continued, sliding another picture
across. The pic was taken of a man exiting a small foreign car, a
Ladia Mike thought from the roofline. Heavyset, dark, he had the
look of a Balkans pimp type, one each. "Yuri Smegnoff. He is
most probably the man who kidnapped her. Unfortunately, we
don't know what he did with her."
"How long?" Mike asked.
"Two weeks ago," the senator replied, slipping the pic back
into the file and sliding the whole folder across.
"By now she's in
Albania or Serbia
being broken in," Mike said, flipping the
folder open. There were more pics of the girl and of Smegnoff as
well as a list of his common hang-outs.
"We just want to know where she is," Traskel said.
"That's not going to be easy, even if this pimp is a good
contact," Mike replied.
"You very much want to do this mission, Mr. Jenkins," the
senator replied, tightly. "I need the favor. And you don't want me
remembering that you didn't help when I needed it."
"Was that a threat, senator?" Mike said, smiling but not
looking up. "Please. You've got access to some of my files, at
least. Any threat from you is hardly going to sway me."
"You're playing with the big boys now, Mr. Jenkins," the
senator almost snarled. "This isn't killing a few terrorists on an
island in the Bahamas
. This is the kindness and consideration, or
not, of the United States Senate. You really don't want to piss me
off."
"I've been playing with the big boys for a long time,
Senator," Mike said, bluntly. "Again, water, duck."
"All my constituent wants is his little girl back," the senator
said, tightly. "Please?"
"Big contributor?" Mike asked, flipping through the file.
"Yes," the senator admitted. "Very large."
"Good," Mike said, closing the file and looking at the
senator again. "Because this isn't going to be a freebie. I won't be
able to lone-wolf this one. I'll need an intel team and shooters
most likely. This is likely to get bloody."
"I believe that you already got a fairly substantial IMF
grant..." the senator said, frowning.
"Hah!" Mike said, chuckling. "That's barely earnest money.
You have any idea how much an op like this is going to cost
me?"
"I suppose I should," the senator said, nodding. "A million?"
"More like five," Mike said, frowning. "It's going to be
expensive on my end. I'll submit a cost sheet at the end. He'd
better pay up."
"That won't be an issue," the senator said.
"You want her extracted?" Mike asked.
"Just found," the senator replied. "When we know where she
is, we can use other channels to get her out. Legal channels. I
trust that I don't have to suggest that my name not come up if
anything...untoward occurs."
"I'm very discreet," Mike replied, standing up. "But when I
send you the bill, your friend had better pay it. Because if he
doesn't, you will."
* * *
Mike perused the file as the Gulfstream crossed the Atlantic . Finding the girl wasn't going to be
easy but that wasn't what was bothering him. The girl in the
photos was certainly pretty enough, but she didn't look like a girl
having a great time at the beach. And the picture wasn't taken in
the US
, he was sure. The rocks along the beach
were limestone or something similar. There simply weren't any
major beaches in the US
that had limestone around them. Not like
the stuff in the pic, anyway. He'd put money on the pic being
taken on the Adriatic or Black Sea coast.
And the bathing suit she was wearing in the one pic and the dress
in the other were European, not American.
On the other hand, the unnamed "constituent" was an
immigrant. The pics might have been taken in the Old Country.
But the girl's eyes...she was not enjoying having her picture
taken. It wasn't teenage surlinous. She was resigned and unhappy.
Mike frowned and looked close at the bathing suit pic. He
wished he had a magnifying glass with him because it looked
very much as if the girl had a large bruise on her abdomen. Like
from a punch.
The whole op had a bad feel to it. The minor State
Department official contacting him, the senator, the pictures. It
just didn't add up.
Well, he'd know he'd found out what was really going on
when it started to stink.
* * *
"Well, it would certainly be nice to have some support from
the other side of the aisle," Nielson mused as he looked at the
pictures. "And the lady is certainly charming enough in a naifish
sort of way."
"Tracking her's going to be a stone bitch, though," Adams pointed out. "Most of the gangs
running this racket in that region are Albanians. They're right
bastards and mostly come from Albanian clans. They all know
each other, so we won't be able to insert anyone."
"Not on the runner's side," Mike said, rubbing his chin.
"What are you thinking?" Nielson asked, looking up.
"I'm thinking that we need Vanner and Cottontail in here,"
Mike replied.
* * *
"That's the op," Mike said looking at Vanner and the Russian
hooker. Cottontail was sitting up and apparently paying rapt
attention but that could mean anything. Mike had picked her up
from the local brothel, very much against his will. The girl was
pure poison. Either as a result of her experiences as a sex slave or
from nature she was a vicious sociopath and delighted in making
life for everyone around her miserable. Since she'd been living at
the caravanserai, Mike had kept her from being too much trouble
by keeping her busy, first in studies and then later working with
Vanner in the intelligence section. The girl was smart as hell,
which was part of the problem; as a whore she'd been
underutilized.
But she had the makings of a first class agent. She simply
had no soul and was a great actress.
"How are you planning on tracking her?" Vanner asked,
curiously.
"Well, the first line is that we're going to pay a trip to the
pimp and ask him nicely what happened to the girl," Mike said
then looked over at Cottontail. "The other string rests with you."
"You want me to go into that," the girl said, waving at the
papers.
"It's not like you don't know the moves," Mike replied,
flatly.
"What's in it for me?" Cottontail asked, just as flatly.
"Money," Mike said. "Twenty thousand euros for the entire
op, assuming you do your job. And you'll get to fuck over the
sort of guys that made you a whore. We're going to be having a
lot of polite and charming conversation with them."
"Do I get to watch?" Cottontail asked, seriously.
"If it fits the mission," Mike said. "And I'll guarantee you
that we'll be following. I won't say bad things won't happen to
you, but we're going to be on your ass the whole way. I guarantee
you won't be stuck back in the system and we'll try damned hard
to keep you alive. But mostly it will be up to you. You in?"
Cottontail looked at him coldly for a moment then nodded.
"At the very least, take pictures," she said, suddenly grinning
in a way that was truly scary.
"Will do," Adams replied. Of all the
men who knew her, Adams was perhaps
the only one who liked her. At least in part because he liked right
bastards.
"We're going to need two teams," Mike said. "Each will
have an intel and operational section and a group of shooters and
security. We're going to have to insert across multiple borders,
through multiple police jurisdictions and, worse, into multiple
gang territories. And after a bit the fact that we're closing on
something might become obvious. The intel section..."
"Tracking devices," Vanner said, looking at the ceiling.
"Bugs. Cameras. Shotgun mikes. Body mikes..."
"You're on it," Mike said, looking at Adams
. "The shooters..."
"Team Sawn is dialed in on entry techniques,"
Adams said. "Break it down four ways. One team for
entry, one for security, attached to each main group. We'll need
vehicles..."
"The white vans the traffickers use," Nielson said, nodding.
"Plenty of room and..."
"The Keldara girls that are handling intel and commo will
just look like more whores on their way west," Mike said,
nodding. "With the shooters as their guards. We got us a plan?"
"Well," Nielson said with a sniff. "It's a start."
Chapter Nine
Mike considered the border crossing as the six vans
approached it. It had just flat taken six vans for all the teams and
gear.
Set up of the operation had only taken three days. Vanner
had many of the items they were going to need on-hand and the
few that he didn't were more available in the Ukraine than in
Georgia
. The route had taken them through the
Ukraine
and a brief stop at Dnipropetrovsk filled
in the gaps. Weapons were easy; the Keldara were very well
armed.
However, travelling to Moldava had taken some time. The
roads in Georgia and
the Ukraine
ranged from bad to just awful. And given
that the vans were packed with foreign nationals using fake
passports and enough weapons for a small coup, discreet travel
was the byword. They'd mostly stayed off the major roads, which
meant not only circuitous travel but staying mostly on the "just
awful" roads.
By the end of the week's trek, Mike felt as if his kidneys had
been shaken out through his sinuses.
However, they'd made it to the Moldavan border. The
problem being that the out-of-the-way border crossing near
Ribnita, which according to reports was unguarded, had a couple
of Moldavan soldiers running a checkpoint.
"Be of good cheer and tip heavily," Mike said. The headset
dangling from his ear was a bit out of the ordinary for white
slavers but it wasn't entirely out of character. "Hand me your
passports," he continued, looking to the rear of the vehicle.
The seats right behind the driver's were filled by three
Keldara in work clothes and jeans. Their heavy-cotton button-
down shirts were untucked so the pistols at their waist were
concealed. Poorly in a couple of cases, but concealed. The rest of
their gear was packed in the cargo area of the van, stuffed into
several discrete pullman bags. He just had to hope that the border
guards didn't want to search them or they'd find far more than
they bargained for.
Behind them were four girls from Vanner's intel section in
blouses and jeans. The latter had caused some screaming from
the more traditional Keldara but Mike had thrown the weight of
the Kildar behind the decision. The girls were potentially vital to
the operation and they had to fit in. Most women didn't wear
skirts when travelling, even in this part of the world. A couple of
the girls had looked askance when told they were going to dress
in pants, but most of them had taken to them with glee. Change
was coming to the Keldara in the form of Levi's 505s.
In the last set of seats were four more Keldara heavies, the
entry team portion of the shooters. They also had pistols
holstered at their belts but in addition they had sub-guns under
the seat. Mike dearly hoped that they weren't going to start the op
by killing a couple of Moldavan soldiers. That would be...bad.
"Hello," Yevgeni said to the soldier as he rolled to a stop
next to him. "How are you today?"
"I'm out here on this shit road," the soldier grumped as the
passports were handed across.
"At least it's not raining," Yevgeni said, happily.
Mike looked around carefully. There were only two, the
soldier taking the passports and his companion, who was leaning
against a tree by the side of the road. If worse came to worse,
they could probably take them both down without bloodshed.
The soldier flipped through the passports, pulling out a bill
from the top one and pocketing it.
"You are from Georgia
?" the soldier asked.
"Yes," Yevgeni said, grinning. "We are a church group going
to visit monasteries in your country and
Romania
."
"And I'm the High Prelate," the soldier replied, handing the
passports back. "It is lonely out here, how about some time with
one of your girls?"
Mike blinked at the suggestion. It wasn't one he'd run across
before, but he'd never been masquerading as a white slaver.
"I think that could be arranged," Mike said, smiling. "I have
just the girl for you..."
"That one looks good," the soldier said, pointing in the
window at one of the Keldara girls. As it turned out it was Daria,
one of Yevgeni's first cousins. He could see the Keldara slowly
turning purple at the suggestion.
"No, no," Mike said, trying to keep the desperation out of
his voice. If he didn't get this guy to go for Cottontail there was
going to be blood on the walls. As he was thinking that, the other
soldier started to wander over, wondering what was going on. "I
have a very pretty one for you and your friend," Mike continued,
hitting his mike. "Adam...ovich, tell Cottontail she's got a special
duty up front." He only remembered at the last moment to use
Russian and he knew he still had an accent. He wasn't supposed
to be talking at all! Damn Yevgeni!
"We will want one for each of us," the soldier said, looking
in the van at the back. "And I still like that one by the window.
She is very pretty and has good tits."
"Kildar..." one of the Keldara muttered from the backseat.
"Silence," Mike snapped. "I have a girl coming up for you.
She is very good, very pretty and can take you both at once if you
wish." He glanced in his rear-view and sighed in thankfulness as
he saw Cottontail walking up the line of vehicles. There were a
couple of cars stopped behind the line of vans, now. This was
going downhill fast.
"Hi, boys," Cottontail purred as she came around the van to
the driver's side. "You want some company?"
The Keldara women were justly famous for their beauty but
Cottontail had most of them equalled at least. And when she put
her mind to it, she could exude a sort of raw sensuality that was
riveting. What was most riveting was that she looked like a teen
virgin, even if she'd been with more men than a dockside whore
and had the soul of Jeffrey Dalmer. Part of the strength of her act
was that men rarely really looked at her eyes. Oh, they were
stunningly beautiful, but men never got beyond that. They didn't
see the little fire of hell burning in the rear. Or if they did they
thought it was just lust, not pure evil.
"She will be good to you," Mike said, waving them away.
"We will pull out vans to the side until you are...done."
Mike got out and waved the vans forward and to the side of
the small back road then walked down the line, wishing he
smoked. He needed something to steady his nerves. He was fine
if it was a matter of killing everyone in the building, hole, ship or
even town. But this shit was for somebody who enjoyed it.
He also took the time to wave the two cars that had been
waiting through, and then found the chief in the fourth.
"What was that all about?" Adams
asked.
"The soldiers were bored and horney," Mike said, sharply.
"They thought it would be a good way to pass the time to
'borrow' Daria as part of their tip."
"The Moldav bastards," Sedama snarled from the driver seat
as the rest of the Keldara muttered angrily.
"Yevgeni nearly blew his top," Mike snapped. "But this sort
of thing is going to come up. Handle it. Talk your way through.
I'll tell you when you can kill someone. Don't kill anyone until I
tell you. Is that clear?"
"Clear Kildar," Sedama replied, breathing out. "So
Cottontail is taking care of it?"
"Yes," Mike said, still angry. As much at himself as at the
situation. He should have prepared for it.
"And on another crossing when we don't have her along?"
one of the Keldara in the rear of the van asked.
"I'm going to have to think about that one," Mike admitted.
"Giving up the Keldara women is, clearly, out of the question."
"I dunno," another Keldara said. "There's always Anisa..."
"Hey!"
* * *
Mike was leaning on the front of the lead van, looking at a
map, when Cottontail came back out of the woods wiping at the
corner of her lip with her thumb.
"Everybody satisfied?" Mike asked, cautiously. He hadn't
told her she was going to have to bribe border guards and he felt
curiously shamed by the incident. It wasn't as if she hadn't
screwed enough men for two more to be no big deal.
"They are," she replied, archly.
"And are they alive?" With Cottontail you always had to ask.
"Yes," she admitted. "I considered it, but it would interfere
with the mission, no?"
"Yes, it would," Mike said.
"And the mission is killing many slavers. This is a mission I
like. I would not want it to fail."
Her eyes were as clear and innocent blue as a child's.
* * *
Chisinau was the capital of the small country of Moldava.
Moldava was more an agreed upon border state between Russia and Romania
than a real country. Russia had troops on
the east side of the Dniester River to support the local slavic
ethnic groups so the central government couldn't even really call
that "their" territory. The situation was so bleak, they'd even
elected a communist as president and more or less regressed to a
semi-communist, sort of Stalinist, failed state. Totally
landlocked, the poorest country in Europe, it's total exports were limestone, hookers and people looking
for a real life somewhere else.
The teams had been installed at the Hotel Stalin on the
outskirts of town. The hotel was near an industrial area and if
Chisinau had a better and worse part of town, it was in the worst.
In keeping with the generally dilapidation of the neighborhood,
the hotel looked as if it had been used by every rocker at Woodstock
. The carpet, where it wasn't pulled up entirely, was
about fifty years old and poorly made then. The rooms were
filthy, the corridors were littered and the bathrooms didn't bear
description.
It also was doing a booming business. They'd barely been
able to get enough rooms for all of them and when Mike checked
out their fellow travellers he could see why. They weren't the
only people bringing girls through Moldava.
He wandered down to the bar, which gave "dive" a whole
new meaning, and looked over the offerings. To his amazement,
they had Johnny Walker Red.
"Walker
," he said, perching on the rickety stool. The bar was
about half filled and the clientele was telling. The men were all
beefy and from various bulges mostly armed. The women were
all wearing damned near nothing and given the temperatures in
the bar they had to be freezing. Most of them also seemed
rather...subdued. As in "if I make a wrong sound, my pimp is
going to beat the shit out of me. In public. And nobody will
care."
One of the girls had just had her head pushed under the table
when he sensed someone coming up from his off-side.
"Where you in from?" a man said in Russian as he settled in
the seat next to Mike.
"Georgia
," Mike said, honestly.
"Strange accent," the man said, frowning. "You're not
Georgian."
"American," Mike admitted. "This is a way to pay the bills
and the fringe benefits are great."
"Now we've got Americans in the game," the man grumped.
"I am Ahmed Pasha. I saw some of your girls, though. Very nice.
How much?"
"I'm taking them to
Montenegro
for an auction," Mike said. "They're not
for sale. Mike Duncan."
"I saw one, a blonde, very big breasts," the man replied. "I'll
give you a thousand euros and you won't have to feed her from
here to Montenegro
. I don't keep them, myself, you know. I am
broker and move them. I know men will give me good price for
her."
"I can get better money there," Mike said, laughing. "The
buyers are special, pimps with wealthy clients. They want virgins
or damned near. Clean and undamaged so they can have them
first and hard. That's why I've got so much muscle with me, so
the girls don't have to be disciplined. I'll go with the plan. What's
the word on the roads west?"
"Ungheni was covered when I came back through," Pasha
said. "You have to go all the way up to Balti to get through
without a check. But the guards on Balti will usually take only
five euros per passenger. They prefer euros. Here in Chinisau so
many girls come through, so many men. Some have do this long
time, some, like you, just getting started. I know everybody, can
find best price for you. Fifteen hundred. She was very lovely. The
one wearing the blue blouse. Very nice breasts. Very nice. I, too,
have special customers and girls that good are getting hard to
find."
"They had guards on Ribhita," Mike replied. "Five euros per
passenger and they wanted a freebie. Fortunately I had one that
had already been broken in or I'd have been out a lot of money.
I've only been doing this for a while, yeah, but I've got a covered
racket. Just me and my partner and we cut out the middlemen.
When we're done with them we sell them to guys like you; my
partner handles that. No dice. Not even in the game. That's Daria
and I'm looking at damned near ten grand for her first. You'd just
dump her into the pipeline; if you've got special customers I'm
the Pope. What was happening in Romania
?"
"Not much until you get near Cluj Napoca," the man said.
"There was a checkpoint on the E-60 near Tarnaveni. Real
bastards when I went through west. They acted like I was
transporting my girls for immoral purposes and against their will.
The shame. And it was very expensive in bribes. Ten thousand in
dollars or euros? It doesn't matter, that is crazy. I can buy twenty
girls for that."
"Don't know how far east you're going, but we hit one like
that near Novyi Buh," Mike replied. "I explained to one of the
girls that she had to talk us through. Or else. I understand,
though, that there was a crackdown in
Odessa
and some of the guys are looking to move their more
noticeable girls. You could probably get some good trades. And
she's not really for sale, anyway."
"I operate here," Pasha said. "Although I buy Ukrainian girls.
And if you have any more like those, next time through, I'll give
you a good deal. I know all the men who buy and sell. I wonder
who you know in Montenegro
? Ammad? Tufa?"
"Neither," Mike said. "Very small network; I doubt you've
run into it. We get high price girls and charge Westerners, mostly
American, for the privilege of breaking them in. Charge them
through the nose. You have to have the contacts for that. My
partner is connected in the States. Then we dump them in the
regular channels. We're in the market for those types of girls,
though. Bringing these all the way from
Georgia
is a pain. You know a guy named
Smegnoff? I understand he's got some girls that I might want to
buy."
"Everyone has got girls," Pasha said, shrugging. "Smegnoff,
yes, he has some good ones sometimes. If you really want to see
him, he is in the Café Arrendi in the evening. But so do my
suppliers. And we don't use them as hard as he does. He had one
girl that tried to run away, so he broke her knees. She can walk
only with a limp, now. Very sad." He didn't seem terribly broken
up about it.
"I need them unused," Mike said, standing up and tossing a
twenty euro bill on the bar. "I can do with a couple of very high
quality girls, very pretty, virgins, young. I'll give you a good deal
on them. I'll be around for a couple of days if you get anything
worth talking about."
* * *
"Well, we're established," Mike said as he came in the room
the team was using as a command post. Vanner was already in
place with various electronic gadgets set up and a wire discreetly
running out the window. "The agreed cover: we're running high
quality girls to Montenegro
for a special auction. I put out the word
that we're in the market for unspoiled girls."
"I've gotten Smegnoff's cellphone plotted," Vanner said,
nodding. He had a set of cup headphones on with one cup
dangling. "He's about a half a kilometer southeast of here which
plots out as..."
"The Café Arrendi," Mike said, grinning as the intel
specialist turned to look at him. "Already got the word."
"What's the play?" Adams asked.
"Work him," Mike said. "Then get him someplace quiet and
have a nice long chat."
Chapter Ten
The Café Arrendi was a "coffee shop" that fronted for
a brothel. It was on a minor street in south Chinisau that was the
center of what passed for a red-light district. The traffic along the
road was slow since business, even in the early morning hours,
was brisk. Girls lined both sides of the streets, waving at the
passing cars and rapidly boarding those that stopped.
"Pull over, here," Mike said as the van reached the front of
the shop. He noticed that none of the girls were waving for them
to stop; it was apparent what the van was used for.
What the darkened windows cloaked, however, were five
Keldara in full body armor, cradling MP-5s. If anything
"untoward" went down in the coffee shop, their job was to
extract Mike, and Smegnoff, alive. And since Mike was the
Kildar, they were very serious about that mission.
Mike rolled out of the van and stepped between two cars to
the curb. He noticed that besides the girls there were men, most
of them heavyset and wearing bad suits, scattered along the road.
He wasn't sure if they were there to make sure the girls kept
working or as external security on the coffee shop. He did spot
what was probably the Ladia the picture of Smegnoff was taken
by. Of course, there were three other Ladias parked within less
than a block of it, but it was nearly opposite the coffee-shop and
the right color and trim.
The interior of the shop was run down with rickety tables
and chairs and a filthy floor. Mike was almost afraid to try the
coffee, but it wasn't all that bad. The girls working the counter
were the most rode-hard-and-put-up-wet duo he'd ever seen, a
hollow faced girl with black hair and a bleached blonde. Both
were dressed in skin-tight tube dresses and clearly were supposed
to be advertising. If they were, they were advertisements for
getting every venereal disease ever discovered and probably a few
that were barely known.
Mike had spotted Smegnoff when he walked in. The pimp
was in a corner with two other males. They had the scent of
muscle and helpers at "breaking" girls. They were larger than the
pimp but Mike figured if it came down to cases he could take all
three of them. And the Keldara fire team was waiting in a van
outside.
He sipped the espresso as he drifted over to the table.
"You're Smegnoff," Mike said, sitting down uninvited.
"And you're the new American," Smegnoff said, smirking. "I
hear you're in the market for girls."
"Top quality, only," Mike said, nodding and ignoring the
muscle. "Pretty, young and untouched."
"What is the fun of selling untouched girls?" Smegnoff
sneered.
"Money," Mike said, shrugging. "You can get pussy
anywhere. But young, virgin pussy, that's real money if you've
got the right customers."
"I have customers like that," Smegnoff said, shrugging. "A
few. Everyone does."
"Well, that's my main clientele," Mike said. "I hear you
sometimes get pretty top quality girls."
"They're around," Smegnoff said, nodding and eyeing the
former SEAL. "Not all the time, you know?"
"Anything at the moment?" Mike asked. "Or, for that matter,
anything you can steer me to that hasn't been raped, yet?"
"Not right now," Smegnoff said. "But they will be
expensive."
"We'll bargain," Mike said. "I'm in town for two days letting
the ladies rest. Then we're gone. You've got that long."
* * *
"I've got a shotgun mike set up on the Arrendi," Vanner said
when he got back. "But his car has a heavy by it. I can't get a
tracer on it; the Keldara were too obvious."
Mike looked around the room at the Keldara females and
rubbed his chin.
"What are you thinking?" Yevgeni asked, eyeing the Kildar
uncomfortably.
"Anisa," Mike said, glancing at the Keldara girl. She was a
lovely young brunette with long legs and a classical face.
"Yes, Kildar?" the girl asked, curiously.
"Would you be willing to pose as a hooker?" Mike asked.
"We're going to run into this problem again. I could send
Cottontail to do it, but what I'd like is to send both of you. One
of you to distract the guard, the other to plant the tracer. That
way if we have to do it again, or something like it, after
Cottontail is inserted you'll have experience. You'll have a
Keldara back-up team, of course."
"What would I have to do?" the girl asked, uncertainly.
"Well, the first thing is getting into character," Mike said.
* * *
"I cannot wear this in public!" Anisa wailed.
The tube dress was, okay, pretty darned short. And the girl
had clearly never worn high-heels in her life. Cottontail, who
could walk in them like most girls walked in flats, was smirking
as the Keldara female attempted to balance on the top of the
stilletto sandals.
Cottontail and Killjoy had been sent out shopping and come
back with everything that Anisa needed to look like a hooker.
And the girl did, albeit a rather expensive one.
"I'm having problems with this," Adams said in English, shaking his head.
"So am I," Mike admitted. "But I think it's the best plan to go
with."
"Oh, it's not the plan," Adams
replied. "I'm wondering how much we could get for her..."
"Don't go there," Mike snapped, shifting to Georgian.
"Anisa, you look perfect. You'll be fine. All you have to do is
walk up to the car with Katya, lean up against it while she talks
to the guard, plant the tracer and then walk away with her. You'll
be under observation the whole time and the Tigers will be there
if anything goes wrong. But nothing will. You'll do fine."
"I cannot walk down the street in this!" Anisa said. "I look
like a whore!"
"Uhmm..." Vanner said. "That's sort of the point."
Anisa opened her mouth to respond and then shut when she
couldn't think of a reply.
"Well..." she said after a moment, half triumphantly. "How
am I supposed to carry it dressed like this? Where am I going to
hide it?!"
"It's not that large," Vanner said, pulling out a gray rectangle
that was about the size and general shape of a cigarette lighter.
"It's got a contact adhesive on one side. I suppose you should
hide it somewhere where it's out of sight and easy...to...access..."
he trailed off.
Anisa looked at him blankly then over at the Kildar.
"On your leg, right up in your crotch is what he doesn't want
to say," Mike said, bluntly. "For that matter, you might be able to
simply palm it. Keep it in your fist. The problem with that is that
people will assume it's money or something."
"I don't think this is going to work," Anisa said, holding out
her hand for the device.
Vanner helpfully peeled the cover off the contact adhesive
and handed it over.
"You can turn your back, now," Anisa said, looking at the
men.
"Oh," Mike said, turning around, "right."
* * *
Anisa looked at Katya, who was standing with her arms
folded watching and then shrugged. She took the small rectangle
and spreading her legs slightly, stuck it to the inside of her thigh.
"You can still see it," Anisa said, triumphantly.
"Higher," Katya said, sighing angrily.
"If I put it any higher it will be inside of me!" Anisa
protested.
"And the problem with that is...?" Katya asked. "Besides, it
won't. Just put it higher. There is plenty of room. You just have
to actually touch yourself. Don't tell me you've never touched
that part before."
"Cottontail..." Mike said, warningly.
"Ow! Ow!" Anisa exclaimed as she peeled it back off. "That
hurts!"
"It's...pretty strong adhesive," Vanner replied, his back still
turned.
"Oh, no," Anisa said as she fumbled under the dress.
"What now?" Mike asked in exasperation.
"It's...caught," Anisa said, blushing. "On...hair. Down there."
"You should have waxed," Cottontail replied, her arms still
crossed. "This is silly. Let me carry it."
"I don't think Anisa is up to chatting up a guard," Mike
pointed out. "Do you have it in place?"
"Yes," Anisa said, adjusting her dress. "You can look again."
"Now, try walking in the heels," Mike said.
Anisa carefully tottered across the room, stopped at the far
side and turned without actually falling down.
"This is insane," Katya said, angrily. "Just let me do it! I can
chat up the guard and plant it!"
"She needs to learn," Mike said. "We can't be depending on
you to do all the outside work. Anisa, one foot in front of the
other, like you're walking on a narrow beam. Move your hips
with the motion and your shoulders against it. Undulate. Try it."
Anisa sighed and started back. She did pretty well until she
got her hips and shoulders out of sync and Adams
had to catch her before she fell.
"Nobody had better ever find out about this," she hissed,
pushing herself back up. The chief had been exceedingly careful
with his hands, but there wasn't much he could catch that wasn't
off-limits. He'd managed by wrapping both hands around her
waist. This caused her dress to head north and south,
respectively, which very nearly left her unclothed. At least in
important areas.
"Try it again," Mike said, sternly. "This is training. You are
going to be doing a mission every bit as important as the door-
kickers. They had to train, you have to train. If I'd thought ahead,
I would have brought one of the harem. I didn't. This is my fault.
Drop it on me. But we're going to need you to be able to do this.
And maybe more than just you. You'll be training at least one
other girl in the same things. Get used to it. And everyone is
going to know about it. You're going to have a security team
watching you."
"Okay, okay," Anisa said, readjusting her dress again. "Here
goes."
By the end of thirty minutes with Mike coaching her and
Katya inserting snarky, but pertinent, remarks, she could walk in
the heels and even undulate. A bit. Enough to look like a new
hooker on the street.
As the two left, Adams let out a
long sigh.
"I'm going to have to either go down on the street and hire a
girl or go take a long cold shower," the chief said. "That was
just..."
"Erotic as hell," Mike replied. "You can understand why
these pimps do what they do. Besides the money, which in this
society is nothing to sneeze at."
"It almost makes me rethink my choice of career," Adams admitted. "And they get to do this all
the time."
"And beat the girls around when they screw up," Mike said,
nodding.
"I'm not particularly into beating on women,"
Adams said, shrugging.
"Well, most of the girls they get don't exactly want to be
hookers," Mike pointed out. "And even the ones that do, don't
want to give up most of their hard earned money to the pimps. So
they beat on them until they learn better. It's a sucky situation.
And you know the fun part?"
"What?" Adams asked, frowning
curiously.
"How many whores have you fucked in some third world
shit-hole?" Mike asked, turning to look at him. "We're the reason
this goes on. You can't just say 'it's males' when you're one of the
males that benefited by it."
"Tell me something I don't know," Adams said, shrugging. "I don't notice you losing sleep over it."
"I do, sometimes," Mike admitted. "And I'm the one that
enjoys beating on women. I wish I had the money to buy up every
whore and potential whore on the planet and put them
somewhere safe."
"But if you did, you'd just have more kidnappings."
"There's that," Mike admitted, sighing.
"You ever think about this whole system as a good thing?"
Adams asked, musingly.
"What in the hell do you mean by that?" Mike snarled.
"Think about it," Adams replied,
calmly. "In the states, the predators snatch some girl off the
street, rape her and kill her. Here they snatch them off the street,
rape them and then sell them. Alive."
"Now there's a hell of a thought and no lie," Mike said,
quietly. "But you think that some of them don't die in the
process?"
"No, a bunch of them do," Adams
admitted. "But a bunch of them live, too. For a given value of
life. Which means still breathing. Concentrate on bringing home
a live one and leave the fucking existentialism for after the
mission, SEAL."
"Will do, Chief," Mike said, grinning.
"Now I'm gonna go find some abused, raped, forced-to-be-a-
whore whore and fuck her silly ass off. For cash. Without
beating on her. End of angst."
Chapter Eleven
"I don't know where to look," Anisa said, nervously trying to
adjust her dress so she wasn't showing so much skin.
"Anywhere but at the cars," Cottontail said, easily. She
clearly didn't care if her dress was riding up. Or down. She
looked as if she was terribly bored and more than willing to just
have the damned thing fall off. "If you look at the drivers they
might stop. That would be good on one level; we'd look like we
were actual working girls. But we'd have to turn down the offer.
Unless you're planning on doing a trick while you're doing this
and I don't suggest it."
"I'm not," Anisa snapped.
"Well, that's one problem off my mind," Cottontail said,
smirking. "You might want to try it, though. You don't have a
pimp to take all the money and cash is cash. Well, the Kildar
might want a cut."
"I'm not going to...do that with a man other than my
husband," Anisa said.
"And probably the Kildar, right?" Cottontail said, snidely.
"For your 'bride price', right? What do you think that is but
turning a trick? Maybe you could work up the bride price while
you're here..."
"Stop it," Anisa said, angrily. "Just...stop, okay? We're here
to work."
"Well, it's work..." Cottontail said, trailing off. "There's the
car."
"I see it," Anisa said, nodding.
"Don't look directly at it," Cottontail said, looking around.
"Look at the other girls, instead."
Anisa looked around and sighed.
"They are all dressed so..."
"Sluttily," Cottontail said, laughing nastily. "Men like that.
They like to have women that are fast, cheap and easy. They don't
have to worry about whether we like it or not. Most of them like
that we don't. They like to hurt us, to use us, to make us feel less
than they are."
"Not the Kildar," Anisa pointed out.
"Even the Kildar," Katya replied, sharply. "He likes that he
owns us, that he can use us."
"He treats you well," Anisa protested.
"But he still owns us," Cottontail snapped, turning to look
at the girl and waving at the whores along the street. "We're no
better than these! We're owned by the Kildar and he uses us at his
pleasure! The only difference is we don't walk the street! We just
live in his brothel for the use of him and his friends."
"He said he offered to let you all go," Anisa argued,
unhappily.
"To where?" Katya snapped back. "What can we do but
make our way on our backs? There are plenty of girls here who
chose to be here, because even this is better than wherever they're
running from! Because they don't have any other choice but to
sell their bodies. They don't have a family to go back to..." She
stopped and turned away, her face hard.
"Is that what happened to you?" Anisa asked, quietly, as they
continued walking.
"I don't talk about it," Cottontail said, bitterly.
"Do you have a family?" Anisa asked, still quietly.
"Just shut the fuck up, okay?" Katya replied. "We're nearly
there and we need to get our game face on."
"Okay," Anisa said, nervously. She very carefully did not
adjust the lower part of her dress.
The guard was a beefy guy in a sweat-stained shirt and
trousers. He was leaning on the hood of the car, casually
watching the girls on the street. If he was supposed to be
guarding the car, he was looking at the wrong people in Anisa's
opinion. Or, maybe not, given what she was planning on doing.
"Hi, big guy," Katya said in Russian. "My friend and I were
having an argument."
"I saw," the man said, stolidly.
"I say that you can tell the length of a guy's parts by his
hands," Katya said, slinking up to him. "And I notice you've got
really big hands..."
Anisa smiled in what she hoped was a winning way and
leaned up against the hood, turning away slightly. Patrick had
told her the easiest way to place the device would be in the wheel
well. The device had a magnet and the adhesive so it should stay.
"What do you say?" Katya asked, leaning up against the
guard. "How are you...hung?"
"Well enough for you," the man said, less stolidly. "Care to
find out?"
"Maybe," Katya said, coyly. "I've just had an hour session
with a guy whose dick was smaller than my finger. And I could
do more with my finger than he could with his dick. Do you
think you could do better?"
Anisa reached up under her skirt and ripped off the tracer,
trying not to whimper as she pulled out a fingerfull of pubic hair.
Katya was right; she should have shaved. She never had but she'd
heard about it. It seemed terribly...whorish. Okay, so she should
have shaved.
She turned back towards the guard, slipping her hand under
the wheel-well and pressing the tracer into place.
"I'm busy now," the guard said, slipping his hand up Katya's
dress and fingering her. "I'll be off in about an hour."
"And I'll get you off in much less," Katya said, pouting. "But
I'll see you then. You're going to be around here?"
"For sure," the guard said, running his hand over her breasts.
"I'll look forward to it. Bring your friend."
"Sure will," Katya said, walking off. "She needs the attention
of a real man, too."
"He stinks," Anisa said as they walked away.
"So do most of the Keldara," Katya replied. "So do most
tricks, at least around here. It's like they've never heard of soap.
Now let's get back to the hotel and maybe I can get some hot
water to wash his stink off."
* * *
"He's moving," Tolenka said.
"Got it," Jov replied, putting the car in gear. The four year
old gray Ladia had been purchased earlier in the day in a very
informal transaction involving cash and a promise to get the tags
transferred. It was less conspicuous for a stake-out than one of
the vans. But a van was right around the corner, loaded with
shooters. For that matter, there was an MP-5 at Tolenka's feet.
"The tracer's working fine," Egor said, looking at the screen
on his lap.
"Don't pull out, yet," Killjoy said from the backseat. He was
one of the American trainers who had accompanied the mission.
The Keldara were getting pretty damned good as shooters, but
they still didn't know diddly about moving around in the world.
Killjoy wasn't exactly a world traveller but he had more
experience than the Keldara and could think on his feet. He also
was somewhat smaller than Russell, which was why he was
crammed in the back of the small car.
"He had a couple of girls with him," Tolenka added.
"Could mean anything," Killjoy noted.
"Speaking of girls," Jov replied. "I couldn't believe it when I
saw Anisa!"
"Watch your mouth," Egor snapped. Not only was Anisa his
cousin, he'd worked with her in the intel section and respected
her.
"I'm not saying anything wrong," Jov said, smiling.
"But...All Father! I never realized what legs she had!"
"Jov..." Egor said, angrily.
"Can it," Killjoy said. "Jov, pull out. Egor, where'd he go?"
"He turned. Right. I think about three blocks away."
"Turn right at the next street," Killjoy said, looking at the
map. "He's headed across the river. We'll parallel then fall in
behind at the Soseua or whatever that damned road is called."
* * *
"He's gone to a townhouse across the river," Vanner said,
looking at his screens. "Confirm it's him by intercept. He called
someone named Vass and asked him if he had any girls meeting
your requirements. Also if he'd ever heard of you. No indication
that he's worried about Americans coming down on him."
"Odd, that," Mike said, musingly. He was ensconsed on the
bed with his fingers interlaced behind his head, looking at the
ceiling. "She had to have told them that she was an American,
right? She's at the very least a legal resident. And she would have
told them her father would pay money to get her back. I mean,
getting back a kidnap victim over here is no big deal. You pay off
the police, they don't try to arrest the kidnappers."
"So what's really going on?" Vanner asked.
"That's what I'm going to find out," Mike said, sitting up.
"Somewhere along the way. But right now, I need to know more
about this guy. I'm heading for bed and so should you. By
morning I want full intel on him."
"Got it," Vanner said.
"But put one of the girls on duty and you rack out," Mike
added. "I'll be right next door."
* * *
"He went back to the townhouse last night at eleven,"
Vanner said, rubbing his eyes and sipping coffee. "He took two
girls with him and no guards. Over the next six hours, girls came
trickling in in ones and twos. Looks like about a dozen. There
was at least one male present when he arrived and when he left he
brought a different girl with him. The townhouse is two story,
but it appears it may have a basement. I've got Sawn down at the
building records office looking for blueprints. He returned to the
coffee-shop and has not left. Neither has the male at the
townhouse and there appear to be at least three females still in
the house. The surveillance team was relieved at seven AM. Over
night they put up three surveillance cameras and laid in two
window microphones on the townhouse, one of them by his
apparent office and another by his bedroom. You want the take?"
"Is it what I'd expect?" Mike asked, biting on an already stale
roll.
"Pretty much," Vanner said. "The girls in the house are
apparently not fully trained. They're in the process of being
prepared, so to speak. This is the analysis from my section and
I've audited enough of the take to agree. I'm a little reluctant to
have the Keldara girls doing point on this. It's pretty brutal."
"They'll find out what it's all about when they get married,"
Mike said, shrugging. "Have a talk with them as a guy, though. I
don't want them getting so emotionally scarred they're put off of
sex for life. And who else is going to do it? The shooters?"
"Point," Vanner admitted. "We also placed two mikes in the
coffee shop, near his usual table, and I've, of course, got his
cellphone wired."
"If Adams ever shakes a leg, get him
up to speed," Mike said. "I'm going to go shopping."
* * *
"Mr. Duncan," Ahmed Pasha said, sitting down next to him.
"A little early for Johnny Walker is it not?"
"The sun's over the yard arm somewhere," Mike said,
swirling his drink. "Do you live here?"
"No," Pasha said, lifting his chin and clicking in negation.
"But it is a good place to conduct business. Many traders come in
here. How are your girls?"
"Almost recovered from the rigors of the trip thus far," Mike
said. "We're definitely leaving tomorrow morning."
"I have found one girl that would possibly meet your
requirements," Pasha said, leaning over conspiratorily. "A young
Ukrainian girl. Very nice, very pretty. Blonde. Not much in the
breast department but unspoiled and very pretty. And they may
yet grow; she is quite young."
"Works," Mike said, nodding. "Yours?"
"A friends'," Pasha said. "I can introduce you, if you wish."
"Pasha, you don't have any friends," Mike said. "What's your
cut?"
"Ten percent," Pasha said. "Minimum of one hundred euros,
cash."
"You really think this girl's worth a thousand euros?" Mike
said with a laugh. "Right. Pull the other one."
"Pull the other what?" Pasha asked, confused.
"Sorry, doesn't translate," Mike replied. "I was saying that
you were not being truthful with me. Girls here go for less than
five hundred euros, even the best."
"This one is unspoiled," Pasha said, sternly. "She will get
you much money where you are going. Enough that you will
pay."
"We'll see," Mike said. "Here?"
"I have a room here," Pasha said. "Two eleven. That is
neutral ground, yes?"
"Okay," Mike said with a sigh. "When?"
"I will call my friend," Pasha replied. "Perhaps soon after
noon."
"Okay," Mike said. "I'll give you my cell number."
Chapter Twelve
Pasha's room, as befitted a more or less permanent resident,
was much cleaner than the ones Mike had secured. That seemed
to be mostly his doing. Whatever his failings as a slave trader, he
was apparently quite neat in his housekeeping.
Mike was in an easy chair nursing another Johnny Walker
when there was a knock at the door. When Pasha opened it, a
man pushed a young girl into the room and then followed it up
with a slap to the back of the head to make her step further in.
"Here's the stupid slut I was talking about," the man said,
harshly. He was at least in his sixties with a red face and nose
half hidden by a white beard. He'd make a nice Santa Claus and
Mike wondered if he used that to pick up his victims.
The girl was clearly frightened, even terrified. And, yes, very
pretty. About five one, long blonde hair and blue eyes. And no
more than twelve. She was just starting to get the gangling
growth spurt that kids hit at that age and might, indeed, grow
some more tit. He wasn't sure she was even menstruating yet.
"Very nice," was what he said.
"Strip," Santa Claus ordered the girl.
"Please," she whimpered. "I just want to go home..."
"Strip, stupid whore..." Santa Claus snarled, drawing his
hand back.
"No marks!" Mike snapped, standing up and walking over.
"Girl, I must see what I'm buying. Take off your clothes."
"Please, no..." the girl begged, looking up at him with tears
in her eyes.
"This is how you do it without marks," Mike said, sighing
and gripping the back of the girl's head with his thumb and
forefinger. He applied pressure, hard, and received a gasp as the
girl's knees buckled at the pain. "Take off your clothes you stupid
slut."
The girl looked at the three hard-faced men and then closed
her eyes and began removing her clothing.
When she was fully stripped, Mike walked around her,
shaking his head. She had welts on her back, ass and budding
breasts.
"You hit her on the breasts?" Mike asked, angrily. "With
what?"
"My belt, of course," Santa Claus snarled. "What do you
expect me to do? She needs to be trained but I'm hardly up to it
anymore!"
"Christ on a crutch," Mike muttered in English then
continued in Russian. "These damned bruises will take weeks to
fade! I'm planning on being in
Montenegro
the end of next week; she won't be
presentable by then!"
"She's untouched," Santa Claus snapped. "She's a virgin.
That is worth something."
"She's bruised," Mike snarled. "Two hundred."
"Forget it!" the slaver replied. "Put your clothes on, bitch."
"Wait, wait," Pasha said. "We are friends here. Let us sit and
drink tea and talk."
The girl had quickly scooped up her dress and underthings in
her hands but Pasha shook his head.
"No," he said to her, pulling the clothes out of unresisting
hands. "Stand by the chairs, there is much to discuss."
Pasha poured green tea and laid out a service on the table as
the girl stood by, shivering in the cold of the room. Mike ignored
her as did the others.
"You have at least a week of travel, if you are staying off the
major roads," Pasha said, sipping his tea. "This will give most of
the bruises time to fade."
"Not all of them," Mike said, poking the girl on the ass.
"This one cut the skin for that matter. She'll scar."
"A virgin," Pasha noted.
"No proof of that," Mike pointed out. "She was probably
raped by her uncle who sold him to this guy."
"I took her from an arcade," Santa Claus replied with a
shrug. "These young girls, they trust me because I look like Saint
Niklaus. And I did not rape her. Even with the Viagra, sticking it
in young pussy like this is too hard. I use the older hookers who
are looser."
The girl had put her face in her hands and was quietly crying
when Mike stood up.
"Lie on the bed," Mike said, pushing her to the bed.
"If you take her here you must pay for..." Pasha said.
"I'm checking," Mike snapped. "Lie on the bed, on your back,
with your knees up in the air."
"Please," the girl whimpered through the tears.
"Shut up and do what I said, slut, or you'll be hurt again,"
Mike said, sternly.
When the girl was on the bed he stuck his fingers in her
pussy and spread it as wide as he could. Even with the dim light
in the room he could see the hymen and it was unbreached.
"Virgin all right," he admitted grumpily. "Get up and put
your clothes on, bitch."
"There, a virgin," Pasha said, happily. "For that, two hundred
is much too little. Fifteen hundred euros."
"You're crazy," Mike said, shaking his head. "No more than
three. So, Santa, you ever go over to Romania
?"
"No, only the
Ukraine
," Santa Claus replied as the girl finished
dressing. "Little slut, sit on my new friend's lap and show him
how biddable you can be."
Mike let the girl sit in his lap and ran his hands over her
stomach as she quivered in fear. He was careful to try to skip the
bruised areas but she still was quaking which didn't help much.
He had a very real problem with being the sort of son-of-a-bitch
he was playing and the entire scene was turning him on more than
he liked. He knew the girl could feel a very solid erection under
her pert little ass and he knew that made him not only a Class A
son-of-a-bitch but a pervert. Unfortunately, short of castration he
wasn't sure what to do about his little problem. Other than killing
bastards who actually let their demons out. Such as the two other
males in the room.
They chatted about the bad roads, the problems with weather
and the unreliability of finding virgins as they sipped green tea.
From time to time one or another would make an offer. Mike
almost walked when they balked at thirteen hundred euros until
he realized that would be leaving this poor kid in their hands. He
finally dickered them down to nine hundred euros but not a
penny less. He only got the hundred euros off because of the
bruises and actually getting up and walking half way to the door.
He pulled out the cash and forked it over with a grim face
then slapped the girl on the back of the head.
"If you think that you have had it bad so far, try to run away
from me," Mike growled in her ear. "I will do terrible things to
you. Terrible terrible things. Are you going to try to run?"
"No," the girl said, resignation in her voice.
"You could run from the old man, maybe," Mike pointed
out. "But I can outrun you. And if I have to even hurry, not only
will you not be a virgin by tomorrow, but I will sell you to the
worst whorehouse in Istanbul
for seamen to fuck all day long. And the reason I will
sell you there, is because you will be too messed up for anyone
else to buy you. Do you understand me?"
"Yes," the girl replied, her head down.
"Let us go," Mike said, nodding at Pasha and the still
unnamed Santa Claus. "If you can get more like this, we can do
business in the long term. But no marks!"
"I'll see what I can do," Santa Claus said, smiling and
standing up. "It was good doing business with you."
"The same," Mike said, graciously, taking the girl by the
wrist and leading her to the door.
His rooms were a flight up and down the hallway. When he
got to the command center room he paused.
"I'm glad you didn't run," he said, quietly. "The reason is, I'm
not a slaver and I would not want to have to hurt you. But you
must not talk about what you see in here, do you understand?"
"No," the girl said, fearfully.
"You will," Mike replied, knocking on the door.
One of the Keldara girls answered the knock and looked in
surprise at the girl Mike still had by the wrist.
"Graznya," Mike said, thankfully. "Just the lady I needed.
Come on, girl. What's your name, anyway?"
"Oksana," the girl said, quietly, her eyes widening as she saw
the computers and electronics set up around the room.
"This is Graznya, Oksana," Mike said, gently pushing her
further into the room. "She's not a slave, not a whore. She works
for me. We're doing something here and it's necessary that I act
like a slaver. I'm sorry that you were put through that, but you are
safe, now."
"Really?" Oksana asked, panting.
"Really, really," Graznya said, smiling. "This is the Kildar.
He is a renowned fighter and he does not harm women."
"Unless I have to," Mike pointed out. "Sorry about what
happened in there. But that fat bastard was about to smack you
one across the face. Again."
"Come in," Graznya said, sighing. "We know something of
what you have been going through and we are very sorry. Where
are you from?"
"The Ukraine
," Oksana said. "Near Kremenchug
."
"Well, we have much to do," Graznya said, pulling her
further into the room and settling her in a chair. "But we will see
if there is a way to get you back there. You have family?"
"No," Oksana replied, quietly. "I was raised in orphanage.
They had sent me out only the day before. I was at a fair when the
man, Hadeon, approached me. He offered to buy me lunch and I
was very hungry. Then he said he could get me a good job in
Italy
."
"Which is one of the places you might have ended up," Mike
said, sighing. "I won't speak as to the quality of the job, since
that's rather obvious. I'm sorry, Oksana, but that story is very
common. This is how many girls end up in places like this." He
paused and looked around the room at the monitors. "Well, not
like this."
"What is this?" Oksana asked, finally settling down. "What
are you doing?"
"We're tracking a girl who was kidnapped, as you were,"
Graznya replied. "We know she came as far as here. We are trying
to find out where she went."
"Why?" Oksana asked, suddenly tearing up again. "Why do
you look for her when nobody cared about me!"
"Because her father is rich and has powerful friends," Mike
said, bluntly. "You have neither a rich father nor powerful
friends. Well, you didn't." He looked at her and cocked his head
on the side. "I'm not sure what we're going to do with you. I
needed to buy you because it made our cover stronger, but I'm
not sure what to do with you, now. I'd hoped you'd have a family
to go home to."
"So you could get more money?" the girl asked, unhappily.
"No, I have plenty of that," Mike said, waving his hand
around the room. "This isn't cheap. No, you were going to be
returned gratis. But with nobody to go home to... Well, that
presents me with a problem. I'll think about it."
* * *
When Mike had left the room, Oksana looked at Graznya
with wide eyes.
"He is very strange," the girl whispered. "He frightens me."
"Well, you don't have to be frightened of him any more,"
Graznya replied. "And as for the being strange...you get used to
it."
* * *
"We got anything different?" Mike asked as he wandered
next door. Vanner had moved the data analysis section to the
adjoining room since the other one was both crowded and busy.
"Very straightforward," Vanner said. "We haven't really had
a lot of time to pin down his movements, but it looks like he
mostly is a repeater."
"So we have a choice of taking him down at the café
or at his house or in movement. And he's got, effectively,
hostages, at each point."
"He didn't bring a girl back with him in the morning,"
Vanner pointed out. "If he doesn't tomorrow..."
"Works. I'll send Adams out to find
a quiet spot."
Chapter Thirteen
"Bravo team in position."
Mike looked back at the van full of Keldara and nodded to
Yevgeni.
"Alpha in position."
"Target is moving. Target is unaccompanied, repeat
unaccompanied."
"Roll the op up," Mike said, quietly.
"Roll up," Yevgeni repeated.
"Roll up confirmed," Vanner replied. "We are out of here in
one five minutes. Team Charlie is in place to recover telltales."
"Don't forget to pay the bill," Mike muttered. "Don't send
that."
"Roger," Yevgeni replied. They were both in civilian clothes
with body armor underneath. The team in the back was in full
battle rig. Smegnoff was a hard worker and it was just after
dawn. He'd been heading back to the café to get some
paperwork done. He also apparently counted down his cash in the
back room. That was where the majority of his "associates" were
located and his main base for farming his girls and doing deals.
"Target is repeating, repeating. Kramor Prospect so far."
"Get ready," Mike said, turning his head. "It looks like us.
Close up."
"Close up," Yevgeni said as he started the van. "Close up."
Santos Street
was two lane with cars parked along both sides. The
van for Alpha team was parked in an alley half way down the
block.
"Closed up," the following team called. "Target is turning
on Santos
. One, two...Go! Go! Go!"
Yevgeni threw the van into drive while hammering the
accelerator. The lightly loaded van jerked out into the road in a
cloud of blue smoke and immediately began disgorging fighters
in full battle dress, MP-5s and silenced SPRs pointed at the
oncoming Ladia.
Smegnoff was a survivor of numerous street battles and he
had quick reactions. He didn't bother to come to a full stop
before throwing the Ladia into reverse and hitting the accelerator.
The problem being that the four year old Ladia following him
slammed into him from the rear and then went to full power,
turning his car sideways across the street.
It was less than ten meters to the car and before he could try
to drive out of the ambush the lead Keldara had smashed in his
driver side window. The second in line dropped his MP-5, drew a
taser from his holster and fired it into the slaver.
In no more than seven seconds the slaver was in the back of
the van, wrapped in rigger's tape, leaving only two smoking
Ladias for the police to try to explain.
* * *
"Good morning, Yuri," Mike said, pleasantly, as the man's
eyes flew open from the ammonia capsule. "Did you have a good
rest? I'm sure you recognize the after-effects of chloroform;
you've used it a time or two."
"Muh-wugfuh?" the man said through the rigger's tape on
his mouth.
"Oh, sorry," Mike said, reaching up and ripping the tape off
the man's face.
Yuri Smegnoff was taped to a chair which was firmly bolted
into the middle of an abandoned factory floor. It had probably
been a supervisor's chair when the factory had been in operation.
Now it served Mike's uses perfectly. He had to give
Adams a bonus for scrounging up the facility on
such short notice. Another note to make, they needed to do more
ground work at each stop. This wasn't the last such interrogation
that they'd have to do.
"Ow! What the fuck is this? I don't know who you are but..."
"Yuri, Yuri," Mike said, kindly. "All I am is an honest
businessman trying to do a job. Now that job is for people who
view you and me as no more than insects. In your case, one to be
stepped upon. You've made some very powerful people very
angry, Yuri. Now, this can go easy, or it can go hard. Let's make
it easy, shall we?" He drew out a folder and pulled out a picture,
flipping it in front of the man's face.
"Now, I know you see a lot of young women," Mike said,
nicely. "But I'm really hoping, for your sake, that you recognize
this one. Because if you don't, I'm going to have to improve your
memory."
"I...I do," Yuri said, licking his lips. "Yes, I remember her."
"Ah, good," Mike said. "Now, Yuri, there's a thing about my
friends here," Mike said, gesturing at the Keldara standing behind
the chair. Yuri hadn't even noticed them and when he turned
around his eyes flew open. Mike had chosen two of the larger
shooters and they were both holding MP-5s at port arms and
wearing full battle armor. "They're really simple farmers from the
back hills. And they're simple people. They have a very strong
code of honor. So they really don't like lies. Not a bit. And since
I'm their leader, I need to uphold that tradition. So, please, Yuri,
let's not be lying as we go on. You do remember her, yes?"
"Yes," Yuri said, licking his lips again. "One of my catchers
picked her up near the town square. She said she was Ukrainian,
that she was looking for work."
"Go on," Mike said.
"Can I have some water?" Yuri asked, carefully. "I am very
parched."
"It's an effect of fear," Mike pointed out. "It comes from the
adrenaline. I'm sure that many of your little girls had very dry
mouths. Did you give them water, Yuri? No, I thought not. So,
you picked her up near the town square. And you brought her to
your townhouse?"
"Yes," Yuri said, starting to breath hard.
"And you settled her, there, I'd think," Mike said, raising an
eyebrow. "We're men of the world; we know what that means.
You dipped your wick and that of a couple of your guards. You
beat her around and told her she belonged to you, now. All the
rest of that sort of thing. Yes, Yuri?"
"Yes," the slaver said, quietly. "But this is who you look
for? She had no friends!"
"We'll get to that later," Mike said, smiling. "So, you settled
her down and then what, Yuri? She's not walking the street for
you. We've checked rather carefully. So, where'd she go, Yuri?"
"I did what I always do," the slaver said with false bravado.
"I sold her. I don't remember to who."
"Ah, Yuri, Yuri," Mike said, reaching back and accepting a
large sledge hammer from the Keldara. "Bad answer."
"No, look, I can try..." the man said as Mike moved the
hammer back and then forward into his left knee.
When the screams died down, Mike leaned forward to the
man's ear.
"Yuri, Yuri, my friend. We are friends, right? Yuri, that was
a bad answer. Do you know why that was a bad answer, Yuri?"
"I need to remember..." Yuri whispered.
"It's because we've had your house and coffee shop bugged
for the last day and a half," Mike replied. "You talked about how
you keep careful records. You sold two girls yesterday, Ionna and
Sofiya, to a man named Markov. We've got rather good pictures
of all three of them. Sofiya is a lovely lady, isn't she? And you
got seven hundred euros for her, as I recall. And you told Markov
that you kept all of your information to hand, in your PDA. So,
Yuri, why didn't you mention your PDA to me, please?"
"No names," Yuri gasped. "No names."
"Why, Yuri?" Mike asked, straightening up. "Because the
men you sold her to are very dangerous? Yuri, I eat people like
you, and the bad men you work with, for lunch. And is there
something they can do to you that I'm not going to, Yuri, my
friend, my buddy? So, who did you sell her to? Actually, what's
the password for you PDA? My little geek friend would very
much like to know. He says he's having trouble hacking it."
"Hey!" Vanner said from the back of the room. "These things
aren't easy. He's used at least a ten point encryption and you can't
just hammer them on the ground and pull out the info!"
"No, but I suppose that's possible with you, isn't it, Yuri?"
Mike asked, smiling in his most friendly manner. "So, Yuri,
password, please?"
"No names," the man gasped again then shrieked when Mike
lightly kicked his knee.
"Yuri, Yuri, I grow tired of this," Mike said, picking up the
sledge again.
"Please," Yuri said, eyeing the heavy hammer. "Please. I
can't give you names."
"Oh, Yuri, and you were doing so well," Mike said, tossing
the hammer onto his shoulder. "How many women have begged
you, Yuri? Did the one that tried to run away beg you, Yuri? And
why should I listen to your pleas when you didn't listen to theirs?
So, Yuri, count of five," Mike continued, lifting the sledge. "And
after we've worked through the major joints, there are always the
intermediate bones..."
"Capital A, zero, One..." Yuri gasped.
"I'm in," Vanner said a moment later. "What name did you
use for her?"
"Her name was Natalya," Yuri said. "Natalya Y I think."
"Natalya," Vanner muttered. "Damn there are a lot of
Natalyas in here. Try Natalya S, Yuri. That was two weeks ago."
"No, she was two or three months ago," Yuri said. "There
are pictures."
"Sure are," Vanner said, wonderingly. "Kildar, you need to
see this."
Mike set the hammer down and walked over to where the
intel specialist was holding the PDA up.
"I've hotsynched it," Vanner said, unplugging the cord.
"We've got the whole thing. Including his list of clients and who
bought what girl, etcetera. But you've got to see this."
Mike picked up the PDA and looked at the picture. Then he
walked back over and opened up the folder, pulling out the pic of
the girl on the beach.
They were identical. And there was more than one. Most of
the rest were of the same girl, without the bathing suit.
"Nice tits," Mike said. "We've got what we want. Close it
down and call in the clean-up team."
* * *
"Penny for your thoughts, Mike?" Adams said.
They'd made it from Chisinau to Vatra Dornei in one day by
hard travelling. The crossing at Gostesti had been guarded but
they'd gotten through that by slipping the appropriate amount of
klei to the guards.
Once in Romania
they'd gotten on National Route 17, which
would have just about been adequate to a poorly maintained
county road in a poor county in the states, and made the best time
they could, ignoring the potholes to the extent they could. By just
after dusk they'd made it to Saratel, short of Cluj Napoca but not
by much. However, that was the area that Pasha had reported
roadblocks so Mike decided to settle in at a small hotel that
generally catered to Transylvanian tourists and move on the next
day.
He set the bottle of beer on his stomach and considered the
chief's question.
"Well, I'm wondering if we weighted the body enough,"
Mike admitted. "I think a couple more concrete blocks would
have been a good idea."
"He'll stay down long enough," Adams said, shrugging. "And it's not like they're going to be
looking at us. He had a lot of enemies. We were barely on his
radar horizon."
"And I'm wondering what the hell I'm going to do with
whatsername," Mike admitted.
"You mean Oksana?" Adams asked.
"Nice girl. She can ride on my lap the rest of the way."
"I mean long term," Mike replied. "The same problems apply
to her that apply to all the other waifs I've been picking up. I need
to find a boarding school in
Argentina
or something that will start taking them
in."
"Worry about that after the mission's over,"
Adams suggested.
"Good point," Mike said, frowning and taking a pull off the
beer. "And I'm wondering just what the fuck we're really
chasing."
"Ah, now we get to the source of your angstiness, Great
Leader," Adams said. "You got another
one of those?"
"Cooler," Mike said. "There are three bits of information to
sort. What we were told. What we know is true. And what we
know about the overall situation. We were told that the girl was
a dependent of a rich constituent. That is, almost certainly, a lie.
If she was when she got into that crap she would have screamed
bloody murder about how they could make more money off of
her from her father. And Yuri was pretty damned sure that she
wasn't an American. When he was begging for his life, he added
that she didn't even speak English, only Russian. So..."
"So, she's not what the fine senator told you,"
Adams said, belching. "We're still going to find her,
right?"
"Oh, yeah," Mike said. "For one thing, there's a rich senator
who owes me one huge fucking favor for sending me on a wild
goose chase when I could be fucking my harem. And for another,
this has already cost like crazy. He's in for the five mil or we'll be
committing crimes against the peace in the Continental United
States. I'm wondering why we're really here."
"Well, we know the senator really wants to find her," Adams pointed out.
"Do we?" Mike said. "Or are we just being diverted from
something else? Is the senator, for example, running a scam with
the Chechens to get us out of the valley so we can get hit while
the team is gone?"
"Pretty unlikely," Adams said,
frowning. "I don't know what they could use as payment to the
senator and so we're gone? The other five teams are still there.
And Nielson's running the store. That one doesn't wash."
"I'm brainstorming," Mike pointed out. "First you come up
with the ideas. Later you knock them down. Okay, that one
wasn't so great. But why? And if he does want her found, why?
And why me?"
"You can find her and are imminently deniable,"
Adams pointed out. "How many people could testify
that they saw you and the senator together? And nobody but the
two of you know what was said in the room."
"The secret service guys saw us meet," Mike said. "On the
other hand, I don't know they're service. And that guy on the
Moldava desk."
"And you know he exists?" Adams
asked.
"Ouch," Mike said, grimacing. "Nope."
"Something for Vanner to research," the chief said. "And one
more thing."
"Go," Mike said.
"Who besides Nielson is briefed in and not on the op?" Adams asked.
"Nobody," Mike said, frowning. "Why? You think
somebody's going to try to clean us up? Good luck."
"There's always poison, but no," Adams said. "I was wondering who could be broken free to go
have a chat with your friends in
Washington
."
"No one," Mike admitted. "But good point. At this point
we're in fuck-up zone. I'll put Sawn on it. I can spare him. We're
really running the team and he can think on his feet. Time to
cover our ass."
"Or somebody's anyway," Adams
said. "I'm pretty sure we're going to end up getting fucked
somehow."
"Or somebody will," Mike said.
Chapter Fourteen
Timisoara
turned out to be a fairly interesting place, for a
Romanian city.
Much more Western in design and feel than the other towns
they'd passed through, Timisoara
had a rich history. The fertile bottomland around the
river Temis had attracted settlement as early as 200BC.
Subsequently, the area had been held successively by the Dacians,
the first known settlers, the Romans, the Magyar, the Ottomans,
the Hapsburgs and every other notable group in
Eastern Europe's history. Burned to the ground by
the Mongols, burned again when retaken from the Ottomans,
who had made it a central military repository and armory, it was
rebuilt for the last time by the Hapsburgs and still retained their
baroque influence. It was that influence, to a large degree, that
set it off from other Romanian towns.
The reasons it had been fought over so often were apparent.
The Temis river gave it easy navigation and it had close ties to
the various mines in the Transylvanian region. With a strong road
and rail network, it was one of the vital strategic points in the
area called the "banat" with links to
Hungary, and thus the West, and Serbia
to the Balkans.
The same reasons that every major conqueror had captured
or destroyed it, now made it a central way-point for the transport
of nubile flesh.
Smegnoff's helpful PDA had listed the buyer of Natalya as
one Nicu Gogasa, a man with whom he'd done extensive
business. There was even a pic of Gogasa sitting in the
Café Arrenica with the late and unlamented Yuri, both of
them with young, lightly dressed females, sitting on their laps.
They were clearly good buddies. Nicu was much slighter than
Yuri and better, even flashily, dressed. He looked more like a
mildly successful American pimp than a mafia thug. There were
contact numbers including cell, a PO box for mail and a physical
address; the Club Dracul. They even had a website that included a
map.
Many Romanian official records turned out to be on the
internet. From these, with the sometimes problematic assistance
of an online translator, Vanner had been able to determine that
Nicu Gogasa was listed as the sole owner of the Club Dracul.
Mike found it unlikely that he was really the sole owner. He
looked far too flash. Clubs were a great place to wash money so
the mob was probably a silent backer. But it meant he was
probably going to be around the club.
So it was in this happy state of mind of having all the initial
intel he needed that Mike pulled up in front of the Club Dracul in
the company of Russell. The former Marine barely fit in the
rented Fiat, which just made Mike all warm inside.
The first thing to make him pause was the security. Two
guys in battle dress, both damned near Russell's size, were
guarding the door, while a third bouncer in a t-shirt that revealed
bulging muscles was sweeping for weapons.
The second thing was the line, which stretched down the
block.
"Mr. Gogasa is apparently making money," Mike said as they
cruised past the entrance looking for parking. "Law Level Nine
protocols."
"Crap, I hate those," Russell muttered, reaching under his
jacket and beginning to divest himself of weapons. It took a
while.
"Alpha Team," Mike said, keying his mike with his voice.
"Law Level Nine zone. Battle
armor. Probable heavy weapons."
"Great," Adams growled back. "Try
not to start a free-fire."
Mike finally found a parking space in a for-pay lot and
headed down towards the line for the club.
"Your motivation is I'm important and you're my muscle,"
Mike said over his shoulder as he walked past the line, reaching
in his pocket.
"Your motivation is to get us out of this fucker alive,"
Russell replied.
The bouncers in armor eyed both of them as they approached
the front of the line but it was the sweeper that waved them to a
stop.
"I understand there's a cover," Mike said, flicking a folded
hundred euro note up where it could be seen over his thumb.
"That covers it," the bouncer growled in accented English.
He took the bill, but still insisted on sweeping them. Mike wasn't
as sorry about leaving the weapons behind as he was about the
radios and cameras.
The line skipped, the two of them walked in, paid their real
cover of seven hundred and twenty-five thousand lei, or about
ten euros, got their hands stamped and walked through the doors.
Romanians considered the popular Western image of
"Count Dracula" as an insult. "Dracul" translated as "Dragon"
and was the name of an ancient order of Romanian knights, the
equivalent of being named to the Order of the Garter. Vlad Tepes
was, in fact, a defender of Romania against incursions by the
Ottoman Empire and was celebrated in Romania not as a blood-
drinking monster but as a strong and willful leader of the anti-
Ottoman forces, a sort of fifteenth century George Washington.
The fact that he occasionally ate his dinner while surrounded
by hanged bodies was politely overlooked.
The Club Dracul, however, bowed to the Western tradition.
It was more Gothic than most Goth clubs in the states, with
coffins on the walls and anks being the primary symbol. The
waitresses were dressed in long flowing gowns, slit down to their
navels in the front and up to their waists on the side, and wore
heavy black eye shadow and lipstick. The pointed teeth on many
of them came as something of a shock, though, even to Mike
who had spent plenty of time in Goth clubs in the States.
Unsurprisingly, the club was dark as hell. There were three
elevated dance floors, each with a girl or girls up on them
wearing from very little to nothing at all and two floor level
dancing areas. These were crowded with both males and females.
The Romanians clearly believed in combining regular dancing
with strip. For that matter, as he was checking out the
environment Mike saw one of the girls he'd pegged as a patron
get up on the platform and start making out with the dancer while
slowly stripping.
"Okay," Mike said. "I think this is my kind of place."
"What?" Russell shouted over the heavy European
industrial-dance music booming from speakers set all around the
periphery.
"Let's get a drink and pace!" Mike replied.
"Special dance, sir," a nearly naked brunette asked, rubbing
up against Russell.
"Maybe later," Russell replied, looking around.
"Grab her while you can," Mike said over his shoulder.
"Here," Russell said, handing her some cash. "Walk with
us."
"We want someplace out of the way," Mike shouted at the
girl as they walked to the bar. "But where we can watch!"
"I no speak English," the girl replied. "You wanna good
time? I not expensive."
"She speaks enough English," Russell shouted.
"Is it just me, or would a firefight be quieter?" Mike
screamed back. He was definitely going to be hoarse by the end
of this evening.
"Much!" Russell yelled back.
They got their drinks, and a "pay-me" drink for the brunette
then circulated as the girl continued to try to scam Russell out of
all his spare change.
"Eleven o'clock," Russell yelled.
Mike looked left and got a glimpse of the tango. Nicu was
near the back of the club at a semi-circular banquet. He had a girl
on either side, then a couple of guys that Mike pegged as friends
or business acquaintances. There were a few more girls scattered
around but most of the people in the immediate vicinity were
muscle.
There had been more muscle scattered around the room but
it was definitely concentrated in the vicinity of Nicu. And the
muscle around him was as heavily armored as the bouncers out
front. And more heavily armed. One of them was toting a Czech
Skorpion 9mm SMG on friction straps.
Mike got all that in one quick glance then spotted a table
where they could keep an eye on the tango and the floor.
When they were in posession of the table, Mike leaned over
to Russell.
"Go lay the bitch and check out the security in the rooms,"
Mike said as quietly as he could under the circumstances.
"Will do," Russell said, taking one of her upper arms in a
hamlike fist.
"He be very good to you!" Mike yelled to the hooker as they
walked away.
"You be good to me?" a female voice yelled by his ear.
Mike turned to look into an exquisite pair of nearly black
eyes. Very shapely. So was the rest of the body when he got his
eyes off of hers. And he could see that plainly because every
stitch she had on was see-through.
"Maybe," Mike yelled back. "You sit and talk. I pay."
"Okay," the girl yelled back. "I speak English."
"So what the fuck are you doing in a place like this?" Mike
asked, looking around for a waitress.
"Making money," the girl replied with a laugh. "You want
drink? I get."
"Only one for you," Mike said, pulling out a twenty euro
note and handing it to her. "Get something real for yourself and
come back! There's more where that came from."
"I will," the girl said, eeling away through the crowd.
When she got back, with a real honest-to-God energy drink,
she handed him the change.
"Yours," Mike yelled. "And here," he continued, handing
over another twenty. "That means you stay with me for an hour."
"Twenty minutes," the girl replied, tucking the the money
into her g-string. "Twenty minutes, twenty euros. You want
blow? You want fuck?"
"How much?" Mike asked.
"Twenty minutes, twenty euros," the girl yelled back,
laughing.
"What's your name, girl who laughs?" Mike asked.
"Nikki."
"Sure it is," Mike replied, shaking her hand. "I'm Mike."
"Sure it is!"
"Nice club," Mike yelled back, looking around.
"Is only good dance club in Timisoara
," Nikki yelled back. "All others closed. Government
shut them down. Said they were illegal brothels!"
"So is this," Mike pointed out.
"You noticed!" Nikki said, laughing again. Very merry eyes.
"See man in corner?"
"There's a bunch of them," Mike pointed out.
"Silk suit, silk shirt, open at collar, gold chain, Tanya and
Svetlana feeling him under table?"
"Got it," Mike yelled.
"Nicu Gogasa. Owns club. Says he owns club, anyway.
Twenty euros, twenty minutes. Fifteen to him, five to me. And all
of the five goes to pay off my 'debt' for when he bought me from
the man who raped me. Or to food or my clothes that I don't even
want."
"That sucks," Mike said, distantly. It was clear he wasn't
really listening.
"Very," Nikki said, her face suddenly hard. "But all other
clubs, close by government."
"Somebody's got the ear of the government," Mike said,
looking around.
"Club is owned by Albanians," Nikki said, turning sideways
and spitting on the ground in a most unladylike fashion. "Run
whores through here. Bring them in from all over. Then they go
away."
"When are you going to go away?" Mike asked, looking at
her darkly.
"Soon," Nikki said, no longer laughing. "Club always have
new girls. That what makes it best in town. Would leave if I
could. Can't."
"No papers," Mike said. "Where are you from?"
"Belarus
," Nikki said. "You know story, right? You
been in clubs like this, yes?"
"Many times," Mike said with a nod. "Was it a waitressing
job in Italy
?"
"Taking care of kids in
Belgium
," Nikki said, sadly. "I was looking forward
to it."
"Things suck all over," Mike replied.
"Seem like nice guy," Nikki said. "Like boyfriend I had in
Belarus
. Why you go to clubs like this?"
"To meet pretty girls like you," Mike said.
"No," Nikki said. "Eyes are wrong. Not watching girls,
watching men. Not gay ones. The breakers."
"Bouncers," Mike corrected, automatically.
"That too," Nikki said, reaching out and turning his face to
her. "And breakers."
"Gotcha," Mike replied. "Good work if you can get it."
"You think?" Nikki asked, angrily.
"What would you say if I told you I was shopping?" Mike
asked, turning to look out at the floor again.
There was a pause and he looked over at the girl.
"I'd say maybe," Nikki admitted. "Is that what you do?"
"Maybe," Mike said. "How much for you?"
"To buy?" Nikki asked, angrily. "You think you can just buy
like so much vodka?"
"If I walked over to whatsisname and offered him five grand
euros, what do you think he'd say?" Mike asked, turning to look
at her again.
"I think your twenty minutes are up, that's what I think,"
Nikki said, turning away.
"I don't," Mike said, grabbing her arm. "Sit and talk. You've
got five more minutes. Don't make me take it up with the
management."
"You would," Nikki said, sitting down and crossing her
arms in front of her chest.
"Let me put it this way, would you rather stay and take your
chances with the Albanians or with me?" Mike asked, turning at
movement and realizing it was Russell coming back through the
crowd.
"I think the Albanians," Nikki spat.
"Bad bet," Mike said as Russell sat down. "Well?"
"Wired to the max," Russell replied. "Camera and probably
sound."
"Live on Candid Camera?" Mike asked. "Must be off-
putting to the customers."
"They were concealed," Russell said. "I had her get on top so
I could get a good look around."
"You're not shopping," Nikki said.
"Shit!" Russell snapped. "She speaks English?"
"Quite well," Mike replied. "Go on."
"Security door at both ends," Russell said, looking at the
girl. "Booths along the sides, curtains. She was very professional
but still sort of stumbled through the motions. She hardly cried at
all, though. These are intermediate whores. They're still getting
settled in."
"You're looking for better trained?" Nikki asked, nastily.
"We're doing research," Mike said. "On the sex trade in Eastern Europe."
"Sure you are," Nikki snorted.
"Parts of it," Mike said. "And you talk a lot. Don't you get in
trouble for that?"
"All the time," Nikki said.
"They're good about not leaving scars," Mike noted.
"You should look under my hair," Nikki said. "And the
needle marks don't show up much."
"Gotcha," Mike said, standing up. "Come on."
"Don't go over there," Nikki said, pulling back. "Please."
"Time to find out what you're worth," Mike replied,
dragging her towards Nicu's table.
She straightened up and tried to appear as if she liked the
idea as soon as a bouncer looked her way and had almost
managed a smile by the time they got to the table. One of the
muscle stood up and held his hand out to stop the twosome but
Nicu waved them forward with interest in his eyes.
"Mind if I sit?" Mike said, waving at the chairs filled by
women.
"No," Nicu said, glancing at Nikki darkly.
"Nice club," Mike said. "Very classy."
"Thanks," Nicu said, looking sideways at one of the men at
the booth and then back. "What can I do for you?"
"How much for this one?" Mike asked, waving at Nikki.
"For the night?" the pimp asked, grinning. "Five hundred
euros. She could have told you that. Should have told you that,"
he added, looking at Nikki again, this time with a smile that
promised pain later.
"No, to buy," Mike said. "I'm in the market."
"That, of course, would be out of the question," Nicu said,
smiling faintly. "That would constitute sexual slavery. This
young lady is free to come and go at any time."
"Sure she is," Mike said. "Half the cops in town would pick
her up for you if she could even get out of the club. We've
danced through all the proper forms. How much? Time is money,
Mr. Gogasa."
"And you are?" Nicu asked, suddenly curious.
"A drunk American who wants to buy a sex-slave," Mike
said, blankly. "Of course. What else?"
"Many things," Nicu said, glancing sideways again. Mike
ignored the look but he'd now pegged the "associate" as
something on the order of a control.
"Well, what I actually am is a guy passing through with a
group of girls intended for sale in Macedonia
," Mike said. "A special sale. Very special.
I think she would do well at it."
"And I can believe that or not," Nicu replied.
"Would you believe five thousand euros?" Mike asked.
"Hah!" Nicu said, grinning. "You make me laugh. I will
make more than that off of her before I sell her."
"You don't sell her," Mike pointed out. "You move her to
your boss' network." He glanced over at the "associate" and
nodded. "Right?"
"And we will make more," the man replied, coldly. "Far
more."
"Maybe, maybe not," Mike said. "Sure, you move her
through the network, maybe to Albania
then over to Italy
. Then up to the rest of Europe, maybe the
US or UK
. But what's going to happen along the
way? You lose how many girls that start from here? What's your
actual profit per girl? I know I will. And you don't have to deal
with her support anymore. Or the possible loss. Raise, fold or
call."
"Fourteen thousand," Nicu said, glancing over at the
Albanian with a raised eyebrow to which he received a nod.
"Out of the question," Mike snapped. "Half that, maybe. I
can walk out onto the street and buy any four free women for
that much."
"But she is trained," Nicu pointed out. "She has been taught
not to try to escape, what that gets her. And she has been trained
to give sex well. Would you like her to show you how well she
sucks? Nikki is a very good sucker. Thirteen is a very reasonable
price."
"All of that is assumed," Mike pointed out. "And your
training is sunk costs," he added, gesturing at the muscle. "You
pay them from the profit from the bar, not even counting the
money you're laundering through here."
"What money?" the Albanian asked, angrily.
"Oh, get off it," Mike snapped. "Clubs are perfect laundering
spots. Did you take in a thousand in cover charges or ten
thousand? How are the police to know? Water the alcohol and
charge it at full price then figure on the margin. Then there's the
girls. Are they turning ten tricks a night or twenty? The difference
between the two all goes in your pocket. Do me a favor and don't
take me for an idiot, okay?"
"Okay," the Albanian said. "But you must take us for idiots.
You come in here with a bullshit story about selling girls in
Macedonia
. To who? I know all the buyers in Macedonia
."
"I don't know who they go to after our special customers are
done," Mike said. "I just get them to the house in Macedonia
."
"There was a crackdown on those," Nicu said, frowning.
"Most got shut down."
"Jesus," Mike said, looking at the Albanian. "You don't keep
him around for his brains, do you? Who forced the crackdown?"
"IFOR," the Albanian said, looking at him carefully. "And
KFOR. And you're American military. The haircut, the build.
Their fucking Special Force, yes?"
"So you think they really cracked down on our house?"
Mike asked.
"You buy for the military?" Nicu asked, really confused
now.
"Of course not," Mike said, sighing. "Soldiers can't afford
what we sell."
"You make black funds," the Albanian said, nodding as he
sat back. "You run house that raises money so your military can
do the things your government doesn't pay for. The things your
parliament cannot know about, yes? Twelve thousand. Because
the American military has been very good to my people."
Mike had to admit that the Albanian would make a great
writer for the Democratic Underground. Of course, there was
more than a gram of truth to it. He did do black work and he was
doing some fundraising. He'd have to give it some thought. But
he knew he didn't sell girls. End of existential angst as the chief
would say.
"And for the Israelis, yes?" Nicu said, the light finally
dawning.
"There are things you don't talk about," Mike said with
another sigh. "But let's just say that Mossad got its funding cut
way back this year, just when we really needed them to keep
funding their Damascus
office. Okay? And thirteen is out of the question. I
need to make a damned profit, okay?"
Over a couple of drinks and more than one copped feel they
got an eventual price of ten five worked out.
"And you think you will make a profit from her in Macedonia
?" the Albanian asked.
"For what we offer rich bastards from the states and Japan
?" Mike asked. "You betcha."
"We have such visitors," the Albanian said, still clearly
puzzled. As well he should be; Mike was spinning bullshit so fast
it was practically brown silk.
"Look," Mike said, shaking his head. "What is the US
Military known for?"
"Destroying countries?" one of the other men asked.
"Very good bombs?" Nicu said.
"Invading any country that has oil?" the Albanian asked,
shrugging. "Being very good at killing people and less good at
finding them?"
You just wait, motherfucker, Mike thought.
"Okay, all of that," was what he said. "But the main thing
that matters here is we don't talk. What happens at the house,
stays at the house. Period fucking dot. That's something that our
customers can depend upon. We don't have fucking cameras in
the booths. Hell, we don't even have booths. You have your
choice of anything from silk bedrooms to the dungeons. And
anything goes if you've got the cash. Understand?"
"I have never heard of this house," the Albanian said,
frowning.
"See? Now go get your clothes, honey," Mike said, looking
at Nikki. "You're mine, now."
* * *
Once they were out on the street, with Mike and Russell
flanking the whore, Mike leaned over to her ear.
"Nikki, you really don't want to run," he whispered. "Not
just because of the bad things that Nicu will end up doing to you
if you do. Just go along with us and you won't be sorry."
"So I can be raped in a dungeon by rich old men?" Nikki
asked, breathing hard and fast as they approached the car. All she
had was a tube dress and a small bag that couldn't hold much
more than cosmetics. He had to wonder where the clothes she'd
"bought" had gone.
"Well, it's that or the Albanians, honey," Mike said. "And
just don't ask stupid questions until we can get someplace to talk,
okay?"
"What are you?" the whore asked.
"Like I said," Mike repeated. "Shut up. Russell, sit in back
with her."
"Miss," Russell said as he opened the door for her. "Please
don't try to run. If you did I'd have to restrain you. I'd try not to
hurt you, but you're a lot smaller than me and you'd probably get
hurt anyway."
"Where would I run to?" she asked, bitterly.
Chapter Fifteen
It was a silent twenty minute ride to the hotel and then
another silent three minutes to the set of rooms Mike had found.
"Russell, go debrief with Vanner," Mike said as he knocked
on the command room door. He knew there'd be at least some
Keldara women there. "He'll need your input on the club layout."
"Oh, Kildar," Anisa said, blushing. She was wearing the tube
dress and high-heels, very much the same uniform as Nikki if in
different colors.
"You really are a whoremaster," Nikki said, bitterly.
"Not quite," Mike said, trying not to smile at Anisa's
discomfiture. "Doing some training, Anisa?"
"Uhmmm, yes, Kildar," the girl said, still furiously blushing
and pulling her dress down. The maneuver just about got Mike a
view of nipple which caused her to blush and back up so fast she
nearly went ass over teakettle.
Katya was in the room, dressed in jeans, and for the first
time Mike saw what looked like a real, honest, smile on her face.
In fact, most of the Keldara girls were in the room along with
Oksana and there were three more dressed in tube dresses and
trying to stand on high-heels.
"Been doing a lot of training, Cottontail?" Mike asked,
breaking into a grin. "I gotta say, if I really was selling hookers,
I'd make a mint off of you girls."
"Don't even joke about it, Kildar," Graznya said, gasping.
"We've been listening to far too much of what happens to them."
"Sorry," Mike said, contritely. "Speaking of which, various
gals, this is Nikki from Belarus
who up until recently was a whore in
Nicu's club. I want you to suck her brains dry. Do we have maps,
yet?"
"Blueprints of the club as well as his apartment building,"
Graznya said, getting up and going over to a table to flip through
some sheets. "We're not sure where he breaks the girls in, or
where he keeps his records."
"You're not a whoremaster," Nikki said, looking
around at the girls. The Keldara girls were all fiddling with their
dresses, nervously. She clearly wasn't sure what to think. They
were dressed as whores and as nervous as new ones but they
certainly didn't look as if they were in fear of him.
"I am not a whoremaster," Mike said. "I know you have a
tendency to chatter, Nikki. Even if you get a chance, do not
chatter about what is happening here. Lives depend upon it.
Okay?"
"Okay," she said, puzzled.
"Ladies," Mike said, looking around and trying not to grin
again. "I leave it to you. And...this looks like good training!"
"As in unpleasant and uncomfortable," one of the girls trying
to balance on stilettos asked. "These shoes hurt."
"Exactly," Mike said, walking to the door. "Good Training!"
* * *
"You worked in Nicu's club?" Graznya asked, settling Nikki
on the edge of the bed with a Coke.
"Yes," Nikki said, looking around. "What is this?" she
asked, staring at Katya and Oksana. There was something
different about them, she could tell.
"We were hired to find a girl who is in the sex slavery
industry," Graznya said. "Sometimes we have to pose as hookers,
which is why the girls are practicing. It was sort of a joke; only
Anisa has had to do it."
"And me," Katya said, sipping at her drink which was clearly
alcoholic. "But I'm a real whore, just like you."
"And what about you?" Nikki asked, looking at Oksana.
"She was going to be made into one," Graznya answered.
"The Kildar bought her, instead."
"He was a little late for me," Nikki said, bitterly.
"He will be late for almost all the women around here,"
Katya said, with a slight slur. "He was late for me. Hell, he used
me as one. Still might. And worse. I'm a whore, why not? Once a
whore, always a whore."
"You are more than that," Anisa said, sharply. "Much more."
"Whatever," Katya replied.
"Hail, hail, the gang's all here," Vanner said, walking
through the adjoining door.
"Nikki," Russell said, nodding at her.
"Hi," Nikki said, smiling to see a familiar face, even if it was
Russell's.
"We need to look at the blueprints," Vanner said, walking
over to the table. "What Russell is sketching out doesn't sound
like the design on the paper."
"It's not," Russell said, glancing at the blueprints. "The sex
booths are through here, which shows a solid wall. It looks as if
they knocked a door into this section, here," he added, pointing.
"This place used to be a couple of warehouses, they've
redesigned it."
"Nikki, right?" Vanner said, gesturing at the girl. "Have you
been in much of the club?"
"Some," Nikki said, walking over and looking at the
schematic in incomprehension. "What is this?"
"It's like a map of the building the club is in," Vanner
replied. "I know it's confusing, but don't worry. We'll walk you
through it..."
* * *
"I hope you have something for me, Vanner," Mike said the
next morning when he strode into intel. "I had a crappy night's
sleep and the smoke in that damned club is killing my lungs."
"Well at least some of us got some sleep," Vanner replied.
"No rest for the staff pukes, huh? Yeah, we got some stuff but
it's basically crap."
"Go," Mike said, flopping into an armchair.
"Okay," Vanner said, flipping up the blueprints for the club
on an easel. They'd been heavily marked over and some of the
areas were either entirely unmarked or marked with dotted lines
making approximations. "First part of the crap."
"I can see," Mike said. "They've really worked that building
over. And I don't see where they've got the guys watching the
security cameras."
"We've positively established it as being right here," Vanner
said, waving his hand over one quarter of the more or less square
building that wasn't mapped. There were some doors around it,
but nothing inside the box.
"That's bad," Mike said.
"It gets worse," Vanner said. "There are cameras on all
entrances. Nikki has seen the security in full rig and they're
heavy. Up to RPG."
"How very good," Mike said, dryly.
"They stay in the club, in a barracks," Vanner said, glancing
at his notes. "But it's in the security area. The girls don't go in
there to service them. Nicu moves in a three vehicle convoy.
Leaves late, comes back late, around noon. Sometimes goes out
of town."
"Shopping," Mike said.
"Shopping," Vanner confirmed. "His convoy uses multiple
routes. The only confluence is his apartment and the club.
Sometimes takes girls, especially new ones, to the apartment.
Apartment has security all over it, too."
"All over?" Mike asked.
"All over the ground floors," Vanner said. "We've got
cameras on the club and the apartment."
"Does he keep records of the girls?" Mike asked.
"Presumably," Vanner said. "Or someone does. But that
would be in the offices." He pointed to a spot on the blueprint
near the back of the main club area. "To get to the offices you
have a couple of choices. Go through the club, go through the
girl's dormitory, which has very tight security, or go through the
security area itself."
"No," Mike said. "You're thinking two dimensionally."
"The roof?" Vanner asked, incredulously.
"It's worth looking at," Mike said. "Brainstorming. Okay,
convoy, multiple routes. Lots of bystanders around in the club
and heavy security. Lots of security on the apartment. Records in
a practical vault. Nikki tell you about the Albanian?"
"The guy who actually sold her?" Vanner asked. "Brami
Dejti. Former officer in the NLA. Got made fighting the Serbs,
worked his way into fundraising by sex, slavery and drugs.
Arrested for war crimes, rape and murder of females, mostly,
associated with the NLA, never prosecuted. He got released by
the Belgian contingent of KFOR and nobody ever brought it up
again. Arrested in Greece
for pimping, released. Arrested in Belgium
for suspicion of transportation of women
for immoral purposes and kidnapping. The two witnesses, the
whores, disappeared. Case dropped. That guy?"
"Where'd you get it?" Mike asked, nodding.
"I pulled up a list of known players and ran the mug-shots
past Nikki," Vanner said. "For damned near two hours. After that
it was easy. Interpol has a rap sheet the length of Albania
on the guy. Somehow he always slips out
of the net."
"Interpol is the epitome of European policing," Mike said.
"All the information in the world and no real success at stopping
crime. We need to work on him. Maybe more than Nicu."
"He left last night in a convoy of three Mercedes that from
the looks were armored," Vanner replied. "We might be able to
get something more tomorrow night. If he shows."
"We need them both," Mike said. "Together. And we need
their records."
"That means taking down the whole club, Kildar," Vanner
said, frowning. "You're not talking about that, are you?"
"I dunno," Mike said. "I'm going to think on it. Find me a
way in that doesn't require shooting. Anything. Find it. If we can
get somebody inside, we're going places. Short of that, I'm out of
ideas. We'll have a meeting this afternoon to toss ideas around.
You, me, Adams, Sawn, Russell, Nikki
and a couple of the Keldara women."
"Will do," Vanner said, sighing.
* * *
Mike looked around the room and then at the unhelpful
blueprint on the easel.
"Nobody?" he asked. "I mean, I knew I was stumped, but
you're all smart people. Somebody's got to have an idea!"
"Well I'm stumped too," Adams
admitted. "But I know the way I think. If you can't get in easy, get
more firepower."
"I'm not calling in the clans to deal with one damned link in
the chain," Mike said.
"Well, I'm just not the Mission Impossible type," Adams replied. "Vanner?"
"I could try to remote access their computers," the former
Marine said, musingly. "I've got the systems to do that. The
problem being that the walls on the warehouse are old Russian
concrete. It's pretty lousy stuff; it falls apart pretty quick
normally. But the problem with it is it's ferroconcrete. Instead of
using rebar, it's laced through with wire mesh. That acts as a
Faraday cage; no signals get out. I'm pretty sure there's hardly any
cellphone connection in there. I know I haven't picked up cell
calls from Nicu or Bramji."
"What about the roof?" Graznya asked. "The walls stop
signals, but does the roof?"
"Checked," Vanner sighed. "It's metal. Stops 'em dead."
"I am still not so sure about reading this map of the
building," Nikki said, diffidently. "But there is something on it I
don't understand." She got up and walked over to the blueprint,
tracing a section. "What is this?"
"The warehouse had in-ground drains," Vanner said. "It's the
sewage connection for them. I looked at that; it's marked as being
only three inches wide. Really fucking thin for the purpose, but I
suppose that's Soviet architecture all over."
"It looks larger," Nikki said. "This is the marker?" she added,
pointing to a number.
"Yeah," Vanner said, curiously. "Why?"
"This is in decimeters," Nikki pointed out. "Three
decimeters. That is about this big," she pointed out, holding her
hands apart.
"Damn," Vanner said, standing up and walking over to the
map.
"Fifteen inches," Adams said. "Still
very damned small. I wouldn't want to try to get shooters in
there."
"No," Mike said, softly. "But you can get someone or even
something up it."
"It runs under the club," Vanner said, tracing the line. "And
under the offices and through the girl's rooms into security. The
entrance is over on that side. There are drains marked."
Mike walked over for a closer look and shook his head.
"There wasn't a drain opening there," Mike pointed out.
"Nikki, this is between the bar and stage two. There's not an
opening there, is there?"
"No," the girl said, definitely.
"They'll have laid the floor in over them," Vanner said
positively. "Nicu wasn't the first owner of the club and from the
looks of the paperwork the previous owners were forced to sell.
He might not even know about it. And one of the drains is right
under the offices."
"What can we do with that?" Mike asked.
"Let me do some shopping," Vanner said, distantly. "At the
very least I can get a recon probe up it. Maybe by the end of the
day."
"Get some of the Keldara into the club," Adams
said. "Rotate them through, picking up intel. They'll
need to keep their mouths shut and their eyes open."
"Just the men or women as well?" Graznya asked. "The girls
are trained for intel gathering. Not this type, but they understand
the concept."
"There were plenty of customers going there just to dance,"
Mike pointed out. "Send in a shooter and one of the intel girls as
a pair. How many of the girls would be willing to do it?"
"Most," Graznya said, smiling. "Totter in on high-heels,
yes?"
"They'll need more practice," Mike said, seriously. "They'll
need to be able to dance on them."
"I'll get with Katya to show us," Graznya said with a nod.
"Okay, let's break this up," Mike said. "Vanner, go shopping.
Take a couple of the Keldara shooters and a girl if she wants to
go. They need to get used to city life."
"Will do," Vanner said. He had pulled out a scratch pad and
was writing on it.
"Take Killjoy with you," Adams
added. "That way he can answer questions while you shop."
"Got it," the Marine replied.
"Graznya, talk to the girls," Mike said.
"I will, Kildar," the girl replied.
"It's not a plan, but it's a start."
Chapter Sixteen
Patrick Vanner was running on too little sleep and he knew
it. However, he'd found everything he needed shopping, and
putting the pieces together had been relatively easy. Once he'd
gotten the pieces and put together a plan, he'd turned it over to
Graznya. The girls had gotten used to tinkering with electronics
and the design changes were relatively simple. The device was
mostly hollow, anyway, and had a built-in spot for a camera. All
they'd needed to do was install the bits he'd picked up, a few
black boxes he always kept around just in case and do the
systems integration. He'd gotten in a power nap.
All that being said, he knew that he'd come up with the idea
while in a sleep-deprived haze. In other words, it might be genius
and it might be utter stupidity. Since he wasn't sure which, he'd
carefully avoided discussing it with the Kildar or Adams and had
sworn Killjoy to secrecy.
Which was why the former Ranger was with him in the
sewer tunnel.
"I think you're bent," Killjoy said, lifting the device into the
tunnel overhead.
"It's designed to avoid walls," Vanner pointed out as he
checked the take from the device. "All we have to do is put it in
the tunnel and let it go. It's perfect, really."
"It's nuts," Killjoy said. "Even if it works."
"If it's stupid and it works it ain't stupid," Vanner replied.
"Don't go quoting Murphy's Law of Combat to me," Killjoy
said. "Not while I'm doing this. It makes me wonder if the smell
from the sewer is making me as bent as you are."
"Just turn on the motor," Vanner said, dazedly. "I'm getting a
good feed from the camera and the intercept systems are
nominal."
"Okay," Killjoy said, flicking the switch on the base of the
thing.
"Right, here goes," Vanner said, touching a control.
There was a series of beepings that emitted from the tunnel.
"Don't tell me you didn't pull the sound box," Killjoy said.
"I'm pretty sure they won't hear it," Vanner said. "And, no, I
forgot to tell them."
"Like they wouldn't know about it?" the former Ranger
asked.
"Hey, they're the Keldara," Vanner said, shrugging. "It's not
like they go to a lot of movies. They've never even seen Star
Wars!"
He hit another button and there was another series of beeps.
"You go, R2," Killjoy said, chuckling.
And the miniature R2D2 toy began making its way up the
tunnel and into the darkness.
* * *
"Where's Vanner?" Mike asked as he walked in the
command post. "I looked in intel and he wasn't around."
"Getting some sleep," Graznya said, peering at her laptop
computer screen. "He's planted an intercept system under their
offices and we're getting the take from their computers. Getting
in through the sewer worked, by the way."
"Can you hack their girl database?" Mike asked.
"Not yet," Graznya admitted. "They're using the computer at
the moment and that takes too fine of a touch; we'll have to wait
until Patrick wakes up. What we're doing is getting the
information that they're seeing. Which is mostly financial at the
moment. And we got their passwords when they punched them
in. And Nicu uses a laptop with a WiFi link. He accessed it and
updated it when he got into the club and we got the take from
that. And he left it on but wasn't using it so we sucked it out. But
it doesn't have a back-list of girls on it, just 'current projects.'"
"Anything we can really use, yet?" Mike asked.
"Nope," Graznya admitted. "Wait for Patrick to wake up. He
didn't get any sleep all last night or today."
"Okay," Mike said. "I'll go bother somebody else for a while.
Send somebody to get me when he's up and functional."
* * *
It was nearly midnight when Mike got called to the intel
room.
"You got something?" Mike asked, looking at the group
gathered around the computers.
"Sort of," Vanner said with a grimace. "They've got, they
think, pretty good security. It's not as good as they think, but it's
pretty good." He spun around in his chair and stood up,
stretching his back.
"There are three different computer systems running in the
room," Vanner said. "Nicu's laptop, an internet connected
computer and a remote computer without any external
connections. Their internet communications systems are
encrypted with PGP and the computer's got three firewalls, one
hardware and two software. The hardware and one of the
software firewalls have known holes in them. The third doesn't.
It's Romanian and if anybody's found holes in it I haven't been
able to track the information down."
"So we're still not in their computers?" Mike asked.
"Not really," Vanner said with a sigh. "I tried slipping in a
trojan and got wacked. Hard. They damned near traced me. Well,
actually, they did trace me. To a university computer in the US
that I've got a trojan on. From there the
trace went cold. I don't think it was someone in the room, it was
an automated response. But I've already determined that the
information we need isn't even on that computer. It's on the
computer without outside access. There's no way to get
information off of it except to connect. If I can get a connection
on it I can suck it out in about ten minutes. But I'll need at least
ten minutes with the computer to do that. And the office is
manned around the clock. Oh, and one huge problem we keep
running into."
"What?" Mike asked, sighing.
"Everything is in fricking Romanian," Vanner said,
shrugging. "You read Romanian? I don't. We're using automatic
translators. You know how good those are."
"What about Nikki?" Mike asked.
"She speaks English and Russian," Vanner replied.
"Go roust out Russell, a Keldara girl and one of the Keldara
shooters," Mike said after a bit of thought. "Have them go find a
street hooker that speaks Romanian and English. Reads it, too.
One that won't be missed. Bring her back here. We'll just take her
with us when we leave."
"That's pretty damned cold, isn't it?" Vanner asked,
incredulously.
"We'll pay her," Mike said, shrugging. "And figure out
something better she can do than being a hooker when we're
done." Mike folded his arms and looked at the blueprint again.
"Can you sleep, again?"
"In a while," Vanner said.
"Good, get some more sleep. We'll brainstorm this again in
the morning. I've got an inkling of a plan; we'll see if it holds up
to scrutiny."
* * *
When Mike entered the command center the next morning,
there was a new face.
The girl was in her twenties, thin, dark and attractive but
with a very hard face.
"Kildar, this is Ruxandra," Vanner said by way of
introduction.
"Hello, Ruxandra," Mike said, sitting down. "Is she briefed
in?"
"Yes," Russell said.
"And are you willing to help us, Ruxandra?" Mike asked,
raising an eyebrow. "I mean, of your own free will?"
"I'm still wondering about that," Ruxandra admitted, staring
at him darkly. She had really good eyes for it. "I'd gladly see Nicu
in hell, though. One of my friends was picked up by his men and I
never heard from her again. Then her body turned up off the coast
of Italy
. It had been in the water for a long time,
probably dumped off the coast of Albania
. Another girl, she didn't want to give the
blowjob, yes? She tried to bite. Nicu had her front teeth
hammered out. Now she does not bite, yes? I'd be more happy to
help you if I was sure he was going to die."
"I think that's going to be how it has to go," Mike said. "I've
worked this over a half a dozen ways. I'll run through a few of
them."
"Way one. We find one of the guys that works in the office
in the evening that we can dope up someone to impersonate.
Grab him, slip our guy in, suck the computer and our guy goes
out."
"Welcome to Mission Impossible," Adams said, shaking his head. "They speak Romanian, Mike."
"Yeah, that's only one of about a thousand problems," Mike
pointed out. "Way two, we just go with a frontal assault. We'd
have surprise. We can get some weapons in the room in advance.
I suspect that Nikki knows a couple of the girls that would bring
stuff in for us. Right?"
"Possibly," Nikki said. "They are not swept when they come
in the back entrance. And there's nothing keeping them from
going into the club."
"Set up assignations with the girls off-site, discuss it with
them, let them do it if they wished, hold on to the ones that
balked. Then hit the front and rear, hard. Go for Nicu and the
Albanian from the front while the back team went for the
computers."
"We'd take a lot of casualties," Adams said, frowning. "That was my thought. And I don't want to
think about the mess. Lots of dead civilians. Even if the Keldara
picked their shots, Nicu wouldn't. For that matter, we don't know
that some of the girls wouldn't burn us. We could be running
right into an ambush."
"Right," Mike said. "Now, the question is, if things go
down, what do Nicu and the Albanian do?"
"I'd say, head for either the office or the security barracks,"
Vanner replied. "There are more cars out back. I'd say if they have
to they escape that way rather than out the front. There's a door
near his booth that goes to a hallway that leads to the office. Turn
left on it and you're headed for the girl's area and the security
barracks. He'd hit that door if anything went down. Then either
sit it out in the office or head out the back to escape. There are
three rear entrances."
"We need a person to go up the tunnel," Mike said, shutting
his eyes.
"It's too damned small for the Keldara," Adams
said. "Even the girls."
"Yeah," Mike said. "But Oksana would fit. Graznya, go get
her, would you, please?"
When the girl was led into the room she was clearly
frightened.
"It's okay, Oksana," Mike said, gently. "I asked you to come
in here because I need you to do something for us. It's going to
be hard and it's going to require that you be brave. Do you think
you can do it?"
"I'm not really brave," Oksana said, honestly. "I'd like to be,
but I am always fear."
"Being brave doesn't mean not having fear," Mike said,
shrugging. "If you don't have fear, you can't be brave. You have
to overcome fear to count as brave. Do you think you can
overcome fear?"
"I don't know," the girl said. "What do you need? Do you
want me to be with man? I do not want to be with man."
"No," Mike said, shaking his head. "This is going to require
physical bravery in a different way. Have you ever been in a small
place?"
"Yes," the girl said. "I like it in a small place. I feel safer."
"That's good," Mike said, nodding. "Oksana, we need
someone to crawl into a very small, very dirty and nasty place,
and put some things in there. Up a tunnel."
"That..." the girl said then paused. "I do not know if I would
like that."
"If you do it, we can capture and kill slavers," Mike said,
leaning forward. "I don't know if we can free more girls like you,
but we will give them more of a chance. Some of us are probably
going to die doing this. If you don't do it, more will die. I am
really hoping that you will do this. We need you. Very much."
The girl regarded him for a moment and then tilted her head
to the side, looking him in the eye.
"When you bought me, you treated me very bad," the girl
said. "Why did you do that? The Keldara women, they say that
you are a very nice man."
"I am a very bad man who tries to be nice," Mike said, not
turning away. "This is the truth. I did what I did because if I did
not, the men in the room would have suspected I was not who I
said I was. They would have thought me soft, a weak man who
could not be a slaver because I was too nice."
"Did you enjoy it?" Oksana asked.
Mike looked at her for a long moment then shrugged.
"Yes," he answered, simply, still staring her in the eyes. It
was as if there were only two people in the room. "I would not
have done it if I didn't have to. But, yes. I am not a nice man. I am
a very, very bad man who has chosen to be nice most of the time.
I do many things that are for the side of what I call 'good.' But
many of them are very bad things, like what I did to you. I do
them for good reasons. But my bad side enjoyed it very much."
"You tell me this even though you want me to do something
for you," the girl said, wonderingly.
"If you do this, you are like a soldier that works for me,"
Mike said, shrugging. "I must be honest with my soldiers, with
my troops. I must be honest and loyal with them as they are
honest and loyal with me. If I don't, it doesn't work. I have shown
them my bad side and my good. They choose to believe I am, at
heart, a good man. I don't argue it with them. Maybe they are
right and I'm wrong. But the things that I do are as much to make
up for my bad side as they are for any other reason. Perhaps that
makes me good. I don't know. All I know is that I must be
honest."
The girl stared at him for a moment more and then looked
away, breathing out.
"Yes, I will do this," she answered. "But you pay your
soldiers, yes?"
"Oh, don't worry," Mike said, grinning. "You'll get paid."
"Good," the girl said. "And I get to keep it?"
"You'll get to keep it," Graznya said, looking over at Mike
with a strange expression.
"Two thousand euros for this mission and as of today you
go on base Keldara intel operative pay," Mike said. "Graznya,
she's now in your section."
"Good," Graznya replied. "I can use another girl who
actually knows how to use high-heels."
"Good indeed," Mike said, distantly. "Okay, Vanner I'm
going to need most of the shooters taken off of intel duty. Figure
that out. Adams, you and I are going to
work out the entry plan. We're also going to need a place to
rehearse."
"I'll get some of the girls looking for that," Vanner said.
"They were the ones that found the warehouse in Chisinau."
"How much Semtek do we have with us?" Mike asked.
"About sixty kilos," Adams said.
"We're going to need most of it," Mike replied. "And we'll
need some field expedient CS."
"I'll add that to my list," Vanner said.
"Chief, my room in fifteen, bring all the maps and updated
intel data," Mike said, nodding. "And Oksana?"
"Yes...Kildar?" the girl asked.
"Thank you."
Chapter Seventeen
Mike looked over at the chief a couple of hours later and
shrugged.
"Think it's going to work?"
They'd been over and over the design of the club, but in the
end a modified brute force method was all that they could come
up with. And even that meant putting some "principles" on the
line. If they screwed up, the Keldara were likely to be in a very
deep crack. On the other hand, Mike, personally, probably
wouldn't be around to care.
"Oh, it'll work," Adams said. "What
I'm wondering is if it's worth it. We're going to lose people. At
least one, probably three."
"So are we doing this for money?" Mike asked. "Or are we
doing this for the mission, whatever that means?"
"Or are we doing it because we're just curious where the
trail leads?"
"That too," Mike admitted.
"You're risking a lot for curiosity," Adams said.
"If it was just curiousity, I don't think I would," Mike
admitted. "I'd just pull back and tell the senator the trail was too
cold. But I'm not doing this for pure curiousity or for the
'mission'. And certainly I wouldn't pay two or three Keldara for
five mil. I've got the funny feeling that this little Ukrainian whore
is way more important than the senator was willing to admit."
He looked up as there was a knock on the door and slid a
cover sheet over the plans.
"Come."
Graznya stepped into the room and looked around.
"I hope I'm not disturbing," she said.
"We're about done," Mike replied.
"I was wondering something," the woman said, looking over
at the chief.
"I've got to go start getting the troops dialed in,"
Adams said, standing up with a file in his hand.
"You two talk."
When the chief had left Graznya sat down and regarded the
Kildar thoughtfully then frowned when he smiled.
"What?"
"I was just thinking of the changes in the Keldara since I've
taken over," Mike said, still smiling. "They wanted to kick Lydia
and Irina out of the Families for being
alone with a man, even though there were four people in the car
and it was a medical emergency. And look at you, now. Not to
mention being willing to, effectively, throw the chief out for a
private chat."
"I see the humor," Graznya said, finally smiling.
"So what's wrong with how I handled Oksana?" Mike asked.
"You're sure that's it?" the girl asked.
"Yep," Mike said. "I saw your look."
"I was just wondering..."
"What I did to her?" Mike asked, his face hard.
"Oh, no, she told me that," Graznya said. "And I said much
the same things you said to her. Except the part about you being
evil. And I wasn't sure how you actually felt about it. But...the
way you spoke to her. How..."
"How did I know to treat her that way?" Mike asked, leaning
back. "I asked myself the same thing. I wasn't sure if I was
manipulating her or not. But I felt like I had to treat her as if she
mattered. Because she does. As a human being and as a member
of the team."
"I think that's it," Graznya said, smiling. "You treat people as
human beings, no matter who they are. This is why we love you."
"That's a bit strong," Mike said. "And I've treated people as
things, plenty of times. I'm doing it right now, looking at the
plans, knowing that some of the Keldara are going to die in this
raid. And I've done it to women plenty of times before."
"But you speak to a young girl as if she is the most
important person in the world," Graznya said. "Nobody has ever
treated her as if she was important. You treat us, the women of
the Keldara, as if we were important. In the Families we are only
as important as our wombs and the 'women's work' we do."
"And is it manipulation?" Mike asked. "Don't ask me back. I
don't know. All I know is that there are people who are important
to my mission. And I treat them that way. Whatever the mission
might be. However, once they are members of the team, they are
always members of the team. If I treated you, tomorrow, as if you
had no importance then the next time I needed you, the next time
the mission needed you, I wouldn't be able to depend on you. I
guess it is manipulation. But it also includes loyalty in the mix."
He paused and shrugged, grinning. "Call it military leadership."
"Now I know that Oksana is smarter than I," Graznya said,
staring at him thoughtfully.
"Why?" Mike asked.
"Because I have to agree with her. You are both crazy and
very scary. But I will still follow you wherever you lead, Kildar."
"Yeah, but am I right?" Mike said, shrugging. "I have to
wonder about this entire mission; there is no way we're going to
get the data we need from the club without some casualties."
"We are the Keldara," Graznya said, shrugging and looking
away. "You are the Kildar. We will follow wherever you lead."
"But..." Mike said, noting the body language.
"There is really no 'but,'" Graznya said, getting up and
shrugging. "For the rest...I think you should talk to Sawn."
"Why?" Mike asked.
"Because I'm a lady and I can't use those words," Graznya
said, nodding as she walked out.
* * *
"Kildar," Sawn said, not looking up from the MP-5 he had
broken down on the bed.
"Graznya said I should talk to you," Mike replied, settling
into a chair. "About the mission."
"She mentioned that," Sawn said, still not looking up. "I sort
of expected this to be tomorrow, though."
"Unfortunately, tomorrow is when I'll need to give the
mission a full go," Mike said, stretching out his feet as the
Keldara began reassembling the sub-gun. "So, what do you
think? I won't promise to take your recommendation, but I want
some thoughts."
"Go," Sawn said, shrugging and closing the gun. He jacked
the breach and stared into it, ensuring that there wasn't a round in
the chamber.
"Why?" Mike asked. "I mean, curiosity, sure. And I've got
the feeling that there's something very sniffy in Washington
but I can't be sure unless I follow the trail to the rot.
But we are going to take casualties, Sawn. They're
probably going to be shooters. But there's always the possibility
that they'll be one of the ladies. Or me or Adams."
"Go," Sawn said, finally looking up. The stare forced Mike
to pause. Each of the teams had a...call it a personality, one that
they got from their team leaders. Oleg's team was blunt and
implacable as a tank going through a wall. Vil's team depended
on speed and finesse, grace over power. Sawn's team, though,
was the thoughtful one. Not that they couldn't go hard against the
bad guys, but they tended to think their shots, to take just a tad of
time contemplating before doing unto others. That might be only
a fraction of a second, but the result was usually smarter and
tighter than the other teams. Sawn's team had been up on the
rotation for this mission, but Mike was glad. This mission had
required a lot more think and a lot less "implacable" than Oleg
could have handled. Team Sawn was a good choice.
All of that thought, all that contemplation, came from Sawn.
Farmers didn't tend to produce philosophers but Sawn was a
close as the Keldara came. He had a depth that Oleg, Vil, Padraic
and the others didn't posess. And that depth turned out to be
filled with quite a bit of anger.
"There are a number of reasons," Sawn continued, looking
back down at the weapon in his hand. "This is the first true
mission which the Keldara have attempted. If you withdraw, even
for the reason of sheltering us, it will affect our confidence. Oh,
not entirely, but we will be forced to question whether you
would have taken a team of Americans in, if you would have
trusted them..."
"But..." Mike said, stopping when Sawn raised a hand.
"I said a number of reasons, Kildar," the team leader said,
looking up and smiling tightly. "That is but one, and the least.
The second reason is what you have said.
America,
Washington
, affects the entire world. We had not realized to
what a degree, hidden away in our valley. But now that we are
looking out of our hole, looking again at the world,
America
affects everything. If there is
this...evil somewhere near the core of your government, finding
it is important. To you, to
America
and to the Keldara. Without digging out
the rot, we cannot know if it will harm us. But knowing that the
rot is there, without digging it out... That is like a tooth that you
let fester. It will kill you in time."
"Okay, I'll buy that one," Mike said, frowning. "My fault for
dragging you into it."
"You are the Kildar," Sawn said, suddenly angry. "It
is not our horror, not our shame, that we are your fighters, your
guards, it is our honor, Kildar. We share your
danger, willingly and even with joy. You have given us, again,
our honor. And as you gain more dangerous, more powerful,
enemies, our status raises thereby."
"Okay, that one's sort of...twisted," Mike said, chuckling.
"But I sort of get it. If you're going to believe in the way of the
warrior, you have to believe all the way."
"And there is a last thing," Sawn said, seating a magazine in
the weapon. "This...trade. It is dishonor upon us all." He turned
and looked out the window at the city and shook his head. "Our
women have been stolen, Kildar. When we were weak, when we
had nothing and certainly no weapons, people who think
they are warriors came upon us and treated us like peasants
. We are not peasants, Kildar. We have had to do what we
have done over the years, so many years even we did not realize
until you came to us. But we are not peasants, Kildar and
these men, in this trade, have dishonored our lands, our homes."
He turned back to Mike and his eyes were bright with anger
as he jacked a round into the chamber.
"Do not even think of turning back, Kildar," Sawn
said, gritting his teeth. "I would that we could kill them all. Kill
them until the All Father cried out in horror and the sun bled."
* * *
"This is very scary, indeed," Oksana said, looking at the hole.
"You can do it," Russell replied, fitting the package in the
tube. "I know I can't," the massive NCO added with a grin. "You
just push the package up the tunnel until I tell you to stop and
then back out. If you get stuck, I'll pull you out with the rope."
"Okay," Oksana said, trying not to breath.
"You'll be on the radio the whole way," Vanda said. The
female Keldara was fiddling with the receiver box for the
telephone headset Oksana was wearing. "Count to five, slowly."
"One, two, three, four, five," Oksana said.
"Can you hear me?" Vanda asked. "I mean, in your
earphone?"
"Yes," Oksana replied.
"We're good."
"Okay, Oksana," Russell said, putting one hand under a
shoulder and wrapping the other around her lower thigh. "Up you
go."
Whether she wanted to or not, Oksana was lifted up to the
tube.
"Stick your arms in," Russell said. "Push on the package. I'll
push you in for the first bit."
As Oksana placed her hands on the inside of the tube she felt
herself gently but firmly rammed into the hole. The package was
right inside the opening but by holding her hands out she was
easily able to push it ahead of her.
Someone had found a suit of a strange, slick, material called
"Tyvek" that covered her from head to foot. That was nice of
them since the interior of the tunnel was very dirty. And some of
the Keldara soldiers had given her pads for her elbows and knees
and leather gloves with rough palms so they would help her
crawl. She supposed the least she should do was keep going.
"You there, Oksana?" Vanda asked.
"I'm here," Oksana said. "I am crawling forward."
The tunnel was very tight, she could barely move her arms,
but she could push with her legs and pull a little. Bit by bit,
pushing the package ahead of her, she moved down the tunnel.
"There is not much air in here," Oksana said, panting.
"Slow down a bit," Vanda said. "We've got hours to do this.
Don't push yourself and you won't need as much air. So, you're
from the Ukraine
? Where?"
"I was raised in an orphanage in
Kremenchug
," Oksana said. "It was not very nice."
"I'm sorry," Vanda said. "Wasn't there anything that you
liked growing up?"
"There was a garden that we got taken to, sometimes,"
Oksana said, pushing forward again, slowly. "It was very
beautiful in the spring and summer. But in the orphanage there
was not much. Even the place where we played didn't have grass,
only some weeds."
"Do you know what you want to do when you grow up?"
Vanda asked.
"I think I want to be a fashion model," Oksana said. "I see
their pictures in magazines and they are all so beautiful."
"I suppose that is a goal," Vanda said, dubiously. "Have you
ever considered being a gardener...?"
* * *
Sawn looked around the lobby of the embassy. The guard on
the front, a Romanian security guard, had directed him to the visa
section. But that was not, really, what he was here for. However,
as he'd been briefed, there were two Marines in dress uniform in
the lobby, standing at parade rest. He walked over to one of them
that had more stripes.
"I am told the guard on the gate I am here for visa..." Sawn
said.
"The visa section is down the hall, sir," the corporal said,
pointing. "Good day."
"I am not here for visa," Sawn said. "I am courier for station
chief. Please direct me to secure point to wait for clearance.
Code is Kildar Seven Three One Two."
* * *
"Interesting clearance," the man behind the desk said,
looking at his security screen.
"Yes, sir," Sawn said. "I am not know. I am only courier."
"You're a team head for the Kildar," the man said, looking
over at him. "Sawn Makanee, head of Team Sawn. There's even a
not-very-good picture of you."
"I would not know anything about that, sir," Sawn replied.
"I'm sure you wouldn't," the CIA station chief said, smiling.
"What are your orders?"
"I am to be directed to secure console," Sawn said. "I am to
enter password and put in file from disk. I am to run destruction
program on file and then take file to burn point for burning. I
have had all steps described to me."
"I'm sure," the station chief said, rolling his tongue in his
cheek. "There was a disappearance in Chisinau last week. A
slaver."
"I am not sure what you say, sir," Sawn said, looking
honestly puzzled.
"And a report that a group of Georgians were passing
through the town," the station chief pointed out. "Men
transporting women to
Macedonia
, if I recall correctly, for purposes of
prostituion. I don't suppose there is any connection?"
"I would not be able to say, sir," Sawn replied.
"So where is the Kildar?"
"I am not sure what you ask, sir?" Sawn said. "Can I just do
upload, now?"
"The guy who gave you the packet. And your instructions."
"I am given to them by man on the street and paid money,"
Sawn replied. "May I do upload, now?"
"Are we going to have a disappearance, here?"
"I should be going, now," Sawn said, standing up.
"Sit down," the station chief snapped. "You're in an embassy
in a secure section. You walk out when I tell you to walk out!"
"Yes, sir," Sawn said, sitting down. "Permission to speak
freely, sir?" His accent had apparently disappeared.
"Yes."
"You really don't want to ask questions, sir," Sawn replied.
"You really don't want to have ever seen me, to have ever heard
the name Kildar, to have ever thought about any connections.
Not if you value your career, sir. Because, sir, the Kildar is here
for very senior Americans, sir. That he is here, you need to
forget. If anything happens, you need to not make the
connections, sir. Or very senior American will be very upset, sir.
I was told to pass this to you, sir, by the Kildar, who, yes, gave
me the package, sir. And to note that all he needs to do is get on
the telephone and you will find that
Romania is a much nicer place than Ghana or Benin
, sir. I don't even know, frankly, where
Ghana or Benin are, sir, but I think you'd
rather be in Romania
, yes?"
The station chief's face had gone from the red of anger to
white and then back to red.
"You little shit, you can't just walk in here..."
"Sir, is telephone number," Sawn said, pulling out a number.
"Would you call, sir?"
"What is this?" the station chief asked, looking at the slip of
paper. It was a number in DC and by the exchange it was in the
Pentagon. There was even a scrambler code. Fucking Defense
Department getting in on intel, of course.
"Please to call, sir, or let me leave," Sawn said, tilting his
head to the side. "Your choice."
The station chief looked at him haughtily for a moment and
then picked up his secure phone.
* * *
"Pierson."
"And you are?"
Colonel Bob Pierson looked at his phone. The call was
coming from the CIA station chief's office in Bucharest, Romania . He hadn't even known there was
such.
"This is Colonel Robert Pierson, Special Operations Liaison
Office. And to whom am I speaking, sir?"
"This is Jasper Weatherby, I'm the CIA Station Chief in Bucharest
. I've got a young man in my office who wants to use
our secure room to send a message from someone called the
Kildar."
"Has he got codes?" Pierson asked.
"Yes, I've checked the database and he's one of this Jenkins'
character's team leaders."
"Then let him send the message," the colonel said, his brow
furrowing. "What's the problem?"
"The problem, colonel, is that I've got what looks like a
rogue DIA black op going on in my patch! I've seen the data on
Jenkins and I don't want to be the one to clean up the mess!"
"Oh," Pierson replied, smiling as he leaned back in his chair.
"So you're saying you're not going to let him use your secure
facilities because you don't want Mike in your patch. I can see
that. Tell you what, just have the Keldara toddle back to Mike
and tell him that. Not a problem, I'll guarantee it. Mike won't
bother you any more."
"Let me be clear, colonel," Weatherby said, tightly. "I want
him out of Romania
. Now."
"I'll pass that on," Pierson replied. "Look, I'm sure you're
busy and I know I am. Just send the Keldara back and forget it."
"Very well, colonel," Weatherby said. "Thanks."
"Not a problem," Pierson said. "Good bye."
* * *
"I won't ask what you're doing in Romania
," Pierson said over the secure link.
"You didn't get the message?" Mike asked, incredulously.
"The station chief blew his lid and I had him send your
unnamed Keldara back," the colonel said. "He should be on his
way. Tell him no big deal. I'll send a courier over. Where are
you?"
"You don't want this going by anyone who's not one
hundred percent, Bob," Mike replied, tightly. "You really, really
don't. I think...no, I know I got scammed. The message laid it out
to date and more or less asked if you-know-who wanted me to go
home with my tail between my legs and discuss it with the person
that sent me or to keep going."
"You're being so discreet it's scary," Pierson said.
"I don't want to end up on C-Span, Bob," Mike replied.
"That's scary all right," the colonel said, breathing out. "I
need that data."
"Damned straight," Mike said.
"If Sawn's not gotten too far, have him go cool his heels in
the embassy," Pierson said, thoughtfully. "I need to make some
calls."
* * *
"Mr. Makanee?" the Marine said, politely. "Could you come
with me, please?"
"May I ask where we are going?" Sawn said, just as politely.
"The military liaison office," the Marine replied.
As they were walking down the office Sawn saw the station
chief walking in the opposite direction. There were two Marines
with him. One was carrying a box that appeared to be personal
effects while the other was discreetly if unmistakably escorting
him.
"This is an outrage!" the station chief snapped as he
approached Sawn.
"Sir, your orders are to remain silent," the Marine trailing
him said, definitely. "Further attempt to speak will require that
we restrain you, sir, with respect."
The station chief opened his mouth to respond and then
clapped it shut.
Sawn ignored the by-play, with the exception of stepping
politely out of the way, until they were passed.
"Thanks," the Marine escorting him said. "Turn right at the
next corridor."
"I did not think it best to argue in the hallway," Sawn
replied, turning the corner.
"Oh, thanks for that, too," the Marine said. "But I meant
getting rid of that guy. He was a real shithead. I'd love to ask
what this is all about, but I know better."
"The reason I'm here is that we are not sure," Sawn admitted
as he entered the Office of Military Liaison.
Chapter Eighteen
It was well past his official quitting time, but Bob Pierson
wasn't even sure what that meant anymore. Generally, this job
had involved sixteen hour days running up to sixty in the bad
times. The military had long before learned to count "days" as the
period between one solid sleep and the next and ignore such
things as the rising and falling of the sun. And he was afraid this
was one of those "bad" times. When Mike got that cadgy on the
phone he was onto something hot. And the mention of C-Span
meant he was afraid it was going to explode.
So he sat and tapped the balls of his fingers together,
wondering what was about to come in on the secure server.
SIPARNET was the military's internet. Set up like the
civilian internet it was entirely separate and transmitted only over
secure lines. Theoretically, it was uncrackable. Lord knew the
military tried to keep it that way, tried very hard. And, thus far,
there had been no leaks. But there was already a first time.
Pierson had half considered that they might want to hand carry
the data back to the states. But Mike must have thought it was
time-critical.
His inbox dinged and he hit the message with a sigh.
A moment later, after the second "Holy Fuck!" he picked up
the secure line to the Office of the Secretary of Defense. This
was going to be a long one.
"This is Pierson in SOLO," he said. "I need to talk to the
Secretary. Now."
* * *
"We're over time for our cover," Adams pointed out as the Keldara fast-roped off the balcony,
again.
"Well, I'd say we're dialed in," Mike replied. "I'm hoping for
some word from Pierson, though."
"Thus Nadzia following you around with the sat-phone," the
chief said, looking over at the Keldara girl. She was wearing a
short dress and more make-up than he'd ever seen on a Keldara
female.
"And she builds the cover," Mike said.
"Speaking of which, I haven't gotten my ashes hauled in a
few days," Adams pointed out.
"Be discreet and smart," Mike replied as the sat-phone
started to beep.
"Kildar," Nadzia said, walking over.
"Jenkins," Mike said once he got the headphone in.
"Approved," Pierson said. "Find the girl and gather all
possible intel. You can probably guess how high that went."
"I take it that it only went up one chain," Mike said.
"Absolutely," Pierson replied. "And nobody actually had the
conversations. Nobody had lots of conversations late into the
night. And nobody is going to say anything about it, ever again."
"Gotcha," Mike said.
"Except one thing," Pierson replied, then paused. "I need to
send that by courier, though. Damnit. I don't want any more
conversation on this than necessary. It's incredibly inflammatory.
Mike, you might want to just back out."
"Forget the other unless it's truly pertinent intel," Mike said.
"And, no, I'm going to follow the trail. I said I'd know what was
going on when it started to smell. I think I'm getting a whiff. And
it stinks like hell."
"Be careful."
"There's careful and then there's careful," Mike said. "Out
here."
He watched the Keldara slide down the rope again and fan
out as one of the Keldara intel specialist followed them down.
The girl, who was no more than seventeen and until six months
before had never seen a computer, never driven a car, never been
on a date, was wearing the same black uniforms and body armor
as the fighters. She ran immediately to a computer on a desk,
threw the monitor on it to the side and began removing the cover.
In no less than thirty seconds she had it disassembled and the hard
drives stashed in a pouch. Despite the gas mask she was wearing.
Thirty seconds later, all the Keldara were back on the
balcony.
"I think we're ready."
* * *
"It's a profitable night," Dejti said, looking around the club.
"They are all good nights," Nicu replied.
"I said 'profitable' not 'good'," the Albanian replied.
"This is much better than running around in the mountains
being chased by the Serbs, yes?"
"Sometimes," Dejti said, stoically. "But the tension is the
same, yes? Or don't you feel it? I have felt this before. There is
something moving. The American is back in the house, with
some of his girls. You see?"
"I saw," Nicu said. "They're buying drinks and whores. What
about it?"
"I don't trust him. He doesn't have the right feel."
"You worry too much," Nicu said, shrugging.
"And you don't worry enough," the Albanian said, darkly.
"You think that because we have done well, that it will always
continue. You think that because we have the government, that
there are no other forces against us. That is what Kadul thought,
too. And now who owns the club? Perhaps the Americans are
looking to take over, eh?"
"Calm down," Nicu said. "I will get you a girl, a young one.
Have your fun with her, you will feel better."
"No, not tonight," Dejti replied, looking out at the dance
floor. Too many of the fucking guards that were supposed to be
looking for threats were looking at the women. Most were not
his people. He could trust his tribe, but too many had to be in
positions like his, handling the money and the girls. Muscle you
could hire, but could you depend on it? If, no, when things went
wrong, could you depend upon them to die, to keep you alive, to
fight for you like members of your family? No. That was why it
was Albanians that were on his cars. It was Albanians in the
office, counting the money and bundling it. Nicu thought he ran
the club. Let him handle the women, Dejti's people handled the
money.
"Tonight I want to be clear," Dejti continued. "There is a feel
in the air, yes? Like before a storm when you are walking in the
mountains; you can feel the prickling on your skin? Like before
an ambush."
"There will be no ambushes here," Nicu said, yawning. "And
I wouldn't know about storms in the mountains. I'm a city boy."
"So you are," Dejti replied. You useless shit. As soon as I
can get a decent Albanian to replace you, you are going to be a
graveyard boy.
"You need a girl," Nicu said, waving at one of the guards.
"Dragos, go and get Bohuslava. You'll like her," he added to
Dejti. "Very young, very new, from Slovakia
. Beautiful. Don't mark her too badly,
please."
"I said I didn't want a girl you stupid..." Dejti started to reply
then stopped as screams and coughing erupted on the dance floor.
"What is happening?" Nicu yelled as the music kept
throbbing.
"Someone dropped a stink bomb!" the nearest guard said,
just as Nicu caught a whiff of the stench. Already people were
crowding to the exits.
"Fucking jokers," Nicu growled, standing up just as the
ground thumped hard, twice.
"This is no joke," Dejti shouted. "Out! Now!"
"What?" Nicu yelled. "Why?"
"Because, this is an attack," the Albanian yelled as he ran for
the back door to the offices.
* * *
Mike leaned back in the booth and tried to ignore the stench.
"I'm really wondering about this," he said.
"Timing," Adams said. "And...now."
The three Keldara girls got up and started screaming and
coughing, running for the nearby door that had just been opened.
Nicu had finally gotten up and was hurrying for the same door,
his bodyguards closing in around him.
Mike, Adams and Russell got up and followed the girls,
shouting at them to calm down. Mike caught one just before they
reached the line of bodyguards.
"You little bitch!" Mike yelled, slapping the girl so hard she
fell over. "You don't try to run on me!"
He turned to grab at another, who had literally bounced off
one of the guards, and continued through with a stab into the
guard's gut. The polymer blade sank up to the small hilt and he
yanked sideways, but left it in the wound, as the guard started to
crumple.
Adams and Russell had each accounted for two more and
that left just one between the door and Mike. The guard had
drawn a gun but had no fucking clue how to use it at that range.
Mike ducked down and sideways, wrapping a hand around
the barrel and left the guard with a broken finger that had nearly
been ripped off.
Nicu was through the door but Mike took up a stance and
put a round right through his leg as Russell turned and shot the
nearest guard that hadn't been covering the retreat.
"Sixteen seconds," Graznya yelled, ripping off her shoes and
rolling to the side. She somehow had acquired a pistol as well
and used the body of one of the dead guards as a resting spot to
fire across the room, taking out another guard. "GO!"
Russell was already through the door, dipping down to lift
Nicu by his collar as the assault team came through the door to
the offices. There were two guards between them and Dejti and
one got off a burst from his Skoda Scorpion. It was his last
action as the following Keldara put two rounds in him, center of
mass. The other guard had already flown forward, his face
blasting open as a 9mm round from Chief Adams blew through
the back of his head and out the front.
Dejti had drawn a pistol but he was surrounded and slowly
laid it on the ground, his hands in the air.
"Twelve seconds!" Graznya yelled, backing through the door
and closing and bolting it.
"Tag and bag 'im," Russell said, thrusting Nicu at the
Keldara now filling the hall. Two were covering the far end, one
was working on the downed Keldara and the other two caught
Nicu, rapidly wrapping his hands and mouth with rigger's tape.
"You're going to die for this," Dejti said as Russell caught a
tossed roll of tape and pulled off a strip.
"I've heard that one before," Mike said.
"Seven, six..."
* * *
"How's Endar?" Mike asked as the van pulled away.
"Bad," Yevgeni answered, pulling off his black balaclava. "I
think even if we could take him to the hospital he would not
make it."
"Vanner, status on the casualty?" Mike asked as soon as he
had his headset in.
"Gone, sir," Vanner answered. "I get terminal reactions. He
took one through the aorta, I think. They must have been using
hot rounds."
"That Scorpion was a 5.54 variant,"
Adams said. "It went right through the
plate. I checked. Three rounds, one of them dead through the
target point."
"Understood," Mike said. "Continue plan."
* * *
"What do we have?" Mike asked as he walked in the new
command post.
It was another abandoned warehouse. The former Eastern
Bloc was littered with them. Mostly they had held military
equipment that was designed to fight the evil Americans and their
hordes of puppet-state armies. Once the world woke up and
shook off the miasma of communism, they'd been filled with
nothing of much use. The military equipment was sold off at ten
cents on the dollar, if that, the factories mostly shut down and the
warehouses now awaited someone to fill them with...something.
At the moment this one was filled with white vans,
computers, cots and Keldara racking out on the floor and talking
in low tones about the op. It had been successful, but the loss of
Endar was clearly weighing on them.
And towards the back it was filled by two guys trussed up in
station chairs and the group regarding them with interest.
"We got anything useful to ask them yet, Vanner?" Mike
asked.
"Not really," Patrick replied. "We're still looking for
Natalya. Do you know that they've moved over two hundred girls
named Natalya alone in the last year. Twenty in the period we're
looking for."
"You should be through twenty already," Mike said.
"They're database is for shit," Patrick sighed. "They're using
Excel if you can believe it. Finding a grouping of Natalya's is
easy. I think it's only twenty in the date range, some of the dates
aren't input right. And I've looked at those; she's not any of them.
So I'm expanding the search."
"Hurry," Mike said, turning to look at Nicu and Dejti. "I'm
looking forward to asking these guys the right questions."
"Ah, here she is," Vanner said, happily. "She was received on
the fifteenth of May and shipped out on the third of July. The guy
transporting her was called Mehmet Hubchev and she was going
to the Belgrade
facility..."
"So we're going to Belgrade
?" Mike said.
"But!" Vanner added. "There's a note that she was to be
transshipped to Rozaje. Where in the hell is Rozaje?"
"Montenegro,"
Adams said. "Near the Albanian border."
"That got a rise out of Dejti, here," Mike said, stepping
forward and yanking off the tape on the Albanian's mouth. "So,
Dejti, what's so important about Rozi or whatever."
"I tell you nothing!" the Albanian said, spitting at him.
"Hey, a live one," Mike said. "Chief, the screams really hurt
my ears, stuff something in his mouth."
"Okay," Adams said, stepping
forward while he drew his knife. He took Nicu's ear in a thumb
and forefinger and then cut it off, neatly. Then in one swift
motion he stuffed it in Dejti's mouth and followed it with a wad
of cloth. "That do?"
"Works," Mike said, stepping around the back of the chair to
pick up the sledge hammer. "Now, it only took a couple of wacks
from this to get Nicu's friend...what was his name?"
"Yuri," Vanner said, helpfully. "Hey, boss, there are only a
couple of girls in each shipment sent to this Rozaje place. Most
of them get sent to other brothels or straight to Albania with notes to check them
for breaking and then send them through the pipeline to Italy
. I only count...twenty females in the last
six months that went to Rozaje. I've got it on a map; there can't
be much of a brothel there, it's tiny."
"So, Dejti," Mike said, pulling the hammer back. "We're
going to talk about Rozaje."
Once the screams had died down, Adams pulled out the ear. Then he picked up a smaller sledge,
held the Albanians mouth shut by pushing up on his chin and
smashed out his teeth.
"Sorry about that addition, boss," he said, fishing in the
whimpering man's mouth. "I didn't want him biting me while I
got Nicu's ear out. Guess where I got that idea?"
"Not a problem," Mike said. "As long as he can talk. So,
Dejti, what's the deal with Rozaje."
"You look for girl," Dejti said. "One girl."
"That's right, one insignificant little Ukrainian hooker,"
Mike said. "So what's so important about Rozaje?"
"If she went to Rozaje, she is dead."
* * *
"We will find who did this and kill them," Luan Dejti said,
looking around the shattered office. Not much was visible; it was
clear that whoever had hit the club had left explosives behind.
Those had started a fire and even the police said there was not
much evidence. Witnesses had seen some people enter the back
rooms, but nobody could identify who they were. Except the
dead guards, possibly.
"They were professionals," Yarok Bezhmel said. Bezhmel
was one of the few "made" men in the Albanian mafia who was
not an Albanian. The former Spetznaz officer was highly
regarded by them, however, for his professional training and total
ruthlessness. "The shooting was short and precise, the bombs
were precisely placed and whoever took down the guards at the
door killed four guards armed with pistols and machine guns
with nothing but plastic knives."
"So, who are they?" Luan asked. "I want their balls. He was
my cousin. We cannot just walk away from this."
"Oh, no," the Russian said, squatting down and picking up a
spent cartridge. "Hmm... American 5.56 for their M-16s and
variants. I'd say that, somehow, you have angered the American
military my friend. That would explain the precision, at least. I
would say that this is the work of American special operations.
Their SEALs or even Delta Force. Perhaps one of their quieter
groups that works with the CIA or the Defense Department
intelligence. Yes, that would be it most likely. Their 'black ops'
groups. So, who did you anger in America
?"
"This should not be," Luan said, breathlessly. "What have I
done?"
"Perhaps you got the wrong girl," Yarok answered, standing
up. "I heard that Yuri in Chisinau has disappeared. A very clean
operation, very professional. He did much work with Nicu, no?"
"Yes, but I have no idea how much," Luan said, waving
around the room. "Everything is destroyed!"
"And if anything is gone, it is not evident to the fine
Romanian police," Yarok said, dusting off his knees. "I think I
need to go to Chisinau and ask questions. Also of your
employees here. But I will have better questions when I return.
Will you reopen the club?"
"Perhaps," Luan said, frowning. "It was a very good business
for us. But I will need a new front man. I don't suppose you want
to run a club?"
"Not at all," Yarok replied. "But I do need you to get some
people together for me, some people that are good with weapons.
Very good. We will need them."
Chapter Nineteen
"Well, I'd say that our cover is going to be pretty thin after
that one, Mike," Adams pointed out.
Mike looked out the window of the small hotel south of
Belgrade
and shrugged.
"I suppose we know the next main objective," Mike said.
"Bastards."
It was raining in Serbia
and the hills to the south were cloaked in
clouds. A shitty day for a shitty discussion.
"It was, more or less, what we said we were doing with the
girls," Adams pointed out.
"Yeah, but I really hoped that it didn't exist in reality," Mike
said.
"The world's a fucked up place," Adams opined. "So, do you think the Senator was a client?"
"But why's he looking for a girl that's dead?" Mike asked.
"That just doesn't make sense."
"We don't know she's dead," Adams
pointed out. "We only have what Dejti said."
"They snuff all the girls that go to Rozaje," Mike said, still
looking out at the rain.
"Most," Adams said.
"He only said that after we'd broken his other leg," Mike
said. "I'm not sure it was good intel. Besides, he was hard to
understand after you broke out his teeth."
"So we go to Rozaje, discuss it with this Bulgarian that runs
the place," Adams said. "We discuss it
with him really personally."
"I'm thinking about that," Mike said. "But there's a bunch of
problems."
"It's in the KFOR sector," the chief said. "I think the Fijians
have got that area at the moment."
"I really don't want to get in a fight with KFOR." The
Kosovo Force was an international peacekeeping enforcement
group placed in the Kosovo region of Serbia
after the brief Kosovo war. Effectively,
they policed the region. If the Keldara went in and wiped out
another Albanian brothel they wouldn't be dealing with just the
local police. And KFOR had access to modern forensic
techniques. They might not choose to use them under the
circumstances, but it was something to think about.
The worst bit, however, was what was unsaid.
"And KFOR knows about it," Adams pointed out.
Up until then. Damn.
* * *
"He's sure?" the president asked.
"As sure as he can be, Mr. President," Pierson replied. "I sent
him a code disc so we could send and receive highly encrypted
transmissions. His last transmissions indicate that the compound
in Kosovo is used for terminal sexual purposes..."
"They bring in hookers from around Eastern
Europe so rich and very sadistic bastards can kill
them during sex," the Defense Secretary said, bluntly.
"Yes, sir," the colonel said. At this point, he'd gotten used to
briefing the President; it went with the job. Office of Liaison was
founded to keep the current president up-to-date on what was
going on with very black, very special operations organizations
around the world. Pierson had gotten Mike dumped in his lap on
his first operation, back when Mike had a real life and a real
name. Since then he'd been Mike's "control", to the extent that the
former SEAL had any such thing.
If anyone, he should have been the point of contact on this
mission. It was obvious, now, why the senator had not used him.
"What in the hell was Traskel thinking?" the president
snapped. "Did he think that Mike wouldn't find out where the girl
had gone?"
"It's possible, Mr. President, that he was unaware," Pierson
pointed out. "We don't know that the Senator was a client."
"He traveled to Eastern Europe
during the same time-frame," the National Security Advisor
pointed out. Her normally dark face was gray with anger.
"So did three other senators from his party," the Secretary of
Defense pointed out. "And two from yours, Mr. President. So
were their families. And it was a very open trip."
"At the taxpayer's expense," the president said, angrily.
"Actually, Mr. President, it was paid for by a special interest
group," the Secretary of Defense replied. "The International
Association for Women's Rights. Apparently they hadn't
anticipated how...interested the congressmen and senators would
be in the subject; there are quite a few confidential reports on the
trip. Much went on that would be rather..."
"That if the American public got wind of it would cause a
firestorm," the National Security Advisor said with a sigh.
"I'm thinking less of the senator than of his son," the
Secretary said, musingly. "He had an entire report all of his own."
"If we even hint about this..." the president said.
"We can't do a thing," his chief of staff said. "We need those
reports to stay absolutely confidential. If there's even a hint that
anything about that trip came from our party, it would blast back
on us, hard."
"And in the meantime, we continue to just let it happen," the
National Security Advisor said, coldly.
"You know the problems with stopping it," the president
pointed out. "The pressures are too high for us to do more than
spit in the wind. And we've got other fish to fry, like stopping
terrorists from attacking the
United States
. In the meantime, it goes on. And, no, I
don't like that. Do you think I wouldn't stop it if I could?"
"No, sir," the NSA said, sighing. "It just, sorry, pisses me
off."
"Well, I suspect that this one operation is going to get
stopped," the secretary of defense said, smiling. "And stopped
hard."
* * *
"What are we going to do with Endar?" Adams
asked.
The question of what to do with three bodies was the current
topic of discussion. Two of them were easy. There are a million
ways to get rid of a body, some of which even worked if you
didn't want it discovered. However, all of them were a bit cold
for one of your own troops. And repatriating the body was out of
the question.
"We're going to take a little side trip," Mike said. "There are
some nice beaches down on the Adriatic coast and I think the
girls are due for a break."
"We're just going to cart a body around for the next few
days?" Adams asked, aghast.
"Look," Mike said. "We're carrying seven girls who look as
if they're intended for immoral purposes, over sixty weapons,
body armor, night vision goggles, entry tools, bugging tools,
hacking tools and at least six remaining kilos of explosive.
What's a couple of bodies to add to that?"
"Smell?" Adams asked.
"Get some dry ice."
* * *
Yarok scanned through the computer records, looking for he
knew not what.
He'd told Dejti that the group was American special
operations, but he still wasn't sure. The methods were the same,
if he had to guess he'd say SEAL by the entry patterns and the way
the groups moved based on the few remaining eye-witnesses. But
there was no reason he could find that an American special
operations unit would attack the Albanians. Quite the opposite,
in fact, given some of the videos in Dejti's hands.
He'd nosed around Chisinau, a bastard city in his opinion,
and some of Yuri's associates had mentioned a group of
Americans nosing around. They supposedly had Georgian girls
they were taking to a "special auction" in
Montenegro
. The also had more muscle than was
normal, at least fifteen or twenty Georgians.
The database he was looking at was from Interpol, a listing
of potential security threats in and around the EU zone. The
problem was, there were so many he wasn't sure what he was
looking for. The group might not have even been Georgian, but
he was concentrating there. But between the Ossetian separatist
movements and the Chechnyans...
He stopped in his perusal and backed up a page. There was a
note in the database about a new Georgian militia with American
training. A mountain infantry group called the Keldara.
"An American using the name of Michael Jenkins has begun
to form a new militia in the Georgian mountains. Said militia has
engaged with Chechnyan terrorist groups twice. Equipped with
light small arms, the group has undergone training with five or
more Western special operations trainers. Results of training
unknown."
There was a picture of "Jenkins" and he matched the
description of the American in Chisinau. Of course, so did half
the men in the world. But Yarok copied it off the database and
mailed it to his men in Timisoara
to show to the witnesses from the club.
He briefly considered simply turning the information over to
the Romanian authorities. They'd put the word out through
Interpol and that would certainly inconvenience this "Jenkins"
character. But it wouldn't fulfill his mission, which was to put
the man in an unmarked grave.
However, Interpol also kept a database of people using
hotels. It was slow to update, but it might give him an idea where
Jenkins was going...
* * *
The girls liked the hotel.
The Hotel Caesaria was on the Adriatic coast of Montenegro
, a narrow strip of land that included the
cities of Kotor and Perast. The town of
Zalenika
, which was where the hotel was located, could barely
count as a town, much less a city. There was a straggle of old
houses, a small market and a warf to support the primary local
industry: small boat fishing. The majority of the boats looked as
if they'd been constructed in the time of the Argonauts. They
were open "caiques", lightly built wooden dories originally
designed for one or two men to row them or to use small sails.
Their only concession to the 21st century was the
addition of small diesel motors. The fishermen would generally
leave in the afternoon, go out in to the reefs that choked the area,
lay down gill nets with gourd floats then pick them up the next
morning, starting usually at dawn.
Zalenika was near the opening of a large bay that serviced
the boat traffic of both Kotor and Parest. There wasn't much for
either, local trade was highly limited and there wasn't even a
regular ferry service to Dubrovnik, the
nearest major city, much less to Italy which was just across the Adriatic
. Zalenika was the definition of "backwater." The
hotel was just down the road from the main "town", near the very
tip of the cape that protected the bay.
There were a few beaches but mostly the coastline was too
rocky for good swimming. There was, however, enough room
for some sunbathing and a small beach by the hotel. Mike had
explained to the girls that, as part of their cover, it was important
that they looked as if they were just on a trip and getting a little
sun. After some pro-forma protests, most of the Keldara had
suited up and headed for the beach along with the three
"liberated" hookers.
Which left Mike out in a small Ladia, looking for a boat.
Two, actually.
Zalenika mostly fronted on its excuse for a warf. The small
bay that the city faced was curved in a semi-circle with ancient
jetties protecting it from northerly gales. The warf itself was a
seawall that looked as if the original stonework was Roman with
rickety wooden piers jutting out from it. It was backed by a
narrow street made of flagstones patched with everything from
bricks to concrete to sand. There were a couple of sailboats
anchored in the middle of the bay and a few ancient speedboats
tied up at the piers. Nets were hung up along the seawall to dry
but no fishermen were around when Mike parked his car,
removed the distributor to hopefully prevent its theft, and began
looking for a bar.
The first storefront was a general store. Just checking
around, Mike went inside.
There was a woman who looked to be a hundred, and was
probably forty, sitting behind the counter watching some show in
Serbian. It mostly involved women crying, which was about par
for this region. The shelves were filled with some of the worst
snack foods Mike had ever seen, and he'd been in plenty of third
world stores. For that matter, most of them looked as if their
sell-by date was before his birthday and they were covered in
dust. He peeked in the two refrigerators and backed away hastily.
The contents were mostly local erzatz Coke knock-offs. He'd had
one of those during his previous trip through the area and
regretted it for days.
As he went out he had to shake his head. There was a post-
card rack celebrating the wonders of visiting scenic Zalenika.
Most of the post-cards were faded to the point of illegibility. He
wondered who ever figured this place for a major tourist
destination.
The second store was a fish market. From the smell, he was
more than willing to pass right by.
The third, however, was what he was looking for. The small
restaurant and bar - the distinction was small in places like this
– had a few rickety tables out front and a big sign in
Serbian that had seen better days. Under it another weathered sign
proclaimed that he had found "The Head of the Albanian."
His kind of place.
Mike sat down at one of the tables, which rocked
ferociously on the flagstones of the street, and wondered if he'd
get any service.
After staring out at the not-particularly-scenic scene in front
of him for about a half an hour, and noting the lack of boat
traffic, a man came out from the back wiping his hands on a
rather dirty cloth.
"You want drink?" the man said in passable English.
"Wine," Mike replied. "In the bottle."
"Carafe," the man said, slapping the back of his right hand
into his left palm in the local signal for "all gone."
"Carafe, then," Mike sighed. The alcohol would probably fix
whatever was growing in the carafe. "Some bread and fish. As
long as it's not from the place next door."
"No problem," the man said, grinning a gap-toothed smile.
"Is fresh."
"Fresh last week, probably," Mike said.
"Today," the man replied. "Fishermen come here. I buy their
fish. You want prawns?"
"Steamed, if you can," Mike said, nodding.
The prawns, local shrimp and about half the size of a small
lobster, were actually pretty good. They'd be better with drawn
butter, but that had never caught on in the Adriatic region. Hell,
in the Mediterranean, for that matter.
The wine, on the other hand, was paint thinner. Mike ordered tea,
hot, which wasn't exactly awful, and sipped at that.
It was about three PM when the fishermen started to show
up. Mostly they headed for their boats and started to load the
dried nets into large baskets then stowed them in the covered
forecastles. However, a few stopped into the tavern for a belt
before heading out.
When most of the boats were gone, one of the men who was
clearly a fisherman remained, morosely sipping at the paint
thinner wine.
"No boat?" Mike asked in Russian.
"Is in yard," the man replied in something that was half
Serbian, half Russian. Both were Slavic root languages and
hadn't actually drifted that much. They were about as similar as
two types of German. "You fish?"
"I want boat," Mike replied. "Two. One to buy, one to rent.
Where's yard?"
"Down around corner," the man said, pointing to the south
east. "I show you?"
"And get a cut?" Mike asked, smiling.
"Is good day not to fish," the man said. "Especially if I get
some money anyway."
* * *
On the east side of the town was another small bay Mike
hadn't suspected was there. There weren't any piers but there was
a narrow strip of sand and rocks where a small boatyard existed.
There were about three caiques in various stages of
completion, two more drawn up and being worked on,
supposedly, and a few small speedboats. Most of the latter were
clearly the worst for wear but two were in decent condition at
first glance and one even had an outboard motor mounted.
"This is Drulovic," the fisherman said, walking up to a man
who was bent over a torn apart diesel. "Drulovic, this is man who
wants boats."
"I need one of those," Mike said, pointing to the caiques
drawn up on the shore. "To buy. And a speedboat to use for a day
or so. Both have to work."
"Those I'm making for people," Drulovic said, wiping his
hands on a cloth. "One of the others, it was Vasa's. He's gone.
Never paid me. It needs work."
"Two days," Mike said. "That's when I need it. How much?"
"Two thousand euros," Drulovic said, shrugging.
"Three hundred," Mike said, automatically.
"You want it working in two days, you give me two
thousand euros," Drulovic said, grinning. "And you give me
another three thousand as deposit on other boat. What you going
to do with it?"
"Bury somebody," Mike snapped. "Five hundred for the
caique; it only has to work for a couple of hours. And a thousand
deposit."
"A thousand for the caique," Dulovic said, thoughtfully. "A
thousand deposit and a hundred to use it."
"Done," Mike replied, dipping in his pocket and pulling out
a wad of cash. "Half now, half when I pick it up."
"You carry a lot of money around," Dulovic mused as he
counted out half the money.
"Very few people are stupid enough to try to steal from me,"
Mike replied, handing over the wad of cash. "Otherwise I'll need
to buy another boat."
Chapter Twenty
"Okay, you are officially nuts," Adams said as Mike pulled the caique up on the rocks strewn
shore of the cove.
Finding the right place for the ceremony had turned out to
be the toughest job; coves along the Adriatic that were landable at all tended to have villas. As did this
one, the difference being that the owners weren't home.
Most of the Keldara were gathered on the shore. Endar had
been loaded on a bier made of four different woods while the
two slavers still rested in the plastic bags that, along with liberal
addition of ice, had kept the smell down for the last week.
"First the wood," Mike said. "You got the kerosene?"
"Of course I have the kerosene," Adams snapped. "And this is going to be visible for miles!"
"By the time anybody gets to the boat, they're going to be
toast," Mike replied. "Everybody checked out."
"I even paid the bill."
"Sawn."
"Yes, Kildar," the Keldara team leader said, stepping
forward.
"The wood is to be loaded by Tenghiz and Padrec," Mike
said, stepping back. "Then the bodies by Slavic and his team. His
weapons are to be laid by Rusudani. You will take the position
of Priest of the All Father and sing him to sea."
"Yes, Kildar," Sawn said, nodding.
"Before we begin, I will explain," Mike said, stepping onto
the moonlit beach. All lights had been left behind in the vans
along with a small security detachment composed mostly of the
trainers. "The translation of the song of the wanderers shows that
your tribe came, long ago, from among the ranks of sea-faring
warriors. It was their tradition to send their great warriors who
had died in battle to sea. They would shove a specially made boat
into the sea and set it afire. We're going to drive this one out to
sea and then set it on fire with Beslan, his weapons and his dead
foes. I cannot bring Beslan back to the valley. This is the best
choice I can think of."
"We understand, Kildar," Sawn replied, nodding. "It is said
that even in the days of the Tsar a few of the dead each year,
especially the Family seniors, would be burned on the pyre. This
is a rite we accept. Thank you."
"Like I said, best I can do," Mike answered, shrugging. "Lets
get started."
Sawn wasn't the best singer among the Keldara, but he was
pretty good. And he'd heard the words of the funeral rite, the
Keldara funeral rite, enough times to be able to repeat them.
Mike wasn't sure what language they were in, it certainly wasn't
Georgian and he suspected it wasn't Celtic like the song of the
wanderers. The latter was sung each spring by the best voice in
the tribe. At the last ceremony McKenzie, the former SAS NCO,
had been able to partially translate it as an epic about a wandering
group of fighters that had come from the far north and been
captured and enslaved then forced to defend an inhospitable
fortress on the edges of the empire. The clues in the song were
clear to Mike, who had wondered about some of the oddities of
the Keldara and the caravanserai.
The original Keldara had been a group of Norse, and
apparently Scot, warriors that had made their way down through
the Mediterranean until they encountered the
Byzantine Empire. Since they were clearly related to
the guards of the Byzantine Emperors, the Varangian guard, they
were grouped with a small team of actual Varangians and sent to
guard the caravanserai, which at the time was a lucrative income
generator on the Silk Road.
Since that time, with influxes of succeeding waves of
invaders, their fortunes had fallen even further, leaving them as
mere farmers in a lost mountain valley. But the warrior core
remained and had been brought out by the training of the
American and British soldiers Mike had brought in.
Now, the circle closed. The latest Keldara dead, like their
forebearers of old, would be sent out to sea on a wooden boat
with the bodies of his foes at his feet and his weapons piled at his
head.
It was a hell of a lot better than being dumped in an
unmarked grave. And since Mike intended to take the boat to
damned near the horizon before lighting it off, there was damned
little chance anyone would notice. Or, given the area, care.
Of course, they'd pulled the ammo. They were going to need
it.
Chapter Twenty-One
The villa was actually southwest of Rozaje, right up in the
mountains near the Albanian border. The road from Rozaje,
according to the map and satellite photos, stopped not far beyond
the villa, but a collection of trails was evident as well, some of
them passable to all-terrain vehicles. It was likely that the villa
was on a smuggling route from
Serbia into Albania
. The same routes had supplied the KLA
during the war against the Serbians.
Mike had expected that getting into the area would be harder
than normal. The region was under the sporadic control of the
Kosovo Force and Mike had expected more efficient checks than
had been characteristic up to this point. The first check, the
"border" crossing from the Serbian controlled area had really had
him worried. The troops were French and thus, he'd assumed,
unbribable.
However, while there were French troops in the area, the
actual border crossing had been under the control of Serbians.
Mike had spoken to them in Russian and put in the usual tip. The
Serbs had looked in the vans, seen that the cargo was mostly
women, and waved them through.
From there the trip had been smooth. There were two
internal checkpoints that had caught them but at the first the same
tip had worked and at the second Katya and Nikki had sealed the
deal. Mike was still unsure about bargaining his way through on
the backs of the girls, but if it worked he wasn't going to knock
it.
Montenegro
was an anomaly. Depending upon who
you asked, it was either a province of Serbia,
according to Serbia,
an independent state, according to most of the residents or
something in between, according to most of the rest of the world
and certainly the US
government. In 1992, in the wake of the
Dayton Accords, the then legislature and president had agreed to
not separate from Serbia , as Croatia
and Bosnia
had done. The decision was so
controversial that even the US
government didn't recognize it.
Furthermore, the Serbians were unsure how to deal with it since
Montenegro
had it's own freely elected government
and, notably, it's own burgeoning army. So for the time being,
nobody rocked the boat. Technically, it was a province, but in
reality it was an independent state.
The name "Montenegro" translated as " Black
Mountain" and in keeping with
the name Montenegro
, whether it was a province or a country,
was definitely mountainous. The mountains were alpine in their
heights, not even up to Georgian standards, but they were pretty
serious hills. The country stretched from the plains of, definitely,
Serbia to the Adriatic and the very limited flatland was
either cultivated or covered by cities.
Their objective was in keeping with the terrain and,
therefore, wasn't a pretty sight from the perspective of assault.
"Right on the hilltop," he noted, looking through the
binoculars and taking pictures.
"The outer perimeter security is KFOR," Adams
noted. "Fijians."
"We're going to have to figure something out about them,"
Mike said. "We don't want to go around killing KFOR troops."
"Tasers?" Adams asked.
"Maybe."
The high hill had wall terraced into its sides as well. Anyone
approaching was going to be in view. And he'd gotten a count on
at least six guards inside the compound. That meant, at a guess,
something on the order of twenty total in three shifts. They'd
have to lay this one out carefully. A frontal assault had all the
makings of a disaster.
"We'll leave a couple of the Keldara up here to get the guard
schedule," Mike said, sliding back down the ridge overlooking
the compound. "Two days to prep. Let's get working on a plan."
* * *
"Guards change three times per day," Vanner said, pointing
to the sand table of the compound that was set up in the small
conference room the hotel hosted. If the owners had questions
about why a group of slave traders wanted a conference room, a
hefty tip had answered them. "Girls normally arrive during the
day and not later than midnight, according to our sources." By
which he meant the now deceased Dejti.
"This is going to be hairy," Vanner continued, looking at his
console. "We don't even have a good internal schematic. What if
they dump their records when we hit? I mean, even if they've
made backup DVDs, you throw those in a microwave and set it
on high and they're toast."
"I think we might be overmuscling this one," Mike said,
looking at the window design again. Over the years, Western
special operations and their intelligence support units had
developed an encyclopedic database of windows and doors
throughout the world. Even older, by definition custom-made,
windows such as those on the villa fit basic parameters which
were in the database. And Vanner just happened to have acquired
a copy.
Mike sometimes had to wonder if Vanner was his actual
control.
"Define," Adams said, looking up
from the rough floor plan that had been worked out from
external observation. The outer rooms were sketched in, lightly,
with vast areas of gray area. They knew there was a basement,
there was a visible door, but they had no idea of the lay-out.
"Well, overmuscling is when you're using too much force
for a mission," Vanner said, looking up from his computer with a
smile.
"Wise ass," the chief growled."So what are you thinking?"
"I'm thinking we're going to need Lasko and Praz," Mike
replied, musingly. "And some special equipment."
"Make up a list," Vanner said, sighing.
"And we need more interior data," Mike said, rubbing his
chin in thought. "We can try to find one of the Albanians that
work there and bribe him for a layout..."
"They're all from one clan," Vanner said, flipping through a
chart of the known guards. "At least it looks that way."
"Which would be risky," Mike continued. "We can try to
insert a girl into the place, such as Katya..."
"I was wondering why you'd been carting her around," Adams said. "Besides for looks."
"Might I remind everyone that this is a snuff house?" Vanner
pointed out. "Whoever goes in there probably isn't going to come
out!"
"It's Katya," Mike said, offhand, then smiled. "Just joking."
"Thank God," Vanner said, breathing out.
"Besides," Mike continued, still looking at the windows,
"what I really meant was that I'd be damned surprised if Katya got
snuffed. Even if we weren't banking on her getting intel out to
us. I mean, think about it: Fat middle-aged European or
American or Japanese rich jackass, poor-little-practically-
virginal-crying-thing..."
"And you've been teaching Katya hand-to-hand, haven't
you?" Adams said, nodding. "You
think...?"
"No," Mike replied. "Because I don't think she could get the
intel out. Kill her perp, sure. If it was an assassination mission I'd
send her in a heartbeat, pardon the pun. But for this, I don't think
she's right."
"So...what?" Adams said, throwing
up his hands.
"Pleased to meet you..." Mike whispered, finally looking up,
"won't you guess my name?"
* * *
"The group that hit the Club Dracul is called the Keldara,"
Yarok said, bringing up the first slide. "They are a Georgian
militia group, using the women smuggling routes and a cover of
being sex smugglers. There are about fifteen to twenty shooters
in the group as well as some women from their tribe. I'm not sure
of the function of the women. In addition, they've picked up one
or more women from normal sources on the way."
"Where are they now?" Boris Dejti asked, angrily. "We will
rape their women before their eyes then gouge them out."
Boris Dejti was the senior Dejti clan member in charge of
all the scattered "operations" in the Balkans. There were
members of the clan more senior than he, but they were all semi-
retired in the back-country of
Albania
. However, Boris realized he was going to
have to have a talk with the Senior Fathers about the events of
Club Dracul. And he wanted to be able to give them a timeline
on how long it was going to take to avenge the attack.
"You will be lucky to kill them at all," Yarok said.
"Remember what they did to the Club. It's defenses were
formidable but they took it down with, at most, one casualty. I
think you had better leave them to me. As to where they are, they
were supposed to be going to
Montenegro
. They certainly haven't used a major hotel
there, but that might have been disinformation. The last report I
had on their movements was in
Serbia
. They may be heading for Kosovo."
"Then they are heading into the lion's den," Boris replied,
happily. "We will find them and kill them. There are many
fighters available in Kosovo and Montenegro
."
"You're certainly permitted to try," Yarok said with a sigh.
"But don't say I didn't warn you. I'd recommend increasing
security at facilities in the south. They have taken at least three
people and probably tortured them for information. They are
looking for something. When we figure out what, we'll know
where they are going..."
* * *
Mike loved the night. Of course, that was fundamental to his
one great gift, but he still loved it.
The night had never held any terrors for him, even as a child.
He remembered walking through darkened woods when he was
no more than eight and simply being enthralled by the difference
between the night and day. At night, every sound was clearer and
sharper, all the senses alive to the slightest hint of wrongness.
Like the waves of smell wafting off the Fijian sentry.
There was a thirty meter open area to cross to the first
terrace and the sentry was on a regular beat. One hundred paces
south, turn, one hundred paces north. On the other hand, he
wasn't Teutonic in his pace. Quite often he'd simply stop and lean
against the wall. If that happened while Mike was crossing, it
would be a bitch.
The choices were simple, fast or slow. If Mike waited until
he was near the end of his beat and then darted across, he could
be up on the second terrace before the guy reached the end. On
the other hand, if he stopped and turned Mike's movement was
sure to give him away.
However, if Mike went slow there was a good chance he'd
be caught in the open area by the sentry. He was good enough
that the sentry might simply walk past. Might.
There was a small niche in the wall of the terrace where
some stones had fallen and lay scattered in the grass. As a hiding
place it would normally be discounted, but between Mike's
ghillie suit and luck, he could probably hole up there to let the
sentry pass.
As the sentry continued on his southward journey, Mike
opted for a middle ground. He lifted himself up on fingers and
toes, a leopard stance, and slithered out onto the close-cropped
grass.
There was a half-moon tonight, but the clouds were fairly
solid. The mottled light actually made seeing harder. If they
broke up he might have problems. For now, though, the clouds
were still solid. There was also a slight breeze from the
southwest, blowing any sound he might make, slight at best,
away from the sentry.
Mike kept his head down, looking mostly at the grass with
occasional glances at the sentry, and envisioned himself as
darkness and silence. He wasn't sure if the mental state was really
helpful or not, it seemed like mumbo-jumbo to him. But he'd
used it most of his career and even if it was only self-hypnosis he
wasn't going to change things now.
He made it to the niche and paused as the sentry turned to
head back. All the cover he had was the broken wall and his
ghillie suit. He had a silenced .45 if it came down to cases, but he
really didn't want to kill this Fijian guy. For one thing, he didn't
deserve it. All he was was a poor guy far from home told to
guard a facility. There was a 99.999 to infinity percent chance
that the guy had no idea what was going on in the villa. But even
if he did, Mike would eventually have to fess up to having offed
him. Which would drop him in the clacky. Killing Albanian
pimps was one thing, killing a soldier on a UN sponsored peace-
enforcement mission was another. Words would be had. And
then there was the fact that it would probably blow the mission.
The sentry made it to within five meters of Mike's spot and
stopped, turning to look out at the darkness and stretching his
back. He propped his weapon on the wall, about three feet from
Mike's niche, leaned back against it and fumbled in his pocket for
a cigarette and light.
Mike closed his eyes as the lighter flared and the smell of
cheap, strong, tobacco wafted over him and tried not to sigh.
Lord only knew how long the guy was going to rest there. Mike
was just settling in to wait when he heard a hail from the north
and cringed; the sergeant of the guard was wandering around.
He'd only done that one other night. Why tonight?!
Mike didn't speak a word of Fijian, but he'd spent enough
time around grunts and doing guard duty himself to fill in the
blanks.
"What a night, huh?"
"Just like last night. Nothing to fucking do but look at the
woods. Why the fuck are we here?"
"Because we're too poor to be sitting on the beach in Fiji
."
"I should have gone to work for my cousin Emil at the dive
shop."
"I didn't know your cousin Emil had a dive shop."
"Sure, down in Toraborabawankununka. You know it."
"Sure, Toraborabawankununka Dive and Sport. Hey, I used to
go there when I was on vacation..."
Mike suddenly realized he was muttering the lines of
dialogue and stopped as the sergeant said something he translated
as "Well, I've got to get back and check my paperwork..."
...and wandered back to the north.
He was definitely getting too old, and too introspective, for
this work.
With the sergeant headed north, the guard headed south.
Mike waited until they were both separated by at least thirty
meters from his position, stood up, stretched his aching joints
and oozed up onto the wall.
Thirty yards from the woodline to the first terrace. Three
terraces, each between twenty and thirty meters wide. Then the
final wall up onto the balconies. From the terraces, except when
he scrambled to the next higher, he wasn't visible to the sentry
below. And the terraces weren't patrolled. But there were
Albanian guards up on the patios around the villa. This far down,
he wasn't going to be particularly visible to the guards, who did
not use night-vision systems. But as he got closer he'd be more
and more likely to get spotted. From here on out, slow and
cautious movements were the order of the evening. In and back.
The Albanian guard was visible up on the patio. He was
looking out towards the woods, not down at the terraces, as far
as Mike could tell. But movement drew the eye. Mike eased over
the wall onto the first terrace and then oozed, slowly, across the
terrace until he was in the shadow of the second wall. So far, no
alarm.
If the shit totally hit the fan, a Keldara reaction team was in
the woods to cover his withdrawal. Of course, that would blow
the mission, permanently. If that happened they might never find
out what happened to the girl. And then the president would get
all pissy and the senator would go on doing what he, presumably,
did. That wasn't on.
Mike lifted up and checked on the sentry who was
apparently, from the smoke and slight IR signature, taking
another smoke break. Lifting up further he saw that the Albanian
was talking to another guy, their heads turned away from the
view. He slithered up the rocks of the wall then began sliding
across the open area just as the moon broke out of the clouds.
He froze, immediately, not looking up. His face was covered
in camoflage makeup and the ghillie suit had a light mesh mask
in addition. But a face always seemed to be the easiest thing to
pick out. He simply waited on the sward, sweating a little despite
the cool of the night, until the moon went back behind the
clouds. Then he started his sneak again.
Three terraces, each of them bringing him closer to the
Albanian who was hanging out at the top. Within an hour, Mike
was crouched at the base of the wall of the last terrace, smelling
the thick, acrid stench of the Albanian's cigarette. This one was, if
anything, more vile than the Fijian's. Mike had never seen the
point in using tobacco; all it did was blunt the senses and ruin
your night vision. On the other hand, he loved it when enemies
used it.
There were eight guards on duty in the house. Five were on
exterior duty, one on each side with an additional one by the gate
on the east side and two were, apparently, on various internal
points. The eighth acted as something like a sergeant of the
guard, roaming from point to point to make sure the others
stayed awake and alert.
During the day and into the evening there were, in addition,
about five Albanians and a handful of local workers. The locals
were probably ethnic Albanians for that matter.
Getting past the Albanian was going to be harder than
getting past the Fijian. The open area at the bottom was larger
than the one at the top for one thing. And the Albanian didn't
seem to be wandering. He was just hanging out in place with a
full view of the final stretch of ground and of the patio to either
side.
Mike stripped off his night vision goggles and lifted up a
mirror, angling it over the top of the wall. As he'd climbed he had
shifted to the north and he was about twenty meters from where
the Albanian was standing, leaning with his arms on the low
railing or wall that surrounded the patio. It was, apparently,
concrete or similar materials formed in a lacy, open pattern. First
there was the open area of the terrace, then the six foot high wall,
then a slight ledge, then the railing.
Getting over that railing was going to be impossible if the
guard was standing in plain view. Which was why Mike planned
on distracting him.
He reached into his utility pocket and pulled out a small
flashlight. When he flicked it on, nothing appeared to happen, but
that was just if you had the wrong vision.
* * *
"There's the signal," Sawn said, picking up the UV light
from the flash through his night vision goggles and nodding at
Vanner.
"Roll the party," Vanner whispered into the mike.
* * *
"It's nice to finally get to have some fun," Graznya said,
flicking a lighter into life and applying it to the string of
firecrackers.
"I've never actually set fireworks off," Katya replied, holding
up a long tube. "What is this?"
"Roman candle," Listra said, smiling. "We'll save that until
we have their attention..."
* * *
At the first sounds of gunfire, Kreshnik Daci's head snapped
up. It had been a long and tiring night and he was spoiling for
action. When he'd been sent out to help the far flung reaches of
the gang run by his family clan, he'd expected much more
fighting and more of a view of the world. Thus far, he'd beat up a
few uppity bitches in Lunari, guarded a group of girls in transit in
Serbia, loaded some
on a boat to Italy
and ended up guarding this place. None of
it was contributing to his real dream, which was to get a student
visa to America
.
Short of that, he wanted to shoot someone.
So he actually hoped someone was attacking the villa.
Anyone who did so, though, had to be insane. They'd have to
assault up the slope in full view of the guards who had more than
just the Czech Skorpion he was toting. They'd get slaughtered if
they tried. Which was all right by him.
However, the gunfire was not close. It was on a hill about
five hundred meters away to the southeast. He wandered in that
direction, just as a ball of fire drifted up and then swore. It wasn't
gunfire at all, just some kids playing with fireworks. Okay, so
from the tracers, they were also shooting off a gun, but they
weren't shooting at the villa.
"Kreshnik!" Imer called over the radio. "What is
happening?"
"Some fireworks," Daci replied, walking down to the
southeast corner of the patio. "Some kids probably. Somebody
shooting off an AK, too. But it's not coming this way."
"Oooo," Gustini Huksa wooed as a bottle rocket ascended
and then erupted in a shower of sparks. The southern guard had
drifted over to the corner and now lit up another cigarette. The
flash bastard smoked American Marlboros. Gustini had been
assigned to Herzjac, the main town that supplied IFOR with it's
girls. There he'd struck up a deal with one of the UN vendors:
two cartons of Marlboros for one hour with a girl. It was a
win/win situation for the two since the vendor could "loss" the
Marlboros and Gustini didn't even have to do that much
paperwork with the girls. When he left he turned the source over
to another guard for a share of the action. He still got a couple of
cartons of Marlboros every week. "Nice. I wish I was out there
rather than stuck in this rathole."
"Sooner or later we'll get to go somewhere else," Kreshnik
opined with no real hope. He had been told that assignment to
this villa was a sign of the trust and respect that the clan had for
him. So far, it seemed like a dead-end.
The fireworks didn't last long and as the last faded, Imer
appeared.
"Nice, you're both watching the fireworks instead of your
posts," the older man snapped. "Get back in place and make sure
no one has gotten past you."
"How could they?" Gustini argued, waving at the hilltop. "It
would take a ghost to get up the hill without us seeing him!"
Chapter Twenty-Two
Mike stepped through the door and closed it softly on oiled
hinges. The alarm had been tricky but the lock was totally vanilla.
The room he was in was a rather pleasant dining area with
the look of a breakfast room. The floor was hardwood with
thrown carpets that had the feel, from their depth and softness, of
being costly. Clearly no expense had been spared in hosting the
exclusive clientele. He had a hard time putting that together with
the nature of the establishment, but he supposed that after a hard
night torturing the whores the customers were probably ready for
a good breakfast before they began their day.
It wasn't, however, useful from his point of view. The single
interior door didn't show any light so, after carefully oiling the
hinges and checking for alarms, he opened it soundlessly.
The hallway beyond was, indeed, unlit. It was hardwood
again, and he stepped carefully but still elicited a squeak. Moving
down the edge limited the noise. To the right, near the end, there
was a door with light coming from it and the hallway intersected
a lit corridor there.
He slid up his vision system and slid silently down the
hallway to the lit doorway. Squatting down and keeping an ear
out for approaching guards he slid a fiber-optic camera under the
door. Paydirt.
The interior was an office and security room. One of the
guards was napping in front of a computer console that was
playing back either a scene from in the building or a similar rape
video. There were three computers in the room, including the one
the guard was napping in front of, along with file cases and paper
scattered over a desk.
Mike snapped a couple of pics of the room then slid the
camera out. Stepping to the corner he slid the camera out at
ground level and looked around. There was one more guard, as
well as the rover, to find. Nobody in the cross corridor but there
was another lit room. The far end opened out into a large room.
From the exterior map that had been developed that would be the
main entrance. The doors along that hallway were more or less
mapped from exterior observation. The one with the lit doorway
was the guard room, then there were two parlors for "meet and
greet." The last was always curtained, so it's purpose was
unknown. There were two external rooms along the hallway, also
purpose unknown. The end of this corridor would terminate in
the ground floor kitchen. Somewhere, there were going to be
stairs to the upper floors and to the basement.
Mike slid back down the unlit corridor, sliding the camera
under the unlit doorways. The exterior "gray" rooms were
bedrooms. From the accoutrements, they were designed as low-
impact bondage rooms. The beds had shackles on them but there
was no sign of suspension gear and cleaning them up would be a
pain.
The inner rooms, however, were apparently for rougher play.
One had a bed in it, but it was covered only with a matress cover
and stains on the side indicated that blood had been spilled. The
other was a straight torture room. Getting the camera in that
room was tough since the door was solid to the ground. But
there was a rubber lintle and Mike slid it in.
No girls, though. And the rooms still didn't have the look of
serious killing rooms.
Mike paused as he heard a door open and close followed by
footsteps coming down the lit corridor.
He opened the door to the room adjacent to the office and
slid over to the partitioning wall. Slipping out a contact mike, he
placed it on the wall and slid in an earbud.
The door to the room opened and there was a barked
exclamation followed by the sound of a chair hitting the floor
along with a body. The following conversation was in Albanian,
which Mike couldn't even begin to make out. But the chewing
out was clear enough. The rest, as things settled down, was
unclear. Finally, it finished and the supervisor left the room.
Mike waited until the footsteps had died down and the guard
in the room started snoring. Then he stepped back out into the
corridor.
Mike continued down the corridor to the door at the end and
checked that. Kitchen. Okay, that was an exterior, but they hadn't
been able to get a full view. There didn't appear to be anyone in it
at the moment. He oiled the hinges and opened the door
carefully.
The room was large and well scrubbed with a large range,
industrial refrigerator and a center prep island. Stepping into the
room he could see five doors besides the one to the exterior. One
of them, from the look, was a walk in fridge or freezer. He'd
check that last. One checked out as a large pantry, a second
opened onto another interior corridor, the third opened onto a
small room that appeared to be another office, the fourth,
though, led to stairs both up and down. Basement entry and a way
to the top floor.
He stepped over to the freezer and took a look inside then
backed away hastily. There were a couple of large sides of meat
towards the back but two bodies of young women dangled from
hooks towards the front. Both had been savagely tortured from
the marks. One had a cut throat and the other looked as if she had
been strangled.
Mike slid out a low-light camera and took pics of both girls
then quietly closed the door. Neither was the target and getting
pissed about the find would simply degrade his performance. He
put the sight aside and checked the door to the stairs.
The stairs down were simple wood, those going up were
covered in carpet. He chose up first, stepping along the side to
reduce squeaks.
The landing at the top had another door, this one bolted on
the inside. He quietly slipped the fiber optic camera under the
door.
The hallway was brightly lit and it took his eyes a moment to
adjust. When they did, the first thing he noticed was a guard
sitting in a chair and napping at the far end of the to the left. That
would be to the north.
He stepped back down the stairs, going all the way to the
bottom floor. There was another bolted door and he checked
under it.
The basement was a pure torture dungeon. There were a
couple of cages along one side, various pieces of furniture
including a St. Andrew's Cross and a saddle as well as suspension
devices. There were also a couple of metal tables and a bed with
rubber sheets on it. The tables had been cleaned, but from the
looks of the floor bad things had happened.
He slipped into the room and looked around carefully. He
had to step up on one of the tables to find what he was looking
for, but he finally found the first one hidden in the suspension
rig: the room was wired for full audio and video. He doubted the
monitors were live at the moment, but it would be a bad thing if
they were.
Okay, the layout was solid. Time to egress.
He moved quietly back up the stairs to the kitchen then
down the hallway to the breakfast room. He half-wished he'd
brought some poison along. Serve the bastards right. He'd done
as much, or worse, to men in the past. The recent past come to
think of it. But that was a target and the purpose was obtaining
information. Not just to get his rocks off.
The worst part was that he knew that the whole set-up held
an attraction for him. Inside he was, face it, the sort of person
who patronized this establishment. He had thought more than
once about not only rape but torturing a woman just to get his
kicks. Killing her even. Brutally and with the greatest possible
fear and pain inflicted.
That didn't mean he did it. He had the...discipline to control
that particular demon. Admittedly, he channeled it into things
that were damned near as horrible. But this was...vile.
And he was going to end it.
* * *
"Any trouble getting through customs?" Mike asked.
"Not really," Praz said, shrugging. The retired member of the
Army Marksmanship Training Unit was the Keldara sniper
instructor. Short and muscular, he had come in second twice in a
row on the "long shot" at Camp
Perry
, being beaten out by the same Marine sniper. Mike
had his eye on the Marine as soon as he quit the Corps. "They
thought we were crazy, but they didn't give us any hassle."
"What is the mission?" Lasko asked, setting the long cases
down on the bed. The former hunter was one of the oldest
Keldara in the force, but he'd hardened like teak. Thin and wiry,
he looked like nothing so much as the mountain goats he
normally hunted. The goats were wary and had very keen vision;
in general the only shot even a very good hunter got was at over
five hundred meters. Lasko was a firm believer in coming back
with as many goats as expended cartridges and he usually did.
"Right up your alley, Las," Mike said, his face hard.
"Choosers of the slain."
* * *
"Sniper teams in position," Praz said over the radio.
"Dart team One in position," Sawn whispered. "All targets
present."
"Dart two in position," Valdam whispered. "Ready."
"Bravo entry, ready," Adams said.
"Alpha entry..." Mike whispered back, looking around,
"ready. Initiate."
* * *
Sawn peeped through the scope and calculated the wind,
again. The darts were very low velocity and tended to drift with
the slightest wind. And the range was long for the shot. He
wished that it was Praz or Lasko doing the shooting, but he
would have to do.
There were four of the Fijian guards gathered by the lower
gate to the villa. One was the sergeant which was what they had
been waiting for.
Sawn took a deep breath and then paused and looked at
Parak.
"Two right," Sawn said, wiggling the dart held between the
fingers of his left hand.
"Got it," Parak replied laconically. The team sniper was far
more sure of his shots.
"If I miss..." Sawn said.
"Follow over," Parak said. "Copy. Same for you."
"You won't miss," Sawn said, taking a breath and letting it
out.
He took his first shot, followed quickly by Parak's first. The
sergeant stopped gesticulating and reached for the dart that had
sprung up on his chest, looking at it in a puzzled manner.
By the time he'd started toppling Sawn had rotated the bolt
of the air-gun and slid in the next dart. He hadn't even lined up
his next shot, however, before Parak fired. Sawn took his time,
though, making sure of his target and trigger control before
firing. That dart sunk in as well and the Fijian guards on the gate
were all down.
"Target one down," Sawn whispered, sliding back through
the concealing underbrush.
"Target two down."
"Snipers."
* * *
Praz looked through the scope and calculated the shot one
more time. The east target was easy, the south target harder. And
there was no telling when the rover would show up.
He took a slight breath, waited for his heart to pump to
diastolic and then gently squeezed the trigger of the customized
sniper rifle.
"South target down," Oleg said. "Not moving."
Praz had felt the round was right and was already tracking to
the second target. The question was whether he would hear the
first fall and, sure enough, he was moving, reaching for a radio.
Praz led him a touch and fired.
"Miss," Oleg said as the man paused and looked around
wildly, crouching behind the ornamental railing. He had his radio
up, now, and was talking into it excitedly.
Praz, rotated the bolt one more time and lined up the target's
head. At this range it was not exactly an easy shot, but it was the
only portion in view. Wait, wait, squeeze.
"Target," Oleg said. "He's all over the patio."
"I can see that," Praz said, sliding back and wiping at the
sweat on his forehead. "Keep looking for targets."
* * *
"Wake up you idiot!" Imer Emini said, running into the
computer room. "Kreznik said we were under attack!"
"I heard," Oltion Dzaferi said, sitting up and wiping his eyes.
"Where are they?"
"That is what all this is there to tell us!" Imer snarled,
waving at the computers. "Turn on the monitors! Kreznik,
report!" Imer paused and looked at the radio, shaking it for a
moment in frustration. "Gustini? Pejerin? Victor? Anyone?"
"Shkumbin, here," the upstairs guard replied. "What is
happening?"
"I don't know," Imer replied, breathing hard. "Go to one of
the girls' windows and look out. See if you can see anything.
Oltion, get those black-asses on the phone and ask them what is
happening!"
"I go," Shkumbin said, grouchily.
"Stay on the radio," Imer continued. "Keep talking. Oltion?"
"There is no reply from the blackasses," the technician said,
shrugging. "I need to turn on the lights to see with the monitors."
"Not yet," Imer said, cautiously. "Skumbin?"
"I'm in the girl's room," Shkumbin replied. "I see nothing out
the..."
* * *
"Target, upper window three," Vladim said, quietly.
"Got it," Lasko replied, stroking his trigger.
* * *
Imer looked up at a crash from above and then snarled.
"Get on the phone to town! Tell them we're under attack!"
"Phones are out," Oltion said, shaking his head. "And
internet."
"Begin dumping," Imer said, shaking and drawing his pistol.
"I will go buy you time to dump all the data..."
The last thing he consciously recognized was the sound of
the door blowing in.
* * *
"Computer room secure," Mike said, lifting his balaclava.
"Clear. Vanner, get to work."
"On it, boss," the intel specialist said, sitting down at the
first computer and waving Greznya to the second.
"I count eight tangoes down," Adams replied. "Preparing to sweep upper floors."
Mike stepped out into the corridor as more Keldara women
flooded into the room. Keldara were moving from room to room
in a coordinated sweep, searching for additional targets.
"Bravo Six," Adams said. "Sweep
complete. One down tango in an upper room, courtesy of Lasko
at a guess. Six girls."
"Grab 'em and get down here," Mike said. "Vanner?"
"We've got the hard drives," Vanner said, standing up. "What
about the files?"
"Savo! Packs!"
"Ignition system in place," Adams
called. "The place is rigged."
"Five minutes, people," Mike called as the Keldara women
started ripping files out of the drawers and filling the bags the
militiamen held out to them. "Greznya, start the count."
* * *
Yarok looked at the devastated villa and shook his head.
"They took down the Fijian guards with tranquilizer guns,"
he said, sighing. "They clearly did not want to anger KFOR
excessively. Then they, apparently, took down the villa's
defenses, took the girls and probably other information and
torched it, rather expertly, on the way out. There was one Fijian
guard who said that from the time he heard the first shots to
when the vehicles left was no more than five minutes."
"I will kill them all," Boris roared. "This cannot be
permitted!"
"Oh, agreed," Yarok replied, sighing again. "But you'll recall
that I recommended increasing security at all facilities in this
area. There were only the normal eight guards here."
"That should have been enough," Boris snapped. "Especially
with the Fijians. These Americans are wizards!"
"Hardly," Yarok said, musingly. "They took down the outer
guards with snipers. Good ones, too. I have found one sniper
point, I believe, and it was a seven hundred meter shot with a
crosswind. That is a world-class sniper. However, with the outer
guards down, that left only four. What I'm wondering is how they
found the plan to the house."
"What do you mean?"
"To do something like this, this cleanly, you have to know
where you are going," Yarok said, rubbing his lips in thought.
"You need a layout to the house. Otherwise you're running
around trying to find your targets. I would say, from the time that
was given by the remaining guard, that they had to have the
layout to the house. And given the defenses, I don't see how they
could have entered it beforehand. So..."
"You're saying we have a leak?" Boris asked, coldly.
"I'm saying it's a possibility," Yarok admitted.
"I will look into this," the Albanian promised.
"Do," Yarok replied. That will get you off my back while
I take care of the real business. "In the meantime, I'm going
to try to find where they ran to to hide. I doubt that Rozaje is
going to be their last target. It will be interesting to see where
their final destination lies."
Chapter Twenty-Three
Mike leaned back in the beach chair and readjusted his
sunglasses as a really stunning woman wearing barely a g-string
walked by.
"What did we get, Patrick?" he asked. The beaches of the
Adriatic had their good points. At the
moment, he was fixated on two of them.
Getting across the border into Croatia
had been relatively easy. There were
dozens of small border crossings near Vinica and Čitluk
that had lax security. Smuggling was endemic in the area and the
few crossings that had guards were entirely revenue generators.
They had been more than willing to take their usual cut for
smuggling girls.
The coast of Croatia had numerous islands and beaches and was a destination
spot for summer tourists from throughout Eastern
Europe. A quick change of demeanor and the group
were tourists, schoolkids taking in the sun along the
Adriatic. They'd even been able to check into a
decent hotel for once.
And all the Keldara girls had broken down and gotten
swimsuits. For the cover of course. Most of them were far less
daring than the lovely blonde, Czech or Slovak at a guess, that
had just wandered by, but they were still an eyefull.
"They apparently did get full audio and video on their
clients," Vanner said, tightly. "I only...audited it. But it's pretty
rough. The problem being, there are only five DVDs from the
haul. And our girl isn't on any of them."
"That's good I suppose," Mike said.
"Yeah, but they're only recent DVDs," Vanner pointed out.
"The rest were transported out to a town called Lunari."
"Crap," Mike said, picking up his sunscreen and wiping
some on his chest. He'd picked up a hell of a farmer's tan over the
winter and spring.
"But..." Vanner said. "I'm not sure it matters. We got the rest
of their records. They didn't keep electronic records, but the files
were solid. And there's interesting news."
"Don't keep me waiting," Mike said, watching a couple of
the Keldara girls splashing each other. He briefly considered
joining them and then suppressed the idea.
"The thing is, all the girls that went to Rozaje didn't die,"
Vanner said. "We're having a hard time translating all the files
since they're in fucking Albanian. I'm having to scan them in and
OCR them then run them through a translator. You know how
funky that can come out. But we're sure that some girls leave.
Sometimes they had too many there. A client or clients wouldn't
show up, whatever. They'd end up with too many girls from time
to time and they'd ship out the excess."
"Don't tell me Natalya slipped through the cracks," Mike
said, incredulously.
"That's the way it looks," the intel specialist replied,
grinning. "She got transported to Lunari along with a bundle of
DVDs."
"Shit," Mike said, sighing. "What do we have on Lunari?"
"It's not going to be fun," Vanner admitted. "It's the center
for girl running, and drug running and gun running, in Albania
. Totally lawless. It's controlled by about
six different clans or gangs, there's not much distinction. The
government doesn't even try to control it. Land-locked but not far
from the sea. From the intel I've managed to get, not much, it's
also pretty carefully controlled. There are notes about elaborate
security systems. And the gangs are heavily armed. There's some
stuff in the files on it, too, but...getting through all of them is
going to take time. I could use some help on translation."
"Any idea where, exactly, the booty is?" Mike asked.
"Yep," Vanner said. "Natalya, and the DVDs, were sent to a
particular brothel run by the Dejti gang."
"That's a familiar name," Mike mused.
"He was, apparently, one of the guys in tight with the clan,"
Vanner said. "That's going to be an issue. Long term, at least."
"Oh, I don't think so," Mike said, standing up. "I'm going
swimming. Want to come?"
"In a minute," Vanner said, swallowing. "There's something
else. We didn't get the DVDs, but we did get their client list and
payment rendered for services, so to speak."
"And?" Mike asked, pausing.
"I ran a bunch of names through the internet," Vanner said,
shaking his head. "It's not exactly a Who's Who, but there are a
lot of...well rich people at least. And a few that are just powerful.
Jesus, Kildar, this data is political dynamite!"
"I'd figured as much," Mike said, sighing.
"The former French commander of KFOR, for God's sake!"
Vanner said.
"That explains the security," Mike said, dryly. "What about
our friend the senator?"
"Senator Traskel isn't on it," Vanner said, tightly. "Neither is
his son. But...there is someone you've heard of..."
* * *
"Oh...blast," the president said, looking at the message.
"There was just the one word, sir," Pierson replied. "But I
think the meaning is clear."
"Senator Fullbright!?" the Secretary of Defense snarled.
"Impossible! I've known him for...decades!"
"Who knows what evil lurks in the hearts of men," the
National Security Advisor replied. "He was on the junket, too. I
don't see how it changes things."
"Well, it's going to make our jobs harder," the Chief of Staff
pointed out. "I'd be more than happy to see Traskel gone.
Fullbright, on the other hand..."
"There is no 'other hand,'" the president said, definitely.
"None. As with Senator Traskel, I'm going to wait on solid
confirmation. But if we get it, Fullbright will no longer be a
senator. Period."
"The governor's from another party..." the chief of staff
pointed out.
"I don't care," the president snarled. "Not One Damned Bit. I
doubt I can give him the justice that he so richly deserves. But he
will no longer be a senator of the United States
."
* * *
Mike was surprised at the extent to which the Keldara girls
were willing to play a little grab-ass. He'd put it down to the
"Kildar" effect, but they were playing with the militiamen as
well. Hell, even Oksana was out there, playing in the very small
waves. Mike hadn't tried any grab-ass with her, only to find the
girl trying to tackle him along with some of the Keldara girls.
He'd let them dunk him and then swam through their legs, pulling
them under and then pushing them back to the surface; very few
of them were strong swimmers. They'd been amazed and alarmed
at how long he could hold his breath.
The problem with the grab-ass was that it was getting him
horney. And the Keldara girls were off-limits. So, for different
reasons, were the girls they'd "picked up." He still wasn't sure
what to do with them. Transferring them from sexual slavery to
the harem, a different form for all extents and purposes, didn't
seem like a decent use of his time. Something would have to be
done, but that was for another day.
With a certain amount of reluctance he finally climbed out
of the water and wandered back to his beach-chair. Which was
occupied.
"You're..." Mike said and then paused.
"Daria," the girl replied, getting up. She was about nineteen
at a guess, one of the girls they'd recovered from Rozaje. Tall and
statuesque, she had a great set of knockers and an air of naivete
that had to be an act. "Sorry, was I in your chair...Kildar?"
"Call me Mike," Mike said, waving for her to get back in the
chair as he squatted down by it. "How are you doing?"
"The nightmares are less," the girl said, quietly. "We knew
what we were there for; the guards made sure to tell us. And we
could hear some of it. Girls would leave and not come back. I
was sick when I arrived and I wasn't presented."
"Good thing," Mike said. "I'm sure you would have been a
first pick."
"Thank you so much," Daria replied, her face tight. "I
thought the same. The doctor had just given me a clean bill of
health. They told me I was going to be presented to the
next...customer."
"And now you're not," Mike said. "Be happy. Enjoy the
sunshine knowing you're going to get to keep enjoying it."
"Am I?" Daria asked, pointedly.
"Uhmmm, yes," Mike responded. "Right now, I can't afford
to let you leave. You're still, effectively, a prisoner. But you
won't be raped or beaten and when this mission is done I'll drop
you anywhere you care. Back home if that's what you want."
"Home," Daria said, quietly. "I don't know if I recognize the
word. If you're talking about the Ukraine
, there is nothing there for me."
"We'll figure something out," Mike said, picking up his
sunglasses.
"Where do you live?" Daria asked. "In
Georgia
? But you are American."
"I've got reasons to live there," Mike said, shrugging.
"And you have a house there," the girl said, tilting her head
to the side.
"And a harem," Mike replied, shruggging. "I'm sure you've
been talking to the Keldara girls."
"Is that where we will go?" she asked, carefully.
"For a time," Mike said, shrugging again. "Until we figure
out what else to do with you. I've got to figure something out;
the caravanserai's going to fill up with women otherwise and
then it'll be nag, nag, nag all day and night. 'Kildar, when will I
have my turn? Kildar, can I have a new dress? Kildar, am I the
prettiest?'" He grinned at the girl and was surprised to get a grin
in return.
"I can tell you live with women," Daria said. "You have that
look."
"Domesticated, that's me," Mike sighed. "Just a hopeless
love slave to women's desire..."
"And you get nothing?" Daria asked, lightly.
"Oh, I suppose so," Mike said, grinning again. "But I try to
give as good as I get."
"I get nothing," Daria said, shrugging. "I was virgin until..."
"Get a good job in Western
Europe?" Mike asked.
"Yes, but, I knew about the problems with that," Daria said,
frowning. "The thing was, the person who...sold me was my
boyfriend!"
"Ouch," Mike said, shaking his head. "That's cold."
"He said that he knew someone who could get me a job in
Belgium
," Daria continued, looking out at the sea.
"I am trained as secretary, yes? I can read and write in English,
French and German. My boyfriend...well he is not great man. Has
no job but...I like him."
"I had a girlfriend one time. She said that she was a bum
magnet," Mike said, nodding. "She wasn't, by the way, referring
to me. But...there are women who attract those sorts of guys like
flies."
"That is me," Daria continued, her nose thinning in
remembrance. "He is introduce me to another man who said he
had contacts with business in
Belgium
..."
"I'm sure he did," Mike said, dryly.
"We meet...three times before I agree to take job," Daria
said, sighing. "He is having letterhead and letters of employment.
But I have not the exit visa or entry visa, so Pasha..."
"Pasha?" Mike said, crinkling his brow. "Ahmed Pasha?"
"That was his name, yes," Daria said. "And there was another
man with him, Peter..."
"Looked like Santa Claus?" Mike asked.
"Yes!" Daria said, turning to look at him.
"You need to talk to Oksana," Mike said, his jaw working.
"So, you certainly didn't make it to Belgium
."
"They took me over the border to Moldava," Daria said.
"There..."
"They raped you, beat you and took away your passport,"
Mike said. "So you couldn't leave without their aid. And sold you
to the Albanians."
"Yes," Daria said, turning back to look at the ocean.
"Run into a guy named Dejti?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Daria replied, quietly.
"Well, he sleeps with the fishes."
Daria paused and frowned then shrugged.
"That means nothing to me," she admitted.
"American slang," Mike replied. "It means I broke both his
knees and then shot him through the head and dumped his body in
a lake."
"Oh," Daria said, breathing out. "Oh."
"I doubt you ran into a man named Nicu..."
"In Romania
," Daria said, her face hard. "It was he who
sent me to Rozaje." She paused and quirked an eyebrow.
"Fishes?"
"Fishes."
"I am not sure how I feel about that," she admitted.
"That's because you're a nice girl," Mike replied. "And I am
not a nice man."
"That I don't believe," Daria said, laughing breathlessly. "If
you were not a nice man, we would have been left in the villa,
still chained up, waiting for the next men to take us."
"Believe it," Mike said, flatly. "Because I do nice things,
does not mean I'm a nice man. The men who raped you, the men
who beat you, simply do the things I would like to do. And
occasionally do when a young lady likes that sort of thing. I'm
not a nice man. A nice man would not beat another human being
to death with a sledgehammer."
"Dejti?" Daria asked.
"Nicu's boss," Mike replied.
"Dejti poked my breast with needles," Daria said, softly.
"And shocked me with electric cables. He hit me in the belly so
hard I was peeing blood. He didn't leave any scars on the
outside..."
"But he left them on the inside," Mike said.
"Many." She paused again and then shrugged. "You know
women who like this sort of thing?"
"My harem manager for one," Mike said, smiling faintly.
"Anastasia used to... belong to a shiek in
Uzbekistan
. She told me she was happy to come work
for me, because he would not hit her hard enough. She likes to be
whipped and hurt. Giving her what she wants, without causing
scars, is hard."
"She is your harem manager?" Daria said, shaking her head.
"I have a hard time thinking about that."
"They are girls that I picked up for various reasons," Mike
replied. "I didn't know what to do with them, so I kept them as
girlfriends, concubines really. They can leave any time, I even
offer them a stake to get started. None of them took me up on it.
When they get old enough to make it in the world, and educated
enough, I'll kick them out the door. In the meantime I'm giving
them an education and a chance for a real life."
"And they give you sex?" Daria said, tightly.
"I don't force them," Mike said, shrugging. "Most of them
were from small farms in the mountains. They considered it an
honor, which surprised me. The thing they call me, Kildar, is a
sort of nobleman in the area. But... yes, they give me sex. You
can say pay their way that way, but I prefer to think of it as
consensual. We all live with the lies we tell ourselves."
"Yes," Daria said, sitting back and sighing. "That we do."
"So what do you think I should do with these girls?" Mike
asked. "I've got everything from Oksana, registered virgin and
orphan with nowhere to go to... you I suppose. I assume you have
somewhere to go back to?"
"If I could face it," Daria said. "My parents told me not to
leave. They did not like my boyfriend."
"Looking them in the eye will be tough," Mike admitted.
"But... 'home is where, when you have to go there, they have to
take you in'."
"And where is your home?" Daria asked.
Mike stopped and blinked. Home still meant the US
to him. His parents were dead, he hadn't
talked to his sister in...years.
"Thanks for asking," Mike said, frowning. "The answer is, I
don't have one."
"You should have a home," Daria said, frowning in turn.
"You are a good man, you should have a good home."
"I suppose it's with the Keldara," Mike replied, still
frowning. "They are the closest thing to family I have. For years,
home was the Navy, the Teams and BUD/S. I was married, but
that came apart after I got out. Now...I don't know."
"You should marry again," Daria said, definitely.
"When I find the right girl, maybe," Mike replied. The sun
was slowly descending to the west and the temperature was
dropping steadily. He wasn't bothered by it, he'd gotten used to
far worse on beaches all over the world, but the girls were
getting out of the water and shivering. "Looks like time for
dinner," he added, standing up.
Daria followed him as he headed back to the hotel and he
turned to look at her, quirking an eyebrow.
"I was wondering..." the girl said, then shrugged. "It is
nothing."
"Tell you what," Mike said, quirking one cheek up. "Let's
talk about it upstairs."
When they got to his room, Mike waved her to a chair and
flopped on the bed, propping up some pillows behind him.
"One of the things we haven't done on this op is introduce a
consistent rape counselling program," Mike said. "Or an abuse
counselling program. Why? Because we're on a combat op and
it's not important to the operation. And, frankly, we don't have
any counselors. Maybe we should bring in some touchy-feely
types to cover the bases, but we haven't. I haven't. Comments?"
"Why should you care?" Daria asked, shrugging one
shoulder.
"If it's effecting the mission," Mike said. "We're stuck with
you girls for the time being. If you're not functional, it effects the
mission."
"We're functional," Daria said, angrily. "And you're not
stuck with us."
"Yes, I am," Mike replied. "You're aware of who we are and
what we're doing. If we just dropped you off on the street, the
news would get around. Besides, as part of my not being a nice
guy, but trying to act like one, I can't just drop you on a street
corner. So I'm stuck with you. And if you're getting huffy about
that and decide you're going to storm out, you'll discover we've
got plenty of rigger tape."
"Rigger tape?" Daria asked, confused.
"Duct tape, then," Mike said, rolling over and pulling a roll
out of his jump bag.
"We're still prisoners, then," Daria said, angrily.
"Yep," Mike replied. "Just like before. But we're not
planning on killing you as part of sexual funs and games. Only
real difference. Oh, and you're not going to get raped. And we'll
try really hard not to raise a hand to you. But, yeah, you're still
prisoners. It's just a more comfortable jail."
"Then why don't you rape me?" Daria said, breathing hard.
"Don't tempt me," Mike said. "Seriously. Don't. You're a
real looker. And the reason is, I try to act like a nice guy."
"What if I told you I wanted you to?" Daria said, looking
down at the floor and blushing. "What if I told you that as much
as I hated what happened to me... I liked it as well?"
"Then I'd tell you that I'm not a rape counsellor," Mike
replied, with a dismissive shrug. "I'd also tell you that you're not
alone. Bum magnets tend to end up in abusive relationships. I
would guess that your bum boyfriend occasionally slapped you
around, right?"
"Yes," Daria said, looking up. "I should have stopped him,
but..."
"You loved him and he loved you," Mike finished for her,
shrugging. "It ain't love, honey, it's abuse syndrome. Hell, it's
being a submissive. Not necessarily sexually, but in general. You
probably felt like you deserved it, that it was all your fault."
"Are you in my head?" Daria asked, angrily. "Is this some
sort of mind thing?"
"No, it's being old enough and experienced enough to have
had the conversation before," Mike said, shrugging again.
"You're hardly alone. Abuse like that happens all over, honey,
even in the United States
. You never had sex with your boyfriend?"
"No," Daria said, blushing again. "I drew the line there, even
when he became angry. And he only hit me when he was drunk.
One time he tried to..."
"Rape you," Mike said.
"I was going to say force me," Daria replied. "It was not
really rape..."
"Yeah, it is," Mike snapped. "Date rape is rape. Period
fucking dot. So you drew the line there, now what?"
"Now..." Daria said and stopped.
"You said that some of the abuse you enjoyed?" Mike asked,
calmly.
"I should not," Daria said, dropping her face in her hands. "I
think I am a very bad person."
"Item number sixty two of the checklist," Mike said,
chuckling.
"What is so funny?" Daria snapped, glaring at him.
"You were brought up to be a very good girl," Mike said,
still smiling. "To not have sex until you are married. But you feel
the want of it?"
"Yes," Daria admitted. "Very much."
"I won't ask if that's an 'especially now' answer," Mike said.
"But the point is, if you're forced then it's not your fault. If a man
makes you do it, you are not so bad a person. It is one of the
reasons that you want to be forced, to be made to have sex. Yes?"
"I...hadn't thought of it that way," Daria admitted.
"If you are tied, how can it be your fault?" Mike asked. "But
you still like it, that still makes you a bad person inside. So you
want to be hurt for being a bad girl. Am I close?"
"Yes," Daria answered, quietly.
"All right," Mike said, shrugging. "Let's talk about that. Part
of it might be because of the rape. But...did you ever think that
way before the rape? I mean, did you fantasize about things like
that when you masturbated?"
"That's a very personal question!" Daria snapped.
"This is a personal conversation," Mike replied. "The
question is, did these feelings come about as a result of the rape,
or did you have them before?"
"Some of them..." Daria said, softly. "Some of them before."
"There are books and books written about what you're
feeling," Mike said. "The term is sexual submission. Lucky for
me, I tend to run into them a lot since I'm a sexual dominant.
Opposites attract and all that. The point is, you're not bad for
feeling that way. It's a normal, hell probably a majority, feeling in
women. It's even a desire in some men. So the first thing to get
into your noggin is that you're not evil for feeling that way."
"It feels...wrong," Daria said. "Bad."
"And some women enjoy being told how bad they are," Mike
said. "That's all fine and dandy, as long as it's really a consensual
thing between two rational adults. Or more, sometimes. The
point is, it's okay to feel that way, okay to play out those
fantasies. As long as you know where to draw the line. The term
is 'the bedroom door.' As long as your fantasies are play, whether
it's in a bedroom or a living room or the kitchen, the whole
house or on a mountainside, as long as the play ends at an agreed
upon point, it's just fun."
"Fun," Daria snorted. "I want... I want to be told I'm bad."
"And as long as that's in the bedroom, metaphorically, that's
all fine and good," Mike replied. "Daria, look at me."
He waited until the girl looked up and met his eyes.
"You're a good girl, a fine woman," Mike said, holding her
eyes with his. "You just have the need to be told otherwise. Do
you want to be spanked? To be abused?"
"Yes," she admitted, still looking him in the eye.
"But you don't want that to be your life, right?" Mike said.
"Tied up and hit, carefully, and told you're a bad girl in bed, sure.
But not hit in the face because supper's late."
"No," Daria said, shocked. "I mean, yes, the first but not the
second."
"You're a sexual sub," Mike said, shrugging and leaning
back. "My favorite kind of girl. But the point is, at the end of the
play you go back to being your own person. Owning yourself.
Loving yourself and knowing that you are not a bad person. If
you can't do that, you're never going to be the person you can
be."
"But now I feel as if I really need it," Daria practically
wailed. "I want it all the time..."
"Item twenty something on the post-rape checklist," Mike
said. "Nymphomania. The female in the situation shifts to
desiring sex. If it's going to happen, anyway, they might as well
learn to enjoy it. A lot. And do it. A lot. Even when they aren't
forced to."
"You're saying I'm sick?" Daria asked, carefully.
"Nymphomania is being sick."
"Not really," Mike replied, shrugging. "You're just having a
standard reaction to your form of trauma. Sorry if it makes you
feel less special. Not sorry if it makes you feel less bad. Because
you're not. You're a fine young lady. You've just been through a
traumatic experience and you're reacting to it in fairly well
recognized ways."
"So what do I do about it?" Daria asked, sitting up.
"That's where my knowledge sort of breaks down," Mike
admitted. "The thing about rape, especially when it happens to a
person with little or no experience of sex, is that it changes the
wiring for what is positive and negative sexual experiences. You
can't really know what your sexual interests, your needs, are.
Look, my ex wife did some rape counselling. Most of the stuff I
know comes from her and girlfriends who have been abused. I'm
not an expert. Okay?"
"Okay," Daria said, carefully. "But you're as close as I can
get right now."
"Right," Mike admitted. "Especially since you're still,
effectively, a prisoner. Even if I went out and found a counselor,
he or she would be sucked into the same void. So I'll just tell you
what I know. The thing about rape is that it sort of changes the
wiring. There was a boy that my wife counselled. He'd been
homosexually raped when he was thirteen or so. And he'd been
homosexually oriented ever since. So he was in his mid-twenties
or so and all of a sudden he starts getting interested in girls. He's
not sure what's happening, so he goes back into counselling.
Turned out, he wasn't really homosexual at all. His orientation
was as a result of the rape, period. So right now, it would be hard
to tell what your real orientation is."
"So what do I do?" Daria asked. "What do I do about
the...the nightmares? About the feelings?"
"Well, one thing is you talk about them," Mike said. "This is
a good start. And if you're fixated on certain kinds of sex, try
them. You're not a virgin anymore. If you want to have sex, have
sex. Over time, your real orientation will probably, I dunno,
realign? Talk to some of the other girls about the feelings they
have, the nightmares their having. Talking about it hurts when
you do it, but it will help."
"I'll tell you one nightmare," Daria said. "It's that this is all
an elaborate joke to break us down again. That we're going to go
right back into being whores. That's not even a nightmare, it's
something I worry about all the time."
Mike opened his mouth to reply and then paused.
"You know, there's an aspect of this I hadn't considered," he
admitted. "If we bungle one of the upcoming ops, you might just
end up that way. Back in slavery, that is. Hell, the Keldara
women would. Although I think the rest of the militia would turn
up pretty quick with Nielson leading them. I probably ought to
figure out a way to get you all back to Georgia
. You'd be safer there. Not safe, exactly,
but safer."
"To be part of your harem?" Daria asked, bitterly.
"Like I said, I'm not sure what to do with you," Mike replied.
"Can I just go home?" the girl asked, softly.
"Not until the op is over," Mike said. "You understand
why."
"Understand, yes," Daria said. "Happy about, no."
"Not much I can do about your happiness," Mike replied
with a shrug.
"You can do one thing," Daria said.
"And that is?"
"I need..." she paused and looked at the ground. "I want..."
"You know that this is probably just your reaction to what
you went through, right?" Mike asked.
"Yes," she admitted. "That doesn't relieve the need."
Mike cocked his head to the side and really looked at her for
a moment.
"Daria?"
"Yes?" she asked, looking up.
"Take your clothes off."
"What?" the girl asked.
"I'm going to relieve both our needs," Mike replied, standing
up and walking over to her. "I'm not sure if it's a good idea, but
it's the best one I can come up with right now. The bedroom door
is, metaphorically and really, shut. You can choose to not play
the game if you wish."
"I choose..." Daria said then paused. "I think I choose to
play."
"Fine," Mike said, walking over to one of the other chairs
and sitting down. "Then stand up and take off all of your
clothes."
The girl looked at him for a moment and then stood up and
started to slowly undress. She started off looking at him but
when she started to slip her dress off she had to look away.
When she started to sit down and remove her shoes, Mike
waved at her to stop.
"Keep the shoes on," Mike said, gruffly. "I like high heels.
Here is the deal. You've been an actual sex slave. Some of the
play is based around that sort of situation. Are you going to be
able to take that?"
"Yes," Daria said, softly, still looking at the floor. "As long
as I'm sure it's play."
"Are you?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Daria admitted. "I trust you. I don't know why I do,
but I do."
"It might have something to do with rescuing you from
durance vile," Mike told the naked girl. "Or my winning smile.
But we're going to have to establish the parameters. That is,
we're going to have to find out what I can and cannot do. And
you're going to have to know how to end the play. Are you
listening?"
"Yes," Daria replied. "Can I put my clothes back on?"
"Not unless you want the play to end," Mike said. "Do you?"
"Not yet," Daria admitted. "I am very confused. I want to do
this, but I am frightened. I was stripped like this to be sold to
Ahmed Pasha. It was very humiliating. This is very humiliating.
But..."
"You like it," Mike said.
"Yes."
"Go over to the bed and get a pillow," Mike ordered. "Put it
on the floor and kneel on it. There," he added, pointing to a spot a
few feet away from his chair. "Keep your head down when you
are kneeling. You will only look at me when I order you to do
so. The response to that is 'Yes, master'."
"Yes..." Daria said, pausing with a catch in her voice. "Yes,
master."
When the girl was kneeling, Mike leaned forward.
"From now until the end of play, you are my slave," Mike
said. "I will order you to do things, I will force you to do things.
You will obey my orders. Do you agree to this?"
"Yes, master," Daria said, her head bent in submission.
"Before we begin, we have to know what you will accept
and what is not acceptable," Mike said. "Is there anything that you
will not accept? Answer truthfully."
"I don't want to be hit in the face," Daria replied, shivering.
"And I don't want to be burned."
"I will not hit you in the face," Mike replied. "What about
anal sex?"
"I don't like it," Daria admitted. "But..."
"It's humiliating?" Mike asked.
"Yes," the girl answered, softly.
"And you like to be humiliated," Mike said. "You like to be
shown what a bad girl you are."
"Yes," Daria said, her face working against the tears.
"Time out," Mike said, sitting up. "When I say that, we're
out of play and it's time to talk. How are you feeling?"
"Strange," Daria admitted. "Very weird. Like I'm not really
here."
"Detached?" Mike asked. "Floating? Almost like you're not
in your body?"
"Yes."
"A normal reaction," Mike said. "Do you like it?"
"Yes," Daria admitted.
"Am I causing bad flashbacks?"
"No," she said, blinking. "Strippping sort of did. But
this...no."
"Okay, we'll continue," Mike said. "If at any time, you have
to stop, you can say 'time out' or 'yellow' or any odd word. But if
you say 'no', or 'stop' or 'please' or anything else along the lines,
it means 'You're doing great, do it harder and meaner.'
Understood?"
"Yes," Daria said, half laughing.
It was the first time Mike had heard her so much as chuckle
and he took it as a good sign.
"What are you laughing about, slave?" Mike snapped. "Drop
your eyes to the floor where they belong!" He stood up and
walked over to her, circling her predatorially.
"You have been a very bad girl, Daria. You defied your
parents, had sex out of wedlock and admitted that you enjoyed it.
You are a bad girl and you must be punished."
"Yes, master," Daria said, softly.
Mike dipped into a bag and came out with a couple of
lengths of soft rope and a cloth. He tied her hands and ankles then
looped the two ropes together to hogtie her on her knees then
blindfolded her with the cloth. He carefully pulled most of her
long, blonde hair out from under the blindfold and then grabbed
it, hard, pulling her head back and making her gasp in pain.
"You've been a bad girl, little bitch," Mike rasped. "And
you're going to be punished for it." He slipped his bathing suit
off and hit her on the face with his cock. "Say 'I'm a bad girl'."
"I'm a bad girl," the girl sobbed.
"Whatever punishment my master gives me, I deserve," he
said, hitting her on the face again.
"Whatever punishment my master gives me, I deserve."
"Take it in your mouth, bitch," Mike said, shoving his dick
in her mouth. "Suck it like I know you do. Suck it hard or you'll
be punished."
He wasn't sure if it was natural talent or the training she'd
gotten since being kidnapped, but Daria truly knew how to give a
blowjob. She could have sucked a golf ball through forty feet of
steel hose. He felt like his dick was being hickeyed. She might be
the best blower he'd ever had, which was saying something. He
hadn't planned on blowing a load in her mouth, but the blowjob
was too good to pass up. When he felt himself starting to
orgasm, he blew most of it in her mouth then pulled out and
pumped the rest onto her face and gorgeous tits. And she
swallowed automatically after barely a choke. Damn she was
good.
"Slutty little bitch," he growled into her ear, rubbing the cum
onto her face and breasts. "You're nothing but a slut, a little bad
girl. Say you're a slut."
"I'm a slut," Daria whispered, shaking her head as if to try to
throw off the cum.
"I'm going to show you what sort of slut you are, bitch,"
Mike whispered. He grabbed her by the hair with one hand and
wrapped an arm around her body, lifting her bodily and throwing
her onto the bed. "Bad girls get beaten."
"Please don't beat me, master," the girl whined. "I'll be
good."
"I'll teach you to be good," Mike said, pulling his belt off his
trousers. He untied her wrists then retied them to the front,
stretched them over her head and rolled her onto her stomach.
"You're a bad girl and you need to be spanked."
"Please..." Daria whined. "Please don't..."
Mike pinned her hands over her head, wrapped a leg onto her
body to hold her in place and began whipping her on her
gorgeous ass. He wasn't using full strength by any stretch of the
imagination, since he wasn't sure what she could actually stand.
Daria bit into the cloth of the bedcover, whining and trying
not to scream.
After a while Mike stopped and lifted her head up by her
hair.
"Have you had enough, bitch?" he growled.
"Master," Daria gasped. "Please, I've been very bad..."
Mike twitched an eyebrow up and forced her head back
down into the bedcovers. This time, he parked higher, pinning her
arms with his leg and began whipping not only her ass but her
back as well, carefully keeping clear of the kidney region. He
also hit harder.
She began shuddering and sweating from the pain, moaning
into the bed and occasionally screaming. But if she really wanted
him to stop, all she had to do was spit out the bedcover so Mike
kept at it.
It was at times like this that he considered the fact that in a
"scene", the sub was actually in charge. Here he was doing all the
work and she was getting exactly what she wanted without
having to do anything but take the pain, which she actively
enjoyed. It was an odd dichotomy and he found that he suddenly
wasn't as into it as he usually would be. Part of that was keeping
one eye on the fact that the girl had been recently traumatized. He
wasn't sure if what he was doing was helping or reinforcing the
trauma. But Daria, like Anastasia, seemed to be one of those
girls who just soaked up pain and turned it into pure pleasure. It
was almost disheartening. He really enjoyed inflicting pain and
suffering; having someone absolutely and totally enjoy it was a
let down.
He suddenly realized that he'd completely lost his erection.
That's what came of philosophizing in the middle of a scene.
Mike shifted again and grabbed her hair, turning her face
towards his crotch.
"Lick it, bitch," he growled. "Lick it and suck it like the little
slut you are."
She took it in her mouth and began expertly sucking it again,
which got him back to a world-class erection in no time.
"You're a little fucking slut," Mike snarled, dipping into a
bag and pulling out a condom. "You're worth less than the price
of dog turds. You're worth nothing." He pinned her down and
spread her ass, shoving his dick into it, hard, as she moaned in
pain.
"You're a useless little slut," Mike growled in her ear,
clamping one hand over her mouth and wrapping the other
around her throat. "You think I'm a nice guy, I'm not. I'm an evil,
raping, bastard, just like the evil
raping bastards that kidnapped you. And I like to rape my little
bitches and then kill them. And that's what I'm going to do to
you, bitch. I'm going to rape you in the ass and strangle you at the
same time. Nobody will care about a little bitch like you,
anyway."
He knew he had her now, since she was struggling against
the bonds. But he had her pinned flat with his weight and she
wasn't getting away from either hand. He kept talking to her,
threatening her and abusing her as he kept one hand clamped over
her mouth and the other applying light pressure to her windpipe.
He pumped hard on her gorgeous ass for a few minutes and
finally came.
"Are you all right?" he asked, withdrawing both hands and
easing out of her ass.
"You really scared me," she said, breathing hard. "I wasn't
sure..."
"It's called edge play," Mike replied. "Creating a condition of
doubt in the mind of the sub. You weren't sure if I was serious or
not."
"Yes!"
"I wasn't," Mike said, rolling over and undoing her hands.
"Seriously."
"It was scary," Daria admitted, sitting up and untying her
ankles. "But I liked it. I was sure enough that you weren't going
to do it that I wasn't panicking, but..."
"Well, let's try something else," Mike said, standing up and
walking to the bathroom.
"You mean you're not done?" Daria asked, surprised.
"Oh, hell no," Mike said. "Be right back."
He came back with a hot wash cloth and gently wiped the
cum from her face and breasts.
"You're gentle," she said, lying back and sighing then
gasping a bit as she hit a sore spot.
"How's the back?" Mike asked, caressing her breasts a bit
more than was strictly necessary.
"Sore," she admitted. "But not as sore as my ass. You hit me
very well."
"Thanks," Mike replied, sliding the washcloth down her
stomach and taking one of her nipples in his mouth.
"Oh, that feels good," Daria sighed.
"Should," he replied, blowing on it lightly to get it to stand
up. "You have a gorgeous body, did you know that?"
"It is okay," Daria said, shrugging.
"It's absolutely exquisite," Mike replied, lowering himself
on the nipple again. He'd slid the washcloth down her stomach
and now slid it between her legs, giving the area a thorough
cleaning. He wiped the outside then slid his finger, encased in the
rough cloth, into her vagina.
"Oh," Daria sighed. "Oh...god..."
"You like it rough, huh?" Mike chuckled, biting on her
nipple lightly. "I'll give you rough..."
He rolled onto her and pinned her legs open, biting on her
shoulder and thrusting his fingers into her vagina repeatedly. She
began panting and sighing so Mike kept at it, thrusting with his
fingers and biting her on her neck, shoulder and chest, appearing
to lose control as she bucked under him and moaned. Finally, as
she appeared to be nearing climax, he slid another condom onto
his dick and thrust into her.
She settled a bit at first but the continuous hard thrusts
warmed her back up as he growled in her ear and continued to
pinch, bite and twist her nipples roughly. He pulled her legs up
and grabbed her sore ass, eliciting a half scream of pain. Finally,
she panted and moaned her way into a screaming climax that had
him clamping his hand over her mouth to save his ears as much
as for decorum. Hell, Sawn was in the next room and it was
going to be obvious that the Kildar was up to his old tricks.
The girl didn't seem to be a multi-climax type, so he slowed
just enough to let her get her wind back and then drove in, hard,
getting his third orgasm of the encounter. It had to be the tits.
"That was..." she whispered then moaned as he carefully
withdrew.
"Decent?" Mike asked, cleaning up and then pulling her in to
cuddle on his shoulder.
"Very nice," Daria whispered. "I did not think it could be
that way."
"Welcome to the real world," Mike said, yawning. "I'm for a
nap, how 'bout you?"
"I think I could use a nap as well," Daria admitted. "Can I
sleep here?"
"Just try to leave," Mike said, curling into her.
Chapter Twenty-Four
"None of them have left," Ctibor said, as Yarok walked into
the apartment. "They usually stay at least two days in one place,
by the look of the previous data."
The Albanian hit team had taken up four apartments in the
building. It was owned by the Albanian mob, so getting the
apartments had been simple enough, if rough on the previous
tenants. But they'd left behind some nice furniture.
Unfortunately, it was not going to be in very good condition
when they left; the "shooters" Boris had turned up were mostly
gutter scum. What was it that British general had said? "The
scum of the earth enlisted for drink." That was what Boris
had found for him when he asked for professionals. Yarok
wondered, briefly, which one it had been.
Montgomery
, probably.
"I'm not happy with taking them down in the hotel," Yarok
said, rubbing his lips with his fingers. "Is the team all here?"
"The ones that are sober," Ctibor said, spitting on the floor.
"You'd think the Albanians could round up better men than this."
"It would have been better if we'd caught them in that hotel
in Kosovo," Yarok admitted. "But around here all you can get is
gutter thugs. Even the veterans of the war mostly have real jobs.
Or they work for rival gangs."
"So what do you want to do?" Ctibor asked, shrugging.
"We will hit them tonight," Yarok said, decisively. "Before
dawn."
* * *
Mike blinked and opened his eyes at the ring from the
cellphone and started to roll over only to find that he was totally
tangled in sheets and covers. He managed to untangle without
disturbing Daria and snagged the phone.
"Jenkins," he growled.
"Kildar, it is Gurun."
"Gurun?" Mike asked, rubbing his eyes and wondering why
the brewery manager would be calling him while he was on an
op.
"I am in the city of Las Vegas
, Kildar," Gurun said. "The booth for the convention
is well prepared and the company is in the process of installing.
But you said that you wanted some of the Keldara here for the
booth. I had left the choice up to you, Kildar, but when I called
home they told me you were...on business."
"Shit," Mike snapped, sitting up. "I completely and totally
forgot."
"I can hire local models, Kildar," Gurun said. "They are not
cheap and I will have to hurry to find Keldara dress..."
"No," Mike said, thinking rapidly. "I've got a better idea."
* * *
"You want what?" Pierson snapped.
"We need to meet," Mike said. "About the other thing. And I
need to get some people into the US
. Now. We have what is called a win-win
situation here."
"You're joking," Pierson said, sighing. "You want visas for
thirty something complete unknowns?"
"And I'm going to need some passports, too," Mike said. "I
can get the photos, but I'm going to need them by the time the
plane lands in the US
. And the visas on file."
"Why don't you just fly back yourself?" Pierson asked,
exasperatedly.
"Because we're in Indian Country," Mike pointed out. "I'm
not going to just drop my team in Indian Country, Bob."
"Shit," Pierson replied, tightly. "Okay, okay. But you'll need
to go to the Embassy. What kind of passports?"
"Georgian, I guess," Mike said. "No, scrap that. I know a
better way to get them. But we're going to need somebody in the
states to receive us that knows not to ask too many questions.
The thing is, we're going to Vegas. That's right next to Nellis
which has some really good secure rooms. Oh, and we're carrying
about seven hundred pounds of print intel on the op that's going
to need some Albanian translators. Very closed mouth ones. I'll
drop the original electronic EEI with you as well. That's in half a
dozen languages, including Romanian."
"I'll get you a secure fax number to send the information on
the girls to the Embassy," Pierson said, relenting. "I need to start
making some phone calls, though, right now."
"That's fine," Mike said, sitting up and slapping the still
sleeping Daria on the rump and eliciting a yelp. "We're going to
have to move like lightning to make the convention."
* * *
"The stake-out just called," Ctibor said. "They're packing
up."
"Shit," Yarok muttered over the phone. "Any idea where
to?"
"No," Ctibor admitted. "We couldn't get a mike into the
rooms. The stake-out has a shotgun mike, but the men who are
loading the vans don't seem to know. The stake-out said that one
of them said something about a convention."
"That tells us a lot," Yarok snapped. "Find out where they
are going."
"Perhaps we can hit them enroute?" Ctibor suggested.
"Maybe. Tell the stake-out to follow them. We'll need more
than one car to follow."
"I'm on it."
* * *
"Vanner," Mike said, slipping the intel specialist a note.
"Call this number. It's a chartering company I've dealt with
before. Tell them I need a large plane as fast as possible. My
usual pilot if he can fly it."
"Yes, sir," Vanner replied, grinning. "How are we going to
get the girls into the States, sir?"
"I'm on it."
* * *
"This is highly irregular, Kildar."
"I know, Minister," Mike said, rolling his eyes. "And I am
sorry to place this burden upon you, knowing that your time is
extremely valuable. But it is most urgent and very important. I
know that aspects have the attention of the President of the United States
. While the situation does not directly
affect Georgia
, it has very wide ranging implications.
And it is imperative that I take the full team to the United States
as soon as possible. Tonight if we can."
"I will call the Embassy in
Croatia
immediately," the Georgian Minister for
External Affairs said with a sigh. "But I will want to know that
this is for an important purpose."
"I will convey that to the President, Minister," Mike said,
rolling his eyes and wondering how many favors he was going to
owe by the time the night was over.
"Mike," Adams growled over the
radio.
"Go," Mike said.
"I think we have a problem. I've spotted the same white Lada
four times since we got out of town. Either the guy's going to
Zagreb
just like us or we're being followed."
"Crap," Mike said, shaking his head. "We knew it had to
happen sooner or later. Okay, evasion plan Alpha. Sawn, you
monitoring?"
"Yes, Kildar."
"Follow the agreed routes and meet at the agreed rally point.
Adams, you have pick-up. Everyone go
to scrambled cell at this time." Mike pulled out his map and
studied the roads. "Yevgeni, take the next left..." So much for
making good time.
* * *
"Yarok," the security specialist growled. He'd had a hard
time getting all the vehicles for the assault team, most of whom
were half or all the way drunk. While the American had taken
less than fifteen minutes to get on the road, it had taken him over
an hour.
"Ctibor. They're splitting up. I think the trail car was made."
"I told you to use more than one car!" Yarok fumed.
"I had a hard time getting more," Ctibor complained. "And
we never caught up. The stake-out car is still following one
group that is on the main highway to
Zagreb
, but the other vans all have pulled off."
"Follow the group on the main highway," Yarok said. "They
have to rendezvous somewhere."
* * *
"Okay, Garold, they're still on us," Adams said over the radio. "Break it down. I'll stay on the
highway."
He watched as the other vans pulled off the main road to
Zagreb
and then shook his head.
"That's right, little lamb," he crooned. "Stay right on my
tail."
Chapter Twenty-Five
"Hello, Mr. Jenkins," Hardesty said as Mike reached the top
of the rolling ramp. "Larger crowd than normal?"
John Hardesty was a tall, slender and distinguished looking
former RAF fighter pilot who had gotten out with the fixed
intention of becoming a pilot for British Airways. The problem
with that being that, like the RAF, BA had been having cutbacks
for years. Unable to get the job of his dreams, he'd settled for
flying rich bastards around in private jets.
One day he'd gotten a charter that looked to be the usual,
flying a rich American bastard around Europe. However, it had turned out somewhat differently than
he'd imagined. The first odd note was that the rich American had
turned up with just one suitcase and a small backpack instead of
the loads of business suits the pilot had expected. And the
destinations had been...odd. Small towns in
Russia, rather notoriously dangerous
towns in Serbia
. And instead of the usual "I've got a
business meeting tomorrow morning, we'll be taking off at
noon", the passenger had required he and his co-pilot to be on-
call twenty four hours a day. And had usually turned up in the
middle of the night, reaking of cordite, his clothes spotted with
bloodstains. At one point he turned up with what was clearly a
low-class Russian hooker and carted her around for the rest of
the trip. Hardesty tastefully ignored the fact that she had recent
bruises from a beating.
The passenger also turned out to be travelling under at least
three false names, and clearances for entry to countries had been
remarkably smooth. He might be a hitman, but if so he was a hit
man for a government, which made him almost respectable.
The various flights had culminated in Paris where the passenger had advised him to get to an airport
well away from the City of Light
and choose a hotel room that didn't look in that
direction. The news the next day that a nuclear weapon had been
found in Paris
, and been disarmed, came as no real surprise.
Since then he had carted "Mike Jenkins", AKA Mike
Duncan, AKA John Stewart, AKA whoknowswhat around to
various spots in Europe, the United States
and Southeast Asia. Since that first wild charter there hadn't been a hint of
gunpowder. Until tonight. Tonight he had the feeling things were
going to get wild and wooly. Again.
"A bit," Mike said. "And documentation is following. We've
also got a bit of luggage."
"Plenty of room in the compartments," Hardesty said,
leaning down to glance under the fuselage as the Keldara began
unloading. Some of the bags looked suspiciously long. "I take it
none of it's going to explode?"
"We're leaving the Semtek if that's what you mean," Mike
replied, standing by the females as the girls walked by.
"Nice joke," Hardesty said, smiling. Then he looked at
Mike's face. "You were joking, right?"
"Customs is going to be handled on the far end," Mike
replied. "But we'll be leaving a good bit of the material on the
bird. So figure on a five day layover in Vegas."
"You weren't joking," the pilot said, shaking his head as one
of the Keldara men went by with his arm in a sling.
"We've gotten drivers to take all the vans to the Embassy,"
Mike replied. "But while I'm wiling to leave my Semtek, I'm not
willing to leave all the gear. Or the ammo," he added as the
Keldara men started filing up the stairs with various rather heavy
bags that might or might not contain such things as guns and
ammunition.
"There are times that I really wish you'd picked another
charter company as your flyers of choice," Hardesty sighed. "On
the other hand, the young ladies are quite charming, are they
not?"
"About half of them are intel specialists," Mike said. "The
others are hookers that have been freed from Albanian gangs.
One of which is, apparently, hot on our tail. As soon as the last
of our party turns up, you might want to be ready to take off.
Fast."
"Really, really wish..."
"If wishes were horses, beggars would ride."
* * *
"This is most irregular," the second assistant to the
Ambassador from Georgia to Croatia
moaned as he looked at the pile of blank
passports. "Most irregular."
"You want irregular?" Chief Adams sighed. "There's an
Albanian hit team on my tail. There's a plane waiting to fly to the
US
at the airport. And I've got to get from
here to there, with these passports, and without getting killed. So
just do me a favor and stamp the appropriate spots so I can get
the hell out of here before we have a firefight in the Embassy,
okay?"
"You are joking, yes?" the official moaned.
"I am joking, no," Adams said,
picking up the official stamp. "So you want to stamp them or
not? Your call. But I'm not leaving without them."
* * *
"Mike, got the documents," Adams
said, leaning over to look out the window of the van. He was
currently parked on Georgian territory, but the minute he pulled
out he was going to be in Indian Territory. With no back-up.
"Hold one," Mike said. "Any sign of shooters?"
"Not so far," Adams replied.
"Well, we'll just have to go for the trailer."
* * *
"IFOR duty desk, Sergeant Simmons speaking, how may I
help you, sir or ma'am?"
Simmons was a reservist from
Tennessee
with the Fifth Regiment. All in all he'd much rather
be back in Murfreesboro watching
NASCAR, but duty in Bosnia
these days was pretty tame. And the girls
were plentiful and downright fine. Cheap too. There was worse
duty. He'd already done one tour in the sandbox and that classifed
as "much worse."
"Sergeant," a man said in a hoarse whisper. "Thank God I
finally got to an American. I've got a real problem."
"Sir, IFOR is not available to help distressed citizens..." the
sergeant replied, sighing. Every time somebody lost a passport or
got mugged or rolled or something, they fucking called IFOR.
He flipped open his roll-a-dex looking for the number for the
local police.
"It's not that," the man whispered. "I'm running from a group
of Albanian terrorists. I'm an Albanian American, okay? My
name's Hamed Dejti. I grew up in San
Diego
, okay? I was down in Kosovo, I was visiting
relatives, okay? I was in a café and I heard some of the
men talking about bombing one of the IFOR camps. They had a
car and the explosives but they were arguing about who was
going to drive it, okay? I guess I left too fast, they must have
suspected I heard them. I mean, they were talking about the
stupid American that didn't understand them, okay? I've been
running from them ever since. I tried to get the border guards to
help me..."
"Sir, are you sure about your information?" Simmons said,
hitting the alert button and rolling out the duty guard platoon.
This wasn't a mugging. The voice had a definite American accent
and the caller was clearly scared. He just wished he had a tracer
circuit.
"They said they were going to strike one of the American
camps," the man said, more definitely. "They didn't say which
one. But that's you guys, right?"
"Where are you right now, sir?"
"I'm at a payphone on Gajdekova
Street
," the man said. "The only ones I know about are in a
white Lada, parked a half a block from the Georgian Embassy.
I'm right across the street. I think they want to kill me, but there
are too many guards around. I'll wait here until somebody gets to
me. I can't even get to the American Embassy, they cut me off!
Please..."
"Sir, I'm scrambling the duty platoon right now," the
sergeant said, looking up as the duty officer walked in, scratching
at his stomach under his uniform. "We're on it."
* * *
"Adams."
"Cavalry is on the way. As soon as our friends are occupado,
boogie. We're only waiting on you."
* * *
"They're in the Georgian Embassy," Ctibor said, pointing
with his chin.
Yarov leaned down to mask his face and looked towards the
gates of the Embassy. It was an old mansion with an iron spike
fence around the courtyard and a baroque exterior. The guards
didn't seem to be paying any attention to the white Lada, but he
could see the van parked by the side entrance.
"Well, we're in place, but that's only one of them," Yarov
replied. "We need them all."
"Why did they go to the Embassy?" Ctibor mused.
"Because they knew we couldn't get at them, there," Yarov
said. "The rest might have already rendezvoused and this is a
throw-away group. We'll wait one night and if they don't move..."
He looked up and shook his head as a group of Humvees,
with the one in the lead sporting the blue light of an MP vehicle,
raced down the road at high speed. The side of the Humvees were
painted with the American flag and a large yellow blazon he
didn't recognize.
"Fucking IFOR," Ctibor growled. "Fucking Americans. Why
can't they just go back to their own damned..."
He paused as the vehicles screached to a stop and began
disgorging troops in full body armor.
Yarov started to back away from the Lada and stopped as an
M-16 was thrust in his face.
"Up against the wall, dirt bag!" the American private from
the Fifth Cavalry screamed, grabbing his arm and turning him
around. "Hands above your head."
He twisted his head sideways and growled as the white van
sedately drove out of the main entrance to the Embassy. As it
passed the street scene of American trooops rounding up
"dangerous terrorists", whoever was driving tooted their horn in
farewell.
Fucking Americans.
Chapter Twenty-Six
"Jenkins," Mike said, picking up the phone.
The 757 was configured with a large passenger area in the
rear and a small office compartment up front. Mike was currently
in the office, discussing the recent mission with Vanner and
Adams.
"This is Captain Hardesty," the pilot said, dryly. "You might
want to know that we are now 'feet wet' over the
Adriatic."
"Thanks," Mike said, chuckling. "Feet wet" was a military
term for leaving an area of operations over the water. Dating
back to the Vietnam War it was the traditional call that the unit
and aircraft were safe from interference by hostiles. "I'll be even
more happy when we're feet wet over the Atlantic
."
"I'll give you a call," Hardesty replied. "We will, however,
be refueling in England
. One hopes that this charter will not cause
inconvenient questions to be raised upon landing."
"Unlikely," Mike said, smiling. "I think that even if any
questions are being raised, the British Government is going to be
more than willing to avoid them given some of the information
we've probably acquired."
"I've got at least one name from the British Foreign Office,"
Vanner said, looking at his notes. "I haven't translated the file,
yet."
"More than willing," Mike repeated.
"I see," Hardesty replied. "Very well. Flight time to Las Vegas
with stops to refuel will be about twenty hours. You
might want to get some rest. We'll also be picking up a change of
pilots in England
. They're...briefed."
"Good to hear," Mike said. "Talk later."
"So far, we're not getting real far on the data we picked up in
Rozaje," Vanner said. "The translation is going really slow. But
there's one bright spot. We don't have their DVDs, but the video
was stored on the computer and then the DVDs were burned
from it. I'm going to run a file reconstructor on the data and see
if we can find any bits from the previous videos. It doesn't look
like they cleaned the computer but the bits are going to be
partial."
"Tell me what you get," Mike said, yawning. "Can any of the
girls run the program?"
"Yeah," Vanner replied. "I'm going to let them work it while
I get some shut-eye. But I want to scan the files. The girls have
seen just enough of this stuff to know they don't want to see any
more."
"Agreed," Mike said, tightly. "Get started on it and then get
some rest. We're going to need you fresh in Vegas."
"Will do," Vanner said, picking up the laptop and leaving the
office.
"If we have to go to Lunari it's going to be tough," Adams said after the intel specialist had left.
"We don't have much on it, but what I've been able to glean
indicates that the town's a fucking fortress. More than one, since
all the gangs have houses there and they don't trust each other."
"We might be able to do something with that," Mike said,
yawning again. "What goes for Vanner, goes for you, too. Get
some rest. I'm going to need you alert whenever we get there."
"I was planning on it," Adams said,
getting up. "You too."
"I will," Mike replied. "I'm going to watch some news and
then rack out." The couch in the compartment converted to a bed
and he was planning on taking the unusual step of using "rank
has it's privileges".
"See you in the morning," Adams
said. "Or whenever it's going to be."
* * *
Mike flipped open his own laptop and scanned the news. The
top news story on the Fox site was the search for a missing girl in
Kansas
. Which meant dick all to him. Next down was the
battle over the current Supreme Court nominee. The nominee
was stuck in committee, naturally. The liberals were screaming
about the nominee's "non-mainstream" religious views, by which
they meant he was a practicing Catholic and had firm views on
abortion and other "life" issues. And Fullbright was the
Chairman of the committee, he noted.
It was assumed he would be voting with the president but
he'd hardly been supporting the nominee in the last few days
which was worth fifteen minutes of comment from political and
legal experts. The senator, it seemed, had twice missed
opportunities to move the nominee out of committee and on to a
floor vote.
France
was trying to crack down on Islamic
jihadists and having a rough time. The French security forces had
been on high alert ever since the previous year when a nuke was
set to blow in Paris
. However, the French judiciary and various liberal
groups were creating road-block after road-block against
deportation of even the most extremist members of the Islamics.
The majority of the Islamics were found in southern France and around Paris
. And the majority of those were housed in
"government housing" neighborhoods composed of block after
block of massive apartment buildings. The neighborhoods had
become "no-go" zones for the police and in places there had been
pitched battles that were nearly the equal of the "insurgency"
period in Iraq
. It hadn't, quite, reached the level of civil
war, but if it were anywhere but France
the news media would be all over it. As it
was, the only term that came to mind was "downplayed." There
was one shot in the background of what had to be an RPG being
fired at French police, who appeared to be in retreat. IT sure as
hell didn't look good and he was glad he was out of it. He might
drop a line to the Chataneuf and see how bad it was.
And in the tail end of the news was a poll showing that the
lead in the presidential polls was Barbara Watson, former First
Lady, junior senator from Massachusetts
and a card carrying bitch from hell. If there was
anything she hated more than conservative political positions it
was the military. Still deployed all over the world trying to fight
the good fight, the military was sure to be gutted, War on Terror
or no, if she took office. And the intel groups would be
hamstrung.
Mike wasn't sure if the news was just particularly bad or if it
was just fatigue. But it seemed like everything he had worked for
most of his life was going down the tubes. The only good news
was that the Georgian government seemed to be stabilizing and
even the Ossetians were coming to the table. The way things were
going, Georgia
was going to be a better place for him to
live, all around, than the States.
Thoroughly depressed, he killed the TV and the lights and
lay back, watching the stars through the narrow windows of the
plane.
* * *
Mike rolled to his feet, disoriented, as the plane began its
descent. He rubbed his eyes and looked out the window, still
disoriented. According to his watch it was 8AM, but the sun still
wasn't up. Oh, yeah, they were flying with the sun. This was
going to get annoying. Jet lag is a bitch.
"Ladies and gentlemen, we're beginning our descent to Gatwick
Airport in
England
," Captain Hardesty intoned. "Please
reconfigure your seats and such like for landing. We'll be
refueling and picking up breakfast. I'd appreciate it if the English
speakers could translate, since my knowledge of Georgian is
sadly lacking. Mr. Jenkins, if you could pick up the phone,
please?"
"Jenkins."
"We've received an inflight advisory that members of the
British Government will be visiting with us while we're in England
," Hardesty said, neutrally.
"Oh, really?" Mike asked. "I'm going to need to make some
phone calls."
"Please do," Hardesty said. "As long as they don't get my
plane impounded and my pilot's license pulled. I am officially
disavowing any suspicion of illicit activities, I might add."
"Nice to know," Mike said, chuckling as he hung up the
phone. He dialed a number from memory before checking his
watch. It was still the middle of the night in the US
.
"Office of Special Operations Liaison, Navy Captain Parker,
speaking. How may I help you, sir or ma'am."
"That's a mouthful, Captain," Mike said. "Mike Jenkins. I'm
checking in. We're landing in
England
and we're apparently getting a deputation
from the Brits. Comments?"
"Unknown at this time, Mr. Jenkins," Parker said after a
moment. "I'll need to make some calls."
"Please do," Mike said. He picked up the phone and
connected to the rear cabin.
"Yes, Kildar?"
"Greznya? I hope you got some sleep."
"I got quite a good sleep, thank you, Kildar," Greznya
replied.
"Are Adams and Vanner functional?"
"They will be after another cup of coffee," Greznya said.
"And Vanner has something he's looking at. Would you like them
to step up front?"
"No, I'm going to head back," Mike said. "See you in a bit."
* * *
The rear of the plane was configured for about twice as
many people as there were Keldara so Keldara were sprawled
everywhere. Adams was getting them up
and the seats reconfigured as Mike stepped through the door.
"Be with you in a second, Mike," Adams called.
There were two flight attendants on the plane and Mike
waved one of them over.
"Is there a way to access the intercom back here?" Mike
asked.
"Right here, sir," the woman said, picking up a phone and
hitting the appropriate button.
"Rise and shine, Keldara," Mike said in the Keldara dialect
of Georgian, which he was fairly sure the crew wouldn't be able
to understand. "We're about to land in England
. When we do we're going to be getting a
visit from some representatives of the British government. I'm
not sure what they're going to be asking about, but I suspect it
has to do with our visit to
Romania
and points south. In that case, nobody
speaks English at all well and understands it even less. If it comes
down to lawyers, guns and money we've got all three on our side
as well as some very interesting video footage. Enough about
that, though.
"As you all know, we're headed for the US
to attend a convention and try to sell our
beer. In addition, I'll be meeting with members of the US
government and will be discussing our
recent trip. Hopefully, we'll be able to trade for some intelligence
on our next objective. But that's for me to worry about. What
you are going to be doing is selling beer. Gurun will be running
that side of things. I don't want any caillean stuff to interfere.
Gurun has done a good job this far and it's time for us to
backstop him. The girls will be wearing traditional dress, handing
out beer and smiling at the customers. The boys will be making
sure the customers keep their hands to themselves. Pictures may
be taken. In that case, smile for the camera. I don't know how
much of it Adams, Vanner and I will be available for, so you're
mostly going to be on your own.
"Las Vegas is called Sin
City
. There are various vices available to the visitor. But
I know that the Keldara are far too meek and gentle to engage in
such things as fornicating with prostitutes, gambling and
drinking."
He waited for the expected chuckles to die down and then
shook his head.
"Okay, so maybe you're not. But there are lots of ways to get
in trouble that you're not aware of. So most of the trip I'd like
you to stay around your rooms or down at the booth on your
schedule, which we'll come up with and publish. I'll try to
squeeze out some free time so you can see the town with local
guides. After the convention, though, I suspect it will be back
into the belly of the beast. So have as much fun as you can."
"Kildar," one of the Keldara women said as he hung up.
"Phone."
"Jenkins," Mike said, picking up the handset.
"Parker," the caller said, briefly. "Answer to your question:
Your activities came to the attention of MI-6. They put the
Georgians together with the Americans and came up with you as
being the likely person. When we were questioned on it,
routinely, we were non-committal. They apparently have specific
concerns, unspecified according to the report. My guess is that
they want to talk about their unspecified concerns."
"We're carrying out gear," Mike pointed out. "A search of
the plane will lead to embarassing questions. For that matter,
we're going to need some interference run in the States."
"You're not debarking or unloading until Las Vegas
, right?" Parker asked.
"Correct."
"It's handled," Parker said. "When you land in Vegas, get
your troops settled in at whatever their doing. You'll be
contacted at your hotel and flown out to Nellis for debrief and
data comparison."
"Got it," Mike said. "Anything else?"
"Not here."
"Out, then," Mike said, hanging up the phone.
"Kildar," Vanner said as he finished. "We've got something."
"Something useful?" Mike asked. "Finally?"
"Very."
* * *
"There were over two hundred file snippets on the hard
drive," Vanner said, leaving his trayback down with the laptop on
it as the plane descended. "I haven't had time to look at all of
them, much less get a feel for who all the people on them are, but
I found this..."
He hit play and the screen showed a masked but naked man
in bed with two women, girls really. One of them Mike
recognized immediately as their target, the other was unknown.
"The other female is Ludmilla Seventy-Eight," Vanner said,
continuing to let the video stream without sound. The scene was
pretty clear. Neither of the women were having fun as the man
worked "Ludmilla" over with what looked like a soldiering iron
and a pair of pliers. The target, Natalya, was simply chained to
the bed in a position where she had to watch.
"The video is broken, but the end is there," Vanner
continued in a strained voice.
The next snippet showed the same scene, but in that portion
Ludmilla was on her face with the masked man apparently taking
her anally. From what was visible of her back, she had apparently
been whipped in one of the missing segments. As Mike watched,
the masked man wrapped a thin cord around the girl's neck and
strangled her while he was taking her. When her struggles had
ended, permanently, the man got off of her and the video abruptly
ended.
"There's no way to tell that that's Fullbright," Mike
commented.
"Well, there's one corroborating item," Vanner said, backing
the video up and turning on the sound while handing Mike a pair
of earphones.
Mike didn't really want to watch the video again but he put
on the earphones anyway.
"Fucking bitch," the masked man snarled. "Little
fucking whore. I'm going to do you in every hole and then
fucking kill you. You're playing with the big boys, now! Beg me
for your life and you might live, bitch..."
The video continued in the same vein for some time and
Mike finally hit the pause button.
"And?" he asked.
"Here's a video of Fullbright talking to the cameras," Vanner
said.
Mike watched that video as well and listened to the voice
with his eyes closed then played the snuff film as well with his
eyes closed.
"Same voice," Mike said, shaking his head.
"I thought so, too," Vanner said. "But something was
bugging me about it. So I took a good look at the video."
He brought up a screen capture in PhotoShop. The capture
was of the masked man, stretched out next to the murdered girl
and working her over. He'd apparently stretched his back and he
was at full height.
"The bed is a standard European double," Vanner said,
bringing up a ruler tool. "The height of the bed is 78 inches." He
laid the ruler down and got a length off of it. "Senator Fullbright
is six foot one or seventy-three inches." He laid the ruler down
and got the height off of the figure in the video.
"Doing the math," he continued, pulling out a cocktail
napkin and sketching the numbers on it, "I get that the guy in the
video is only five feet ten inches tall. More like five nine. Max of
five eleven."
"So what's with the voice?" Mike asked. Something was
nagging at him about the video but he couldn't put his finger on
it.
"Various ways it could be cloaked," Vanner said, shrugging
as the wheels chirped on touch-down. "There's a device that goes
on the vocal chords that can change a voice. Not perfectly, but
close enough for this. Not my area of expertise and I don't have
the equipment to do a really tight voice compare. But what this
looks like is a deliberate frame of the senator by person or
persons unknown."
"And you can bet that Traskel is in it up to his patrician
eyeballs."
Chapter Twenty-Seven
"Mr. Jenkins," the first man through the door said, holding
out a limp hand to be shaken. "Horace Wythe-Harcourt of the
Foreign Office. A pleasure to meet you."
"And you, sir," Mike said, nodding as two more men came
through the door of the plane.
"Jasper Drake, MI-5," the second man said, nodding. "And
my counterpart from MI-6, John Carlson-Smith." Drake was tall
and slender with an air of respectability about him that would
have done for a banker.
"Pleasure," Carlson-Smith said, shaking Mike's hand firmly.
Carlson-Smith was a short-coupled, broadly-muscled blonde
man with a nose twisted from a fight.
"What can I do for you, gentlemen?" Mike asked, waving
them to seats in the office compartment.
"To be clear about our intentions," Wythe-Harcourt said,
smiling, "we're not going to ask you about the special operations
group you have on the plane or your cargo."
"About forty automatic weapons, RPG launchers,
ammunition for both and sundry other devices of destruction,"
Carlson-Smith said, also smiling. "Why'd you leave the Semtek?
Certainly not space considerations. We have people in the Zagreb
airport, you see."
"So what are you going to ask about?" Mike said, ignoring
the question.
"We believe that you have recovered intelligence from a
villa outside of the town of Rozaje
," Drake replied, smoothly. "It has come to our
attention that a member of the British Government has recently
been making decisions that are...somewhat out or character.
Actually, three members. All of whom recently served in the
Balkans and all of whom have known proclivities that might
have been...assuaged in that villa."
"Crap," Mike muttered. "You've got yourself a real problem,
then."
"You don't have intel?" Carlson asked. "I'm surprised. From
the after action report it was a very clean op."
"Cards on the table and no repercussions, then?" Mike said,
smiling also.
"None," Carlson-Smith replied, directly. "We just want the
take."
"That's going to be a problem," Mike said. "There's three
'takes.' They kept paper records and made videos. But the vids
were then burnt to DVD and sent elsewhere. There are some
remaining snippets on a hard drive. We've got the harddrive and
the paper records, which are in Albanian, but not the DVDs. And
I'm taking all of it to the US
. We've got a higher priority problem than
a couple of diplomats."
"I'm not sure that will work," Wythe-Harcourt said,
smoothly. "The problem is that there may or may not be other
records that are a higher priority problem, as you put it, for Her
Majesty's Government as well as allied governments. We would
very much prefer that the information remain close, if you will."
"So what you're saying is that we're not leaving with our
intel?" Mike asked, bluntly.
"We assure you that all the information that is germane will
be handed over to the American government," Wythe-Harcourt
said, calmly. "It's simply that we actively prefer that those items
of interest to Her Majesty's Government not go astray as it were."
"Well, then we've got ourselves a problem," Mike said, still
smiling. "You see, there is information that is of very great
importance to the people and government of the United States
in that intel. So you'll see where I've got
an issue with turning it over to you. At least as much of an issue,
if not a greater one, than you have turning it over to the US
government. I see a very ugly stalemate."
"We need that harddrive," Carlson-Smith said, tightly.
"Calmly, John," Wythe-Harcourt said, smoothly. "This is
why we are negotiating."
"I'm not sure what the basis of negotiations would be," Mike
said, shrugging. "You're not going to let me take off with the
intel and I'm not going to turn it over. I didn't get rid of all my
Semtek, by the way, and you're going to have a very hard time
capturing the data before it's destroyed, given that I've got twenty
top-flight troops on the plane. SAS isn't going to do you much
good except to get the data destroyed and make one hell of a
mess. And an international incident between two countries that
have a very special relationship."
"So you're not going to give it up?" Drake asked, musingly.
"Over my dead body," Mike said. "Literally. That is how
you're going to have to get it. And the bodies of my troopers."
"Calmly, Mr. Jenkins," Wythe-Harcourt said, sighing.
"Calmly. As I said, negotiations. Your concern is understandable.
Is ours?"
"It's a matter of relative concern," Mike said. "There is data
in there, that we have found, that is uncontrovertible proof of
crimes comitted by a senior member of the
US
government. That's not going anywhere
but a very secure facility in the
US
. And we're not sure we have all of it.
Further, there may be other data as dangerous. This data is
extremely sensitive but right now all you have is the Sword of
Damocles hanging over a few of your minor diplomats. That's a
world of difference from what the US
is looking at. Relative concern."
"We have information that there may be a higher degree of
concern for Her Majesty's Government," Wythe-Harcourt said,
deadpan.
"How high?" Mike asked, carefully.
"Very high," Carlson-Smith practically snarled. "Very
damned high."
"Stalemate again," Mike said, shrugging. "Anybody?
Because I'm not planning on going home empty handed. And
Gatwick
Airport
is a lousy place for a firefight, I'll also admit.
People would ask questions and there'd be all sorts of media
and..." He shrugged and smiled. "For that matter, they'd ask
questions if the plane simply sat here for a few days." He paused
for a moment and then shrugged.
"Let me bring someone else into the discussion," Mike said,
musingly. "If I may?"
"Someone...discreet?" Wythe-Harcourt asked.
"My intel specialist," Mike said. "Former Marine intercept
specialist. Did time with the NSA. Good enough?"
"I suppose," Drake said.
Mike picked up the phone and hit the connection to the rear.
"Send Vanner up. Tell him to bring his computer and notes," he
said then turned back to the threesome. "Care for some coffee
while we wait? Or, pardon, tea?"
* * *
"Yeah, boss?" Vanner said when he came through the door.
"These gentlemen are from the British Government," Mike
said, waving him to a seat. "They think there are some Rozaje
files that are important to them. Important enough that we're not
taking off until we turn over all our intel. I told them over my
dead body. And yours, by the way."
"Oh," Vanner said in thought. "Yeah, I guess it would be
over mine, too. Hell, even the girls'. Even if they didn't know
why."
"So let's discuss the take with these gentlemen and try to
come to some sort of arrangement," Mike said.
"So you're saying we don't trust the Brits with this stuff and
they don't trust us?" Vanner asked.
"That would sum it up nicely," Drake said, dryly.
"I think that's it," Mike said, frowning at the Brits. "I,
frankly, don't know any of you from Adam. And strange things
happen with intel in bureaucracies. I know the people I'm going
to be turning this over to. I trust them not to abuse it."
"And for our part, I must add that we most especially do not
trust you," Wythe-Harcourt admitted. "You're a free agent, an
international security contractor with a very shady reputation
holding the blackmail equivalent of a nuclear weapon."
"There is that," Mike said with a grin. "And I've got copies,
moreover. Horrible thing. Vanner, how many video clips did you
get?"
"There were a bit over two hundred listed 'scenes' in the
files," Vanner said, temporizing. "I haven't translated all of them,
but there about the same number of video clips, most of them
incomplete. Natalya was listed on three scenes before being
translated. I cross-referenced those scene files and found the one
we were looking for in the harcopy. But finding the video was
more luck than anything. I had to scan through clips of the scenes
one by one but I found her on the seventh clip. That was the one I
showed you. But I don't know what is on the other scenes and
there's no file directory to cross-reference to the hardcopy files."
"There were two hundred women killed in that place?"
Wythe-Harcourt asked, his eyes wide.
"Approximately," Vanner replied. "Women were not killed
in all of the scenes but a few of them more than one was
apparently killed. The highest I found was three. I think that guy
needs to be tracked down and taken out, he apparently hardly
engaged in rape, just torture and murder."
"Later for that," Mike said. "Gentlemen, what are you
looking for? Maybe we can just extract the hardcopy files and try
to find the video clips and turn them over. Understand, the
Albanians still have the DVDs."
"I'm not sure that will be sufficient," Wythe-Harcourt
sighed. "And we'd very much like to avoid naming names at this
juncture."
"Screw this," Mike said, picking up a phone. "Greznya, get
me OSOL on the line."
"Mr. Jenkins," Wythe-Harcourt said, firmly, "I really believe
that the fewer people brought in on this..."
"And I believe that this decision is at the wrong level," Mike
replied, bluntly. "Like I said, I don't know you guys from Adam
and as you said I've got no cred in your eyes. So let's get people
with cred involved. This is too high level for us to be dicking
around with."
"I'm here at the personal orders of the Foreign Minister,"
Wythe-Harcourt said, just as bluntly.
"Head of MI-6 for me," Carlson-Smith said.
"Head of MI-5 in my case," Drake added.
"And I've got marching orders from the President," Mike
snapped. "I think I trump."
"Parker."
"You're sounding tired," Mike said.
"End of shift," Parker said. "Pierson's supposed to be in in
about an hour. What do you got?"
"The Brits are refusing to let us take off with the take," Mike
said, tightly. "They're afraid that someone senior is on camera.
Someone senior in the British government."
"Oh, joy," Parker said with a sigh. "And we have..."
"We have something very interesting," Mike said. "Among
other things, we've got data that tends to disprove our previous
intel. The person named previously does not appear to be really
present. But there is enough there for a slighly lame frame of said
person."
"Interesting," Parker replied. "We need that data."
"That's what the Brits are saying," Mike said. "And they've
got the guns to prove it."
"I hope it doesn't come to that," Parker said.
"Yeah, especially since without this take the previous
information is out there," Mike said. "We need bigger guns in on
this."
"I'll make some calls," Parker said with another sigh. "I'm
going to have to wake people up."
"Great," Mike said. "Especially since right now my body has
no idea what time it's supposed to be."
"Parker is waking up some of our more senior people,"
Mike said, picking up his coffee. "You can hang out here, or you
can call your people and tell them to start expecting very
important phone calls."
"If you don't mind, we'll stay here," Drake said, pulling out
his cellphone. "But we would like to make some calls."
* * *
"Kildar," Greznya said, sticking her head in the door.
"Colonel Pierson for you on line two."
"Got it," Mike said, picking up the phone and hitting the
connection. "Jenkins."
"Do you just enjoy kicking hornet nests?" Pierson asked.
"There I was, minding my own business, eating my breakfast like
a real human being..."
"Tell it to the Brits," Mike said, glancing over at where
Carlson-Smith was scanning the video footage and taking notes.
"I understand that you're going to get clearance soon,"
Pierson replied. "But we're going to have the Brits 'assisting us
in our investigations.'"
"Works for me," Mike said. "As long as I can take off..."
"Kildar," Greznya said, breathlessly, glancing around the
room. "A very important call on Line Three."
"I'm talking to Colonel Pierson," Mike said, covering the
receiver.
"More important!" Greznya said, her eyes wide.
"Hang on, Bob," Mike said, putting him on hold and
switching lines.
"Do you just enjoy kicking hornet nests?" the president
asked, tiredly.
"Jesus, did they get you up for this, sir?" Mike asked.
"Yes, they did," the president replied. "Actually, they got me
up to field the call from the Prime Minister. You're getting
clearance to take off if you don't already have it. When you get
here, all the data, every snip and dribble, gets carted to a base
along with your intel people. The Brits are sending over some
people to keep an eye on it at the same time. Since we were on a
very secure line, the Prime Minister told me who was suspected
of being in their video and I agree that not letting it become
public knowledge is a good idea."
"Bloody hell..." Carlson-Smith snapped, hitting a key.
"Was that who I think it is?" Vanner asked, his eyes wide.
"I think they just found what they were looking for, Mr.
President," Mike said at which four heads snapped up, even the
two glued to the computer screen. "Is it who you thought it was?
The pres already talked to your Prime Minister and he'd like to
know."
"Yes," Carlson-Smith snarled. "It is."
"They confirm, Mr. President," Mike said.
"Get that intel to the US
, now," the president ordered.
"Yes, sir," Mike said.
"And don't lose it!"
"Will do, sir," Mike replied.
"Carlson-Smith will remain with the materials for the rest of
the flight," Drake said, hanging up his phone. "You're cleared to
take off. You're to fly direct to Washington, Dulles
Airport
, refuel and then direct to Nellis Air Force Base.
You will offload your materials there, as well as your intel
specialists, and then fly to Las Vegas
. The landing in Nellis will not be recorded. We'll
brief your pilot on the new itinerary. Mr. Wythe-Harcourt and I
will debark and brief our respective bosses."
"Well, I just debriefed the only guy I consider in the
category," Mike said, waving the phone. "Who was it, by the
way?"
"That's none of your business," Carlson-Smith snapped.
"The British Home Secretary," Vanner replied. "And Jesus
does that guy have a tiny dick."
Chapter Twenty-Eight
"Daria," Mike said, sitting down next to the girl. "I'm sorry, I
haven't been ignoring you. There's just a lot going on."
A lot was an understatement. Despite the president's
assurances, various hoops had to be jumped through. Among
other things, it turned out that Carlson-Smith didn't have his
passport with him. Mike had offered one of the blank ones from
the Georgian Embassy, but that had been politely declined. The
delay, however, even with no problems in the US, was going to make their
arrival in Las Vegas
tricky at best. Mike had, along the way, managed to
convince people that he had a real need to go to Vegas first, so
the landing in Nellis had been put off until the Keldara, and
Mike, were dropped in Vegas. Which left just a few little details
to clean up.
"I understand, Kildar," Daria replied, smiling. "How is it
going?"
"Well, we're on our way at last," Mike said. "But I was
wondering if you could do me a few favors."
"Of course," Daria said, smiling. "Here?" she added with a
wink.
"Now, now," Mike said, shaking his head. "I need you to call
ahead and talk to Gurun. Find hotel rooms for everyone. Some of
us might not actually make it to Vegas but I want everyone to
have a room. We probably can't..."
"This is done," Daria said, pulling out a notebook. "The
group that cancelled at the convention had a block of rooms
reserved. I found out about it and contacted them. They still had
the rooms held, but had finally decided that they were not
attending. I secured that block of rooms for us at a very
reasonable rate. Since we needed some more space, and the hotel
was mostly booked, I also secured the penthouse suite for your
use, anticipating that Chief Adams and Mr. Vanner would be
using it as well. I asked about information security on the room
and the hotel has assured me that since the usual users of the
room are major American businessmen who often discuss
proprietary business in the penthouse that it is quite secure. I
spoke with Gurun, who is a very nice man, and ensured that there
was access to food for the Keldara. I also talked to the intel girls
and they have sufficient 'traditional native costumes' for the
convention."
"Oh," Mike replied.
"I spoke with Chief Adams as well," Daria continued.
"We're at about sixty percent on small arms ammunition, one
hundred percent on RPGs and have a sufficiency of grenades. He
wanted me to remind you that we need more Semtek and that if
we have to go into Lunari that we're probably going to need more
troops. We also need resupply on first aid equipment. And we
only have sufficient rations for one day for the entire group." She
paused, looked at his expression and shrugged. "I'm trained as a
secretary and manager. And my father was a colonel in the
Ukrainian Army."
Mike opened his mouth to reply then shut it.
"Is there anything for me to do?" he asked, somewhat
plaintively.
"Just sign the appropriate checks," Daria said, smiling
prettily. "Oh, and I need your passport."
"Why?" Mike asked, pulling it out.
"We're hoping you have all the right entry and exit stamps,"
Daria replied, flipping through the passport. "And you do."
"What's that going to get us?" Mike asked, curiously.
"Mr. Vanner thinks that he can create stamps for the rest of
the passports from this," Daria said, tucking the passport away
and making a note. "We're going to need Croatian entry and exit
stamps, at the very least. And I think that's it."
"Are we paying you?" Mike asked, incredulously.
"No, as a matter of fact," Daria said, shrugging. "But I'm
trying to help."
"In that case, take a note to double your pay," Mike said,
smiling. "Seriously, Anastasia does some of this for me in Georgia
but I could use a real assistant. And you
seem to have things remarkably under control. Are you open to a
job offer?"
"Does it involve shooting people?" Daria asked, carefully.
"No," Mike said then shrugged. "I'd suggest that you take
some training, purely for defense. But what I'm thinking of is
what you're doing, a personnel and logistics person for missions,
assuming there are other missions, and being my personal
assistant. I suspect that in
Georgia
you're going to be bored, but when we're
doing things like this you sure won't be."
"What would something like that pay?" Daria asked,
carefully.
"Well, it would include room and board at the caravanserai,"
Mike pointed out. "On the other hand, there's not much to do
there. As to the pay, we can work that out and find something
equitable."
"And what about...the other?" Daria asked, just as
cautiously.
"What other...oh," Mike said then shrugged. "Up to you. If
you consider it a duty, don't worry about it. I've got more women
problems than I'd prefer. On the other hand, if you consider it a
fringe benefit we can work something out," he added with a grin.
"For now, I think I'd put it in the category of 'fringe
benefit,'" Daria said, smiling back. "I accept the job offer. We'll
work out the pay."
"Thanks," Mike said, standing up. "Get used to finding out-
of-the-way buildings to beat people to death in."
"I'm sure they'll deserve it," Daria said, smiling darkly.
* * *
"So how are you going to use my passport to fix everybody
else's?" Mike asked Vanner. "Copy the pages?"
The intel specialist was seated at a table at the rear of the
plane, working on his computer.
"Won't work," Vanner said. "The Georgian passports have
different watermarks. I scanned in all the entry and exit stamps on
your passport including most especially the Croatian one. Now
I'm creating a three-D model of what the stamp looks like," he
continued, spinning the computer around so Mike could see.
"Very nice," Mike said, dryly. "It looks like a stamp. And
that gives us...what?"
"Well," Vanner said, hitting a key and looking at a large item
that looked vaguely like a printer on the floor, "in about fifteen
minutes it should give us a Croatian entry stamp."
"How?" Mike asked.
"That," Vanner said, pointing at the box, "is a desk-top
manufacturing device. Give it any sufficiently small three
dimensional design and it can make it. Right there."
"You're kidding," Mike said, furrowing his brow. "Right?"
"Nope," Vanner said, grinning. "It's no good for multi-part
machinery but it can make any solid object that's smaller than its
collection area. The technique is called sintering. The machine
takes the CAD diagram and splits it into thin layers. The way it
used to work is that each layer would be laid down and then
welded to the lower layer, sintered actually. This one is a rapid
system that lays the whole model down, layer by layer, then heats
the item up and forms it in one go."
"I almost hate to ask how much that thing cost," Mike said,
shaking his head.
"It was the first run of a new generation of them," Vanner
replied. "And a lot. But I thought it might be useful to have
along. And I got a deal on it as a beta tester."
"We're going to need more than one," Mike said, thinking
about the future.
"Well, I've got an in with the manufacturer," Vanner said,
grinning.
* * *
"You do have ink, right?" Mike asked as Vanner slid the still
hot stamp into a holder. It sure looked like an entry stamp.
"Fourteen different colors and shades," Vanner admitted. "I
mean, I'm not a professional forger, but I can hum a few bars."
He picked up a piece of paper and opened up a stamp pad, Mike's
passport open on the table in front of him. Humming, he inked
the stamp and then stamped it on the piece of paper.
"Looks...pretty much the same," Mike admitted.
"It should, it was made from this model," Vanner said. "I had
to work out the background watermark and I think that might
have led to some thin spots..." He pulled out a loop and
considered the stamped paper under the light. "Yeah, there are
some rough spots. But if it's not a close inspection it should
work. And if any of these passports get a close inspection we're
going to have problems."
"Well, we should be okay on the US
end," Mike said. "Where's the MI-6 guy?"
"Going over the hardcopy files," Vanner said. "Turns out he
speaks and reads Albanian."
"I hope he's not developing more intel than we'd like," Mike
said. "Where?"
"Front of the compartment," Vanner replied. "I'm going to
get started on the exit stamp..."
* * *
"This is horrible stuff," Carlson-Smith said, skipping to the
next video.
"See anyone you recognize?" Mike asked.
"Unfortunately, yes," Carlson-Smith said, tightly. "I was
assigned to the Kosovo sector for some time and I recognize
several gentlemen who are or were similarly assigned."
"Interesting that they were able to get them there," Mike
said. "I suppose you've also seen the video that we're interested
in."
"Vanner pointed out the file," Carlson-Smith said. "I've
avoided it. That's for you Yanks to fix up. The rest of this is
going to be more... difficult. They've compromised the bloody
head of the French force in Kosovo. And he's been promoted.
He's in charge of the military-civilian liaison office in France that's supposedly been
backstopping Interior Ministry Forces on rounding up France
's Islamics. Which has been notably
unsuccessful, I might add."
"I'm missing something," Mike admitted.
"The Albanians have been working with the muj for some
time," Carlson-Smith said, dryly. "Nothing that the bloody media
is willing to bring up, but they trade information among other
things. I'd give odds that our friend General Robisseau has been
feeding information to the targets in France
. Probably because he was 'encouraged' to
do so by his Albanian friends."
"Crap," Mike muttered. "Any Georgians in there?"
"Not as far as I can tell," Carlson-Smith said with a chuckle.
"But there's more than one American and quite a few Japanese.
Check this one out," he added, hunting in the files for a moment.
Mike watched the resulting playback for a moment and then
turned away.
"So?" he asked. "I've seen a couple."
"Didn't recognize the gentleman?" the MI-6 agent asked,
smiling thinly. "One of your bloody liberal strategists, mate.
Been on TV any number of time. Big money collector."
"Cleaning this up is going to be a nightmare," Mike
admitted. "Multiple countries, multiple jurisdictions. And all
people that could afford the squeeze, which means either rich or
powerful or, generally, both. Who bells the cat?"
"Who indeed, mate," Carlson-Smith said, jumping to
another file. "Bloody hell, another one. Junior member of the
Foreign Service. Works with the UN in Kosovo. Refugee relief.
Rich liberal poofter. I'd have guessed him for being under the
whip, not holding it."
"I'd think he'd be getting his pussy from refugees," Mike
noted.
"He probably was," the MI-6 agent admitted. "But getting rid
of the bodies is tough. And when you abuse them beyond a
certain point, they go talking to the press. That gets your career
sidetracked. You have to leave the Foreign Service and go work
for an NGO, which doesn't have as good of benefits, does it?"
"Point," Mike said. "What are the benefits of working for
MI-6?"
"You get to look at really nasty porn," Carlson-Smith said,
darkly. "And you get to deal with low-lifes and drug-dealers.
Then there's the terrorist informers, most of whom don't actually
know anything, but are more than willing to take cash for
nothing. On the other hand, it's got great dental."
"Sounds great," Mike opined. "James Bond and all that."
"People think that," Carlson-Smith said with a sigh. "But it's
more like your CIA, isn't it? I mean, yes, we get weapons training
in class and all that, but we never bloody use the things. I haven't
drawn my weapon in my whole career and very rarely carry
anything for that matter. Very few of us do. Neither do your CIA
intel fellows, believe me. The paramilitary types like NVA are a
different story, of course. They're the wet-work fellows."
"So what do you do?" Mike asked, curiously.
"As I said, run around dealing with low-lifes and trying to
get someone to tell us something true," the MI-6 agent said,
shrugging. "You build up a group of contacts and get
information in any way that you can. It's more glad-handing than
running around with beautiful women and killing super-villains.
Most of it's quite boring, really."
"Sounds that way," Mike said with a snort. "I'll take James
Bond any day."
"I'd rather be doing that than this, mate," Carlson-Smith said.
"Among other things, there are things that man is not wought to
know or something like that. And this is one of them. Something
you'd best keep in mind."
"What do you mean?" Mike asked, frowning.
"There are going to be quite a few very powerful and very
unhappy people when this particular ant-pile gets kicked over,"
the Brit said, shutting down the video program. "I'm covered
since I'm just a dumb bureaucrat doing my job. Except for those
IRA bastards, nobody personally cares about one agent or
another. Sure, the odd muj will have a wack at us, but that's just
business. You they're going to hold personally responsible. The
people on these files, they're going to lose and lose big. But so
are their supporters and sponsors. And they're still, mostly, going
to be in power, either directly or indirectly. Even if parties fall as
the result, which they just might. Just by finding these files,
you've made some powerful enemies."
Mike thought about that and shrugged.
"Let 'em come."
Chapter Twenty-Nine
"Everybody has their customs and immigration form filled
out," Adams said as Mike waited
nervously for the inspectors from BCIS to board the plane.
They'd stopped at Dulles to take on fuel and for clearance and
Pierson had assured him that clearances were taken care of. But
after the stop in Britain
, Mike was half anticipating being taken
into custody along with the whole team.
The plane had docked to a tubeway. Mike wasn't in a
position to see down the hallway but he could hear the footsteps
approaching and was surprised by the degree of reaction. He'd
gotten shot to ribbons on more than one occasion, but for some
reason this meeting was filling him with dread. Probably as a
result of the conversation with Carlson-Smith. The MI-6 agent
was calm as toast, however. As he'd said, nobody was going to
hold him personally responsible for the files. Hell, the data on the
computers was illegal, forget the guns and ammo in the cargo
hold!
The customs inspector stepped through the door and shook
Hardesty's hand and it took Mike longer than it should have to
process the face.
"My name's Pierson," Colonel Pierson said, smiling at
Hardesty disarmingly. "I'll be processing your crew and
passenger's manifest while my associate does a quick check of
your cargo hold."
"A pleasure to meet you," Captain Hardesty said,
swallowing nervously.
"Pierson?" Mike asked, his eyes widening at the sight of the
Army colonel in the uniform of a custom's agent.
"Ah, Mr. Jenkins, I presume?" Pierson said, smiling. "Let me
just check on the crew's documentation and I'll be with you and
your...group in a moment."
* * *
"Yes, BCIS is shitting a brick," Pierson said when he'd sat
Mike down with a stiff bourbon. "And State is shitting a brick.
And the National Security Council is shitting a brick. Which is
why I'm here instead of a regular inspector and why a Navy
commander from OSOL is carefully ignoring the contents of the
hold. Satisfied?"
"I should have trusted you when you said it'd be taken care
of," Mike admitted, smiling finally. "But that's not the only
reason you're here."
"No," Pierson admitted, looking over at the MI-6 agent who
was watching him carefully. "And, as agreed, all the original files
are going to Nellis for your review, Agent Carlson-Smith. But
you said Fullbright wasn't the culprit and the President wants that
data as soon as possible."
"Let me get Vanner," Mike said, picking up the phone.
It took Vanner a few minutes to run through his song and
dance again but when he did Pierson leaned back and nodded in
satisfaction.
"Fullbright's been acting weird, lately," Pierson said. "I
mean, yes, he's his own man and he works the Senate as he needs
to, cutting deals, concentrating on what he thinks is important.
But the decisions, the votes and actions he's been taking, are
completely out of his normal line."
"The Supreme Court nominee?" Mike asked.
"That's just the most noticeable," Pierson replied, nodding
again. "But that's the big one. He's stalling the guy in the Senate.
It's the first changed vote that the president has had a chance to
place on the bench, a conservative for a liberal. The news media
is screaming, the liberals are screaming and Fullbright should be
acting decisively. Instead, it's like he's trying to run out the clock
or something."
"So somebody is blackmailing him with the video?" Mike
asked. "Traskel?"
"That would be the prime suspect," Pierson admitted. "But
that doesn't mean it's him. It could be any enemy of Fullbright's
normal positions. And it would be a stupidly long-ball shot for
somebody like Traskel. He's been in the Senate for years, is likely
to stay there for years, there's no reason for him to have set this
up."
"Well, it's connected to Traskel somehow," Mike said,
frowning. "I mean, he knew to send me after this particular girl.
And why her, I wonder?"
"Natalya's in the video but she survived the scene,"
Carlson-Smith said. "She's more likely than most to be able to
identify the perp."
"There's another way to do it," Vanner said. "Voice print.
The person has had his voice modified, but you're still going to
be able to pull out some data and get a voice recognition on
them."
"We'd have to have a matching voice print," Pierson pointed
out.
"Echelon could run it in a couple of hours," Vanner said,
shrugging.
Echelon was a "black" operation of the NSA that monitored
world-wide voice and internet communications searching for
keywords.
"Okay, assuming that Echelon really exists..." Pierson said,
dryly.
"I used to work at No-Such-Agency," Vanner said, just as
dryly, using the nickname for the NSA. "It wasn't an off-the-cuff
estimate, colonel."
"Okay, assuming we could get the NSA to admit it exists,
for this project, which has major political overtones," Pierson
said, raising his hands. "Even admitting that, the voice is
disguised and NSA won't use it, period, for investigation of
American citizens. Even under the Patriot Act. And I'm pretty
sure we don't want to open that can of worms for this. This is
horrible, but it's definitively not terrorism related. In fact,
except for being something like a constitutional crisis, it's not
even national security related!"
Pierson paused and shrugged unhappily.
"What should be done, by the book, is that the data would be
turned over to the FBI," the colonel continued. "There's a process
for that, now. Information gathered during an intelligence
operation that points to a crime committed can be forwarded to
the FBI for investigation. The problem is, the FBI doesn't have
jurisdiction. What we have here is a rape and a murder. Those are
civil crimes. They occurred in
Macedonia
which is the only jurisdiction that could
try them."
"So we either turn the data over to the Macedonians,"
Carlson-Smith said, musingly, "which would give them
blackmail material on half the governments in the Western World
or...we let them walk?"
"No," Pierson said, shaking his head. "What the president
wants to do is very quietly show the data to the appropriate
people. Quiet meetings that result in the perp simply no longer
being in anything that resembles a position of power. And it
won't matter which side of the aisle they are on, or what country
they're from. He's discussed this with the prime minister and the
prime minister is on board. But..."
"But we have to have all the data," Mike sighed. "We've got
to get the DVDs."
"And anyone associated with the Albanian operation,"
Pierson agreed. "And then there's the other side. Who bells the
cat?"
"The State Department," Mike said with a shrug.
"Nope," Pierson replied. "Currently, what you're carrying is
very closely held. And it's going to stay that way. No leaks. God-
help-us-please, no leaks."
"Agreed," Mike said, frowning. "But you're not
suggesting..."
"Either we or the Brits will handle the introductions,"
Pierson said, his face hard. "But you're going to be the
messenger."
"Like hell," Mike said, shaking his head. "No fucking way."
"You're not an operative of the American government,"
Pierson continued, tightly. "You're just...you. You'll handle the
data presentation and get the appropriate assurances from the
people you deal with on what is to be done. But the bottomline is
that every single person has to exit the government, and anything
government affiliated. No Non-governmental organizations, no
military contracts, no lobbying. They become common citizens
and disappear. Hopefully, most of them will commit suicide."
"Then we might as well scrap most of the data," Mike said,
frowning. "All we'll need is the hardcopy of who was involved,
and the DVDs."
"Agreed," Pierson said, nodding. "We'll lock down the data
in a vault and it won't ever go anywhere."
"No," Mike said, looking distant. "If I'm the guy carrying the
message, then I'm the guy holding the data. They won't trust
anyone with that data, including the United States
government. I've got a hole that's plenty
big enough for it. We'll bury it under the caravanserai. I'll tell
them where it is. And tell them to leave well enough alone. They
won't believe it if I tell them it's been destroyed, which would be
my first choice. We'll just...hold it. Someday, it will just be
history."
"I'm not sure the Prime Minister would agree with that,"
Carlson-Smith said.
"And I'm pretty sure the president wanted to keep them in
Nellis," Pierson said, frowning. "That's a big damned
responsibility to just delegate."
"Who are you talking to?" Mike asked, tightly. "Think about
how we met, Bob."
"That's different."
"How?" Mike replied. "The President and the Prime
Minister will geek. Trust me. Because this way, these things don't
hang like a sword of Damocles at every high level meeting.
They'll go from Nellis to the caravanserai and be buried. You'll
pull the data about American and British members for America and Britain
to deal with. The rest are up to me. After
we find the DVDs. Hopefully they haven't made copies."
"You'll have to make sure of that," Pierson said, darkly.
"I'm not even sure I can get the DVDs," Mike said, breaking
his stare and sighing.
"We've got improved intel," Pierson said. "Not much of it,
but some. That, too, will be available at Nellis. There's one
oustanding issue: Information control. Who knows what in your
teams?"
"The Keldara know pretty much everything about Rozaje,"
Mike said, frowning. "But the Keldara don't talk..."
"Can we trust that, though?" Carlson-Smith asked.
"Could you trust the Ghurkas?" Mike asked. "This is the
business of the Kildar. The Keldara don't talk. Even then the
information on who and what is pretty tightly restricted. I had
Vanner keep it away from the girls just because of what it was.
They've looked at the files and made some lists. But even then it's
very close. I'm not even sure that Adams
knows any names except your Foreign Service guy and the not-
Senator-Fullbright. We'll keep it close. Vanner will lock it down
as of now. Scrap the Albanian translators; we won't need them
for the rest of this."
"So it's tight," Pierson said, sighing hopefully.
"It's tight," Mike said. "And with the Keldara, and me, it will
stay that way."
"And you'll take the messenger duties," Pierson said.
"And the guard duties," Mike replied. "After we have the
DVDs. I'm going to need support for that. A lot."
"You'll get whatever we have," Pierson said. "Anything you
ask for, trust me."
"And then I get to be the Chooser of the Slain," Mike said,
grimacing. "Great. Oh, there's one more thing."
"Which is?" Carlson-Smith asked.
"When we find out what the link is to Traskel, I get to break
it to him," Mike said, darkly.
Chapter Thirty
"Gurun, it's good to see you again," Mike said, looking
around the gate area.
Las Vegas
McCarran
International
Airport was, for most visitors,
their first introduction to the state of
Nevada
. For good or ill, that first impression was of slot
machines. Lots and lots of slot machines. They seemed to be
stuck into every nook and cranny and most of them were in use
by arriving, departing and even transferring passengers trying
their luck.
Other than that, and the ads for casinos, it was much like any
other airport and the Keldara had seen a few at this point. The
group still gawked as they exited the walkway from the airplane.
"Vanner, sorry, you're going to have to forego the pleasures
of Sin
City
," Mike said, shaking the corporal's hand.
"I'll pass," Vanner said, smiling. "Been here, done that, lost
my shirt."
"I'm not planning on gambling," Mike said, looking around.
"I'm doing enough of that as it is. I'll be out to visit in a day or
two."
"Got it," Vanner said, stepping back into the tubeway.
"Good luck."
"Same," Mike said, turning back to the Keldara brewery
manager. "What do you have laid on, Gurun?"
"There is a bus waiting, Kildar," Gurun said, leading the way
into the airport. "I was not sure about luggage..."
"The Keldara have everything that we're bringing here,"
Mike said, gesturing to the Keldara troopers loaded down with
black luggage.
"We have the rooms laid on and the booth is set up," Gurun
burbled. "There was a pre-day but we were not prepared for that,
I hope it doesn't hurt sales..."
"Couldn't be helped," Mike said, feeling the effects of both
jet-lag and culture shock. Not so many hours ago, he was
running from an Albanian hit team.
"The convention begins tomorrow," Gurun continued. "It is
only three o'clock, here. The Keldara could take the evening off
and look around..."
"The Keldara are going to the hotel and going to bed," Mike
said. "With pills, if necessary. It will help reset their body clock."
"Very well, Kildar," Gurun said, his brow furrowing. "But I
need a few for set up. There is more work than I had expected.
And...I think I overestimated the trouble of setting up the booth I
designed."
"How much trouble could it be?" Mike asked.
"Much," Gurun admitted. "I truly do need some Keldara,
Kildar. Please."
"Okay, okay," Mike said, shaking his head. "We'll need four
of them functional tomorrow, but you can have at least ten."
"Thank you, Kildar," Gurun said, breathing a sigh of relief.
"Thank you. That way we should be able to get fully set up."
"I'm almost afraid to ask what you did to the booth design,"
Mike said, shaking his head.
"It is...a very noticeable booth, Kildar," the brewery manager
admitted.
"What's laid on for tomorrow?" Mike asked, trying to shake
off fatigue. He needed to be sharp. As much as the current
mission mattered to the world, getting a distributor for the
Keldara would affect them for a long time. For good or ill. It
was important and he had to simply compartmentalize the other
mission. Among other things, they couldn't even talk about it,
here.
"We will have the booth open all day," Gurun said. "Daria
sent me a roster of the female Keldara to set up a schedule. But
there is a problem."
"And that is?" Mike asked, yawning.
"There is a local law that anyone serving alcohol must be of
eighteen years or older," Gurun pointed out.
Mike blinked for a moment and then frowned. The Keldara
girls were professionals doing a tough job so it was hard for him
to remember, most of the time, that they were teenagers. Most of
them. Greznya was over eighteen and so were a couple of others.
But most of them were sixteen or seventeen. Beyond that age,
most of the Keldara women were mothers and they weren't
attached to the operational teams. He had a sudden mental image
of Litya sliding down the fast rope into the office in Club Dracul
and stripping out the computer in mere seconds. The girl had just
turned seventeen a month ago.
"There are only five of the girls who are eighteen or over,"
Gurun pointed out. "That is enough for one or two to cover the
booth all day but the convention runs for five days..."
"This is what I get for putting their real ages on their
passports," Mike said with a sigh. "And I'm not going to call DIA
and ask them for a bunch of false IDs, just to sell beer. We'll put
everyone that's of an age to work. We've got two more women
that can fill in for that matter. If the guys have do some of the
serving, fine. The rest can just be booth babes and charm the
customers."
"Very well, Kildar," Gurun said, sighing. "I had hoped you
would agree with that."
"I'm nothing if not reasonable," Mike said, smiling. "Now,
where's the bus?"
* * *
Mike had forgotten how much he hated trade-shows.
The convention was in one of those massive, echoey
convention centers that seemed to be designed as a stable for
sperm whales. It was certainly big enough; just walking from one
to the other was a work-out. One that Mike, after the stresses of
the last few days, wasn't going to bother with. He had no interest
in picking up a bag full of pens, coasters and t-shirts from beers
he was never going to drink.
The International Brewery Wholesaler's Convention had it's
good points, he had to admit. The Keldara "booth" was in the
Beer
Garden
where over forty breweries, ranging from
Annheiser-Busch to...well the Keldara with their patented
"Mountain Tiger Brew", offered free samples. Mike had tried a
couple of the other brews and then given up. There just wasn't
anything on earth that compared to Keldara beer.
And others seemed to agree. Since a few hours after their
opening, as the word got around, there had been a continuous
line for the Keldara beer. And most of the drinkers had just sort
of...hung around. Part of that was the beer, but a big part of it
was the Keldara girls.
The girls manning the booth, both those serving and those
just being friendly, were soaking up the attenion and flirting for
all they were worth. They'd never been in a situation where men
were vying for their attention and they were clearly enjoying
themselves. And the distributor reps, almost entirely male, were
enjoying themselves as well. The Keldara girls were spectacular
and so...naif that the distributors found them too charming to
resist. He wondered what most of them would think if they knew
what the girls had been doing for the last few weeks. Or that the
"bar backs" hefting the barrels like they were made of air could
probably kill everyone in the convention in less than thirty
minutes.
Gurun had done a good job on the booth as well. And he
was right, it was noticeable.
It turned out that after checking shipping costs, the amount
of beer they were taking would cost far less as a container
shipment than it did sending it by air. The problem being that
even with that amount of beer, it would only take up part of the
container. There was a way to do that, called Less Than
Truckload, but the cost difference wasn't all that great.
So Gurun had looked at the problem and, with the usual
Keldara ability to look outside the box, had decided to use most
of the container for other "stuff".
What the rest of the container held was mostly stone.
Specifically the granite the Keldara picked from the fields every
spring and used for everything from fences to house walls. It was
the same granite that the brewery was being constructed from.
With the help of the ten Keldara that Mike had loaned him,
Gurun had built a miniature Keldara "brew house", complete
with a display of original Keldara brewing methods, a small
"fence" that channeled the convention goers into the area and a
"bar" constructed of undressed granite with a wooden
countertop. It was, by far and away, the most spectactular booth
in the convention and Mike wondered whether others would try
to top it the next year.
"Are you Mr. Jenkins?" a heavyset man asked, plopping
down on the stone bench the Keldara had installed along the wall.
"Yes?" Mike said. "And you are?"
"Bob Thomas," the man said, holding up an electronic
device that looked something like a PDA.
"I'm not sure what that is," Mike admitted. Gurun had
handed him one early that morning, but Mike had parked it
behind the booth.
"It's my card," the man said, smiling. "I guess you lost
yours?"
"No, it's in the booth," Mike said. "So we trade cards with
that thing?"
"That's how it's supposed to work, yeah," Thomas said,
grinning and putting it away. "Your information is on your
badge, too. But you're the brewery owner?"
"Co-owner, sort of," Mike said, shrugging. "I set it up as a
way for the Keldara to build capital. I supplied the funds and the
land, they're supplying the labor and knowledge. I think we're
splitting the barley and hops. It's pretty complicated."
"How?" Thomas asked. "And why's an American backing a
Georgian start-up brewery?"
"The Keldara are sort of my retainers," Mike said, frowning.
"I know that's a weird way to put it, but it's the closest to reality
that I can find. I own the land they live on, their homes and most
of their tools. And I can't sell it back to them, either, legally. They
also like it that way; it's custom for them. Anyway, I bought this
farm and it came with...retainers. So I built the brewery mostly to
give the women some income. They don't have any the way that
things are set up now."
"What about the men?" Thomas asked, frowning. "If you're
talking about tenant farmers, the men aren't going to have much
income either."
"Ah, well," Mike said, quirking up one cheek. "There's a
brochure about the Mountain Tiger Militia in there, too."
"I read it," Thomas said, his brow furrowing. "I thought it
was a joke, all that stuff about defending the valley from
Chechens and stuff."
"Not at all," Mike replied. "The men get paid as part of the
militia. Some of the women, too. Actually, what you're looking
at is mostly a militia team. The girls that are chatting up the
customers are intelligence specialists. Most of them speak two to
three languages and are experts in electronic intercept or
intelligence analysis. The men are militia members, at least as
well trained as American Rangers and all of them with combat
experience. They lost a member just a few days ago."
"And they're selling beer," Thomas asked, tilting his head to
the side.
"And they're selling beer," Mike agreed. "So that they can get
some income into the valley that's not dependent upon the Kildar.
That being me."
"And if they get so successful they're independent of the
Kildar?" Thomas asked.
"Then I'll still have a very nice house in a very nice valley,"
Mike said, grinning. "And part ownership in a very nice brewery."
"So what do you do, Mr. Jenkins?" Thomas asked. "Where'd
your money come from? And how'd you end up in Georgia
?"
"Well, if I told you that I'd have to kill you," Mike said, then
laughed. "Seriously, I was a SEAL then I started a company that
made classified communications widgets. That was before 9/11
and I made money but not world class. Then, after 9/11, the
widgets got very important and I got bought out by a major
defense contractor. After that I didn't have much to do. I didn't
want to start another company so I travelled. While I was
travelling I literally got lost and ended up in Brigadoon, so to
speak. And here we are."
"Starting up a brewery isn't cheap," Thomas said. "You made
that much money selling to the defense contractor?"
"Close enough," Mike said, shrugging. "Most of the stuff
I've done, including the widgets, has been classified. I was sort of
serious that I couldn't explain where all the money came from.
But the brewery had some help from the IMF as a matching
grant. And the barley is, more or less, free. Ditto the hops and the
other ingredients. WE'll have to buy some extra stuff but not
much. And the labor is cheap to set up. If we can get a fair price
for the beer, we'll make money. The Keldara will make money. It
will take me a while to recoup my investment, maybe more time
than a lot of investors would like. But I'm in it for the long haul
and it's mostly for the Keldara."
"You like them," Thomas said, gesturing with his chin at
one of the girls who was chatting with two guys, both of whom
had the expression of pole-axed oxen.
"They're damned good people," Mike said, thoughtfully.
"Damned good."
"And the girls are pretty, too," Thomas said, grinning.
"Where'd you get the model on the poster?" he asked, gesturing
into the brewery. In pride of place over the bar was a poster sized
pic of Katrina. She had a bottle of beer that was foaming over
and her lips were pursed to sip off the excess. The caption was
"Are You Tiger Enough?". Mike was pretty sure that when that
got back to the Elders, and got explained to a few of them, he
was in for a very tough conversation.
"Katrina Makanee," Mike said, grinning. "She's
Greznya's...cousin or something. I took the picture."
"You're kidding," Thomas said, his eyes wide. "I figured you
had it shopped out."
"Nope," Mike said, still smiling. "I took all the pics in the
brochures and the posters." The pic of the girls lined up with
their bottles had been made into a banner that fronted the entire
display.
"You're a man of many talents, Mr. Jenkins," Thomas said.
"My partners and I would like to meet with you and your
manager this evening."
"Up to Gurun," Mike said, wondering what was happening
out at Nellis and when he'd be called out there. "He'll set up the
schedule. I may not be available; I have some other business
going on here in town."
"Well, I hope we're able to meet," Thomas said, heaving
himself to his feet. "It was a pleasure to meet you." Thomas
paused and looked at the booth, shaking his head. "They really
have to fight terrorists?"
"We had an attack by a short battalion, about two hundred, a
month ago," Mike said, gesturing with his chin. "The guy heaving
a barrel was one of the snipers. The girl chatting with that guy in
the blue shirt was on a mortar. The redhead serving beer was
handling the communications. So...yes."
"I hope you don't mind if I say we can use that," Thomas
said, thoughtfully. "Beer drinkers tend to be patriotic. 'Buy
Keldara beer and you're helping kill terrorists.'"
"And various other bastards," Mike said, thinking of the
most recent mission.
"Kildar," Latya said, walking over. "There is a call from the
suite. You have a call there."
Which was where the secure phone had been installed. Game
time.
"You'll have to excuse me," Mike said, nodding at Thomas.
"I hope to meet you later."
"Good luck in your other business," Thomas said, nodding
in farewell then turning to Latya with a smile.
* * *
"Jenkins," Mike said, leaning back in the seat.
"Mike, there's a jet waiting for you at the airport," Pierson
said. "We need you out there by three."
"Can do," Mike said, sighing. "Why three?"
"You'll see," Pierson said, cutting the connection.
Chapter Thirty-One
Nellis Air Force Base was one of the most secure bases in
the United States
. Plunked in the middle of thousands of
miles of just about nothing, the base was called "Dreamland"
since it was the center for testing the most advanced concept
aircraft in the world. It was from Dreamland that the entire
stealth series of aircraft had been envisioned, designed and
produced.
So when Mike landed, he wasn't expecting a tour and he
didn't get one.
The G-V jet, with window shades covered, rolled to a stop
inside a hangar before the door opened and a polite but definite
Air Force SP led him across the hangar, down a windowless
corridor and up to a security station by an elevator.
"Mr. Jenkins, your badge," the SP sergeant manning the desk
said, nodding. "Please place your hand on the scanner and your
eye up to the cup."
Mike hadn't used a retinal scanner before but it was pretty
straightforward.
"You don't have a retinal scan," Mike pointed out as a badge
with his picture on it was handed across the desk.
"We do now," the SP sergeant said. "And your fingerprints.
We normally match them, but we didn't have a comparison set."
"Don't let them get out," Mike said, frowning. "Where?"
"The elevator," the SP said, waving. "Wait for it, swipe your
badge through the reader. It will take you to your floor. Have a
nice day, sir."
Mike got on the elevator unaccompanied and swiped his
card. There wasn't even a readout so he had no idea how many
floors he was descending but it was pretty far.
"Deep here," Pierson said, greeting the elevator with a smile.
"And cold, too," Mike added; the air conditioning had to be
set to about sixty.
"It's for the computers," Pierson said, waving him into the
government green corridor directly in front of the elevator, which
was at at junction. There were doors down all the corridors, but
they all had electronic locks on them. It looked like something
from a nightmare and Mike wondered how many of the workers
down here had cracked over the years. "I'm told there are more
Crays in this facility than any single facility in the world."
"I thought NSA had a lock on them," Mike said, frowning.
"And do you really think they're in DC?"
* * *
"You guys look like you've been working hard," Mike said
when he entered the conference room. Vanner, Carlson-Smith
and one of the Keldara girls were sitting at the table just about
surrounded by paper.
"We have," Vanner said, crossly. "I thought thirty-six hour
days had ended when I got out of the Corps."
"If you've actually been going that long, you need to crap
out," Mike said, seriously. "Judgement really starts slipping after
thirty or so."
"We're about done here," Vanner said, shrugging. "There are
seven Brits in the files, twenty-three Americans of various
political grades and the rest are other lads. We've broken them
down by country and created a special DVD for each country
indexed to the files along with a...prospectus of their actions in
Rozaje."
"The big winner numerically appears to be the Nips,"
Carlson-Smith said. "No real surprise. But the Prime Minister is
going to be very surprised what his Under Minister for External
Security has been getting up to."
"That's the guy who more or less runs the JDF, right?" Mike
asked, shaking his head. "Okay, if our people are willing to cut
you loose, we'll borrow a secure vault and fly you out to Vegas
for a short R&R. Pierson?"
"They need to wait a bit," the colonel said, frowning. "And
I'd suggest a shower and a shave. We're having some VIP visitors
in about a half an hour."
"Christ," Vanner said, standing up and stretching his back.
"We don't exactly have a brief set up."
"Just get cleaned up, Pat," Mike said. "And you too, Layela.
Your clothes are here, right?"
"And your plane," Pierson pointed out. "And its pilots."
"I'll need to keep it here until this stuff is ready to go," Mike
said, shrugging. "Can do?"
"Can do," Pierson said. "Where's the index?"
"Here," Vanner said, sliding it across the table to him.
"Tabulated by country then by name. Each of them has a short
synopsis of who they are in the real world and what they did at
Rozaje. There's a pack of DVDs, too..."
"I've got it," Mike said, sitting down. "Colonel, could you
find someone to scrounge up the showers and whatnot for these
three?"
"There's a security issue with the Brit data," Carlson-Smith
said, uneasily.
"I'll keep that in mind," Mike said, opening up the thick file-
folder. "Ah, England
, let's start there..."
"Mr. Carlson-Smith, if you'll come with me," Pierson said,
smiling. "He does that to get on your nerves, you know," he
added as they entered the corridor.
"And it works," the MI-6 agent admitted. "I could wish we'd
never let that stuff leave jolly old England
."
"The DVDs are in Albania
," Vanner pointed out.
"So you've said," Carlson-Smith replied. "Repeatedly. And
how are we going to get our hands on those I'd like to know.
Lunari's a place angels fear to tread."
"We won't send angels," Pierson said, opening up one of the
doors with his passcard. "Gentlemen, showers and clean clothes
await. Miss, if you'll accompany me. By the way, the door locks
when I close it. Just hit the buzzer when you're ready to head
back. You have about twenty three minutes."
* * *
Mike looked up as a man in a suit stepped through the door
unannounced.
"Who the hell are you?" Mike asked then stopped and
nodded as the president followed the SS agent into the room. "I
must be getting tired, Mr. President."
"I can understand that, Mike," the president said, walking
over to shake his hand. "I was told some of your intel people, and
a Brit, were going to be here."
"They've been on straight ops for the last couple of days, Mr.
President," Mike replied as the president was followed in the
room by the National Security Advisor, the Secretary of Defense
and a man Mike didn't recognize.
"Step outside," the president said to the three SS agents that
had come in the room. "You're not in on this one."
"Yes, sir, Mr. President," the lead SS agent said, nodding to
the other two.
"I thought they were supposed to argue about that sort of
thing," Mike said, smiling and standing up. "And I'm at the head
of the table."
"Sit, Mike," the president said, collapsing in one of the seats.
"We have an hour to do this. I'm on my way to California
for a meeting with the governor and to look over the
latest damage from an earthquake. Which was fortunatous since
it meant I could clear my schedule for this meeting." He looked
up as Colonel Pierson came in trailed by Vanner, Carlson-Smith
and Layela.
"Mr. President," Mike said, waving at the three. "MI-6 Agent
John Carlson-Smith, Patrick Vanner, formerly of the US Marines
and NSA, and Layela Kulcyanov of the Keldara."
"A pleasure to meet you all," the president said, standing up
to shake their hands. "Mr. Carlson-Smith, I want to assure you
that I've spoken with the Prime Minister and he and I are in
agreement on the way to implementize this situation."
"Yes, sir, Mr. President," the MI-6 agent said, uneasily.
"I'm John Parais," the unnamed man said, extending a hand.
"Undersecretary of Defense for Intelligence Gathering and
Analysis. As soon as we're done here, we'll get you on a secure
line to Lord Arnold so he can clear up any questions."
"Yes, sir," the MI-6 agent said, apparently relieved that there
was another professional in the room.
"I'm also going to remain here with a small team," Parais
continued. "Not to look at the data, though. We've got some
additional intel on Lunari."
"And it's Lunari that we need to talk about," the Secretary of
Defense said.
"Indeed," the president agreed. "Don, you take it."
"We need those DVDs," the Secretary of Defense said,
leaning forward. "And it's been agreed that, yes, Mike, you'll be
the one to secure them. That does remove various problems
while effectively dumping them on your shoulders. But the
president has managed to convince the Prime Minister that you
have broad enough shoulders."
"Thanks," Mike said, dryly.
"But we also need the DVDs or...how we would prefer to
handle this simply won't work," the NSA said.
"Agreed," Mike said. "And I suppose sending in Delta..."
"Has been discussed and ruled out," the president said. "We
need someone who is highly deniable. Admittedly, there has
been..."
"Enough contact that I'm sliding out of that realm," Mike
said with a chuckle. "But I'm the best thing you've got."
"That's it in a nutshell," the Secretary said. "The same goes
for the various other black ops groups. When you hit Lunari,
there are probably going to be too many traces left behind to
totally deny which group did it. Bodies among other things. I'm
sure you'd prefer to pull out all of your dead..."
"We try," Mike said, remembering the Viking funeral.
"But you might not be able to," the Secretary continued.
"Ditto on Delta or ANV or ILS. Yes, they'll go in sterile, but."
"But," Mike said. "The problem being that I'm sure I can't
take the bordello with one team and I'm not sure I could do it
with the whole Keldara. And if I call in the Clans, it leaves us
uncovered at home. Bad things can happen when that happens."
"Which is why a Special Forces team will arrive in Georgia
the day after tomorrow to train in-country
militias," the National Security Advisor said, smiling. "Three
teams, actually, with a company of Rangers in augmentation. Do
you think that will be enough?"
"Yes," Mike said. "But they'd better be carefully briefed on
Keldara culture."
"Your Colonel Nielson will remain in place as a liaison,"
the Secretary said. "He's being temporarily reactivated so he'll
outrank the team commander. Effectively, he'll be in command."
"Oh," Mike said. "So much for deniability."
"It's still there," the NSA said. "Thin but there. We do this
sort of thing all the time with various groups. The Keldara are
well liked by the Georgian government."
"How much do they know about this?" Mike asked.
"Not much," the NSA said. "And the less the better."
"Yeah, I wouldn't want them trying to get their hands on the
booty," Mike said, shrugging. "Not that they would. Trust me, the
room that this is going in will be wired to destroy everything.
And the Keldara will trigger it even if I'm dead."
"Works for me," the president said. "But you're going to
have to get the DVDs from Lunari. And we're going to need the
American data."
"Vanner?" Mike asked.
"I have it here," Vanner said. "Once we had the basic
database set up, it was easy enough to pull out the Americans.
Layela?"
"Here, sir," the Keldara girl said, pulling a folder out and
carrying it over to the president.
"What about Fullbright?" the president asked. "We got a
brief description from Colonel Pierson, but..."
"Here, sir," Vanner said, turning to his computer and then
stopping. "This is..."
"Just run it, Marine," the president said. "I understand what
we are dealing with."
"Yes, Mr. President," Vanner said, bringing up the image on
the plasma screen over Mike's head and explaining why it
couldn't be Senator Fullbright murdering the girl.
"John?" the president asked, turning to Parais.
"I'd like confirmation from my own analysts," Parais said,
frowning. "But I'm not going to ask for it. But with the original, I
will do my own confirmation. Pending that, I have to agree with
Mr. Vanner. That is not Senator Fullbright."
"Who is it?" the president asked, rhetorically.
"Doing a voice comparison will be hard," Parais said. "The
quality of the data has been damaged by the voice modifier. I'm
not sure we could be certain of the identity based upon that data.
Even if we ran it against Echelon, we'd probably come up with
hundreds, possibly thousands, of hits. The reason being, we'd
have to spread the net for the hits. We couldn't say 'Give me the
person this is' because it would bring back either 'no one' or
someone that sounds just like that, which probably wouldn't
mean Fullbright because just because it sounds like him to the
human ear, doesn't mean it matches signal ..."
"It doesn't," Vanner interjected. "We checked. The signal
spread is all wrong."
"So that's a confirmation that it's not Fullbright," Parais
said, nodding.
"Explain," the president said.
"The human voice is more than just what we hear," Layela
said, softly. "There are not only undertones and overtones, things
beyond our range of hearing, but frequencies within the sounds
we can hear that are cancelled out. When you take all of that and
break it down, it creates a very distinct signature, the 'voice print'
of a person. I actually ran the comparison of this man's voice
against Senator Fullbright's. You can see where the voice has
been modified and where it has not. And there has been no
modification of the under and over tones. It has only seventy
points of congruence to Senator Fullbright and three hundred
non-congruent points. And additional fifty three were ambiguous
and fell outside standard probability."
"I brought Layela rather than one of the other girls because
she's my best person at voice recognition," Vanner said. "She can
pick out which Chechen or Russian commanders we're picking
up on the basis of less than a full word."
"Sort of like when a radio station plays just one bit of a
song?" the president asked.
"Yes, sir," Vanner replied. "And she's very good at voice
analysis as well."
"This is not Senator Fullbright, whoever he is," Layela said,
softly but firmly. "I have listened to six of his speeches and
compared them to this person's voice, tone and word choice.
Admittedly, the subject matter is highly different, but this person
uses certain word strings that are not consistent with the senator.
And that is ignoring the fact that the voice analysis is not a
match."
"Any idea who he is?" the president asked, just as softly,
looking with interest at the girl.
"He is an American," Layela said. "He naturally has an
accent consistent with the North Eastern United States. He has
some habitual phases that he may use in common company,
notably 'playing with the big boys' and 'gaming the future.' He is
between twenty five and thirty at a guess based upon his natural
tones. He is a non-smoker. There is no sign smoking of
degradation in his voice, however there is slight age degradation.
I would say that he is college educated or at least uses large
words frequently. More than that I cannot tell."
"That's a bit," Parais said, nodding. "We'll look at it as well."
"Carefully," the Secretary of Defense said. "Very carefully.
And you're going to need to bring the FBI in on it."
"That, unfortunately, is an absolute," the president sighed.
"Okay, Mike, you don't do this for free. What's the cost on
Lunari?"
"I'm also not a mercenary, Mr. President," Mike said after a
moment's thought. "I do what I do and if there's a reward I collect
it. The question I've been asking all along is 'why go to Lunari?' I
know why I did the other things I did, Lunari is a bit more
nebulous. Clear a senator? Not sure I care enough to lose a
single Keldara. Make sure that a Brit Foreign Office brahmin
isn't being blackmailed? Ditto. Money has never been the reason I
do what I do and you know it."
"It's important," the NSA said, frowning. "Very important. If
it weren't, would we be here?"
"I know it's important," Mike said. "I'm just wondering if it's
important to me. And mine, I might add."
"Depends," the Secretary of State said. "You're going to get
a lot of enemies out of this. You're already going to get them, no
matter how we play it after stirring this up. But if we can get all
the data, you're also going to have some friends. Some very
senior friends."
"Trust not in the friendship of princes," Mike said, still
frowning. "I don't know why I even brought it up. I know I'm
going to Lunari and I'll get the DVDs if at all possible. But I'm
not sure it's going to be possible. Insertion and extraction is
going to be a bitch. And we've got no intel."
"There's a possibility, there," Parais said. "But not for this
discussion."
"As to getting paid," Mike said, shrugging. "The good
senator from New Jersey
owes me five mil if I find the girl. I pointed out to
him that if his 'constituent' didn't pay up, he was going to be
given the bill. Let him pay it."
"We'll talk," the president said, standing up. "You're going?"
"I'm going," Mike said, looking at the table. "God help me."
"He will," the president said, nodding. "His hand will be
over you, Mike. I know it will."
"Thanks," Mike said. "Although I'll admit I'd rather have a
B-52 loaded with JDAMs."
* * *
"You said you have data for us," Mike said when the
president and most of his party had left.
"We've got a partial layout for the streets," Parais said,
sliding over a DVD. "Also some data on the building but not the
interior. I had an intel crew sweep for computer noise and there
wasn't any. However, we know there is at least one computer in
the building from information on the street. So..."
"It's shielded," Vanner said, sighing. "Which means they
know how important this place is."
"There are at least twenty guards on duty at all times in and
around the building," Parais continued. "And there are more than
sixty working for the same clan in the area. All of them will
come swarming at the first sign of a firefight. In addition, if it's
apparent that it's not the regular authorities, such as they are, or
another clan attacking, the other clans are likely to pile in. I'm not
sure about reaction times, but you're looking at Mogadishu
if it drops in the pot."
"We need more intel," Mike said, shrugging. "We need
interiors. We need to know where the DVDs are. We need to
know where Natalya is. We can't even be sure she's still there.
What about a ground-pen sweep?"
"There aren't any tasked for that area at the moment,"
Pierson said. "I checked."
"Bob, the president just made a special effort to stop by,"
Mike said with a sigh. "Retask."
"That's not a simple action, Mike," Pierson argued. "I can't
just pick up the phone and..."
"Yes, you can," Mike said, his face hard. "You pick up the
phone, call your boss and say 'Hi, I need a ground penetration
satellite retasked. Why? It's compartmentalized. But the president
asked.' Do you really think he's going to ask the president if he
really asked? And if he does, do you think the president won't
back it? Hell, Bob, I should have even had to ask. We should
already have the data."
"I'll see what I can do," Pierson replied with a sigh.
"I'll get it retasked," Parais said. "Easier and less questions if
I order it. And you're right, this is a presidential directive
mission. That's easily a high enough priority."
"Preferably, we need people inside," Mike added, looking
thoughtful.
"Dracul?" Vanner asked.
"Not if there are that many guards," Mike said, shaking his
head. "The lack of intel is what's getting me. But I'm not sure
how to get someone in the club."
"We can get a girl in," Carlson-Smith noted. "The data from
Rozaje included some internal e-mails of the clan. Girls go to
Lunari from all over. All we have to do is pull a car up with the
right words, drop the girl off and leave. The driver doesn't even
have to be Albanian. Of course, that leaves her in a very bad spot.
I'm not sure MI-6 has a female agent who would take that
mission. Lunari is nearly as bad as Rozaje."
"That's not an issue," Mike said, distantly. "I've got one. I
just can't figure out how to get the intel out. She won't have a
way to send out commo and she won't be able to just up and
leave. Even if she can develop intel, it won't do us any good."
"We might be able to offer some help," Parais said, uneasily.
"I was directly ordered to offer this technology but I'm not happy
about it. It's highly classified."
"Get over the pro-forma protests," Mike said, his eyes
narrowing. "What is it?"
"The tech is experimental," Parais said. "But we can
internally wire a person for sound and video. Not very good
video, but both. And it's almost untraceable. And for sure won't
turn up on standard scanners."
"How the hell do you do that?" Mike asked, blinking.
"You hook it up to the optic nerve," Vanner said, watching
the DIA Secretary carefully. "You either pre-process there or
send out a rough signal and process it somewhere else. I've read
about the theory. Has it actually been done?"
"Not on humans," Parais admitted. "We haven't been able to
find an agent that will permit the operation. It's not without risks.
Blindness for one."
"You're thinking about inserting Cottontail?" Vanner asked.
"Yep," Mike said, thoughtfully. "We'll need a doctor who's
willing to carefully explain the risks. Where would you do this?"
"There's a special hospital in Virginia
..." Parais said.
"Does she get Dr. Quinn?"Mike asked, laughing.
"Been there, have you?" Parais said, smiling. "That's actually
one of my charges. But that's where the procedure would take
place."
"We're probably on short time here," Mike pointed out. "The
Albanians know what they have and with Rozaje hit they're going
to do something about it."
"The procedure is fairly non-invasive," Parais said. "At least
from what I've been told. They go in through the nose for the
video portion and there's only a very small implant in the mastoid
for the audio. It's something like having a tooth pulled."
"I'll have to pitch it to Katya," Mike said, frowning. "If she
goes for it, we'll drop her of on our way through with someone
to keep an eye on her after the procedure. How long for full
recovery?"
"A day or two at most," the DIA director said.
"What about...I dunno, security?" Mike asked.
"The transmitters are frequency hopping and use burst signal
compression," Parais said. "Very hard to detect and they're
encrypted transmissions. The data won't get compromised."
"I just hope the agent doesn't," Mike replied.
Chapter Thirty-Two
As soon as the unmarked plane landed in Vegas, Mike pulled
out his cellphone and turned it on. Not surprisingly, he had a half
dozen messages.
"Gurun, it's the Kildar," Mike said, walking over to the
waiting mini-van. He nodded at the driver as he entered and just
hoped the guy actually knew where he was supposed to be going.
"Kildar," Gurun said, in a relieved tone. "I have arranged a
meeting with a Mr. Robert Thomas and his partner Mr. Colin
Macnee for this evening. In about an hour and a half. Are you
going to be able to attend?"
"Probably," Mike replied. "Driver? Time to the hotel?"
"About forty minutes, sir," the driver said.
"Probably," Mike repeated. "If I'm there in an hour, the
answer is yes. You checked out Thomas?"
"Oh, yes, sir," Gurun burbled happily. "He was one of the
people on my short list of potential distributors. I've had three
other companies express strong interest in the line, but Mr.
Thomas' company specializes in placing high-end beers in
specialty stores and bars. I think that he is liable to be the best bet
we have for a really good income from the product line."
"Sounds good," Mike said. "I hope to see you in an hour and
fifteen or so."
"Oh, and both Daria and Colonel Nielson have been
attempting to contact you," Gurun added.
"I've got them on my cell to call back," Mike replied,
sighing. "By the way, have you seen Chief Adams."
"No, Kildar," the brewery manager replied, puzzled. "I had
assumed he was with you."
"No," Mike replied, frowning. "I haven't seen him since we
landed. If you see him, tell him to give me a call, okay?"
"Yes, Kildar."
"See you in a bit."
He hit the disconnect and looked at the other calls. One was
a number he didn't recognize, one was from Nielson, another was
from DC and the last was from Adams'
phone. Ah-hah! The chief had finally checked in from whatever
he'd been doing. He called that one first.
"Daria."
"Why do you have the chief's phone?" Mike asked,
curiously.
"I've been setting up our return flight," Daria replied. "I
borrowed it from him while we were still on the plane. He
seemed more than willing to give it up. Mr. Hardesty had to
return for another charter and there was a hold-up on ground
transportation in Georgia
. I was calling, though, to tell you that
Colonel Nielson wants to talk to you and that we got a call from
a number in Washington
that refused to leave a message. They stated that they
were calling for Colonel Pierson, though and I took a number as
well as giving them the number to your cellphone."
"Thanks," Mike said. "Do we have transportation? Wait;
Hardesty had all our gear!"
"That has been handled," Daria said and he could practically
hear the dimples. "I called OSOL and discreetly explained the
problem. I suspect that the other call is about that."
"Thanks," Mike said, sighing. "I'm going to have to read
Hardesty the riot act, though. I've got to call Nielson. If you see
the chief, tell him to call me."
"I will, Kildar."
"Kildar Caravanserai, Obreckta speaking, how may I help
you sir or ma'am?"
"Obreckta, this is the Kildar," Mike said, looking at his
watch and doing the time in his head. "Is the colonel still up?"
"Yes, Kildar," Obreckta replied. "Please hold while I transfer
you."
"Nielson."
"Jenkins," Mike replied. "What's up?"
"I dunno, you wanna tell me?" the colonel replied testily. "I
think we should go secure."
"Scrambled. Again, what's up?"
"I got a call from the US Embassy stating that we were
going to be receiving some 'training cadre' from the US Army.
You know anything about that?"
"Damn that was quick," Mike replied, wonderingly. "Expect
three SF teams or so and some Rangers. Officially, they're going
to be training the Keldara. Unofficially...I'll talk about when I get
back."
"Okay," Nielson said, sighing. "I'll start working on
bunking."
"The barracks is going to be cleared out," Mike said. "That's
part of the 'unofficially.'"
"I need to hear this, don't I?" Nielson replied.
"Yep. But not over a phone. Even a secure phone. When I
get back. Which will be on Tuesday or so."
"See you then."
He looked at the last number and dialed it as the minivan
pulled into the reception area of the hotel.
"OSOL, Captain McGraffin speaking."
"Jenkins."
"Go scramble, please."
"Be aware that I'm in an unsecure area."
"Oh." The officer on the other end of the line paused for a
moment. "Your materials are going to be sent to your homebase
via military transport. Clear enough?"
"Clear enough," Mike said.
"Your oh-so-efficient secretary informed us that she had
already secured a charter aircraft to return your personnel. Do
you need anything else?"
"Not at this time," Mike replied. "And I'm not sure about the
wisdom of using mil craft for moving the materials. I'll discuss it
at another time."
"Understood," McGraffin said. "Anything else?"
"Negative. Oh, one thing. I'm missing a man. My second in
command, actually. Anyone heard from Adams on your end since we landed?"
"Uh." There was a pause as McGraffin clearly checked his
paperwork. "Negative on that, Mr. Jenkins."
"Thanks," Mike replied, frowning. "Out here."
Mike hadn't even realized that he'd navigated his way to the
elevator by instinct.
And he still wasn't sure who'd sent the driver.
Or where his second-in-command had got to.
Chapter Thirty-Three
"Kildar, it is very good you are here," Gurun said, nervously,
as Mike entered the suite.
The penthouse was more of a two story town-home, much
more spacious than any apartment Mike had ever owned. Daria
had mentioned getting a deal on it, but he was pretty sure the
penthouse was costing more than the convention space. With
thick carpeting, original paintings on the walls and antique or
designer furniture, it seemed far too luxuious for his needs.
However, one of the Keldara girls had been over it for security
and determined that the conference room, which was entirely
interior with no external walls or windows, was set up very much
like a secure room. And the rest of the security on the suite was
similar. There was one door and anyone approaching the door
had to traverse a long corridor for which there was a security
camera. The suite was clearly designed for use by paranoid
executives and movie stars, which made it well suited for Mike.
"What's the status, Gurun?" Mike asked, his brain still filled
with the problems of the Lunari mission.
"Mr. Thomas will be here shortly," Gurun replied. "But not
on time. He just called and he's running a little late. I am thinking
of starting with a bid of two euros per bottle, freight on board at
P'otli, ten euros for the keg."
"Let them open," Mike replied. "And go for everything the
market will bear. We should have brought Mother Lenka with us;
she'd screw them without their even recognizing it. And
get...Greznya and Latya up here right now. They're going to
charm the socks off of these guys for us."
"Are you sure, Kildar?" Gurun asked. "Women aren't
usually..."
"Gurun, you've done an excellent job," Mike said with a
sigh. "But you really need a lesson in how to sell. If I had set it
up in advance, one of the girls would be doing the entire sell and
you'd just be there to close and do the paperwork. Get Greznya
and Latya right now. And Chief Adams if anyone can find him..."
* * *
"Mr. Thomas," Latya said, as she waved the two
businessmen through the door. "It's a pleasure to see you again.
And this must be Mr. Macnee."
She'd barely had time to get dressed and fix her makeup but
she knew she was looking good. She'd borrowed a short skirt,
too short really, from one of the "rescue" girls and had purchased
a pair of high heels during the mission. A light blouse, a small
string of pearls and she was ready, as the Kildar had put it, to slay
them.
"Call me Colin," Macnee said, smiling. He was a short man
going bald who had opted for the shaved skull look. "You must
be one of the Keldara booth girls I heard about."
"Watch her," Thomas said, jovially. "She's one of their
militia girls, too. She's probably packing."
Latya smiled thinly and shook her head. Now she was really
ready to slay them.
"Not in here," she said, laughing as honestly as she could
manage and showing them into the suite. "The rooms down the
corridor are held by the Keldara. When you came down the
corridor you were identified in advance and swept for weapons.
Mr. Macnee is carrying a small clasp knife in his right pocket.
You, Mr. Thomas, have a license to carry a concealed weapon
issued by the state of Pennsylvania
. You scored a forty-five out of fifty on your last
qualifying shoot. Your registered handgun is a Sig-Sauer .40
caliber. A very popular choice I might add. I prefer the H&K
USP .45 myself, but the Sig is a nice weapon."
"As I mentioned, Latya and Greznya are much more than just
pretty faces," Mike said, walking over to the two businessmen
and holding out his hand. "On the beer side, I use them for
datamining and analysis."
"And in your other business?" Thomas asked, trying to get
back in control.
"I use them for...datamining and analysis," Mike replied,
smiling.
"How many enemies are in the building," Greznya said,
slithering to her feet. She'd opted for one of the sleeve dresses.
With her long legs and moderate bust, it worked very well. "What
type of weapons. Location of information, hostages or targets to
be extracted. That sort of thing. I'm Greznya, the intel team
leader."
"All that stuff about a militia in the brochure is for real?"
Macnee asked.
"Yes," Mike said as Latya went to get them drinks. "It's for
real."
"We can use that, you know," Macnee said, seriously. "Beer
drinkers tend to be more patriotic than the wine types. 'Every beer
you drink helps in the war on terror, so drink up' sort of thing."
"Your end," Mike said, smiling. "Not that I hadn't thought of
it."
"You said they'd already had some combat action," Thomas
replied as Latya handed him a drink. He took a sip and then
looked at it.
"Elijah Craig," Mike said, smiling. "I believe bourbon is
your tipple?"
"Datamining," Thomas replied, shaking his head.
"Yes," Mike said. "And, yes, they've engaged in combat
actions. Including ones that, minorly, made the news. Greznya?"
"AP picked up on the attack on our valley," Greznya said,
sliding a print-out of the AP wire across to the businessman.
"Were you there?" Macnee asked, leaning over to look at the
sheet of paper.
"I was on the communications end," Greznya said.
"And intercept," Mike added. "WE knew they were coming
before they did. You see, we believe in doing our homework."
"And does that extend to the beer side?" Thomas asked,
setting down the paper.
"In the main," Mike said. "We know we can get a distributor
for Mountain Tiger. We just want the best distributor we can get.
Frankly, you are high on the list, but not the top."
"In other words, we have to sell ourselves to you?" Macnee
asked, smiling.
"You could put it that way," Mike replied.
"And the ladies are here to...?"
"The ladies run the brewery," Greznya said, smiling.
"Brewing is a woman's secret among the Keldara. And, thus,
we're going to be making most of the money from it. So...say
we're here representing the interests of the Keldara women," she
finished, leaning back and crossing her legs.
"A brewery run by beautiful women that fights terrorism,"
Macnee said after he regained his voice. "My hands are getting
sweaty just thinking about the marketing."
"Are you sure that's what's making them sweaty?" Mike
asked, gazing at Greznya in surprise. He knew that if one of the
Keldara mothers was present, Greznya would be half way out of
the clan.
"No," Macnee admitted. "What were you thinking of as
terms?"
"Five euros per liter, delivered at P'Otly," Greznya said,
smiling and batting her eyes. "We also will supply the special
ceramic bottles for discerning customers."
"Out of the question," Thomas snapped after he'd actually
processed the information. "We can't sell it for anything like a
profit on this end at that rate! We'd have to charge ten dollars a
bottle. No. More! That's... impossible."
"It is what is called an opening bid," Greznya said, smiling
and recrossing her legs as she shifted on the couch. "I'm sure you
have some reasonable counter..."
* * *
"Three euors per liter, freight on board in Georgia
," Thomas said, shaking Greznya's hand
and doing the same with his head. "We'll figure out a way to get
the market to bear. Am I nuts?"
"If you are, so am I," Macnee said in a dazed tone.
"Contracts," Mike said, sliding them across the table.
"They're taken from the standard contract that the AABA
recommends. There's some wiggle room. And we'll supply the
first ten thousand liters at one euro per liter along with six
thousand ceramic bottles at fifty centis per bottle. You might
want to look for a better supply on those, if they meet the
Keldara standards."
"Will do," Thomas said, shaking his head again as he looked
over the contract. For all the daze he appeared to display at the
effect of the girls, more of whom had drifted in, all dressed to the
nines as they found out that the negotiations were going on, he
read the contract carefully. "We can do this. We will do this. And
we're going to make lots of money doing it."
"You're sure?" Macnee asked, nervously.
"Yeah, I'm sure," Thomas replied. "We'll start the roll-out in
New York
. This September."
"Ah," Mike said. "No direct reference I hope."
"No," Thomas said. "But when we run the ads, we're going
to have pics of police and firefighters with the beer. Between that
and the pics of your spec-ops teams, the subtext will be clear.
And we'll just let the point lie that the extra you're paying is
supporting the War."
"And the girls," Macnee added, smiling at the group around
him.
"We're getting a good price?" Latya asked in Georgian. She'd
been snuggling up to Macnee but othewise keeping her head
down during the negotiations.
"Quite survivable," Mike said in the same language. "It'll
mean, at a guess, about sixty euros per month per worker. A bit
more for Mother Lenka and Gurun."
"Good," Latya said, smiling. "I might actually be able to
afford a husband."
"And not go through the Kardane?" Greznya said, looking
over at Mike and winking.
"Oh, good point," Sarisa said, grinning. "No one would want
to avoid the Kardane now."
"So I save it for when we get married," Latya added,
shrugging. "Nothing says that you cannot enter into Kardane just
because you can afford the price!"
"Oh, we so don't want to go there..." Mike said, sighing.
"What is this?" Macnee asked, looking at the cross-talk.
"I was explaining that we'd be able to keep the brewery
running at this price," Mike said, shrugging nervously.
"There was more," Thomas said, grinning. "I could tell."
"You really don't want to know," Mike replied. "There's a
lot about the internal workings of the Keldara you don't want to
know."
"Anything that will affect the marketing?" Macnee asked,
seriously.
"Hmmm..." Mike muttered. "The Keldara are
very...conservative. The girls are more or less owned by one male
or another..."
"We are not!" Greznya snapped.
"You're controlled by your father, who can..." Mike said in
English and then switched to Georgian. "Let me explain this as
well as I can, okay?" he said to Greznya, fiercely. "I know
American customs and where there are going to be friction
points, okay?"
"Okay," Greznya said, frowning.
"How old do you think Latya is?" Mike asked Macnee as the
girl leaned against him harder.
"I'd put her at about twenty," the fifty-ish businessman said,
shrugging. "I mean, that's a bit young..." he added, nervously
fingering his wedding ring. "But I'm not planning on..."
"She's seventeen," Mike said, grinning as Macnee sat up and
started to back away. "Don't let it bother you and it won't bother
them. And what goes on in the suite, stays in the suite. But the
point is that she's working as an intel specialist and she's a
damned good one. Quite a few of these girls are married and the
oldest is Greznya, who isn't by the way, and she's nineteen."
"Oh, my..." Thomas said, blinking hard.
"The Keldara grow up fast," Mike said. "Greznya is
considered an old maid. Most of them get married around fifteen.
These girls didn't have electricity in their homes a year ago.
Now...well they're some of the best intel troops I've ever had the
honor to serve with. Not to mention great models," Mike added
with a grin.
"The girl in the pictures?" Macnee asked, frozen. "The
redhead. How old?"
"Fifteen," Mike said, shrugging. "I checked the various laws;
it's legal. She's dressed, so it's not child pornography. And you
won't have to worry about a lot of information getting out about
them, no matter how much interest. The Keldara don't talk and
the area they live in is a restricted military zone. The point to this
brewery, and other things that I'm doing, is to get them an
economic boot-strap into the 21st Century; there's
only so much I can do alone. They need to earn it so they
understand where it comes from."
"Okay," Thomas said, looking at Greznya in even greater
interest. "Where'd you learn to negotiate like that?"
"In the village market," Greznya said, shrugging. "When you
have nothing, you learn to bargain for every kopek."
"I suppose there's that," Thomas said. "Well, this has been a
fascinating evening, but if I don't drag Colin off, he's likely to get
divorced and I can't afford that."
"Spoilsport," Macnee said, but he heaved to his feet with a
sigh. "Ladies, it's been fascinating to meet you. I don't suppose
we can visit?" he added to Mike.
"You, I can get through the checkpoints," Mike said.
"Honestly, all that anyone who wants to get near the Keldara has
to do is bribe the regular guards. But once you get to the area we
enforce, nobody moves without my say."
"I think we'll leave the 'local warlord' aspect out of the
marketing," Thomas said, dryly.
"Please do," Mike said. "Among other things, there are
various people who would like to put my head on their wall. And
I mean that quite literally."
"Another thing to keep in mind," Macnee replied. "We'll be
in touch with Gurun about delivery schedules. I'm sure you have
other things to do."
"Such as talk to Katya," Mike said as Greznya closed the
door. "Girls, it looks like we're in the clover. But I'm not done. If
you ladies could clear the suite and somebody ask Cottontail to
stop by. And has anyone seen Chief Adams...?"
* * *
"You are joking, yes?" Katya said, her eyes wide as Mike
finished explaining the plan.
"I am joking, no," Mike replied. "We'll talk with the doctors
about it and if you absolutely say no, then the answer is, no. But
you won't be able to just walk into Lunari and back out. And
even if you walk in, we won't know where you are. This way, we
can track you constantly and be ready to pull you out."
"I agreed to do this for twenty thousand euros," Katya said,
angrily. "But not to get cut on beforehand. I will probably get cut
enough in Lunari."
"Do you want more money?" Mike asked, shrugging. "I will
promise you this, if the surgery goes bad I will put you in a very
nice place and set you up for the rest of your life."
"I won't be able to see it, yes!" Katya snapped.
"Tropical paradise, guaranteed," Mike said, seriously.
"Servants and all the rest. How much do you want for this?"
"The same either way," Katya replied, tightly. "If I do this
operation, we are done. I get very much money and a nice place
someplace warm. I'll make my own way from there."
"Done," Mike said. "There might be some requirements to
tell them how things are going after the fact. Can you handle
that? Among other things, it would mean that you'd have the
US
government taking care of at least part of
your medical."
"Probably," Katya said, frowning. "But I still want the
tropical island."
"Agreed," Mike said, smiling. "So, to be clear, that's a yes?"
Katya paused for a long moment and then shrugged.
"Yes."
"I'll point one thing more out, though."
"What?" Katya asked.
"You're going to be wired for sound and video the rest of
your life," Mike said. "Admittedly, it will be a limited number of
people that can access it. And with your looks, you can get in just
about anywhere. The US
government is probably going to be
showering you with money to try to get you to do other ops.
You're going to be the world's top super bug until they find
somebody else crazy enough to do this. And with your looks
and...training I'd be surprised if you couldn't get in about
anywhere."
"Why don't you, then?" Katya asked, her brow furrowed.
"I'm a fighter not a lover."
"And I'm a killer, not a lover," Cottontail pointed out, with a
purely evil smile.
* * *
Mike was tapping his foot, angrily, watching the Keldara
take down the last of the display.
The convention was over, the troops were packed, and he still hadn't heard from Adams. He
was beginning to think that maybe the redoubtable former SEAL
had run into a mugger or something. Maybe he should call the
damned morgue. Or, hell, face it, the chief might have just
decided that being around Mike wasn't conducive to long life and
prosperity. Although he'd been making more money with Mike
than he'd make doing virtually any job for which he was trained
and prepared.
"Kildar," Gurun said, diffidently. "We have all the gear
packed. It is time to go."
"Where in the fuck is..." Mike started to say and then stopped
as he saw Adams wander around a set of
booths that still hadn't been taken down. He was noticeably
weaving and appeared to be in lousy shape. Mike wasn't sure
what... Oh. Hell. He'd forgotten about Adams and
Las Vegas
. He shouldn't have, but that last weekend had been a
long time ago. And, frankly, Mike didn't remember most
of it.
"Been on a bender, Ass-boy?" Mike asked, maliciously, as
soon as he was sure that Adams was
suffering from a hangover and not malaria.
"Oh, Go'," the chief replied, leaning up against a booth and
stifling a belch. He scratched under a, apparently new, Hooter's t-
shirt for a moment and contemplated the scenery blurrily. He also
had picked up a pair of Bermuda shorts, somewhere, that were at
least a couple of sizes too large. They appeared to be belted with
string. "Wha' day is it?" The words were distinctly slurred.
"Monday," Mike said. "The day we're leaving."
"Good," Adams said, trying to stand
to attention. "I ma' mo'ment."
"Is that all you have to say for yourself?" Mike asked,
bitingly, putting his hands on his hips. "That you made
movement?! You're supposed to be my second-in-command!
You're not a fucking meat anymore, chief!"
"How 'bout, 'Viva Las Vegas!'?" the chief replied and
belched again. "Or, 'I ha' a rea'y fuckin' good fuckin' ti'e'? Wha' I
can rer'mem'er of it."
With that, the chief slowly slumped down the side of the
booth until he was flat on his back on the convention hall floor.
Then he began to snore.
"I'm tempted to send him home in the container..." Mike
muttered.
Chapter Thirty-Four
"Mr. Jenkins," the doctor said, nodding and looking over at
Katya. "And you would be, potentially, Patient Number 7194."
Mike had sent the rest of the Keldara back to Georgia
along with Chief Adams, Vanner and
Carlson-Smith, who seemed to be permanently attached to their
collective hip until the mission was complete. He had stopped in
Virginia
, however, to stick with Katya for the procedure and
ensure she was taken care of. He still wasn't sure where the
hospital was; the drive had involved the normal closed van. Just
"somewhere in Virginia
" down in the flat-country. He couldn't place it
within a hundred miles.
"Wow, lots of casualties, lately," Mike said, smiling.
"We do not, in fact, increment by patient," the doctor
replied. Mike had to assume he was a doctor, since he said he
was. But the usual plaques were distinctly missing from the bare
walls of the spartan office. "Otherwise people could make a
guess such as you just made as to casualty rates among black
units. The total number of patients operated upon by this hospital
is as secret as their individual identities."
"I like this place," Katya said, smiling in her friendliest
manner at the rotund physician. "I am told of what is plan. Put in
microphone and camera. In body."
"Not exactly a camera," the doctor said, pulling out some
papers and sliding around to the other side of the desk. "We're
going to insert a small bundle of wires into your visual cortex,
where the optic nerve intersects the brain. These, together with a
microprocessor and a small transmitter, will decode the view that
your eyes are sending to the brain. This procedure has been
successfully demonstrated on everything up to and including
chimpanzees. There has not, yet, been an attempt with a human.
The technology is very cutting edge and, frankly, we haven't
found anyone willing to undergo the procedure. You're aware of
this?"
"Yes," Katya said, shrugging. "I am being paid much to do
this mission and I need the...things."
"Very well," the doctor said. "However, I have to warn you
of potential known side-effects as well as possible unknown
side-effects."
"Go ahead," Katya said, sighing.
"There is a possibility of reduction or loss of sight," the
doctor said. "We haven't actually had a patient that could tell us
just how accurate their sight is and how it has changed. There are
visual acuity tests for animals, but they're not entirely accurate.
There is a possibility of long term sight degradation. There is a
possibility of long term secondary cranial degradation. There is
very little data on long term brain implants available. Infection
around the implantation sight could cause cerebral damage, brain
damage that is. Damage is also possible from the long-term
degradation. There is a slight possibility of debilitating stroke.
And as with any surgical procedure there are possibilities of
death. Are you sure you wish to continue with the procedure?"
"Doctor," Katya said, strangely quiet. "I was raised in an
orphanage in Russia
with hundreds of other girls. I had nothing
of my own until I was sold, straight from the orphanage, to a
pimp who raped me when I was twelve. And he was not the first;
I got my tits when I was eight and was raped soon after by the
master of the orphanage. I have been beaten, raped, tortured and
threatened with death all of my life that I can remember. I have
been hungry and cold more times than I can remember. Death
holds no fear for me. Nor does blindness. Or brain damage. I
wish that I did not remember most of my life. And with
this...devices, I will have great power. Many will wish to use me
for their spy. If it works I will never be poor, or dependent upon
men, again," she spat.
"Doc?" Mike said to the stone-faced physician.
"Yes?"
"Any other enhancements available?" Mike asked. "Hidden
weapons? Poison fingernails? Jump jets in the feet? She'll take
'em all."
The doctor regarded him balefully for a moment and then
cleared his throat.
"We're only authorized to provide the listed implants. The
visual system does, however, have a bio-feedback replay system
that is potentially capable of enhancing long and short distance
vision. It requires practice."
"Telescope eyes, cool," Mike said, grinning. "So she can get
jump-jets in her soles?"
"There are other...devices," the doctor said, shrugging. "But
I'm not authorized..."
"Got an outside line?" Mike asked, seriously. "I can get them
all authorized. How long would she be down?"
"How much do you want?" the physician snapped. "I can't
even tell you what they all are."
"Get me an outside line," Mike said, sighing. "I'll get you the
authorization."
* * *
Katya looked over the long list in wonder.
"What is 'micro-metallic skeletal enhancement'?" she asked,
her eyes wide.
"You don't want that," Mike said, looking over her shoulder.
"Unless there's been some radical breakthrough in
nanotechnology they're sitting on, it would mean stripping off
your skin and muscle to get it. On the other hand, you'd be bullet-
proof, to low velocity weapons, over most of your body. Jesus
Christ. There aren't many of these that are listed as actually used.
But the ones that are scare the hell out of me. At least the 'sonic
transceiver' is listed as 'tested, stable.' But I was joking about the
poison fingernails!"
"Where?" Katya asked.
"'Digital extremity chemical insertion device,'" Mike said,
pointing. "It looks like a pretty nasty procedure, though."
"Worse than having someone stick a scalpel up your nose?"
Katya asked.
"The pouch for whatever you want to give the recipient is in
the palm," Mike pointed out. "You'll go around squirting cyanide
all over every time you clench your fist. Not to mention injecting
yourself."
"Use something that has an antidote, then," Katya said,
grinning. "Antidote on one hand, poison on the other."
"There's bound to be problems with it," Mike pointed out.
"Go for the 'subcutaneous non-metallic puncture device.' Means
you can carry a knife anywhere."
"I like the poison fingernails," Katya said. "I can use them on
this mission!"
"I'm afraid that if you get the full upgrade, they're never
going to let you out of their sight," Mike said with a sigh.
"'Subcutaneous injection, phys...' I'm lost again."
" 'Subcu...'" Mike muttered for a second and then shook his
head. "It's a combat drug. I'm not sure which one; they've been
playing around with them for a long time. Probably a temporary
enhancement of strength and reaction time along with calming
agent so you're less scared."
"I don't get scared anymore," Katya said, darkly. "I get
angry."
"Perfect for you, then," Mike said.
"'Mas...'," Katya said, pointing to one line.
"Face job," Mike said. "Change your appearance."
"So I can look like a particular person?" Katya asked.
"You don't sing well enough to replace Jessica Simpson,"
Mike said, shaking his head. "It's for people that can't use their
present face for whatever reason. Get a couple of the sub-
cutaneous pouches. You can fit all sorts of stuff in those. And,
hell, if you really want the poison fingernails..."
"Why thank you, Kildar," the girl said, smiling thinly.
"But I'm definitely getting you out of my house after this,"
Mike said, grinning. "And you'll need that maseo-facial surgery if
you think you're going to get back in."
"You don't love me," Katya said with a pout.
"I don't trust you," Mike replied with a smile. "You'd be
surprised how much I like you. I'm not sure I'd go as far as love,
but..."
Katya looked at him oddly for a moment then shrugged.
"The audio visual upgrade," she said, looking over the list.
"Three subcutaneous pouches, the combat drug upgrade and the
poison fingernails."
"I'll tell the doc."
* * *
"So do I get to call you by your real name?" Mike asked as
Director Pareis came into the small, and distinctly secure,
waiting room.
"Do I?" Pareis asked.
"I hope you don't even know it," Mike snapped.
"Come on, I'm the DIA Director," Pareis said with a sigh.
"And I've now officially stated that I'm uncomfortable with
fitting this..."
"Russian whore," Mike finished for him.
"Foreign agent," Pareis corrected, "with some of the most
advanced personal enhancement technology on earth."
"Including the tracker?" Mike asked.
"What tracker?" Pareis asked.
"Oh, come on," Mike replied, scornfully. "If there's not a
GPS tracker on that girl I'm going to call the president as soon as
I get out of here and tell him he needs to can you for being a
complete moron. Cottontail is one dangerous bitch. And she's
now going to be the most dangerous bitch on the planet. Once
she gets those fingernails loaded I'm not going to want to be in
the same room with her."
"It only transmits when a tickler signal comes from a
satellite," Pareis admitted. "And I'll be surprised if even she can
detect it."
"You've tested these things for interference, right?" Mike
asked.
"As well as we can," Pareis admitted. "She'll need a day or
two of testing and tweaking once she's out of recovery."
"And then we high ourselves to wonderful Albania
," Mike said, snorting. "I take it we got the
overheads?"
"They'll be brought to you by officer courier as you're on
your way home," the director said. "Along with an intel update.
We still don't know if the girl is still there. They do ship them
out, you know. Notably to Italy
. And we've been afraid to put out feelers
about her for obvious reasons."
"She's still there," Mike said. "I can feel it in the water."
* * *
"How you doing?" Mike asked.
The G-V was technically from a charter company, but it had
been supplied by DIA so Mike figured it was something along the
lines of Air America
. The pilots were certainly reticent. Mike
missed Captain Hardesty. Not to mention the stewardesses that
usually accompanied the flights; he'd had to get his own drinks
and it took some hunting and eventually resorting to forcing
open a fixture with a screwdriver.
"You were right about the fingernails," Katya replied,
holding up her hands. The palms showed a line of small puncture
wounds. "But there is a valve. However, I start playing with it
when I get upset..."
"Which is most of the time," Mike said, looking at her and
smiling. "You'll just have to learn some restraint."
"I'm working on it," Katya said, blinking and shaking her
head. "And I keep getting double images, one of them grainy.
Like a bad TV set showing me what has just happened."
"You need to work on locking that down," Mike said,
pulling out the sheets of paper, liberally stamped with "Top
Secret", which were her post-op instructions. "No fever when we
left, which is good."
"I'm sore in some odd places," Katya admitted.
"Odder than normal, I take it," Mike said, carefully taking
her hand. "You'll get used to it. Are you going to be okay..."
"From all this?" Katya asked, withdrawing her hand. "Or on
the mission?"
"Yes," Mike said, crossing his hands in his lap.
"I am going to get well paid," Katya said, smiling. "That is
all that matters. Why this sudden show of concern, Kildar?"
"Do you think I didn't care?" Mike asked. "From the
beginning? Did you think I was just one of the users in your
life?"
"No," Katya admitted.
"I suppose that makes me one of the suckers, then," Mike
said, snorting.
"Not that...either," Katya said, at least sounding honest. "So I
don't know what you are."
"Because there are either users or suckers?" Mike asked.
"Yes," Katya admitted. "So, yes, I must accept that you are a
sucker. Certainly for giving me all these gifts."
"Use them on the wrong person, and every agent on earth
will have a termination contract on you," Mike pointed out.
"So I must find the right men to use them upon, yes?" Katya
said, smiling and working her fingers. "I look forward to it."
* * *
"You've got real problems," Nielson said, gesturing at the
map. "You realize that, right?"
"I know some of them, tell me the rest," Mike said, sighing
and leaning back in his chair. He was glad to be back at the
caravanserai; America
had been almost a culture shock. The
caravanserai really did seem to be home these days.
"I won't go over the tactical issues," Nielson said. "I've been
looking at what you might call operational issues. The entire area
around Lunari is controlled by the Albanian gangs. You've got
multiple checkpoints to pass to even get to the town. And forget
inserting on foot across the mountains. First of all, egress would
be a bitch. Second, that's the center of the clan power. You'd have
a fight on your hands, from all the Albanian clans, from,
basically, the time you cross the border. And it's not only their
turf, they'll outnumber you a few hundred to one. I don't see
doing a land ingress and egress."
"Lunari is land-locked," Adams
said. "You want us to fly in? The troops aren't trained in air-
mobile operations. Or HALO for that matter."
"Training on helicopter insertion and extraction isn't all that
hard," Mike said. "But that begs the question; where in the hell
are we going to get the helicopters?"
"More than choppers," Nielson said, gesturing at the map
again. "You're dealing with multiple sovereign countries
surrounding the area. I couldn't find one spot that I'd like to do an
assembly and extraction through."
"I hope you're not just throwing this out as an insoluble
problem," Mike said, sighing. "Because we can't use US assets
for this. Not a one."
"Not insoluble," Nielson admitted. "But it's going to be very
expensive."
"How expensive?" Mike asked. "And what's your plan?"
"There is a group in Russia
that supplies heavy lift choppers," Nielson
said, tossing Mike a brochure. "They mostly work on relief
operations and oil operations in remote areas. They went in with
the Marines in Dali, which is where I first heard of them. When
you said the Keldara were going to have to hit Lunari in force, I
started looking at the problem and saw the solution pretty quick.
And I've had some very quiet conversations with them about the
problem. They're willing to provide enough choppers and pilots
to get us in and out. But...they figure it's going to be a hot LZ.
And then there's the problem of being identified. So they want
two million, minimum, for the mission. Plus recoup costs on any
aircraft lost on the mission, to be escrowed in a Swiss bank
account controlled by a neutral third party. The vig on that is
another mil. But there's more."
"Crap," Mike said, shaking his head. "Three mil for
insertion? We need to get our own helicopters and crews."
"Maybe," Nielson said, shrugging. "But the rest is expensive,
too. You see, you can't take off from any of the countries around
or nearby. Nobody is going to miss a spec-ops group boarding
military helicopters. And most of the area around has Albanians
that are going to report it to the mob. Then there's just the
diplomatic implications. So you're going to have to come in
from the sea. You can't take off from Italy
, which is the only place in range of a Hip
helicopter, so..."
"We've got to lift from a boat," Mike said, sighing. "How
much for that?"
"Three hundred thou," Nielson said, throwing the full
budget brief on the table. "But that includes picking up the Hips,
moving to Albanian waters, launch, recovery and taking the Hips
back to Georgia
."
"Well, even if I can get the senator to geek, that's it for a
profit on the mission," Mike said with a sigh. "I think I'll call DC
and tell them that I'd like a combat bonus. Because we are going
to lose people."
"And we'll have to depend on these helicopter pilots not to
fuck us?" Adams asked.
"You got a better plan?" Mike asked.
"Yeah, call some of the 'trainers'," Adams said. "One to ride on each chopper and a group on the
boat."
"Maybe," Mike said. "But we have to get started on this
now. Nielson, get that portion moving right away. Vanner,
tactical intel?"
"We got reads from ground penetrating radar on the brothel
and the surroundings," Vanner said, shrugging. "So we've got an
interior. The building is three stories of concrete with two stories
of wooden addition on the top. There appears to be a basement as
well..."
"Which is where the DVDs are going to be located," Adams predicted. "We're going to be fighting
out way in and out."
"We can get the troops familiarized with the building by
doing a mock-up," Mike pointed out. "But we still don't know
where any of the targets are located for sure."
"The DVDs are likely to be in a safe," Nielson pointed out.
"Anybody know how to crack a safe?"
"Not I said Cock Robin," Vanner replied, shrugging.
"Gimme enough demo and I can move the world," Adams said, raising an eyebrow.
"We want them back intact," Mike said. "We need somebody
that actually knows how to open a safe. Nielson?"
"One safe cracker coming up," Nielson said, sighing. "We
don't even know what kind of safe."
"Then find one that can think on his or her feet," Mike said.
"I'll take that one," Carlson-Smith said, smiling. "I'll simply
give Drake over at MI-5 a call. I mean, he's the fellow that keeps
an eye on fellows like that. And MI-6 has people who train in
such as well."
"Thank you," Mike said. "What are the Italians going to say
to a bunch of helicopters taking off for
Albania
? Or the Albanians for that matter?"
"The Albanians have shit for coverage on that coast," Vanner
said. "They're not an issue. We'll have to stay out of Italian
territorial waters until we're done. Or... I hate to suggest this, but
we can take some copies of clips and present them to a couple of
people in the Italian government. After that, I don't think they're
going to say much at all."
"That's a very slippery slope," Mike said after a moment's
thought. "Let's see if the Brits can convince the Italians to look
the other way," he added, looking over at Carlson-Smith.
"It might help to have a pic at least of that Ital general..."
Carlson-Smith pointed out.
"Do it," Mike said with a sigh. "But let's try to limit that.
Otherwise we'll become a target just like Lunari.
Adams, get started on the mock-up. Nielson, get the
freighter moving and get those choppers down here. Russell will
take point on training for insertion and extraction with the Chief
in overall charge of the tactical training. Mr. Carlson-Smith..."
"I suppose I have a plane to catch," the MI-6 agent said with
a sigh. "I very much hope that the next time I come to visit that
you do have your own helicopter. These roads are torturous."
"So does Vanner," Mike said, frowning.
"Say again?" Patrick piped up.
"We need to get Katya inserted, now," Mike replied. "You're
going to take the Sawn intel team and monitor. You know what
intel we're looking for. Turn over the shop to Lidiya for the time
being. Take a fire team of Keldara shooters from Team Sawn
with you for security."
"So I'm going to be sitting in the woods for the next week or
two?" Patrick asked. "Cool."
"Hell, no," Mike replied. "What gave you that idea?"
Chapter Thirty-Five
Katya stepped out of the car when she was told, her head
down, and headed for the door, lifting her head just long enough
to get a good look around. Camera above the door, one of two
apparently into the same building, another camera there. More on
each end of the street. Windows up the wall, barred. One guard
on the door. That should be enough.
The two men who had driven her across the Macedonian
border were hired thugs and had picked up some fringe benefits
on the drive; she had a fading bruise on her cheek from her one
protest about that. According to plan there was supposed to be a
back-up team out there, somewhere. But she'd anticipated getting
hit. A lot. A slap on the face wasn't anything to cry about and she
hadn't, just sucked him off as he'd told her to. She'd really wanted
to jam her new nails into his scrotum and watch his face as he
bled out, but she'd resisted.
She'd also resisted clenching her fists. The packet was
loaded, although until she manipulated the valve in her palm it
shouldn't squirt out. But she'd been told the poison was "fast
acting" and didn't have an antidote. It was also unlikely that she'd
be able to use it more than once.
She had been consigned to hell for at least a week. She
needed to save it for when it would actually do some good.
But if they thought she was going to do this mission without
just one slaver choking out his life at her hands, they were very
stupid people indeed.
"Get inside," the man on the door said, opening it and
moving to slap her.
"No, I'm going," Katya said, whining, ducking her head and
scooting through the door ahead of the promised slap.
"This the new bitch?"
The room beyond was dark with only a single bulb hanging
from the ceiling. There was a table with some men playing poker,
a few girls sitting on laps and more men along the sides.
"Katrina or something," one of the men said, standing up
and walking over to her. "Look up, bitch, I want to see your face.
What's your name, bitch?"
"Katya," Katya said, quietly. "They call me Cottontail."
"Are you?" the man asked, pulling up her skirt and brutally
ripping off her panties. "Hey, the carpet matches the curtains."
"Good looker," one of the men in the shadows along the
wall said. "She's only going to make a few euros here, though.
Send her on to Italy
."
"We need to know that she knows her job, first," the man
standing in front of her said.
"I am good hooker," Katya said, looking down at the floor
again and ignoring the torn clothes. "I was hooker in Ukraine
. I know my place."
"We'll see," the man said, picking her up and throwing her
on the table. "And we'll see how tight that pussy is," he added,
unbuckling his belt.
"Just as tight as it was before you, Greva," another voice
laughed.
Katya ignored it and thought about scratching. Just one little
scratch...
* * *
When the last dick had pulled out of her ass, a man rolled
her over and slapped her. There had been quite a few of those as
well.
"I'm Boris Dejti and you are...?"
"Katya," she whispered, working her mouth. There was only
a little blood from a split lip, but she'd really like to spit. She also
knew she'd be hit harder if she did.
"Go upstairs and find a bed," the man said. "Then get your
ass out on the street. You owe me six hundred euros tonight.
That's to pay off your debt. I bought you and if you want free,
you have to pay me ten thousand euros. Of the six hundred, one
hundred goes towards your debt, the rest is the interest. You owe
me twenty euros a day for your bed, and ten euros a day for your
food. Anything else you can keep. If you give it to me, though, it
pays off your debt quicker. You understand?"
"Yes," Katya said, still quietly and keeping her head down. It
was the usual deal with bastards like this, but even more
usurious than usual.
"We're all friend in this town, we know who's girls are
who," Boris continued, grabbing her hair and twisting her head
up painfully. "You try to run, somebody in this town will bring
you back to me. And then I'll strip the skin off of your body in
little strips, you understand?"
Just one little scratch.
"I understand," Katya whimpered. "I'll be good. I'll be a good
whore."
"Get to work, bitch."
* * *
She hobbled upstairs, sore in a way that she'd almost
forgotten. It was a soreness that soaked at the soul, like the foul
taste in her mouth, a soreness in every pore of her being and
certainly all three holes that would fit a penis. She'd also lost
some of her muscle control in her mouth in the time with the
Kildar. She hadn't had to constantly serve men, there. Her jaw
ached along with the rest.
There were guards where the concrete steps gave out and the
wooden ones started and she started to see a few girls around,
looking out of the curtained rooms on either side of the corridor.
They all looked very sick. She guessed that you'd have to be
very sick not to work in this place. There were a lot of girls
here. Finding this stupid Natalya bitch wasn't going to be easy.
She poked into rooms, seeing the few posessions of the girls
by or on most of the matresses strewn on the floors, until she
came to one about half way down on the fifth floor. There was a
mattress there, like the others with no sheets and plenty of stains.
And a small blanket, all the concession to survival offered to the
girls in these parts.
The other mattress in the small room had stuff by it. She
knew that the girls would steal anything of value, even the least
little cosmetics, which was why she had hardly anything. At some
point she'd find a place to hide stuff down on the street.
No, she wouldn't have to. She wasn't going to be here that
long. But should she anyway? Yes, stay in cover...
"Katya, you read?" Vanner whispered over the radio in her
head.
"Uhmmm...?" she hummed. She'd tried the sub-vocalization
thing but wasn't really good at it, yet.
"We're in place," Vanner said. "Video and audio are coming
through...surprisingly clear. You hang tough. The teams are on
track to be here. Sorry there's not a damned thing I can do until
then. But we're here."
"Hmmm..." Katya said, rolling her eyes. Vanner was such a
dick. He-Man hero, hiding in some hotel. And watching
everything that happened to her, but not feeling it. He was
probably stroking off to the video.
"Just wanted you to know I was here," Vanner said.
"HMMM..." Katya practically screamed.
"Got it. I'll shut up."
She tossed her bag on the bed and went back down the stairs;
she had seen a sign for a bathroom down there.
The place was filthy and stinking, no surprise. But it had
some hot water and she washed her face and soaked the bruises
for a moment. Then she slipped a comb out from under her dress
and combed her hair, making herself marginally presentable.
Time to go hang it out on the meat rack.
* * *
"Mikhail," Vanner said, looking over at one of the bored
Keldara security team. "Time to build the cover."
The team had inserted as individuals, each of the men
bringing one of the Keldara girls with him along with their gear
and taking individual rooms at the Hotel Albana. When they were
all in place, the gear had been moved to Vanner's suite and
everyone had gathered there and remained there, the girls taking
turns monitoring Katya while the shooters just cleaned their
weapons and were bored.
But if a group of men didn't get it on a little in Lunari,
questions would be asked.
"So, how do I do this?" the team leader asked, setting down
the SPR from which he'd been wiping imaginary dust.
"It's not that hard," Vanner said. "Go get your car, drive
around town, pick up a girl and take her back to your room. Let
nature take it's course after that."
"Don't worry, Mikhail," Greznya said, grinning. "What
happens on the mission, stays on the mission. I won't tell your
mother."
* * *
She was already late for the first pickings around lunch and
there wasn't much traffic. And she had a lot of competition.
Girls were lined up along the street outside the brothel,
waving at every passing car, shouting, screaming even. She
watched as one walked right out into the road and tried to stop a
passing Lada, with three men in it, by standing in front of it. The
driver honked and maneuvered around her at which she screamed
and punched the passenger side window, letting out a stream of
profanity that even Katya found impressive.
Katya looked at the women along the street and despaired of
ever finding this Natalya bitch. She was just standing there, her
arms crossed, when a Fiat pulled to a halt and honked its horn.
She didn't even realize it was honking at her until three other
girls rushed over, leaning in the passenger window, and she heard
the argument.
"No! The one behind you you stupid bitches!" the man
shouted in English. "Get out of the way you ugly whores. That
one! The blonde!"
Katya walked up behind the center girl trying to force her
way into the car and calmly kicked her in the crotch. That area
was just about as sensitive on a woman as on a man, not to
mention being that girl's main source of income, and the girl let
out a shriek and crouched back, falling over on her stilletto heels.
"I'm just who you want," Katya said, kicking the girl
blocking the door handle in the ankle and opening the door. "I
take very good care of you."
"You're fucking gorgeous," the man said, embarassedly
wiping at his face when he actually drooled.
American from the accent, overweight but not gross and
balding. And very excited. She'd seen worse. She leaned over and
ran her hand over his crotch. Well, not that excited. This was
going to take some time.
"I am very good for you," she said.
"You look...young," the man said. "Where am I going?
Where am I going?"
"I have room," Katya said, shaking her head. She didn't know
where the hangouts were in this town. Five minutes on the street
and she was already picked up. Of course, after decent living with
the Kildar, and the easy life in the brothel before that, she looked
better than most of the street hookers in this town. Enough better
that it actually frightened her for a second. But if Boris, the
bastard, hadn't noticed anything she was probably safe.
"I've been in one of those," the man said with a shudder,
looking around at the traffic fearfully. "And I nearly had my car
stolen. They tore out the radio and you wouldn't believe what
those assholes at the rental agency charged me to get it replaced!"
"You have hotel?" Katya asked, rolling her eyes. This was
going to take extra fuck time and travel time and then she had to
get back! Maybe she could work the hotel, but the security
probably already had deals with other girls. Well, that was what
blowjobs were for. "I can give you blow, here."
"Not here, it's not safe," the man said, breathlessly.
Katya tried very hard not to sigh, the guy was such a...what
was it Russell said, a 'whiner'? Stuck in that hole in
Georgia
, servicing kopekless farm hands, she'd
forgotten about tricks like this. The scared ones, the ones that
were running from everything and completely out of their
element. Sure enough, he had a wedding ring. He was probably
over in Europe for "business" and somehow drifted to Albania
.
"We'll go to my hotel," the man said, suddenly, turning left
and nearly broadsiding a van. "Could you take your hand off my
zipper? I'm sort of..."
"You need good thing," Katya said, sliding over and
working more on the man's crotch. If she didn't he'd take forever
to cum when they got to the hotel. He clearly hadn't had an
erection in the last decade.
"How young are you?" the man said, suddenly, slowing the
car down.
"I am not too young," she answered, not sure if he wanted
some young thing or was afraid of her being "too" young. How
young was "too" young? Was she "too" young when Ivan had
raped her when she was eight? "But I am young enough to make
it very good for you."
"Wait," he said, actually turning and looking at her. Since
she'd gotten in the car, he'd seemed afraid of even that. "You're
speaking English?"
"I speak little," she said, cursing. Fluent English, and she
was fully fluent at this point, wasn't common among street
whores. "How young you want me?" she asked, couquettishly,
dropping her head and looking up at him from under her lashes.
"I can be as young want. I am very nearly virgin," she added,
knowing that would get him off. Sure enough, he actually went
from entirely flaccid to having a pulse.
"How young are you," the man said, speeding up again and
running a red light. Not that anyone paid any attention to them,
anyway.
"I am just turn sixteen," Katya said, stripping an easy year
off her age and picking one that Americans seemed to fixate
upon. "I am old enough, here. There is no problem."
"Are you sure you're sixteen?" the man said, with an edge of
disappointment as they pulled up at the hotel.
"When we get to the room, I tell you real age," Katya said,
coyly, smiling up at him innocently and batting blue eyes through
lashes again. "I give you very good time and you give me good
money, yes?"
"Yeah, yeah," the man panted. "But...I can't be seen going
through the lobby with you..."
"Give me room number," Katya said, trying very hard not to
sigh. "I meet you there."
* * *
Mikhail didn't like this particular "mission", but he felt he
had to set a good example. Each of the team would have to move
around town and meet and...spend time with the hookers that
supported the local economy. There were a few problems with
that in his case. The first was that he'd never picked up a hooker.
The rest didn't bear thinking on.
He drove down the main boulevard in a surprisingly nervous
state for someone who'd faced Chechens in battle. He thought
that he had been fully trained for whatever he might encounter,
but the American trainers had not really given him much advice
on this particular skill. He could have killed some of the hookers
lining the street and in many cases shouting at him. But he wasn't
sure he knew how to talk to them. There should have been a
training task on this. He'd have to bring it up when they got back.
If they got back.
He knew he didn't want to pick up one of the hard-faced
bitches that looked as old as his mother, and not nearly as pretty.
They were mostly the ones that screeched from the sidewalk like
crows and sometimes ran over and tried to pull his car door
open. And some of the girls just looked... He couldn't imagine
doing it with them. They were just...
Finally he spotted what he was looking for after about an
hour of driving around and pulled over, waving at the girl.
The brunette practically ran to the door as he leaned over
and unlocked it. She still had to hip-check another woman, one
of the older ones, out of the way and tumbled into to the
passenger seat.
"Hello," the girl said, sliding over to lean against him. "I'm
Tanya. I give you very good time."
"Mikhail," the Keldara said, putting the car in gear and trying
to figure out which way back to the hotel.
"Hello, Mikhail," the girl said, sitting up. "Where are we
going?"
"The Hotel Albana if I can find it," Mikhail said.
"I think you take a right up here," the girl said, sighing. "I've
been there, once. Is nice. But it takes time to get there and back,
so it will be more. I give you very good time for an hour
for...fifty euros."
Vanner had told him that the girl should cost thirty
or forty euros but he wasn't going to haggle. One of the reasons
that he'd picked this girl out was that she looked as if she knew
what she was doing but she didn't really look like a whore. He
just couldn't haggle with her.
"Fifty is okay," Mikhail said, frowning. Vanner had told him
to just submit an "expense report." He figured one of the women
would know how to do that.
"Ooo, you're nice," Tanya said, running her hand over his
arm. "You are going to like this very much."
Mikhail frowned for a second and then sighed.
"Is something need to tell you," he said.
"You want special service is more," Tanya said, not looking
very happy. "In ass is ten euros. You want hit, is more."
"It's not that," Mikhail said, hurriedly. "It's...I've never done
this before. Been with a..."
"Prostitute?" the girl asked then looked at his face and
stopped. "Oh. Have never been with girl?"
"Don't laugh, please," Mikhail said, desperately.
"Learn early not to laugh at men," Tanya said, still looking at
him seriously. "You tell truth?"
"Yes," Mikhail said, frowning. "Where I'm from...is not
much chance. Good girls...don't. Bad girls...leave."
"Oh," Tanya said. "Well, I show you good time. Will be
okay, okay?"
"Okay," Mikhail said, smiling finally. "Thank you for not
making fun of me. How did..."
"How did nice girl like me end up here?" Tanya said,
sighing. "From nice boy like you."
"Excuse me?"
"Boyfriend," Tanya said, leaning back into her own seat. "I'm
with him for...three months or so. He tells me has a friend can get
me into Germany
as maid. There is no work in
Russia
for me, so I say I'll meet friend. Turns out
friend gets hookers for Albanians. Never see boyfriend again."
"That's..." Mikhail said, angrily.
"Shitty, yes?" the girl replied with a bitter laugh. "I think,
maybe he not know. I love him, yes? And he do this to me. But
he must know. Sometimes think of what would want to do to
him if found him again. Are not nice thoughts."
"I'll hold his arms for you," Mikhail said. "If you not want to
do this..."
"I have to do this," Tanya said, desperately. "Don't drop me
off, please. I need to earn money. If I don't bring back money, I
get beaten."
"Okay," Mikhail said, as they pulled up to the hotel. "We do
this."
"You very nice," Tanya replied, snuggling back up to him.
"You nice boy, nice man. I think I give you special service. I rock
your world."
Chapter Thirty-Six
When the American answered the door he grabbed her and
tried to kiss her on the mouth. Katya thought about it for a
second and let him. He'd put on cologne and brushed his teeth.
Americans. Like she cared.
"I am very good for you," she said, rethinking her strategy. If
she walked back to the hotel, she'd probably be passing through a
bunch of other brothels' territories. Which meant if she tried to
pick up tricks, she'd get the crap beat out of her by the pimps that
watched the girls. Paying for a taxi, unless this guy was
incredibly generous, was out of the question. Even if he gave her
the fare, she'd be better to pocket it and walk.
But it was at least a half hour walk back, if she walked fast.
In heels.
So...and so.
"I give you good time," Katya said, pushing him back
towards the bed. "And you give me money, please?" she
practically sobbed. "I am sorry to ask, I am not good whore. I
have only been whore for few days." She sat on the edge of the
bed and started sobbing.
"What?" the man said, sitting up and patting her on the
shoulder. "Really?"
"I am orphan," she sobbed. "I am thrown out of orphanage.
There I learn English. Not so good, but I can understand, yes? I
have no where to go, no one hire me. I must do this." She looked
up, suddenly, and stared at him, fiercely. "I will do this with you,
yes? You are good man, sweet and nice, a good American, yes? I
will give you much sex, but, please..." she broke down and
sobbed. "Please, I ask you not send me back out. I will give you
sex over and over but Boris, he hit me if I not bring back enough!
Please to help me!"
"How old are you, child?" the man said, pulling her up into
his lap.
"I am...I am fourteen," Katya sobbed. "I am only whore a few
days. Boris, he rape me and tell me I make money for him. He
make me pay rent and I must pay him eight hundred euros every
day! Yesterday, I only make sixty euros! He hit me much," she
added, pointing to the bruises on her face and her cut lip.
"That's just...abominable," the man snapped. "Horrible! You
can stay here, if you want. I'm going to be here...I'd planned on
being here for a few days..."
"No!" Katya gasped in fear. "NO! Boris' men, they find me.
Find you! No, I will stay with you until is very late. But I must
have money! I must...you are not...I must..." She broke down
again.
"Look," the man said. "I'd planned on spending...quite a bit,
here. You can have it. I don't really need..." He stopped and
sighed.
"You need, yes?" Katya said, looking up with tears in her
eyes. "I will. With you, I am very good for you, yes? And...you
need. I feel you."
"My wife and I..." the man said with a sigh. "I mean, I love
her, but she just...doesn't want to anymore. And I'm not going
to...you can't just up and beat a woman because she doesn't want
to have sex. So...I use a Kleenex and...well. Anyway, I was at a
seminar in Italy
and there was this...young lady. Like you
but...not as young. And she...was very good for me."
Katya was fighting yawning and trying to keep the tears
going at the same time. It was a tough call, but she managed it.
The important part was to stare him in the eye and nod. Doing
your nails was a bad idea. Save that for later when he was on top
and wouldn't notice as long as you kept making lots of noise.
The long story of the man's journey to the most whore-
infested town in Albania
wound to a close and Katya jerked back to
wakefulness, trying to rememer what he'd said.
"Your wife is very bad woman!" Katya said, throwing her
arms around him. "She should give you what you need. You are
good man!" I hope I can suck enough out of him for all this time.
But if I play my cards right...
"She's not a bad woman," the man said with a sigh. "She just
doesn't understand how...what I need. And...she's not as good
looking as she used to be. I don't want to leave her, though.
So...here I am. In Lunari. It seemed like a good idea with a few
drinks in me..."
"But I am good you," Katya said, standing up and lifting up
her skirt a little. "I am take care you. But..."
"I'll pay you," the man said, reaching into his shirt and
pulling out a secure wallet. "I'll buy you from him if that's what
it takes!"
"Would not sell me," Katya said, pushing the money away
and mentally calculating the bulge. If that was all he had with
him, she was sunk. "This town, is not safe and safe at all same
time. I know people make safe. But need money. You pay me, I
stay near you most of time. Must go back so they know I not try
to run. But I come for you. I show you town, we go to club. You
pay me. I give you much sex, more sex than ever have in life. We
get other girls, do it together if you want. Not much more money
at all. I take very good care of you! But..."
"Would a thousand euros a day cover it?" the man asked,
pulling out Traveller's Checks.
"I cannot do with those..." Katya said in real desperation.
"But can cash at hotel?"
"I have some euros, too," the man said, handing them over to
her. It was about three hundred, so far so good. Oh, shit, the
mission. This would have been heaven if she was really one of
the whores in the brothel. But she had a different mission. "And,
yes, I can cash them at the hotel. And it has an ATM, but...if I hit
that too hard my wife will wonder why."
"We take care of it," Katya said, seriously, but with a touch
of innocence. "I take care of you and give you very good time
until you leave. I am rock your world."
* * *
"Oh...wow!" Mikhail said, lying back on the bed.
"You come quick," Tanya replied, wiping the cum away
from her mouth. "And lots. I think there is more there," she
added, stroking his member. Sure enough, it started to pop back
to life.
"I'm not sure..." Mikhail said, starting to sit up.
"I show you other way," the hooker said, standing up and
pulling off her sheath dress. "You like my body?"
"You're very pretty," Mikhail admitted. She would only be
average as a Keldara, but he'd never seen a Keldara girl naked so
he had limited experience to judge. All he knew was that he
wanted to do it again. And again and again.
"Come over here," she said, lying down on the bed. "You
need condom."
"I've got one," Mikhail admitted, getting up quickly and
digging through his bags until he found the foil packet.
"I show," Tanya said as he fumbled with the latex sheeth. "Is
almost too small." She took the condom, placed the tip in her
mouth and put it on that way. "You like?"
"Yes," Mikhail admitted. "What...where...?"
"Come here," the girl said, pulling him over to her. "On top.
Try not to put all your weight on me..." she started to spit on her
fingers to moisten herself and realized she didn't have to, she was
actually enjoying herself. "I get you there..." she added, guiding
him down and in.
"Oh...wow," Mikhail repeated, starting to pump at her
furiously. He looked up after a moment and stopped as he saw
tears in the girl's eyes. "Are you okay?" he asked, starting to pull
out.
"Don't," she said, digging her fingers into his buttocks. "Is
good for me, too. You are very nice. I like. Makes me sad,
though. I not be whore for very long. Is almost like boyfriend
again."
"Only almost?" Mikhail asked.
"Actually, is better," Tanya admitted, grinning through the
tears. "Boyfriend was too small. I think you are rock my world."
* * *
Katya got out of the taxi, one of the last driving around
Lunari, and twisted her spine to get it back in line, getting a full
view of the front of the building. Two guards, more barred
windows up to the fourth storey, heavy steel door. The street was
mostly deserted, though, at this time of night.
The man, he said his name was Tom and he was a
neurosurgeon from Cleveland,
Tennessee, had been as hard
to get off as she'd predicted. But he still wanted sex most of the
time and she'd given it to him. And he must have slept in, because
he hadn't passed out until after three. It hadn't advanced the
mission much, but it gave her some leeway. She had her money
for the day, at least.
"You're late," the guard on the door growled. She was using
the front entrance, which she'd never been through, because it
was clear the others were closed.
"I have to make money, yes?" she asked.
"Get in," he said, irritably. "You're the last one."
Boris, unbelievably, was still awake, the bastard.
"Where the fuck have you been, bitch!" he stormed, walking
up to her and smashing her to the floor with a hard slap.
"I have your money!" she whimpered, reaching under the
dress and pulling out money. "Six hundred euros!"
"Let me see that," Boris said, snatching the money out of her
hand and then reaching into her dress and fumbling around.
"More, bitch? You have more!"
"I found a rich American," Katya said, stopping the
dissembling and standing up. "He thinks I'm fourteen and just
broken in. My amazing skills at sucking him off being natural, I
suppose. Six hundred for my debt, thirty for room I'm only going
to use for a few hours and food I didn't eat, yes?" She reached
out and calmly plucked a hundred euro note out of his hand.
"This is for me, yes? If you hit again, American might not like my
face. He wants me and sometimes other girl. Let me pick and he
stays happy, yes? And you make your money. Is another hundred
there is yours. Or...you can hit and tell me I'm stupid bitch and
beat me up so I not look good... and tomorrow maybe I have six,
maybe not." She shrugged and dared to look him in the eye.
"You've been around," Boris said.
"I said, I am whore in
Ukraine
," Katya said, shrugging. "Have been a
whore for...five year. I know how to work men, how to suck
them dry of money. I speak English, I speak Russian, I even speak fucking Georgian. No
Albanian. But I spend some time here, suck my American dry,
send him home happy to his fat wife and then you send me to
Italy where I make you real money."
"Bring him to the club, tomorrow," Boris said, his eyes
narrow.
"He doesn't like those shitty rooms upstairs," Katya said. "I
will, but..."
"There are other rooms," Boris said. "Ten euros to rent.
Clean sheets, red light, very nice. You didn't know?"
"No," Katya said, trying not to sigh again because then he
would hit her. "You only told me to get out on the street and
make you your money, yes? I have made you your money. I'll
bring him to the club. But...he likes me. He likes girls like me.
Let me find another for part of the time. There will be at least
one here that will do. I'll bring him, introduce him, get him to
buy pay-me drinks, yes?"
"You know the routine," Boris said. "But I think you're a
little too smart for your own good."
"I bring you money," Katya said, shrugging. "Why you
care?"
"Because you better understand that I own you, bitch," Boris
snarled, grabbing her by the arm. "And I can teach you that
without ever leaving a mark. Come with me."
He dragged her to the back of the club and into the men's
restroom. It still hadn't been cleaned from the night and smelled
of shit, piss and puke.
He kicked open one of the stalls and shoved her head into
the fetid bowl of the toilet.
"Lick it clean, bitch," Boris snarled, shoving her head down.
"You're no more than a fucking whore. And whores do what
they're told. So lick that shit out of the bowl, bitch!"
Katya gagged but did what she was told, licking at the shit
besmeared bowl. She tried to tell herself that she'd done worse,
but when didn't come to mind. Yes, it did. There was a Japanese
tourist in the Ukraine
that had paid her to eat his shit. But she'd
at least been paid. And that was a long time ago.
When Boris jerked her head up she was careful to look as
meek as possible. He wanted her humiliated so she brought up
some more tears and quivered in fear.
"Please," she whimpered. "I bring you money! I will!"
"You're damned right you will," Boris said, reaching into
her dress again and pulling out her remaining hundred euro note.
"And this is a fine for thinking your smart! Now get your ass up
to the room, bitch. And your rich American had better be in my
club tomorrow!"
Katya kept her head down on the way up to her room. Light
was apparently optional above the main club level and she kept
stumbling over bumps and cracks in the floor with her heels as
she made her way.
When she got there she saw that her stuff had been picked
through but they hadn't taken her toothbrush at least. But she
didn't have any toothpaste left.
She made her way back to the only bathroom she had found,
other than the one on the ground floor and she wasn't going there
any time soon. She brushed her teeth with the horrible soap that
was on the sink and managed to get the last of the shit taste out
then took a sketchy shower. The hot water had apparently been
turned off as well.
That done she went back to her semen and blood stained bed,
set her dress against the wall to avoid having it stolen and linked
her fingers behind her bed, staring at the ceiling.
So far, the mission was going better than she'd expected.
* * *
"Mikhail, do you have any idea what time it is?" Vanner
asked, grumpily.
"Yes," the team leader said. "I have problem."
"Come on in," Vanner said, waving the way into his
bedroom. The intel team had set up in the main room and he'd
taken one of the two bedrooms. He'd just gotten off of
monitoring duty and had looked forward to a few hours rest
before Katya woke up. One of the girls was on duty to monitor
when she was asleep, in case a serious security issue came up.
But Tiya would get to sleep during the day. He wasn't going to
get the chance.
"The girl I pick up..." Mikhail said as the intel specialist
closed the door.
"Oh, crap," Vanner said, collapsing on the bed. "Don't tell
me you've fallen in love with a hooker."
"She not want to be whore," Mikhail insisted.
"Mikhail," Vanner said, frowning. "We're on a mission here.
We can't afford for you to go all John Wayne on us."
"What?" Mikhail asked, confused.
"You were supposed to just go out and get laid," Vanner
replied, sighing. "Not fall in love with the girl. Look, most of the
hookers in town aren't here because they grew up wanting to be
hookers. In fact, you'd be hard pressed to find one that had that
on her list of intended vocations. But that's what they are, now.
What do you want to do about it? Where is she, by the way?"
"In my room," Mikhail said, worrying his lip.
"Damnit, they have a curfew," Vanner snapped. "Her pimp is
going to come looking for her."
"She called," Mikhail said. "She tell them she is staying with
her...trick and will bring money in morning."
"She needs at least..."
"Six hundred and thirty euros," Mikhail said, miserably.
"And I suppose you want me to cough it up," Vanner said.
"The Kildar to pay for it."
"I will pay back," Mikhail said. "I not want her to get hurt.
She is from Club Aldaris. That is target, yes?"
"Christ," Vanner said, sliding up the bed and leaning on the
headboard. "Mikhail, you're supposed to be security for the suite.
You think she can come in here with you?"
"No," the trooper admitted. "But..."
Vanner held up one hand and thought for a second.
"Okay," the intel specialist said, frowning. "You're on deck
for security tonight. You're supposed to be in there now. So go
tell her you have to go for a while, she can sleep there.
Tomorrow you take her back to the club, she pays her pimp,
then you two go back to your
room. Get some rest, don't just screw all day because you're on
duty tomorrow night, too. We'll see what we can arrange."
"Thank you, sir," Mikhail said, standing up.
"I want to meet her, tomorrow," Vanner added. "Maybe we
can salvage something useful out of this."
"Yes, sir."
"Now...go!"
* * *
"Come," Mike said at the knock on the door.
"Kildar," Oleg said, entering the room and coming to
attention.
"Sit, Oleg, what's on your mind?" Mike said, clearing the
screen on his computer.
The helicopters had arrived and the Keldara had gotten
started on that training. Most of them had never ridden in an
airplane before and few had even seen a helicopter. But, as
always, they were soaking up the information like so many
sponges. And the majority already knew how to fast-rope for that
portion of the entry.
Taking off and landing on the freighter, though, was going
to be problematic. Mike intended to exercise in the Black Sea
before they headed for Albania
.
"Kildar, I am not sure how to say this..." Oleg said.
"If it's about that...Kardane thing..." Mike said.
"No, no!" Oleg replied, waving his hands. "It does, however,
touch on the honor of the Keldara."
"Go ahead," Mike said, furrowing his brow.
"Before you came, we had problems with the Chechens,"
Oleg said, furrowing his own in thought. "They often came
wanting us to give up our food, our mules...our women."
"And you fought them off at least once," Mike said. "I heard
about that."
"But even then..." Oleg said and paused. "I should not be the
one saying this, but the elders don't have the same..."
"Who was she?" Mike asked, softly.
"My sister," Oleg said. "Elena. She was twelve."
"Oleg, it's a big damned world out there..." Mike said then
paused himself. "What are you asking?"
"There is going to be information in Lunari about...much,"
Oleg pointed out. "Greznya spoke to me. An Elena, a Georgian
girl, was listed on one of the...hard-drives you recovered. The
one in Romania
..."
"Oleg, she might not be in the same building," Mike said,
sighing. "It's an astronomical unlikelihood that she will be. And,
Oleg, you've seen the raw intel. That town is one fortress after
another. If we can find and extract Elena, without compromising
the mission, we will. And if we can't extract her, but we can find
her, I'll move heaven and earth to get her back. Is she the only
one?"
"No," Oleg admitted. "Catrina Mahona. She was taken...four
years ago. And there was no record of her. But, Kildar, both of
these women, they are..."
"Dead to the clan," Mike said, nodding. "I understand. They
are soiled, untouchable. I'm talking to a school in Argentina
that might take in the girls we've
recovered, those that don't have some sort of life to go back to. I
may send them some of the girls in the harem, as well. Would
that do?"
"Kildar..." Oleg replied, his face working.
"Concentrate on the mission, Oleg," Mike said, his own face
hard. "You've communicated your concerns to me. Let me handle
it from here. You've got enough to worry about."
* * *
"You're not usually up this late, George," Senator Traskel
said as he was lead into the sitting room. The president was
leaning back on the couch, his eyes closed and pinching the
bridge of his nose, while his Chief of Staff poured coffee.
"There was just too many things going on today to break off
early," the president said, yawning. "And another long one
tomorrow unless I'm much mistaken. What can I do for you,
Tom?"
"I picked up a rumor that we have an operation going on in
Albania
," Senator Traskel said, sitting down and
accepting the proffered coffee cup. "I hope that it's nothing that
should have been discussed with my committee beforehand.
Albania
is a sovereign country, with a growing
reputation in the UN..."
"Albania
?" the president said, looking over at the
Chief of Staff, quizzically. "You're talking about a special
operations black operation? As far as I know, no American
military operation is being planned for
Albania
. I can't even imagine why we'd do one. I
mean, it's a land that exports nothing but drugs and beaten-up
prostitutes, which is good and sufficient reason for
democratization. But it doesn't actively threaten the
US
, so we've more or less left it alone except
for encouraging improvement. Through the UN, as a matter of
fact."
"You're sure about that?" the senator asked. "I heard a fairly
credible rumor that a company of American Rangers was going
to be flying into a town in
Albania
to rescue some hostages. I didn't even
know there were any hostages in Albania
. If there were, I think the American people
would be interested, don't you? I know that many things must be
kept 'black' as the military likes to put it. But some things need
the sun shown upon them, don't you think?"
"I'm sure they do," the president said, smiling. "But as I said,
there is no American military operation going on in
Albania
. No, wait," the president said as the
senator started to protest. "I might be wrong. There are
operations going on all over the world. It is possible that there is
a group of terrorists there we're going after. Albania
is primarily Muslim, after all. Let me
check."
The president leaned over and picked up the phone.
"Grace? Could you call OSOL and ask them if we have an
operation going on in Albania
? Something about a company of Rangers?
If so, I want to know, right away, what the nature and purpose of
the mission is. Thank you." He turned back to the senator and
shrugged. "As you know, OSOL has its finger on the pulse of
every operation, black or white, that is done under any special
operations umbrella including the blackest DIA operations. If
there's anything going on, they'll know it. In the meantime, what
do you think of the Astros this year?"
* * *
"Your information was wrong," Traskel snarled into the
phone.
"I don't think so," the man on the other end said. "A company
of Rangers was sent to Eastern Europe.
That's a fact. And another source said that there was a mission
planned for Lunari using a company sized force. There are people
that don't agree with all these military adventures of this idiot in
the White House. We talk. You know that."
"They're looking for the girl," the senator said, his face
working. "And she's in Lunari. Get over there. You should have
cleaned this up the first time. Clean it up now."
"Do you have any idea how many women are in Lunari?" the
voice said, chokingly.
"They're going to find her, so can you. And then finish it. No
little games, you understand me. Finish her."
Chapter Thirty-Seven
"Katya," a female voice whispered in her head. "This is
Lidiya, Team Padrek. Good morning."
"Hmmm..." Katya replied as she brushed her teeth again.
She'd traded a dollar she'd hidden in one of her pouches for some
toothpaste and Lord did she need it. It was almost lunch time.
Time to go look up "Tom" again. She had to look half way
decent. A heroine in a movie that's been roughed up but still
looks like a model... She ran her fingers through her hair and
tossed it around to get just the right effect. If she only had some
cosmetics, she could get it perfect.
"Additional mission. There are some Keldara girls that
might be in the town. We have visuals of them. If we see one,
through you, we'll redirect. Understand?"
"Hmmm..." Katya said, rolling her eyes. Great. Fucking
Holier-Than-Thou Keldara. Nobody ever came for her when she
needed it.
"You need to get more of a layout on the club. Use your
American if you can."
"HMMMM..." Teach me to suck eggs, stupid Keldara
bitch!
"I can see you're not a morning person."
Katya sighed angrily and finished brushing then headed back
down to the street. Supposedly, there was something resembling
breakfast around here, but "Tom" had had some food in his room
and that was enough to keep her going through the very short
night.
But, first, she wanted to take a look around. Most of the
girls were still just getting ready for the day, the lazy whores.
Getting out early, looking fresh, would usually pick you up at
least two or three tricks. All it took was getting out of bed. If she
ran this place, there'd be a reveille.
But the fact was that there wasn't. So the girls were still
getting up and she could see the faces.
It was all the way on the sixth floor that she found her. The
girl was just finishing working on her hair using a bit of mirror
on the wall. She was pretty sure it was the same girl, but she
continued to stare then hummed and finally sighed.
"Sorry, you're calling us aren't you?" a female voice said.
"Yes, that appears to be the target. Find out what room she uses.
Move into it if you think it will work."
She'd hatched a plan in an instant, but she wasn't sure how to
tell the stupid Keldara. There was very little in the way of
privacy. Later for that.
"Hello," she said, walking over to the girl.
Natalya looked at her fearfully then around for support.
"I'm not going to put on you," Katya said, looking her up
and down. The girl was young and fairly good looking. She'd
look better with some cosmetics, no question.Could she swing
this? "I have found a rich American. He wants two girls, even
though he can barely get it up with one. And he likes young ones.
But not to hit on, he is nice. You are pretty good. You want in?"
"Will I make as much as usual?" Natalya asked in a resigned
tone.
"If you work with me, you will," Katya said, shaking her
head. "More and with less work. You need to learn to be a good
whore, though. He thinks I'm fourteen and barely touched. I'm
not going to take him some dragged out whore. If you can't act,
the deal is off. You speak English?"
"No," the girl said, still looking at her fearfully.
"Good," Katya said, the plan blooming. "Let me handle the
talking, then. And don't tell anyone what the arrangement is.
You'll get seven hundred euros a day. He uses traveller's checks.
I know a man who will give me a special deal on them, so I'll
cash them, alone."
"Ah, got it," the Keldara listener said, musingly. "We'll
supplement. I'll get Vanner and tell him."
"We'll go down, you stay by the doors. I'll find him and we'll
get together with him and tell him the deal. Yes?"
"Yes," Natalya said, her eyes wide. "But why are you being
nice to me?"
"Who says I'm being nice?" Katya said, laughing evilly. "I'm
going to let you do most of the fucking and I'll take most of the
money. And because you're such a little mouse you won't try to
double-cross me, will you?" She leaned forward and ran her
sharpened nails down the girl's neck, lightly. "Will you?"
* * *
"You know," Vanner said, leaning back at the head of the
bed and monitoring the grainy video take on his laptop. "If we
were really just after the girl, we could pull her out like this. No
muss, no fuss."
"Who would have thought they'd have her out walking the
streets?" Lidiya asked, shaking her head. "That means something,
but I'm not sure what."
"Well, whatever is important about the girl, the Albanians
clearly don't know it," Vanner replied. "Upload that item. We
might want to find an alternate plan to get the girl. One that is
less likely to get her wacked."
* * *
Katya realized she had screwed up by not making special
arrangements to meet "Tom" last night. But as soon as she
stepped down to the street, she saw his Fiat cruising slowly along
the boulevard.
"Tom!" she shouted as he pulled next to her. She ran over
and leaned in the window, giving him a good solid French kiss.
She hoped some day she'd get the chance to tell him how her
night had gone. But not today, not after that kiss.
"He hurt you," Tom said, running his hand carefully over the
fresh bruise on her cheek.
"It is okay," Katya said. "Men have hit me since I was very
young. I am used to it. I told you I have friend," she said, waving
to Natalya. "We will give you very good deal, but we must talk.
And, if you don't mind, I would like to shower at your hotel.
Would you scrub my back?"
* * *
"Do we have this set up?" Katya asked in Georgian when she
was in the shower. The hotel water was at least warm, if not
exactly clear. And hot didn't seem to be a setting. But there was
some shampoo, thank God, and decent American soap. She
scrubbed hard.
"It's set up," Lidiya answered. "Whenever you're ready to
make the switch. It will be in the hotel."
"Good," Katya said.
"We're communicating with higher about extracting you and
Natalya prior to the main op, less likely to get shot."
"That would be nice," Katya said, dryly. "How long?"
"No more than four days," Lidiya replied.
"I hope I can string him along that long," Katya said. "It's the
best bet I've got for keeping close to the girl."
"You're doing fine," Lidiya said, soothingly. "Just keep on
like you have been."
"Being beaten, raped and having to service men?" Katya
replied, sarcastically. "You try it."
"I've got other skills," Lidiya said. "One of which is making
sure you have your money to keep your pimp off your back."
"I'm done here," Katya said.
"Out."
"You talk to yourself, too?" Natalya asked, dreamily.
Katya nearly had a heart attack until she realized the girl was
never going to know the Keldara accented version of Georgian
they'd been speaking. The dialect was practically another
language.
"Sometimes," Katya said, wondering what the girl might
have understood. "When I think I'm alone!" Should have made
sure.
"Do you have voices?" Natalya asked in the same dreamy
voice. "I have voices. They tell me that the bad man is coming."
"They are all bad men," Katya said, wondering if the girl had
implants like she did or if she was just crazy. Hopefully, just
crazy.
"No, this is the real bad man," Natalya said. "He said that he
would come for me. That he would let me wait and fear. But he
didn't come back. And they sent me here, instead."
"Well, he's not here," Katya said. "But I am. And if you don't
get out of damned bathroom you're not going to have to fear him
because I'm going to kill you!"
"He seemed like such a nice man," Natalya said, as she
closed the door. "So very nice. He had a nice face."
* * *
"Bingo," Vanner said as he replayed that portion of the tape.
Of course, that also meant that he had to look at Katya's tits from
an angle he'd never seen them from before. But he managed to
keep his mind on work. "She saw the face of the guy who was
impersonating Fullbright."
"And he said he'd be back," Lidiya continued. "To kill her,
later. But the Albanians had shipped her, already."
"So did he know that there was full audio/video in Rozaje?"
Vanner mused. "Who did know, at that time?"
"The British government," Lidiya pointed out. "Maybe the
American government as well?"
"Yeah, but who in the American government?" Vanner
asked, rhetorically. He turned to the satellite link and started
typing. "Want to bet that Senator Traskel is on the list?"
"Who's going to do the plant?" Lidiya asked. "Two of the
girls are out planting vids, I'm on deck and Liya is sleeping."
"I've got an idea," Vanner said, smiling.
* * *
"Oh, this is very good," Mikhail groaned as Tanya humped
him from on top.
"You are very good," Tanya replied, panting. "I think...toooo
gooo..." She paused and gasped as there was a knock on the door.
And then squealed as she was suddenly thrown half-way across
the bed and Mikhail was on his feet with a pistol clutched in a
two handed grip.
"What are you..." she asked, half in a whisper.
"Get down and be quiet," Mikhail replied, cat-footing to the
door, apparently ignoring that he was entirely naked. "Who is it?"
"Vanner. Open up."
Mikhail uncocked the gun and looked around wildly then
snatched up a towel before opening the door.
"Smells like you haven't been getting much sleep," Vanner
said in Russian as he walked in the room. "Where's the girl?"
"Here?" Tanya said, popping up over the far side of the bed
holding her sheeth dress in front of her.
"Get some clothes on," Vanner said and looked Mikhail up
and down. "And you, Mikhail. But take the condom off first."
* * *
"We will both be very good to you," Katya said as she
walked back into the room with a towel wrapped around her hair
and torso. The latter barely covered her pubic hair and was pulled
down low on her breasts so she had his full and undivided
attention. "But there are some things that we have to do for that
deal."
"Okay," Tom said, breathlessly. Natalya hadn't even waited
for a suggestion and was fellating him rigorously. "Whatever you
two want..."
"I have found man that will give me good deal on traveller's
checks," Katya said. "I will cash them. Just once every day, eight
hundred euros. And we must spend time at the club."
"I don't..." Tom started to say and then winced.
"We don't go to girl's rooms," Katya said, quickly. "There
are nice rooms, only ten euros to use. And if you find other girls
you like, you go with them, too. But you must buy us some
drinks so Boris makes money or he will get angry." She brushed
her cheek, lightly, and shook her head. "He was very angry that I
come back so late last night. He think I run. If you want both of
us, must keep him happy."
"Okay, okay," Tom said, groaning. "Whatever you want..."
"Move over, stupid one," Katya said in Russian, kneeling
down in front of the neurosurgeon. "You don't know how to
really give a man head."
* * *
"So you're Tanya," Vanner said when both of them had
gotten dressed. She was a fairly pretty brunette, he had to admit.
Not up to Keldara standards, but close.
"Yes?" she replied, looking over at Mikhail.
"You've probably figured out by now that Mikhail is not a
farm manager here on vacation," Vanner said, smiling. "By the
pistol, if nothing else."
"I...hadn't thought so before..." Tanya said, carefully.
"You want out?" Vanner asked. "Out from being a whore
that is?"
"Yes," the girl said, fiercely then paused. "But I cannot run. I
would be beaten, killed."
"Not where we'll send you," Vanner said. "The Albanians
won't be able to touch you. But to get out, really out, you need to
help us."
"What are you doing?" Tanya asked, nervously.
"You don't have to know," Vanner said. "All you have to do
is what we tell you, when we tell you, exactly. And you don't talk
about it. Not even to your girlfriends. If you do, you're going to
get Mikhail killed, and yourself. Do you understand?"
"Yes," the girl answered, quietly.
"Okay," Vanner said, pulling out a metal packet and tossing
it to her. "Put that in your purse. You're going to plant it for us."
* * *
"Now," Katya said when the doctor was laid out flat on the
bed and Natalia was using up the hot water. "The money changer
I found is near the hotel. I will go to him once per day, as I said.
But we must go to the club as well. And I must sleep there late at
night, so that they know all their girls are still in town. So, we
must either come back here, later, to get the money changed or I
change it now."
"You're just going to run, aren't you?" Tom said, sighing in
regret. "Take the money and run..." he sang.
"No, Tom," Katya said, seriously. "Please, look at me. I will
not run." That's right, look right into these innocent blue eyes
you sucker.
"Okay, okay," Tom said, pulling out his money pouch and
pulling out the traveller's checks. "How much?"
"Eight hundred, please," Katya said, putting her hand on his
arm and leaning into him. "I promise. I am only gone..."
"Ten minutes," Vanner whispered. "Max."
"Ten minutes," Katya continued, stepping over his "max".
"And Natalya stays here, yes? When she gets out of shower, she
give you good time."
"Not as good as you, Katya," Tom said, handing over the
endorsed traveller's checks. "Nobody is as good as you."
"I be back very soon," Katya said, standing up. "I do
whatever you want. I play little girl, yes?" she asked, pulling her
hair into pony-tails.
"Do you have a schoolgirl outfit?" Tom asked, breathing
hard.
"No," Katya said, pouting. "I not even have hair ribbons. Is
all I have, what you see," she added, waving at her body.
"I could..."
"If you want send me shop," Katya said, smiling winningly.
"I buy whatever you want. I be whoever you want. Any name you
want, any girl you want. You do whatever you want."
"Can you...resist a little?" Tom asked.
"I be whatever you want," Katya said, slipping to the door.
"Ten minutes."
* * *
"In ten minutes, with this much money, I could be on my
way to Greece
," Katya said as she strode down the hall.
"This is the time for me to cut and run, normally. Where am I
going?"
"Third floor," Vanner answered. "West stairwell."
She rode the elvator down to the third floor and stepped
aside for another whore who wordlessly boarded the elevator as
she got off. Then she headed for the stairwell.
"Fire hose compartment on your right," Vanner said as she
stepped into the stairwell. "Container under it."
She pulled the plastic container out and had a moment's
trouble opening it. But when she did a thick envelope fell out.
"Put the traveller's checks back in," Vanner said. "You can't
hold onto them with Boris searching your dress every time you
go back."
"You're getting off on this, aren't you?" Katya asked,
slipping the checks into the box and replacing it.
"Only when you're looking in a mirror, honey," the former
Marine said. "Seriously, you're doing great."
"Compliments get you no-where," Katya said, stepping back
into the hallway. "But the Kildar had better come through with
the money or he's going to find out how badly I can scratch these
days."
* * *
"Are we going to be okay?" Tanya asked when she got back
to the room.
"We'll be fine," Mikhail promised. "As long as you don't talk
about anything you do or are asked. Okay?"
"Yes," the girl answered.
"I'd like to go back to what we were doing," he added. "But
we'll have to wait until later. How long have you been in Club
Aldaris?"
"Three months," Tanya said. "Why?"
"Have you spent much time in the club?" Mikhail asked,
pulling out some sheets of paper.
"Yes," she replied. "All the girls spend time working in club.
Why?"
"Because I need to ask you some questions about it,"
Mikhail said, unrolling the sheets and pointing to a spot on the
floorplan. "What is this room used for?"
* * *
"There, you see?" Katya asked when she came back in the
room.
Tom was sitting on the bed, looking at Natalya who was
crouched in the corner, rocking.
"Is she okay?" Tom asked, nervously. "She came out of the
shower and seemed just fine. Then she screamed and she's been
over there ever since."
"Bad man," Natalya was muttering, appearing to draw on her
leg with her finger. "Bad man's going to come..."
"Some girls, they don't do well here," Katya said, carefully.
"I talk to her, I get her calm down. She still be very good to you."
"I like her," Tom said, his face twisted. "She seems
so...fragile. So do you, but not like her. I wish I could take both
of you away from here."
"It cannot happen," Katya said, sighing and approaching the
rocking girl. "Natalya?"
"Bad man is coming," the girl was singing to herself.
"Coming back for you..."
"Natalya," Katya said, sharply. "There's no bad man, here. Is
he the bad man?" she added, darting a glance at "Tom."
"No, not here," Natalya said, still drawing on her leg.
"Natalya, go suck on Tom," Katya ordered.
The girl quickly scurried across the bed and began opening
the doctor's fly.
"She was worried she hadn't been good enough for you,"
Katya said, letting out a sigh of relief that sounded very real
because it was. "That was all. She let it worry her too much. If
you don't do well enough for the pimps, well, they beat you and
other things."
"Oh," Tom said, shaking his head as the hooker began
fellating him. "I don't think I can...you know, right now."
"Maybe we get some schoolgirl outfits?" Katya asked.
"Some makeup? Am told can look very much like Britney
Spears... You want rape Britney?"
* * *
Chapter Thirty-Eight
"Kildar," Anastasia said, looking in the door. "Father
Kulcyanov wishes to see you."
"Send him in," Mike said, trying not to sigh and clearing the
screen on his computer. The operation had turned out to be
almost nightmarishly complex and making sure all the strands
were in place had become a day by day struggle. The last thing he
needed was to deal with the often long-winded Father
Kulcyanov.
It had ended up making more sense to move in stages. The
freighter didn't need much in the way of modification for the
mission so, since the one they'd hired had been in the western
Med when the deal was made, it had headed directly for Albanian
waters.
The helicopter company, Russkiya Heavy Lift, had often
operated in and around Macedonia and
Albania
, supplying implementation forces and
humanitarian operations. With a few words in the right ears,
getting permission for the helicopters to pick up a "oil rig relief
team" hadn't been hard.
The teams were, thus, to be flown into Hellenica airport,
board busses and drive to the Greek coast then be picked up by
the choppers and flown out to the freighter.
The biggest hassle had been getting the equipment to them.
This had required the services of another freighter and a mid-
ocean transfer managed by Chief Adams.
Pulling it all together had been a day by day struggle with
logistics while maintaining security. Vanner had ended up going
to Spain to arrange
the freighter, Chief Adams had put more pages into his passport
flying to Turkey and
Greece to ensure the
arms made it through and even Nielson had had to fly to Germany
for an updated intel brief. Carlson-Smith
had smoothed the way in
Greece
and turned up a rather respectable looking
fellow that knew an enormous amount about the safe industry.
He had turned out to be unwilling to actually put his life in
jeopardy, but he had determined the actual safe that the Albanians
had installed, it's location and carefully drilled some of the
Keldara women in the opening method.
And if it turned out to be the wrong safe, Mike was planning
on using the Chief's method and the hell with the contents.
Mike admitted that without the Chief and Nielson, not to
mention Carlson-Smith, he would have been lost. Hell, even
Daria had been doing dog work keeping up with all the
paperwork. She had a better ground-level feel for what was
where at any time than the rest of them.
This level of organization and support was so far beyond his
previous training he half the time had no clue what people were
talking about in the, frequent, meetings. But he doggedly asked
questions until he understood, came up with a series of
checkpoints and times for people to make and then ensured they
did. And Daria kept up with those without batting an eye.
Russell had turned out to be a keeper. The big former
Ranger had apparently soaked up everything the US Army had to
tell about airmobile operations and had drilled the Keldara
mercilessly. In less than a week he had every one of the teams
fully trained on everything from fast-rope work to sling-lift. They
wouldn't need the latter as far as Mike could tell, but it was nice
that they were trained.
If things slowed down for a while he might just get a plane
and start training them on parachute work. What the hell.
"Kildar, it is good to see you," Father Kulcyanov said,
entering the office at a dignified pace.
"And you, Father Kulcyanov," Mike said, pulling a chair
around to the coffee table in the office. "How are the crops?"
"They are well, Kildar," the Elder replied as Anastasia
directed one of the harem girls to lay out tea. "It is difficult with
the young men all engaged in preparing for the mission, but we
persevere. This mission is important to the Keldara and to you
and we are your followers."
"And the Family is well?" Mike asked picking up one of the
teacups and taking a sip.
"The Family is well," Father Kulcyanov said, sipping at the
tea and nodding. "Well. But to support you and yours through the
generations, we must increase, Kildar."
"I hope that all is well with the women?" Mike asked,
confused.
"All is well," Father Kulcyanov said, nodding sagely.
"Women are a trial, but we must have them to support the home,
yes?" He nodded at the girl who was still standing by in case the
Kildar needed anything.
"And support the militia," Mike pointed out. "The girls on
the mission were invaluable. The Keldara are amazing people."
"But to have more Keldara," Father Kulcyanov said, "we
must have marriages, Kildar."
"Oh," Mike said, shaking his head. "This is the Cardane
thing, isn't it? Thank you, Tanya, that will be all," Mike added,
gesturing with his chin for the girl to leave the room.
"The wedding is in only four weeks, Kildar," Father
Kulcyanov said, regally. "You will be gone for two of those, at
least..."
"And it's not a good idea to have the ceremony on the day
before the wedding, huh?" Mike said. "Father, we are very
busy..."
"We have secured the horses you requested," Father
Kulcyanov said, ignoring the argument. "All is prepared, Kildar.
When can you perform the Ritual of Cardane?"
"Given what we're working with, here, the whole ritual
makes me uncomfortable," Mike admitted. "But I think I can still
squeeze it in. Hang on."
He walked to the phone and hit the speakerphone.
"Nielson?"
"Here, Kildar," the colonel said. "I'm up to my eyeballs,
though..."
"When is a good day to close down the caravanserai for a
whole night?" Mike asked. "Don't say 'never.'"
"After the mission?" Nielson asked. "I mean, we move in
four days!"
"Not good enough," Mike said. "Give me a day. One night."
"Jesus, Mike," Nielson said but Mike could hear keys
tapping. "Tomorrow looks best. I'll have to shift my flag down to
the Keldara, though."
"Block out three hours in the evening for all the Keldara,"
Mike said. "And everybody in the caravanserai gets locked down.
If they have to come and go, they use the back door."
"Will do," Nielson said. "What's this about?"
"It's a Keldara thing," Mike said. "I'll get back to you." He
turned back to Father Kulcyanov and shrugged. "Tomorrow
night?"
"Very well, Kildar," the elder said. "We will be prepared."
"And while I enjoy talking to you," Mike said, holding out
his hand, "I am also up to my eyeballs in work. And now I must
finish it faster."
"I will go and ensure that Lidiya is prepared," Father
Kulcyanov said, nodding.
"I'm more worried about Oleg," Mike said after the door
was closed.
* * *
"Mr. Bezhmel?"
"Yes," the security specialist said, sitting down at the booth.
He'd gotten a call from someone he occasionally did business
with who had set up the meet in the
Moscow
hotel bar. No names as usual, which was just the way
that the business worked. "You have the need of special security
arrangements?"
"I have information that you need," the man, an American,
said in Russian. Then he smiled. "And a special security need.
You've been investigating the attacks on Rozaje and the Club
Dracul?"
"Perhaps," Bezhmel said, shrugging.
"It is known that you work with the Dejti clan," the man
replied, smiling still. "So I'll take that as a yes. You might be
interested to know that the next target is Lunari, probably the
Club Aldaris. Their mission is to extract this girl," the man
added, sliding a picture across the table. "Her name is Natalia.
And possibly to capture the DVDs from the Rozaje villa. This
wouldn't be good, would it?"
"No," Bezhmel said, frowning. "Why are you telling me
this?"
"Because I'm your friend," the man replied, then laughed
quietly and shook his head. "God, I crack myself up. No, the
reason that I'm telling you is that I need this girl killed before
they get their hands on her. And this man..." he added, sliding
another picture across the table along with a thick envelope. "No
idea what name he'll be using but he'll be near Natalia. There is
thirty thousand euros in there. If you kill both, there is another
sixty thousand that will be forwarded to you. If you kill only one,
that is your pay. If you kill neither...I'll expect a full refund. There
are other security specialists in the world."
Chapter Thirty-Nine
Mike looked in the mirror and grimaced.
"I'm not sure about this," he said, shooting his cuffs lace
cuffs nervously.
Mike still wasn't sure about the whole "Cardane" thing. For
one thing, he had a very hard time wrapping his head
around Oleg being comfortable with it. But since he'd agreed, he
decided that it needed to be right.
Part of that was setting the mood. He could, of course,
simply pick up Lidiya in the Expedition, drive up to the
caravanserai, have a good old time and then dump her back at her
house. That, however, had far too "casual" a feel for what was an
intensely important event. One point that
Adams, of all people, had brought up
was that the Right of Cardane was a form of bonding between the
Kildar and the Keldara; the Keldara, effectively, provided a
maiden sacrifice and the Kildar, presumably, responded by being
more closely bonded to the Keldara.
The Right also provided genetic input. Natasha had done
some digging and found old records of the Kildars dating back to
the Middle Ages. Each of them had been "foreign" soldiers-of-
fortune of one race or another, Kurd, Greek, German, French and
even British. Each of them had attained the position by being
superior fighters and commanders. So if Nature had anything to
do with culture, the "genetic input" of the Kildars, through the
Right of Cardane, had added to the warrior component of the
Keldara, bit by bit over the years.
But he still wasn't sure about his outfit.
"I am," Natasha replied, smiling. "If you're going to do
something, do it right..."
"...Or don't do it at all," Mike said, sighing.
According to the Keldara Elders, the Right of Cardane
hadn't been practiced since the time of the Tzars. And the last
"true" Kildar had been a German mercenary who had started off
as an advisor to the Tzarist Army and eventually worked his way
into the nobility and been deeded with the Keldara.
Natasha, traditionalist to the core, had pointed out that it
would only be fitting to dress in a traditional, and formal, manner
for the occasion. And she, again, had done the research.
Which was why Mike was dressed in a dark-green, short-
waisted velvet coat and a white silk ruffled shirt with matching,
very tight, dark-green trousers. The knee-high riding boots
completed the ensemble.
"I feel like I ought to have a cap and ball pistol tucked in my
waist," Mike said, fiddling with the the lace at his collar. "You
set?"
"Very much so," Natasha replied, straightening out the lace.
"By the time you get back, I'll have gotten dressed and be gone.
Speaking of which, it's just about sunset."
"Right," Mike replied, pulling his jacket down to smooth
out the wrinkles.
"Time to go."
* * *
Petro held open the front door of the caravanserai as Mike
strode through. Mike, despite trying to remain serious about
what was, after all, a very serious event, could not help but play
the bars from "Pomp and Circumstance" in his head as he strode
down the stairs.
Uncle Latif was holding the gelding by the mounting stand.
Genadi had done a good job there. The gelding was an Orlov-
Rostchopin "Russian Riding Horse", a breed dating back to 1845
and the premier riding horse of the Tzarist court. Flat black and
about seventeen hands high, the beautifully proportioned gelding
was trained for both dressage and "pleasure riding." According to
Genadi, who it turned out had practiced in dressage at the
University, he was both an easy ride and quite biddable with "a
very smooth gait". The black leather saddle, with silver
accoutrements, was almost invisible on the glossy horse's back.
Mike, however, looked at the horse in trepidation. He hadn't
ridden in years. He'd intended to get some refreshers in
riding before he did this, but the current mission had taken up
virtually all of his time.
There was a smaller mare behind the gelding, a lead line
running from her halter to the saddle of the gelding. The mare
was a less common Braz Curly, a Russian warmblood that was a
descendant of cavalry horses. "Gray" in horse terms, the mare
was a beautiful, almost perfect, white
and the curly mane had been plated with red ribbons.
Despite being a warhorse descendant, the 14 hand mare was so
placid as to appear drugged.
The toughest part of the whole operation had turned out to
be finding the side-saddle. Two had eventually been ordered from
a company in Germany
, a severely plain "training" saddle for
Lidiya and a much more ornate one for the night of the
ceremony.
Mike looked the two horses over for a moment and then,
realizing he was stalling, stepped up on the mounting stone,
stuck his boot into stirrup, which was being held by Petro, and
mounted.
The saddle didn't budge. Then again, neither did the horse.
No sidling, no shifting. It was like mounting a warm, furry, rock.
Uncle Latif wordlessly handed him the reins and then stood
back.
"Good night, Kildar," the Keldara said, bowing.
"Good night, Latif," Mike replied, settling in the seat. One
thing that he did recall was that a horse wanted to know that the
rider knew what he was doing. He took the reins in his left hand,
gripped between two fingers and his thumb and slowly released
pressure, giving a slight "click" with his tongue and a grip of the
knees.
The gelding automatically started walking, the mare
following placidly, and Mike, just to be sure, walked them
around the courtyard as the two Keldara walked back into the
caravanserai. He'd been clear that he did not want anyone
seeing him trying out the horse.
The velvet pants had a patch of suede on the butt and crotch
and the first thing he noticed was that the patch made for a very
firm seat. He'd always ridden in jeans before, which tended to
slide a bit, and he found this a much more reassuring ride. The
horse was also responsive but not overly so. One circuit around
the courtyard was enough to give him the surety to head down.
Actually, he sort of liked the outfit. Deep in Mike's scarred
soul there was a peacock he vigorously suppressed; his normal
mode of dress was jeans or shorts, depending on weather, and a t-
shirt. For one thing, he really didn't feel he had the panache to
carry off nice clothes. But when he had the chance to show off,
he liked to. Hell, he even liked dress whites which was something
of a heresy among SEALs. He was pretty sure that didn't make
him gay; he'd never had any interest in guys. But he was also sure
that it wasn't something he was going to admit to
Adams.
There was no choice but to walk down the switchbacks; a
canter would have been impossible at the corners and a trot was,
for the time being, out of the question. Besides, it was simply
safer for the horses to walk down a slope. So, despite the fact
that he was running behind schedule he carefully walked down to
the road and then, as he reached the relative flats, broke into a
trot then a canter.
The gelding had an excellent canter, long, smooth and fast.
However, looking back, he noticed that the mare was up at a
gallop. Next time he needed better matched horses. Lidiya had
been riding, though. He'd have to ask her if she was comfortable
with a gallop on the way back.
As he pulled to a halt by the Makanee compound, the door
was opened by Mother Makanee, the senior lady of the Family.
Mike drew a little comfort from the fact that she had a sober but
not unhappy expression on her face.
One of the younger Keldara females was outside, waiting,
and she took Mike's reins as the Kildar dismounted. Mike had
insisted that the minimum necessary males be included in the
ceremony. Mike straightened his jacket again and then marched
over to the door, pausing at the entrance.
"I request the privilege of entering the home of the
Makanee," Mike said, pausing.
"This roof is yours, Kildar," Father Makanee replied from
within. "These walls are yours. This home is yours to enter."
Mike nodded, secretly sighing in relief; everybody was
remembering their lines.
Mike walked in and looked around. The main room of the
Keldara houses was usually packed with people; there was a bit
of housing shortage among the Keldara that he kept meaning to
rectify. However, at the moment the only persons present were
Mother and Father Makanee, Father Jusev, the Orthodox priest
from town, and Lidiya.
The latter was wearing a white, silk dress edged in seed
pearls that looked not at all like most wedding dresses. It was cut
down the front to reveal a rather startling amount of cleavage,
stopped well above the knees and was form-hugging all over. She
also was wearing a pair of white high-heels. Normally, riding in
high-heels was damned near impossible, but side-saddle it was
much simpler. The outfit was, by Keldara standards, scandalous.
One of the reasons that nobody else was present.
The girl was looking nervous but had the presence not to tug
at the outfit as she awaited her lines.
"I am come to take my rights as the Kildar," Mike said,
sternly, looking Father Makanee in the eye.
"The right of the Kildar is acknowleged by the Keldara and
the Family Makanee," the Elder replied, nodding. "The Kildar is
reminded of his duty to the future family."
"I acknowledge my duty," Mike said, turning to Father
Jusev, the priest. "I have come to take my rights as the Kildar."
"The right of the Kildar is acknowledged by the church," the
priest said, nervously. The fact was that the Orthodox church
acknowledged no such thing. But Mike, despite the fact that he
never attended, was the local parish's single largest contributor.
Father Jusev was also aware that the Keldara weren't exactly
Christian. Between the two facts, he wasn't about to stand in the
way of the Right of Cardane. "The Kildar is reminded of his duty
of teaching," the priest added, swallowing nervously.
"I acknowledge my duty," Mike said, turning to Mother
Makanee. "I come to take my rights as Kildar." His tone in this
case was much less stern, intentionally.
"The right of the Kildar is acknowledged by the women of
the Keldara," Mother Makanee said, smiling slightly. She was the
only one that apparently found the ceremony humorous. "The
Kildar is reminded of his duty of gentleness."
"I acknowledge my duty," Mike said, gently, then turned to
Lidiya, dropping to one knee and bowing his head. "My lady, I am
come to crave a boon of you, one night of gentleness. May I have
my time as is my right?"
"You may, Kildar," Lidiya replied, nervously. "May you
remember your duties in all things."
"I shall," Mike said, standing up and taking her hand. "I shall
return with this daughter of the Keldara when the sun rises," he
said, looking at the three. "I shall render my duty as tradition fits
and no shame is had in this Right."
"No shame, only duty," Father Makanee said.
"No shame, only duty," the priest intoned.
"No shame," Mother Makanee said, winking, "only
pleasure."
Now that was off the script.
Lidiya blushed scarlet but followed Mike out of the room.
The Keldara girl was still holding the horses when Mike
came out. She had unclipped the lead-line and held both sets of
reins. Mike first helped Lidiya into the side-saddle, not that she
needed much help, then mounted and took the reins.
"Have fun," the girl said to Lidiya, giggling, then ran around
the side of the house.
* * *
Mike kept it down to a light canter up to the flats then Lidiya
kicked her horse into a gallop and hit the first switchback at a
run.
The gelding snorted and took off after the mare and Mike,
working hard to keep his seat, gave the horse his head. However,
when he drew up behind Lidiya's mare, he reined back slightly,
letting the mare set the pace.
After the first turn, which they took faster than Mike liked,
the mare began to struggle and Lidiya let her slow to a trot then a
walk.
"That was fun," Lidiya said, smiling over at him.
"Had you ridden before you started training?" Mike asked.
"Just some bareback on the plow-horses," Lidiya said,
shrugging. "Not like this," she added, gesturing at the side-saddle.
"Well, you've got a good seat," Mike said, smiling. "A better
one than I do, to tell the truth."
"But you've got the better horse," Lidiya said, grinning back.
Two of the girls from the harem were waiting when they
reached the courtyard, both in "traditional" harem dress,
including veils. They silently took the reins as first Mike then
Lidiya, with Mike's hand in assistance, dismounted. Then they
just as silently led the horses around to the stables.
"Are you okay?" Mike asked as they stood in front of the
doors of the caravanserai.
"Yes," Lidiya said, distantly then turned to look at him. "I
will admit that I am even eager." But her eyes had a shuttered
look.
"But?" Mike asked.
"I worry about Oleg," Lidiya admitted, turning back to the
open doors. "Not for the long term, but for tonight."
"So did I," Mike said, taking her arm and stepping towards
the door.
"Did?" Lidiya asked.
"Oleg is...taken care of."
* * *
"Have another beer, Oleg," Sawn said, shaking his head.
"And tell me what's been happening while we were gone."
"Nothing much," Oleg said, taking the mug from the team-
leader and looking at it. "Training and more training."
"We'll need it soon enough," Padrek said, spitting through
his teeth into the fire. "I've heard McKenzie muttering about this
mission."
The team leaders were gathered around their own bonfire,
taking a night off from training. Ostensibly it was a break so the
teams didn't get too worn down before the mission. But
everybody knew what the real point was; get Oleg good and
drunk. The young man was superficially prepared for temporarily
losing "his" girl to the Kildar, but it had to hurt.
"Hairy," Vil said, nodding. "But we'll get it done."
"To getting it done," Sawn said, raising his mug. "Hammer
it, Oleg."
"I'm fine," Oleg said, sighing. "Just fine."
"You won't be if you br..." Vil started to say as there was a
jingle of bells from the darkness beyond the fire.
All six team leaders looked towards the sound and then their
eyes widened.
The woman, whoever she was, was wearing a blue harem
girl's dress, transparent pantaloons, bikini panties and a blue
midriff top. Lining every hem were small bells and more were on
her fingers and toes.
The apparition danced sinuously into the firelight until she
was sure she had the full attention of the group and then began to
dance.
Somewhere in the darkness, a drum was being played, a beat
that matched the human heart as the women sinuously glided in
front of the fire until she was opposite Oleg. Spinning, bending
and writhing she appeared to dance only for him to the beat of the
drum, until it abruptly stopped.
"The Kildar feared that you would be lonely this night," the
woman said, huskily. "He has sent me for your pleasure and to
teach you the arts of pleasuring a woman. I am for you this night,
a proxy for your bride to be. Do you approve?" she chuckled,
kneeling down before him gracefully.
Sawn looked at his friend who was sitting on the log with
his mouth open.
"I think he does," Sawn said, grinning. "But you might have
to give him a hand."
"Then I will," Natasha said, taking Oleg's hand and pulling
him to his feet. "Gentlemen, I will return him in the morning."
"Alive?" Vil asked.
The chuckles followed the pair back into the darkness.
* * *
Mike led Lidiya upstairs to his private suite of rooms. As
they climbed the stairs he could tell she was getting more and
more nervous and he noted, with almost a chuckle, her surprise
and shock when she was led to the kitchen.
"What, I'm supposed to cook, too?" Lidiya asked, when she
saw the food laid out on the counters and the pan on the stove.
"Not at all," Mike said, seating her on a barstool where she
could watch the proceedings. There were two places already set
at the bar along with an unlit candle and flowers. He pulled a
champagne bottle, one of three, out a large bucket filled with ice
and water and uncorked it. "You get to watch." He poured two
glasses of the champagne and handed one to her. "Cheers."
"You can cook?" Lidiya asked, surprised. "I don't mean..."
"Keldara men can't cook very much," Mike admitted, going
over to the stove and taking down an apron. "But I learned to a
long time ago. Lidiya, we both know what this night is all about.
But...hmm..." He took a sip of the champagne, tied on the apron
and then poured some olive oil in the pan, working it around and
then turning on the heat.
"In the US
, we have a custom called 'dating,'" Mike
continued, tossing precoated slivers of beef into the saucier pan.
The sides were rounded and hammered so he could use it as a
wok. "It's also a custom in about all big cities. Now, you're a
country gal. The only people you know are the people of the
Keldara and a few townspeople. But in the cities, girls don't
know the men around them, generally, from birth. And the guys
don't know the girls. So they have to meet somehow."
"I guess," Lidiya said, crossing her legs and taking a sip of
the champagne then looking at the glass. "What is this?"
"Champagne
," Mike said, not looking at her as he smiled.
"Sparkling wine."
"It's good," Lidiya said, taking another sip.
"Have more," Mike replied. "Anyway, where I come from, a
guy meets a girl, however, and generally asks her out on a date to
test the waters. They have dinner, maybe see a show and then, if
the chemistry is right, maybe more. The bottomline from a guy's
point-of-view is the 'maybe more'..."
"So I'd heard," Lidiya said, pointedly.
Mike turned to look at her and grinned.
"Different strokes," Mike said, shrugging then getting back
to cooking. "In the States, reasonably casual sex isn't that big of a
deal. Different cultures and, trust me, I don't treat this evening
casually. But the point is, when I was dating I was interested in
getting the young lady interested enough to really test the
waters."
"Were they?" Lidiya asked, interested. "This wine is good, by
the way. Dry."
"Makes you want to drink more," Mike said, looking over
his shoulder again. "Go ahead. With the way that you Keldara
drink, you're going to have a high tolerance. Anyway, to answer
your question, a few. Okay, more than a few. But being a
good date is the important point. There's a saying in the US
: 'The way to a man's heart is through his
stomach.'"
"We say something similar," Lidiya said, giggling. " 'Food
makes the softer bed.'"
"Well, what I found out," Mike continued, slooshing some
wine into the vegetable mix and setting a cover on it, "is that it's
really the way to a woman's heart. Most men can't do
much more than grill. So, instead of inviting a young lady out to
an expensive restaurant, where you'd then have several other
steps to getting to the point, I'd invite her to my place for
dinner."
"I'd have said 'take me to the restaurant,'" Lidiya said, then
giggled again.
"Ah, but that's because you're a good girl," Mike said,
looking at her and grinning. "I was very careful to only date nice
girls. Do you know the difference between a good girl and a nice
girl?"
"No?" Lidiya said, pouring her third glass of champagne.
Part of the requirements that Mike had laid down was, since there
would be dinner involved, she hadn't eaten since lunch. The
champagne also had more of a kick than she realized. He didn't
want her to get drunk, but alcohol would tend to reduce her
tension and that was a good thing.
"A good girl goes to a party, goes home and goes to bed,"
Mike said, turning back to the stove. "A nice girl goes to a party,
goes to bed and goes home."
"That's terrible," Lidiya said, laughing.
"Anyway, I'd invite a nice girl over," Mike said, stirring the
vegetables then adding some oyster sauce. The latter had turned
out to be nearly impossible to obtain and he'd resorted to making
it from scratch. However, he'd tried the recipe out in advance and
the homemade worked fine. "Then I'd cook for her and wine and
dine her, maybe watch a movie on video, and when it came time
to close the deal, voila! There we were already in my apartment.
No 'your place or mine', no 'would you care for a cup of coffee'."
"Sneaky," Lidiya said.
"If you ain't cheatin', you ain't tryin'," Mike intoned.
"And if you get caught, you ain't a SEAL," Lidiya finished,
giggling. "So I should expect sneaky?"
"Up to you," Mike said, transferring the Chinese beef and
vegetables from the pan into a serving dish. "But let's just have
dinner, shall we?"
He'd already had rice prepared and he brought that out as
well, setting it down at the bar. Then he shifted her over to her
place, carefully holding her chair out and pushing it back in. The
last step was to light the candle and turn out a couple of lights.
"This is interesting," Lidiya said, looking at the food
dubiously.
"I think you'll find it edible," Mike said.
Lidiya picked out a bit of meat to start and then, with a look
of surprise, took more.
As they ate they chatted about conditions among the Keldara
and the condition of the farm. Every time that they got near
touchy subjects, Mike carefully steered them away. He didn't
want to talk about the previous mission, or upcoming ones, or
where he was going with the Keldara. Light and easy was the
tone of the evening. And he made sure he kept the champagne
glass topped up.
As for sneaky, she'd missed the first "cheat." Mike had been
careful to keep the wineglasses separated by at least an arm's-
length. That was because her glass was at least 25% larger than
his. Even if he matched her glass for glass, she was getting far
more wine. And it was showing. The alcohol, and food, was
making her less nervous as time went by.
"This is fun," Lidiya said, sighing and setting down her fork.
She'd eaten lightly, which was good. "There should be more
things in life like this. But there is always too much work."
"That will get better," Mike said, wiping his mouth with his
napkin. "You'd be surprised how much better. Dessert?"
Lidiya had also never been exposed to chocolate cake.
Certainly not the deep, rich chocolate fudge cake Mike brought
out.
"Better to eat this by the fire," he said, grinning. "Bring your
glass; there's more champagne out there."
He led the way to the parlor area, where a fire had been laid,
and set the plates and his glass down then flopped on the couch.
The centerpiece of the coffee table was a heaping bowl of
strawberries.
"This is nice, too," Lidiya said, grinning happily and sitting
down next to him. "I was thinking that you'd just...you know..."
"Nah," Mike said. "The idea here is to have fun. You can't
have fun if you're worried sick about what's going to happen.
And you shouldn't be. It's important, don't get me wrong. But it's
also something natural and very fun. If it's done right and I've
rarely had complaints."
"I talked with Mother Savina about...it," Lidiya said,
nervously, her grin fading. "And Natasha. I'm...it seems..."
"There is no way to describe it," Mike said, getting a bite of
cake on his fork and holding it out to her. "Try the cake."
"That's good," Lidiya said, her eyes wide.
"Alas, this I didn't do," Mike said, picking up a strawberry
and offering it to her. "I don't bake well."
"You do other things well," Lidiya said, taking a delicate
bite of the strawberry while holding his eye.
"So do you," Mike said, for the first time in the evening
actually getting horney. He'd been working the situation so hard
he had forgotten to have fun.
She offered him a strawberry and he bit into it carefully then
got in a quick lick on her fingers that elicited another giggle.
They traded strawberries like that for a little longer and then
Lidiya, unexpectedly, took one in her teeth and leaned forward.
Mike took the bait, biting off his end of the strawberry and
then following it up with a kiss, flickering his tongue against her
lips. Whether Lidiya had ever had sex or not, it was clear that she
had been, as his mother used to put it, "spooning." She had no
problem with kissing whatsoever.
However, when Mike's hand crept up her leg, she tensed for
a moment, then went back to the kiss. He slid his hand up the
back of her leg, checking with his other hand on her arm.
Goosebumps were always an indicator that a girl was getting
turned on by caresses and she had plenty.
"Kildar," the girl said, huskily, drawing away and wiping at
her lips. "I want... I think..."
"Don't think," Mike said, smiling. He took her hand and had
her stand up. "But, yes, time to progress. Lidiya, take off your
dress."
The girl stood there for a moment and then, closing her eyes,
lifted the dress up and over her head. It had a built-in bra so all
she was wearing once she'd doffed it was her heels, panties, a
garter belt and stockings.
"You are very beautiful," Mike said, taking a pillow off the
couch and tossing it on the floor. "So, we progress. But before
we get to other things, there is one thing that I require."
He stood up and cupped her breast, eliciting a shiver. She
still had her eyes closed which made him almost chuckle.
"What do you...need?" Lidiya asked, opening her eyes.
"There is a very old saying," Mike replied, pressing down on
her shoulders so she knelt on the pillow. " 'Stand before your
god, bow before your king and kneel before your man.'"
"I was told about this," Lidiya said, looking up at him. "But I
have never..."
"I know," Mike said, unzipping his pants. "Later I will show
you other things. But this I require. Later, I'll tell you why."
"Very well," Lidiya said, softly, looking down. "I...would
like to."
"And you will take it all in your mouth," Mike continued.
He wasn't right up on her, but back a bit. "I take it you haven't
seen a man undressed."
"No," Lidiya said, uncertainly. "They told me about
it."
"Your turn," Mike said, stepping forward.
Lidiya cautiously unzipped his pants and then slowly pulled
them down, an act that caused Mike to almost lose it. He stayed
calm, though, while she considered...him.
Lidiya cautiously held out one hand and touched him, tilting
her head to the side to consider.
"It is bigger than I thought," Lidiya said, nervously.
"And, frankly, Oleg is bigger than I am," Mike said.
"Anastasia discussed what to do?"
"Yes," Lidiya said, biting her lip and wrapping her thumb
and forefinger around the base of his dick. Then she shifted
forward on the pillow and took him in her mouth.
She had a bit of trouble getting the rhythm of hand and
mouth together at first, but she quickly caught on.
Mike took her hair in his hand and sped her up. Again she
got out of rhythm but soon got the feel for it, speeding up quite a
bit.
Mike knew, though, that her neck muscles wouldn't hold out
for long. However, being fellated by a delicious blonde virgin on
her knees was more than enough for him. He quickly came into
her mouth.
She stopped and gagged at that but he grabbed her hair and
held her in place, pumping in and out to get the last drop.
"Catch it in your mouth and swallow," Mike said, gruffly.
"Yes, Kildar," Lidiya said, after she'd swallowed.
"And now," Mike said, picking up her champagne glass and
pulling his pants back up, "have a drink of champagne. It helps
with the taste."
"It...wasn't bad," Lidiya said, her brow wrinkling. She still
swilled the champagne around.
"Orange juice," Mike said, picking up his own glass and
having a sip. "It does something to the chemistry." He knelt down
and kissed her. "Thank you."
"You're welcome," Lidiya said, frowning.
"Now for the rest," Mike said, lifing her up to her feet and
then into his arms. "You'll be fine," he added at the look on her
face.
"I know I will be," Lidiya said, still nervous.
"Keep ahold of that glass," Mike added, chuckling.
"I will," Lidiya replied, smiling and then finishing off the
champagne in it.
He carried her into the bedroom and laid her on the bed,
sitting down next to her and picking a strawberry from the bowl
by the bed.
"Strawberry?" Mike asked, grinning.
They played the strawberry game again, until she was
smiling again. During it Mike had managed to get rid of the
boots, pants and shirt, sometimes with help.
Finally they were both more or less naked. Lydia
still had her panties and shoes on but Mike
was starkers. Lydia
was starting to show some signs of
nervousness, among other things trying to cover her lovely
breasts, so Mike decided to take a detour.
"Roll over," he said, giving her a slap on the side and a
smile.
"Why?" Lydia
said, nervously.
"You'll like it, trust me," Mike said, more or less pushing
her over.
When he had her on her stomach he opened up a jar and
smoothed some of the massage cream into her back. The cream
was a mixture of almond cream with a bit of sesame oil, a trick
that a former girlfriend who was a masseuse had taught him.
She'd also taught him the proper way to give a massage so he
started working Lydia
's muscles with strong strokes from his
thumbs, rolling them along the grain of the muscle in the girl's
back.
"That feels good," Lydia
sighed.
"Better if we had a massage table," Mike said, continuing to
massage the girl's back and neck then working downwards.
The massage, unfortunately, was counteracting the earlier
blowjob. The point of that, besides Mike just enjoying it,
was to let him blow off some steam. But
Lydia
had a truly gorgeous butt, rounded and
firm, and while Mike wasn't planning on going for any back-door
action, it was tempting as hell.
He massaged down her back and onto her ass, sliding her
panties off in the process, then down the legs to her calves. Then
he worked back up until he was up between her thighs and slid
his fingers into her pussy. That elicited another surprised gasp,
but she was also wet which was a very good sign so Mike rolled
her quickly back over and pulled her head back by the hair.
He slid his tongue down the side of it to the juncture of her
neck and shoulder, digging into that tender nerve point strongly
and eliciting a moan. More goosebumps had built up on her arm
which was a good sign. The idea at this point was simply to keep
her mind off of anything other than the moment. If she started to
stiffen up it was because she was thinking about secondary
concerns; what Oleg would think, what her family would think,
the Keldara. He had to keep her mind centered on what was
happening to the exclusion of everything else. And that meant
keeping up the stimulae so she couldn't think of anything
else.
While he continued to stroke at her neck with his tongue, his
right hand was busy, first playing with her nipples, which seemed
particularly sensitive, then sliding down her side, eliciting a
giggle at one point. Ticklishness was another good sign. It
showed she had a degree of sexual nervousness that was on the
good side. Girls who had virtually no tickle reaction were
generally either asexual or just not into sex, period. That would
make this evening rather trying. But Lydia
had always had a natural sexiness that
had to have some depth to it.
Finally his hand had crept back down to the bottom of her
stomach and he slid his fingers between her legs. They tightened
for a moment as she half struggled to get away then parted as his
fingers did their magic. Some women got off on having their clit
played with while others preferred penetration. From Lydia
's reactions she was more of a penetration
gal, so Mike slid his fingers in carefully, rubbing them along the
clit as he did so.
He'd moved his mouth down to her breasts and the nipples
were definitely an erogenous zone on Lydia
. The combination of stroking and playing
with her nipples had the girl writhing and panting.
The question at this point couldn't really be answered. Some
women wouldn't orgasm without penetration while others rarely
did with penetration. Without having experience with
Lydia
he wasn't sure which she would be. But
the question was answered a moment later as the girl gasped and
arched in a hard orgasm.
While she was still arching Mike quickly slid over and
spread her, entering her quickly but as gently as he could. He
could tell from the grimace on her face when the hymen was
broken but he didn't relent, beginning to drive hard into her.
Lydia
was clearly up for that, as her fingers dug
into his ass and pulled him in, hard, as he stroked. Her eyes were
closed and she was panting hard as he varied the rhythm, never
letting her get bored with the action. She came again in less than
a minute then again almost immediately after with a scream of
pain and pleasure.
The last orgasm was hard enough that Mike knew he had to
stop for a second anyway. As he paused she opened her eyes and
shook her head.
"I never knew..." the girl whispered.
"It's impossible to know," Mike said, kissing her on the
forehead. "But I'm not done, yet." He paused for a moment and
then grinned, evilly. "I think that's enough of a rest."
"Oh...All Mother," Lydia
whispered as he started again.
"Oh...Gods..."
* * *
Lydia
paused as she pulled the horse into the
compound, biting her lip nervously. There weren't many choices.
She could probably turn around and ride back to the Kildar and
beg him to take her as one of his women. And there
were...attractions to that. Attractions that worked hard against the
fear of shame from the night before.
But, then, there was Oleg. They had been friends as children
and even before they were betrothed she knew that she loved him.
She would always love him, no matter what. And he had
promised that he would not hold this night against her.
She finally loosened the reins on the gentle mare and let her
continue into the yard, pulling to a stop not far from the front
door. It was early for most people but she was surprised by the
lack of activity around the house; it almost looked deserted.
However, as she stopped the front door opened and Mother
Makanee came out with one of
Lydia
's female cousins, Nastya. Nastya held the
reins as Mother helped Lydia
down.
Mother Makanee's face was a picture. It was clear that she
was glad that her daughter had returned, apparently unharmed.
But that was combined with discomfort over the reason she had
been out all night and curiosity at what the large leather satchel
attached to her saddle contained. The case was tooled and formed
leather with bright silverwork around the edges and it was heavy
as Lydia
undid the ties that held it to the saddle.
"Come in," she said, finally, leading the daughter into the
main room of the house.
The first thing that Lydia
noticed was that with the exception of
Father Makanee, who was also trying to keep a welcoming
demeanor, the only persons in the room were women. Most of
them, furthermore, were Lydia
's friends and peers, girls of her own age, a
few married most unmarried. She was secretly glad that Gran
Mak, Grandmother Makanee, wasn't in the room. The old fart had
been going around for weeks with pursed lips and an angry look
for the whole Rite, despite the fact that she was usually the first
one to proclaim the superiority of anything old.
"Welcome home, Lydia
," Father Makanee said, bowing to her
slightly. "We welcome you once more to our fold."
The words had that suspiciously formal wording that
sounded like the Kildar had written them. And made Father
Makanee rehearse.
"I'm glad to be home," she said, nervously, looking around
at the group.
"Oh, bother with this!" Nastya finally snapped. "I want to
know what is in the package! What is it?"
"I don't know, honestly,"
Lydia
said, setting the suspiciously heavy leather
case down on the kitchen table. "The Kildar told me not to open
it until I got home. And he said we have to send the horse back,
but the case is mine to keep."
"So what's in it?" Nastya asked, impatiently. "Open it."
"Don't rush her," Mother Makanee snapped, but she was
clearly curious as well.
Lydia
broke the wax seal on the case then
opened it. Within there were three more packages, one a blue
silken wrap, one a soft suede purse that clinked and the last
another silken package, tied with a silken cord, that was more or
less rectangular.
Lydia
opened the leather purse, first, dumping it
out on the table.
What spilled from it was a waterfall of silver and gold coins
that made everyone's eyes go wide. There was more money on the
table than the entire Keldara made in a year.
"What's in the rest?" Nastya said in a choked voice.
The rectangular package turned out to be cash, Georgian
rubles tied around a thick stack of American hundred dollar bills.
Lydia
didn't want to think about how many
dollars there were there, and dollars were much more stable than
rubles, but the rubles had been fanned out so that it was clear
there were five one hundred ruble notes. She snorted when she
saw that. That was her official "price."
Lydia
quickly undid the red ties from the blue
silken roll and opened it. It turned out to be a jewelry wrap,
containing a pearl necklace along with matching earrings and a
bracelet. Contained within was a small note saying only "For
your wedding."
"Oh, All Father," Nastya whispered. "I so want to be
the Cardane Bride! Can we start making the arrangements now?!"
Chapter Forty
Mike clambered up the floating platform and onto the deck
of the freighter, looking around cautiously. The sky was overcast
but according to the weather reports it didn't presage bad
weather.
Mike had ended up having to fly to
Italy
to clear up some diplomatic issues related
to the photo that Carlson-Smith had carried. The very polite
Italian intel chief they'd ended up doing most of the talking with
was interested in what else might be in the trove. When told,
politely, to fuck off, he'd pointed out that they needed the Italian
acquiescense if they wanted to have the op go off. Otherwise,
alas, an Italian coast guard cutter might just happen to be in the
area.
So Mike had simply started listing some of the known
quantities, avoiding names or other descriptions but listing the
general levels associated with them. At which point the Italian
government had, quietly, shit its pants.
Mike ended up in a five minute, very friendly, conversation
with the Prime Minister, who had, as it turned out, had a rather
longer conversation with the President. After which all the
problems miraculously disappeared.
However, it had made him miss the choppers. Which was
why he'd gone down to the docks near Brundisi and bought an
offshore yacht. It had been a long time since he'd been on one of
the larger and more powerful versions of a cigarette boat and
he'd missed the feel of raw power. With nothing to do but get to
the freighter in time it was the best time he'd had in months,
including the sex.
But that pleasant idyll was over and as he stepped onto the
deck he felt the mantle of command descend on his shoulders
like a heavy cloak. Very heavy. Lead filled. Keldara were going
to die on this op. He had to wonder if the damned thing was
really worth it.
"Where we at?" Mike asked as the Chief, followed by Daria,
strode over.
"Troops are loading," Adams
replied, waving at the groups of Keldara lined up to board the
choppers. "All the secondary gear is onboard. The teams are
dialed in. All we were really waiting on is you."
"I told you I'd be on time," Mike said as Daria waved two
Keldara forward with his gear.
He stripped right on the cold deck, sitting on a coiled cable
to pull on his pants. As he did he mused that this was a long way
from his evening with Lidiya. Who was, as a matter of fact, was
already in Lunari at this very moment, much closer to harms way
than he was. Not a good thought, all things considered.
"Vanner and the intel group is in place," Adams
continued. "And the recon of the rally point is
complete. So far it looks clear."
"We getting any take from Katya?" Mike asked.
"Lots," Adams grunted. "From what
Vanner said her reception was not fun."
"As long as she lives long enough to give us a layout and
location of the target, that's all that counts," Mike said.
"Things have since gotten better," Adams said. "She has a sugar daddy that's keeping her from
getting bounced around too much and she's located the primary.
She and the primary are keeping the sugar daddy happy, thereby
securing the primary and getting a look at the club. She hasn't
gotten much intel on layout of the club, but Vanner also picked
up another source. That source has been a goldmine."
"Is he sure about the source?" Mike asked.
"What Katya has been able to confirm has all played out,"
Adams said. "The source looks genuine.
Mikhail, the security team leader, has hooked up with one of the
same pimp's hookers. She's seen more of the club than Katya and
has filled in all the little blanks. We even know where the
computer room is."
"Excellent," Mike said, standing up. One of the Keldara
lifted his ammo harness into place and another handed him his
SPR. "I'd say we're go."
"Agreed," Adams said.
"Gimme the maps and lets get this show on the road."
* * *
Katya listened to the music and tried not to ask what time it
was.
Since the second day with her sugar-daddy, they had mostly
stayed at the club; the American neurosurgeon seemed to enjoy
the atmosphere. Club Aldaris was like most such facilities in the
world. There was a ground floor bar where the customers hung
out and were propositioned by girls wandering the floor. In the
center was the bar itself and on the back wall were three dance
stages where the girls showed off their stuff.
Reception had been spotty all along. The combination of the
thick ferroconcrete walls and the background noise had interfered
with audio and the video had been bad as well. So she also
couldn't ask Vanner what the time was. It was time and past time
to get out of the club and get ready to extract. But "Tom" was in
the back with another girl.
She looked up as a man walked over to the table and looked
them both over. He payed particular attention to Natalya, though,
who was drawing on the table using condensation from the
glasses.
"Come on, girl," the man said, reaching down and pulling at
Natalya's arm. "I'm in need of some fun."
"Sir," Katya said, getting up and holding up her hand. "We
are with another man. You should ask for someone else."
She glanced at Natalya who was frozen in her chair, looking
at the man like a mouse looking at a snake.
"I just want this one little whore," the man said, dragging the
frozen Natalya to her feet.
"Hey, buddy," Tom said, walking up behind the man and
tapping him on the shoulder. "These are my girls."
"What, you own them?" the man scoffed.
"He's the bad man," Natalya said, so quietly it was hard to
hear over the music. "He's come for me."
"Yeah, I rented them for the day," Tom said, angrily. He'd
been drinking steadily all evening and Katya was pretty sure he
had to be drunk. "I bought 'em, they're mine. So take your hands
off of her."
"I want this one," the man holding Natalya said, reaching
into his pocket. "I'll pay you for her."
"Wait," one of the guards in the club said, walking over. "Is
no fighting."
"I don't want your damned money!" Tome snapped, slapping
the man's wallet away. "Just get your hands off of my girl!"
"Katya, what's going on?" Vanner asked.
"Problems," Katya whispered. "Big problems."
* * *
"So, why are we watching this?" Captain O'Keefe asked,
watching the real-time video from the Predator drone.
"Because we care?" Pierson asked, shrugging. "In case
there's anything we can do to help?"
"Well, we can't drop JDAMs on the town," O'Keefe pointed
out. "And we can't send in a SEAL team to help out. And we can't
interdict with Tomahawks. So what exactly are we going to do?"
"Sweep around the edge of town," Pierson said into the
microphone. "You really think that the president isn't going to
want to know how it went down? And getting an after action
report from Jenkins is like pulling teeth. So...we watch." He
paused and leaned forward, keying the communicator again.
"Whoa. Head down Highway One. I think I saw..." He paused and
blanched. "Zoom in on that group of busses. Get an angle from
the side if you can."
"That's not normal," O'Keefe said, leaning forward then
looking up at another plot. "And they're already in the air."
"No, it's not," Pierson agreed. "And, yes, they are. Zoom in
more on the windows."
"Crap."
* * *
"Kildar, Vanner."
"Go," Mike said, looking around the helicopter. The Keldara
were as prepared for the mission as could be arranged, but he still
was unhappy. As he watched, one of them reached into his blouse
and pulled out a silver "cross": the device was actually a hammer
disguised to look somewhat like a Christian cross. The Keldara
kissed the relic and replaced it in his blouse. For what we are
about to receive...
"We have two major issues that have just come up," Vanner
said, calmly. "The girls are still at the club and someone is trying
to extract Natalya. Katya believes that it may be the person who
was impersonating Fullbright."
"Shit," Mike said. "You got a facial visual?"
"Yes," Vanner said. "I've uploaded it to Colonel Pierson.
However, they have a Predator drone up and he has just informed
me that there is a convoy of armed personnel headed for the
town. ETA is about forty-five minutes."
"They'll hit us in the middle of the op," Mike said, thinking
furiously. "Where?"
"They're coming in on Highway One," Vanner replied.
"So are we blown?" Adams asked.
"Any other indicators?" Mike asked.
"Nothing in the club," Vanner said. "Nothing in town."
"I don't think it's coincidence," Mike replied. "But we're still
locked on the mission. I'll work on it. Good job. Tell Katya to
stay with Natalya if at all possible. Time for her to use her toys."
"Roger," Vanner said. "I'm going to roll part of my security
team to follow."
"Concur," Mike said. "Continue the mission.
Adams?"
"Go."
"Get me Team Padrek."
* * *
"All I want is this one little bitch," the man snarled at the
guard. "I'll fucking buy her from you!"
"She's bought and paid for, buddy," Tom snapped. "Get the
fuck out!"
"Gentlemen, gentlemen," Boris said, walking over. "There is
no need to argue about whores; there are plenty of whores."
"Then let him have others," the man said, reaching into his
pocket again. "Here," he said, pulling out a thick wad of hundred
euro notes. "Five thousand euros. Now I leave with her?"
"Now you leave with her," Boris said, nodding as he riffled
through the money. "And you do what you want as long as she
comes back alive."
"Fine," the man snapped, pulling her along with towards the
door.
"Hey!" Tom shouted. "I paid for her!"
"I give you money back," Boris smirked.
"I go with you, too," Katya said, stepping in front of the
man. "I give you good time, you give me money!"
He paused and looked her up and down then smiled.
"You want to go with me, too?" the man asked. "Okay, you
want to play with the big boys, you can come along, too."
"Bitches," Tom shouted. "Nothing but fucking bitches! All
you care about is the money!"
"Yes?" Katya said, laughing in his face. "So? And I was
never fourteen!"
Tom snarled at her and started to draw his hand back, but
then stormed out of the club.
"Now I go with you," Katya said, putting her hand on the
man's arm. "And I show you what I can do."
* * *
"Where is she?" Mikhail asked as the Ladia screeched to a
halt in front of the club.
"Gone," Vanner snapped. "Looks like west towards Highway
One towards the hills. We've picked her up on two vids so far,
but in just a minute she's going to be outside our reception
range."
"I'm on it," Mikhail said. "Keep an eye on Tanya for me."
* * *
"Tanya," Vanner said, as the girl opened the door. "We need
a big favor. A very important, and dangerous, favor."
* * *
"Padrek," Mike said over the radio. "Change of mission.
There is what looks like a reaction force headed for the town.
Take the half your team that was supposed to secure the Forward
Aerial Assembly Point down Highway One about two klicks and
block the road. Once the road is blocked I'll have someone pick
you up. Try not to get engaged."
"Understood, Kildar," the Team Leader said.
"Your entry portion will shift to Team Oleg," Mike said.
"Good luck. Try not to get your asses shot off."
* * *
"Where is Boris?" Bezhmel asked the guard inside the club
as he hurried through the doors.
"In back," the guard said, indifferently. "We close."
"Let's hope not permanently," the security specialist said,
hurrying across the almost deserted club. "Boris!"
"Ah, Yarok Ivanovich!" the Albanian said, smiling
unhappily. "What do you want?"
"You know this girl?" Bezhmel asked, pulling out the
picture of Natalya.
"Natalya," the pimp said, nodding. "What is so important
about one little crazy whore? First two Americans fight over her
then you want her. She is gone."
"Gone?!" Bezhmel shouted. "Gone where?"
"With American," Boris said, frowning. "You shout at me in
my own club?"
"Fuck," Bezhmel cursed. "Look, there is an attack coming,
but I have to find this girl. I have a group of soldiers coming to
stop it, my people, former Spetznaz. They will take care of it but
you must get your guards up, now! And I need to know where the
girl has gone, now! You said she went with American..."
Bezhmel said, pulling out the other paper. "Was he one of
them?"
"The one she left with," Boris said, nodding and trying to
catch up. "What attack?"
"The group that hit Club Dracul and Rozaje," Bezhmel said,
putting the pictures away. "Where did they go? The men with the
girl."
"I can ask around," Boris said. "They were in silver
Mercedes. But... what attack?"
"My people will be here in about thirty minutes," Bezhmel
said. "I need to find the others. East or west out of town?"
"Ask guards on door," Boris said, shrugging. "I go wake up
my guards. I will make phonecalls and see if anyone see them."
"Right, I'm out of here," Bezhmel said. "My second in
command is Yevgenius. He will bring the soldiers here. The
attack may come tonight but it may not. We need to surprise
them."
"We will," Boris said, grinning. "We'll kill them all for
Dracul and Rozaje."
"I've got to go."
* * *
"I'm getting something from her," Mikhail said. "Is it
retransmitting?"
"Got it," Vanner said. "I'm trying to boost the gain..."
Chapter Forty-One
"Where are we going?" Katya said, placing her hand on the
man's crotch and rubbing it.
The Mercedes was very comfortable, with leather seats like
the ones in the Kildar's Expedition but wider and softer. Some
day, she would have a car like this one. Including the divider so
the driver couldn't listen in.
"A place I know up in the hills," the man replied. "A quiet
place where we can have some fun. Well, where I can have some
fun," he added, grabbing her wrist and pushing her hand away. He
twisted her arm up behind her back and leaned over to her ear.
"There is special kind of fun I like to have."
"You want do this, I need much money," Katya said,
internally cursing as he twisted her arms behind her and cuffed
them. "Please no hurt. I give you good time! No need hurt."
"We'll talk about that when I'm done," the man said,
reaching into her dress and twisting her nipple, hard. "Well, just
before I kill you."
"Oh, please don't do that," Katya said, sobbing.
"But it's what I like," the man whispered in her ear. "I like to
hurt little girls like you. I like to kill them. I'm going to do you
just like I did that little bitch in Rozaje. I'm going to hurt you and
hurt you more. Then I'm going to take you in the ass and strangle
you while I keep pumping your ass til I come, bitch."
"Why you do this?" Katya whined. "Why you want
Natalya?" As the man spoke she twisted her hands as if to get
away. The valve at each joint at the base of the finger had to be
pressed four times to open up the poison pouch. It was a
laborious process. Fortunately, this jackass wanted to talk.
"It was so simple," the man said, laughing. "Just get a voice
changer, put on a mask and I was Fullbright. The bastard. He
blocked my nomination with the last administration. I should
have been the undersecretary for International Development but
he brought up that shit from
Nigeria
as if little bitches matter! Well, I fixed him
good. And now he's singing a different tune!" He looked at her
and shook his head. "What does a little whore like you
understand about anything. You're only good for one thing."
"You not need kill us," Katya whined.
"Try to figure out what Traskel has to do with it," Vanner
said, suddenly. "And we've got a security team following you.
Just hang in there."
"Please not kill me," Katya continued, trying not to snarl at
the distant voice. "Who Fullbright? I not know Fullbright. I not
know anything! Please don't kill!"
"Fullbright's a senator," the man said, dragging her down so
her head was in his lap as he continued to play with her body. He
pulled her dress down and reached into a cigar holder, lighting up
and then playing the lighter on her tit. "And you wouldn't
understand anything about that anyway."
Katya let out a very real shriek at that and tried to struggle
away.
"Please!" she begged. "Please not hurt me. I be very good to
you. I suck good. I suck really good. I get you off good!"
"That's right," the man said, dragging her off the seat and
onto her knees on the floor. "You suck me good and I might let
you live. But if you bite..."
"I not bite," Katya promised. "I not scratch," she added,
lying. "I be good to you, you let me live. Kill her if you want, I
don't care. But let me live."
"I already made that mistake," the man said, looking over at
the nearly catatonic Natalya who was huddled in the corner. "Kill
the one bitch and let the other one sweat it out, waiting to die.
But then my damned supervisor, the bitch who had my job, sent
me to fucking Rwanda
! And when I got back that little bitch was
gone. But now she's here, and she can watch while you service
me and then..."
"Mmmf," Katya answered as the man tangled his fingers in
her long golden hair and shoved her down on his dick.
"That's right, I'll let you live if you suck me good," the man
said as she began to fellate him expertly. "That's a good whore,
you suck good. Fucking Fullbright! Thinks he's so high and
mighty... I needed Traskel, though, the fucker. He got Fullbright
to go on that damned trip. I got another one of you whores to slip
a Rufie in his drink. He doesn't remember what he did that night,
which wasn't much. Then the stupid bastards gave me that
damned DVD and that was all I needed. That fucking Fullbright
is dancing to our tune, now. That's playing with the big boys!
Between Fullbright and Traskel, we've got Foreign Affairs and
Judiciary sewn up."
He suddenly yanked her head back and reached down to pull
both of her arms up with the shackles so hard she had to scream
again.
"But do you want to know the best part," he said, leaning
forward and whispering in her ear. "The best part is that with
those two behind me, I can do this anytime I want. I can buy you
little whores and hurt you and rape you and kill you and nobody
is going to stop me."
"Please don't kill," Katya begged as the car pulled to a stop.
"Depends on how good you are," the man said, dragging her
out of the car and over into the woods. "Get down on your knees
and suck me so good I forget about hurting you."
"Give me one hand?" Katya begged. "I not hurt but can suck
so much better with hand and mouth. Please? I take you all the
way down. I swallow your cum. Not to kill me! Please!"
"Gunther," the man snapped, stepping back. "Get that other
bitch over here so she can see this. I want her to watch every
single second."
The driver dragged Natalya out of the car by her hair and
into the woods, pulling her up so her back was to one of the trees
and then wrapping a rope around the tree and her neck, tying her
in place with it. The tree was far too thick for her to reach behind
and untie it.
"Take me in your mouth, bitch," the man said, gutturally,
dropping his pants and shoving his dick in Natalya's mouth.
"Suck it!"
"Mmmf!" Katya replied, trying to wave her hands.
"You want one hand free?" the American asked. "Why?"
"I no bite," Katya whined, pulling back. "I no scratch. Can do
better with mouth and hand, can suck and pump both. Is very
good."
"Yes, it is," the man said, considering her carefully. He
suddenly hit her in the face, hard, then when she was half
unconscious on the ground quickly unlocked her right hand and
then yanked the handcuff down, brutally, so that her left hand was
locked to her left leg. "And like that, you're not going to be going
anywhere," he added, yanking her back to her knees by her hair.
"Please, don't kill me," Katya whined, raising her right hand
slowly up to his dick. "I'll be good. I won't talk. Just don't kill
me."
"Do me good and I'll think about letting you live," the man
said, laughing and dropping his pants to settle around his ankles.
"I'll do you good," Katya said, calmly, and then raked her
fingernails down the inside of his thigh.
The man let out a shout of pain, punching her in the face
automatically and then clamping his hand over the wound. The
fast acting neurotoxin, though, caused the muscles in his leg to
spasm and he fell to the side, his leg thrashing.
"What did you do to me, bitch?" the man shouted, starting to
thrash in the leaves of the forest floor.
Katya wasn't listening. She had rolled with the expected
blow and now was trying as hard as she could to get to the driver.
Gunther had been fully occupied in deep throating Natalya
when he heard the shout and when he tried to withdraw, Natalya
reached down and grabbed his pants, tripping him.
The driver rolled sideways, crashing into Katya for a
moment and then driving an elbow into her gut.
Katya folded over at the blow but as the driver started to get
to his knees she rolled over to him and dug her right hand into his
butt then fell across him, pressing down on the palm and
pumping the neurotoxin into the muscle of his ass.
Cottontail finally pushed herself to her knees and looked
over at Natalya.
"It's finished," she said. "Now to get out of these..."
"Behind you," Natalya gasped. "The bad man."
The poison either wasn't as fast acting as she'd been
promised or she hadn't gotten enough in the "bad man." The
American had pulled a gun out of a shoulder holster and was
waving it at her.
"I'm going to k-k-k-i..." he stammered, pulling back the
hammer with difficulty. The pistol was waving like a branch in a
high wind.
Katya turned away just as there was a shot and then flinched.
"I think he missed," she said, looking at Natalya who was
watching wide-eyed.
"Hardly, lass," a British voice said from behind her. "I rarely
do."
Katya turned her head the other way and her eyes widened as
much as Natalya's.
"Tom?" she asked the man lowering the Walther PPk.
"Tom?"
"Actually, the name is Charles," the man drawled in pure
Oxford tones as he put the pistol away and pulled out a set of
handcuff keys. "Charles Calthrop, MI-6. Pleased to make your
acquaintance, Cottontail. It is Cottontail, isn't it?"
Chapter Forty-Two
"Vanner, what's the status on the primary?" Mike asked as
the helicopter banked around a hill; the highly paid Russian pilots
were earning their pay.
"Temporarily sort of secure," Vanner said.
"And what in the hell does that mean, exactly?" Mike
snapped.
"You want the whole story, sir?" Vanner asked. "It's a long
one. She is out of the box. She is currently unthreatened. She and
Katya are colocated. I am attempting pick-up at this time. It got
very hairy, but the situation is stabilized, I think. You want
more?"
"Negative," Mike said.
"The bad news is that the club has been kicked over like an
ant-hill," Vanner continued. "We've had a three hundred percent
increase in external guards and the full force appears to be up at
this time. You want to abort?"
"Negative," Mike said after a moment. "We'll continue the
mission. Support force?"
"Still moving, still out of the box," Vanner said. "Boss, you
do not, say again, do not have the element of surprise at the club.
I've managed to insert some new surprises, but you are going in
hot."
"Understood," Mike said, looking across the cargo-hold at
Creata. She was the youngest of the intelligence specialists, a tiny
girl with bird-like bones and a narrow face framed by dark brown
hair. She was so small and delicate that everyone in the Keldara
called her "Mouse." She was also surprisingly adept with
mechanical devices and had tested out to be the fastest and most
knowledgeable in opening safes. She was sitting very calmly,
holding a bag of tools that appeared to be at least two thirds of
her body weight in her lap with her eyes closed and appeared to
be either praying or going over the steps to crack the safe. Call it
a mantra. "We'll still handle it. Out here."
Mike reached down and changed his radio to the setting for
"all force."
"Listen up, troops," Mike said. "Primary is out of the box.
They know we're coming. There is a heavy force coming in from
the east. All the guards are up. We're going in anyway. The FAAP
team is going to delay the heavy force. Primary recovery team
now is added to front door. Entry and mission as planned. But it's
going to be hot. Do the job and we'll get the hell out of dodge.
That is all, Kildar out."
"Are you sure about this, boss?" Adams asked.
"I'm sure," Mike said. "We're going to get those DVDs and
along the way we're going to fuck them all."
* * *
The fleet of birds banked over the last hill and then split, half
the echelon heading down the main boulevard and the other half
to the smaller rear street.
As they split, four Allouette helicopters increased speed and
pulled away from the formation. Two braked to an out-of-
ground hover five hundred meters from the club and pivoted
sideways so that their troop doors pointed towards the club.
As soon as they were pointed, the two machine gunners in
each of their doors opened fire.
The MG-240 was capable of spitting out over 1200 rounds
per minute on continuous fire, but the machine gunners were,
while newly trained, quite expert and held them to precise three
and five round bursts. The combined fire tossed the guards on the
front door of the club to their face, littering the sidewalk with
bodies. This late at night, the only people on the street were the
few remaining guards on the club so there were no complications
from ladies of the evening.
The lead Allouette, paused for a moment in an out of
ground hover then, as the guards on the doors were reduced, slid
forward in a deathly precise maneuver and paused opposite the
club.
Intelligence had determined that the majority of the guards
were barracked on the third floor. In each of the Allouettes were
two RPG gunners, two assistant gunners and a sniper. As the
Allouette slowly slid down the now nearly empty street, the RPG
gunners began firing round after round into the barred windows
of the third floor, filling the upper stories with deadly shrapnel.
The backblast was directed out the other door of the stripped
helicopter. In a few of the second and third storey windows,
figures briefly appeared. Those that were not currently being
targeted by the RPG gunners were engaged by the Keldara sniper,
whose precise rounds removed the majority of the threats.
As the helicopter working the front of the building was just
about done with its run, one guard got smart enough to hurry to
an upper floor and open fire on the helicopter with his AK-47.
The majority of the 7.62x39 rounds flew wide, but two cracked
into the turbine housing of the French chopper.
The Russian pilot saw about half of his lights go red in less
than a second
"Tobv yo mut!" he shouted, killing the engine and dropping
the hovering helicopter like a stone. "We're going in!"
* * *
"Where's Tanya?" Vanner asked.
"Second floor," Lidiya answered, calmly. "Room Seven. It's
interior."
"Tell Team Sawn when they clear the second floor to find
her and extract," Patrick replied.
"We have response coming down
Ordur Street
," Greznya said.
"Got it," Vanner said, switching screens. "Blow det zones
nine and nineteen..."
* * *
Yevgeni Kulcyanov grasped the fast rope and slid down,
hitting hard and then bounding to the back door of the club.
"Rig it," he said, not even looking over his shoulder to make
sure Bran was behind him.
"Got it," the Keldara demo specialist said, slapping the
charge on the heavy door. "Clear," he yelled, sliding down the
wall to the side and then triggering the kilo of Semtek.
The remainder of the Keldara entry team had paused out of
the blast zone, hunkering down to take the blast on tehir armor.
As soon as it went off, Yevgeni tossed a frag through the door,
waited for it to detonate and then plunged into the smoke.
"Clear right!"
* * *
Padrek drifted through the dust from the destroyed main
door and took up a position to the right of the door, sweeping
around the mostly abandoned main club area. Abandoned by
clientele, that is. There was heavy fire coming from the far side
of the bar.
Padrek Ferani at 5' 9" was shorter than the average Keldara
and darker as well, with brown hair and eyes that had a slight
epicanthc fold, probably the result of a Mongol warrior passing
through the area. But his frame was compactly muscled from
years of farm work and the training the Keldara took for the
Rites of Ondah. That muscled had been further honed by the
training regime of the Western instructors, as had an already fast
mind.
Choosing the militia teams had, in the end, come down to
something like choosing teams for ball in school. To an extent,
the instructors had made sure that certain skills were passed
around, but the team leaders had final call on who was in "their"
team. And they'd tended to choose like minded individuals.
Oleg was a born warrior, a true Viking descendent who
tended to feel that peace could best be served by superior
firepower. When he saw an obstacle, his choice was to smash it
down. Vil was more subtle, preferring deception and quick
movement, the rapier to the broadsword.
Padrek was one of the best Keldara at mechanisms, one of
the kids who had spent his whole life keeping the few bits of
technology the Keldara posessed alive and kicking. He had the
mind of an engineer, so when he saw a problem he tried to work
it, to think "outside the box." As he surveyed the destruction, he
was automatically processing actions both near and far in terms
of combat time. And he sure as hell wasn't planning on a frontal
assault.
Oleg would have tried to overwelm with firepower. Vil
would have tried a ruse.
Padrek tended to prefer technology.
One of the Keldara was down in the doorway and a blood
trail denoted another that had been dragged out of the line of fire.
The rest were hunkered down behind a barricade of tables,
trading shots with the Albanians on the far side of the room.
More of whom were pouring through a doorway that was just
out of the Keldara's line of fire.
"Tch, tch," Padrek said, shaking his head. Team Padrek's
primary instructor had been McKenzie, the Scottish former SAS
NCO, and some of his manner had rubbed off. "This simply
won't do, what? Krasa?"
"Go Padrek," the intel specialist replied. She was hunkered
down outside the building, waiting for the club level to be
cleared.
"You've got the detonation codes that Vanner sent, yes?"
Padrek asked, consulting a piece of paper. "Could you give me a
hit on number six and...eight?"
* * *
Creata waited as the eight members of the side entry team
slid to the ground then stepped to the door. She looked over her
shoulder and wasn't surprised to see the Kildar giving her a
thumb's up. She grinned at him, grabbed the fast-rope and slid
into the alleyway.
As planned, she stepped to the far side from the door and
huddled to the ground as Ivan and Mikhail squeezed her from
either side, covering her from stray fire and random fragments.
"You don't have to lean in that hard," she muttered, barely
able to breathe from the weight of the two. Oh, well, it was
probably something like sex. Maybe some day she'd find out.
There was an explosion and then a series of shots then Ivan
stood up and yanked her to her feet.
"Stay between us, Mouse," he growled, running hard for the
door.
"Tango down right." "Down left. Left clear." "Hallway
clear." Another blast. "Door open. Descending." "Check fire,
hallway. Main entry team in place." "Basement..."
Creata didn't stop in time and bounced off of Ivan's armor
before being yanked to the ground by Ivan.
"What's happening?" she asked. She had been instructed to
keep her radio off unless she absolutely had to use it.
"Too many guards in the basement," Mikhail muttered.
"Secondary team going in." As he told her there was a massive
explosion from the level above.
"What was that?" Creata yelled.
"Padrek having fun," Mihail replied, grinning.
* * *
"Up and at 'em!" Padrek shouted, standing up over the
barricade and firing the MG-240 from the hip.
The detonation of the two IEDs the hooker had secreted in
the staircase had blown the reinforcing guards out of the
doorway like so much mangled meat. It had also seriously eroded
the morale of the guards that had, successfully, bottled up the
Keldara entry team. They stopped firing and turned to look at
what had happened, giving Padrek the moment's respite he'd
needed. Now the Albanians were suppressed as his fire,
and the fire of the two SAW gunners on the team, filled the area
around the bar with lead.
"Grenades," he yelled, continuing to snap out three and five
round bursts, working back and forth along the top of the bar,
sending the few remaining hail bottles up in an explosion of glass
and liquor. "Now!"
As the grenades reached the end of their apogee he stopped
firing and ducked; frags had no concept of who was friend and
foe. There were a series of "cracks" and screams then he was back
on his feet.
"Follow me!"
* * *
Gregoriya leapt over the black-clad body of a Keldara at the
base of the stairs and took cover on the far side of the hallway as
rounds cracked down the long gallery.
"Four, maybe more, on the south end," he said. "Twenty
meters down."
"I'll cover," Yevgeniya said, leaning around the corner of the
stairs and spraying fire from his Squad Automatic Weapon down
the length of the corridor.
Gregoriya got down and low-crawled forward to the next
doorway, reaching up and trying the door. Locked.
"Fuck," he muttered.
"Reloading!" Yevgeniya called as the fire died.
Gregoriya pulled his SPR around and began sending three
round bursts down the hallway, trying to keep the defenders at
the far end suppressed. An AK was stuck around the corner and
the trigger yanked, filling the corridor with bullets one of which
hit him on the armor.
"I need more cover than this!" Gregoriya sang out.
Suddenly more than just the SAW was firing down the
hallway and the AK was quickly yanked back.
"Thank you," he muttered, putting the barrel of the SPR
against the lock and blowing it away with a couple of bursts. He
pushed the door open with the barrel and then peeked around the
corner. The room appeared to be clear so he slid through the
door, tracking around for threats.
Well, not entirely clear. There was a girl huddled in one
corner, chained to the wall. She looked as if she'd been beaten
rather hard recently. And a nick on her leg was probably from a
bouncer.
"Just stay there and be quiet," he said in Russian, gesturing
her down. He leaned out again, carefully given the amount of
lead being thrown around, and checked the doorway at the end.
Close enough. He pulled out a fragmentation grenade, pulled the
pin and tossed it as hard as he could down the corridor.
Unfortunately, his aim was off and the grenade bounced off
the edge of the doorway. He'd wondered why the instructors had
been so insistent on accuracy and as he ducked back in the room
he decided that now he knew.
"Fucker!" Yevgeniya snapped as he jumped through the
door. "You could have called grenade!"
"I figured you were hiding on the stairs," Gregoriya replied,
grinning.
"Just shut up and hand me a frag," Yevgeniya said.
"Grenade!"
* * *
"Grenades here, here and here," Antoniya said, pointing at
the map as the Hip helicopter lifted off the road and into the
darkness. "Run tripwires across the road. We'll drop trees from
here to here. Then lay claymores as we retreat."
"We don't have any axes," Gena pointed out.
"Who needs axes," Antoniya scoffed, pulling a roll of det-
cord out of his pack. "We've got demo!"
* * *
"Get them out of there," Mike said, tapping two of the
Keldara reserve and pointing to the downed Alloutte as he
stepped off the Hip. "Clearing status?"
"Ground floor clear," Adams said.
"Two Keldara wounded, one dead. Clearing upper floors. Entry
team has opened the basement, clearing at this time. Some
resistance but they're handling it. More casualties."
"Oleg?" Mike said as he walked through the smoking
entrance of the club.
"Reaction from all four directions," the security team leader
replied. "Uncoordinate. Maintaining position. We're getting good
reads from Vanner."
"Sawn?"
"Third floor..." There was a burst of fire in the background
then an explosion and the Keldara team leader grunted. "Second
and third floor clear. We've picked up a primary per Vanner.
Secure and pulling out. IEDs laid to cover."
"When you pull back, check with the basement team and see
if they need any help," Mike said. "If not, go reinforce Oleg."
* * *
"Oleg! There are more coming down Dutro Street
! We need help here!"
"How many?" Oleg asked, waving at the team with him and
hurrying to the defense point on Dutro.
"At least twenty," Dmitri answered. "And they are giving
each other covering fire now. A car tried to get past us as well."
Oleg turned the corner and hunkered down behind a
stairway, peering over the top then looking across the street at the
defense team.
"We have them in a crossfire, now," Oleg said as he spotted
figures moving down the far side of the street. "Juris, see if you
can get onto one of the upper floors and give us cover fire. Jitka,
set up your SAW and get ready for fun..."
* * *
"Make enough of a mess?" Creata asked, stepping over the
body in the threshod of the room and looking around. The
basement office's computers had been shredded by more than one
grenade, but the safe on the far wall was impervious to
fragments.
"More or less," Yevgeniya said, grinning. "A little Mouses
nest, yes?"
"Genrich, Steppas," Gregoriya said. "Start pulling out EEI.
Mouse, we don't have much time."
"Got it," the girl said, hurrying over to the safe. "I'm going
to be at least ten minutes," she added as she began pulling tools
out of her bag.
"Understood," Gregoriya said. "Safe room secure. Working
on the safe..."
Chapter Forty-Three
"Creata's on the safe," Adams said,
pulling off his balaclava and looking around the club. "Ten
minutes. I say we get a drink. If Padrek left us any whole bottles."
"Who's she?" Mike asked, gesturing with his chin to a
hooker being held by one of the Keldara.
"Tanya," Sawn answered. "She's an intel source that Vanner
asked us to pick up."
"Vanner?" Mike asked, over the radio. "We giving rides to
hookers, now?"
"You talking about Tanya, Kildar?" Vanner answered. "She's
good people and we owe her; she laid in a series of IEDs that
really saved Padrek's ass. Besides, Mikhail really likes her."
"Fine, fine, like, what-everrrr," Mike said.
"So we're giving rides to hookers. What's the status with Oleg?"
"Pretty bad," Vanner admitted. "He's got a fight on his hands
on all fronts."
"Sawn, this place secure?" Mike asked.
"Yes, sir," the team leader answered.
"Get everybody out there supporting Oleg," Mike said.
"Keep a minimum security force back here."
"Yes, Kildar," Sawn said, striding away and talking to his
radio.
"Creata?" Mike asked, softly.
"Yes, Kildar?" Creata answered after a moment.
"How long?"
"I'm just beginning my drill, Kildar," Creata said. "Eight to
nine minutes, minimum."
"Thank you, Mouse," Mike replied then looked around the
room. "Stay here or go help Oleg?" he asked, rhetorically.
"You stay here," Adams said,
setting down his empty shot glass. "I'll go help Oleg oh Kildar!"
"Works. Vanner, status on the primary?"
* * *
"Kildar," Vanner said. "Update on the situation with Katya.
Still-unknown man pulled them out of the club over protests of
the sugardaddy. Took them to area outside town with stated
intention of killing them. Natalya recognized him as the 'bad
man', presumably the duplicate Fullbright from Rozaje. Person
explained most of the incident to Katya while gloating."
"And Katya is...alive?" Mike asked.
"Katya managed to scratch him and his driver," Vanner
continued. "Was about to be killed, anyway, by the unknown
man. The 'sugardaddy' prevented it. Turns out he's MI-6."
"Don't you just love it when a plan comes together," Mike
said. "Does he recognize the perp?"
"Negative," Vanner said. "I've uploaded a good face shot to
Pierson; they're trying to run a match. He's apparently American
State Department."
"Anything odd about this guy?" Mike asked, his brain
twigging at something.
"Accent," Vanner said, immediately. "Pure
Cambridge, Boston
. Hah'vah'd, you know? 'Pah'k the cah''?"
"Wait," Mike said. "Run a check against the guy who first
contacted me for the Senator. He was a State Department
brahmin..."
"Looking at the log..." Vanner said. "Wilson Hargreave
Thornton. And now Google is our friend..."
"And?" Mike asked.
"Bingo," Vanner replied. "We now have one dead member
from the Moldava Desk in the woods of
Albania
. Except he's actually in the Bureau of
International Development."
"Connection to Traskel?" Mike asked, curiously.
"He explained it all," Vanner replied. "Well, most. Enough.
I'm sure we'll figure out the link, other than that they run in the
same circles more or less."
"Got it," Mike said. "Look forward to the replay."
"That might be all we have," Vanner said. "I sent Mikhail
after them to act as security but he was late. However, he's got a
Land Rover following him according to Predator data. So
somebody else appears to be after either Wilson Whatsisname or
Natalya."
"And they're out of the box," Mike said, cursing under his
breath. "We'll vector a recovery team in as soon as we egress this
area. Tell them to either run like hell or stand pat, up to them.
But we'll be up to get them soon."
"How is it there?" Vanner asked. "Oleg looks like he's
getting pounded."
"Other than that, all good," Mike admitted just as there was
a shot downstairs. "Check that. Gunfire. Out here."
* * *
Boris waited quietly in the safety room, cursing the bastards
who had wrecked his club.
As soon as the explosions started upstairs, he had raced for
the secure room in the basement. But even before he reached the
stairs, he could hear gunfire from the side door and knew that
they were under heavy attack. Probably too heavy for even his
bloated guard force.
On reaching the basement, he'd ordered the guards to hold
out as long as possible and then secreted himself in the "panic-
room." The room was concealed behind a set of shelves that
contained some of the documents related to the wideflung
network of whorehouses and street whores.
The room had been ransacked, but nobody, fortunately,
noticed the carefully hidden door to the panic-room. After a few
minutes frantic activity, the ransackers, mostly women curiously,
had left carrying almost every document and computer harddrive
in the room. The exception was the woman working on the safe,
and one bodyguard.
Boris would very much prefer it if whoever was attacking
did not get the contents of the safe. Even if everything else was
gone, he could rebuild from just what was in there, in money,
drugs and especially his collection of DVDs. He wasn't sure, but
he thought most of the attackers had gone upstairs. The rest of
the gangs had to be attacking them from the outside. If he could
just kill these two he might be able to make it out alive.
The problem was that the little whore of a safecracker was
looking right at him. She'd started up the drill while the other
women were in the room then left it to drill as she chatted with
the guard. All he needed was for her to turn around for a few
seconds...
* * *
Creata was bored.
The first part of the mission had been exciting and scary.
Three Keldara had been injured or killed trying to get to the
basement office and she felt bad about that. But waiting to enter
the corridor had been the most exciting thing she had ever done,
except maybe fast-roping down to the alleyway.
Then running down the corridor and setting up had been
exciting. She had had to carefully, but quickly, find the precise
spot to start drilling. If she was off by half a millimeter, the entry
wouldn't work. She'd carefully measured and then started the
drill. After that, though, it got boring. Boring, boring, boring.
There had been two choices of drill, a mechanical or laser.
The laser drill was slightly heavier, but it had two advantages. It
could detect when there had been a burn-through, and with the
fine machinery on the far side of the outer plate Creata didn't
want anything touching it but her, and it didn't have the problem
of bits breaking or binding. It was a tad less reliable otherwise,
but she had been careful to pad it for the entry and it started up
without problem. Now all she had to do was wait for it to bore
through to the tumbler assembly.
Bore.
Now she knew why the words were the same in English.
They'd talked about this part in the briefing, and the Kildar had
said that she'd get bored and then laughed. So she did, chuckling
at the thought.
"What?" Ivan asked, frowning.
"I just figured out why the Kildar laughed when we were
talking about this part," Creata said. She'd propped her back on
the safe, waiting for the bore to finish. Looking at it wasn't going
to make it go any faster. "Any word on what's going on
upstairs?"
"All four teams are pinned down," Ivan said, shrugging.
"They've taken a few casualties. The only ones killed, so far, were
Dimant back there on the stairs, Arkady opening the front door
and Stanislav when the helicopter crashed. Oh, and the copilot of
the helicopter. Bunch of wounded, though."
"I'm going as fast as I can," Creata said, shrugging.
"We know," Ivan replied, then grinned. "Although I have
overheard some comments from upstairs. But they all know the
timing. They're going to be okay."
"I hope they can extract okay," the girl said, biting her lip.
"The Kildar thinks..." Ivan said, just as the drill went into
overrev.
"Through," Creata shouted, turning off the drill. "Quiet,
now."
"Yes, ma'am," Ivan replied, grinning. But he keyed his mike
and spoke into it softly.
Creata pulled the drill out of the casing carefully, rolling it
to the side, then slid a doubled optical wire into the hole. One
was for vision and the other one had a light. The interior was
precisely as she'd been told it would be and she looked at the
tumblers for a second.
"I can see the first number..." she muttered to herself,
ignoring a faint click behind her.
* * *
The guard didn't seem to hear the faint click as the shelves
unlatched from the wall and Boris held his breath as he slowly
swung the door open. But, still, the guard, who was speaking
softly into his radio, didn't seem to notice anything.
The guard was wearing heavy body armor so Boris slowly
raised his pistol up to the level of his eye, took a two handed grip
and shot the guard just below the base of his helmet.
* * *
Creata turned around in shock as the whole area around her
was covered in bloodspatter, only to find an unknown man, one
of the Albanians from the looks, standing over the body of Ivan
with a smoking pistol.
"Come away from there, girl," the man said, waving for her
gently. "Come away and you won't get hurt."
"No," Creata said, scurrying behind the bulk of the laser
drill. "They'll come for you, soon."
"But you're their safe cracker," the man said, moving around
to the side to get a clear shot. "Without you, they can't get in, can
they?"
"I don't want to hurt you," Creata replied, keeping the drill
between herself and the man. She had a very small body and
could crouch behind it almost totally under cover. "Just go
away."
"Ah, but I very much enjoy hurting little girls like you," the
man said, stepping forward.
"You probably do," Creata replied and turned the laser on.
The fifteen megawatt chemical laser was designed to bore
through one centimeter of 440 steel per second. Human flesh had
about the resistance to it that butter had to a hot knife. It was
nearly out of charge, but Creata only had to play it across the
man's abdomen, 23 millimeters below his navel. The precise
height that the laser had to be aligned to enter the safe.
* * *
Boris didn't even feel the pain at first: his legs simply
collapsed under him as he felt something slither down them. He
hit the floor on his face but retained his grip on his pistol and
tried to raise it, only to find a small and shapely boot on his
wrist.
"I really didn't want to hurt you," Creata said, pointing her
own pistol at his face. "I simply wanted to kill you. Of course, I
think that disemboweling you just got is probably starting to
hurt. Let me be nicer than you and make the pain go away..."
* * *
Mike could see Ivan's body on the floor before he even got
to the door of the basement office, but the shot that rang out was
a surprise.
He skidded through the door, SPR up and pointed, just as
Creata was putting her pistol away. There was a body on the
floor besides Ivan's, an unknown Albanian with his legs tangled
in intestines. His identity would probably forever be unknown,
since he also had a bullet hole in the back of his head and his face
was blown out.
"Oh, hello, Kildar," Creata said, turning back to the safe.
"Do you think you could watch my back while I finish?"
"Of course," Mike replied, just as calmly. "I'll be as quiet as
a church-mouse."
Chapter Forty-Four
"Oleg," Juris called, tracking a moving figure and then
stroking his trigger. The figure on the opposite roof fell, but two
more dove past him and began peppering the window he'd shot
through with fire. "We've got tangos on the roof opposite. I have
to pull out."
"I think we pissed these guys off," Jitka muttered over the
radio.
"Their home turf," Oleg replied, scanning the street then
consulting his map. "They're very territorial are the Albanian
clans. This is an affront to their honor. They'll keep coming, like
ants to a picnic, until we've killed them all or the picnic's left."
"Then I suggest we fold our napkins and go," Juris chuckled.
"Could I get some cover on that?"
"Roger," Oleg said. "Dutri street
team, pull back by sections. Section one, move. All
teams, fall back on the Club. Kildar, we are withdrawing by
sections at this time. Request cover fire in and around the club."
* * *
"Oleg, this is Kildar," Mike whispered. "Everyone's with
you. I'll get back to you on cover."
"Roger, Kildar," Oleg said as there was a scream in the
background.
"Vanner," Mike said. "Who's out on the interdict mission
and what's the status?"
"The area's rigged," Vanner said. "They're pulling back."
"Get two of the Allouettes to them," Mike said. "Have them
provide cover fire for the withdrawal to the club. Begin moving
all personnel to the evac point on the roof."
"Will do," Vanner replied.
* * *
"Die you Albanian motherfuckers," Ionis muttered, stroking
the trigger of his MG-240.
He'd thought flying in on the Allouettes had been scary. But
that had worked out perfectly. Now, though, he and Stephan were
under heavy fire, covering the retreat of one of Oleg's teams.
"Keep the ammo coming, brother," he muttered as Stephan
clicked another hundred round box into the linked belt that was
feeding the gun.
"Keep firing, brother," Stephan replied, grinning, just as
there was a whistling sound.
Ionis caught a brief glimpse of the RPG in the air before it
impacted on the wall above him.
* * *
Oleg dashed across the street, ignoring the hail of small
arms fire, and scooped up the MG-240.
"Dmitri! Sveryan! Grab Ionis and Stephan and get them
under cover," the team leader roared, popping up over the
stairway and hosing the far side of the street, holding the machine
gun off-hand like a giant rifle. There was return fire, though,
from every window it seemed and from the rooftop. He felt a
round punch him in the armor and then another in the left leg. He
ignored them and kept firing, both suppressing the fire from the
far side of the street and drawing it so the team could withdraw.
"Vagis! Juril! Somebody feed me!"
* * *
"Kildar, this is Sawn. We've withdrawn on Nevsk and
Agayev. I'm shifting some forces over to Dutris, though. Oleg
and his team are pinned there."
"Got it," Mike said, quietly. "I may have some support on
the way. Get everyone withdrawn as fast as possible. Mouse is
almost done. I need at least a fire team here in the building to
make sure we get to the withdrawal point."
"Will do," Sawn said. "See you in Valhalla."
"Got it," Creata said, leaning back and twisting the handle.
The handle moved for about a third of the way and then stopped.
"Damn."
"What's wrong?" Mike asked. If they couldn't get the door
open, the entire mission was for nothing.
"I thought I saw a fragment of metal in the tumblers," Creata
said, standing up and walking over to Ivan's body. She calmly
rolled him over and unshipped his SPR then walked back over to
the safe and hammered on the handle until it moved. "That's got
it," she added, twisting it all the way to open and then opening the
safe.
"Whoa," Mike said, blinking his eyes. "Sawn."
"Kildar, we've mostly pulled back to the club except for the
group on Dutris. We have cover on their back, but they are under
heavy fire."
"Okay, I need about..." Mike looked at the contents of the
safe again and then shrugged. "About ten guys down here. Some
of the girls will do but I'm going to need strong backs."
"Roger, Kildar," Sawn said. "Will do."
"That is a lot of money," Creata said, pulling out one of the
stacks of euros. "A lot of money."
"And the DVDs?" Mike asked, keeping an eye on the
corridor.
"Here," Creata said, pulling out two audio storage boxes and
lifting the lid on one. "In crystal cases, yes?" she asked.
"Check them," Mike said. "Vanner, what's the status on that
Allouette?"
* * *
"Glad to see you!" Antoniya shouted over the rotor wash.
"You may not be," the pilot shouted back. "I know I'm not
happy! See the machine guns?"
"Yes?" Gena shouted.
"They are to be used, yes?" the pilot said and then grinned.
"As the Americans say, we are going Downtown."
* * *
"There is firing in town," Yevgeni Andrushkin said, looking
over at Dmitri Balboshin. "And I cannot raise Yarok on his
cellphone."
Yevgeni and Dmitri had been assigned to the same Spetznaz
team, straight out of training, Yevgeni as a brand new lieutenant
and Dmitri as an equally shiny senior private. And both had left
the teams at about the same time, after an offer they couldn't
resist from the Russian mafia. Since then, Yevgeni had risen on
the paramilitary side of the mob, becoming a senior recruiter and
leader of professionals in "wet work" while Dmitri had handled
his personal security.
Yevgeni had reluctantly acceded to his former commander's
request to form a large force for the Albanian mob. The
Albanians and the Russians often clashed, but if there was a new
anti-criminal special operations team running around, Yevgeni
felt it in everyone's interest to crush it as soon as possible.
That assumes that they could even get to the force before it
completed its current raid. Yarok had said "soon" but not this
soon.
"I could give a rat's ass about Yarok," Dmitri said, propping
his SMG into a more comfortable position and fingering one of
the frag grenades on his ammo vest. "We'd better get paid,
though."
"We will be," Yevgeni said. "As long as we are not too late.
Driver, hurry!"
"Yes, Mr. Kutkin," the Albanian driver said, nervously. "But
this road is very twisty..."
"I don't care!" Yevgeni shouted, just as there was a crack
from the roadside.
The small Keldara team had not had much time and they had
only recently been through demolitions school. But what they
knew about dropping trees hadn't been discovered yet.
The explosion sequence was started by three grenades, their
pins loosened and attached to wires spread across the road at
waist height. AS the first bus hit the wires, the pins were pulled
and each of the grenades detonated.
Under the grenades, the trees that they were riggertapped to
had a triple wrap of det cord with two small charges of Semtek
wrapped in with it. The det cord detonated sympathetically from
the grenades, detonating the Semtek in turn and the base of the
trees shot away from the road, bringing their crowns down like
rockets.
But that wasn't enough for the busy Keldara. They had run
more detcord from the primary trees to others along the roadway,
along with stringing claymores on their trunks.
Before the first bus had even crashed into the obstacles
suddenly dropped in its path, more trees were dropping into the
road for over fifty meters along with a hail of ballbearings that
turned the buses into so many bleeding collanders.
* * *
"Oh, that was very cool," Gena said. The helicopter had
pulled up high enough that he could see the entire road and they
had added some flares so the scene was fully lit. The buses
carrying the "reaction force" were twisted across the road every
which way and three were on fire. Only the rear two buses
appeared unscathed.
"Sawn, this is Antoniya," the fire team leader said. "The
reaction force is...not having a good night. They will be late to
the party."
"Good," Sawn said. "One good piece of news. How long to
the town?"
"Perhaps three minutes," Antoniya said, cocking the door-
mounted MG-240. "I take it you have more work for us."
"Yes," Sawn said. "Hurry."
* * *
Oleg had been hit two more times, but had only been able to
pull back half the block. He knew he was bleeding too much, but
he could barely take time to cram bandages on the wounds.
"Juris, you there?" Oleg called, weakly.
"Above you, brother," the sniper replied.
"There are fighters on the roof over you," Oleg said. "Pull
out."
"You don't have any cover, brother," the sniper pointed out.
"I'll stay."
"Go," Oleg said. "Go now. That is an order."
"Going," Juris said after a moment. "But I thought I'd shoot
the fellow about to drop a grenade on you."
"Thank you," Oleg said, stroking the trigger. He was almost
out of ammo for the 240 and Sveryan, who had picked up the
spares, had already been pulled back with a sucking chest wound.
What was that song that the Kildar sang?
"And in the fury of this darkest hour, we shall be your light,"
Oleg said, tracking a moving figure on the rooftop opposite and
stroking the trigger. The machinegun spat out three rounds and
then went silent. "You've asked me for my sacrifice, and I am
Winter Born..."
* * *
"Oleg," Juris whispered. "Get up."
"Get out," Oleg replied. "Go."
"Not without you, brother," the sniper replied, targeting a
figure on the far rooftop. The man seemed to stumble and then
fell into the street but the single shot, even with the silenced
sniper rifle, had attracted a hail of fire from all along the street.
"Time to crawl."
"Bit hard to do," Oleg said, choking. "But, yes, we crawl..."
AS they tried to leave the shelter of the stairs, though,
rounds cracked all around them.
"Or not," Juris sighed. "Perhaps we stay here, yes?"
"I told you," Oleg replied, laughing redly. "You should
listen to your brother."
"I would much prefer to be in the house, yes?" Juris said,
leaning against the wall and trying to search for targets. "Having
some of Mother Lenka's brew."
"I would rather be in bed with Lidiya," Oleg said. "If you
make it, tell the Kildar..."
"We will both make it, brother," Juris said, knowing he was
lying. "But I will tell the Kildar..."
He paused as a body dropped from the window above,
spinning to fire and then checking.
"You see!" the girl behind him said. "I told you it was Juris
and Oleg! Here," she added, tossing him three boxes of
ammunition for the MG-240. "Get to work, Juris. You always
were lazy!"
"Elena," Oleg said, blinking his eyes in surprise. "Catrina? Is
it really you?"
"I wondered how long it was going to take for you to find
us," Elena said, making a moue. "I didn't expect it to be this
long." She reached down and yanked off her stilletto heels,
rubbing her feet. "I'm so glad to get those off!"
"We're not here for you," Juris said, slipping the ammo into
the machine gun and opening fire. "Not that I'm not glad to see
you, especially bringing ammo!"
"Oleg, Juris," Sawn said. "You there?"
"Here, Sawn," Juris replied. "We could use some cover fire."
"You're about to get it," Sawn said. "Get down."
"Tell whoever is firing to be careful," Oleg said, reaching up
and pulling his sister in close as his eyes watered from more than
pain. "We found Elena and Catrina."
"Found us, hell!" Catrina said, hugging Juris triumphantly.
"We had to find you!"
* * *
The Alloutte slid to a halt at the intersection of Dutris and
Turla, behind the assaulting Albanians. As soon as the helicopter
slowed, Antoniya and Gena opened fire.
The two MG-240s were firing down, suppressing or
engaging everyone along the street as the Allouette slowly
tracked back and forth. They started with the rooftops, firing
from above and behind the attackers that had made their way up
there, then started on those on the street.
The Albanians, caught in a crossfire from before and above,
didn't have many choices. Mostly, they died. Some ran into the
buildings, a few managed to retreat under the helicopter, but they
weren't much better off there. Efim and Vitaly, the other two
members of the blocking team, had found a case of
fragmentation grenades. Anyone headed for the helicopter found
frags dropping on them from great height. Due to the timing of
the frags and the distance to the ground, most went off before
they hit. This didn't do the retreating pimps and guards much
good, though, since that just meant the frags spread around
better.
As the fighters near the helicopter were suppressed, the pilot
slid the helicopter sideways down the road, letting the machine-
gunners and grenadiers engage more targets. However, it started
taking fire from hidden riflemen in the windows of the houses
along the street and backed off.
"Sawn, this is Antoniya," the team leader called. "What's the
status?"
"Pull off," Sawn called. "All personnel recovered. We're
beginning extraction. Come to the other end of Dutris and cover
us as we leave."
"Got it," the pilot called, pivoting the bird up and around.
"Will do."
"Anybody got any idea how we're doing?" Antoniya asked.
What was that line the Kildar used?
"Don't count your cards while their sitting on the table,"
Sawn growled. "Just shag your ass."
Chapter Forty-Five
"So, you are MI-6?" Katya asked, confused, as the agent
began uncuffing her.
"Yes," Calthrop said, grinning. "Lord Arnold thought you
might like some backup."
"I never suspected," Katya admitted, rubbing her wrist and
ankle as the cuffs came off.
"I had extensive amateur thespian experience at
Oxford
," Calthrop said, walking over to Natalya and cutting
the rope around her neck. "I must say that my Sancho Panza was
well regarded by the Oxford Gazette. I have a clipping around
here somewhere..." he added, patting his pockets.
"I think we talk about it later," Katya said, wincing as she
got to her feet. "There are things going on in town..." she
continued just as a series of distant thumps carried over the night
air.
"Ah, yes, your raid by the Keldara, what?" Calthrop asked.
"And, of course, there are the two cars that appear to be coming
up the hill."
"Oh, shit," Katya said. "Vanner, Vanner, can you hear me?"
"It's Lidiya, yes," Lidiya replied in her ear.
"We're okay, for now," Katya said. "But there are cars."
"The one in the lead is Mikhail," Lidiya said. "The other is
reported but who it is is unknown. A Land Rover. Definitely
following you and probably hostile."
"It would have been nice to know that before now!" Katya
snapped.
"You seemed a bit busy," Lidiya said with a hint of humor in
her voice. "The bulk of the force is engaged in the town or on
other operations. Kildar says that you need to run, or fight, your
choice, but hold on for a few more minutes until we can get
some support to you."
"Understood," Katya said, looking around. "I think...run."
"I take it you're using that special thingy in your head,"
Calthrop said. "What do they say?"
"The lead car is a friend," Katya said, frowning. "The trail
car is a Land Rover, probably hostile. The Keldara can't get free
for a few minutes. So we're on our own."
"Then I agree," Calthrop said, holding out his hand and
helping her to her feet. "We run."
* * *
"Mikhail."
"Go Lidiya," the Keldara said, steering through a hard turn.
"Get ready to take a right."
"Is that the way to Katya?" Mikhail asked, confused. "I saw
their lights above us."
"It will be."
* * *
"The other car is turning," Chito said, looking over at
Bezhmel.
"Yes, but the Mercedes is up there," Yarok replied, pointing
up the hill. "This road takes us up there. Keep going."
* * *
"Okay, the Tango One is still headed up the hill," Captain
O'Keefe said, over the sat-phone. "Sierra Two is headed down the
side road."
"Got that," Lidiya said, picking up the microphone.
"Katya..."
* * *
"...Turn right at the next intersection," Katya said, pointing.
"That's sending us back towards town," Calthrop said,
braking to make the turn.
The big Mercedes was solid and a comfortable ride, but it
was really lacking in acceleration and turning; the soft
shocks made it turn extremely wide. He could already see
flashes of light from the following Rover.
"We're meeting a friend."
* * *
Mikhail pulled the Ladia backwards into the road and then
bailed out, running across the small distance to the stopped
Mercedes and tumbling into the back seat.
"Nice of you to join us, Mikhail," Katya said, dryly. "Great
security. I had to depend on the British for protection."
"I was doing my best," Mikhail said, jacking a round into the
SPR. "But I was driving a Ladia. What did you expect?"
"So was I, lad," Calthrop replied in Georgian. "Of course, I
had a bit of a lead on you. Speaking of leads, we're losing ours
with the Rover. Nice of you to park your car in the road, but I
don't think that's going to stop them."
"Slow them down a bit, I hope," Mikhail said, shrugging and
looking out the back window. "If not, well, we will die well."
"The only way to do that is late," Katya replied.
* * *
"Who the fuck would park a car..." Chito said, swerving the
Rover around the parked Ladia. He'd barely spotted it in time and
had a seriously hard time keeping the SUV in control as it hit the
verge of the road. But he managed after a moment.
"Someone trying to slow us down," Bezhmel replied.
How many in the car was the question. The American was
dead; he'd seen the body as they drove past. He could take the
credit on that one. All he had to do was take out the hooker,
Natalya. Then he would be sixty thousand euros richer. But there
was more than just the hooker in the car. At least one, probably
more.
However, he had three fighters in the back of the SUV,
himself and Chito. That should be enough to take out whatever
was facing them.
* * *
"Hang on," Calthrop said, braking hard as he saw a
switchback ahead.
The diplomat/assassin had taken the girls far up into the hills
over the town but the current road was headed downward again.
And the narrow, barely paved, road was descending in a series of
nasty switchbacks that the big Mercedes dearly hated.
The outer tires dug gravel on the outside shoulder of the
road, causing a burst of adrenaline through his system that hit
like a hammer.
"That was too close," Katya said, disapprovingly.
"Yes," Calthrop said through thinning lips. "But so are
they."
* * *
"There," Bezhmel shouted, pointing to a narrow trail.
The switchbacks were not the only way down the mountain.
At various points, local shepherds had driven their flocks straight
down, generally just short of the switchbacks. Where the sheep
and goats could go, a Rover could follow.
Chito hit the brakes and turned hard to the left, the front
tires briefly leaving the ground and then thumping down.
The ride was bumpy, tossing the three gunners in the back
around to shouted complaints. But the Rover debouched onto the
road ahead of the speeding Mercedes as Chito braked it,
narrowly, to a stop short of the far side of the road.
* * *
"Oh....shiiiiit," Calthrop shouted, slamming on the brakes
and turning hard to the right.
As the Mercedes fishtailed across the road, Mikhail grasped
a handhold and lowered the window on his side. As soon as it
had more or less stopped he pointed his SPR out the window and
opened fire.
* * *
"Fuck!" Bezhmel shouted as rounds began cracking into the
SUV. "Out!" he continued, ducking and pushing on the driver so
the idiot would bail out on the far side.
However, the duck had been fortuitous since it permitted the
5.56 round meant for his head to instead strike the driver
in the right temple.
Chito's head snapped to the left as blood filled the interior
of the vehicle and his body slumped in the same direction,
tangled in the steering wheel and effectively blocking the door.
"Fuck!" Bezhmel shouted again, pushing at the body and
trying to get to the door latch. "What are you fuckers in the back
waiting for? SHOOT!"
* * *
"Out!" Calthrop yelled, bailing out on his side. He was
somewhat surprised to feel the sharp strike of high-heels in his
back as Katya made her own time out of the targeted vehicle.
Rounds were cracking through the air, and the car, before he
could even get to his knees. But, in the meantime, the hooker had
pulled Natalya from the back of the car and was already headed
away into the darkness.
"Where are you going?"
"I am saving my life," Katya said, not looking back. "And
hers, the primary, yes? You are going to help by killing
as many of them as you can before you die."
"Oh, that is so bloody..." Calthrop said, rolling behind a
wheel for cover as AK rounds began thumping into and through
the car. The two girls, however, were already fading into the
darkness. "Whorish."
He reached in with his right hand and drew the Walther from
its shoulder holster then shook his head.
"Not bloody likely," he muttered, reaching in to the other
side and removing a Winchester
.454 revolver. The weapon was a "pistol" only in
technical description; the round it fired was similar in ballistics
to a very heavy assault rifle. It also kicked like a mule.
"Better. Right." He took a deep breath and then let it out, getting
a good two handed grip and licking his lips as the fire died from
the back seat. So much for Mikhail. "Right. Bloody James Bond
time, right? Get my double-o rating and everything. Right. They
so did not cover this in recruiting. Mum was right; I
should have been an actor..."
* * *
Bezhmel finally managed to get the door open and tumble to
the road as the fire died down. But the first thing he saw was one
of the shooters from the back seat sprawled on the road, his legs
still in the backseat of the SUV.
There was only one of the former Spetznaz left alive, and he
was clutching at one arm where a bullet had passed through the
meat of the bicep.
"Move," Bezhmel said, waving him forward and plucking
the AK from the hands of the dead fighter sprawled out the door.
"I'll cover you."
"Right," the Russian grunted, hefting his SK-74. "I thought
we were after a girl. Who are these guys?"
"I don't know," Bezhmel said, shrugging. "Probably the
Keldara."
"Fucking Georgians," the former Spetznaz said, spitting and
lifting up to stride forward. "Time for them to..."
Bezhmel was never to be sure what the former soldier
thought it was time for. He had been watching the back seat but
as the fighter lifted up Yarok saw a flash of movement through
the back window and there was a tremendous report, as if
someone had snuck along a .50 caliber sniper rifle.
The former Spetznaz trooper had just lifted up, also
watching the back seat, and was tossed backwards as if pulled by
a wire. He hit on his back and slumped to the side, revealing a
fist-sized exit wound from a round through the upper chest.
"Holy Fuck," Bezhmel shouted, aware that one, he
was now entirely alone in this fight and, two, there was one
big fucking gun on the other side.
* * *
One down, at least one to go.
Calthrop had never been in a gunfight. He'd been in one
barroom brawl that he got out of as quickly as possible, and once
had a mugger threaten him with a knife. But this was the first
time he'd been in a gun battle and he wasn't sure of the rules.
Well, the one thing he was sure of was that there were no
rules.
But he'd watched quite a bit of the telly and movies.
Actually, he blamed this whole thing on an addiction to James
Bond movies, especially the early ones with Sean Connery. And
while most of what he'd picked up from those, and other movies,
was surely bogus, there was one trick he'd seen that
might save his ass.
So he got down on his stomach, mentally working up the
expense report for his clothes, and scanned under the car
for targets.
There was one man apparently still standing on the others
side. Calthrop could just see a knee past the left, front tire of the
Rover. He sighted on it carefully, pulled back the heavy hammer
of the beastly weapon and pulled back on the trigger.
* * *
"Bolgemoi!" Bezhmel shouted at the tire by his side
exploded. Something hit him heavily on the hip, throwing him to
the ground, but by the same token the Rover settled nearly to the
ground, giving him more cover.
The round, however, was quickly followed by three more,
each of which punched through not only the far doors but
both sides of the Rover, sending spalling and ricochets off
into the night.
"Fuck this," Bezhmel muttered, crawling to the dead fighter
in the door. He patted at pockets until he came up with what he
was looking for.
"Take this you goat-fucker," he muttered, pulling the pin on
the grenade and tossing it as hard as he could in the direction of
the fire.
* * *
Calthrop leaned against the tire and opened up the cylinder
of the revolver, pushing out the spent rounds and quickly
thumbing more in. Reload whenever possible. That bit was
coming back from very distant classes in tactics.
As he closed the cylinder he heard a thump in the darkness
beyond and looked carefully. When he saw the rolling sphere he
remembered the other injunction that had been right up
there with "reload."
"Oh, yeah," he said, trying to get to the other side of
the wheel as fast as possible. "I was supposed to move."
* * *
On top of the crack of the grenade was a scream and at that
Bezhmel leapt to his feet, running around the side of the Rover
and sprinting towards the Mercedes while firing a stream of
bullets from the AK held at his hip.
When he rounded the Mercedes he found that he needn't
have bothered. By the front tire was a sprawled body, a very
large handgun not far from his outflung hand. In the
backseat was another body, face down, one hand still on an SPR,
the other slumped down into a floorboard awash in blood.
However, there were no women. Just the two dead men.
"Where o where have my little lambs gone," Bezhmel
whispered, setting the empty AK up against the side of the truck
and drawing a SigSauer from his shoulder holster. "Oh, where oh
where can they be?"
Chapter Forty-Six
"Hurry," Katya said, pushing the girl ahead of her down the
twisting goat path. She'd heard one explosion and one more burst
of firing and now all was quiet. She took that for a bad sign.
"I can barely walk," Natalya said, sobbing. "My feet are
bloody."
"Your whole body will be bloody if you don't run,"
Katya whispered, fiercely. She'd ordered the girl to take off her
high-heeled shoes; they would be impossible on the narrow,
steep, trails. But the ridge they were on was covered in rocks that
had torn both of their feet to ribbons.
"Katya," Lidiya said, calmly. "Situation report. It looks like
Mikhail and the MI-6 man have both been taken down. The good
news, such as it is, is that only one of the Russians is still alive.
He's looking for you, but isn't directly on your track yet."
"How long until..." Katya panted, wincing as the rocks cut
further into her abused feet. It was like the time that one pimp
bastard had whipped her on her soles. But she was doing it to
herself, which almost made up for it.
"At least seven more minutes," Lidiya said. "I've made it
clear that you're badly in need of support."
"Tell them to hurry," Katya replied.
"I have," Lidiya said. "Let me remind you, the mission is to
recover the primary."
"Yeah, I know," Katya snapped. "But I can't get my money if
I'm dead."
They'd reached the second level below the switchback that
the firefight occurred on and Katya stopped, winded, when they
did. Natalya slumped to the ground, clearly willing to die rather
than run anymore.
"This is no good," she muttered, looking up the hill.
"Katya," Lidiya said. "He's found something. He's headed
down the trail. The American say that he's following you,
somehow."
"Tell them it's probably the blood from our feet!"
Katya whispered fiercely. Looking up the hill she could see the
flashlight, clearly. "We can't run anymore!"
"Then I suggest you figure something out," Lidiya said,
calmly.
"Easy for you to say," Katya said, looking around. There was
a culvert, but since they were both trailing blood...
"Natalya," Katya snapped. "Get down on your hands and
knees."
"Yes," the girl said in total resignation, doing as she was
told. "I will die now."
"The hell you will," Katya replied. "I don't get my money if
you die. Now, trying not to scrape yourself up and leave
a trail, keep your feet off the ground and crawl into that culvert."
"Why?" Natalya said.
"Because I told you to, you little whore," Katya
snarled. "Get. And when you're in there, crawl as far back as you
can and keep quiet."
Katya had retained her shoes, barely, by carrying them by the
straps. Now she sat down and, wincing, donned them again. Once
they were on and Natalya was climbing in the culvert, she started
tottering down the road, painfully.
"Katya," Lidiya said, with a note of confusion. "Predator
says that Natalya has gone to ground and you are moving very
slowly down the road. What are you doing?"
"Buying us time," Katya snarled. "Try to use it wisely."
* * *
Bezhmel spotted movement and turned off the torch, letting
his eyes adjust for a moment. There, one figure.
He ran uphill on the road for a moment until he spotted a
narrow trail and then took it as fast as he could without breaking
an ankle. Part of the time he was on his ass, sliding down the
steep hill, but he reached the road just behind the stupid little
bitch tottering along on her high-heels.
"Stop," he said, panting. The fight, and the chase, had worn
him down; he wasn't in the same shape he'd been in when he left
the service. "Stop," he repeated, turning the torch back on and
spotlighting the little whore who was still trying to hobble away.
He'd seen the blood; her feet weren't going to carry her far.
The girl turned around, wincing in pain from the light of the
torch and held up her hands.
Not the right girl. But she would know where the other one
went.
* * *
"Where's the other girl," a man's voice barked from the far
side of the light.
Katya screwed her eyes shut against the light and fell to her
knees, head bent and hands covering her eyes.
"Please, sir," she begged, tears rolling down her face. "I don't
know what is going on. I know nothing..."
"Where's the other girl, bitch," the man said, coming closer.
The torch was lowered and she could vaguely see his outline in
the reflection. And the glint from a pistol which was centered on
her forehead.
"She left me," Katya whimpered, pulling her hands away a
little but still keeping her head down. "My feet, they were so hurt.
She ran away, down the road..."
The torch came up and the man strode forward, looking
down the hill.
"I don't see her," he said.
"She was there..." Katya said, reaching under her left armpit
and pressing a valve four times in quick succession. Then she
pushed, hard, on the small packet under her skin and let the drug
take her.
She wasn't sure what was in it. The American doctors had
talked about pseudo-adrenaline and oxidizers and steroids and
man-made endorphins until her head was reeling with unfamiliar
terms. But they had given her one demonstration under
controlled conditions so she would know what to expect. All she
knew was that the world seemed to slow down and she suddenly
felt light, the pain of her muscles from running, and the pain of
her feet, drifting away as if they were nothing. She also felt
strong and graceful, as if she could dance off the face of the
world and drift away into space.
Last, but not least, she felt angry. But, then again, that was
how she always felt. And now she got to let it all hang out.
* * *
Bezhmel held the torch in his left hand and the pistol in his
right, tracking back and forth down the road. The light from the
torch was bright enough to clearly reveal the far switchback and
there was no girl in sight.
He started to turn back to the little whore that had lied to
him and got one brief glimpse of her rising up off the ground
then...she seemed to blur.
* * *
Katya struck the man's gun-hand with the side of her fist,
hard, spinning both gun and torch away down the hill. There was
a complicated disarm she had been taught, but in the grip of the
drug all she could think to do was smash. So she smashed.
She roundkicked upwards into the man's stomach, causing
him to double over in agony at the drug enhanced blow, then
kicked him again in the face on its way down. She got a sick
satisfaction from the crunch of bone and the splash of blood as
his nose pulped. The second blow felt like it broke something in
her foot, but she could care less. They'd told her that she'd only
have thirty seconds, at most, under the full effects of the drug and
she intended to make the most of it.
* * *
The little whore was supernaturally fast and so strong it felt
like being hit by a professional kick-boxer. Bezhmel was trained
in hand-to-hand combat, but this was like fighting a rabid
mongoose. He had been taken totally off-guard and couldn't even
start to defend himself as blow after blow came out of nowhere...
* * *
Dropping her kicking foot and stepping forward, Katya
actually turned her back to the man then spun on one foot,
driving the side of her clenched right fist into his right temple
then spinning back the other way for an identical blow to the left.
That one was assisted by the fact that the man's head had been
punched in that direction.
She punched down with one heel into his instep, driving the
stilletto all the way through to the sole of his boot. Then, as he
doubled over in agony at the pain, she punched up with her elbow
to strike his jaw. She heard a crack, that time, that might have
been neck vertebra. She hoped not, she had more mad to get out.
Hopefully it was just lots of teeth.
For now, in this time and in this place, she could let out
every scrap of hatred seared into her soul. This man, this fucker
that worked for the Albanians, he was every man who had ever
raped her, every man who had ever beaten her, every man who
had ever touched her. And she intended to take her full
time, sped up as it was, on this one man. It might be the only
chance she ever got.
* * *
Bezhmel was out on his feet. His eyes were blinded from the
head-blows, a TKO in any boxing rink. But this wasn't boxing,
and the woman clearly wasn't going to go for a simple technical.
It was all that he could do to manage to stand, to try to raise his
arms in pathetic defense, as insanely powerful blow after blow
struck from the darkness...
* * *
Katya, feeling the effects of the drug starting to ebb, kneed
the man in the groin then punched into the solar plexus before he
could even start to double over. Doubly bent, his neck was wide
open and she drove one rock-hard, enhanced-strength, elbow
blow into the back of his neck, dropping him to the ground.
The Kildar had told her that that was often a killing blow,
but the man still was writhing in agony on the ground. Oh, well.
That was easy enough to fix.
She raised one foot and drove the narrow tip of her hated
stiletto heels into the top of the man's neck, just below the skull.
The blow sunk the stiletto all the way up to the base. The man
twitched once, much like a pithed frog, and then was still.
She looked up, startled, as a helicopter raised up from below
the level of the road and slid sideways towards her. She had been
so concentrated on the beating she gave the man, she hadn't even
heard it approach. A spotlight suddenly came on, panning around
until it caught her in its light. She had to shield her eyes, again, at
the brightness.
The helicopter slid sideways, again, lining up its wheels with
the edge of the cliff and Katya could faintly see movement
behind the spotlight. She wasn't sure who it was, but she didn't
really care anymore. She'd had her fun. If it was more of the
Albanian motherfuckers, they could damned well kill her, but she
was never going back into slavery.
"Hey, Katya," Killjoy said casually, walking out of the light.
He was scratching under his armor and if he was perturbed at the
sight of a woman standing on the back of a man's neck with her
high-heel shoved all the way through to his esophagus it didn't
show. "Whatchadoin?"
"Your job, motherfucker," Cottontail replied, finally pulling
her stiletto out of the man's neck. Even over the rotor-wash,
there was an audible "pop." "About time you showed up.
Reinforcements my ass."
Chapter Forty-Seven
Mike tossed the last bag of ill-gotten gains into the
helicopter and waved Oleg and Juris by. He wrinkled his brow at
the two obvious hookers helping the big team leader, but decided
not to mention it.
"You gonna make it, big guy?" Mike asked the team leader,
who was just about shot to shit but still limping along with the
help of the sniper and the two girls, one of whom was carrying an
AK.
"I will be at my wedding, Kildar," Oleg said, grinning. "And
you had better be, too. And so will Catrina and Elena!"
"Glad to meet you," Mike said, making the connection.
"And you, Kildar," the one with the AK said, dropping a
curtsey that slipped her dress up far enough to see pubic hair and
then helping the team leader up the ramp.
"I'll be a monkey's uncle," Mike muttered as
Adams ran up. "Well?"
"All accounted for," Adams said,
not even pausing as he continued up the ramp of the Hip, which
was hovering just off the roof of the club. "Hail and not hail.
And, as you noticed, two recovered Keldara girls."
"Let's go, then," Mike said, stepping up onto the ramp.
"Pilot, shag ass."
As the ramp started to close, he flipped up the safety switch
of the activator and pressed the red plunger. The detonation was
surprisingly muted. They couldn't blow the whole building, there
were girls still on the upper floors, but the basement offices were
well and truly trashed. As he looked around for a seat, though, he
noticed a surprising number of unfamiliar female faces on the
helicopter. Maybe they could have blown the whole building.
"Adams, we appear to have some
stow-aways," Mike said, sitting down on the floor since there
weren't any spare seats.
"The basement rooms were being used as torture chambers
for new girls or girls that had somehow really pissed the boss
off," Adams replied, shrugging in
unconcern. "And, of course, the troops had to run a gauntlet of
girls as they headed for the roof. I guess a few somehow stuck to
them. What did you expect?"
"Nothing less," Mike admitted, looking over at one of the
girls who gave him a tremulous smile of hope. "Nothing less.
They're the Mountain Tigers."
Epilogue
"Senator," Traskel's executive assistant said, looking
through the door. "There's a Mr. Jenkins here to see you. He's..."
"Quite insistent," Mike said, shoving the door open and then
shutting it in the secretary's face. "Hi, John."
"I thought you'd have the good sense to not meet me here,"
the senator said, picking up the phone.
"Oh, I think we can dispense with those games, Senator,"
Mike said, walking over to the desk and slamming the phone, and
the senator's hand, down on the desk so hard they both broke.
"Jesus!" the senator roared, pulling his hand back furiously.
"I"ll have you arrested for that..."
"Oh, I don't think so," Mike said, sitting down and tossing a
packet on the desk. "You see, I found Natalya. And the bastard
you sent to kill her. Who was stupid enough to talk about it. All
of it, senator. Top sheet is a partial transcript."
The senator leaned forward and gingerly opened the manila
envelope with his unbroken hand then started to read the
transcription.
"There's no proof there," he said, hoarsely.
"There's enough to matter," Mike said. "The news media
would be all over it like stink on shit, even if you are their fair-
haired boy. Winston Three-Names was a former aide. He's been
definitely identified by a first hand source as the man who both
murdered a girl in Macedonia
and attempted to frame Senator Fullbright
for it. And despite the voice changer, you can get a partial match.
Between that and the confidential notes when you covered for
him after that incident in
Nigeria
, which are easy enough to leak, you're
toast. Don't even begin to try to fight this or you'll be facing
charges as well as being out of government service."
"What do you want?" the senator growled.
"You're leaving government service," Mike said. "Old war
wound will do. You don't play around behind the scenes, either.
No fundraising, no support for candidates, no quiet little deals,
no lobbying. You are out. O-U-T. Out. Go teach or something,
you're perfect for academia. And you don't have to work for your
salary. Your wife will support you. But one glimmer of a hint
that you're back in the power broker business and that entire file
gets forwarded to every single news outlet on the planet."
"Fuck you," the senator snapped. "There's no way..."
"The Senate leadership have already seen that file," Mike
said, grinning. "If you don't go, you're going to be impeached.
And then it will be all over the news. Charges in impeachment
proceedings have to be open charges. I'd imagine the President's
party would even be able to pick up your seat after that debacle.
Hell, I doubt that your party would be able to keep
New Jersey
. As it is, your party can appoint an interim and he'll
probably be reelected."
"What are they going to do about Winton?" the senator
asked, deflating. "He'll talk. He's too much of a coward not to."
"He's already dealt with," Mike said, standing up. "He had a
little accident in the Balkans. Bandits and such, you know how
troubled it is over there. And if you try to fuck with me or mine,
Senator, overtly or covertly, you'll be dealt with the same way.
Oh, and you owe me five mil," he added. "The number for the
bank account is in the file. Don't be slow on the payments. You
don't want to deal with my collections department."
* * *
"What was the take from the whorehouse?" Pierson asked.
He and Mike had agreed to meet in a
Georgetown
bar after Mike's meeting with Senator Traskel. Mike
had known he was going to need at least one drink afterwards.
Although, the meeting with the Senate leadership had been more
of a ballbuster all things considered.
"Damn near six mil," Mike said, shaking his head. "It turned
out that the club was the central clearing house for most of the
Balkans for that clan. Who ever knew that hookers could
generate so much cash?"
"Not just hookers," Pierson said. "The gang was deep in the
heroin business, apparently. Interpol sent us a very carefully
worded but hearty thank you."
"Nice to know we're appreciated," Mike said, shaking his
head. "And I kinda figured that when we found over six hundred
pounds of the damned stuff in the safe. Which was why most of
the Semtek and incindieries were on top of it."
"Where are you going to start?" Pierson asked, changing the
subject.
"Japan
I think," Mike replied. "They've got the
most files after the US
. You know I'm going to be the one most
hated son-of-a-bitch on earth after this. Shoot the messenger
doesn't even begin to cover it. The US Senate would love to bury
me under the Capitol. Both parties. The leadership meeting was a
real show of bipartisanship."
"You're also going to be one of the most feared," Pierson
pointed out, chuckling. "The people in the know in those nations
– and we're talking about every really major
nation on earth – are not going to want to piss you
off. Not after this. Forget saving Paris
. The general outline of what you and the Keldara did
is already making the rounds of the intelligence and military
services, at least the high-level TS sections. As is the news about
the files. And, believe you me, people are shitting their pants as
they wait for you to turn up. Especially the ones that don't know,
yet, if they're going to be getting visit. Frankly, I'm not sure if
they're more afraid of the files, or you personally."
"Well, I doubt they will ever love me. Most of them are
hypocritical PC motherfuckers with not an ounce of brains
between them. Bear witness that the French threw me out on my
ass after saving their sorry asses. I'm never going to be well liked
by 'the high and mighty' of Traskel's stripe." He stood up and
tossed back his bourbon, then rolled the empty shot-glass
thoughtfully between thumb and forefinger. "Enough, I suppose,
that they fear me."
"You and your Mountain Tigers."
THE END
For more great books visit
http://www.webscription.net
|